PDF version

THE ECCLESIASTICAL    HISTORY OF EUSEBIUS    PAMPHILUS
BISHOP  OF  CESAREA,  IN  PALESTINE.

TRANSLATED  FROM  THE  ORIGINAL, WITH  AN  INTRODUCTION, BY CflRISTIAN    FREDERICK    CRUSE,    D.D.
AND  AN HISTORICAL    VIEW OF THE    COUNCIL    OF    NICE, BYY  ISAAC  BOYLE,  D.D.

TENTH      EDITION.

THOMAS  N.   STANFORD,   637   BROADWAY.

1850.

Entered  accoiding  to  Act  of  Congrcj4.  m  tne  year  1S33,  by  the  Rev.  11.  Davis &  Brotiiek,  in  the  Clerk's  Office  of  the  oistrict  Court  cf  the  Eastern  District  of Pennsylvania.  /^     •

INTRODUCTION

TO    THE ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY  OF  EUSEBIFS
Note — In  Part  T.  of  the  following  Introduction,  the  references  show  the  Book  and chapter ;   in  Part  II.  they  show  the  page.    Occasionally  there  is  a  double  reference.

Part  I.— GENERAL  ABSTRACT  OF  EVENTS.

This  work,  the  most  important  that  has  come  down  to  us  from Eusebius  of  Cesarea,  and  the  most  important  of  any,  perhaps, that  have  came  to  us  from  the  earlier  Fathers  of  the  Church,  embraces the  events  of  the  first  three  centuries,  down  to  the  time when  Constantine  became  sole  master  of  the  Roman  world.  It  is divided  into  ten  books,  in  chronological  order,  and  opens  with  a preliminary  discourse,  the  matter  of  which  is  strictly  theological.
It  is  an  apology  and  exposition  of  Christian  doctrine.  The  design is  chiefly  to  exhibit  the  Christian  Religion  in  its  true  antiquity, dignity  and  excellence,  on  grounds  derived  from  the  titles,  offices, and  exalted  Nature  and  Dignity  of  its  Blessed  Author,  and  from  a comparative  view  of  facts  and  passages  of  the  Old  Testament, showing  that  the  Person  and  Doctrine  of  Christ  had  been  the  object of  faith  and  hope  from  the  most  remote  ages.

Here,  then,  we  have  a  summary  of  Christian  Doctrine  in  the Primitive  Church.  In  this  connection  also,  Eusebius  accounts  for the  seemins:  difficulty  that  the  Gospel  was  not  sooner  introduced;

or  rather,  why  this  Divine  Dispensation  was  so  long  delayed.  After this  summary  of  Christian  Theology,  commences  what  is  properly the  object  of  the  work — the  History  of  the  Church.  (B.  I.  p.  28.)

The  time  when  our  Lord  was  born,  being  an  important  historical fact,  authorities  are  given  corroborating  the  statement  of  St.
Luke,  and  settling  the  question  in  general,  to  what  particular period  this  happy  event  is  to  be  referred.  (B.  L  ch.  5.)  The coincidence  with  the  language  of  Prophecy  is  then  illustrated  by  a reference  to  the  state  of  the  Jewish  Government  at  the  time,  and the  seeming  discrepancy  between  the  gospels  of  Matthew  and Luke  on  the  genealogy  of  Christ,  is  reconciled.  (B.  L  ch.  7.)
Historical  sketches  are  given  respecting  those  who  acted  a  prominent part  in  our  Lord's  trial  and  death,  elucidating  both  the  time of  His  Ministry  and  the  retributive  visitations  of  Providence, (ch.  8.)

The  last  chapters  of  this  book  are  chiefly  occupied  with  accounts of  John  the  Baptist,  in  his  relation  to  the  Messiah,  and  closes  with the  correspondence  attributed  to  Christ  and  Agbarus.  and  which Eusebius  translated  from  the  records  of  Edessa.

The  second  book,  in  connection  with  the  martyrdom  of  Stephen and  James  the  Just,  shows  the  organization  of  the  mother  Church at  Jerusalem,  under  the  latter  of  these  martyrs  as  its  bishop.  The origin  of  the  Syrian  Church,  at  Edessa,  is  interwoven  with  the  account of  Thaddeus,  deputed  thither  by  St.  Thomas.  The  persecutions at  Jerusalem  having  scattered  the  disciples,  and.  Providence overruling  this  calamity  for  greater  good,  the  truths  of  the  Gospel were  also  scattered  abroad  with  this  dispersion.  The  apostles had,  thus  far,  limited  their  operations  to  the  Jews  ;  but  henceforth commences  the  period  of  extension  and  catholicityo
Phenice,  Cyprus,  Antioch,  are  thus  visited  by  believers,  and even  Ethiopia  receives  intelligence  of  Christ,  (ch.  1  ;)  but  the apostles  were  not  fully  prepared  to  establish  the  Church  among the  Gentiles,  until  the  vision  of  Peter  and  the  conversion  of  St.
Paul  dissipate  all  doubts.     A  period  of  peace  under  Tiberius  is

Ill

favorable  to  their  work.  Churches  now  every  where  arise,  and Greeks  at  Antioch  are  the  founders  of  the  Christian  name,  and  of the  first  Church  among  the  Gentiles.  The  churches  of  Palestine and  Syria  are  the  mothers  of  all  other  churches,  (ch.  3.)

The  celebrated  Judao-platonic  Philo,  flourished  under  Tiberius and  Caligula,  and  becomes  prominent  as  an  expounder  of  mystical philosophy.  He  is  also  noted  for  an  embassy  to  Rome  in  behalf of  the  Jews.  The  storm  that  had  been  gathering,  burst  upon  that people  under  Caligula,  and  ended  with  the  destruction  of  their city  and  temple,  under  Vespasian.  Returning  to  the  prominent actors  at  our  Lord's  death,  the  historian  characterizes  Pilate  and Herod,  noting  the  manner  and  circumstances  of  their  death, (ch.  9,  10.)  St.  Luke's  account  of  the  impostor  Theudas  is  confirmed by  a  passage  from  Josephus,  together  with  other  facts  stated by  the  evangelist,  from  monuments  existing  in  the  days  of  Eusebius.

The  Gospel  now  spreads  in  the  city  of  Rome.  Simon  Magnus is  conspicuous  as  its  antagonist,  and  as  a  leader  in  heresy  and  licentiousness. Eusebius,  following  Justin,  Irenseus,  Clement,  Papias, and  a  general  tradition,  (ch.  13,  14,)  speaks  of  Peter's  successful mission  against  Simon,  and  the  compilation  of  St.  Mark's  gospel, under  the  authority  of  the  apostle.  Tradition  also  refers  the  foundation of  the  Church  in  Egypt,  to  St.  Mark.  (ch.  15,  16.)  The extracts  from  Philo,  in  regard  to  the  Therapeuta,  incline  the  historian to  the  opinion  that  they  were  either  a  sect  of  Christians,  or else  derived  their  institutions  from  the  latter,  (ch.  17.)  The  works of  Philo  are  now  stated  and  briefly  noticed,  when  the  history  returns to  the  condition  of  the  Jews  at  this  time  ;  their  seditions  and their  sufferings  under  the  emperors  Claudius  and  Nero  ;  their  insurrections under  the  notorious  Egyptian  impostor,  mentioned  in the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  when  Felix  was  governor,  (ch.  18-21.)

The  history  next  traces  the  different  parts  visited  by  St.  Paul, as  deduced  from  his  own  writings,  with  a  view  to  determine  also the  time  of  his  death,  (ch.  22.)  Now  follows  a  more  full  account of  the  death  of  James  the  Just,  (coll.  p.  49,  77,)  the  first  bishop  of
Jerusalem,  of  whose  Epistles  there  is  a  brief  notice  in  connection with  what  are  called  the  Seven  Catholic  Epistles,  (ch.  23.)

The  history  then  relates  the  martyrdoms  of  Peter  and  Paul,  referring as  authority  to  Caius,  an  Ecclesiastical  writer  who  flourished soon  after  the  events ;  and  also  to  Dionysius  of  Corinth.  This book  closes  with  a  review  of  the  great  miseries  now  thickening around  the  Jews ;  but  does  not  carry  us  yet,  as  far  as  the  destruction of  Jerusalem,  and  may  be  said  to  comprise  between  thirty  and forty  years  after  our  Lord's  ascension.

The  third  book  commences  with  a  succinct  statement  of  the  regions evangelized  by  some  of  the  apostles.  The  epistles  of  the aposdes  are  reviewed  according  to  their  canonical  authority,  and in  a  digression,  is  subjoined  to  this  the  account  of  those  who  immediately succeeded  the  Apostles  Peter  and  Paul  in  their  labors, (ch.  4.)  The  narrative  returns  then  to  the  affairs  of  the  Jews  ;
details  the  destruction  of  Jerusalem  under  Titus ;  compares  the predictions  of  our  Lord  with  the  sign  of  the  times,  and  refers  to the  contemporary  testimony  of  Josephus.  The  works  of  the  latter are  mentioned  and  reviewed,  together  with  the  Canon  of  the  Old Testament,  (ch.  10,)  and  a  notice  of  those  who,  under  Vespasian, Titus  and  Domitian,  were  bishops  of  Jerusalem,  Rome,  and  Alexandria,   (ch.  11,  13.)

About  this  period  occurred  the  dissensions  in  the  Church  of Corinth,  (ch.  16  ;)  the  persecution  also  under  Domitian,  which, connected  with  the  origin  of  the  Apocalypse,  furnishes  occasion  to detail  some  parts  of  St.  John's  history,  and  the  relatives  of  our Lord,  (ch.  20,)  John's  return  from  the  Isle  of  Patmos,  the  episcopate of  Ignatius  at  Antioch,  the  history  of  the  youth  recovered  to the  Church  by  the  efforts  of  St.  John,  are  spread  before  us  from the  writings  of  the  Alexandrian,  Clement  and  Irenseus.

Eusebius  now,  from  the  wridngs  of  St,  John,  passes  to  the  order and  authors  of  the  gospels,  and  reconciling  apparent  discrepancies, lays  down  that  important  statement  of  the  Canon  of  the  New Testament,  which  was  received  in  the  primitive  Church,  together
with  the  distinction   between  the   acknowledged  (c/uacycvy.mi,)  the disputed  {xvnSiyofA^r.t,)  and  the  spurious  (vsQ«.)  (ch.  25.)

A  new  subject  offers  next,  in  the  rise  of  heresies,  (ch.  27.)  The gross  errors  taught  by  jNIenander,  the  Ebionites  and  Cerinthus,  the delusions  of  the  Nicolaitans  are  exhibited  en  the  authorities  of Irenaeus,  Justin,  Clement,  and  the  Caius,  already  quoted  above.
The  reference  to  the  last  of  these  errorists,  as  if  by  contrast,  introduces the  subject  of  marriage,  and  an  account  of  those  apostles who  lived  in  this  state,  (ch.  30.)  The  Epistle  of  Polycrates  of Ephesus,  throw^s  light  on  this  subject,  whilst  the  extracts  from Hegesippus  also  shows  the  purer  state  of  the  Church,  and  the period  about  which  the  apostolic  chair  became  extinct,  (ch.  23.)

Persecution  now  reared  itself  again  under  Trajan,  and  this  occasions the  Epistle  of  Pliny,  and  the  answer  of  the  Emperor.  At Rome,  Clement  is  succeeded  by  Euarestus,  whilst  Simeon,  who died  at  120  years  of  age,  is  succeeded  by  Justus  at  Jerusalem.
The  Epistles  of  Ignatius,  and  his  martyrdom,  are  noticed  from  the writings  of  Irenaeus  and  Polycarp.  A  general  account  of  some, about  this  time  distinguished  for  prophetical  gifts  and  miracles, (ch.  37,)  the  notice  of  the  genuine  epistle  of  Clement,  with  interesting extracts  from  the  last  works  of  Papias,  close  the  third  book.
This  brings  the  history  down  to  the  beginning  of  the  second century,  comprising  a  range  of  more  than  thirty  years.

The  fourth  book  exhibits  the  churches  of  Rome  and  Alexandria, becoming  more  and  more  prominent  in  their  influence  on  the  rest of  the  Christian  world.  With  the  growth  of  Christianity  we  also see  the  growing  misery  of  the  Jews.  The  eighteenth  year  of Trajan's  reign  w^as  a  time  of  great  calamity  to  them,  in  consequence of  insurrectionary  movements.  In  the  reign  of  Adrian,  his  successor, the  enemies  of  Christianity  created  persecutions  which drew  forth  apologies  from  Quadratus  and  Aristides.  The  series  of bishops  at  Jerusalem,  before  the  destruction  of  the  city,  the  delusion of  the  impostor  Barchochebas  in  the  eighteenth  year  of  Adrian's reign,  (ch.  6,)  and  the  entire  exclusion  of  the  Jews  from  their  an

VI

cient  Jerusalem,  now  called  iElia,  fix  our  attention  on  the  remarkable changes  of  that  city.

Turning  aside  from  political  events  to  doctrines,  Eusebius reviews  the  heresies  that  grew  out  of  those  already  mentioned,  of which  Menander  Saturninus  and  Basilides  were  the  leaders.  They were  successfully  opposed  by  Agrippa  Castor,  (ch.  7.)  A  new aspect  is  given  to  heretical  speculations  by  Carpoeratcs,  who  is pronounced  the  father  of  Gnosticism.  The  effects  of  these  wild speculations,  and  the  successful  triumph  over  them,  stand  connected with  a  notice  of  the  writers  who  shared  in  the  defence  of the  truth.  Hegesippus  is  marked  with  much  distinction.  From Justin  Martyr  extracts  are  also  given  against  Cerdon  and  Marcion.
Mehto,  bishop  of  Sardis,  is  also  quoted,  (ch.  13.)  Much  space  is allotted  to  the  character  and  martyrdom  of  Polycarp,  as  detailed  by IrensGus.  (ch.  14.)  The  machinations  of  Crescens  against  Justin, the  death  of  the  latter,  and  the  martyrdom  of  many  Christians,  are followed  by  extracts  from  the  works  of  Justin,  (ch.  18.)  The works  of  Hegesippus  are  reviewed,  (ch.  22,)  on  whose  authority the  names  of  different  sects,  both  Christian  and  Jewish,  are  given, with  a  reflection  on  the  Apocrypha,  sufficient  to  exclude  them  from the  Canon,  (ch.  22.)

We  are  now  introduced  to  an  acquaintance  with  the  character and  writings  of  the  excellent  Dionysius  of  Corinth,  the  loss  of whose  works  we  are  led  to  deplore,  from  the  value  of  the  fragments here  preserved.  His  Christian  lenity  in  regard  to  certain rigid  measures  proposed,  the  good  effects  of  his  epistles,  his  sound judgment  on  the  writings  of  others,  and  the  deep  interest  he  every where  manifests  for  the  true  edification  of  the  Church,  entitle  him to  high  consideration.  Theophilus  of  Antioch,  and  Philip  of Gortyna,  were  distinguished  by  their  writings — the  former  against Hermogenes  and  Marcion  ;  the  latter,  with  great  perspicuity, against  Marcion.  The  works  of  Melito,  bishop  of  Sardis,  and ApoUinaris  of  Hierapolis,  are  enumerated,  particularly  the tormer,    whose    epistle    to    Onesimus,    gives   us   the    Canon   of

Vll

he  Old  Testament  as  we  have  it  at  the  present  day.  (ch.  26.)
Tatian  was  a  disciple  of  Justin,  but  according  to  Iren£pus,  fell into  some  errors  on  Christian  duty.  His  Diatessaron,  a  kind  of Harmony  of  the  Gospels,  is  noticed  by  Eusebius.  The  last  author noticed  in  the  fourth  book,  is  the  Syrian  Bardesanes,  against Marcion,  and  it  closes  about  A.  D.  170,  comprising  nearly  fifty years  of  the  second  century.

The  fifih  book  opens  with  the  persecutions  under  Verus.  Lyons and  Vienna,  the  two  capitals  of  Gaul,  are  distinguished  for  martyrs. Remarkable  instances  of  Christian  faith  and  fortitude  are exhibited  in  Vittius  Epagathus,  Maturus,  Attains,  Blandina  and others.  The  restoration  of  the  lapsed,  through  the  mediation  of the  martyrs,  a  remarkable  vision  of  Attalus,  one  of  them,  and  the successful  prayer  of  the  Christian  legion,  are  among  the  mcidents related,  (ch.  4-6.)

The  succession  of  Roman  bishops  is  given  from  IrensDus,  from whom  also  the  account  of  miracles  performed  by  believers,  is  taken.
Irena^us  is  also  cited  on  the  Canon,  (ch.  8,)  particularly  on  the Septuagint.  The  school  founded  by  Pantaenus,  at  Alexandria, who  was  succeeded  by  Clement,  together  with  the  eulogium  of  the latter  on  his  master,  gives  a  favorable  view  of  the  Egyptian  Church.
The  succession  of  Gentile  bishops  in  the  Church  of  Jerusalem, now,  seems  to  have  been  a  consequence  of  the  exclusion  of  Jews from  JE\h.  Rhodo  of  Asia  Minor,  wrote  about  this  time,  on  the divisions  caused  by  Marcion.  (ch.  13.)  The  Phrygian  heresy  and the  schism  of  Blastus  at  Rome,  are  among  'the  troubles  of  the Church  noticed  by  the  same  writer.  He  has  also  transmitted  to us  what  we  know  of  Miltiades  and  his  works,  especially  on  the Montanists.  Extracts  from  Apollonius  of  Rome,  caused  much  zeal in  refuting  the  pretended  prophets,  (ch.  18.)  Serapion,  bishop  of Antioch,  is  cited  on  the  same  subject ;  Irenseus  writes  against schism,  and  the  learned  Apollonius  dies  a  martyr  at  Rome,  under Commodus.  The  question  on  the  Passover  being  started  about this  time,  occasions  great  offence.     Victor  presumes  to  excom

via

municate  the  eastern  churches, — a  memorable  prehide  to  the  arrogance of  other  days,  (ch  20.)  The  fifth  book  ends  with  an account  of  the  errors  of  Artemon,  revived  by  Paul  of  Samosata.
The  close  of  the  book  coincides  with  the  reign  of  Severus,  about the  beginning  of  the  third  century.

The  sixth  book  begins  with  the  persecutions  under  S.  Severus.
It  is  occupied  chiefly  with  the  life  and  labors  of  Origen.  These memoirs  are  introduced  with  accounts  of  Clement,  Origen's  master. Narcissus  of  Jerusalem,  Serapron  of  Antioch,  Heraclas,  the translator  Symmachus,  Ambrose  of  Alexandria,  and  other  writers, consulted  byEusebius  in  the  library  of  ^lia.  Origen's  review  of the  Scriptures,  the  deference  paid  him  by  the  bishops  of  Alexandria, Cesarea,  and  Jerusalem,  (ch.  27,)  show  the  estimation  in  which  he was  held.  About  this  time  flourished  Africanus,  author  of  a Chronography,  who  also  wrote  to  Aristides  on  the  geneology  of Christ,  (coll.  p.  31,  32  and  250.)  Beryllus  of  Bostra,  noted  for his  errors,  is  refuted  by  Origen.  An  instance  of  ecclesiastical  discipline in  the  case  of  the  emperor  Philip,  Origen's  controversy with  Celsus,  the  Arabian  errorists  and  the  Helcesaites,  the  Decian persecution,  which  occurred  about  the  middle  of  the  century  ;
these  events,  with  the  sufferings  of  Origen,  are  prominent  features of  this  book.  It  closes  with  some  account  of  the  Novatian  agitations. For  the  removal  of  these,  a  council  is  held,  and  both  Cornelius and  Cyprian  write  to  heal  the  threatened  breach.  Dionysius of  Alexandria,  in  an  epistle  to  Germanus,  gives  an  account  of  his own  sufferings,  (ch.  ,40,)  and  those  of  the  Alexandrian  Church,  in an  epistle  to  Fabius  of  Antioch.  (ch.  41.)  The  latter  is  also  addressed in  an  epistle  from  Cornelius,  (ch.  43.)  An  extract  from Dionysius,  relates  the  death  of  the  aged  Serapion,  and  the  same Dionysius  addresses  Novatus  in  an  epistle,  urging  peace  and  reconciliation. His  different  works  are  enumerated  in  ihe  last  chapter of  the  book,  which  embraces  about  half  of  the  third  century.

The  seventh  book  continues  the  extracts  from  Dionysius,  and the  persecution  under  Decius.     About  this  time  is  agitated  the

IX

question  on  the  rebaptism  of  heretics,  (ch.  3.)  The  eastern churches  act  independently  of  the  west,  in  this  matter,  (ch.  5.)
Stephen  of  Rome  holds  no  communion  with  them,  and  Cyprian writes  to  him.  About  the  same  time  arose  the  erroneous  loctrine of  Sabellius,  and  the  Novatian  schism  reached  its  height,  (ch.  8.)

Besides  these  points,  Dionysius  writes  on  others  of  interest  to  the Church,  details  the  persecutions  under  Valerian,  and  his  own  sufferings (ch.  9)  at  that  time,  makes  his  defence  against  the  insinuations of  Germanus  on  that  occasion,  (coll.  p.  255,  283,)  and  gives many  names  of  sufferers  for  the  faith,  in  Egypt,  (ch.  11.)

The  persecution  was  not  as  violent  in  Palestine,  but  yet  not without  its  victims  (ch.  12)  at  Cesarea.  Paneas  (Cesarea  Philippi)
acquires  celebrity  for  two  remarkable  traditions,  (ch.  17,  18.)
The  see  of  Jerusalem  is  held  in  great  veneration  in  these  times.

Eusebius  now  states  the  labors  of  Dionysius  on  the  Canon  for Easter,  the  first  attempt  of  the  kind  in  the  Church.  The  misery and  sufferings  of  Alexandria  during  the  plague,  are  graphically  described by  Dionysius,  who  also  relates  the  schism  caused  by Nepos  in  Egypt,  takes  part  in  the  controversy  on  the  book  of Revelation,  (ch.  20,)  in  which  he  displays  much  critical  acumen.
He  dies  after  an  episcopate  of  seventeen  years.

Paul  of  Samosata,  notorious  about  this  time,  for  his  errors  and arrogance,  is  refuted  by  Malchion,  and  deposed  in  a  council,  (ch.
29,  30.)  The  heresy  of  Manes  now  appears  in  the  Church,  (ch.
31,)  a  sad  mixture  of  oriental  philosophy  and  perverted  truth.
The  seventh  book  gives  us  an  account  of  the  prominent  characters contemporary  with  Eusebius,  of  the  school  established  by  his  friend Pamphilus,  at  Cesarea,  and  the  martyrdom  of  Peter,  bishop  ot Alexandria,  (ch.  32.)  It  embraces  more  than  half  a  century.
Eusebius  gives  the  number  three  hundred  and  five  years  from  the beginning  to  the  present  time.

The  eighth  book  relates  the  greatest  and  last  of  the  memorable persecutions  during  the  first  centuries  of  the  Church.  Churches are  demolished.     Martyrs  in  Egypt,  Svria,  Phrygia,  attest  the  faith.

Nicomedia  is  distinguished  for  violence  to  the  Christians.  Maxentius  and  Maximian  are  the  great  enemies,  (ch.  14.)  Violence reigns  the  whole  time  of  the  persecution,  even  among  the  persecutors themselves,  (ch.  15.)  To  the  eighth  book  is  appended  the celebrated  Book  of  Martyrs,  (p.  348-378.)

The  ninth  book  records  the  revocation  of  the  decrees  against  the Christians,  as  also  various  public  acts  in  their  favor.  It  also  relates the  calamities  now  assailing  the  empire,  and  the  deaths  of Maximian,  Maxentius  and  Maximus.

The  tenth  book  winds  up  the  history  with  a  view  of  the  pleasing reverse  of  events,  the  oration  of  Eusebius  commemorative  of  the happy  change,  and  copies  of  public  documents  confirming  privileges granted  to  Christians.

C.  F.  CRUSE
March  1,  1850.

ANNOTATIONS

ON   THE

LIFE  AND  WRITINGS  OF  EUSEBIUS  PAMPHILUS.
BY  VALESIUS.

TRANSLATED*  BY  THE  KEY.  S.  E.  PARKER,
AUTHOR   OF   THE   ARTICLES    'PROSODY,'    '  aUANTITY,'    AND    'VERSIFICATION,'    IN
DR.  REES'S  CYCLOr.EDIA.

According  to  the  testimony  of  Socrates,!  a  book  relative  to  the  life of  Eusebius,  was  M-ritten  by  Acacius,  the  scholar  of  that  prelate,  and his  successor  in  the  see  of  Cacsarea.  This  book,  however,  through that  negligence  in  antiquity  to  which  the  loss  of  many  others  is  to be  ascribed,  is  not  now  extant ;  but  from  the  testimonies  of  the several  writers  that  have  mentioned  Eusebius,  no  exertions  of  ours shall  be  wanting  to  supply  the  defect.

It  appears  that  Eusebius  was  born  in  Palestine,  about  the  close  of the  reign  of  Gallienus.  One  proof  of  which  is,  that  by  the  ancients, particularly  by  Basilius  and  Theodoret,  he  is  frequently  termed  a  Palestinian. It  is  not  impossible,  indeed,  that  he  might  have  received that  name  from  his  being  the  bishop  of  Cacsarea,  yei  probability  is  in favour  of  his  having  derived  it  from  his  country.  In  short,  he  himself afhrms,:}:  that  he  was  educated,  and  when  a  youth,  dwelt  in  Palestine, and  that  there  he  first  saw  Constantine,  when  journeying  through Palestine  in  the  suit  of  Diocletian  Augustus.  Eusebius,  too,  after repeating§  tlie  contents  of  a  law,  written  in  favour  of  the  Christians, by  Constantine  to  the  Palestinians,  observes,  "This  letter  of  the  Emperor's is  the  first  sent  to  us."

On  the  authority  of  Eusebius  himself,  it  may  be  affirmed,  that  he
*  In  this  version,  the  sense,  more  than  the  expression  of  Yalesius,  is  regarded.

j-  Eccles.  Hist.  lib.  2.  c.  4.

\  In  his  first  book  concerning  the  life  of  Constantine,  chap.  19.

§  Life  of  Constantine,  book  ii.  chap.  43,  where  see  note  a.  Cambr.  edit.  1G92.

Vi  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.

was  born  in  the  last  part  of  the  reign  of  GalUenus ;  for,  in  his  Ecclesiastic History,  he  informs  us,  that  Dionysius,  bishop  of  Alexandria, lived  in  his  own  age.*  Eusebius,  therefore,  since  Dionysius died  in  the  twelfth  year  of  the  reign  of  GalUenus,  must  have  been born  before,  if  he  lived  within  the  time  of  that  prelate.  The  same inference,  also,  follows,  from  his  stating,t  that  Paul  of  Samosata,  had revived  the  heresy  of  Artemon,  in  hisX  age.  And  in  his  history  of the  occurrences  during  the  reign  of  GalUenus,  before  he  begins  the narrative  of  the  error  and  condemnation  of  Paul  of  Samosata,  he  observes, "but  now,  after  the  history  of  these  things,  we  will  transmit to  posterity  an  account  of  our  own  age.''^

Whom  he  had  for  his  parents  is  uncertain ;  neither  do  we  know  by what  authorities,  Nicephorus  Callistus  is  warranted  in  affirming,  that his  mother  was  the  sister  of  Pamphilus  the  martyr.  Eusebius  of Caisarea,  in  Arius's  letter,§  is  termed  brother  to  Eusebius  of  Nicomedia.  Though  he  possibly  might,  on  account  of  his  friendship, have  received  this  appellation,  yet  it  is  more  probable  that  he  was nearly  related  to  the  Nicomedian  bishop ;  especially  since,  Eusebius of  Caesarea  only,  though  many  others  there  are  mentioned,  is  termed by  Arius,  brother  to  that  prelate.  Besides  the  Nicomedian  Eusebius was  a  native  of  Syria,  and  bishop  first  of  Berytus :  nor  was  it  then the  usage,  that  foreigners  and  persons  unknown,  should  be  promoted to  the  government  of  churches.

Neither  is  it  known  what  teachers  he  had  in  secular  learning ;  but in  sacred  literature,  he  had  for  his  preceptor  Dorotheus,  the  eunuch, presbyter  of  the  Antiochian  church,  of  whom  he  makes  honourable mention,  in  his  Seventh  Book.||  Notwithstanding  Eusebius  there says  only,  that  he  had  heard  Dorotheus  expounding  the  Holy  Scriptures with  propriety,  in  the  Antiochian  church,  we  are  not  inclined to  object  to  any  one  hence  inferring,  with  Trithemius,  that  Eusebius was  Dorotheus's  disciple.  Theotecnus  being  at  that  time  dead,  the bishopric  of  the  church  of  Caesarea  was  administered  by  Agapius,  a person  of  eminent  piety  and  great  liberality  to  the  poor.  By  him Eusebius  was  admitted  into  the  clerical  office,  and  with  Pamphilus, a  presbyter  of  distinction  at  that  time  in  the  Caesarean  church,  he
*  See  lib.  3.  c,  28.  f  Eccles.  Hist,  book  v.  chap.  28.  t  Eusebius's.

§  Arius's  letter  to  Eusebius,  bishop  of  Nicomedia,  will  be  found  in  Theodoret'a Eccles.  Hist.  lib.  1.  c.  5.  edit.  Val.  H  Chap.  1.  p.  2.

LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  Vii
entered  into  the  firmest  friendship.  Pamphikis  was,  as  Pholius  relates, a  Phoenician,  born  at  Berytus,  and  scholar  of  Pierius,  a  presbyter of  the  Alexandrian  church.  Who,  since  he  was  animated  with the  most  singular  attachment  to  sacred  literature,  and  was  with  the utmost  zeal  collecting  all  the  books,  especially  Origen's,  of  the  ecclesiastic writers,  founded  a  very  celebrated  school  and  library  at  Cssarea,  of  which  school  Eusebius  seems  to  have  been  the  first  master.
Indeed,  it  is  afiirmed*  by  Eusebius,  that  Apphianus,  who  suffered martyrdom  in  the  thira  year  of  the  persecution,  had  been  instructea by  him  in  the  sacred  Scriptures,  in  the  city  of  Caesarea.  From  that time  Eusebius's  intimacy  with  Pamphilus  was  so  great,  and  his  attention to  him,  as  his  inseparable  companion  till  his  death  such,  that from  this  attachment  he  acquired  the  name  of  Pamphilus.  Neither did  that  attachment  terminate  with  the  death  of  the  latter,  but  survived with  the  former,  who  ever  mentioned  his  deceased  friend  in  the  most respectful  and  affectionate  manner;  this,  indeed,  is  exemplified  by  the three  books,  eulogized  by  St.  Jerome,  and  written  by  Eusebius,  concerning the  life  of  Pamphilus,  and  by  many  passages  in  his  Ecclesiastic History,  and  in  his  account  of  the  martyrs  of  Palestine.  In his  Second  Book,  also,  against  Sabellius,  written  by  Eusebius,  after the  Nicene  Council,  he  frequently  commends  Pamphilus,  though  he suppresses  his  name.  In  the  commencement  of  that  discourse,  Eusebius observes,  "  I  think  that  my  ears  are  as  yet  affected  by  the  memory of  that  blessed  man ;  for  I  seem  to  be  yet  hearing  him  utter  that devout  word,  '  the  only  begotten  Son  of  God,'  a  phrase  he  constantly employed ;  for  it  was  the  remembrance  of  the  only  begotten  to  the glory  of  the  unborn  Father.  Now  we  have  heard  the  apostle  commanding that  presbyters  ought  to  be  honoured  with  a  double  honour, those  especially  who  have  laboured  in  the  word  and  doctrine."  And at  page  29,  he  thus  again  speaks  of  his  friend :  "  With  these  things from  the  memory  of  that  blessed  man,  I  am  not  elated,  but  wish  I
could  so  speak,  as  if,  together  with  you,  I  were  always  hearing  from him.  And  the  words  now  cited  may  be  pleasing  to  him,  for  it  is  the glory  of  good  servants  to  speak  truth  concerning  the  Lord,  and  it  is die  honour  of  those  fathers,  who  have  taught  well,  if  their  doctrines be  repeated."!     Some,  it  is  true,  "  may  insinuate,  that  these  were
•  In  his  book  concerning  the  martyrs  of  Palestine.

}•  Again,  in  tlie  same  book,  p.  37:  "These  words  we  always  heard  from  that blessed  man,  for  they  were  often  thus  spoken  by  him."

Viii  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.

phrases,  the  creatures  of  his  lips,  and  no  proof  of  tlie  feelings  of  his heart.  1  remember,  however,  in  what  a  satisfactory  manner,  I  have heard  with  you,  his  solemn  asseveration,  that  there  was  not  one  thing on  his  tongue  and  another  in  his  heart."  Shortly  after,  he  says  :
"  But  now  on  account  of  the  memory  and  honour  of  this  our  father, so  good,  so  laborious,  and  so  vigilant  for  the  church,  let  these  facts be  briefly  stated  by  us.  For  we  have  not  mentioned  yet  his  family, liis  education  or  learning,  nor  narrated  the  other  incidents  of  his  life, and  its  leading  or  principal  object.''^*  These  passages  in  Eusebius were  pointed  out  to  us  by  the  most  learned  Franciscus  Ogerius.
Hence  it  may  be  satisfactorily  inferred,  that  it  was  not  any  family alliance,  but  the  bond  of  amity  that  connected  Eusebius  with  Pamphius.  Eusebius,  though  he  mentions  Pamphilus  so  frequently,  and boasts  so  highly  of  his  friendship,  yet  never  speaks  of  him  as  a relative.  The  testimony  of  Eusebius  alone  is  sufficient  to  decide that  Pamphilus,  though  his  friend,  was  not  his  kinsman.  Since in  the  close  of  his  Seventh  Book  of  Ecclesiastic  History,  where he  is  making  mention  of  Agapius,  bishop  of  Caesarea,  he  says  :  "In his  time,  we  became  acquainted  with  Pamphilus,  a  most  eloquent man,  and  in  his  life  and  practices  truly  a  philosopher,t  and  in  the same  church,  ennobled  with  the  honour  of  the  presbytery."     Since
*  "  Propositura"  is  the  word  employed  by  Valesius,  doubtless  in  that  acceptation in  which  its  precise  sense  is  so  easily  appreciated  by  the  classic  reader  in Horace,  Car.  lib,  iii.  ode  iii.  line  i.  "  Justum  et  tenacem  propositi  virum,  non civium  ardor  prava  jubentium,  non  vultus  instantis  tyranni  mente  quatit  solida,"
&c.  Should  not  Christians  have,  universally,  a  far  more  vivid  perception  of  this beautiful  picture  of  mind  than  heathens  ]  St.  Paul  had  ;  see  Philip,  chap.  iii.  ver 13  «&  14.

■j-  The  term  philosopher,  in  the  modern  sense  in  which  it  is  commonly  understood, by  no  means  expresses  the  precise  meaning  of  the  word  <?i>.o<ro?o;,  here  used by  Eusebius.  By  Isocrates,  it  is  frequently  employed  to  express  an  eloquent  per son,  or  teacher  of  eloquence.  Its  generic  sense  is  a  lover  of  ivisdom.  Wisdom by  the  Sophists,  was  of  course  confined  to  their  own  doctrines.  But  according  t3
the  sense  in  which  Josephus  and  other  Grecian  writers  employed  the  word  ?«\oc-o-cj, the  lover  of  ivisdom,  seems  not  to  be  searching  for  wisdom,  either  in  the  doctrines of  the  Sophists,  or  in  the  Cartesian  vortices,  but  in  the  volumes  of  inspired  truth.
This  character,  then,  is  equivalent  to  what  in  modern  language  is  calbd  a  theologian, in  which  sense,  I  have  no  doubt,  Eusebius  is  here  to  be  understood.  Hence Pamphilus  was  a  character  not  only  devoted  to  the  attainment  of  that  ivisdom, which  is  developed  in  the  sacred  code,  but  his  life  and  practices  were  such  as  to recommend  it  to  others;  consequently,  a  true  theologian. — Translator.

LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  *  ix
then,  Eusebius  attests  that  Pamphihis  was  then  first  known  to  him, it  is  sufficiently  evident,  that  family  alliance  w^as  not  the  tie  that  connected them.

In  these  times  occurred  that  most  severe  persecution  of  the  Christians, which  was  begun  by  Diocletian,  and  by  his  successors  continued unto  the  tenth  year.  During  this  persecution,  Eusebius,  at that  time  being  a  presbyter  of  the  church  of  Ceesarea,  abode  almost constantly  in  that  city,  and  by  continual  exhortations,  instructed many  persons  in  order  to  martyrdom.  Amongst  whom  was  Apphianus,  a  noble  youth,  whose  illustrious  fortitude  in  martyrdom  is related  in  Eusebius's  book  concerning  the  martyrs  of  Palestine.  In the  same  year  Pamphilus  was  cast  into  prison,  where  he  spent  two whole  years  in  bonds.  During  which  time,  Eusebius  by  no  means deserted  his  friend  and  companion,  but  visited  him  continually,  and in  the  prison  wrote,  together  with  him,  five  books  in  defence  of  Origen ;  but  the  sixth  and  last  book  of  that  work,  he  finished  after  the death  of  Pamphilus. — That  whole  work  was  by  Eusebius  and  Pamphilus dedicated*  to  Christian  confessors,!  living  in  the  mines  of  Palestine. In  the  time  of  this  persecution,  on  account,  probably,  of some  urgent  affairs  of  the  church,  Eusebius  went  to  Tyre.  During his  residence  there,  he  witnessed!  the  glorious  ma^-tyrdom  (Jf  five Egyptian  Christians  ;  and  afterwards,  on  his  arrival  in  Egypt  and Thebais,  the  persecution  then  prevailing  there,  he  §  beheld  the  admirable constancy  of  many  martyrs  of  both  sexes.  Some  have  insinuated that  Eusebius,  to  exempt  himself  in  this  persecution,  from the  troubles  of  a  prison,  sacrificed  to  idols ;  and  that  this  was  objected against  liim,  as  will  be  hereafter  related,  by  the  Egyptian bishops  and  confessors,  in  the  synod  at  Tyre.  But  we  doubt  not that  this  is    false,  and  that  it  was  a  calumny   forged   by  the   ene
*  This  is  affirmed  by  Photius  in  his  Bibliotheca,  chap.  118.

■J-  Though  the  word  here  employed  by  Valesius,  is  coiifessores,  yet  there  cannot be  the  least  doubt,  that  the  characters  to  whom  he  alludes  were  very  different  from those  which  a  more  recent  application  of  the  term  might  intimate.  Confessores were  simply  persons  that  had  confessed  and  acknowledged  openly,  during  the  time of  the  persecution,  that  they  were  Christians,  and  would  not,  to  save  either  their lives  or  property,  deny  their  Master  or  his  sacred  cause.  They  were  decided  characters, tenaces  propositi.  This  term  was  employed  by  Valesius,  who  lived  in  an age  of  the  church  when  its  use  was  popular.

i  Eusebius  informs  us  of  this  in  his  Eighth  Book,  chap.  7.

§  This  he  relates  in  the  ninth  chapter  of  the  same  Book.

X  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.

mies  of  Eusebius.  For  had  a  crime  so  great  been  really  committed by  him,  how  could  he  have  been  afterwards  appointed  bishop  of Caesarea  ?  How  is  it  likely  that  he  should,  i?!  this  case,  have  been invited  by  the  Antiochians  to  undertake  the  episcopate  of  their  city  ?
And  yet  Cardinal  Baronius  has  seized  on  that  as  certain  and  undoubted, which  by  his  enemies,  for  litigious  purposes,  was  objected against  Eusebius,  but  never  confirmed  by  the  testimony  of  any  one.
At  the  same  time,  a  book  was  written  by  Eusebius  against  Hierocles.
For  Hierocles  of  Nicomedia,  about  the  beginning  of  the  persecution, when  the  Christian  churches  were  everywhere  harassed,  in  the  city of  Nicomedia,  published,  as  an  insult  to  a  religion  then  assailed  bi/
all  its  enemies,  two*  books  against  the  Christian  faith.  In  which  books he  asserted,  that  Apollonius  Tyaneus  performed  more  and  greater thingst  than  Christ.  These  impious  assertions,  Eusebius  answered  in a  very  short  book,  as  if  he  regarded  the  man  and  liis  cause  of  little consequence.

Agapius,  bishop  of  Cresarea  during  this  interval,  being  dead,  the persecution  subsiding,  and  peace  being  restored  to  the  church,  Eusebius, by  common  consent,  succeeds  to  the  episcopal  dignity  at  Caesarea. Others  represent  Agricola,  who  subscribed  to  the  synod  of Ancyra,  at  which  he  was  present  in  the  314th  year  of  the  Christian era,  to  be  the  successor  of  Agapius.  This  is  affirmed  by  Baronius in  his  Annals:}:  and  Blondellus.§  The  latter  writes,  that  Eusebius  undertook the  administration  of  the  church  of  Caesarea,  after  the  death of  Agiicola,  about  the  year  315.  But  these  subscriptions  of  the  bishops extant  only  in  the  Latin  collections  of  the  canons,  seem  in  our judgment  to  be  entitled  to  little  credit.  For  they  occur  not  either  in the  Greek  copies,  or  in  the  Latin  versions  of  Dionysius  Exiguus, Berides,  Eusebius, H  enumerating  the  bishops  of  the  principal  diocesses,  where  the  persecution  began  and  raged,  ends  with  the  mention of  Agapius  bishop  of  Caesarea  ;  who,  he  observes,  laboured  much, during  that  persecution,  for  the  good  of  his  own  church.  The  necessary inference,  therefore,  is,  that  Agapius  must  have  been  bishop until  the  end  of  the  persecution.     But  Eusebius  was  elevated  to  the
*  Which  he  termed  <?.\a\ii3j.,-.

•|-  No  word  for "  miracles'^  occurs  in  the  text  of  Valesius.

^  Ad.  annum  Christi,  314.

§  In  his  Apology  pro  Sententia  Hieronymi.  c.  19.  Val.

\  In  the  7th  Book  of  his  Ecclesiactic  Hist.  chap.  32.

LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  xi
episcopal  function  immediately  after  that  persecution.  For  after  peace was  restored  to  the  church,  Eusebius*  and  other  prelates  being  invited by  Paulinus  bishop  of  Tyre,  to  the  dedication  of  a  cathedral.
Eusebius  made  there  a  very  eloquent  oration.  Now  this  happened before  tlie  rebellion  of  Licinius  against  Constantino,  in  tlie  315th year  of  the  Cliristian  era,  about  which  period  Eusebius  wrote  those celebrated  books  concerning  Evangelic  Demonstration  and  Preparation. And  these  books  were  certainly  written  before  the  Nicene Synod,  since  they  are  expressly  mentioned  in  his  Ecclesiastic  History, which  was  written,  as  proved  in  our  Annotations,  before  that council.

Meanwhile,  Licinius,  who  managed  the  government  in  the  eastern parts,  excited  by  sudden  rage,  began  to  persecute  the  Christians,  especially the  prelates,  whom  he  suspected  of  showing  more  favour, and  of  offering  up  more  prayers  for  Constantino  than  for  himself.
Constantino,  however,  having  defeated  him  in  two  battles  by  land  and sea,  compelled  him  to  surrender,  and  restored  peace  to  the  Christians of  the  eastern  countries.

A  disturbance,  however,  far  more  grievous,  arose  at  that  time, amongst  the  Christians  themselves.  For  since  Arius,  a  presbyter  of the  cit}^  of  Alexandria,  would  in  the  church,  publicly  advance  some new  and  impious  tenet  relative  to  the  Son  of  God,  and  notwithstanding repeated  admonition  by  Alexander  the  bishop,  persisted,  he and  his  associates  in  this  heresy,  were  at  length  expelled.  Highly resenting  this,  Arius  sent  letters  with  a  sketch  of  his  own  faith  to all  the  bishops  of  the  neighbouring  cities,  in  which  he  complained, that  since  he  asserted  the  same  doctrines  tliat  the  rest  of  the  eastern prelates  maintained,  he  had  been  unjustly  deposed  by  Alexander.
Many  bishops  imposed  on  by  these  artifices,  and  powerfully  excited by  Eusebius  of  Nicomedia,  who  openly  favoured  the  Arian  party, wrote  letters  in  defence  of  Arius  to  Alexander  bishop  of  Alexandria, entreating  him  to  restore  Arius  to  his  former  rank  in  the  church.
Our  Eusebius  was  one  of  their  number,  whose  letter  written  to  Alexander is  extant  in  the  acts  of  the  seventh  Oecumenical  Synod,  whicli we  have   inserted  amongst  the   testimoniest  of  the  ancients.      The
**  As  we  are  informed  in  the  tenth  book  of  his  Ecclesiastic  Hist.  VaL  See  chap.
4,  where  Eusebius  has  inserted  this  oration.

•j-  Of  these,  Valesius,  after  his  account  of  Eusebius's  life  and  writings,  presents  a collection  made  by  himself,  both  for  and  against  Eusebius.  q.  v.

b

XII  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.

example  of  Eusebius  of  Csesarea,  was  soon  followed  by  Theodotius and  Paiuinus,  the  one  bishop  of  Laodicea,  the  other  of  Tyre,  who interceded  with  Alexander  for  Arius's  restoration.  Of  which  letter, since  Arius  boasted  on  every  occasion,  and  by  the  authority  of  such eminent  men,  drew  many  into  the  participation  of  his  heresy,  Alexander was  compelled  to  writ>e  to  the  other  eastern  bishops,  that  the justice  of  the  expulsion  of  Arius  and  his  associates  might  be  understood. Two  letters  of  Alexander's  are  yet  extant ;  the  one  to  Alexander bishop  of  Constantinople,  in  which  the  former  complains  of three  Syrian  bishops,  who,  agreeing  with  Arius,  had  more  than  ever inflamed  that  contest,  which  they  ought  rather  to  have  suppressed.
These  three,  as  may  be  learned  from  Arius's  letter  to  Eusebius  bishop of  Nicomedia,  are  Eusebius,  Theodotius,  and  Paulinus.  The  other letter  of  Alexander's,  written  to  all  the  bishops  throughout  the  world, Socrates  records  in  his  first  book.*  To  these  letters  of  Alexander's, almost  all  the  eastern  bishops  subscribed,  amongst  whom  the  most eminent  were  Philogonius  bishop  of  Antioch,  Eustathius  of  Beraea, and  Macarius  of  Jerusalem.

The  bishops  who  favoured  the  Arian  party,  especially  Eusebius  of Nicomedia,  imagining  themselves  to  be  severely  treated  in  Alexander's letters,  devoted  themselves  with  much  greater  acrimony  to  the defence  of  Arius.  For  our  Eusebius  of  Ca^sarea,  together  with  Patrophilus,  Paulinus,  and  other  Syrian  bishops,  merely  voted  that liberty  to  Arius  might  be  granted  of  holding,  as  a  presbyter,  assemblies in  the  church,  subject  notwithstanding  to  Alexander  the  bishop, and  of  imploring  for  reconciliation  and  church  fellowship.  The bishops  disagreeing  thus  amongst  themselves,  some  favouring  the party  of  Alexander,  and  others  that  of  Arius,  the  contest  became  singularly aggravated  ;  to  remedy  this,  Constantine,  from  all  parts  of  the Roman  world,  summoned  to  Nicaea,  a  city  of  Bythinia,  a  general synod  of  bishops,  such  as  no  age  before  had  seen.  In  this  greatest  and most  celebrated  council,  our  Eusebius  was  not  one  of  either  party.
For  he  both  had  the  first  seat  on  the  right  hand,  and  in  the  name  of the  whole  synod  addressed  the  emperor  Constantine,  who  sat  on  a golden  chair,  between  the  two  rows  of  the  opposite  parties.  This  is affirmed  by  Eusebius  himself  in  his  Lifef  of  Constantine,  and  by
*  Chap.  6.

j"  In  his  preface  to  the  first  book  concerning  the  life  of  Constantine,  and  in  hia third  book  of  the  same  work,  chap.  ii.

LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  xiii
Sozomen*  in  his  Ecclesiastic  History.  Afterwards,  when  there  was  a considerable  contest  amongst  the  bishops,  relative  to  a  creed  or  form of  faith,  our  Eusebius  proposed  a  formula,  at  once  simple  and  ortho dox,  which  received  the  general  commendation  both  of  the  bishops and  of  the  emperor  himself.  Something,  notwithstanding,  seeming to  be  wanting  in  the  creed,  to  confute  the  impiety  of  the  new  opinion, the  fathers  of  the  Nicene  Council,  determined  that  these  words, "  Very  God  of  very  God,  begotten  not  made,  being  of  one  substance WITH  the  Father,"  should  be  added.  They  also  annexed anathemas  against  those  who  should  assert  that  the  Son  of  God  was made  of  things  not  existing,  and  that  there  w^as  a  time  when  he  existed not.  At  first,  indeed,  our  Eusebius  refused  to  admit  the  term "  consul) sfantiaW''^  but  when  the  import  of  that  word  was  explained to  him  by  the  other  bishops,  he  consented,  and  as  he  himself  relates in  his  letterj  to  his  diocess  at  Ca^sarea,  subscribed  to  the  creed.  Some affirm  that  it  was  the  necessity  of  circumstances,  or  the  fear  of  the emperor,  and  not  the  conviction  of  his  own  mind,  that  compelled Eusebius  to  subscribe  to  the  Nicene  Council.  Of  some,  present  at the  synod,  this  might  be  believed,  but  this  we  cannot  think  of  Eusebius bishop  of  Caesarea.  After  the  Nicene  Council,  too,  Eusebius  always condemned§  those  M'ho  asserted  that  the  Son  of  God  was  made of  thinofs  not  existino^.  Athanasius  likewise  affirms  the  same  concerning  him,  Mho  though  he  frequently  mentions  that  Eusebius  subscribed to  the  Nicene  Council,  nowhere  intimates  that  he  did  that  in dissimulation.  Had  Eusebius  subscribed  to  that  Council,  not  according to  his  own  mind,  but  fraudulently  and  in  pretence,  why  did  he afterwards  send  the  letter  we  have  mentioned  to  his  diocess  at  Cacsarca, and  therein  ingenuously  profess  that  he  had  embraced  that  faith  which had  been  published  in  the  Nicene  Council  ?

After  that  Council,  the  Arians  through  fear  of  the  emperor,  were, for  a  short  time  quiet.  But  by  artfully  ingratiating  themselves  into the  favour  of  the  prince,  they  resumed  boldness,  and  began  by  every
*  In  the  first  book  of  that  work,  chap.  19.

-}-  ♦OAtoouo-.os,  con  substantial,  of  the  same  substance,  or  of  the  same  essence,  cu-cssential.

%  See  this  letter  in  Socrates,  book  i.  chap.  8.

§  This  is  evident  from  his  books  against  Marcellus,  particularly  from  the  9th and  10th  chapters  of  his  first  book,  De  Ecclesiastica  TJicologid.
2

XIV  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.

method  and  device,  to  persecute  the  CathoKc  prelates.*  Their  first attack  fell  on  Eustathius,  bishop  of  the  city  of  Antioch,  eminent  both for  the  glory  of  his  confession,  and  for  the  rank  he  sustained  amongst the  advocates  of  the  Nicene  faith.  Eustathius  was,  therefore,  accused before  the  emperor  of  maintaining  the  Sabellian  impiety,  and  of  slandering Helena  Augusta,  the  emperor's  mother.  A  numerous  assembly of  bishops  was  convened  in  the  city  of  Antioch,  in  which  Eusebius of  Nicomedia,  the  chief  and  ring-leader  of  the  whole  faction,  presided.
In  addition  to  the  accusation  advanced  at  this  assembly  by  Cyrus bishop  of  the  Berseans,  against  Eustathius,  of  maintaining  the  impious doctrine  of  Sabellius,  anothert  is  devised  against  him  of  incontinency, and  he  is  therefore  expelled  from  his  diocese.  On  this  account,  a very  impetuous  tumult  arose  at  Antioch.  The  people  divided  into two  factions,  the  one  requesting  that  the  episcopacy  of  the  Antiochian church  might  be  conferred  on  Eusebius  of  Ca^sarea,  the  other,  that Eustathius  tlieir  bishop  might  be  restored,  Avould  have  resorted  to measures  of  violence,  had  not  the  fear  and  authority  of  the  emperor and  judges  prevented  it.  The  sedition  being  at  length  terminated,  and Eustathius  banished,  our  Eusebius,  though  entreated  both  by  the people,  and  the  bishops  that  were  present,  to  undertake  the  administration of  the  church  at  Antiocli,  nevertheless  refused.  And,  when the  bishops  by  letters  written  to  Constantino,  had  acquainted  him with  their  own  vote,  and  with  the  suffrages  of  the  people,  Eusebius wrote  his  letters  also  to  that  prince,  and  Eusebius's  resolution  is highly  commended  in  the  emperor's  answer.

Eustathius,  having  been  in  tliis  manner  deposed,  which  occurred,  as remarked  in  our  annotations^  in  the  year  330,  the  Arians  turned  the  violence of  their  fury  on  Athanasius ;  and  in  the  prince's  presence  they complained  first  of  his  ordination  ;  secondly,  that  he  had  exacted§  the impost  of  a  linen  garment  from  the  provincials  ;  thirdly,  that  he  had
*  "  Catholicos  Antistites'''  are  the  words  of  Valesius  ;  but,  doubtless,  to  be  understood here,  as  signifying,  not  the  prelates  of  the  Arian,  or  of  any  other  seceding party,  but  of  the  orthodox  church  universallij,  according  to  the  meaning  of  the  term cathoUcuSy  nniversal.

•j-  The  story  is  given  in  Theodoret's  Eccles.  Hist.  Book  i.  chap.  21.  edit.  Fales.

t  See  Life  of  Constantine,  book  3,  chap.  59,  note  e.

§  This  calumny,  the  Meletians,  instigated  by  Eusebius  of  Nicomedia,  invented ;
as  Athanasius  tells  us  in  his  Apology  to  Constantine.  See  his  works,  torn.  1, p.  778.     Edit.  Paris,  1627.

LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  XV

broken  a  sacred  cup  ;  and  lastly,  that  he  had  murdered  one  Arsenius,  a bishop.  Constantine,  wearied  with  these  vexatious  litigations,  appointed a  council  in  the  city  of  Tyre,  and  directed  Athanasius  the  bishop  to  proceed there,  to  make  his  defence.     In  that  synod,  Eusebius  bishop  of Caesarea,  whom  Constantine  had  desired  should  be  present,  sat  amongst others,  as  judge.    Potamo  bishop  of  Heracleopolis,  who  had  come  with Athanasius  the  bishop  and  some  Egyptian  prelates,  seeing  him  sitting in  the  council,  is  said  to  have  addressed  him  in  these  words  :     "  Is it  fit,  Eusebius,  that  you  should  sit,  and  that  the  innocent  Athanasius should  stand  to  be  judged  by  you  ?     Who  can  endure  this  ?     Were you  not  in  custody  with  me,  during  the  time  of  the  persecution  ?
And  I  truly,  in  defence  of  the  truth,  lost  an  eye  ;  but  you  are  injured in  no  part  of  your  body,  neither  did  you  undergo  martyrdom,  but are  alive  and  whole.     In  what  manner  did  you  escape  out  of  prison, unless  you  promised  to  our  persecutors  that  you  would  commit  the detestable*  thing?     And  perhaps  you  have  done  it."     This  is  related by  Epiphanius,  in  the  heresy  of  the  Meletians.     Hence  it  appears, that  they  are  mistaken  who  affirm,  that  Eusebius  had  sacrificed  to idols,  and  that  he  had  been  convicted  of  the  fact  in  the  Tyrian  synod.
For  Potamo  did    not   attest  that  Eusebius   had  sacrificed   to    idols, but  only  that  he  was  dismissed  out  of  prison  safe  and  whole ;  a  circumstance that  favoured  the  malevolent  surmise  of  Potamo.     It  was, however,  evidently  possible  that  Eusebius  might  have  been  dismissed from  confinement  in  a  manner  very  difi'erent  from  that  of  Potamo's insinuation.     From  the  words  of  Epiphanius,  it  seems  to  be  infeiTed that  Eusebius  bishop  of  Caesarea  presided  at  this  synod;  for  he  adds, that  Eusebius  being  previously  affected   in   hearing  the   accusation against  him  by  Potamo,  dismissed  the  council.     Yet  by  other  writers we  are  informed,  that  not  Eusebius  bishop  of  Ctcsarea,  but  Eusebius of  Nicomedia,  presided  at  the  Tyrian  synod.t
After  that  council,  all  the  bishops  who  had  assembled  at  Tyre,  re paired,  by  the  emperor's  orders,  to  Jerusalem,  to  celebrate  the  conse
*  That  is,  to  sacrifice  to  idols.

■j-  Is  it  not  a  possible  case  that  both  presided  1  viz.,  First,  Eusebius  of  Caesarea, until  the  insult  he  sustained  in  the  disparagement  of  his  character  by  Potamo's insinuation.  Feeling  then,  that  his  character  stood  arraigned  by  that  insinuation, that  he  judged  it  expedient  either  to  dismiss  the  council,  or  at  least  to  leave  it  to the  presidential  jurisdiction  of  one  less  objectionable  to  Potamo,  viz.,  to  Eusebius of  Nicomedia.

XVI  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUa
cration  of  the  great  church,  which  Constantine  in  honour  of  Christ had  erected  in  that  place.  There  our  Eusebius  graced  the  solemnity, by  the  several  sermons  he  delivered.  And  when  the  em'f)eror,  by very  strict  letters,  had  summoned  the  bishops  to  his  own  court,  that in  his  presence  they  might  give  an  account  of  their  fraudulent  and litigious  conduct  towards  Athanasius,  our  Eusebius,  with  five  others, went  to  Constantinople,  and  furnished  that  prince  with  a  developement of  the  whole  transaction.  Here  also,  in  the  palace,  he  delivered  his tricennalian  oration,  which  the  emperor  heard  with  the  utmost  joy,  not so  much  on  account  of  any  praises  to  himself,  as  on  account  of  the praises  of  God,  celebrated  by  Eusebius  throughout  the  whole  of  that oration.  This  oration  was  the  second  delivered  by  Eusebius  in  that palace.*  For  he  had  before  made  an  oration  there,  concerning  the sepulchre  of  our  Lord,  Vv  hich  the  emperor  heard  standing ;  nor  could he,  though  repeatedly  entreated  by  Eusebius,  be  persuaded  to  sit  in the  chair  placed  for  him,t  alleging  that  it  was  fit  that  discourses  concerning God  should  be  heard  standing.

How  dear  and  acceptable  our  Eusebius  was  to  Constantine,  may be  known  botli  from  the  facts  we  have  narrated,  as  well  as  from  many other  circumstances.  For  he  both  received  many  letters  from  him, as  may  be  seen  in  the  books  already  mentioned,  and  was  not  unfrequently  sent  for  to  the  palace,  where  he  was  entertained  at  table,  and honoured  with  familiar  conversation.  Constantine,  moreover,  related to  our  Eusebius,  the  vision  of  the  cross  seen  by  him  when  on  his expedition  against  Maxentius ;  and  showed  to  him,  as  Eusebius  informs! us,  the  labarum§  that  he  had  ordered  to  be  made  to  represent the  likeness  of  that  cross.  Constantine  also,  committed  to  Eusebius, since  he  knew  him  to  be  most  skilful  in  Biblical  knov/ledge,  the care  and  superintendency  of  transcribing  copies]]  of  the  Scriptures, which  he  wanted  for  the  accommodation  of  the  churches  he  had  built at  Constantinople.  Lastly,  the  book  concerning  the  Feast  of  Easter, dedicated  to  him  by  our  Eusebius,  was  a  present  to  Constantine,  so acceptable,  that  he  ordered  its  immediate  translation  into  Latin ;  and by  letter  entreated  Eusebius,  that  he  would  communicate,  soon  as
*  According  to  his  own  testimony,  in  his  fourth  Book,  concerning  the  Life  a{
Constantine,  chap.  46.
■\  As  Eusebius  relates  in  the  33d  chapter  of  the  Life  of  Constantine.
^  Life  of  Constantine,  Ub.  L  c.  28  &  30.  §  An  imperial  standard.

11  Life  of  Constantine,  Ub.  4.  c.  34  &  35.

LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  xvii
possible,  works  of  this  nature,  with  which  he  was  engaged,  to  those concerned  in  the  study  of  sacred  literature.

About  the  same  time,  Eusebius  dedicated  a  small  book  to  tlie  emperor Constantine,  in  which  was  comprised  his  description  of  the Jerusalem  church,  and  of  the  gifts  that  had  been  consecrated  there.
— AVhich  book,  together  with  his  tricennalian  oration,  that  he  had placed  at  the  close  of  his  Life  of  Constantine,  is  not  now  extant.  At the  same  time,  Eusebius  wrote  five  books  against  IMarcellus ;  of  which the  three  last,  De  Ecclesiastica  Theologia,  he  dedicated  to  Flaccillus  bishop  of  Antioch.  Flaccillus  entered  on  that  bishopric,  a  little before  the  synod  of  Tyre,  whidh  was  convened  in  the  consulate  of Constantius  and  Albinus,  A.  D.  335.  It  is  certain  that  Eusebius,  in his  First  Book*  writes  in  express  words,  that  Marcellus  had  been deservedly  condemned  by  the  church.  Now  Marcellus  was  first  condemned in  the  synod  held  at  Constantinople,  by  those  very  bishops that  had  consecrated  Constantine's  church  at  Jerusalem,  in  the  year of  Christ  335,  or,  according  to  Baronius,  336.  Socrates,!  indeed,  acknowledges only  three  books  written  by  Eusebius  against  Marcellus, namely,  those  entitled,  "De  Ecclesiastica  Theologia;"  but  the  whole work  by  Eusebius,  against  Marcellus,  comprised  Five  Books.  The last  books  written  by  Eusebius,  seem  to  be  the  four  on  the  life  of  Constantine ;  for  they  were  written  after  the  death  of  that  emperor,  whom Eusebius  did  not  long  survive,  since  he  died  about  the  beginning  of the  reign  of  Constantius  Augustus,  a  little  before  the  death  of  Constantine Junior,  which  happened,  according  to  tlie  testimony  of  Socrates' Second  ±  Book,  when  Acindynus  and  Proculus  were  consuls, A. D.  340.

We  cannot  admit,  what  Scaliger§  has  afiirmed,  that  Eusebius's books  against  Porphyry,  were  written  under  Constantius,  the  son  of Constantine  the  Great,  especially  since  this  is  confirmed  by  the  testimony of  no  ancient  writer.  Besides,  in  what  is  immediately  after asserted  by  Scaliger,  that  Eusebius  wrote  his  threelj  last  books  of  the Evangelic  Demonstration,  against  Porphyry,  there  is  an  evident  error.
St.  Jerome  says,  indeed,  that  Eusebius  in  three  volumes,  (that  is,  in
*  De  Ecclesiastica  Theologia,  chap.  14.

■j-  Eccles.  Hist,  book  2.  chap.  20 :  where  see  note  k.

:t  Chap.  4  &  5.

§  In  his  Animadversions  on  Eusebius,  page  250,  last  edit.

J  Namely,  the  Eighteenth,  Nineteenth,  and  Twentieth.

xvm  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.

the  Eighteenth,  Nineteenth,  and  Twentieth,)  answered  Porphyry,  who in  the  Twelfth  and  Thirteenth  of  those  books  which  he  published against  the  Christians,  had  attempted  to  confute  the  book  of  the prophet  Daniel.  St.  Jerome,*  however,  does  not  mean,  as  Scaliger thought,  Eusebius's  Books  on  Evangelic  Demonstration,  but  the  books he  wrote  against  Porphyry,  entitled,  according  to  Photius's  Bibliotheca,  =^-=e'  'i^^^-zoj  y.-^,  '-^^^xoyi-^i^  Refutation  and  Defence.  We  are  also persuaded  that  Eusebius  wTote  these  books  after  his  Ecclesiastic History ;  because  Eusebius,  though  on  other  occasions  he  usually refers  to  his  own  w'orks,  does  not  in  the  Sixth  Bookt  of  his  Eccle siastic  History,  where  he  quotes  a  notorious  passage  from  Porphyry,! ii^ake  any  mention  of  the  books  he  w^rote  against  him.

We  avail  ourselves  of  the  present  opportunity  to  make  some  re marks  relative  to  Eusebius's  Ecclesiastic  History,  the  chief  subject of  our  present  labour  and  exertions.  Much,  indeed,  had  been  written by  our  Eusebius,  both  against  Jews  and  Heathens,  to  the  edification of  the  orthodox  and  general  church,  and  in  confirmation  of  the  verity of  the  Christian  faith,  nevertheless,  amongst  all  his  books,  his  Ecclesiastic History  deservedly  stands  pre-eminent.  For  before  Eusebius, many  had  written  in  defence  of  Christianity,  and  had,  by  the  most satisfactory  arguments,  refuted  the  Jews  on  the  one  hand  and  the  Heathens on  the  other,  but  not  one,  before  Eusebius,  had  delivered  to  posterity a  history  of  ecclesiastic  affairs.  On  which  account,  therefore, because  Eusebius,  not  only  was  the  first  to  show  this  example,  but has  transmitted  to  us,  what  he  undertook,  in  a  state  so  complete  and perfect,  he  is  entided  to  the  greater  commendation.  Though  many, it  is  true,  induced  by  his  example,  have,  since  his  time,  furnished accounts  of  ecclesiastic  affairs,  yet  they  have  not  only  uniformly commenced  their  histories  from  the  times  of  Eusebius,  but  have  left him  to  be  the  undisputed  voucher  of  the  period  of  which  he  yet  remains the  exclusive  historian,  and  consequently  he  only  is  entitled  to the  epithet  of  the  father  of  ecclesiastic  history.

By  what  preliminary  circumstances  Eusebius  was  led  to  this  his chef-d'oeuvre,  it  is  not  difhcult  to  conjecture.  Having  in  his  Chronological Canons  accurately  stated  the  time  of  the  advent  and  passion of  Jesus  Christ,  the  names  of  the  several  bishops  that  had  presided  in the  four  principal   churches,  and  of  the  eminent  characters  therein,
*  In  his  preface  to  his  Commentary  on  Daniel.

f  Chap.  19.  I  From  Porphyry's  third  book  against  the  Christians.

LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  xix
and  having  also  detailed  an  account  of  the  successive  heresies  and persecutions,  he  was,  as  it  were,  led  by  insensible  degrees  to  write  a history  specially  on  ecclesiastic  affairs,  to  furnish  a  full  developement of  what  had  been  but  briefly  sketched  in  his  Chronological  Canons.
This,  indeed,  is  expressly  confirmed  by  Eusebius  in  his  preface*  to that  work ;  where  he  also  implores  the  forbearance  of  the  candid reader,  on  account  of  his  work  being  less  circumstantial,  consequent on  his  travelling  in  a  path  before  untrod,  and  ]iis  being  precluded  from the  intimations  on  that  subject  of  any  previous  writer.  Though  this, it  is  true,  in  the  view  of  some,  may  appear  not  so  much  an  apology, as  an  indirect  device  of  acquiring  praise.

Though  it  is  evident  from  Eusebius's  own  testimony,  that  he  wrote his  Ecclesiastic  History,  after  his  Chronological  Canons,  it  is  remarkable that  the  twentieth  yearf  of  Constantine  is  a  limit  common  to both  those  works.  Nor  is  it  less  singular,  that,  though  the  Nicene Council  was  held  in  that  year,±  yet  no  mention  is  made  of  it  in  either work.  But  in  his  Chronicle,  at  the  fifteenth  year  of  Constantine,  we read  that  "  Alexander  is  ordained  the  nineteenth  bishop  of  the  Alexandrian church,  by  whom  Arius  the  presbyter  being  expelled,  joins many  to  his  ov/n  impiety.  A  synod,  therefore,  of  three  hundred  and eighteen  bishops,  is  convened  at  Nice,  a  city  of  Bithynia,  who  by their  agreement  on  tlie  term  ':.«,-..,■.:,-,  (consubstantial,  or  co-essential)
suppressed  all  the  devices  of  the  heretics."  It  is  sufficiently  evident that  these  words  were  not  written  by  Eusebius,  but  by  St.  Jerome, who  in  Eusebius's  Chronicle  inserted  many  passages  of  his  own.  For, not  to  mention  that  this  reference  to  the  Nicene  Council  is  inserted in  a  place  with  which  it  has  no  proper  connexion,  who  could  believe that  Eusebius  would  thus  write  concerning  Arius,  or  should  have  inserted the  term  'o.uoouj.es  in  his  own  Chronicle ;  ^vhich  word,  as  we shall  hereafter  state,  was  not  satisfactory  to  him.  Was  it  likely  that Eusebius  should,  in  the  Chronicle,  state  thac  three  hundred  and  eighteen bishops  were  present  at  the  Nicene  synod,  and  in  his  Third§
Book  on  the  Life  of  Constantine,  say  expressly  that  something  more than  two  hundred  and  fifty  sat  in  that  council  ?  We  doubt  not,  however, that  the  Ecclesiastical  History  was  not  completely  finished  by Eusebius  till  some  years  after  the  council  at  Nice.     As  Dionysius  of
*  Book  1.  chap.  1.  ■[  i.  e.  A.  D.  325.

i  On  Constantiiie's  Vicennalia,  that  is,  on  the  tweniieth  year  of  his  empire.
§  Chap.  8.

C

XX  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.

Halicamassus,  in  his  Comparison  of  Herodotus  and  Thucydides,  had long  since  intimated  to  the  writers  of  histories,  the  propriety  of  terminating their  narratives  at  the  consummation  of  some  illustrious event,  Eusebius  had,  therefore,  it  is  likely,  resolved  to  close  his  history with  that  peace,  which  after  Diocletian's  persecution  shone,  as he  observes,  like  a  light  from  heaven  upon  the  church ;  on  this  account, probably,  he  avoided  mentioning  the  Nicene  synod,  lest  he should  be  compelled  to  commence  a  narrative  of  renewed  litigation, and  that  too  of  bishops  one  amongst  another.  Now  what  event more  illustrious  could  have  been  desired  by  Eusebius,  than  that  repose, which  after  a  most  sanguinary  persecution,  had  been  restored to  the  Christians  by  Constantino ;  when  the  persecutors,  and  Licinius being  every  where  extinct,  not  a  fear  of  past  afflictions  could  exist.
This  epoch,  therefore,  rather  than  that  of  the  Nicene  council,  afforded the  most  eligible  limit  to  his  Ecclesiastical  History.  For  in  that synod,  the  contentions  seemed  not  so  much  appeased  as  renewed ;
and  that  not  through  any  fault  of  the  synod  itself,  but  by  the  pertinacity of  those  who  refused  to  acquiesce  in  the  very  salutary  decrees of  that  venerable  assembly.

Having  said  thus  much  relative  to  the  life  and  writings  of  Euse bins,  it  remains  to  make  some  remarks  in  reference  to  the  soundness of  his  religious  faith  and  sentiments.  Let  not  the  reader,  however, here  expect  from  us  a  defence,  nor  even  any  opinion  of  our  own,  but rather  the  judgment  of  the  church  and  of  the  ancient  fathers  concerning him.  Wherefore,  certain  points  shall  be  here  premised,  as  preliminary propositions,  relying  on  which,  M-e  may  arrive  at  the  greater certainty  relative  to  the  faith  of  Eusebius.  As  the  opinions  of  the ancients  concerning  Eusebius,  are  various,  since  some  have  termed .him  a  Catholic,  others  a  heretic,  others  a  SiyKx^rrov*  a  person  of  a double  tongue,  or  wavering  faith,  it  is  incumbent  on  us  to  inquire  to which  opinion  we  should  chiefly  assent.  Of  the  law  it  is  an  invariable rule,  to  adopt,  in  doubtful  cases,  the  more  lenient  opinion  as the  safer  alternative.  Besides,  since  all  the  westerns,  St.  Jerome  excepted, have  entertained  honourable  sentiments  relative  to  Eusebius, and  since  the  Galilean  church  has  enrolled!  him  in  the  catalogue  of saints,  it  is  questionless  preferable  to  assent  to  the  judgment  of  our
*  See  Socrates,  lib.  1.  c.  23.

•j-  As  may  be  learned  from  Victorius  Aquitanus,  the  Martyrology  of  Usuardus, und  from  others.

LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  xxi
fathers,  than  to  that  of  the  eastern  schismatics.  In  short,  whose  authority ought  to  be  more  decisive  in  this  matter  than  that  of  the bishops  of  Rome  ?  But  Galesius,  in  his  work  on  the  Two  Natures, has  recounted  our  Eusebius  amongst  the  catholic  writers,  and  has quoted  two  authorities  out  of  his  books.  Pope  Pelagius,*  too,  terms him  the  most  honourable  amongst  historians,  and  pronounces  him  to be  free  from  every  taint  of  heresy,  notwithstanding  he  had  highly eulogized  heretical  Origen.  Some,  however,  may  say,  that  since  the easterns  were  better  acquainted  with  Eusebius,  a  man  of  their  own language,  a  preference  should  be  given,  in  this  case,  to  their  judgment. Even  amongst  these,  Eusebius  does  not  want  those,  Socrates! and  Gelasius  CyzicenusJ  for  example,  who  entertained  a favourable  opinion  concerning  him.  But  if  the  judgment  of  the Seventh  Oecumenical  Synod  be  opposed  to  any  inclination  in  his  favour, our  answer  is  ready.  The  faith  of  Eusebius  was  not  the  subject of  that  synod's  debate,  but  the  worship  of  images.  In  order  to the  subversion  of  which,  when  the  opponents  that  had  lately  assembled in  the  imperial  city,  had  produced  evidence  out  of  Eusebius's letter  to  Constantia,  and  laid  the  greatest  stress  thereon,  the  fathers of  the  Seventh  Synod,  to  invalidate  the  authority  of  that  evidence, exclaimed  that  Eusebius  was  an  Arian.  But  this  was  done  merely casually,  from  the  impulse  of  the  occasion,  and  hatred  of  the  letter, not  advisedly,  or  from  a  previous  investigation  of  the  charge.  They produce  some  passages,  it  is  true,  from  Eusebius,  to  insinuate  that  he was  favourable  to  the  Arian  hypothesis  ;  but  they  avoid  all  discrimination between  what  Eusebius  wrote  prior  to  the  Nicene  Council,  and what  he  wrote  afterwards,  which,  questionless,  ought  to  have  been done  as  essential  to  a  just  decision  relative  to  Eusebius's  faith.  In short,  nothing  written  by  Eusebius  before  that  synod  is  fairly  chargeable in  this  respect,  against  him.  Eusebius's  letter  to  Alexander,  containing his  intercession  with  that  prelate  for  Arius,  was  of  course, written  before  that  council.  The  affirmation,  therefore,  of  the  fathers of  the  Seventh  Synod,  notwithstanding  it  has  the  semblance  of  the highest  authority,  seems  rather  to  have  the  character  of  temerity  and premature  judgment,  than  to  be  the  verdict  of  a  synod  derived  from a  judicial  investigation  of  the  cause.     The  Greeks  may  assume  the
*  In  Epist.  Tertia  ad  Eliam  Aqueleiensem  et  alios  Episcopos  IstrL
|-  Sec  his  Defence  of  him,  in  book  2.  chap.  21.
+  De  Synod.  Nicaena,  book  2.  chap,  1.

xxii  LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.

liberty  to  think  as  they  please  concerning  Eusebius,  and  to  term  him an  Arian,  or  a  favourer  of  that  heresy  ;  but  who  can  patiently  endure St.  Jerome,  who,  not  content  with  calling  him  heretic  and  Arian,  frequently terms  him  the  ring-leader  of  that  faction  ?  Can  he  be  justly termed  a  ring-leader  of  the  Arians,  who,  after  the  Nicene  Council, always  condemned  their  opinions  ?  Let  his  books  De  Ecclesiastica, Theologia  be  perused,  Avhich  he  wrote  against  Marcellus  long  after the  Nicene  Council ;  and  we  shall  find  what  we  have  affirmed,  that he  condemned  those  who  asserted  that  the  Son  of  God  was  made  of thinofs  not  existinof :  and  that  there  was  a  time  when  he  existed  not.
Athanasius,  likev/ise,  in  his  letter  relative  to  the  decrees  of  the  Nicene Council,  attests  the  same  fact  concerning  Eusebius,  in  the  following words :  "  Li  this,  truly,  he  was  unfortunate :  that  he  might  clear  himself, however,  of  the  imputation,  he  ever  afterwards  opposed  the  Arians, particularly  since  their  denial  of  tlie  pre-existence  of  the  Son  of  God applied  equally  to  his  conception  or  incarnation."  With  this  testimony, too,  Eusebius  was  favoured  by  Athanasius,  notwithstanding the  personal  differences  between  them.  But  St.  Jerome,  who  had  no cause  of  enmity  against  Eusebius,  who  had  profited  so  liberally  by his  writings,  who  had  translated  his  Chronological  Canon,  and  his Book  de  Locis  Hebraicis,  into  Latin,  brands,  notwithstanding,  Eusebius with  a  calumny,  which  even  his  most  malignant  enemies  never fastened  on  him.  The  reason  of  this  we  cannot  conjecture,  except it  is,  that  St.  Jerome,  in  consequence  of  his  enmity  to  Origen,  persisted in  an  unqualified  persecution  of  all  that  maintained  his  opinions, particularly  Eusebius.

On  the  other  hand,  we  do  not  conceal  the  fact,  that  Eusebius, though  he  cannot  be  deservedly  esteemed  a  ring-leader  of  the  Arian faction,  yet  after  the  Nicene  Council,  was  perpetually  conversant  with the  principals  of  that  party,  and,  together  with  them,  opposed  the catholic  bishops,  as  Eustathius,  and  Athanasius,  the  most  strenuous advocates  for  the  adoption  of  the  term  'c/^oouo-.c}.  Though  Eusebius always  asserted  the  eternity  of  the  Son  of  God,  against  the  Arians, yet  in  his  disapproval  of  that  word,*  he  seems  censurable.  It  is  certain that  he  never  made  use  of  that  term,  either  in  his  books  against Marcellus,  or  in  his  orations  against  Sabellius.  Nay,  in  his  Second Book  against  Sabellius,  he  expressly  declares,  that  since  that  word  is not  in  the  Scriptures,  it  is  not  satisfactory  to  him.     On  this  occasion,
*  Viz.  *Oj«oouriej,
LIFE  OF  EUSEBIUS.  xxiu
he  speaks  to  the  following  effect :  "As  not  inquiring  into  truths which  admit  of  investigation,  is  indolence,  so  prying  into  others, where  the  scrutiny  is  inexpedient,  is  audacity.  Into  what  truths  ought we  then  to  search  ?  Those  which  we  find  recorded  in  the  Scriptures.
But  Avhat  we  do  not  find  recorded  there,  let  us  not  search  after.  For had  the  knowledge  of  them  been  incumbent  on  us,  the  Holy  Spirit would  doubtless  have  placed  them  there."  Shortly  after,  he  says :
"  Let  us  not  hazard  ourselves  in  such  a  risk,  but  speak  safely ;  and let  not  any  thing  that  is  written  be  blotted  out."  And  in  the  end  of his  oration,  he  thus  expresses  himself:  "Speak  what  is  written,  and the  strife  will  be  abandoned."  In  which  passages,  Eusebius,  no doubt,  alludes  to  the  word  'o^oojc-.o,-.

Finally,  we  now  advert  to  the  testimonies  of  the  ancients  concerning Eusebius.  Here  one  thing  is  to  be  observed,  namely,  however various  the  opinions  of  men  have  been,  relative  to  the  accuracy of  the  religious  sentiments  of  Eusebius,  all  however,  have  unanimously esteemed  him  as  a  person  of  the  most  profound  learning.  To this  we  have  to  mention  one  solitary  exception,  Joseph  Scaliger,  who within  the  memory  of  our  fathers,  impelled  by  the  current  of  temerity, and  relish  for  vituperation,  endeavoured  to  filch  from  Eusebius those  literary  honours,  which  even  his  adversaries  never  dared  to  impugn. Scaliger's  words,*  we  have  inserted  amongst  the  testimonies of  the  ancients,  not  as  any  proof  of  our  value  of  his  judgment  on this  point,  but  for  the  accommodation  of  those  desirous  of  knowing them,  and  with  the  design  that  his  unwarrantable  detraction  might meet  with  the  exposure  it  deserved ;  who  having  resolved  to  write  a commentary  on  the  Chronological  Canon  of  Eusebius,  does  not  hesitate to  arraign  St.  Jerome  himself,  because  he  speaks  of  Eusebius  as a  most  learned  character.  On  Scaliger's  opinion,  we  had  at  first  determined to  bestow  a  more  ample  refutation ;  but  this  we  shall  defer, until  more  leisure  on  the  one  hand,  or  a  more  urgent  claim  on  the part  of  the  reader,  on  the  other,  shall  again  call  our  attention  to  the subject.

*  See  Scaliger's  Elench.  Trihaeres.  chap.  27 ;  and  book  6  de  Emend.  Temp, chap.  1,  about  the  end :  and  his  Animadversions  on  EuseUius's  Chronicle,  page  8.

XXVI  PREFACE.

the  past,  to  their  correlative  positions,  to  compress  them  into  space that  brings  them  more  within  our  grasp,  and  by  rejecting  the superfluous,  and  digesting  the  essential,  to  enable  us  to  traverse the  vast  ground  of  human  attainment  with  pleasure  and  profit.

The  author,  however,  w^hose  history  is  here  presented  to  th-e English  reader,  in  order  to  be  duly  estimated,  must  not  be  measured by  a  standard  like  this.  To  be  appreciated,  he  must  be measured  by  his  own  times.  Neither  are  we  to  expect  of  him the  condensed  proportions,  the  judicious  selections,  and  the  comprehensive distribution  of  materials,  that  mark  the  productions of  the  scientific  historian ;  nor  was  it  the  intention  of  our  author.
If  we  may  be  allowed  to  judge  from  the  work  itself,  his  object appears  more  like  furnishing  the  materials,  which  himself  or  the future  historian  should  handle  with  a  more  masterly  hand  or  a more  enlarged  view.  The  work,  therefore,  abounds  with  extracts from  the  writers  that  flourished  in  the  early  ages  of  the church,  in  which  our  author  presents  either  a  striking  event,  expressions of  sentiments  or  doctrine,  to  illustrate  the  religious  aspect of  times  and  places,  and  by  the  express  testimony  of  another, perhaps  often  obviates  the  odium  which  would  devolve  upon  his own  narrative.  Hence  the  history  contains  rather  accounts  of particular  churches,  than  a  history  of  the  church  generally,  and is  more  like  detached  incidents  scattered  in  memoirs  of  the  individuals that  successively  rise  and  pass  away  before  us.

Our  author,  as  the  first  that  professedly  entered  the  ground,  has been  justly  called  the  father  of  ecclesiastical  history.  Priority  gives him  a  just  claim  to  the  title.  If  his  performance  be  examined  by all  the  tests,  which  would  be  applied  to  the  scientific  historians this  praise  would  indeed  be  awarded  to  a  prominent  name  of modern  date.  But  Eusebius  is  the  first,  and  the  only  historian of  the  church  bordering  on  primitive  times.  No  just  parallel therefore  can  be  drawn  between  the  Ecclesiastical  History  here translated,  and  the  scientific  labours  of  the  present  day.  The business  of  the  modern  historian,  is  to  survey,  with  comprehensive eye,  to  digest,  to  reduce  to  proper  dimensions,  and  with  a  skilful hand  to  mould,  his  materials  into  the  form  of  pleasing  yet  faithful narration ;  that  of  the  primitive  historian,  was  rather  to  trans
PREFACE.  xxvu
eribe  what  was  most  important  from  the  existing  documents  of the  day.

Our  author  has  the  praise  even  from  the  hypercritical  Scaliger, of  being  a  man  v.ho  had  made  extensive  use  of  the  historical sources  of  his  day.  Si  eruditlssbnus  vocandus,  says  he,  qui  multa legit,  sane  nemo  iUi  hanc  laudem  invidere  potest.  This  writer  does not,  indeed,  allow  him  all  the  qualifications  of  an  historian,  to  use his  own  words,  judicium  cum  midta  lectione,  but  the  selections that  he  has  left  to  posterity  are  nevertheless  invaluable.  He  was at  least  faithful  to  his  purpose,  by  culling,  as  he  himself  expresses it,  (tog  av  ex  ?.oyLXCdV  ?.ei(Mj)ndv)  the  appropriate  extracts  from  ancient writers.

In  making  this  selection,  we  have  only  to  regret  that  he  did not  give  us  more  of  the  distinguished  writers  of  those  ages,  and thus  supplied,  in  some  measure,  the  loss  of  their  woi'ks.  In  the testimony  thus  preserved,  however,  we  have  a  body  of  evidence, both  to  the  existing  events  of  the  day,  and  to  the  truth  of  those Scriptures  which,  without  the  formality  of  a  regular  system  of proof,  carries  its  conviction  to  the  mind.  Whether  this  testimon)'appeared  in  a  plain  or  polished  style,  whether  simple  or  embellished, the  great  object  of  our  author  is  the  evidence  that  it  furnishes, and  wliich  theiefore  he  gives  us,  as  one  who,  by  the  advantages of  his  situation,  whilst  Christianity  was  yet  in  the  freshness of  its  morning  sun,  could  arrest  and  seize  some  of  its  fleeting images,  ere  the}^  were  erased  from  the  memory  of  man.

And  in  order  to  let  these  images  appear,  Eusebius  with  his  testimony must  be  suffered  to  speak  for  himself  His  history,  independently of  its  practical  utility  and  its  literary  store,  is  unquestionably the  most  interesting  and  the  most  important  work  that appeared  in  the  first  ages  of  the  church.  A  work  adapted  to  all ages  and  classes,  to  furnish  materials  of  reflection  to  the  man  of letters,  to  supply  the  retired  Christian  with  examples  of  unreserved devotion  and  sacrifice  to  duty,  and  to  furnish  all,  some  original views  of  primitive  times,  at  the  hand  of  one  who  may  be  pronounced a  primitive  man.

In  undertaking  the  present  work,  the  translator  was  influenced by  a  firm  persuasion  of  its  utility,  and  the  necessity  of  a  new^  ver
xxvm  PREFACE.

sion.  A  more  general  circulation  of  primitive  works,  whether by  copious  extracts,  or  by  entii'e  translations,  appears  to  be  one of  the  best  means  at  least,  of  giving  a  primitive  tone  to  modern ChristianitA".  And  though  we  might  not  conceive  ourselves  bound to  acknowledge  every  thing  as  bibhcal,  merely  because  it  was primitive,  yet  were  it  possible  that  we  could  ascertain  the  real state  of  Christianity  in  ever\-  respect  as  it  was  then,  doubtless  ir \vould  prove  a  salutary  check  upon  many  of  our  errors.*

To  show  that  we  are  not  singular  on  this  subject,  we  here  give the  sentiments  of  a  foreign  journal,  which  will  never  be  regarded as  enthusiastic  by  those  who  are  at  all  acquainted  with  its  character. "  Independently  of  the  importance  of  studying  the  fathers with  respect  to  doctrine  and  ecclesiastical  history,  and  even with  respect  to  exegesis,  the  perusal  of  their  "WTitings  serves, among  other  objects,  to  awaken  and  excite  religious  views  and ideas  in  the  minds  of  the  young,  much  more  than  any  course of  instruction,  however  logically  exact,  and  in  accordance  with tlic  rules  of  hermeneutics.  And  we  are  con^-inced  that  the  excessive abuse  that  has  been  of  late  made  of  manuals,  journals, magazines,  dec.,  for  clergymen,  which  for  the  last  twent}-  years, and  longer,  has  been  the  order  of  the  day  in  many  places,  and  by which  the  spirit  of  young  clergymen  has  been  warped  and  perverted to  indolence  and  carelessness,  would  not  have  made  such inroads,  if,  together  with  the  Holy  Scriptures,  which  should  unquestionably form  the  basis  of  every  discourse,  the  study  of  the fathers  had  also  been  zealously  encouraged."!

It  v.as  well  observed  by  a  modern  philosopher,  that  if  every age  had  had  its  Aristotle,  philosophy  would  long  since  have reached  its  climax ;  and  we  may  observe  with  regard  to  ecclesi
*  The  importance  of  a  more  general  acqtraintance  with  the  opinions  and  doctrines preralent  in  the  chnrch,  before  the  Council  of  ZS'ice,  is  obvious.  ^«'o  attempt, however,  has  as  vet  been  made  to  bring  them  into  such  general  circulation,  that  all coaM  have  and  read  them,  laitj  as  well  as  clergy.  With  a  view  to  supply  this  defect, among  others,  the  translator  has  projected  a  publication  to  appear  periodically, embracing  cojhous  extracts  from  the  fathers  on  doctrine,  and  dissertations  in  reference to  the  Archsology  of  Christianity,  with  the  title  Repertory  of  Primitive TheoUgy.     See  the  Prospectus  of  this  publication.

-  HalL  Allsem.  Lit-  Zeitun?.  Xo.  10.  1517.

PREFACE.  XXIX

astical  history,  that  if  everv  period  in  primitive  times  had  had its  Easebias,  we  should,  besides  his  ov^ii.  be  in  possession  of  an amount  of  ecclesiastical  information  at  this  day,  that  would  subserve the  most  salutary  purposes.  \Miat  our  author,  however, has  secured  from  the  v.Tecks  of  time,  only  leaves  us  room  to  regret what  we  have  not  As  to  the  matter,  therefore,  which the  history  of  Eusebius  embraces,  no  apology  is  necessan.-  for presenting  this  to  the  public.  It  belongs  to  the  archoeology  of Christianity :  and  therefore,  to  Qiristians  at  least  must  appear  in an  interesting  light
As  to  the  manner  in  which  this  is  presented,  various  opinions will  doubtless  prevail.  The  critic  will  form  his  opinion  of  Eusebius from  the  original,  and  there  he  will  perceive  what  cannot always  be  made  to  appear  in  a  translation.  One  thing  will  strike him  on  the  first  survey,  that  the  style  of  an  ecclesiastical  writer.
three  centuries  after  the  birth  of  Christ,  is  far  difierent  from  the style  that  prevailed  three  centuries  before,  and  that  the  Greek authors,  in  the  age  of  Constantine,  are  not  the  authors  of  the  age of  Alexander.  Our  Eusebius  is  not  without  his  beauties,  but they  are  so  rarely  scattered,  that  we  can  hardly  allow  him  an eminent  rank,  as  a  writer,  although  his  subject  may  be  offered as  his  apology.  His  use  of  words  is  sometimes  without  sufficient precision,  which  subjects  him  occasionally  to  ambiguity,  and  his sentences  are  sometimes  so  involved  as  to  require  the  hand  of critical  dissection.  His  periods,  too,  are  sometimes  of  enormous length,  and  by  their  copious  fulness  incline  much  to  the  pleonastic and  hyperbolical.  We  are  not  here  to  ex]>ect  the  uniform  suavityof  an  Herodotus,  the  terse  brevity  of  a  Thucydides,  though  we may  occasionally  meet  with  features  that  would  not  be  overlooked as  elegant  even  in  these  fathers  of  histon.-.  From  the great  variety  of  authors  that  he  quotes,  our  author  indeed,  could not  aun  at  the  same  kind  of  excellence,  neither  are  his  quotations from  others  Kke  those  of  Plutarch.  Diodorus  Siculus,  and others,  for  the  mere  purpose  of  embellishment  or  illustration,  but for  positive  information ;  and,  therefore,  they  assume  all  the  simplicity of  a  plain  reference  to  authority-.  In  c  work  so  unostentatious, it  would  be  absurd  to  measure  our  author  bv  a  standard 3*

XXX  PREFACE.

he  never  adopted,  as  a  production,  which  like  those  of  the  fathers of  history,  should  contend  for  the  prize  as  a  literary  performance.
The  only  part  of  the  work  that  could  perhaps  aspire  to  this honour,  is  contained  in  the  last  book,  where  he  is  altogether  the panegyrist,  and  where  he  has  left  us,  perhaps,  what  may  be  regarded as  one  of  his  most  elaborate,  if  not  one  of  his  happiest performances  as  an  orator.

Whether  the  present  translator  has  succeeded  in  presenting  his author  to  the  pubhc  in  a  costume  that  shall  appear  worthy  of  the original,  must  be  left  to  the  judgment  of  others.  He  is  not  so  confident, as  to  presume  his  labour  is  here  immaculate,  and  a  more frequent  revision  of  the  work  may  suggest  improvements  which have  thus  far  escaped  him.  Some  allowances  are  also  due  to  a work  like  this,  which  may  not  obtain  in  those  of  a  different  description. The  translator  does  not  stand  upon  the  same  ground as  one  who  renders  a  work  of  elegance  and  taste,  from  profane antiquity.  The  latter  leaves  more  scope  for  the  display  of  genius and  taste.  The  great  object  of  the  former  is  to  give  a  faithful transcript  of  his  author's  statement,  that  the  reader  may  derive, if  possible,  the  same  impression  that  he  would  from  the  original, in  case  it  were  his  vernacular  language.  He  is  not  at  liberty to  improve  his  author,  whatever  may  be  the  occasional  suggestions of  elegance  or  taste,  for  there  is  scarcely  any  such  improvement but  what  involves  the  fidelity  of  the  version.  The  more experienced  reader  and  critic  may,  perhaps,  discover  instances where  the  translator  might  perhaps  have  been  more  easy,  without sacrificing  much  of  the  meaning ;  and  the  present  version  is not  without  passages  where  perhaps  a  little  liberty  might  have obviated  an  apparent  stiffness  in  the  style.  But  the  translator has  some  times  preferred  the  latter,  to  what  appeared  a  sacrifice of  the  sense.*

The  office  of  a  translator,  like  that  of  a  lexicographer,  is  an ungrateful  office.  Men  who  have  no  conception  of  the  requisites for  such  a  task,  who  measure  it  by  the  same  rough  standard
*  Among  some  of  the  apparent  anomalies  of  the  translation,  may  perhaps  he  numbered many  of  the  passages  from  Scripture.  It  will  be  recollected  these  are  translated from  our  author,  who  quotes  the  Alexandrian  version.

PREFACE.  XXXI

thdt  they  do  a  piece  of  manual  labour,  are  apt  to  suppose  he  has notliing  to  do  but  to  travel  on  from  word  to  word,  and  that  it amounts  at  last  to  scarcely  more  than  a  transcription  of  what  is already  written  in  his  own  mind.  In  the  estimate  which  is  thus made,  tliere  is  little  credit  given,  for  the  necessary  adaptation of  the  style  and  phraseology  to  that  of  the  original.  No  allowance for  that  degree  of  judgment,  which  the  interpreter  must  constantly exercise  in  order  to  make  his  version  tell  what  its  original says.  And  yet,  with  all  this,  tliere  is  generally  discrimination enough  to  mark  what  may  be  happily  expressed ;  but  by  a  singular perversion,  such  merit  is  sure  to  be  assigned  to  the  original work,  whilst  the  defects  are  generally  charged  to  the  account  of the  translator.  Some,  ignorant  of  the  limits  of  the  translator's office,  even  expect  him  to  give  perfection  to  his  author's  deficiencies, and  if  he  fails  in  this,  he  is  in  danger  of  having  them  heaped upon  himself
To  preclude  any  unwarrantable  expectations,  the  translator does  not  pretend  to  more  in  the  present  work,  than  to  give  a faithful  transcript  of  the  sense  of  his  author.  Occasionally,  he thinks  he  has  expressed  that  sense  with  more  perspicuity  than  his original,  and  wherever  the  ambiguity  seemed  to  justify  it,  it  has been  done,  not  with  a  view  to  improve  his  author,  but  to  prevent mistaking  his  meaning.

The  present  version  is  from  the  accurate  Greek  text  published by  \'^alesius,*  a  learned  civilian  of  the  Galilean  church.  The most  noted  Latin  versions  besides  that  of  Valesius,  are  those of  Rufinus,  Musculus,  Christophorson,  and  Grinaius.  Curterius also  published  a  translation,  but  it  is  rather  a  revision  of  Christophorson.

Stroth  among  the  Germans,!  and  Cousin  among  the  French, appear  to  be  the  latest  that  have  given  versions  in  the  modern languages.  The  first  translation  in  English  was  made  by  Hanmer,  1584,  which  passed  through  five  editions.  A  translation  by T.  Shorting  was  published  more  than  a  century  afterwards,  and
*  The  best  cJitlon  of  Valesius  is  that  published  at  Cambridge  by  Reading— the edition  used  in  the  present  work.

■\  There  is  also  an  abridged  translation  in  German,  in  Ra'sler's  Bibliothek  der Kirchcnvffitcr.

xxxu  PREFACE.

this  last,  ^vith  the  exception  of  an  abridgment  by  Parker,  is  the best  translatx«on  hitherto  extant  in  the  Enghsh  language.

The  present  translator  originally  contemplated  merely  a  revision or  improvement  of  the  last  English  version,  but  a  slight  examination will  satisfy  any  one,  that  such  labour  would  be  equivalent to  that  of  an  original  translation  itself,  whilst  it  could  at best  present  httle  better  than  a  p.:iutilatcd  aspect.  Tlie  present, therefore,  is  a  version  entirely  new.  It  has  been  finished  in the  midst  of  other  vocations,  and  the  author  expected  to  have brought  it  to  a  state  of  readiness,  for  the  press,  before  or  about the  beginning  c^  the  past  v.inter.  At  the  commencement  of the  work  he  anticipated  a  period  of  leisure,  which  would  have enabled  him  to  meet  this  expectation  fully.  But  tliis  period  of expected  leisure  was  absorbed  by  care  and  solicitude,  amid  sickness in  his  family,  whilst  his  own  health  was  but  little  calculated for  the  necessary  effort.

It  was  one  of  the  translator's  original  intentions  to  make  the work  more  useful  by  the  addition  of  many  notes.  Eusebius admits  of  a  constant  commentary,  and  there  are  some  parts  of the  work,  which  besides  mere  illustration,  require  a  separate  discussion. Valesius  has  interspersed  notes,  which  arc  more  extensive than  the  whole  work.  They  are  mostly  verbal  criticisms, and  refer  to  the  various  readings  of  the  Greek  text,  and as  such  have  but  little  interest  for  the  general  reader.  Whoever wishes  to  consult  these,  will  find  the  most  of  them  translated in  Shorting's  Eusebius.  The  few  notes  that  are  scattered through  the  following  pages,  are  by  the  present  translator.  He was  diverted  from  his  original  plan  of  commenting  on  his  author, partly  by  an  apprehension  of  swelling  the  work ;  chiefly  however, by  a  conviction  that  the  time  under  existing  circumstances  would be  better  employed  in  a  more  diligent  revision,  and  lastly,  because he  contemplates  a  prosecution  of  the  authors  historical  works, in  which  abundant  room  and  materials  will  be  furnished  for  this jrarpose.  In  the  mean  time,  the  work  is  committed  to  the  hands of  the  public,  and  in  the  quaint  but  expressive  words  of  the oldest  English  translator  of  Eusebius :  "  If  aught  be  well  done, give  the  praise  to  God,  let  th*o  pains  be  the  translator's,  and  the profit  the  reader's." — Hanmer.

55

CONTEXTS.

Pa?«t  Paje BOOK  I. — Pages  13 — i7.  fe<:ted,  when  mformeJ  bv  Pilate  reChapter  I.-SuVyect  of  the  work.  13  '^^^,^5  Sn'^'^H.^    t>,/  r^    '^-  '    ^^
>^,    ^    TT      o                   •          r  .;,  Lhap.    111. — How    the    Christian Chap  IL-^ummary  view  of  the  ^^^^^          j  throughout  the  whole pre-exi5tence    and    dmnitv    of    our  ^^,ij                            "                             --, T      1       1  ->     •        T         r^c  ■  1  -  world,     --.--_.-         .o2
Lord  and  ^anour  Jesus  Chnst,  -     -  lo      ^hap.  IV.-Caius  (Caligula)  alter Reasons  why  the  gospel  was  not  ^    ^^^^    ^^    ^.     \        ''^^•^^^

prodaimed  sooner. IS   K,^^r.„  i-;„       f  .u     t  a
nu       TTT      Tu  T  Agnppa  king  ot  the  Jews,  alter  pu
L hap.  HI. —  Ihe    name    Jesus,    as        '„;tu:„,  it^.^i  _-.i,  ,      -,         -.-,
1      .V.  4.     r  /-u  •  »  V  .u  1  mshing  Herod  with  perpetual  exile,      o3

also  that  of  Christ,  was  Kith  known  nu^^  -v-      z>i  i
1  ,  3  r  •     ^  .•  1.  Lnap.  \  . — rhiio  was  sent  on  an
and  honoured  from  ancient  times,  by        ^,„k-,~~.-  ♦,  «'  •        •     v  v  ir     /■    v
.,     •       .     ,         ,    ,  "^  -,,  embassy  to  Laius,  m  behalf  of  the
the  inspired  prophets, 21  j^^^    '.     .     .  «^i    i-^c
Chap.  IV. — The  religion  announced       ,     p.!'      ^-t      -v,r,    ~    '    '    '    ,"  , '
,     r>i.    •  ,  „    '•  •  Lhap.\l. —  \\  hat  evils  overwhehn
bv  Chnst  among  all  nations,  was  nei-        „i  .u^  t  ^       a      .i    •  "^^^  "^^

,,•  ^   ,  .  ,-,-  ^^  "1^  Jews,  alter  tlieir  presumption
ther  unexpected  nor  stransre,       -     -     Co  „^-„  ,  i^u  ■  *

r^,        ,*.      T,,  */  o  against  Christ,    ------_

Chap.  \. —  Ihe  times  of  our  ba-       .  "r^u^,.  \-tt      u       tii  .     i  ,
.„-..•  «-v      Chap.  \  U. — How  Pilate  destroyed
viour  s  manilestauon  among  men,   -     28  u;_    u-  uaic  uc^uu^^cu
/-..        t-r       4  1  1       •         f  .himsell,     --------_     57

Chap.  \  1. — Alvut  the  Ume  of  our       I     nu.^     \-jrr      t-i       i-     ■  v
Lord,  kgreeablv  to  prophecy,  those  'k,2>?1  -^  \"— ^^^"  J^^.^'r  "^^^  •.
rulers  erased  that  hid  fom;erlv  go-  /^'^fPf"'-^^,;;^  %!''?^'  ^^^  Claudius,  -  ,6.
yerned  tlie  nation  of  tlie  Jews  by  re-       i  ^^^^\  ^^—  ^^'  "^^^^-V^J^ni  of  the
,  1  IT       1  L         lapostle  James,    --.-._.     53

gular  succession ;  and  Herod  was  the       \     n\^        y-      it       1    »     •

first  foreigner  that  reioncl  oyer  them,  20  ,.„V'''^P;K-^-~"f'^.  -^^P.P^  ,P^^
Chap.^'ir.-On    the    discrepancy        ;"  !"^  the  a^iosLles,  immeoiately  exwhich  is  supposed  to  exist  in  thl  go^-        ^^^^"^^^  "}}'  ^'\"^^  Judgment    -     -     o9

pels,  respecting  the  genealo^  of  ^..^^^^rp  -''^,— ^'^"^'^^^i^f  '^^  ^'"-  ^, jj.i^j^,^      r         o  OS.  postor  i  houdas  and  his  followers,    -     61

'  Chap.  ■  VIII. -Herod's  "cr^ieltV         o  H^T'"^"'""'''"*  *^''''''  '^  "^^   -.

^^,     .    .-  ,  ,  .  .   •  C)>rhoemans,      --.-...     .a
agamst  the  mtants.  and  his  wretched  ^_       ^.^^^^^  Xlll.-Simon  Magus,  -     -     62

"chap.IX.lofthetimJsofPnat"e,  3S  p,J:^'t\,^7^^~T^P   ^^'""'^^^    ''"  rChap.    X.-The   hi^h   priests    of        ^'c'Vxv^i^\    '    "r"     ^^
.IT  1        u       r^i   •  .  Chap.  A>. — The  gospel  accordinjr
the  Jews,  under  whom  Christ  promul-        to  Mark    -     -  i^i  a,.Lv.iiniij,
gated  liis  doctrines, 39      rK„«' va-t     \r '  1  ".-    '.     "     i-"

Chap.  XI.-The    testimonies    re-       ^,  rt^^      ••":;>',  ^^^^l"
specting  John  the  Baptist  and  Christ,  ^j/^^  C»^"-^=^n"y  to  the  mhabiUints  ot
Chap.  XII.— Of  the  disciples   of       Ir-L^^  vvir  '  tI    '    '    '    '•   '

ourLoi-d, ^ol     ^^'^P--^^"--The^^ccountgiyen
Chap.  Xlll.-Xarratiye  respecting  "   l^jj^^''  respecting  the  AsceUcs  of
the  prince  of  Edessa, 43

Egr^pt, 66

Chap.  X\'III.— The  books  of  Philo
BOOK  II. Pages  4S SI.  1^^*  ^^^^  ^^me  down  to  us, 
Chap.  XIX. — The  calamity  which
Chapter  I. — Tlie  course  pursued by  the  apostles  after  the  ascension  of (Jhrist,
Chap.  II.— How  Tiberius  was  af
befcl  the  Jews  at  Jerusalem,  on  the day  of  the  passoyer,     .     -     -     .     _
Chap.  XX. — The  deeds   done   trt Jerusalem  in  tlie  reign  of  Nero, xxxiii

XXXIV

CONTENTS.

Pasrei

Paje
Chap.  XXI. — The  Egyptian  mentioned in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles, 
Chap.  XXII. — Paul  being  sent  prisoner from  Jutlea  to  Rome,  after  his defence,  was  absolved  from  all  crime,
Chap.  XXIII. — The  martyrdom  of James,  who  was  called  the  brother  of the  Lord,
Chap.  XXIV. — Annianus  was  appointed the  first  bishop  of  Alexandria, axter  Mark,
Chap.  XXV. — The  persecution under  Nero,  in  which  Paul  and  Peter were  honoured  with  martyrdom  in the  cause  of  religion  at  Rome,   -    
Chap.  XXVI. — The  Jews  were afflicted  with  innumerable  evils,  and finally  commenced  a  war  with  the Romans,
COOK  III.— Pages  82—127.

Chapter  I, — The  parts  of  the world  where  Christ  was  pi-eached  by the  apostles,
Chap.  IL— The  first  that  presided over  the  church  at  Rome,       -     -    
Chap.  III.— Of  the  Epistles  of  the apostles,
Chap.  IV. — The  first  succession  of the  apostles,
Chap.  V. — The  last  siege  of  the Jews  after  Christ, 85

Chap.  VI. — The  famine  which  op[)resscd  the  Jews,
Chap.  VII. — The  predictions  of Christ,
Chap.  VIII. — The  signs  that  preceded the  war,  ------
Chap.  IX. — Of  Josephus  and  the works  he  has  left, 
Chap.  X. — The  manner  in  which Josephus  mentions  the  Holy  Scriptures,      

Chap.  XI. — Simeon  ruled  the church  of  Jerusalem  after  James,    
Chap.  XII. — Vcgpasian  commands the  descendants  of  David  to  be  sought.

Chap.  XIII. — Anencletus,  the  se
cond bishop  of  Rome, Wo'Papias,
I     Chap.  XVII. — The  persecution  of 73  the  Christians  under  Domitian,  -     -  101
I     Chap.  XVIII.— Of  John  the  apositle,  and  the  Revelation,      ...     -    ib.
74 '     Chap.  XIX. — Domitian  commands 'the  posterity  of  David  to  be  slain,    -  102

Chap.  XX. — Of  the   relatives   of
75  our  Lord, ib.

I     Chap.  XXI.— Cerdon,   the    third bishop  of  Alexandria,       -     -     -     -  104

Chap.  XXII. — Ignatius,  the  second bishop  of  Antioch, ib.

Chap.  XXIII. — Narrative  respecting the  apostle  John,    -     -     -     -     -    ib.
ib.      Chap.  XXIV.— The  order  of  the Gospels, 107

Chap.  XXV.— The  sacred  Scriptures acknowledged  as  genuine,  and those  that  are  not,       -     -     -     -     -110

1     Chap.  XXVI. — Menander  the  impostor,     -     --     --     -     -     -     -111

I     Chap.  XX  VII.— The  heresy  of  the
lEbionites, 112

82!     Chap.    XXVIII.— Cerinthus    the
iHcresiarch, 113

i(,}     Chap.  XXIX. — Nicolaus  and  his ifollowers,      --------1 14

831     Chap.  XXX.— The  apostles   that [lived  in  marriage,   -     -     -     -     -     -115

84      Chap.  XXXI.— The  death  of  John 'and  Philip, 116

Chap.  XXXIL— The  martyrdom of  Simeon,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,       -  117

Chap.  XXXIII.— Trajan  forbids the  Christians  to  be  sought  after,     -  119

Chap.  XXXIV^ — Euarestus,  the fourth  bishop  of  the  church  at  Rome,  120

Chap.  XXXV.— Justus,  the  third bishop  of  Jerusalem,     -     -     -     -     -    ib.

Chap.  XXXVI.— The  epistles  of Ignatius,  -.-------    ^i.

Chap.  XXXVII. — The  preaching evangelists  that  were  yet  living  in that  age, 123

Chap.  XXXVIIL— The  epistle  of Clement,  and  those  that  are  falsely ascribed  to  him,       ------124

Chap.  XXXIX.— The  writings  of
87

92

94

96

97

99

ib.

BOOK  IV.— Pajres  128—167.

Chap.  XIV. — AviUus,  the  second bishop  of  Alexandria, ib:

Chap.   XV. — Clement,   the   third        |     Chapter  L — ^The  bishops  of  Rome bishop  of  Rome, f6.jandAlexandria,in  the  reign  of  Trajan,  128

Chap,  XVI.— The  Epistle  of  Cle-  Chap.  II —The  calamities  of  the
ment,       ---------  101 'Jews  about  this  time,     -----    i6

CONTENTS.

XXXV

Page

Chap.  III. — The  authors  that  wrote in  the  defence  of  the  faith,  in  the reign  of  Adrian, 129

Chap.  IV. — The  bishops  of  Alexandria and  Rome,  under  the  same emperor,   -----.---  130

Chap.  V. — The  bishops  of  Jerusalem, from  the  period  of  our  Saviour until  these  time.-?,      ------    ib.

Chap.  VI. — The  last  siege  of  the Jews  under  Adrian,      -     -     -     -     -131

Chap.  VII. — Those  who  were  considered leaders  in  false  doctrine  at this  time, 132

Chap.  VIII. — The  ecclesiastical writers  then  flourishing,    -     -     -     -  135

Chap.  IX. — The  epistle  of  Hadrian, forbidding  the  Christians  to  be punished  without  trial,      -     -     -     -  136

Chap.  X. — The  bishops  of  Rome and  Alexandria,  in  the  reign  of  Antonine, ----1371     Chap.  IV. — The  martrys  commend
Chap.    XI. — The    heresiarchs    of       llrenajus  in  their  epistles,  -     -     -    -  183
these  times,     ......--    ib.      Chap.  V. — God  sent  rain  from  hea
Chap.  Xir, — The  apology  of  Jus-         ven  to  Marcus  Aurelius,  the  emperor, tin,  addressed  to  Antoninus,  -     -     -  ]  39  at  the  prayers  of  our  brethren,    -     -  184

Chap.  XIII. — The  epistle  of  Anto-        j     Chap.  VI. — Catalogue  of  the  bi
ninc,  to  the  assembly  of  Asia,  respect-         shops  of  Rome, 18.*:

ing  our  doctrine, 140 j     Chap.  VII. — Miracles    were    per
Chap.  XIV. — Circumstances  rclat-         formed  in  those  times  i>y  the  believers,  186
ed  of  Polycarp,  an  apostolic  man,  -     141       Chap.    VIII. — The    statement    of
Chap.  XV. — The  martyrdom  of  Po-         Irenreus  respecting  the  sacred  Scriplycarp,  with  others  at  Smyrna,    -     -   143  tures, 187

Chap.  XVI. — How  Justin  the  phi-  Chap.    IX. — The    bishops    under
losopher  sufiercd  martyrdom,  assert-         Com  modus, --190

ing  the  doctrines  of  Christ,    -     -     -  150       Chap.  X. — Of  Pantaiuus  the  phiChap.  XVII. — The  martyrs  men-         losopher, ib.

tioned  by  Justin  in  his  books,     -     -  152      Chap.  XI. — Clement  of  Alexandria,191

Chaj).  XV^III. — The  books  of  Jus-             Chap.  XII. — The  bishops  of  Jerutin  that  have  come  down  to  us,  -     -  154  salem, 192

Page
Chap.  XXVI.— Of  Melito,  and  the circumstances  he  records,       -     -     -  162

Chap.  XXVII.— Of  ApoUinaris bishop  of  Hierapolis,     -     -     -     -     -   165

Chap.  XXVIII.— Of  Musanus  and his  works,       ........    ib.

Chap.  XXIX.— The  heresy  of  Tatianus, -   ib.

Chap.  XXX. — Of  Bardesanes,  the Syrian,  and  the  worlcs  of  his  extant,   167

BOOK  v.— Pages  168—216.

Chapter  I. — The  number  and  sufferings of  those  that  suffered  for  the faith  in  Gaul, 169

Chap.  II.— Those  that  had  fallen away,  kindly  restored  by  the  pious martyrs, --.  180

Chap.  III. — The  vision  that  appeared to  Attains  the  martyr,  in  a 'dream, 183

ib.

ib.

Chap.  XIX. — Those  that  presided over  the  churches  of  Rome  and  Alexandria, in  the  reign  of  Vcrus,     -     -  156

Chap.  XX. — The  bishops  of  Antioch, -.-_.

Chap.  XXI. — The  ecclesiastical writers  that  flourished  in  these  times,
Chap.  XXII. — Of  Hegesippus,  and those  whom  he  mentions,       -     -     -  157

Chap.  XXIII.— Of  Dionysius,  bishop of  Corinth,  and  his  epistles,     -  158

Chap.  XXIV.— Of  Theophilus, bishop  of  An  tioch,  ------  161

Chap.  XXV.— Of  Philip  and  Mo(lestus, .    ib.

Chap.  XIII.— Of  Rhode,  and  the dissension  occasioned  by  Marcion, which  he  records,     ------    ib.

Chap.  XIV. — The  false  prophets of  the  Phrygians,    -     -     -     -     -     -  194

Chap.  XV. — Of  the  schism  of Blastus,  at  Rome,     ------    ib.

Chap.  XVI.— The  affairs  of  Montanus.  and  his  false  prophets,      -     -  195

Chap.  XVII.— Of  Miltiades  and his  works, ---  199

Chap.  XVIII. — Apollonius  also  refutes the  Phrygian  heresy,  and  those whom  he  has  mentioned,  -  -  200

Chap.  XIX.— The  opinion  of  Se

B

XXXVlll

CONTENTS.

Pagfil

Chap.  XIV.— The  morals  of  the persecutors,  --------  339

Chap.  XV.— The  events  that  happened to  the  heathen, 342

Chap.  XVI.— The  change  of  affairs for  the  better, 343

Chap.  XVII. — The  revocation  of the  emperors, 344

BOOK  OF  MARTYRS.

Pages  349—378.

Chapter  I. — Procopius,  Alpheus, and  Zaccheus, 349

Chap.  II. — The  martyr  Romanus,  350

Chap.  III. — Timotheus,  Agapius, Thecia,  and  eight  others,  -     -     -     -  352

Chap.  IV. — Apphianus,     -     -     -  353

Chap.  V. — The  martyrs  Ulpian and  ^desius, 357

Chap.  VI. — The  martyr  Agapius,  358

Chap.  VII. — The  martyrs  Theodosia,  Domninus,  and  Auxentius,  -     -  359

Chap.  VIII. — Other  confessors  ;
also  Valentina  and  Pauhis,     -     -     -  361

Chap.  IX. — The  renewal  of  the persecution  with  greater  violence.
Antoninus,  Zebina,  Germanus,  and others, 364

Chap.  X. — Petrus  Ascetes,  Asclepius  the  Marcionite,  and  other  martyrs,      367

Chap.  XI. — Of  the  martyrdom  of Pamphilus  and  others, 368

Chap.  XII. — The  prelates  of  the church,     - 374

Chap.  XIII. — Silvanus  and  John, and  thirty  other  martyrs,  -    -     -     -  375

BOOK  IX.— Pages  379—402.

Chapter  I. — The  pretended  relaxation,      379

Chap.  II. — The  subsequent  reverse,  382
Chap.  III. — The  new  statue  erected at  Antioch,     -------    ib.

Chap.  IV. — The  decrees  against  us,  383
Chap,  v.— The  false  acts,  -     -    -  384
Chap.  VI. — Those   who   suffered martyrdom  at  this  time,     -    -    -    -    ib.

Page

Chap.  VII. — The  measures  decreed against  us,  and  engraved  on  pillars,    385

Copy  of  the  translated  epistle  of Maximinus,  in  answer  to  the  ordinances (of  the  cities)  against  us,  taken from  the  brazen  tablet  at  Tyre,  -     -  386

Chap.  VIII. — 'J'he  events  ihat  occurred after  these;  famine,  pestilence, and  war, 389

Chap.  IX. — The  death  of  the  tyrants, and  their  expressions  before their  end, 391

Copy  of  the  translated  epistle  of the  tyrant  Maximinus,       -     -     -     -  394

Chap.  X. — The  victory  of  the pious  emperors,      ------     397

Copy  of  the  tyrant's  ordinance, in  regard  to  the  Christians,  translated from  the  Latin  into  the  Greek,  -     -  398

Chap.  XL — The  total  destruction of  the  enemies  of  religion,     -     -    -  401

BOOK  X.— Pages  403—439.

Chapter  I. — The  peace  which was  granted  us  by  divine  interposition,      403

Chap.  II. — The  restoration  of  the churches, 404

Chap.  III. — The  dedications  of  the churches  in  all  places, 405

Chap.  IV. — Panegyric  ori  uie splendour  of  our  affairs,     -     -     -     -  406

Panegyric  on  the  building  of  the churches,  addressed  to  Paulinus,  bishop of  Tyre, -     -    ib.

Chap.  V. — Copies  of  the  imperial decrees,     - 426

Chap.  VI. — Of  the  property  belonging to  the  Christians,      -     -     -  431

Chap.  VII. — The  privileges  and immunities  of  the  clergy,      -     -     -  433

Chap.  VIII.  —  The  wickedness which  Licinius  afterwards  exhibited, and  his  death, 433

Chap.  IX.— The  victory  of  Constantine,  and  the  blessings  which under  him  accrued  to  the  whole Roman  world, -437

THE
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY

OF

EUSEBIUS    PAMPHILUS.

BOOK    I.

CHAPTER  L

Subject  of  the  present  icorh
As  it  is  my  purpose  to  record  the  successions  of  the  holy  apostles, together  with  the  times  sipce  our  Saviour,  down  to  the  present, to  recount  how  many  and  important  transactions  are  said  to have  occurred  in  ecclesiastical  history,  what  individuals  in  the most  noted  places  eminently  governed  and  presided  over  the church,  what  men  also  in  their  respective  generations,  whether with  or  without  their  writings,  proclaimed  the  divine  word ;  to describe  the  character,  times  and  number  of  those  who,  stimulated by  the  desire  of  innovation,  and  advancing  to  the  greatest errors,  announced  themselves  leaders  in  the  propagation  of  false opinions,  like  grievous  wolves,  unmercifully  assaulting  the  flock of  Christ ;  as  it  is  my  intention,  also,  to  describe  the  calamities that  swiftly  overwhelmed  the  whole  Jewish  nation,  in  consequence of  their  plots  against  our  Saviour;  how  often,  by  what  means and  in  what  times,  the  word  of  God  has  encountered  the  hostility of  the  nations ;  what  eminent  persons  persevered  in  contending for  it  through  those  periods  of  blood  and  torture,  beside  the  martyrdoms which  have  been  endured  in  our  own  times :  and  after  all, to  show  the  gracious  and  benign  interposition  of  our  Saviour;
these  being  proposed  as  the  subjects  of  the  present  work,  I  shall go  back  to  the  very  origin  and  the  earliest  introduction  of  the dispensation  of  our  liOrd  and  Saviour  the  Christ  of  God.

13

14  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

But  here,  acknowledging  that  it  is  beyond  my  power  to  present the  work  perfect  and  unexceptionable,  I  freely  confess  it  will crave  indulgence,  especially  since,  as  the  first  of  those  that  have entered  upon  the  subject,  we  are  attempting  a  kind  of  trackless and  unbeaten  path.  Looking  up  with  prayer  to  God  as  our guide,  we,  trust  indeed,  that  we  shall  have  the  power  of  Christ  as our  aid,  though  we  are  totally  unable  to  find  even  the  bare  vestiges of  those  who  may  have  travelled  the  way  before  us ;  unless, perhaps,  what  is  only  presented  in  the  slight  intimations,  which some  in  different  ways  have  transmitted  to  us  in  certain  partial narratives  of  the  times  in  which  they  lived ;  who,  raising  their voices  before  us,  like  torches  at  a  distance,  and  as  looking  down from  some  commanding  height,  call  out  and  exhort  us  where  we should  walk,  and  whither  direct  our  course  with  certainty  and safety.  Whatsoever,  therefore,  we  deem  likely  to  be  advantageous to  the  proposed  subject,  we  shall  endeavour  to  reduce  to a  compact  body  by  historical  narration.  For  this  purpose  we have  collected  the  materials  that  have  been  scattered  by  our predecessors,  and  culled,  as  from  some  intellectual  meadows,  the appropriate  extracts  from  ancient  authors.  In  the  execution  of this  work  we  shall  be  happy  to  rescue  from  oblivion,  the  successions, if  not  of  all,  at  least  of  the  most  noted  apostles  of  our Lord,  in  those  churches  which  even  at  this  day  are  accounted the  most  eminent ;  a  labour  which  has  appeared  to  me  necessary in  the  highest  degree,  as  I  have  not  yet  been  able  to  find  that any  of  the  ecclesiastical  writers  have  directed  their  efibrts  to  present any  thing  complete  in  this  department  of  writing.  But  as on  the  one  hand  I  deem  it  highly  necessary,  so  also  I  believe  it will  appear  no  less  useful,  to  those  who  are  zealous  admirers  of historical  research.  Of  these  matters,  indeed,  I  have  already heretofore  furnished  an  epitome  in  my  chronological  tables,  but in  the  present  work  I  have  undertaken  a  more  full  narrative.
As  I  said  above,  I  shall  begin  my  treatise  with  that  dispensation, and  that  doctrine  of  the  divinity  which  in  sublimity  and excellence  surpasses  all  human  invention,  viz.  that  of  our  Saviour Christ.  And  indeed,  whoever  would  give  a  detail  of  ecclesiastical history  to  posterity,  is  necessarily  obliged  to  go  back  to
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  15

the  very  origin  of  the  dispensation  of  Christ,  as  it  is  from  him, indeed,  that  we  derive  our  very  epithet,  a  dispensation  more  divine than  many  are  disposed  to  think.

CHAPTER  XL

Summary  vieiv  of  the  pre-existence  and  Divinity  of  our  Lord  and Saviour  Jesus  Christ.

As  the  mode  of  existence  in  Christ  is  twofold,  the  one  resembling the  head  of  the  body,  indicating  his  divinity;  the  other compared  to  the  (eet,  by  which  he,  for  the  sake  of  our  salvation, assumed  that  nature  which  is  subject  to  the  same  infirmities  with ourselves ;  hence  our  account  of  the  subsequent  matter  may  be rendered  complete  and  perfect,  by  commencing  with  the  principal and  most  important  points  in  his  history.  By  this  method,  at the  same  time,  the  antiquity  and  the  divine  dignity  of  the  Christian name  will  be  exhibited  to  those  who  suppose  it  a  recent  and foreign  production,  that  sprung  into  existence  but  yesterday,  and was  never  before  known.

No  language,  then,  is  sufficient  to  express  the  origin,  the  dignity, even  the  substance  and  nature  of  Christ.  Whence  even  the divine  Spirit  in  the  prophecies  says,  "  who  will  declare  his  generation ?"  For  as  no  one  liath  known  the  Father,  but  the  Son,  so no  one  on  the  other  hand,  can  know  the  Son  fully,  but  the  Father alone,  by  whom  he  was  begotten.  For  who  but  the  Father hath  thoroughly  understood  that  Light  which  existed  before the  world  was — that  intellectual  and  substantial  wisdom,  and  that living  Word  which  in  the  beginning  was  with  the  Father,  before all  creation  and  any  production  visible  or  invisible,  the  first  and only  offspring  of  God,  the  prince  and  leader  of  the  spiritual  and immortal  host  of  heaven,  the  angel  of  the  mighty  council,  the agent  to  execute  the  Father's  secret  will,  the  maker  of  all  things with  the  Father,  the  second  cause  of  the  universe  next  to  the Father,  the  true  and  only  Son  of  the  Father,  and  the  Lord  and
God  and  King  of  all  created  things,  who  has  received  power,  and 4#

16  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

dominion  with  divinity  itself,  and  power  and  honour  from  the Father.  All  this  is  evident  from  those  more  abstruse  passages  in reference  to  his  divinity,  "  In  the  beginning  was  the  word,  and the  word  was  wdth  God,  and  the  word  was  God."  "  All  things were  made  by  him,  and  without  him  nothing  was  made."  This, too,  we  are  taught  by  the  great  Moses,  that  most  ancient  of  all the  prophets,  when  under  the  influence  of  the  divine  Spirit,  he  describes the  creation  and  arrangement  of  all  things,  he  also  informs us  that  the  Creator  and  maker  of  the  universe  yielded  to  Christ, and  to  none  but  to  his  divine  and  first  begotten  word,  the  formation of  all  subordinate  things,  and  communed  with  him  respecting the  creation  of  man.  "  For,"  says  he,  "  God  said  let  us  make man  according  to  our  image  and  according  to  our  likeness."  This expression  is  confirmed  by  another  of  the  prophets,  who,  discoursing of  God  in  his  hymns,  declares,  "  He  spake,  and  they  were  made ;  he commanded,  and  they  were  created."  Where  he  introduces  the Father  and  maker  as  the  Ruler  of  all,  commanding  with  his  sovereign nod,  but  the  divine  word  as  next  to  him,  the  very  same  that  is proclaimed  to  us,  as  ministering  to  his  Father's  commands.  Him too,  all  that  are  said  to  have  excelled  in  righteousness  and  piety, since  the  creation  of  man ;  Moses,  that  eminent  servant  of  God, and  Abraham  before  him,  the  children  of  the  latter,  and  as  many righteous  prophets  as  subsequently  appeared,  contemplated  with the  pure  eyes  of  the  mind,  and  both  recognized  and  gave  him  the worship  that  w^as  his  due  as  the  Son  of  God.  The  Son  himself, however,  by  no  means  indifferent  to  the  w^orship  of  the  Father,  is appointed  to  teach  the  knowledge  of  the  Father  to  all.  The Lord  God,  therefore,  appeared  as  a  common  man  to  Abraham, whilst  sitting  at  the  oak  of  Mamre.  And  he,  immediately  falling down,  although  he  plainly  saw  a  man  with  his  eyes,  nevertheless worshipped  him  as  God,  and  entreated  him  as  Lord.  He confesses,  too,  that  he  is  not  ignorant  who  he  is  in  the  w^ords,  "  Lord, the  judge  of  all  the  earth,  wilt  not  thou  judge  righteously  ?"  For as  it  were  wholly  unreasonable  to  suppose  the  uncreated  and  unchangeable substance  of  the  Almighty  God  to  be  changed  into the  form  of  a  man,  or  to  deceive  the  eyes  of  beholders  with  the phantom  of  any  created  substance,  so  also  it  is  unreasonable  to
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  17

suppose  that  tlie  Scriptures  have  falseiy  invented  such  things  as these.  '•'  God  and  the  Lord  who  is  judge  of  the  whole  earth,  and executeth  judgment"  appearing  in  the  shape  of  man,  who  else can  he  be  called,  if  it  be  not  lawful  to  call  him  tlie  author  of  the universe,  than  his  only  pre-existing  word  ?  Concerning  whom also  in  the  Psalms  it  is  said,  "  He  sent  his  word  and  healed  them, •ind  deUvered  them  from  their  corruptions."  Of  Him,  Moses  obviously speaks  as  the  second  after  the  Father,  when  he  says,  "  The Lord  rained  upon  Sodom  and  Gomorrah  brimstone  and  fire  from the  Lord."  Him  also  again  appearing  to  Jacob  in  the  form  of man,  the  sacred  Scriptures  call  by  the  name  of  God,  saying  to  Jacob, "  Thy  name  shall  no  longer  be  called  Jacob,  but  Israel  shall be  thy  name,  because  thou  hast  prevailed  with  God."  Whence also  Jacob  called  the  name  of  that  place  the  vision  of  God,  saying, "  I  have  seen  God  face  to  face,  and  my  soul  has  lived."  To suppose  these  divine  appearances  the  forms  of  subordinate  angels and  servants  of  God,  is  inadmissible ;  since,  as  often  as  any  of  these appeared  to  men,  the  Scriptures  do  not  conceal  the  fact  in  the name,  expressly  raying  that  they  were  called  not  God  nor  Lord, but  angels,  as  would  be  easy  to  prove  by  a  thousand  references.
Joshua  also,  the  successor  of  Moses,  calls  him  as  the  ruler  of  celestial angels  and  archangels,  of  supernal  powers,  and  as  the power  and  wisdom  of  God,  intrusted  with  the  second  rank  of sovereignty  and  rule  over  all,  "  the  captain  of  the  Lord's  host,"
although  he  saw  him  only  in  the  form  and  shape  of  man.  For thus  it  is  written :  "And  it  came  to  pass  when  Joshua  was  by  Jericho, that  he  Hfted  up  his  eyes,  and  looked,  and  behold  there stood  a  man  over  against  him,  with  his  sword  drav;n  in  his  hand ;
and  Joshua  went  unto  him,  and  said  unto  him,  Art  thou  for  us,  or for  our  adversaries.  And  he  said,  Nay  but  as  captain  of  the Lord's  host  am  I  now  come.  And  Joshua  fell  on  his  face  to  the earth,  and  said  unto  him.  What  saith  my  Lord  unto  his  servant  ?
And  the  captain  of  the  Lord's  host,  said  unto  Joshua,  Loose  thy shoe  from  off  thy  foot :  for  the  place  whereon  thou  standest  is holy."     Josh.  V.

Here  then  you  will  perceive  from  the  words  themselves,  that this  is  no  other  than  the  one  that  also  communicated  with  Moses

C

18  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Since  the  Scriptures  in  the  same  words,  and  in  reference  to  the same  one  says^  "  When  the  Lord  saw  that  he  drew  near  to  see.
the  Lord  called  to  him  from  the  midst  of  the  hush,  saying,  Moses, Moses.  And  he  answered,  Here  am  L  But  he  said.  Draw  not nearer,  loose  thy  shoes  from  off  thy  i^aet,  for  the  place  on  which thou  standest  is  holy  ground.  And  he  said  to  him,  I  am  the  God of  thy  fathers,  the  God  of  Ahraham,  the  God  of  Isaac,  and  the (jod  of  Jacoh."

That  there  is  also  a  certain  antemundane,  living,  and  self-existing suhstance,  ministering  to  the  Father  and  God  of  all  unto  the formation  of  all  created  objects,  called  the  word  and  the  wisdom of  God,  besides  the  proofs  already  advanced,  we  may  also  learn from  the  very  words  of  wisdom.,  speaking  of  herself  in  the  clearest manner,  through  Solomon,  and  thus  initiating  us  into  her mysteries.  Prov.  viii.  "  I  wisdom  make  my  habitation  with  prudence and  knowledge,  and  have  called  to  understanding.  By me  kings  reign  and  princes  define  justice.  By  me  the  great  are magnified,  and  rulers  subdue  the  earth."  To  which  he  subjoins the  following :  "  The  Lord  created  me  in  the  beginning  of  his ways,  for  his  works ;  before  the  world  he  established  me,  before the  formation  of  the  earth,  before  the  waters  came  from  their fountains,  before  the  foundation  of  the  mountains,  before  all  hills, he  brought  me  forth.  When  he  prepared  the  heavens,  I  was present  with  him,  and  when  he  established  the  fountains  under the  heavens,  I  was  with  him,  adjusting  them.  I  was  his  delight;
daily  I  exulted  before  him  at  all  times,  when  he  rejoiced  that  he had  completed  the  world."  That  the  divine  word,  therefore,  preexisted and  appeared,  if  not  to  all,  at  least  to  some,  has  been  thus briefly  shown.

THE  REASONS  WHY  THE  GOSPEL  WAS  NOT  PROCLAIMED  SOONER.

The  reason,  however,  why  this  was  not  also  proclaimed  before in  ancient  times,  to  all  men  and  all  nations,  as  it  is  now,  will  appear from  the  following  considerations.  The  Hfe  of  men,  in  an cient  times,  was  not  in  a  situation  to  receive  the  doctrine  of  Christ^
in  the  all-comprehensive  fulness  of  its  wisdom  and  its  virtue.  Foi immediately  in  the  beginning,  after  that  happy  state,  the  first
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  19

man,  neglecting  the  Divine  commands,  fell  into  the  present  mortal and  afflicted  condition,  and  exchanged  his  former  divine  enjovment  for  the  present  earth,  subject  to  the  curse.  The  descendants of  this  one,  having  filled  our  earth,  and  proved  themselves much  worse,  excepting  one  here  and  another  there,  commenced  a certain  brutal  and  disorderly  mode  of  life.  They  had  neither  city nor  state,  no  arts  or  sciences,  even  in  contemplation.  Laws  and justice,  virtue  and  philosophy  they  knew  not,  even  in  name.  They wandered  lawless  through  the  desert,  like  savage  and  fierce  animals, destroying  the  intellectual  faculty  of  man,  and  exterminating the  very  seeds  of  reason  and  culture  of  the  human  mind,  by the  excesses  of  determined  wickedness,  and  by  a  total  surrender of  them.selves  to  every  species  of  iniquity.

Hence,  at  one  time  they  corrupted  each  other  by  criminal  intercourse; at  another,  they  murdered;  and  at  others,  fed  upon human  flesh.  Hence  too,  their  audacity,  in  venturing  to  wage war  with  the  Deity  himself;  and  hence  those  battles  of  the  giants, celebrated  by  all.  Hence  too,  their  attempts  to  wall  up  the  earth against  heaven,  and  by  the  madness  of  a  perverted  mind,  to  prepare an  attack  upon  the  supreme  God  himself  Upon  these  men, leading  a  life  of  such  wickedness,  the  Omniscient  God  sent  down inundations  and  conflagrations,  as  upon  a  forest  scattered  over  the earth.  He  cut  them  down  with  successive  famines  and  pestilence, with  constant  wars  and  thunderbolts,  as  if  to  suppress  the  dreadful and  obdurate  disease  of  the  soul,  with  his  more  severe  punishments. Then  it  was,  when  the  excess  of  malignity  had  nearly overwhelmed  all  the  world,  like  a  deep  fit  of  drunkenness  overshadowing and  beclouding  the  minds  of  men — then  it  was,  that the  first  begotten  wisdom  of  God,  existing  before  all  creatures,  and the  self-same  pre-existing  word,  induced  by  his  exceeding  love  oi'
man,  appeared  at  times  to  his  servants,  in  visions  of  angels;  at others,  in  his  own  person.  As  the  salutary  power  of  God,  he  was seen  by  one  and  the  other  of  the  pious  in  ancient  times,  in  the shape  of  man,  because  it  was  impossible  to  appear  in  any  other way.  And  as  by  these  pious  men,  the  seeds  of  godliness  had  been already  scattered  among  the  mass  of  mankind,  and  the  whole  nation that  claimed  its  origin  from  those  ancient  Hebrews,  continued
20  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

devoted  to  the  worship  of  God — to  these,  therefore,  as  to  a  multi tude  still  affected  by  former  corrupt  practices,  he  imparted, through  Moses,  images  and  signs  of  a  certain  mystical  Sabbath  and circumcision,  and  instructions  in  other  spiritual  principles,  but  did not  yet  grant  the  privilege  of  an  immediate  initiation.  But  when their  law  obtained  celebrity,  and  like  a  fragrant  odour  was  spread abroad  among  all  men ;  and  by  means  of  this  law,  the  dispositions of  men,  even  among  most  of  the  gentiles,  were  improved  by  legislators and  philosophers  every  where,  who  softened  their  wild  and savage  ferocity,  so  as  to  enjoy  settled  peace,  friendship,  and  mutual intercourse ;  then  it  was,  when  men  at  length  throughout  the whole  world,  and  in  all  nations  had  been,  as  it  were,  previously  prepared and  fitted  for  the  reception  of  the  knowledge  of  the  Father, that  he  himself  again  appeared,  the  master  of  virtue,  the  ministei of  the  Father  in  all  goodness ;  the  divine  and  celestial  word  of  God.
He  appeared  in  a  human  body,  in  substance  not  differing  from  our own  nature,  at  the  commencement  of  the  Roman  empire;  performed and  suffered  such  things  as  were  to  follow,  according  to prophecy,  viz.  that  man  and  God,  the  author  of  miraculous  works, would  dwell  in  the  world,  and  would  be  exhibited  to  all  the  nations as  the  teacher  of  that  piety  wdiich  the  Father  will  approve.
In  these  prophecies,  also,  were  foretold  the  extraordinary  fact  of his  birth,  his  new  doctrine,  and  his  wonderful  works ;  as  also  the manner  of  his  death,  his  resurrection  from  the  dead,  and  finally his  divine  return  to  the  heavens.  The  prophet  Daniel,  under  the influence  of  the  divine  Spirit,  foreseeing  his  kingdom  in  the  end, was  inspired  thus  to  write  and  describe  liis  vision,  in  adaptation  to human  capacity,  in  the  following  language:  "I  beheld,"  said  he, "until  the  thrones  were  placed;  and  the  Ancient  of  Days  sat,  and his  garment  was  white  as  snow,  and  the  hair  of  his  head  was  as pure  wool ;  his  throne  was  a  flame  of  fire,  his  wheels  burning  fire ;
a  river  of  fire  rolled  before  him;  thousand  thousands  ministered unto  him,  and  ten  thousand  thousands  stood  near  him.  He  appointed judgment,  and  the  books  were  opened."  "  And  next,  I  beheld," says  he,  "  and  lo !  one  coming  with  the  clouds  as  the  Son  of Man,  and  he  advanced  as  far  as  the  Ancient  of  Days,  and  he  was brought  into  his  presence.     AH  to  hirr  was  given  the  dominion,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  21

and  the  glory,  and  the  kingdom,  and  all  people,  tribes,  tongues shall  serve  him.  His  power  is  an  everlasting  power,  which  shall not  pass  away;  and  his  kingdom  shall  not  be  destroyed."  These passages  can  evidently  be  referred  to  no  one  but  to  our  Saviour,  that God  word*  which  was  in  the  beginning  with  God;  called  the  Son of  God,  by  reason  of  his  final  appearance  in  the  flesh.  But  having collected  the  prophetic  declarations  concerning  our  Saviour  Jesus Christ,  in  distinct  commentariesf  on  this  subject,  and  having  elsewhere digested  whatever  is  revealed  concerning  him,  in  a  more demonstrable  form,  what  has  been  said  upon  the  subject  here may  suffice  for  the  present.

CHAPTER  in.

The  name  Jesus,  as  also  that  of  Christ,  was  both  hnoicn  and  honoured from  ancient  times,  by  the  inspired  prophets.

It  is  now  the  proper  place  to  show  that  the  very  name  of  Jesus, ds  also  that  of  Christ,  was  honoured  by  the  pious  prophets  of  old.
And  first,  Moses  himself,  having  intimated  how  exceedingly  august and  illustrious  the  name  of  Christ  is,  delivering  types  and  mystical images,  according  to  the  oracle  which  declared  to  him,  "  See that  thou  make  all  things  according  to  the  pattern  which  was shown  thee  on  the  mount," — the  same  man  whom,  as  far  as  it  was lawful,  he  had  called  the  high  priest  of  God,  the  self-same  he  calls Christ.J  And  in  this  way,  to  the  dignity  of  the  priesthood,  wliich surpasses  with  him,  all  superiority  among  men,  as  additional  honour and  glory,  he  attaches  the  name  of  Christ.  Hence  he  evidently understood  that  Christ  was  a  Being  divine.  The  same jNIoses,  under  the  divine  Spirit,  foreseeing  also  the  epithet  Jesus, likewise  dignifies  this  with  a  certain  distinguished  privilege.    For
*  God  -word.     The  literal  expression  is  retained  here.

f  Commentaries.  Eusebius  here  refers  to  two  other  works  of  his,  written  bofore  this  histor}',  his  Preparation  and  Demonstration.

i  Christ.  Christ  and  Messiah,  the  same  epithets  in  different  languages,  signify anointed,  or  the  anointed  one.

2->  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

this  name,  whicli  had  never  been  uttered  among  men,  before  Moses, he  applies  first  to  him  alone  who,  by  a  type  and  sign,  he  knew would  be  his  successor  after  his  death,  in  the  government  of  the  na tion.  His  successor,  therefore,  who  had  not  assumed  the  appellation Jesus,*  (Joshua,)  before  this  period,  being  called  by  his  other name  Oshea,  which  his  parents  had  given,  was  called  by  Moses Jesus,  (Jehoshua,  Joshua.)  Num.  xiii.  17.  This  name,  as  an  honourable distinction,  far  superior  to  any  royal  diadem,  was  conferred on  Joshua,  because  Joshua  the  son  of  Nun  bore  a  resemblance to  our  Saviour,  as  the  only  one  after  Moses,  and  the  completion of  that  symbolical  worship  given  through  him,  that  should succeed  him  in  a  government  of  pure  and  undefiled  religion.  Thus Moses  attaches  the  name  of  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  as  the  greatest honour  to  two  men,  who,  according  to  him,  excelled  all  the  rest  in virtue  and  glory;  the  one  to  the  high  priest,  the  other  to  him  that should  have  the  government  after  him.  But  the  prophets  that  lived subsequently  to  these  times,  also  plainly  announced  Christ  before  by name;  whilst  at  the  same  time  they  foretel  the  machinations  of  the Jews  against  him,  and  the  calling  of  the  Gentiles  through  him.
Jeremiah  bears  testimony,  speaking  thus:  "The  breathf  (the  spirit,) before  our  face,  Christ  the  Lord,  was  taken  away  in  their destructions;  of  whom  we  said,  under  his  shadow  will  we  live among  the  nations."  Lam.  iv.  20.  David  also,  fixed  in  astonishment, speaks  of  him  as  follows:  "Why  do  the  heathen  rage,  and the  people  imagine  vain  things?  The  kings  of  the  earth  stood  up, and  the  rulers  were  gathered  together  against  the  Lord  and against  his  Christ."  To  which  he  afterwards  adds,  in  the  person of  Christ  himself:  "  The  Lord  said  to  me,  thou  art  my  Son,  this day  have  I  begotten  thee ;  ask  of  me,  and  I  will  give  thee  the  nations for  thine  inheritance,  and  the  uttermost  parts  of  the  earth  for thy  possession."  Ps.  ii.

*  Jesus.  By  some  corruption  of  the  name  of  Joshua,  Eusebius  calls  him  Auses.
Jesus  is  the  Greek  form,  for  the  more  Hebrew  Joshua.  The  Septuagint  invariably use  the  former,  and  in  one  instance  it  is  retained  in  our  EngHsh  version.  Heb.  iv.  8.

-j-  This  passage  from  Jeremiah  is  rendered  as  the  above  from  the  Septuagint,  as quoted  by  Eusebius.  In  our  English  version,  the  force  of  the  allusion  is  not  perceptible, and  one  might  look  in  vain  for  the  passage  as  rendered  here ;  but  the  Ht^
brew  fully  admits  the  Greek  version  here  given.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  23

Nor  was  the  name  of  Christ  among  the  Hebrews,  given  soiely as  an  honour  to  those  that  were  dignified  with  the  priesthood,  in consequence  of  their  being  anointed  with  oil  prepared  for  the  purpose, as  a  sacred  symbol;  the  same  was  done  also  to  the  kings, whom  the  prophets,  after  anointing  them  under  a  divine  impulse, constituted  certain  typical  Christs,  as  they  themselves  also  were, the  shadows  of  the  royal  and  princely  sovereignty  of  the  only  and true  Christ,  of  that  divine  word  which  holds  sovereignty  over  all.
Moreover,  we  are  also  told  respecting  the  prophets,  that  some were  typical  Clirists,  by  reason  of  their  unction ;  so  that  all  these have  a  reference  to  the  true  Christ,  the  divine  and  heavenly  word, the  only  high  priest  of  all  men,  the  only  king  of  all  creation,  and the  Father's  only  supreme  Prophet  of  the  prophets.  The  proof  of this  is  evident,  from  the  fact  that  none  of  those  anciently  anointed, whether  priests,  kings,  or  prophets,  obtained  such  power  with  divine excellence  as  our  Saviour  and  Lord  Jesus,  the  onl}'^  and  true Christ,  has  exhibited.  For  these,  although  illustrious  among  their countrymen  in  dignity  and  honour,  and  for  a  long  series  of  generations, never  called  their  subjects  after  themselves  by  a  similar  epithet, Christians,  and  neither  was  there  ever  divine  honour  paid  to any  of  these  from  their  subjects ;  nor  even  after  their  death,  vwis there  ever  so  strong  a  disposition  in  any,  as  to  be  prepared  to  die for  the  honoured  individual.  And  never  was  there  so  great  a  commotion among  the  nations  of  the  earth,  respecting  any  one  then existing,  since  the  mere  force  of  the  type  could  not  act  with  such efficacy  among  them,  as  the  exliibition  of  the  reality  by  our  Saviour. Though  He  received  no  badges  and  eniblcms  of  priesthood from  any ;  though  he  did  not  even  derive  his  earthly  origin from  a  sacerdotal  race,  nor  was  raised  to  empire  under  the  escort of  guards;  nor  installed  a  prophet,  like  those  of  old;  nor  obtained a  peculiar,  or  even  any  dignity  among  the  Jews,  yet  notwithstanding all  this,  he  was  adorned  by  the  Father  with  all  these,  not merely  typical  honours,  but  with  the  reality  itself.  Although  He did  not  obtaui  then  the  same  honours  with  those  mentioned  above, yet  he  is  called  Christ  by  a  far  superior  claim ;  and  as  he  is  the only  and  the  true  Christ  of  God,  he  has  filled  the  whole  world with  a  name  really  august  and  sacred,  the  name  of  Christians.  To 5

24  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

those  who  are  admitted  among  these,  he  no  longer  imparts  mere types  and  similitudes,  but  undisguised  virtues,  and  a  heavenly  life, in  the  doctrines  of  truth.  He  received  an  unction,  not  formed  of material  substances,  but  that  which  comports  with  Deity,  the  divine Spirit  itself,  by  a  participation  of  the  uncreated  divinity  of the  Father.  This  is  shown  by  Isaiah,  who  seems  to  exclaim  in the  very  person  of  Christ :  "  The  spirit  of  the  Lord  is  upon  me, wherefore  he  hath  anointed  me,  (he  hath  sent  me)  to  proclaim glad  tidings  to  the  poor,  to  heal  the  broken  hearted,  to  proclaim liberty  to  the  captives,  and  the  recovery  of  sight  to  the  blind."
And  not  only  Isaiah  but  David  also,  addressing  him,  says,  "  Thy throne,  O  God,  is  from  everlasting  to  everlasting.  A  sceptre  of righteousness  is  the  sceptre  of  thy  kingdom.  Thou  hast  loved righteousness  and  hated  iniquity.  Therefore  hath  God,  thy  God, anointed  thee  with  the  oil  of  gladness  above  thy  fellows."  Li  which words,  he  calls  him  God  in  the  first  verse;  and  in  the  second  he ascribes  to  him  the  royal  sceptre,  and  thus  proceeding  after  the divine  and  royal  power,  in  the  third  place,  he  represents  him  as Christ,  anointed  not  by  the  oil  of  material  substances,  but  by  the divine  oil  of  gladness.  By  this  also,  he  shows  his  excellence  and great  superiority  over  those  who,  in  former  ages,  had  been anointed  as  typical  images  with  the  material  substance.  The same  speaks  of  him  in  another  place,  thus:  "  The  Lord  said  unto my  Lord,  sit  thou  at  my  right  hand,  until  I  make  thine  enemies thy  footstool;"  and  a  httle  after,  "From  the  womb  before  the morning  star  did  I  beget  thee;  tlie  Lord  hath  sworn  and  he will  not  repent,  thou  art  a  priest  for  ever  after  the  order  of  Melchisedech."  This  Melchisedek  is  mentioned  in  the  holy  Scriptures, as  a  priest  of  the  Most  High  God,  not  consecrated  by  any unction  prepared  of  any  material  substance,  and  not  even  succeeding to  the  priesthood  of  the  Jews,  by  any  descent  of  lineage.
Hence,  Christ  our  Saviour  is  denominated,  with  the  addition of  an  oath,  Christ  and  priest  after  his  ow^n  order,  but  not  according to  the  order  of  those  who  received  merely  the  badges  and emblems.  Hence,  also,  neither  does  history  represent  him  anointed corporeally  among  the  Jews,  nor  even  as  sprung  from  a  tribe  of the  priesthood,  but  as  coming  into  existence  from  God  himself
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  25

before  the  morning  star;  that  is,  before  the  constitution  of  the world,  obtaining  an  immortal  priesthood,  subject  to  no  infirmity of  age,  to  all  endless  ages.  But  the  great  and  convincing  evidence of  that  incorporeal  and  divine  power  in  him,  is  the  fact that  he  alone,  of  all  that  have  ever  existed  to  the  present  day, even  now  is  known  by  the  title  of  Christ,  among  all  men  over  the world;  and  with  this  title  he  is  acknowledged  and  professed  by all,  and  celebrated  both  among  Barbarians  and  Greeks.  Even  to this  day,  he  is  honoured  by  his  votaries  throughout  the  world,  as a  king ;  he  is  admired  as  more  than  a  prophet,  and  glorified  as  the only  true  high  priest  of  God.  In  addition  to  all  these,  as  the  preexisting word  of  God,  coming  into  existence  before  all  ages,  and who  has  received  the  honours  of  worship,  he  is  also  adored  as  God ;
but  what  is  most  remarkable,  is  the  fact,  that  we  who  are  consecrated to  him,  honour  him  not  only  with  the  voice  and  sound  of words,  but  with  all  the  affections  of  the  mind ;  so  that  we  prefer  giving a  testimony  to  him,  even  to  the  preservation  of  our  own  lives.

CHAPTER  IV

Tlie  religion  announced  by  CJirisl  among  all  nations,  n-as  neithei unexpected  nor  strange.

These  matters  have  thus  been  necessarily  premised  before  our history,  that  no  one  may  suppose  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus Christ  was  merely  a  new  comer,  on  account  of  the  date  at  which he  appeared  among  men,  in  the  flesh.  And  now,  that  no  one may  suppose  his  doctrine  is  new  or  strange,  as  if  springing  from one  of  recent  origin,  and  in  no  respect  differing  from  the  rest  of men,  let  us  also  briefly  examine  this  point.

It  is  evident,  that  but  a  short  time  after  the  appearance  of  our Saviour  Jesus  Christ  had  been  made  known  to  all  men,  a  new nation  suddenly  came  into  existence;  a  nation  confessedly  neither small  nor  weak,  nor  situated  in  a  remote  corner  of  the  earth,  but the  most  populous  and  the  most  religious  of  all,  and  so  much  the more  indestructible  and  invincible,  as  it  has  always  had  the  power

D

26  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

of  God  as  its  support.  This  nation,  appearing  at  the  time  appointed by  inscrutable  wisdom,  is  that  which  among  all,  is  honoured with  the  name  of  Christ.  One  of  the  prophets,  foreseeing with  the  eye  of  the  spirit  of  God,  that  this  people  would  arise,  was so  struck  with  amazement  that  he  exclaimed:  "Who  hath  heard such  things  as  this  ?  and  who  hath  ever  declared  thus  ?  hath  the earth  brought  forth  in  a  single  day,  and  hath  a  nation  been  born at  once  ?"  The  same  prophet  also  gives  some  intim.ation  of  the name  that  would  be  introduced :  "  They  who  serve  me  shall  be called  by  a  new  name,  which  shall  be  blessed  upon  the  earth."
And  indeed,  though  we  are  evidently  a  new  people,  this  new name  also  of  Christians  has  lately  become  known  to  all  nations.
The  practice,  however,  and  the  walk  and  conversation,  the  principles of  piety  prevalent  among  this  people,  have  not  been  recently invented,  but  were  established,  we  may  say,  by  the  Deity in  the  natural  dictates  of  pious  men  of  old,  from  the  very  origin  of our  race  ;  an  assertion  which  we  shall  endeavour  to  prove,  in  the following  manner.

That  the  nation  of  the  Hebrews  is  not  new,  but  honoured  among all  for  its  antiquity,  is  well  known.  The  writings  and  literature of  this  nation  concern  ancient  men,  rare  and  few  in  number,  but yet  excelling  in  piety,  righteousness,  and  every  virtue.  And  indeed, even  before  the  flood,  there  were  some  who  were  distinguished for  their  virtue ;  and  after  this  others,  both  of  the  sons and  posterity  of  Noah,  among  whom  we  would  mention  Abraham, celebrated  by  the  Hebrews  as  the  founder  and  progenitor  of  theii nation.  Should  any  one,  beginning  from  Abraham,  and  going  back to  the  first  man,  pronounce  those  who  have  had  the  testimony  of righteousness.  Christians  in  fact,  though  not  in  name,  he  would  not be  far  from  the  truth.  For  as  the  name  Christians  is  intended  to indicate  this  very  idea,  that  a  man,  by  the  knowledge  and  doctrine of  Christ,  is  distinguished  by  modesty  and  justice,  by  patience  and a  virtuous  fortitude,  and  by  a  profession  of  piety  towards  the  one and  only  true  and  supreme  God ;  all  this  was  no  less  studiously  cultivated by  them  than  by  us.  They  did  not,  therefore,  regard  circumcision, nor  observe  the  Sabbath,  neither  do  we;  neither  do  w^e abstain  from  certain  foods,  nor  regard  other  injunctions,  which
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  27

Moses  subsequently  delivered  to  be  observed  in  types  and  symbols, because  such  things  as  these  do  not  belong  to  Christians.  Buf they  obviously  knew  the  Christ  of  God,  as  he  appeared  to  Abraham, communed  with  Isaac,  spoke  to  Jacob;  and  that  he  communed with  Moses  and  the  prophets  after  him,  has  already  been shown.

Hence  you  will  find,  also,  these  pious  persons  honoured  with the  name  of  Christ,  as  in  the  following  expression :  "  Touch  not my  anointed  ones  (my  Christs,)  and  do  my  prophets  no  harm."
Whence  we  should  plainly  suppose,  that  the  first  and  most  ancient religion  known,  that  of  those  pious  men  that  were  connected with  Abraham,  is  the  very  religion  lately  announced  to  all  in the  doctrines  of  Christ.     Abraham  is  said  to  have  received  the command  of  circumcision,  and  yet  long  before  this,  was  proved  to have    received   the    testimony   of   ri2;hteousness   throudi   faith.
"  Abraham,"  the  Scriptures  say,  "  believed,  and  it  was  imputed unto  him  for  righteousness."     And,  indeed,  the  divine  communication was  given  to  him  from  God,  who  appeared  to  him  when he   bore   this    character   before    circumcision.      And   this   was Christ  himself,  the  word  of  God  announcing  that  all  who  should come  in  future  times  should  be  justified  in  a  similar  way;  saying, '*  and  in  thee  shall  be  blessed  all  the  nations  of  the  earth."     And again,  "  when  he  shall  become  a  great  and  mighty  nation,  in  him all  the  nations  of  the  earth  shall  be  blessed."     We  may  obviously understand  this  by  its  fulfilment  in  us ;  for  lie  indeed  was  justified by  his  faith  in  Christ,  the  word  of  God  that  appeared  to  him ;  and having  renounced  the  superstition  of  his  fathers  and  the  former errors  of  his  life,  confessed  the  one  supreme  God,  and  served  him by  deeds  of  virtue,  and  not  by  the  service  subsequently  enjoined in  the  law  of  Moses.

To  him,  then,  being  such,  it  was  declared  that  all  the  tribes and  all  the  nations  of  the  earth  should  be  blessed  in  him.  But the  course  of  piety  vvhich  was  pursued  by  Abraham,  has  appeared thus  far  cultivated  only  by  Christians,  and  that  too  by  works more  efiicacious  than  words.  What,  then,  should  prevent  us henceforth  from  acknowledging  that  there  is  one  and  the  same principle  of  life  and  conduct,  the  same  course  of  piety  common 5^

28  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

;.o  US,  who  have  come  after  Christ,  with  those  pious  men  who lived  in  times  long  before  ?  Whence  it  is  evident  that  the  reHgion  dehvered  to  us  in  the  doctrine  of  Christ  is  not  a  new  nor  a strange  doctrine ;  but  if  the  truth  must  be  spoken,  it  is  the  first and  only  true  religion.     Thus  much  may  suffice  on  this  point.

CHAPTER  V.

The  times  of  our  Saviour''s  manifestation  among  men.

After  the  necessary  preliminary  to  the  Ecclesiastical  History which  we  have  proposed  to  write,  it  now  remains  that  we  commence our  course,  invoking  God,  the  Father  of  the  word,  and  Jesus Christ  himself,  our  revealed  Saviour  and  Lord,  the  heavenly  word of  God,  as  our  aid  and  fellow-labourer  in  the  narration  of  the truth.  It  was  the  forty-second  year  of  the  reign  of  Augustus, but  the  twenty-eighth  from  the  subjugation  of  Egypt  and  the death  of  Antony  and  Cleopatra,  which  terminated  the  dynasty of  the  Ptolemies,  when,  according  to  prophetic  prediction,  our Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ  was  born  in  Bethlehem  of  Judea;
the  same  year,  when  the  first  census  was  taken,  and  Quirinius*
was  governor  of  Syria. — This  census  is  mentioned  by  Flavins  Josephus,  the  distinguished  historian  am.ong  the  Hebrews,  who  also adds  another  account  respecting  the  sect  of  the  Galileans,  which arose  about  the  same  time,  of  which  also  mention  is  made  by  our Luke  in  his  book  of  Acts,  in  the  following  words — "  After  this  man arose  Judas  of  Galilee,  in  the  days  of  the  taxing  (assessment), and  drew  away  much  people  after  him,  he  also  preached ;  and all,  even  as  many  as  obeyed  him  were  dispersed."  Acts  v.  37.
The  aforesaid  author  agreeing  with  this  statement  in  the  18th
*  Quirinius. — This  Quirinius  is  the  same  Cyrenius  mentioned  by  St.  Luke.
The  former  is  the  original  Roman  name,  the  latter  the  Latin  mode  oi  transferring the  name  from  the  Greek.  Had  it  been  recollected  that  the  Greek  name  was  not the  original,  this  proper  name  would  not  have  been  returned  to  its  own  language, in  a  form  so  disguised.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  29

book  of  his  Antiquities,  adds  the  following :  "  But  Quirinius,  who belonged  to  the  senate,  and  having  enjoying  other  offices,  advanced through  all  the  grades  of  office  to  the  consulship,  a  man  also  of great  dignity  in  other  respects,  by  the  appointment  of  Cesar,  came to  Syria,  with  a  small  force,  and  with  judicial  power  over  the people,  to  take  a  valuation  of  their  property."  A  little  after  he says :  "  But  Judas,  the  Gaulonite,  sprung  from  the  town  called Gamala,  together  with  Sadducus,  a  Pharisee,  headed  a  revolt  of the  people,  saying  that  the  assessment  had  nothing  else  in  view but  manifest  slavery ;  and  they  exhorted  the  people  to  assert  their liberty."  He  also  writes  in  the  second  book  of  the  history  of  the Jewish  War,  concerning  the  same  man :  "  About  this  time  a  certain Judas  of  Galilee,  stimulated  the  inhabitants  to  revolt,  urging it  as  a  reproach,  that  they  endured  paying  tribute,  and  that  they who  had  God  for  their  master,  suffered  mortals  to  usurp  the  sovereignty over  them."     Thus  far  Josephus.

CHAPTER  VI.

About  the  time  of  our  Lord,  agreeably  to  prophecy,  those  rulers ceased  that  had  formerly  governed  the  nation  of  the  Jews  by  regidar  succession,  and  Herod  was  the  first  foreigner  that  reigned over  them.

At  the  time  that  Herod  was  king,  who  was  the  first  foreigner that  reigned  over  the  Jewish  people,  the  prophecy  recorded  by Moses  received  its  fulfilment,  viz.  "  That  a  prince  should  not  fail of  Judah,  nor  a  ruler  from  his  loins,  until  he  should  come  for  whom it  is  reserved."*  The  same,  he  also  shows,  would  be  the  expectation of  the  nations.  The  prediction  was  evidently  not  accomplished, as  long  as  they  were  at  liberty  to  have  their  own  native rulers,  w  hich  continued  from  the  time  of  Moses  down  to  the  reign of  Augustus.  Under  him,  Herod  was  the  first  foreigner  that  obtained the  government  of  the  Jews.     Since,  as  Josephus  has  writ
*  This  celebrated  passage  we  here  give  after  the  Septuagint,  which  Eusebius invariably  quotes.

30  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

ten,  he  was  an  Idumean  by  the  father's  side,  and  an  Arabian  by the  mother's.  But,  as  Africanus,  who  is  also  no  common  writer, says,  "  They  who  have  written  more  accurately  respecting  him, say  that  he  was  the  son  of  Antipater,  and  that  the  latter  was  the son  of  a  certain  Herod  of  Ascalon,  one  of  those  called  tlie  ministers of  the  temple  of  Apollo,  in  that  city.  This  Antipater,  when  a boy,  having  been  taken  prisoner  by  some  Idumean  robbers,  lived with  them,  because  his  father  being  a  poor  man,  was  unable  to pay  his  ransom.  Thus  growing  up  in  their  practices,  he  was afterwards  befriended  by  Hyrcanus  the  high  priest  of  the  Jews.
His  son  v/as  that  Herod  that  flourished  in  the  times  of  our  Saviour. The  government  of  the  Jews,  therefore,  having  devolved on  such  a  man,  the  expectation  of  the  nations  was  now  at  hand, according  to  prophecy;  because  with  him  terminated  the  regular succession  of  governors  and  princes,  from  the  time  of  Moses.  For before  their  captivity  and  their  transfer  to  Babylon,  they  were  first governed  by  Saul  and  David  as  their  kings ;  and  before  the  kings, the  government  was  administered  by  magistrates  called  judges, who  came  after  Moses  and  his  successor  Joshua.  After  the  return from  the  captivity  of  Babylon,  they  continued  to  retain  the aristocratical  form  of  government,  together  with  an  oligarchy.
The  high  priests  had  then  the  direction  of  affairs,  until  Pompey, the  proconsular  general  of  the  Romans,  took  Jerusalem  by  force of  arms,  and  defiled  the  sacred  places,  entering  the  sanctuary  of the  temple.  Aristobulus,  who  had  been  both  king  and  high priest  by  regular  succession  until  then,  was  sent  with  his  children in  chains  to  Rome,  and  the  priesthood  was  given  to  his  brother Hyrcanus,  whilst  the  whole  nation  of  the  Jews  was  made  tributary to  the  Romans  from  that  time.

But  Hyrcanus,  who  was  the  last  of  the  high  priests  by  succession, having  been  soon  after  taken  prisoner  by  the  Parthians,  Herod, as  I  said  before,  had  the  government  of  the  Jews  conferred upon  him  by  the  senate  of  Rome  and  the  emperor  Augustus.
About  this  time,  the  advent  of  Christ  being  nigh  at  hand,  tlie  expected salvation  of  the  nations  received  its  fulfilment,  and  was followed  by  the  calling  of  the  Gentiles,  according  to  prophetic  declarations.    From  this  time  alsoj  the  princes  and  rulers  of  Judah,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  31

!.  e.  of  the  Jewish  nation,  ceasing,  by  a  natural  consequence,  the priesthood,  which  had  descended  from  a  series  of  ancestors  in  the closest  succession  of  kindred,  was  immediately  thrown  into  confusion. Of  this,  you  have  the  evidence  of  Josephus ;  who  shows  that w^hen  Herod  was  appointed  king  by  the  Romans,  he  no  longer  nominated the  chief  priests  from  the  ancient  lineage,  but  conferred the  honour  upon  certain  obscure  individuals.  A  course  similar  to that  of  Herod,  in  the  appointment  of  the  high  priest,  was  pursued by  xlrchelaus,  his  son;  and  next  by  the  Romans,  who, after  him,  took  the  government  of  the  Jews  into  their  own hands.  The  same  Josephus  shows  that  Herod  was  the  first  that locked  up  the  sacred  vesture  of  the  high  priest,  and  having  secured it  under  his  own  private  seal,  no  longer  permitted  the  high priests  to  have  it  at  their  disposal.  The  same  thing  was  done  by Archelaus  his  successor,  as  also  by  the  Romans.  It  may  suffice then,  to  have  said  thus  much,  in  proof  of  another  prophecy,  which has  terminated  in  the  appearance  of  our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.
Most  clearly  indeed  does  the  book  of  Daniel,  expressly  embracing a  number  of  certain  weeks,  until  the  government  of  Christ,  concerning wliich  we  have  treated  in  another  work,  predict  that  after the  termination  of  these,  the  sacred  unction  amongst  the  Jews should  be  totally  abolished.  And  this  is  evidently  proved  to  have been  fulfilled  at  the  time  of  our  Saviour's  birth.  Let  this  be  sufficient, however,  as  a  necessary  preliminary,  to  establish  the  truth in  reference  to  the  times.

CHAPTER  VII.

On  the  discrepancy  ichich  is  supposed  to  exist  in  the  Gospels^  ic specting  the  genealogy  of  Christ.

As  the  genealogy  of  Qirist  is  differently  given  to  us  by  Matthew and  Luke,  and  they  are  supposed  by  the  generality  to  disagree in  their  statements ;  and  as  every  believer,  for  want  of  knowing the  truth,  has  been  led  to  apply  some  investigation  to  explain the  passages,  we  may  also  subjoin  the  account  which  has  come
32  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

down  to  us.  We  refer  to  the  history  which  has  been  handea down  on  these  passages  by  Africanus,  in  an  epistle  to  Aristides, respecting  the  harmony  of  the  genealogy  of  the  gospels.  After having  refuted  the  opinions  of  others  as  forced  and  fictitious,  he sets  forth  the  account  that  he  had  ascertained  himself,  in  the  following words.  "  It  was  customary  in  Israel  to  calculate  the names  of  the  generations,  either  according  to  nature,  or  accord ing  to  the  law;  according  to  nature,  by  the  succession  of  legitimate offspring ;  according  to  the  law,  when  another  raised  children  to the  name  of  a  brother  who  had  died  childless.  For  as  the  hope of  a  resurrection  was  not  yet  clearly  given,  they  imitated  the  promise which  was  to  take  place  by  a  kind  of  mortal  resurrection, with  a  view  to  perpetuate  the  name  of  the  person  who  had  died.
Since  then,  there  are  some  of  those  who  are  inserted  in  this  genealogical table,  that  succeed  each  other  in  the  natural  order  of father  and  son,  some  again  that  were  born  of  others,  and  were  ascribed to  others  by  name,  both  the  real  and  reputed  fathers  have been  recorded.  Thus,  neither  of  the  gospels  has  made  a  false statement,  whether  calculating  in  the  order  of  nature,  or  according to  law.  For  the  families  descended  from  Solomon,  and  those from  Nathan,  were  so  intermingled,  by  substitutions  in  the  place of  those  who  had  died  childless,  by  second  marriages  and  the  raising up  of  seed,  that  the  same  persons  are  justly  considered,  as  in one  respect,  belonging  to  the  one  of  these,  and  in  another  respect belonging  to  others.  Hence  it  is,  that  both  of  these  accounts  being true,  viz.  of  those  who  were  reputed  fathers,  and  those  v>'ho  really were  fathers,  they  come  down  to  Joseph  with  considerable  intricacy, it  is  true,  but  with  great  accuracy.  That  this,  however, may  be  made  evident,  I  will  state  the  series  of  generations.  If (in  the  genealogy  of  Matthew,)  you  reckon  the  generations  from David  through  Solomon,  Matthan,  who  begat  Jacob  the  father  of Joseph,  is  found  to  be  the  third  from  the  end.  But  if,  with  Luke, you  reckon  from  Nathan  the  son  of  David,  in  like  manner,  Melchi, whose  son  was  Eli,  the  father  of  Joseph,  will  be  found  to  be  the third.  As  Joseph,  then,  is  our  proposed  object,  we  are  to  show how  it  happened  that  each  is  recorded  as  his  father ;  both  Jacob, as  deduced  from  Solomon,  and  Eli  from  Nathan ;  also,  how  it  hap
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  33

pened  that  these  two,  Jacob  and  Eli,  were  brothers ;  and  moreover, how  the  fathers  of  these,  Matthan  and  Melchi,  being  of different  families,  are  proved  to  be  the  grandfathers  of  Joseph.

Matthan  and  Melchi,  having  married  in  succession  the  same woman,  had  children,  who  were  brothers  by  the  same  mother,  as the  law  did  not  prohibit  a  widow,  whether  she  became  such  by divorce,  or  by  the  death  of  her  husband,  to  marry  again.     Matthan, therefore,  who  traces  his  lineage  from  Solomon,  first  had Jacob,  by  Estha,  for  this  is  her  name  as  handed  down  by  tradition.
Matthan  dying,  and  Melchi,  who  traces  his  descent  from  Nathan, though  he  was  of  the  same  tribe,  but  of  another  family,  having as  before  said,  married  her,  had  a  son  Eli.     Thus,  then,  we  shall find  the  two  of  different  families,  Jacob  and  Eli,  brothers  by  the same  mother.     Of  these,  the  one  Jacob,  on  the  death  of  his  brother, marrying  his  widow,  became  the  father  of  a  third,  viz.  Joseph ;  his  son  both  by  nature  and  calculation.     Wherefore,  it  is written,  Jacob  begat  Joseph.     But  according  to  the  lav/,  he  was the  son  of  Eli,  for  Jacob  being  his  brother,  raised  up  seed  to  him.
Wherefore,  the  genealogy  traced  also  through  him,  will  not  be rendered  void,  which,  according  to  Matthew,  is  given  thus — "  but Jacob  begat  Joseph."  But  Luke,  on  the  other  hand,  says,  "  who  was the  son,  as  was  supposed,  (for  this  he  also  adds,)  the  son  of  Joseph, the  son  of  Eli,  the  son  of  Melchi."     For  it  was  not  possible  to  express the  legal  genealogy  more  distinctly,  so  that  he  entirely  omits the  expression,  "  he  begat,''^  in  a  generation  like  this,  until  the  end  ;
having  traced  it  back  as  far  as  Adam,  "  who  was  the  son  of  God,"
he  resolves  the  whole  series  by  referring  back  to  God.     Neither is  this  incapable  of  proof,  nor  is  it  an  idle  conjecture.    For  the  relatives of  our  Lord,  according  to  the  flesh,  whether  to  display their  own  illustrious  origin,  or  simply  to  show  the  fact,  but  at  any rate  adhering  strictly  to  the  truth,  have  also  handed  down  the following  accounts  :  That  robbers  of  Idumea,  attacking  Ascalon, a  city  of  Palestine,  led  Antipater  away  captive   together  with other  booty,  from  the  temple  of  Apollo,  which  was  built  close  to  the walls.     He  was  the  son  of  one  Herod,  a  minister  of  the  temple.
The  priest,  however,  not  being  able  to  pay  the  ransom  for  his  son, Antipater  was  trained  up  in  the  practices  of  the  Idumeans,  and

E

34  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

afterwards  in  great  favour  with  Hyrcanus  the  high  priest  of  Judea.  He  was  subsequently  sent  by  Hyrcanus  on  an  embassy  to Pompey,  and  having  restored  the  kingdom  to  him,  which  had been  invaded  by  Aristobulus,  the  brother  of  the  latter,  Antipater himself  had  the  good  fortune  to  be  nominated  the  procurator  of Palestine.  Antipater,  however,  having  been  treacherously  slain,  by those  who  envied  his  good  fortune,  was  succeeded  by  his  son  Herod.
He  was  afterwards,  by  a  decree  of  the  senate,  appointed  king  of the  Jews,  under  Antony  and  Augustus.  His  sons  were  Herod  and the  other  tetrarchs.  These  accounts  of  the  Jews  also  coincide with  those  of  the  Greeks.  But,  as  the  genealogies  of  the  Hebrews had  been  regularly  kept  in  the  archives  until  then,  and  also  of those  who  referred  back  as  far  as  the  ancient  proselytes ;  as  for mstance,  to  Achior  the  Ammonite,  and  Ruth  the  Moabitess,  and to  those  that  were  intermixed  with  the  Israelites  at  their  departure from  Egypt ;  and  as  the  hneage  of  the  Israelites  contributed nothing  to  Herod's  advantage,  he  was  goaded  by  the  consciousness of  his  ignoble  extraction,  and  committed  all  these  records  of their  families  to  the  flames.  Thinking  that  himself  might  appear of  noble  origin,  by  the  fact  that  no  one  else  would  be  able to  trace  his  pedigree  by  the  pubhc  records,  back  to  patriarchs  or proselytes,  and  to  those  strangers  that  were  called  georas.*  A
few  however  of  the  careful,  either  remembering  the  names,  or having  it  in  their  power  in  some  other  way,  by  means  of  copies,  to have  private  records  of  their  own,  gloried  in  the  idea  of  preserving the  memory  of  their  noble  extraction.  Of  these  were  the  abovementioned  persons,  called  desposyni,-!"  on  account  of  tlieir  afiinity to  the  family  of  our  Saviour.  These  coming  from  Nazara  and Cochaba,  villages  of  Judea,  to  the  other  parts  of  the  world,  explain
*  The  word  ys'wpxi?,  used  here  by  Eusehius,  is  taken  from  the  Septuagint,  Exod.
xii.  1 9.  It  is  evidently  a  corruption  of  the  Hebrew  word  nj,  a  stranger,  and  is  interpreted by  Theodoret,  in  loc.  y.=  tcop«v  -cv  -po(7>]^uT;jv  Trpoo-vij-opEuo-j,  he  called  the  proselyte y£»^p«,-,  stranger.

■j-  The  word  desposynos  signifies,  in  general,  one  who  belongs  to  a  master;  it  is here  applied  according  to  the  usage  of  the  primitive  church,  to  indicate  the  relatives of  our  Lord,  as  those  who  were  the  Lord's  according  to  the  flesh.  Suidas explains  the  word    -^^'c  ^oo  Jso-n-oTou  e.-t*.

I

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  35

ed  the  aforesaid  genea.^gy  from  the  book  of  daily  records,  as faithfully  as  possible.  Whether,  then,  the  matter  be  thus  or  otherwise, as  far  as  I  and  every  impartial  judge  would  say,  no  one certainly  could  discover  a  more  obvious  interpretation.  And this,  then,  may  suffice  on  the  subject ;  for,  although  it  be  not  supported by  testimony,  we  have  nothing  to  advance,  either  better  or more  consistent  with  truth.  The  gospel,  altogether,  states  the truth."  At  the  close  of  the  same  epistle,  this  writer,  (Africanus,)
adds  the  following :  "  Matthan,  whose  descent  is  traced  to  Solomon, begat  Jacob,  Matthan  dying,  Melchi,  whose  lineage  is  from Nathan,  by  marrying  the  widow  of  the  former,  had  Eli.  Hence, Eli  and  Jacob  were  brothers  by  the  same  mother.  Eli  dying childless,  Jacob  raised  up  seed  to  him,  having  Joseph,  according to  nature  belonging  to  himself,  but  by  the  law  to  Eli.  Thus,  Joseph was  the  son  of  both."  So  far  Africanus ;  and  the  lineage  of Joseph  thus  being  traced,  Mary,  also,  at  the  same  time,  as  far  as can  be,  is  evinced  to  be  of  the  same  tribe,  since,  by  the  ^Mosaic law,  intermarriages  among  different  tribes  were  not  permitted.
For  the  injunction  is,  to  marry  one  of  the  same  kindred,  and  the same  family,  so  that  the  inheritance  may  not  be  transferred  from tribe  to  tribe.     And  this  may  suffice,  also,  on  the  present  point.

CHAPTER  VIII.

HevGcVb  cruelty  against  the  iiifants,  and  his  wretched  end.

Christ,  then,  having  been  born,  according  to  the  prophecies,  in Bethlehem  of  Judea,  about  the  times  that  had  been  revealed,  Herod was  not  a  little  alarmed  at  the  intelligence.  Having  ascertained, on  the  inquiry  of  the  eastern  Magi,  where  the  king  of  the Jews  should  be  born,  as  they  had  seen  his  star,  and  this  had  been the  cause  of  so  long  a  journey  to  them,  glowing  with  zeal  to  worship the  infant  as  God;  he  was  under  great  apprehensions,  as  supposing his  own  kingdom  to  be  in  danger.  Having,  therefore, inquired  of  the  doctors  of  the  law  in  the  nation,  where  they  expected Christ  should  be  born,  and  ascertained  the  prophecy  of
'Sa  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Micah,  announcing  that  it  would  be  in  Bethlehem,  in  a  single edict  he  orders  the  male  infants  from  two  years  and  below  to  be slain,  botli  in  Bethlehem  and  all  its  parts,  according  to  the  time that  he  had  accurately  ascertained  from  the  Magi;  thinking  at all  events,  as  seemed  very  probable,  that  he  would  carry  off Jesus  also,  in  the  same  destruction  with  those  of  his  own  age.
The  child,  however,  anticipated  the  snare,  being  carried  into Egypt  by  his  parents,  who  had  been  informed  by  the  appearance of  an  angel  of  what  was  about  to  happen.  These  same  facts  are also  stated  in  the  sacred  text  of  the  gospel.

It  is  also  worth  while  to  observe  the  reward  which  Herod  received for  his  criminal  audacity  against  Qirist  and  the  infants ;
how,  without  the  least  delay,  the  Divine  justice  immediately  overtook him;  and  even  before  his  death,  exhibited  the  prelude  to those  punishments  that  awaited  him  after  death.  It  is  not  possible for  me  here,  to  relate  in  what  ways  he  tarnished  what  was supposed  to  be  the  felicity  of  his  reign,  by  the  successive  calamitics  of  his  family,  the  slaughter  of  his  wife  and  children,  and  the rest  of  his  kindred,  allied  to  him  by  the  closest  and  most  tender relations.  The  whole  subject  of  these  particulars,  which  casts all  the  representations  of  tragedy  into  the  shade,  has  been  handled to  its  full  extent  in  the  histories  written  by  Josephus.  But to  understand  in  what  manner  also,  the  chastisement  of  Heaven scourged  him  onwards  to  the  period  of  death,  it  may  not  be  less proper  to  hear  the  words  of  the  same  author,  describing  the  end of  his  life,  in  the  seventeenth  book  of  his  Antiquities,  as  follows:
"  But  the  disease  of  Herod  became  daily  more  virulent,  God  inflicting punishment  for  his  crimes.  For  it  was  a  slow  fire,  not  only exhibiting  to  those  who  touched  him  a  heat  in  proportion  to  the internal  wasting  of  his  body,  but  there  was  also  an  excessive  desire and  craving  after  food,  whilst  no  one  dared  to  refuse.  This was  attended  with  swellings  of  the  intestines,  and  especially  excessive pains  of  the  colon.  A  moist  and  transparent  humour  also covered  his  feet.  Similar  also  was  the  disease  about  the  ventricle, so  that  the  corruption  causing  worms  in  the  lower  part  of  the abdomen,  there  was  an  increased  violence  of  breathing,  which, of  itself  was  very  offensive ;  both  on  account  of  the  disagreeable
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  37

effluvia,  and  the  rapidity  of  the  respiration.  He  was  also  so  convulsed in  every  part  of  his  body,  that  it  added  an  almost  insuperable strength.  It  was  said,  therefore,  by  those  who  are  conversant with  divine  things,  and  to  whose  wisdom  it  appertained  to  declare such  things,  that  God  inflicted  this  punishment  upon  the  king  on account  of  his  great  impiety."

These  are  the  particulars  which  are  stated  by  the  aforesaid writer,  in  the  book  mentioned ;  and  in  the  second  book  of  his  history, he  gives  very  much  the  same  account  concerning  him,  in the  following  words:  "  Then  the  disease  pervading  his  whole body,  distracted  it  by  various  torments.  For  the  fever  became more  intense,  the  itching  of  the  whole  surface  was  insupportable, and  the  pains  of  the  lower  abdomen  were  incessant.  On  his  feet were  swellings,  as  of  one  labouring  with  the  dropsy.  There  was also  an  inflammation  of  the  ventricle,  and  a  putrefaction  that  generated worms.  Beside  this,  a  more  violent  breathing,  and  difficult respiration,  and  convulsions  of  all  tlie  limbs;  so  that  they  who  referred to  a  divine  agency,  said  that  this  disease  was  a  punishment. But,  though  struggling  with  so  many  suiTcrings,  he  nevertheless clung  to  life,  and  did  not  relinquish  the  hope  of  deliverance, but  vv\as  ever  devising  new  remedies.  Crossing  the  Jordan,  therefore, he  used  the  warm  baths  near  Callirhoe.  These  flow  into  the lake  Asphaltites,  (Dead  sea,)  but  by  reason  of  their  sweetness, they  are  also  potal^le.  As  the  physicians  here  deemed  it  necessary to  use  some  soothing  application,  his  whole  body  was  bathed in  tepid  oil,  in  a  bathing  tub  filled  with  oil  for  that  purpose,  when he  was  so  overcome  that  his  eyes  began  to  break,  and  turn  up like  one  dead.  His  servants  then  being  alarmed  and  raising  an outcr}^,  he  indeed  returned  to  himself  at  the  noise;  but  after  that, despairing  of  recovery,  he  ordered  about  fifty  drachms  to  be  distributed to  the  soldiers,  and  considerable  sums  to  be  given  to  his generals  and  friends.  Returning,  he  came  to  Jericho;  where, being  seized  with  despair,  and  now  only  threatening  death  himself, he  proceeded  to  a  crowning  act  of  most  nefarious  character.
He  collected  the  distinguished  men  of  every  village  from  the  whole of  Judea,  and  commanded  them  to  be  shut  up  in  what  was  called tlie  Hippodrome.     He  then  sent  for  Salome,  his  sister,  and  hei
38  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

husband  Alexander.  I  know,"  said  he,  "  that  the  Jews  will  rejoice at  my  death ;  but  I  may  be  lamented  by  means  of  others,  and  have splendid  funeral  rites,  if  you  are  wilHng  to  perform  my  commands.
As  soon  as  I  have  expired,  surround  these  men  that  are  now  under guard  with  soldiers,  as  soon  as  possible,  and  slay  them,  that all  Judea  and  every  house,  though  against  their  will,  may  be  compelled to  weep  at  my  death."  And  soon  after,  he  adds,  "  again, he  was  so  tortured,  partly  by  the  want  of  food  and  by  a  convulsive cough,  that,  overpowered  by  his  pains,  he  contemplated  anticipating his  fate.  Having  taken  an  apple,  he  also  demanded  a knife,  for  he  was  accustomed  to  cut  and  eat  it.  Then,  looking around,  lest  there  should  be  any  one  to  hinder  him,  he  raised  his right  arm  as  if  to  strike  himself."  The  same  author,  in  addition to  these,  says,  "  that  he  slew  another  of  his  own  sons  before  Iiis death,  being  the  third  that  had  already  been  slain  by  his  orders, and  that  immediately  after  this,  he  breathed  out  his  life,  not  without excessive  torture."

Such,  then,  was  the  end  of  Herod,  who  thus  suffered  the  just punishment  for  the  crimes  that  he  committed  in  the  miurder  of  the children  of  Bethlehem,  when  he  designed  the  destruction  of  our Saviour.  After  this,  an  angel  appearing  in  a  dream  to  Joseph, who  was  then  in  Egypt,  directed  him  to  return  with  the  child and  his  mother,  revealing  to  him  that  they  were  dead  who  had sought  the  life  of  the  infant.  To  this  account  the  Evangelist adds :  "  But  he  hearing  that  Archelaus  reigned  in  Judea,  in  the place  of  Herod,  his  father,  was  afraid  to  go  thither,  and  being warned  in  a  dream,  he  retired  into  the  parts  of  Galilee."

CHAPTER  IX.

Of  the  times  of  Pilate.

The  same  historian  also  agrees  with  the  statements  respecting the  government  of  Archelaus  after  Herod's  death ;  and  relates  in what  manner  he  succeeded  to  the  kingdom  of  the  Jews,  by  the will  of  Herod,  his  father,  and  the  confirmation  of  it  by  Cesar  Au
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  39

gustiis ;  as  also,  that  he  having  lost  his  kingdom  after  ten  years, his  brothers  Philip  and  Herod,  the  younger,  together  with  Lysanias,  had  the  government  of  their  tetrarchies.  The  same  author, in  the  eighteenth  book  of  his  Antiquities,  says,  "  that  about  the twelfth  year  of  the  reign  of  Tiberius,  (for  he  succeeded  to  the  , empire  after  Augustus,  who  had  reigned  fifty-seven  years,)  Pontius '
Pilate  was  appointed  over  Judea,  and  remained  there  upon  the whole  ten  years,  almost  to  the  death  of  Tiberius.  Hence  the fraud  of  those  persons  is  plainly  proved,  who  lately,  and  at  other times  have  given  currency  to  certain  spurious  acts  against  our Saviour.  In  which  the  very  time  of  the  date  proves  the  falsehood of  the  inventors.  For  in  the  fourth  consulship  of  Tiberius, which  was  in  the  seventh  year  of  his  reign,  those  things  are  said to  have  occurred,  v/hich  they  have  dared  to  say  respecting  his salutary  sufiering.  At  which  time,  indeed,  it  is  plain,  that  Pilate was  not  yet  appointed  over  .ludea,  if  Joscphus  is  to  be  credited, who  plainly  says,  in  the  work  already  cited,  that  Pilate  was  appointed procurator  of  Judea,  by  Tiberius,  in  the  twelfth  year  of his  reign.

CHAPTER  X.

llie  high  priests  of  the  Jews,  under  ichom  Christ  promulgated  his
doctrines.

It  was  about  the  fifteenth  year  of  the  reign  of  Tiberius,  according to  the  Evangelist,  in  the  fourth  year,  that  Pilate  was procurator  of  Judea,  when  Herod,  Lysanias,  and  Philip,  as  tetrarchs,  held  the  government  of  the  rest  of  Judea,  when  our Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Clirist  was  in  his  thirtieth  year,  that  he came  to  the  baptism  of  John,  and  then  made  the  beginning  of promulgating  his  gospel.  The  holy  Scriptures,  moreover,  relate that  he  passed  the  whole  time  of  his  public  ministry  under  the high  priests  Annas  and  Caiaphas;  intimating,  that  during  the  years of  their  priesthood,  the  whole  time  of  his  m.inistry  was  terminated.   For,  beginning;  with  the  pontificate  of  Annas,  and  continu
10 ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

ing  after  tliat  of  Caiaphas,  the  whole  of  this  interval  does  not even  give  us  four  years.  The  rites,  indeed,  of  the  law,  having heen  already  aholished  since  that  period,  with  it  were  also  annulled the  privileges  of  the  priesthood,  viz.  of  continuing  it  for life,  and  of  hereditary  descent.  Under  the  Ptoman  governors, however,  different  persons  at  dilferent  times  were  appointed  as high  priests,  who  did  not  continue  in  office  more  than  a  year.
Josephus,  indeed,  relates  that  there  were  four  high  priests  in succession  from  Annas  to  Caiaphas.  Thus,  in  his  book  of  Antiquities, he  writes  in  the  following  manner :  "  Valerius  Gratus, having  put  a  period  to  the  priesthood  of  Annas,  promoted  Ishmael, the  son  of  Baphi,  to  the  office ;  and,  removing  him  also,  not  long after,  he  appointed  Eicazar,  the  son  of  Annas,  who  liad  heen high  priest,  to  the  office.  After  the  lapse  of  a  year,  removing also  him,  he  transfers  tlie  priesthood  to  Simon,  the  son  of  Camithus.  But  he,  also,  did  not  contiiuie  to  hold  the  honour  longer than  a  year,  when  he  was  succeeded  by  Josephus,  surnamed Caiaphas."  Hence  the  whole  time  of  our  Saviour's  ministry  is proved  not  to  embrace  four  entire  years ;  there  being  four  high priests  for  four  years,  from  Annas  to  the  appointment  of  Caiaphas, each  of  which  held  the  office  a  year  respectively.  Caia2)has,  indeed,  is  justly  shown,  by  the  gospel  narrative,  to  have been  high  priest  in  that  year  in  which  our  Saviour's  suffisrings were  finished.  With  which  present  observation,  the  time  of Christ's  ministry  is  also  proved  to  agree.  Our  Lord  and  Saviour Jesus  Christ,  not  very  long  after  the  commencement  of  his  public ministr}',  elected  the  twelve,  whom  he  called  Apostles,  by  way  of eminence  over  the  rest  of  his  disciples.  He  also  appointed seventy  others  beside  these,  whom  he  sent,  two  and  two,  before him  into  every  place  and  city  whither  he  himself  was  about  to  go.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  41

CHAPTER  XL

The  testimonies  respecting  John  the  Baptist  and  Christ.

As  it  was  not  long  before  this  that  John  the  Baptist  was  beheaded by  Herod  the  younger,  the  holy  Scriptures  record  the  fact, which  is  also  confirmed  by  Josephus,  who  has  expressly  made  mention of  Herodias  by  name,  and  the  circumstance  of  her  being  married to  Herod,  though  she  was  the  wife  of  his  brother ;  Herod having  first  divorced  his  former  lawful  wife.  She  was  a  daughter of  Aretas,  king  of  Arabia  Petrjea.  But  having  forced  Herodias from  her  husband  yet  living,  and  on  whose  account  also  he slew  John,  he  was  involved  in  a  war  with  Aretas  for  the  disgrace inflicted  on  his  daughter;  in  which  war  he  relates  that,  when coming  to  battle,  the  army  of  Herod  was  completely  destroyed ;
and  that  he  suffered  all  this,  on  account  of  the  crime  that  he  committed against  John.  But  the  same  Josephus,  in  this  account,  in which  he  confesses  that  John  was  a  most  righteous  man,  also  bears testimony  to  what  is  recorded  of  liim  in  the  narratives  of  the  gospels. He  relates,  also,  that  Herod  lost  his  kingdom  on  account  of the  same  Herodias,  and  that  he  was  driven  into  exile  with  her, and  condemned  to  dwell  at  Vienna,  a  city  of  Gaul.  These  facts are  stated  by  him  in  the  eighteenth  book  of  his  Antiquities,  where in  the  same  paragraphs,  he  also  writes  thus  concerning  John:
"  To  some  of  the  Jews,  the  army  of  Herod  seemed  to  have  been destroyed  by  God;  who  thus,  with  signal  justice,  avenged  John, called  the  Baptist.  For  Herod  slew  him,  a  good  man,  and  one who  exhorted  the  Jews  to  the  practice  of  virtue,  and  with  the pursuit  of  righteousness  and  piety  towards  God,  to  receive  baptism. For  this  baptism  appeared  to  have  been  imparted  to  him for  this  object,  not  with  the  view  to  avoid  a  few  trifling  sins,  but for  the  purification  of  the  body,  as  far  as  the  mind  had  been  first purified  by  righteousness.

"  And  when  many  others  flocked  to  him,  for  they  were  also much  delighted  with  listening  to  his  discourses,  Herod,  dreading the  great  confidence  of  men  in  him,  lest,  perhaps,  he  might  stimulate them  to  a  revolt,  (for  they  seemed  disposed  to  do  any  thinf;

42  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

at  his  suggestion,)  considered  it  much  better,  before  any  change should  be  attempted  by  him,  to  anticipate  by  destroying  him ;
than  after  a  revolution,  when  involved  in  difficulties,  to  repent when  it  was  too  late.  In  consequence  of  Herod's  suspicions,  therefore, he  was  sent  in  bonds  to  the  aforesaid  prison  of  Machaerus, and  there  slain."  After  relating  these  things  concerning  John, Josephus  in  the  same  work,  also  makes  mention  of  our  Saviour  in the  following  manner:  "About  the  same  time,  there  was  a  certain Jesus,  a  wise  man,  if  indeed  it  is  proper  to  call  him  a  man.  For he  was  a  performer  of  extraordinary  deeds  •  a  teacher  of  men, that  received  his  doctrine  with  delight;  and  he  attached  to  himself many  of  the  Jews,  many  also  of  the  Greeks.  This  was  Christ.
Pilate  having  inflicted  the  punishment  of  the  cross  upon  him,  on the  accusation  of  our  principal  men,  those  who  had  been  attached to  him  before  did  not,  however,  afterwards  cease  to  love  him:
for  he  appeared  to  them  alive  again  on  the  third  day,  according  to the  holy  prophets,  who  had  declared  these  and  innumerable  other wonderful  things  respecting  him.  The  race  of  the  Christians,  who derive  their  name  from  him,  likewise  still  continues."  When  such testimony  as  this  is  transmitted  to  us  by  an  historian  who  sprung from  the  Hebrews  themselves,  both  respecting  John  the  Baptist and  our  Saviour,  what  subterfuge  can  be  left,  to  prevent  those from  being  convicted  destitute  of  all  shame,  who  have  forged  the acts  against  them  1     This  however,  may  suffice  on  this  subject.

CHAPTER  XII.

Of  the  disciples  of  our  Lord.

The  names  of  our  Saviour's  apostles  are  sufficiently  obvious  to every  one,  from  his  gospels ;  but  of  the  seventy  disciples,  no  catalogue is  given  any  where.  Barnabas,  indeed,  is  said  to  have  been one  of  them,  of  whom  there  is  distinguished  notice  in  the  Acts of  the  Apostles ;  and  also  in  St.  Paul's  epistle  to  the  Galatians, Sosthenes,  who  sent  letters  with  Paul  to  the  Corinthians,  is  said to  have  been  one  of  these.     Clement,  in  the  fifth  of  his  Hypoty
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  43

poses  or  Institutions,  in  which  he  also  mentions  Cephas,  of  whom Paul  also  says,  that  he  came  to  Antioch,  and  "  that  he  withstood him  to  his  face ;" — says,  that  one  who  had  the  same  name  with Peter  the  apostle,  was  one  of  the  seventy ;  and  that  Matthias,  who was  numbered  with  the  apostles  in  place  of  Judas,  and  he  who had  been  honoured  to  be  a  candidate  with  him,  is  also  said  to  have l)een  deemed  worthy  of  the  same  calhng  with  the  seventy.  They also  say  that  Thaddeus  was  one  of  them ;  concerning  whom,  I  shall presently  relate  a  narrative  that  has  come  down  to  us.  Moreover, if  any  one  observe  with  attention,  he  will  find  more  disciples of  our  Saviour  than  the  seventy,  on  the  testimony  of  Paul,  who  says, that  "  he  appeared  after  his  resurrection,  first  to  Cephas,  then  to the  twelve,  and  after  these  to  five  hundred  brethren  at  once."  Of whom,  he  says,  "  some  are  fallen  asleep,"  but  the  greater  part  were living  at  the  time  he  wrote.  Afterwards,  he  says,  he  appeared  to James ;  he,  however,  was  not  merely  one  of  these  disciples  of  our Saviour,  but  he  was  one  of  his  brethren.  Lastly,  when  beside  these, there  still  was  a  considerable  number  who  were  apostles  in  imitation of  the  twelve,  such  as  Paul  himself  was,  he  adds,  saying  "  afterwards he  appeared  to  all  the  apostles."

This  account  may  suffice  respecting  these  apoitles ;  but  the history  of  Thaddeus,  already  mentioned  by  us,  was  as  follows.

CHAPTER  XIIL

JVairative  respecting  the  prince  of  Edessa,
The  divinity  of  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  being  famed abroad  among  all  men,  in  consequence  of  his  wonder-working power,  attracted  immense  numbers,  both  from  abroad  and  from the  remotest  parts  of  Judea,  with  the  hope  of  being  cured  of their  diseases  and  various  afflictions.  Agbarus,  therefore,  who reigned  over  the  nations  beyond  the  Euphrates  with  great  glory, and  who  had  been  wasted  away  with  a  disease,  both  dreadful and  incurable  by  human  means  when  he  heard  the  name  of  Jesus frequently  mentioned,  and  his  miracles  unanimously  attested
44  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

by  all,  sent  a  suppliant  message  to  him,  by  a  letter-carrier,  entreating a  deliverance  from  his  disease.  But,  though  he  did  not yield  to  his  call  at  that  time,  he  nevertheless  condescended  to write  him  a  private  letter,  and  to  send  one  of  his  disciples  to  heal his  disorder ;  at  the  same  time,  promising  salvation  to  him  and  all his  relatives.  And  it  was  not  long,  indeed,  before  the  promise was  fulfilled.  After  the  resurrection,  however,  and  his  return  to the  heavens,  Thomas,  one  of  the  twelve  apostles,  by  a  divine  im pulse,  sent  Thaddeus,  who  was  also  one  of  the  seventy  disciples to  Edessa,  as  a  herald  and  evangelist  of  the  doctrines  of  Christ And  by  his  agency  all  the  promises  of  our  Saviour  were  ful filled.  Of  this,  also,  we  have  the  evidence,  in  a  written  an swer,  taken  from  the  public  records  of  the  city  of  Edessa,  then under  the  government  of  the  king.  For  in  the  public  registers there,  which  embrace  the  ancient  history  and  the  transactions  of Agbarus,  these  circumstances  respecting  him  are  found  still  preserved down  to  the  present  day.  There  is  nothing,  however, like  hearing  the  epistles  themselves,  taken  by  us  from  the  archives, and  the  style  of  it  as  it  has  been  literally  translated  by  us,  from the  Syriac  language  •

COPY    OF  THE    LETTER    WRITTEN    BY  KING  AGBARUS,  TO  JESUS,  AND
SENT  TO  HIM,  AT  JERUSALEM,  BY  ANANIAS,  THE  COURIER.

Agbarus,  prince  of  Edessa,  sends  greeting  to  Jesus  the  excellent Saviour,  who  has  appeared  in  the  borders  of  Jerusalem.  I
have  heard  the  reports  respecting  thee  and  thy  cures,  as  performed by  thee  without  medicines  and  without  the  use  of  herbs.  For  as  it is  said,  thou  causest  the  blind  to  see  again,  the  lame  to  walk,  and thou  cleansest  the  lepers,  and  thou  castest  out  impure  spirits  and demons,  and  thou  healest  those  that  are  tormented  by  long  diseas(;, and  thou  raisest  the  dead.  And  hearing  all  these  things  of  thee,  I
concluded  in  my  mind  one  of  two  things :  either  that  thou  art God,  and  having  descended  from  heaven,  doest  these  things,  or  else doing  them,  thou  art  the  son  of  God.  Therefore,  now  I  have  written and  besought  thee  to  visit  me,  and  to  heal  the  disease  with  which I  am  afflicted.     I  have,  also,  heard  that  the  Jews  murmur  against
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  45

thee,  and  are  plotting  to  injure  thee ;  I  have,  however,  a  very small  but  noble  state,  which  is  sufficient  for  us  both."

This  epistle,  he  thus  wrote,  whilst  yet  somewhat  enlightened by  the  rays  of  divine  truth.  It  is,  also,  worth  the  time  to  learn the  epistle  sent  to  him  from  Jesus,  by  the  same  bearer,  which, though  very  brief,  is  yet  very  nervous,  written  in  the  following style :

THE  AXSWER  OF  JESUS,  TO  KING  AGBARUS,  BY  THE  COURIER,  ANANIAS.

Blessed  art  thou,  O  Agbarus,  who,  without  seeing,  hast  believed in  me.  For  it  is  written  concerning  me,  that  they  who  have seen  me  will  not  believe,  that  they  who  have  not  seen,  may  believe and  live.  But  in  regard  to  what  thou  hast  written,  that  I
should  come  to  thee,  it  is  necessary  that  I  should  fulfil  all things  here,  for  which  I  have  been  sent.  And  after  this  fulfilment, thus  to  be  received  again  by  Him  that  sent  me.  And  after I  have  been  received  up,  I  will  send  to  thee  a  certain  one  of  my disciples,  that  he  may  heal  thy  affliction,  and  give  life  to  thee  and to  those  who  are  with  thee."

To  these  letters  there  was,  also,  subjoined  in  the  Syriac  language :  "  After  the  ascension  of  Jesus,  Judas,  who  is  also  called Thomas,  sent  him  Thaddeus,  the  apostle,  one  of  the  seventy;
who,  when  he  came,  remained  at  the  house  of  Tobias,  the  son of  Tobias.  When  the  report  was  circulated  concerning  his  arrival, and  he  became  publicly  known  by  the  miracles  which  he performed,  it  was  communicated  to  Agbarus,  that  an  apostle  of Jesus  had  came  thither,  as  he  had  written.  Thaddeus,  therefore, began  in  the  power  of  God  to  heal  every  kind  of  disease  and  infirmity ;  so  that  all  were  amazed.  But  when  Agbarus  heard  the great  deeds  and  miracles  which  he  performed,  and  how  he  healed men  in  the  name  and  pov/er  of  Jesus  Christ,  he  began  to  suspect that  this  was  the  very  person  concerning  whom  Jesus  had  written, saying,  after  I  have  been  received  up  again,  I  will  send  to  thee one  of  my  disciples,  who  shall  heal  thy  affliction.  Having,  therefore, sent  for  Tobias,  with  whom  he  staid,  I  have  heard,  said  he, that  a  certain  powerful  man,  who  hath  come  from  Jerusalem,  is staying  at  thy  house,  and  is  performing  many  cures  in  the  name
46  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

of  Jesus.  He  answered,  Yea,  my  lord,  a  certain  stranger  has come,  who  hath  lodged  with  me,  and  is  performing  many  wonders.
And  he  replied.  Bring  him  to  me.  Tohias,  then,  returning  to Thaddeus,  said  to  him,  Agharus  the  king  having  sent  for  me,  has told  me  to  conduct  thee  to  him,  that  thou  mayest  heal  his  disorder.
And  Thaddeus  replied,  I  will  go,  since  I  have  been  sent  with  power, to  him.  Tohias,  therefore,  arose  early  the  next  day,  and  taking Thaddeus  with  him,  came  to  Agharus.  When  he  came,  his  nobles were  present,  and  stood  around.  Immediately  on  his  entrance, something  extraordinary  appeared  to  Agharus,  in  the  countenance of  the  apostle  Thaddeus ;  which  Agbarus  observing,  paid  him  reverence. But  all  around  were  amazed ;  for  they  did  not  perceive the  vision  which  appeared  to  Agbarus  alone :  he  then  asked  Agbarus whether  he  were  truly  a  disciple  of  Jesus  the  Son  of  God,  who had  said  to  him,  I  will  send  one  of  my  disciples  to  thee,  who  will heal  thy  sickness,  and  will  give  life  to  tliee  and  to  all  thy  connexions?
And  Thaddeus  answered.  Since  thou  hast  had  great  confidence  in the  Lord  Jesus,  who  hath  sent  me,  therefore,  I  am  sent  to  thee.  And, moreover,  if  thou  believest  in  him,  with  increasing  faith,  the  petitions of  thy  heart  shall  be  granted  thee,  as  thou  believest.  And Agbarus  replied.  So  much  did  I  beheve  in  him  that  I  had  formed the  resolution  to  take  forces,  in  order  to  destroy  those  Jews who  had  crucified  him,  had  I  not  been  deterred  from  my  purpose by  a  regard  for  the  Roman  empire.  Thaddeus  replied.  Our Lord  and  God,  Jesus  the  Christ,  hath  fulfilled  the  will  of  his  Father, and  having  fulfilled  it,  w^as  taken  up  again  to  his  Father.
Agbarus  saith  to  him,  I  have  believed  both  in  him  and  in  his  Father. Then  said  Thaddeus,  Therefore,  I  place  my  hand  upon thee  in  the  name  of  the  same  Lord  Jesus.  And  this  being  done, he  was  immediately  healed  of  the  sickness  and  sufferings  with which  he  was  afflicted.*  And  Agbarus  was  amazed,  that  just  as he  had  heard  respecting  Jesus,  so  in  very  deed  he  received it  through  his  disciple  and  apostle  Thaddeus,  who  had  healed him  without  any  medicine  and  herbs,  and  not  only  him,  but  Abdas  also,  the  son  of  Abdas,  who  was  afflicted  with  the  podagra.
He  also,  approaching,  fell  down  at  his  feet,  and  received  his  benediction, with  the  imposition  of  his  hand,  and  was  healed.     Many
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  47

of  the  same  city  were  also  healed  by  the  same  apostle,  who  performed wonderful  and  great  deeds,  and  proclaimed  the  w^ord  of God.  After  this,  said  Agbarus,  Thaddeus,  thou  doest  these  things by  the  power  of  God,  and  we  are  filled  with  wonder.  But,  beside these  things,  I  request  thee,  also,  to  inform  me  respecting  the coming  of  Jesus,  how  he  was  born,  and  as  to  his  power,  with  what power  he  performed  these  things  which  we  have  heard.  And Thaddeus  answered.  Now,  indeed,  I  will  not  tell  thee,  since  I  have been  sent  to  proclaim  the  word  abroad ;  but  to-morrow  assemble all  thy  citizens,  and  before  them  I  will  proclaim  the  word  of  God, and  will  sow  among  them  the  word  of  life,  both  respecting  the coming  of  Jesus,  as  he  was,  and  respecting  his  mission,  and  for what  purpose  he  was  sent  by  the  Father ;  also,  concerning  the power  of  his  works,  and  the  mysteries  which  he  declared  in  the world ;  by  what  power,  also,  he  did  these  things,  concerning  his new  mode  of  preaching,  his  lowly  and  abject  condition,  his  humiliation in  his  external  appearance,  how  he  humbled  himself,  and died,  and  lowered  his  divinity ;  what  things,  also,  lie  suffered  from the  Jews ;  how  he  was  crucified,  and  descended  into  hell,  (hades,)
and  burst  the  bars  which  had  never  yet  been  broken,  and  rose again,  and  also  raised  with  himself  the  dead  that  had  slept  for ages.  And  how  he  descended  alone,  but  ascended  with  a  great multitude  to  his  Father.  And  how  he  sitteth  at  the  right  hand of  God  and  the  Father,  with  glory,  in  the  heavens ;  and  how  he is  about  to  come  again  with  glory  and  power,  to  judge  the  living and  dead. — Agbarus,  therefore,  commanded  his  subjects  to  be called  early  in  the  morning,  and  to  hear  the  annunciation  of Thaddeus ;  and  after  this,  he  commanded  gold  and  silver  to  be given  him ;  but  he  would  not  receive  it,  saying,  If  we  have  left our  own,  how  shall  we  take  what  belongs  to  others?  These things  were  done  in  the  three  hundred  and  fortieth  year.  Which also,  we  have  literally  translated  from  the  Syriac  language,  opportunely as  we  hope,  and  not  without  profit.
7

BOOK  IT.

PRELIMINARY.

Whatsoever  particulars  it  was  necessary  for  us  to  premise  in this  Ecclesiastical  History,  both  respecting  the  divinity  of  the saving  word  and  the  antiquity  of  the  doctrines  which  we  teach, as  also  of  the  antiquity  of  that  evangelical  life  which  Christians lead,  these  particulars  we  have  already  discussed,  together  with the  circumstances  of  his  late  appearance  among  men,  of  his  sufferings, of  the  election  of  his  apostles,  and  have  exhibited  the proofs  in  the  condensed  subjects  of  the  preceding  book.  Let  us now,  also,  examine  the  circumstances  that  followed  his  ascension, presenting  some  from  the  divine  Scriptures,  and  others  from  such other  documents  to  which  we  shall  have  occasion  to  refer.

CHAPTER  L

The  course  pursued  by  the  Apostles  after  the  ascension  of  Christ.

First  then,  in  the  place  of  Judas  the  traitor,  Matthias  was chosen  by  lot,  who,  as  was  shown  above,  was  also  one  of  the disciples  of  the  Lord.  There  were  appointed  also,  with  prayer and  the  imposition  of  hands,  by  the  apostles,  approved  men,  unto the  office  of  deacons,  for  the  public  service ;  these  were  those seven  of  whom  Stephen  was  one.  He  was  the  first,  also,  after our  Lord,  who  at  the  time  of  ordination,  as  if  ordained  to  this very  purpose,  was  stoned  to  death  by  the  murderers  of  the  Lord And  thus  he  first  received  the  crown  answering  to  his  name,  of the  victorious  martyrs  of  Christ.  Then  also  James,  called  the brother  of  our  Lord,  because  he  is  also  called  the  son  of  Joseph.

48

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  49

For  Joseph  was  esteemed  the  father  of  Christ,  because  the  Virgin being  betrothed  to  him,  "  she  was  found  with  child  by  the  Holy Ghost  before  they  came  together,"  as  the  narrative  of  the  holy gospels  shews.  This  James,  therefore,  whom  the  ancients,  on  account of  the  excellence  of  his  virtue,  surnamed  the  Just,  was  the first  that  received  the  episcopate  of  the  church  at  Jerusalem.  But Clement,  in  the  sixth  book  of  his  Institutions,  represents  it  thus :
''  Peter,  and  James,  and  John,  after  the  ascension  of  our  Saviour, though  they  had  been  preferred  by  our  Lord,  did  not  contend  for the  honour,  but  chose  James  the  Just  as  bishop  of  Jerusalem."
And  the  same  author,  in  the  seventh  book  of  the  same  work, writes  also  thus :  "  The  Lord  imparted  the  gift  of  knowledge  to James  the  Just,  to  John  and  Peter  after  his  resurrection,  these  delivered it  to  the  rest  of  the  apostles,  and  they  to  the  seventy,  of whom  Barnabas  was  one.  There  were,  however,  two  Jameses;
one  called  the  Just,  who  was  thrown  from  a  wing  of  the  temple, and  beaten  to  death  with  a  fuller's  club,  and  another,  who  was beheaded.  Paul  also  makes  mention  of  the  Just  in  his  epistles.
"  But  other  of  the  apostles,"  says  he,  "  saw  I  none,  save  James  the brother  of  our  Lord."  About  this  time  also,  the  circumstances  of our  Saviour's  promise,  in  reference  to  the  king  of  the  Osrhoenians, took  place.  For  Thomas,  under  a  divine  impulse,  sent  Thaddeus as  herald  and  evangelist,  to  proclaim  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  as  we have  shown  from  the  public  documents  found  there.

When  he  came  to  these  places,  he  both  healed  Agbarus  by  the word  of  Christ,  and  astonished  all  there  with  the  extraordinary miracles  he  performed.  After  having  sufficiently  disposed  them by  his  works,  and  led  them  to  adore  the  power  of  Christ,  he  made them  disciples  of  the  Saviour's  doctrine.  And  even  to  this  day,  the whole  city  of  Edessa  is  devoted  to  the  name  of  Christ ;  exhibiting no  common  evidence  of  the  beneficence  of  our  Saviour  likewise to  them.  And  let  this  suffice,  as  taken  from  the  accounts  given in  ancient  documents.  But  let  us  pass  again  to  the  Holy  Scriptures. As  the  first  and  greatest  persecution  arose  among  the  Jews after  the  martyrdom  of  Stephen,  against  the  church  of  Jerusalem, and  ail  the  disciples  except  the  twelve  were  scattered  throughout Judea  and  Samaria ;  some,  as  the  Holy  Scriptures  say,  coming  as

G

50  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

far  as  Phoenice,  and  Cyprus,  and  Antiocb,  they  were  not  yet  in  a situation  to  venture  to  impart  the  faith  to  the  nations,  and  therefore only  announced  it  to  the  Jews.  During  this  time,  Paul  also was  yet  laying  waste  the  church,  entering  the  houses  of  the  believers, dragging  away  men  and  women,  and  delivering  them  over to  prison.  Philip,  also,  one  of  those  wdio  had  been  ordained  to  the office  of  deacons,  being  among  those  scattered  abroad,  went  down to  Samaria.  Filled  with  divine  power,  he  first  proclaimed  the divine  word  to  the  inhabitants  of  that  place.  But  so  greatly  did the  divine  grace  co-operate  with  him,  that  even  Simon  Magus, with  a  great  number  of  other  men,  were  attracted  by  his  discourses. But  Simon  had  become  so  celebrated  at  that  time,  and had  such  influence  with  those  that  were  deceived  by  his  impostures, that  they  considered  him  the  great  power  of  God.  This same  Simon,  also,  astonished  at  the  extraordinary  miracfes  performed by  Philip  through  the  power  of  God,  artfully  assumed,  and even  pretended  faith  in  Christ,  so  far  as  to  be  baptized ;  and  what is  surprising,  the  same  thing  is  done  even  to  this  day,  by  those who  adopt  his  most  foul  heresy.  These,  after  the  manner  of  their founder,  insinuating  themselves  into  the  church,  like  a  pestilential and  leprous  disease,  infected  those  with  the  greatest  corruption, into  whom  they  were  able  to  infuse  their  secret,  irremediable,  and destructive  poison.  Many  of  these,  indeed,  have  already  been expelled,  w^hen  they  were  caught  in  their  wickedness ;  as  Simon himself,  when  detected  by  Peter,  suffered  his  deserved  punishment. For  as  the  annunciation  of  the  Saviour's  gospel  was  daily advancing,  by  a  certain  divine  providence,  a  prince  of  the  queen of  the  Ethiopians,  as  it  is  a  custom  that  still  prevails  there  to  be governed  by  a  female,  was  brought  thither,  and  was  the  first  of the  Gentiles  that  received  of  the  mysteries  of  the  divine  w^ord from  Philip.  The  apostle,  led  by  a  vision,  thus  instructed  him ;
and  he,  becoming  the  first  fruits  of  believei's  throughout  the  world, is  said  to  have  been  the  first,  on  returning  to  his  country,  that proclaimed  the  knowledge  of  God  and  the  salutary  abode  of  our Saviour  among  men.  So  that,  in  fact,  the  prophecy  obtained  its fulfilment  through  him :  "  Ethiopia  stretcheth  forth  her  hands  unto God."    After  this,  Paul,  that  chosen  vessel,  not  of  men,  nor  through
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  51

men,  but  by  the  revelation  of  Jesus  Christ  himself,  and  God  the Father,  who  raised  him  from  the  dead,  is  appointed  an  apostle, being  honoured  with  the  call  by  a  vision  and  voice  of  revelation from  heaven.

CHAPTER  IL

Haw  Tiberius  was  affected,  when  informed  by  Pilate  respecting

Christ

The  fame  of  our  Lord's  remarkable  resurrection  and  ascension being  now  spread  abroad,  according  to  an  ancient  custom  prevalent among  the  rulers  of  the  nations,  to  communicate  novel  occurrences to  the  emperor,  that  nothing  might  escape  him,  Pontius Pilate  transmits  to  Tiberius  an  account  of  the  circumstances  concerning the  resurrection  of  our  Lord  from  the  dead,  the  report  of which  had  already  been  spread  throughout  all  Palestine.  In  this account,  he  also  intimated  that  he  ascertained  other  miracles  respecting him,  and  that  having  now  risen  from  the  dead,  he  was  believed to  be  a  God  by  the  great  mass  of  the  people.  Tiberius  referred the  matter  to  the  senate,  but  it  is  said  they  rejected  the proposition,  in  appearance,  because  they  had  not  examined  into  this subject  first,  according  to  an  ancient  law  among  the  Romans,  that no  one  should  be  ranked  among  the  gods  unless  by  a  vote  and  decree of  the  senate ;  in  reality,  however,  because  the  salutary  doctrine of  the  gospel  needs  no  confirmation  and  co-operation  of  men.

The  senate  of  the  Romans,  therefore,  having  thus  rejected  the doctrine  of  our  Saviour  as  it  was  announced,  and  Tiberius  still continuing  to  hold  the  opinion  he  had  before  cherished,  formed  no unreasonable  projects  against  the  doctrine  of  Christ.  This  is  the testimony  of  TertuUian,  a  man  who  made  himself  accurately  acquainted with  the  laws  of  the  Romans,  and,  besides  his  eminence in  other  respects,  w^as  particularly  distinguished  among  the eminent  men  of  Rome,  and  in  his  Apology  for  the  Christians  in the  Roman  tongue,  which  is  also  translated  into  the  Greek,  to  give
his  own  words,  writes  after  the  following  manner .  "  In  order  to
7#

52  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

give  also  an  account  of  these  laws  from  their  origin,  it  was  an  ancient decree,  that  no  one  should  be  consecrated  a  god  by  the  emperor, before  it  had  been  approved  by  the  senate.  Marcus  Aurelius  has  done  this,  in  reference  to  a  certain  idol,  Alburnus,  so  that this  evidence  has  been  given  in  favour  of  our  doctrine,  that  divine dignity  is  conferred  among  you  by  the  decrees  of  men.  Unless  a god  pleases  men  he  is  not  made  a  god ;  and  thus,  according  to  this procedure,  it  is  necessary  that  man  should  be  propitious  to  the god.  Tiberius,  therefore,  under  whom  the  name  of  Christ  was spread  throughout  the  world,  when  this  doctrine  was  announced to  him  from  Palestine,  where  it  first  began,  communicated  with the  senate,  being  obviously  pleased  with  the  doctrine ;  but  the senate,  as  they  had  not  proposed  the  measure,  rejected  it.  But he  continued  in  his  opinion,  threatening  death  to  the  accusers  of the  Christians ;  a  divine  providence  infusing  this  into  his  mind,  that the  gospel  having  freer  scope  in  its  commencement,  might  spread every  where  over  the  world."

CHAPTER  III.

Hoiv  the  Christian  doctrine  soon  spread  throvghout  the  ichole  icai^Id.

Thus,  then,  under  a  celestial  influence  and  co-operation,  the doctrine  of  the  Saviour,  Hke  the  rays  of  the  sun,  quickly  irradiated the  whole  world.  Presently,  in  accordance  with  divine prophecy,  the  sound  of  his  inspired  evangelists  and  apostles  had gone  throughout  all  the  earth,  and  their  words  to  the  ends  of  the world.  Throughout  every  city  and  village,  like  a  replenished barn  floor,  churches  were  rapidly  found  abounding,  and  filled with  members  from  every  people.  Those  who.  in  consequence  of the  delusions  that  had  descended  to  them  from  their  ancestors, had  been  fettered  by  the  ancient  disease  of  idolatrous  superstition, were  now  liberated,  by  the  power  of  Christ,  through  the teaching  and  miracles  of  his  messengers.  And,  as  if  delivered  from dreadful  masters,  and  emancipated  from  the  most  cruel  bondage, on  the  one  hand  renounced  the  whole  multitude  of  gods  and  de
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  53

mons,  and  on  the  other,  confessed  that  there  was  only  one  true God,  the  Creator  of  all  things.  This  same  God  they  now  also honoured  with  the  rites  of  a  true  piety,  under  the  influence of  that  inspired  and  reasonable  worship  which  had  been  planted among  men  by  our  Saviour.  But  the  gratuitous  benevolence of  God,  being  now  poured  out  also  upon  the  rest  of  the  nations, Cornelius  was  the  first  of  Cesarea  in  Palestine,  who,  with  his whole  house,  received  the  faith  in  Christ,  through  a  divine  vision and  the  agency  of  Peter ;  as  did  also  a  great  number  of  Greeks at  Antioch,  to  whom  the  gospel  had  been  preached  by  those  who were  scattered  by  the  persecution  of  Stephen.

The  church  at  Antioch,  also,  now  flourishing  and  abounding  in members,  and  the  greatest  number  of  teachers  coming  hither from  Jerusalem,  with  whom  were  Barnabas  and  Paul,  and  many other  brethren  with  them,  the  epithet  of  Christians  first  sprung up  at  that  place,  as  from  a  grateful  and  productive  soil.  Agabus, also,  one  of  the  assembled  prophets,  uttered  a  prediction  respecting the  impending  famine,  and  Paul  and  Barnabas  were  delegated to  proceed  to  the  relief  of  the  necessities  of  the  brethren.

CHAPTER  IV.

Caius  (Caligula)  after  the  death  of  Tiberius,  appoints  Agrippa king  of  Vie  Jews,  after  punishing  Herod  with  perpetual  exile.

Tiberius  died,  after  having  reigned  about  twenty-two  years, and  Caius,  receiving  the  empire  next,  immediately  conferred  the Jewish  government  on  Agrippa,  appointing  him  king  over  the tetrarchy  both  of  Philip  and  Lysanias.  To  these,  not  long  after, he  adds  also  the  tetrarchy  of  Herod,  after  having  inflicted  the punishment  of  perpetual  exile  upon  Herod,  together  with  his wife  Herodias,  for  their  numerous  crimes.  This  was  the  Herod who  was  concerned  in  the  passion  of  our  Saviour.  Josephus bears  testimony  to  these  facts.  During  the  reign  of  this  emperor, Philo  became  noted,  a  man  most  distinguished  for  his  learning, not  only  among  very  manv  of  our  own,  but  of  those  that  came
54  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

from  abroad.  As  to  his  origin,  he  was  a  descendant  of  the  Ht.
brews,  inferior  to  none  at  Alexandria  in  point  of  dignity  of  family and  birth.  As  to  the  divine  Scriptures,  and  the  institutions  of  his country,  how  greatly  and  extensively  he  laboured,  his  w^ork speaks  for  itself.  And  how  well  skilled  in  philosophy  and  the liberal  studies  of  foreign  countries,  there  is  no  necessity  to  say, since,  as  he  was  a  zealous  follower  of  the  sect  of  Plato  and  Pythagoras, he  is  said  to  have  surpassed  all  of  his  contemporaries.

CHAPTER  V.

Philo  was  sent  on  an  embassy  to  Caius,  in  behalf  of  the  Jews.

This  author  has  given  us  an  account  of  the  sufferings  of  the  Jews in  the  reign  of  Caius,  in  five  books.  He  there  also  relates  the madness  of  Caius,  who  called  himself  a  god,  and  was  guilty  of innumerable  oppressions  in  the  exercise  of  his  power.  He  mentions the  miseries  of  the  Jews  under  him,  and  the  embassy  which he  himself  performed  when  sent  to  the  city  of  Rome,  in  behalf of  his  countrymen  at  Alexandria;  how  that  when  he  pleaded  before Caius,  for  the  laws  and  institutions  of  his  ancestors,  he  re- .
ceived  nothing  but  laughter  and  derision  in  return,  and  had  well nigh  incurred  the  risk  of  his  life.  Josephus  also  mentions  these things  in  the  eighteenth  book  of  his  Antiquities,  in  these  words :

"  A  sedition  having  also  arisen  between  the  Jews  dwelling  at Alexandria  and  the  Greeks,  three  chosen  deputies  are  sent  from each  of  the  factions,  and  these  appeared  before  Caius.  One  of the  Alexandrian  deputies  was  Apion,  who  uttered  many  slanders against  the  Jews ;  among  other  things,  saying,  that  they  treated the  honours  of  Cesar  with  contempt,  that  whilst  all  others,  as many  as  were  subject  to  the  Roman  empire,  erected  altars  and temples  to  Caius,  and  in  other  respects  regarded  him  as  a  god, they  alone  considered  it  disgraceful  to  raise  statues  to  his  honour, and  to  swear  by  his  name.  Apion  having  thus  uttered  many  and severe  charges  by  which  he  hoped  that  Caius  would  be  roused,  as was  very  probable,  Philo,  the  chief  of  the  Jewish  embassy,  a  man
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  55

illustrious  in  every  respect,  being  the  brother  of  Alexander,  the Alabarch,*  and  not  unskilled  in  philosophy,  was  well  prepared  to enter  upon  a  defence  against  these  charges.  But  he  was  precluded from  this  by  Caius,  who  ordered  him  straightway  to  be gone,  and  as  he  was  very  much  incensed,  it  was  very  evident  that he  was  meditating  some  great  evil  against  them.  Philo  departed, covered  with  insult,  and  told  the  Jews  that  were  with  him,  they  had good  reason  to  console  themselves,  that  although  Caius  was  enraged at  them,  he  was  already  in  fact  challenging  God  against  himself."
Thus  far  Josephus.  xA.nd  Philo  himself,  in  the  embassy  which  he describes,  details  the  particulars  of  what  was  then  done  to  him, with  great  accuracy.  Passing  by  the  greatest  part  of  these,  I
shall  only  state  those  by  which  it  wall  be  made  manifest  to  the reader,  that  these  things  happened  to  the  Jews 'forthwith,  and at  no  distant  period,  on  account  of  those  things  which  they  dared to  perpetrate  against  Christ.  First,  then,  he  relates,  that  in  the reign  of  Tiberius,  at  Rome,  Sejanus,  who  was  then  in  great  favour with  Tiberius,  had  made  every  effort  to  destroy  the  whole  nation of  the  Jews  from  the  foundation,  and  that  in  Judea  Pontius  Pilate, under  whom  the  crimes  were  committed  against  our  Saviour, having  attempted  something  contrary  to  what  was  lawful  among the  Jews  respecting  the  temple  at  Jerusalem,  which  was  then yet  standing,  excited  them  to  the  greatest  tumults.

CHAPTER  VI.

What  evils  overichelmed  the  Jens,  after  their  presumption  against

Christ

After  the  death  of  Tiberius,  Caius  having  received  the  government, besides  many  other  innumerable  acts  of  tyranny  against many,  did  not  a  little  afflict  the  whole  nation  of  the  Jews  particularly.    We  may  soon  learn  this,  from  the  declaration  of  the  same
*  Alabarch.]  The  Alabarch  was  the  chief  magistrate  among  the  Jews  at Alexandria.

56  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

author,  in  which  he  writes  as  follows :  "  So  great  was  the  caprice c[  Caius  in  his  conduct  towards  all,  hut  especiall}^  towards  the  nation of  the  Jews.  As  he  was  excessively  hostile  to  these,  he  appropriated their  places  of  worship  to  himself  in  all  the  cities,  beginning with  those  at  Alexandria,  filling  them  with  his  images  and statues.  For  having  permitted  it  when  others  erected  them  of fheir  own  accord,  he  now  began  to  erect  them  by  absolute  command. But  the  temple  in  the  holy  city,  which  had  been  left  untouched as  yet,  and  been  endowed  with  privileges  as  an  inviolable asylum,  he  changed  and  transformed  into  a  temple  of  his  own, that  it  should  be  pubhcly  called  the  temple  of  Caius  the  younger, the  visible  Jupiter,  (eni^avovg  Atog-)  Many  other  and  almost  indescribable calamities,  the  same  author  relates,  as  happening  to  the Jews  of  Alexandria,  during  the  reign  of  the  aforesaid  emperor,  in his  second  book,  to  which  he  gave  the  title,  '  On  the  Virtues.^  Josephus  also  agrees  with  him,  who  likewise  intimates  that  the  calamities of  the  whole  nation  took  their  rise  from  the  times  of  Pilate, and  the  crimes  against  our  Saviour.  Let  us  hear  then,  whc  t he  also  says  in  the  second  book  of  the  Jewish  War.  "  Pilate being  sent  by  Tiberias  as  procurator  of  Judea,  at  night  carried the  covered  images  of  Caesar  into  the  temple ;  these  are  called statues.  The  following  day,  this  excited  the  greatest  disturbance among  the  Jews.  For  they  that  were  near,  were  confounded  at the  sight,  as  a  contemptuous  prostitution  of  their  legal  institutions ;
for  they  do  not  allow  any  image  to  be  set  up  in  their  city."  Comparing these  accounts  with  the  v/ritings  of  the  evangelists,  you will  perceive,  that  it  w^as  not  long  before  that  exclamation  came upon  them,  which  they  uttered  under  the  same  Pilate,  and  by which  they  cried  again  and  again  that  they  had  no  other  king but  Caisar.  After  this,  the  same  historian  records,  that  forthwith another  calamity  overtook  them,  in  these  w^ords :  "  But  after  these things,  he  (i.  e.  Pilate,)  excited  another  tumult,  by  expending  the public  treasure  which  is  called  Corban,  in  the  construction  of  an aqueduct.  This  extended  nearly  three  hundred  stadia,  (furlongs, i.  e.  from  the  city.)  The  multitude  were  sorely  grieved  at  it ;  and when  Pilate  came  to  Jerusalem,  surrounding  the  tribunal,  they began  to  cry  out  against  him.      But  having  anticipated  theii'

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  57

tumult,  he  planted  his  armed  soldiers  against  the  multitude,  and previously  intermixed  them,  concealed  under  the  same  common dress  with  the  people.  He  had  also  forbidden  them  to  use their  swords,  but  ordered  them  to  strike  the  noisy  with  clubs.
The  signal  he  gave  from  the  tribunal.  The  Jews  being  thus beaten,  many  of  them  perished  in  consequence  of  the  blows,  many also  being  trodden  to  death  by  their  own  countrymen  in  the  flight.
The  multitude  thus  overawed  by  the  misfortune  of  those  slam, held  their  peace."  The  same  writer  mentions  innumerable  other commotions  that  were  raised  beside  these,  in  Jerusalem  itself;
showing  that  from  that  time  tumults,  and  wars,  and  plots  of  mischief, one  after  another,  never  ceased  in  the  city  and  all  Judea, until,  last  of  all,  the  siege  of  Vespasian  overwhelmed  them.  Thus, then,  the  divine  justice  overtook  the  Jews  in  this  way,  for  their crimes  against  Christ.

CHAPTER   VII.

How  Pllaic  destroyed  Inmself.

It  is  proper  also,  to  observe,  how  it  is  asserted  that  this  same Pilate,  who  was  governor  at  our  Saviour's  crucifixion,  in  the  reign of  Caius,  whose  times  we  are  recording,  fell  into  such  calamities that  he  was  forced  to  become  his  own  murderer,  and  the  avenger of  his  own  wickedness.  Divine  justice,  it  seems,  did  not  long  protract his  punishment.  This  Is  stated  by  those  Greek  historians, who  have  recorded  the  Olympiads  in  order,  together  with  the transactions  of  the  times.

CHAPTER  VIII.

The  famine  that  happened  in  the  reign  of  Claudiics.

Caius,  however,  had  not  reigned  four  years,  when  he  was  succeeded by  Claudius,  in  the  sovereignty  of  the  empire.   In  his  reign

H

58  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

there  was  a  famine  that  prevailed  over  the  whole  world;  ar event,  indeed,  which  has  been  handed  down  by  historians  very far  from  our  doctrine ;  and  by  which  the  prediction  of  the  prophet Agabus,  recorded  in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  respecting  the impending  famine  over  the  whole  world,  received  its  fulfilment.
Luke,  however,  in  the  Acts,  after  stating  the  famine  in  the  time of  Claudius,  and  after  recording  how  by  means  of  Paul  and  Barnabas, the  brethren  at  Antioch  had  sent  to  those  of  Judea,  according to  the  ability  of  each  one,  also  adds  the  following.

CHAPTER   IX.

The  martyrdom  of  the  Apostle  James.

"  About  this  time,  (it  is  manifest  he  means  the  reign  of  Claudius,) Herod  the  king  prepared  to  afflict  some  of  the  church.  But he  slew  James,  the  brother  of  John  with  the  sword."  Of  this James,  Clement  adds  a  narrative  worthy  of  note,  in  the  seventh book  of  his  Institutions,  evidently  recording  it  according  to  the tradition  which  he  had  received  from  his  ancestors.  He  says,  that the  man  who  led  him  to  the  judgment  seat,  seeing  him  bearing his  testimony  to  the  faith,  and  moved  by  the  fact,  confessed  himself a  Christian.  Both  therefore,  says  he,  were  led  away  to  die.
On  their  way,  he  entreated  James  to  be  forgiven  of  him,  and James  considering  a  httle,  replied,  "  Peace  be  to  thee,"  and  kissed nim ;  and  then  both  were  beheaded  at  the  same  time.  Then  also, as  the  Scriptures  say,  Herod,  at  the  death  of  James,  seeing  that the  deed  gave  pleasure  to  the  Jews,  also  attacks  Peter,  and  having committed  him  to  prison,  had  well  nigh  executed  the  same murderous  intention  as^ainst  him,  had  he  not  been  wonderfullv delivered  from  his  prison  by  an  angel  appearing  to  him  at  night, and  thus  liberated  to  proclaim  the  gospel.  Such  was  the  providence of  God  in  behalf  of  Peter.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  59

CHAPTER  X.

Herod  Agrippa  persecuting  the  Apostles,  immediately  experienced the  divine  judgment.

The  consequences,  however,  of  the  king's  attempts  against  the apostles,  were  not  long  deferred,  but  the  avenging  minister  of divine  justice  soon  overtook  him  after  his  plots  against  the  apostles. As  it  is  also  recorded  in  the  book  of  Acts,  he  proceeded  to Cesarea,  and  there  on  a  noted  festival,  being  clad  in  a  splendid and  royal  dress,  he  harangued  the  people  from  an  elevation  before the  tribunal.  The  whole  people  applauding  him  for  his harangue,  as  if  it  were  the  voice  of  a  god,  and  not  of  man,  the Scriptures  relate,  "  that  the  angel  of  the  Lord  immediately  smote him,  and  being  consumed  by  worms,  he  gave  up  the  ghost."  It is  wonderful  to  observe,  likewise,  in  this  singular  event,  the  coincidence of  the  history  given  by  Josephus,  with  that  of  the  sacred Scriptures.  In  this  he  plainly  adds  his  testimony  to  the  truth,  in the  nineteenth  book  of  his  Antiquities,  where  he  relates  the  miracles in  the  following  words :  "  But  he  (i.  c.  Herod)  had  completed the  third  year  of  his  reign  over  all  Judea,  and  he  came  to  the city  of  Cesarea,  which  was  formerly  called  the  tower  of  Strato.
There  he  exhibited  public  shows  in  honour  of  Cesar,  knowing  it  to be  a  kind  of  festival  for  his  safety.  At  this  festival  was  collected a  great  number  of  those  who  were  the  first  in  power  and  dignity throughout  the  province.  On  the  second  day  of  the  shows,  being  clad in  a  robe  all  wrought  wdth  silver,  of  a  wonderful  texture,  he  proceeded to  the  theatre  at  the  break  of  day.  There,  the  silver  irradiated with  the  reflection  of  the  earliest  sunbeams,  wonderfully  glittered, reflecting  a  terrific  and  awful  brilliancy  upon  the  beholders.
Presently  the  flatterers  raised  their  shouts  in  different  ways ;  such, however,  as  were  not  for  his  good,  calling  him  a  god,  and  imploring his  clemency  in  such  language  as  this :  "  We  have  feared  thee thus  far  as  a  man,  but  henceforth  we  confess  thee  to  be  superior to  the  nature  of  mortals."  The  king  did  not  either  chide  them, or  disclaim  the  impious  flattery.  After  a  little  w^hile,  raising  him8

60  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

self,  he  saw  an  angel  sitting  above  his  head.  This  he  immediately perceived  was  the  cause  of  evils,  as  it  had  once  been  the  cause  of his  successes.  And  he  felt  a  pain  through  his  heart,  and  a  sudden pang  seize  his  bowels,  which  began  to  torment  him  with  great violence.  Turning,  then,  to  his  friends,  he  said,  "  I,  your  god,  am now  commanded  to  depart  this  life,  and  fate  will  soon  disprove your  false  assertions  respecting  me.  He  whom  you  have  called an  immortal,  is  now  compelled  to  die,  but  we  must  receive  our destiny  as  it  is  determined iDy  God.  Neither  have  we  passed  our life  inglorious^,  but  in  that  splendour  which  is  so  much  extolled."
Saying  this,  he  laboured  much  with  the  increase  of  pain.  He was  then  carried  with  great  haste  into  the  palace,  while  the report  spread  throughout  the  people,  that  the  king  at  all  events would  soon  die.  But  the  multitude  with  their  wives  and  chil dren,  after  their  country's  custom,  sitting  in  sackcloth,  implored God  in  behalf  of  the  king;  all  places  were  filled  with  lamentation and  weeping.  But  the  king,  as  he  lay  reclining  in  an elevated  chamber,  and  looking  down  upon  them  falling  prostrate to  the  ground,  could  not  refrain  from  tears  himself  At length,  overpowered  by  the  pain  of  his  bowels,  for  four  days  in succession,  he  ended  his  life,  in  the  fifty-fourth  year  of  his  age and  seventh  of  his  reign.  He  reigned,  therefore,  four  years under  Caius  Cesar,  had  the  tetrarchy  of  Philip  three  years,  and received  that  of  Herod  in  the  fourth  year,  reigning  subsequently three  years  under  Claudius  Cesar."  Thus  far  Josephus :  in  which statement,  as  in  others,  so  in  this,  I  cannot  but  admire  his  agreement with  the  divine  Scriptures.  But  if  he  should  appear  to  any to  differ,  in  regard  to  the  epithet  of  the  king ;  yet  the  time  and the  fact  show  that  it  was  the  same  individual,  whether  it  happened by  an  error  in  writing  that  the  name  was  changed,  or  in  consequence of  a  double  name  applied  to  him ;  such  as  was  the  case with  many.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  61

CHAPTER  XL

Concerning  the  impostor  Theudas  and  his  folloicers.

As  Luke  in  the  Acts,  also  introduces  Gamaliel  in  the  consultation respecting  the  apostles,  saying,  that  at  this  time  "arose Theudas,  who  gave  out  that  he  was  some  one,  but  who  was  destroyed, and  all  that  obeyed  him  were  dispersed,"  let  us  now, also,  add  the  written  testimony  of  Josephus  respecting  the  same circumstance.  He  relates,  in  the  book  already  quoted,  the  following particulars.  "  While  Fadus  was  procurator  of  Judea,  a certain  impostor  called  Theudas  persuaded  the  multitude  to  take their  possessions  with  them  and  follow  him  to  the  river  Jordan.
For  he  said  he  was  a  prophet,  and  that  the  Jordan  should  be  divided at  his  command,  and  aflfbrd  them  an  easy  passage  through it.  And  witli  such  promises  he  deceived  many.  But  Fadus  did not  suffer  them  to  enjoy  their  folly,  but  sent  a  troop  of  horsemen against  them,  who,  falling  upon  them  unexpectedly,  slew  many and  took  many  alive  ;  but  having  taken  Theudas  himself  captive, they  cut  off' his  head  and  carried  it  to  Jerusalem."  Besides  this,  he also  mentions  the  famine  that  took  place  under  Claudius,  as  follows.

CHAPTER  XII.

Helen,  queen  of  the  Osrhoenians.

About  this  time  it  happened  that  the  great  famine  took  place in  Judea,  in  which  also  queen  Helen  having  purchased  grain  from Egypt,  with  large  sums,  distributed  to  the  needy.  You  will  also find  this  statement  in  accordance  with  that  in  the  Acts  of  the Apostles,  where  it  is  said,  that  according  to  the  ability  of  the  disciples at  Antioch,  they  determined,  each  one,  to  send  to  the  assistance of  those  in  Judea.  Which  also  they  did,  sending  to  the elders  by  the  hands  of  Barnabas  and  Paul.     Of  this  same  Helen,
62  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

mentioned  by  the  historian,  splendid  monuments  are  still  to  be seen  in  the  suburbs  of  the  city  (Jerusalem)  now  called  iElia.
But  she  is  said  to  have  been  queen  of  the  Adiabeni.

CHAPTER    XIII.

Simon  Magus
The  faith  of  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  having  now been  diffused  abroad  among  all  men,  the  enemy  of  salvation  devising some  scheme  of  seizing  upon  the  imperial  city  for  himself, brought  thither  Simon,  whom  we  mentioned  before.  Coming  to the  aid  of  his  insidious  artifices,  he  attached  many  of  the  inhabitants of  Rome  to  himself,  in  order  to  deceive  them.  This  is  attested by  Justin,  who  was  one  of  our  distinguished  writers,  not  long after  the  times  of  the  apostles,  concerning  whom  I  shall  say  what is  necessary  in  the  proper  place.  The  reader  may  see  for  himself, in  the  first  defence  of  our  religion,  addressed  to  Antonine, where  he  writes  thus:  "And  after  the  ascension  of  our  Lord  into heaven,  certain  men  w^ere  suborned  by  demons  as  their  agents, who  said  that  they  were  gods.  These  were  not  only  suffered  to pass  without  persecution,  but  were  even  deemed  worthy  of  honours by  you.  Simon,  a  certain  Samaritan  of  the  village  called Githon,  was  one  of  the  number,  who,  in  the  reign  of  Claudius  Cesar, performed  many  magic  rites  by  the  operation  of  demons,  was considered  a  god,  in  your  imperial  city  of  Rome,  and  was  honoured by  you  with  a  statue  as  a  god,  in  the  river  Tiber,  (on  an  island.)
between  the  two  bridges,  having  the  superscription  in  Latin,  Simoni  Deo  Sancto,  which  is.  To  Simon  the  Holy  God ;  and  nearly all  the  Samaritans,  a  few  also  of  other  nations,  worship  him,  confessing him  as  the  Supreme  God.  A  certain  Helen  also,  is  of  this class,  who  had  before  been  a  public  prostitute  in  Tyre  of  Phenicia,  and  at  that  time  attached  herself  to  Simon,  and  was  called the  first  idea  that  proceeded  from  him."  Such  is  the  testimony of  Justin,  with  which  also  Irenasus  coincides  in  his  first  book against  Heresies,  where  he  also  subjoins  an  account  of  the  impiety
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  63

and  corrupt  doctrine  of  the  man,  which  it  would  be  superfluous for  us  to  detail,  as  it  is  in  the  power  of  those  who  wish  to  learn the  origin,  and  the  lives,  and  the  false  doctrines,  not  only  of  this one,  but  likewise  of  all  the  heresiarchs  respectively,  as  also  of  the institutions  and  principles  of  all  of  them,  treated  at  large  in  the abovementioned  book  of  Irenasus.  Simon,  however,  we  have  understood to  have  taken  the  lead  in  all  heresy ;  from  whom  also,  down to  the  present  time,  those  that  followed  his  heresy,  still  affected the  modest  philosophy  of  the  Christians,  so  celebrated  for  purity of  life  among  all.  From  this,  however,  they  appeared  again  to depart,  and  again  to  embrace  the  superstitions  of  idols,  falling down  before  the  pictures  and  statues  of  tliis  selfsame  Simon,  and the  aforesaid  Helen  with  him ;  venturing  to  offer  them  worship  by incense,  and  sacrifices,  and  libations.  Those  matters  which  are kept  more  secret  by  them  than  these,  at  the  first  mention  of  which they  say  one  would  be  astonished,  and  to  use  an  oracular  phrase with  them,  would  be  confounded,  they  happen  in  truth  to  be  so full  of  amazement,  and  folly,  and  madness,  such  as  tliey  are,  that it  is  not  only  impossible  to  commit  them  to  writing,  but  even  to utter  them  with  the  lips  to  modest  men,  on  account  of  their  excessive baseness  and  obscenity.  For  every  vile  corruption  that could  either  be  done  or  devised,  is  practised  by  this  most  abominable heresy,  of  a  sect  that  ensnare  those  wretched  females  who are  literally  overwhelmed  with  every  kind  of  vice.

CHAPTER  XIV.

The  preaching  of  Peter  in  the  city  of  Rome.

Such  was  the  wickedness  of  which  that  mahgnant  power,  the enemy  of  all  good,  and  the  waylayer  of  human  salvation,  constituted Simon  the  father  and  author  at  this  time,  as  if  with  a  view to  make  him  a  great  and  powerful  antagonist  to  the  divine  purposes of  our  Saviour  and  his  apostles.  Nevertheless,  that  divine and  celestial  grace  which  co-operates  with  its  servants,  by  their appearance  and  presence,  soon  extinguished  the  flame  that  had
64  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

been  kindled  by  the  wicked  one,  humbling  and  casting  down through  them,  "  every  height  that  elevated  itself  against  the knowledge  of  God."  Wherefore,  neither  the  conspiracy  of  Simon, nor  that  of  any  other  one  then  existing,  was  able  to  effect  anything against  those  apostolic  times.  For  the  declaration  of  the  truth prevailed  and  overpowered  all,  and  the  divine  word  itself,  now shining  from  heaven  upon  men,  and  flourishing  upon  earth,  and dwelling  with  his  apostles,  prevailed  and  overpowered  every  opposition. Immediately  the  aforesaid  impostor  being  smitten  as  to his  mental  eye,  by  a  divine  and  supernatural  brilliancy,  as  w^hen, on  a  former  occasion  in  Judea,  he  was  convicted  of  his  wickedness by  the  apostle  Peter,  he  undertook  a  great  journey  from  the east  across  the  sea,  and  fled  to  tlie  west,  thinking  that  this  was the  only  way  for  him  to  live  according  to  his  mind.  Entering  the city  of  Rome,  by  the  co-operation  of  that  malignant  sphit  which had  fixed  its  seat  there,  his  attempts  were  soon  so  far  successful, as  to  be  honoured  as  a  god,  with  the  erection  of  a  statue  by  the inhabitants  of  that  city.  This,  however,  did  not  continue  long ;
for  immediately  under  the  reign  of  Claudius,  by  the  benign  and gracious  providence  of  God,  Peter,  that  powerful  and  great  apostle, who  by  his  courage  took  the  lead  of  all  the  rest,  was  conducted to  Rome  against  this  pest  of  mankind.  He,  like  a  noble  commander of  God,  fortified  with  divine  armour,  bore  the  precious merchandize  of  the  revealed  light  from  the  east  to  those  in  the west,  announcing  the  light  itself,  and  salutary  doctrine  of  the  soul the  proclamation  of  the  kingdom  of  God.

CHAPTER  XV.

The  Gospel  according  to  Marh.

The  divine  word  having  thus  been  established  among  the  Romans, the  power  of  Simon  was  soon  extinguished  and  destroyed together  with  the  man.  So  greatly,  however,  did  the  splendour of  piety  enlighten  the  minds  of  Peter's  hearers,  that  it  was  not sufficient  to  hear  but  once,  nor  to  receive  the  unwritten  doctrine
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  65

of  the  gospel  of  God,  but  they  persevered  in  every  variety  of  entreaties, to  solicit  M-rk  as  the  companion  of  Peter,  and  wliose gospel  we  have,  that  he  should  leave  them  a  monument  of  the doctrine  thus  orally  communicated,  in  writing.  Nor  did  they  cease their  solicitations  until  they  had  prevailed  with  the  man,  and  thus become  the  means  of  that  history  which  is^alled  the  Gospel  according to  Mark.  They  say  also,  that  the  apostle  (Peter,)  having jiscertained  what  was  done  by  the  revelation  of  the  spirit,  was deliglitcd  with  the  zealous  ardour  expressed  by  these  men,  and that  the  histor}^  obtained  his  authority  for  the  purpose  of  being read  in  the  churches.  This  account  is  given  by  Clement,  in  the sixth  book  of  his  Institutions,  whose  testimony  is  corroborated  also by  that  of  Papias,  bishop  of  Hierapolis.  But  Peter  makes  mention of  Mark  in  the  first  epistle,  which  he  is  also  said  to  have  composed at  the  same  city  of  Rome,  and  that  he  shows  this  fact,  by calling  the  city  by  an  unusual  trope,  Babylon ;  thus,  "  The  church at  Babylon,  elected  together  with  you,  saluteth  you,  as  also  my son  Marcus."  1  Pet.  v.  13.

CHAPTER  XVI.

Mai^k  first  proclaimed  Christianity  to  the  inhabitants  of  Egypt
The  same  Mark,  they  also  say,  being  the  first  that  was  sent  to Egypt,  proclaimed  the  gospel  there  which  he  had  written,  and first  established  churches  at  the  city  of  Alexandria.  And  so  great a  multitude  of  believers,  both  of  men  and  women,  were  collected there  at  the  very  outset,  that  in  consequence  of  their  extreme philosophical  disciphne  and  austerity,  Philo  has  considered  their pursuits,  their  assemblies,  and  entertainments,  and  in  short  their whole  manner  of  life,  as  deserving  a  place  in  his  descriptions.

66  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XVII.

77/e  account  given  by  Philo  respecting  the  Ascetics  of  Egypt.

The  same  autlior,T:^i  the  reign  of  Claudius,  is  also  said  to  have had  familiar  conversation  with  Peter  at  Rome,  whilst  he  was  proclaiming the  gospel  to  the  inhabitants  of  that  cit}'.  Nor  is  this  at all  improbable ;  since  the  work  of  v/hich  we  now  speak,  and  which was  subsequently  composed  by  him  at  a  late  period,  evidently comprehends  the  regulations  that  are  still  observed  in  our churches,  even  to  the  present  time ;  but  at  the  same  time  that  he describes  with  the  greatest  accuracy,  the  lives  of  our  ascetics,  he evidently  shows  that  he  not  only  knew,  but  approved,  whilst  he extolled  and  revered  the  apostolic  men  ot  his  day,  who  were  sprung probably  from  the  Plebrews ;  and  hence,  still  continuing  to  observe their  most  ancient  customs,  rather  after  the  Jewish  manner.  In the  book  that  he  wrote,  ''  On  a  Contemplative  Life,  or  those  who lead  a  Life  of  Prayer,"  he  avers  indeed,  that  he  would  add  nothing contrary  to  the  truth,  or  of  his  own  invention,  in  the  history  that he  was  about  to  write,  where  he  says,  that  these  persons  are called  Therapcuta3,  and  the  women  Therapeutrides.

Subjoining  the  reasons  of  such  an  appellation,  he  refers  its origin  either  to  the  fact,  that  like  physicians,  by  removing  the evil  affections,  they  healed  and  cured  the  minds  of  those  that joined  them,  or  to  their  pure  and  sincere  mode  of  serving  and worshipping  the  Deity.  Whether  Philo  himself  attached  this name  to  them  of  his  own  accord,  giving  an  epithet  well  suited  to the  manners  of  the  people,  or  whether  the  founders  really  called themselves  so  from  the  beginning,  as  the  name  of  Christians  was not  yet  spread  to  every  place,  are  points  that  need  not  be  so  accurately determined.  He  bears  witness,  however,  that  they  renounced their  property,  saying,  that  "  as  soon  as  they  commenced a  philosophical  Hfe,  they  divested  themselves  of  their  property, giving  it  up  to  their  relatives ;  then  laying  aside  all  the  cares  of life,  they  abandon  the  city  and  take  up  their  abode  in  solitary fields  and  gardens,  well  knowing  that  the  intercourse  with  per
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  67

sons  of  a  different  character  Is  not  only  unprofitable  but  injurious." There  were  at  this  time,  in  all  probability,  persons  who, under  the  influence  of  an  inspired  and  ardent  faith,  instituted  this mode  of  life  in  imitation  of  the  ancient  prophets.  Wherefore,  as it  is  recorded  in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  a  book  well  authenticated, that  all  the  associates  of  the  apostles,  after  selling  their possessions  and  substance  distributed  to  all  according  to  the  necessity of  each  one,  so  that  there  was  none  in  want  among  them.
"  For  as  many  as  had  lands  and  houses,  as  this  account  says,  selling them,  brought  the  value  of  the  property  sold,  and  laid  it  at the  apostles'  feet,  so  as  to  distribute  to  each  one  according  to his  necessity."  Philo  giving  his  testimony  to  facts  very  much  like these,  in  the  same  description  superadds  the  following  statement.
"  This  kind  of  men  is  every  where  scattered  over  the  world,  for both  Greeks  and  barbarians  should  share  in  so  permanent  a  benefit. They  abound,  however,  in  Egypt,  in  each  of  its  districts, and  particularly  about  Alexandria.

"But  the  principal  men  among  them  from  every  quarter  emigrate to  a  place  situated  on  a  moderate  elevation  of  land  beyond the  lake  Maria,  verv  advantas^eously  located  both  for  safetv  and temperature  of  the  air,  as  if  it  were  the  native  country  of  the TherapeutfP."  After  thus  describing  what  kind  of  habitations they  have,  he  speaks  thus  of  the  churches  in  the  place.  "  In every  house  there  is  a  sacred  apartment  which  they  call  the Semnaeum,  or  Monasterium,  where,  retired  from  men,  they  perform the  mysteries  of  a  pious  life.  Hither  they  bring  nothing with  them,  neither  drink  nor  food,  nor  anything  else  requisite  to the  necessities  of  the  body ;  they  only  bring  the  law  and  the  inspired declarations  of  the  prophets,  and  hymns,  and  such  things by  which  knowledge  and  piety  may  be  augmented  and  perfected." After  other  matters,  he  adds :  "  The  whole  time  between the  morning  and  evening,  is  a  constant  exercise ;  for  as  they  are engaged  with  the  sacred  Scriptures,  they  reason  and  comment upon  them,  explaining  the  philosophy  of  their  country  in  an  allegorical manner.  For  they  consider  the  verbal  interpretation  as signs  indicative  of  a  secret  sense  communicated  in  obscure  intimations.    They  have  also  commentaries  of  ancient  men,  who,  as
68  IXVLF.SlASTkWL    HISTORY.

tl\o  toundors  of  tho  soot,  liavo  loll  ukuiv  momimonis  of  (hoir  ilooirir.o  in  all.^^orioal  ropiw^ontations,  which  thoy  \ij;o  as  c\alain modoiS.  imitating:  tho  manner  o(  tho  original  institntion."  Those taets  appear  to  h.avo  boon  stated  hy  a  man  who.  at  least,  has  paid attention  to  those  that  have  expounded  the  saered  writiui^s,  Init it  is  highly  probable,  that  the  ancient  commentaries  which  he savs  thev  have,  are  the  very  gc^spels  and  writings  o(  the  apostles, and  probably  some  expositions  oi  the  anciiMU  prophets,  sucli  as are  contained  in  tb.e  epistle  to  the  Hebrews  and  many  others  ot St.  Paul's  epistles.  Alurwards  again,  concerning  the  new  psalms which  thev  composed,  he  thus  writes.  "Thus  thev  not  on\\  pass their  time  in  meditation,  but  compose  songs  ami  hynuis  imto  (lod, noting  them  of  necessity  with  measure  unconunonly  serious, throuc;h  everv  variety  of  metres  and  tunes,"  Many  oihcv  things concerning  these  pei^sons  he  writes  in  the  same  book.  Ibit  these it  appeared  necessary  to  select,  in  order  io  present  the  peculiarities of  their  ecclesiastical  discipline.  l>ut,  if  what  has  hc>en  said does  not  appear  to  any  one  io  belong  io  the  discipline  of  the  gospel, but  that  it  can  also  be  applied  to  others  besides  those  mentioned, let  him  at  least  be  convinced  by  the  s\d)si>(pient  (Uh  larations  of  the  author,  in  whicli,  if  he  is  at  all  impartial,  he  adduces an  irrefragable  testimony  on  the  same  subject.  I'or  thus  lie writes:  "But  laving  down  temperance  tirst  as  a  kind  o{  foundation in  their  minds,  upon  this  they  build  the  other  virtues.  For none  of  them  is  to  bring  food  or  drink  before  the  setting  o{  the sun,  since  they  judge  that  phikxsophical  exercises  should  be  prosecuted in  tlie  light,  but  the  necessities  of  the  body  in  the  dark Wlicnce  they  assign  the  one  to  the  day,  and  io  the  other  a  small portion  of  the  night.  But  some  o(  them  do  not  remend>er  i\\c\v lood  for  three  days,  when  influenced  by  an  unconunon  desire  of knowledge.  And  some  are  so  delighted,  and  feast  so  luxuriously on  the  doctrines  so  richly  and  profusely  furnislied  by  wisdom,  that they  forbear  even  twice  this  time,  and  arc  scarcely  induced  to take  necessary  food  even  for  six  days."  These  declarations  cS
Philo  respecting  those  of  our  conununion,  we  deem  obvious  and  in disputable.  But,  should  any  one  still  be  so  hardy  as  to  contradict, let  liim  at  lea^st  abandon  his  incredulity,  by  yielding  to  the
ECCLESIASTICAL  llir^TOKY.  69

more  powcrfui  demoastratioas,  which  is  to  be  found  among  none but  in  (}ic  religion  of  Christians,  according  to  the  gospel.  Our author  also  says,  that  there  were  also  females  that  meet  with those  of  whom  we  speak,  of  whom  the  most  are  aged  maideas, preserving  their  purity,  not  by  necessity,  as  some  of  the  priestesses among  the  Greeks,  but  rather  by  a  voluntary  determination, in  coasequence  of  that  zealous  desire  of  wisdom,  in  the  earnest  prosecution of  which,  they  disregard  the  pleasures  of  the  body ;  as they  are  desirous  not  of  a  mortal  progeny  but  an  iaimortal,  which the  heavenly  aiind  alone  is  able  to  produce  of  itself"  After  a  little, he  also  adds  the  following,  with  still  greater  stress.  "  But  they expound  the  sacrcx?  writings  by  obscure,  allegorical,  and  figurative expresi^ions.  Foi  the  whole  law  appears  to  these  persons  like  an animal,  of  which  the  literal  expressions  are  the  body,  but  the invisible  sense  that  lies  enveloped  in  the  expressions,  the  soul.
This  scase  was  first  pre-eminently  studied  by  this  sect,  discerning as  through  a  mirror  of  names,  the  admirable  beauties  of  the thoughts  reflected."  Why  should  we  add  to  these  their  meetings, -ind  the  separate  abodes  of  the  men  and  the  women  in  these meetings,  and  the  exercises  performed  by  them,  which  are  still in  vogue  among  us  at  the  present  day,  and  which,  especially at  the  festival  of  our  Saviour's  passion,  we  are  accastomed  to pass  in  fasting  and  watching,  and  ia  the  study  of  the  divine word  ?  All  these  the  abovementioned  author  has  accurately described  and  stated  in  his  writings,  and  are  the  same  customs that  are  observed  by  us  alone,  at  the  present  day,  particularly the  vigils  of  the  great  festival,*  and  the  exercises  in  them,  and the  hymas  that  are  commonly  recited  among  us.  He  states  that whilst  one  sings  gracefully  with  a  certain  measure,  the  others, listcnin;^  in  silence,  join  in  sinpnc;  the  final  clauses  of  the  hj^mns;
also,  that  on  the  abovementioned  days,'  they  lie  on  straw  spread on  the  ground,  and  to  use  his  own  words,  "  they  abstain  altogether from  wine,  and  taste  no  flesh.  Water  is  their  only  drink,  and the  relish  of  their  bread,  salt  and  hyssop."  Besides  this,  he describes  the  grades  of  dignity  among  those  who  administer  the
*  T/te  great  festival.']     Our  author  here  speaLs  of  the  passion  week,  called  by the  Greek  fathcrc,  the  Great  WeeL

"/O  j:.v.wx.uoxA(ojLiCAL   HISTORY.

ecclesiastical  services  committed  to  them,  those  of  the  deacons and  the  presidencies  of  the  episcopate  as  the  higlicst  But, whosoever  desires  to  have  a  more  accurate  knovv^ledge  of  these things,  may  learn  them  from  the  history  already  cited;  but  that Philo,  w^hen  he  w^rote  these  statements,  had  in  view  the  fust  heralds of  the  gospel,  and  the  original  practices  handed  down  from the  apostles,  must  be  obvious  to  all.

CHAPTEPv  XVIII.

The  hoolis  of  Philo  that  have  come  down  to  us.

This  author,  who  was  copious  in  language,  comprehensive  iii thought,  sublime  and  elevated  in  his  views  of  the  sacred  Scriptures, has  made  his  exposition  of  the  sacred  books  equally  distinguished for  variety  of  matter  and  manner.  On  the  one  hand he  expounds  the  history  of  Genesis,  in  the  books  that  he  calls ''  Allegories  of  the  Divine  Laws,"  following  the  order  of  the  book ;
and  on  the  other,  he  forms  particular  divisions  of  the  chapters, according  to  the  subject  of  the  Scriptures,  with  the  objections and  solutions;  in  which  same  books  also  he  prefixes  the  tables  of the  questions  and  solutions  both  in  Genesis  and  Exodus  respectively There  are  also,  besides  these,  treatises  on  certain  problems  par ticularly  discussed,  such  as  two  "  On  Agriculture,"  and  two  "  On Drunkenness,"  and  some  others  distinguished  by  a  different  and peculiar  title.  Such  as  "  On  the  things  that  a  Sober  Mind  earnestly desires,  and  those  which  it  execrates ;"  also,  "  On  the  Confusion of  Tongues,"  and  the  treatise  "  On  Flight  and  Discovery,"  and that  "On  Literary  Convention,"  and  "On  the  question,  'Who  is Heir  to  things  Divine?  "  or,  "On  the  Division  of  Things  into  equal and  unequal."  INIoreover,  the  treatise  on  the  three  virtues,  which Moses  records  with  others.  Beside  these,  there  is  one  "  On  those whose  Names  are  changed,  and  wherefore  their  Names  have  been changed ;"  in  which  he  says,  that  he  wrote  also  on  the  first  and second  covenant.  There  is  also  a  work  of  the  same  author,  "  On Emigration,  and  on  the  Life  of  the  Wise  Man  perfect  in  Righteous^
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  71

ness ;"  or,  "  On  the  Unwritten  Laws."     Also,  "  On  Giants,"  or  "  On the  Immutahility  of  God."     And  also,  "  On  the  Proposition,  that Dreams,  according  to  Moses,  are  sent  by  God" — five  books.    These are  the  books  that  ha-\'e  come  down  to  us  on  Genesis,  but  on  Exodus we  are  acquainted  with  the  first  five  books  of  Questions  and Solutions;  also,  that  "On  the  Tabernacle,"  that  also  "On  the  Ten Comm.andments ;"  also,  the  first  four  treatises  on  the  laws  referring particularh^  to  tlie  summary  heads  of  the  ten  commandments.    Also,  the  treatise  "  On  the  Sacrifice  of  Animals,  and  the Forms  of  Sacrifices;"  that  also,  "  On  the  Rewards  proposed  in  the Law  to  Good  Men,  and  the  Punishments  and  Curses  to  the  Wicked."
Besides  all  these,  there  are  single  books  extant  of  the  same  author, as  the  treatises  "  On  Providence,"  and  the  book  composed  by  him "  On  the  Jews,"  and  "  The  Statesman."     To  this  may  be  added "  Alexander,"  or  "  On  Irrational  Animals  evincing  Reason."     Beside these  "  On  the  Proposition  that  a  Wicked  Man  is  a  Slave ;"  to this  is  subjoined  the  book,  "That  every  good  Man  is  free."     After which  he  added  the  book  "  On  a  Contemplative  Life,  or  the  Devout,"
from  which  we  have  related  the  circumstances  respecting  the life  of  the  apostolical  men.     Also,  the  interpretations  of  the  Hebrew names  in  the  law  and  prophets,  is  said  to  be  the  result  of his  industry.     The  same  author,  in  the  reign  of  Caius,  coming  to Rome,  is  said  to  have  recited  before  the  whole  senate,  in  the reign  of  Claudius,  what  he  wrote  on  the  impiety  of  Caius,  to  which he  humorously  prefixed  the  title  "  On  the  Virtues."     And  the  discourses were  so  much  admired  as  to  be  deemed  worthy  of  a  place in  the  libraries.     During  this  time  also,  Paul  finishing  his  journey from  Jerusalem,  and  thence  round  to  Illyricum,  Claudius  expelled the  Jews  from  Rome,  at  which  time  Aquila  and  Priscilla,  with  the other  Jews  that  left  Rome,  went  over  into  Asia.    There  they  abode with  the  apostle,  who  was  confirming  those  among  whom  churches had  been  already  established  by  him.     Of  these  facts  we  are  also formed  in  the  sacred  book  of  the  Acts.
9

72  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTEPv,  XIX.

The  calamity  ichich  befel  the  Jews  at  Jerusalem,  on  the  day  of  the
Passover,
Whilst  Claudius  held  the  government  of  the  empirej  it  happened about  the  festival  of  the  passover,  that  so  great  a  sedition and  disturbance  took  place  at  Jerusalem,  that  thirty  tliousand Jews  perished  of  those  alone  who  were  crowded  out  of  the  gates of  the  temple,  and  thus  trodden  to  death  by  one  another.  Thus the  festival  became  a  season  of  mourning  and  weeping  to  the whole  nation  and  every  family.  This  is  almost  literally  the  account given  by  Josephus.  But  Claudius  appointed  Agrippa,  the son  of  Agrippa,  king  of  the  Jews,  having  deputed  Felix  procurator of  all  Samaria  and  Galilee,  and  also  of  the  region  situated beyond  Jordan.  He  died  after  a  reign  of  thirteen  years  and eight  months,  leaving  Nero  as  his  successor  in  the  empire.

CHAPTEPv  XX.

The  deeds  done  at  Jerusalem  in  the  reim  of  A'ero.

•&'

Josephus,  in  the  twentieth  book  of  his  Antiquities,  relates  the sedition  of  the  priests,  which  happened  whilst  Felix  was  governor of  Judea,  under  the  reign  of  Nero,  in  the  following  words: —
•'  There  arose  also  a  sedition  between  the  chief  priests  on  the one  hand,  and  the  priests  and  the  leaders  of  the  people  at Jerusalem  on  the  other.  Each  one  of  tliem  forming  collections of  the  most  daring  and  disaffected,  becarpe  a  leader,  and when  these  met  they  encountered  each  other  witli  invectives and  stones.  Amid  these  disturbances  there  was  no  one  that  would interpose  to  rebuke  them,  but  all  tliis  was  done  with  the  greatest licentiousness,  as  in  a  state  destitute  of  a  ruler.  So  greatly  also, was  the  shamelessness  and  audacity  of  the  chief  priests,  that  they dared  to  send  forth  their  servants  to  the  barns,  to  seize  the  tithes due  to  the  priests ;  and  thus  it  happened  that  those  of  the  priests
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  73

that  were  destitute,  saw  themselves  perishing  for  want.  Thus did  the  violence  of  the  factions  prevail  over  all  manner  of  justice."
The  same  author  again  relates,  that  about  the  same  time  there sprung  up  a  certain  species  of  robbers  at  Jerusalem,  "  who,"  says he,  "  in  broad  day-light,  and  in  the  midst  of  the  city,  slew  those whom  they  met ;  but  particularly  at  festivals,  mixed  with  the multitude,  and  with  short  swords  concealed  under  their  garments, stabbed  the  more  distinguished  of  the  people.  When  these  fell, the  very  murderers  themselves  took  part  in  expressing  their  indignation with  the  bystanders,  and  thus  by  the  credit  which  they had  with  all,  they  were  not  detected.  And  first,  he  says,  that  the high  priest  Jonathan  was  slaughtered  by  them ;  and  after  him, many  were  slain  from  day  to  day,  so  that  the  alarm  itself  was more  oppressive,  than  the  very  evils  with  which  they  were  assailed ;  whilst  every  one  was  in  expectation  of  death,  as  in  the midst  of  battle.

CHAPTER   XXL

The  Egyptian  mentioned  in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles.

Next  in  order,  after  other  matters,  he  proceeds  in  his  narration. "  But  the  Jews  were  afflicted  with  an  evil  greater  than these,  by  the  Egyptian  impostor.  Having  come  into  the  country, and  assuming  the  authority  of  a  prophet,  he  collected  about  thirty thousand  that  were  seduced  by  him.  He  then  led  them  forth from  the  desert  to  the  Mount  of  Olives,  determining  to  enter  Jerusalem by  force,  and  after  subduing  the  Roman  garrison,  to  seize the  government  of  the  people,  using  his  followers  as  body  guard;?.
But  Felix  anticipated  his  attack  by  going  out  to  meet  him  with the  Roman  military,  and  all  the  people  joined  in  the  defence ;  so that  when  the  battle  was  fought,  the  Egyptian  fled  with  a  iew, and  the  most  of  his  followers  were  either  destroyed  or  captured."
This  account  is  given  by  Josephus  in  the  second  book  of  his  history ;  and  it  is  worth  while  to  subjoin  also  to  this  account  respecting the  Egyptian,  also  that  which  is  mentioned  in  the  Acts  of  the

K

74  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Apostles.  It  was  there  said  to  Paul,  by  the  centurion  under  Felix, when  the  multitude  of  the  Jews  raised  a  sedition  against  the apostle,  "  Art  thou  not  indeed  that  selfsame  Egyptian  that  excited and  led  away  the  thirty  thousand  assassins  into  the  desert  ?"
Such,  however,  were  the  events  that  happened  under  Felix.

CHAPTER  XXIL

Paul,  being  sent  prisoner  from  Judea  to  Rome,  after  his  defence, was  absolved  from  all  crime.

Festus  was  sent  by  Nero  as  successor  to  Fehx.  Under  him, Paul,  after  having  pleaded  his  cause,  was  sent  a  prisoner  to  Rome.
But  Aristarchus  was  his  companion,  whom  he  also  somewhere  in his  epistles  calls  his  fellow-prisoner ;  and  here  Luke,  that  wrote the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  after  showing  that  Paul  passed  two  whole years  at  Rome  as  a  prisoner  at  large,  and  that  he  preached  the gospel  without  restraint,  brings  his  history  to  a  close.  After  pleading his  cause,  he  is  said  to  have  been  sent  again  upon  the  ministry of  preaching,  and  after  a  second  visit  to  the  city,  that  he finished  his  life  with  martyrdom.  Whilst  he  was  a  prisoner,  he WTote  his  second  epistle  to  Timothy,  in  which  he  both  mentions his  first  defence  and  his  impending  death.  Hear,  on  these  points, his  own  testimony  respecting  himself.  "  In  my  former  defence  no one  was  present  with  me,  but  all  deserted  me.  May  it  not  be  laid to  their  charge.  But  the  Lord  was  with  me,  and  strengthened me,  that  through  me  the  preaching  of  the  gospel  might  be  fulfilled, and  all  the  nations  might  hear  it.  And  I  was  rescued  out of  the  lion's  mouth."  He  plainly  intimates  in  these  words,  "  On the  former  occasion  he  was  rescued  from  the  lion's  mouth,  that the  preaching  of  the  gospel  might  be  accomplished,"  that  it  was Nero  to  which  he  referred  by  this  expression,  as  is  probable  on account  of  his  cruelty.  Therefore  he  did  not  subsequently  subjoin any  such  expression  as,  "  he  will  rescue  me  from  the  lion's mouth,"  for  he  saw  in  spirit  how  near  his  approaching  death was.     Hence,  after  the  expression,  "  and  I  was  rescued  from  the
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  75

lion's  mouth,"  this  also,  "  the  Lord  will  rescue  me  from  every  evil work,  and  will  save  me  unto  his  heavenly  kingdom,"  indicating the  martyrdom  that  he  would  soon  suffer ;  which  he  more  clearly expresses  in  the  same  epistle,  "  for  I  am  already  poured  out,  and the  time  of  my  departure  is  at  hand."  And  indeed,  in  this  second epistle  to  Timothy,  he  shows  that  Luke  alone  was  with  him  when he  wrote,  but  at  his  former  defence  not  even  he.  Whence,  it  is probable,  that  Luke  wrote  his  Acts  of  the  Apostles  about  that time,  continuing  his  history  down  to  the  time  that  he  was  with Paul.  Thus  much  we  have  said,  to  show  that  the  martyrdom of  the  apostle  did  not  take  place  at  that  period  of  his  stay  at Rome  when  Luke  wrote  his  history.  It  is  indeed  probable,  that as  Nero  was  more  disposed  to  mildness  in  the  beginning,  that  the defence  of  tlie  apostle's  doctrine  would  be  more  easily  received ;
but  as  he  advanced  to  such  criminal  excesses  as  to  disregard  all right,  the  apostles  also,  with  others,  experienced  the  effects  of  the measures  pursued  against  them.

CHAPTER  XXIIL

The  martyrdom  of  James ^  who  was  called  the  brother  of  the  Lm^d,
But  the  Jews,  after  Paul  had  appealed  to  Caesar,  and  had  been sent  by  Festus  to  Rome,  frustrated  in  their  hope  of  entrapping  him by  the  snares  they  had  laid,  turn  themselves  against  James,  the brother  of  the  Lord,  to  whom  the  episcopal  seat  at  Jerusalem  was committed  by  the  apostles.  The  following  were  their  nefarious measures  also  against  him.  Conducting  him  into  a  public  place, they  demanded  that  he  should  renounce  the  faith  of  Christ  before all  the  people ;  but  contrary  to  the  sentiments  of  all,  wdth  a  firm voice,  and  much  beyond  their  expectation,  he  declared  himself fully  before  the  whole  multitude,  and  confessed  that  Jesus  Christ was  the  Son  of  God,  our  Saviour  and  J^ord.  Unable  to  bear  any longer  the  testimony  of  the  man,  who,  on  account  of  his  elevated virtue  and  pietv  was  deemed  the  most  just  of  men,  they  seized
76  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

the  opportunity  of  licentiousness  afforded  by  the  prevaiUng  anarchy, and  slew  him.  For  as  Festus  died  about  this  time  in  Judea, the  province  was  without  a  governor  and  head.  But,  as  to  the manner  of  James's  death,  it  has  been  already  stated  in  the  words of  Clement,  that  he  was  thrown  from  a  wing  of  the  temple,  and beaten  to  death  with  a  club.  Hegesippus  also,  who  flourished nearest  the  days  of  the  apostles,  in  the  fifth  book  of  his  Commentaries gives  the  most  accurate  account  of  him,  thus :  "  But  James, the  brother  of  the  Lord,  w^ho,  as  there  were  many  of  this  name, was  surnamed  the  Just  by  all,  from  the  days  of  our  Lord  until now,  received  the  government  of  the  church  with  the  apostlee^
This  apostle  was  consecrated  from  his  mother's  womb.  He  drank neither  wine  nor  fermented  liquors,  and  abstained  from  anima .
food.  A  razor  never  came  upon  his  head,  he  never  anointed  wit?
oil,  and  never  used  a  bath.  He  alone  was  allowed  to  enter  the sanctuary.  He  never  wore  woollen,  but  linen  garments.  He was  in  the  habit  of  entering  the  temple  alone,  and  was  often  found upon  his  bended  knees,  and  interceding  for  the  forgiveness  of  the people ;  so  that  his  knees  became  as  hard  as  camel's,  in  consequence of  his  habitual  supplication  and  kneeling  before  God.  And  indeed, on  account  of  his  exceeding  great  piety,  he  was  called  the  Just, and  Oblias  (or  Zaddick  and  Ozleam)  which  signifies  justice  and protection  of  the  people ;  as  the  prophets  declare  concerning  him.
Some  of  the  seven  sects,  therefore,  of  the  people,  mentioned  by  me above  in  my  Commentaries,  asked  him  what  was  the  door  to  Jesus ?  and  he  answered,  *  that  he  was  the  Saviour.' "  From  which, some  believed  that  Jesus  is  the  Christ.  But  the  aforesaid  heresies did  not  believe  either  a  resurrection,  or  that  he  was  coming  to give  to  every  one  according  to  his  works ;  as  many  however,  as did  believe  did  so  on  account  of  James.  As  there  were  many therefore  of  the  rulers  that  believed,  there  arose  a  tumult  among the  Jews,  Scribes,  and  Pharisees,  saying  that  there  was  danger, that  the  people  would  now  expect  Jesus  as  the  Messiah.  They came  therefore  together,  and  said  to  James,  "  We  entreat  thee, restrain  the  people,  who  are  led  astray  after  Jesus,  as  if  he  were the  Christ.  We  entreat  thee  to  persuade  all  that  are  coming  to the  feast  of  the  passover  rigjhtlv  concerning  Jesus;  for  we  all
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  77

have  confidence  in  thee.  For  we  and  all  the  people  bear  thee testimony  that  thou  art  just,  and  thou  respectest  not  persons.
Persuade  therefore  the  people  not  to  be  led  astray  by  Jesus,  for we  and  all  the  people  have  great  confidence  in  thee.  Stand  therefore upon  a  wing  of  the  temple,  that  thou  mayest  be  conspicuous on  high,  and  thy  words  may  be  easily  heard  by  all  the  people ;  for all  the  tribes  have  come  together  on  account  of  the  passover,  with some  of  the  Gentiles  also.  The  aforesaid  Scribes  and  Pharisees, therefore,  placed  James  upon  a  wing  of  the  temple,  and  cried  out to  him,  '  O  thou  just  man,  whom  we  ought  all  to  believe,  since  the people  are  led  astray  after  Jesus  that  was  crucified,  declare  to  us what  is  the  door  to  Jesus  that  was  crucified.'  And  he  answered with  a  loud  voice, '  Why  do  ye  ask  me  respecting  Jesus  the  Son of  ^lan  ?  He  is  now  sitting  in  the  heavens,  on  the  right  hand  of great  Power,  and  is  about  to  come  on  the  clouds  of  heaven.'  And as  many  were  confirmed,  and  gloried  in  this  testimony  of  James, and  said,  Hosanna  to  the  son  of  David,  these  same  priests  and Pharisees  said  to  one  another,  '  We  have  done  badly  in  affording such  testimony  to  Jesus,  but  let  us  go  up  and  cast  him  down,  that they  may  dread  to  believe  in  him.'  And  they  cried  out,  *  Oh,  oh, Justus  himself  is  deceived,'  and  they  fulfilled  that  which  is  written in  Isaiah,  '  Let  us  take  away  the  just,  because  he  is  offensive to  us ;  wherefore  they  shall  eat  the  fruit  of  their  doings.'  Is.  iii.
Going  up  therefore,  they  cast  down  the  just  man,  saying  to  one another,  '  Let  us  stone  James  the  Just.'  And  they  began  to  stone him,  as  he  did  not  die  immediately  when  cast  down ;  but  turning round,  he  knelt  down  saying,  '  I  entreat  thee,  0  Lord  God  and Father,  forgive  them,  for  they  know  not  what  they  do.'  Thus they  were  stoning  him,  when  one  of  the  priests  of  the  sons  of  Rechab,  a  son  of  tlie  Rechabites,  spoken  of  by  Jeremiah  the  prophet, cried  out  saying,  *  Cease,  what  are  you  doing  ?  Justus  is praying  for  you.'  And  one  of  them,  a  fuller,  beat  out  the  brains of  Justus  with  the  club  that  he  used  to  beat  out  clothes.  Thus he  suffered  martyrdom,  and  they  buried  him  on  the  spot  where his  tombstone  is  still  remaining,  by  the  temple.  He  became  a faithful  witness,  both  to  the  Jews  and  Greeks,  that  Jesus  is  the Christ.     Immediately  after  this,  Vespasian  invaded  and  took  Ju
78  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

dea."  Such  is  the  more  ample  testimony  of  Hegesippus,  in  which he  fully  coincides  with  Clement.  So  admirable  a  man  indeed  was James,  and  so  celebrated  among  all  for  his  justice,  that  even  the wiser  part  of  the  Jews  were  of  opinion  that  this  was  the  cause  of the  immediate  siege  of  Jerusalem,  which  happened  to  them  for no  other  reason  than  the  crime  against  him.     Josephus  also  has not  hesitated  to  superadd  this  testimony  in  his  works :  "  These things,"  says  he,  "  happened  to  the  Jews  to  avenge  James  the Just,    who  was  the    brother  of  him  that  is  called  Christ,  and whom  the  Jews  had  slain,  notwithstanding  his  pre-eminent  justice."    The  same  writer  also  relates  his  death,  in  the  twentieth book  of  his  Antiquities,  in  the  following  words :  "  But  Cesar  having learned  the  death  of  Festus,  sends  Albinus  as  governor  of  Judea.  But  the  younger  Ananus,  whom  we  mentioned  before  as  obtaining the  priesthood,  was  particularly  rash  and  daring  in  his disposition.     He  was  also  of  the  sect  of  the  Sadducees,  which  are the  most  unmerciful  of  all  the  Jews  in  the  execution  of  judgment, as  we  have  already  shown.     Ananus,  therefore,  being  of  this  character, and  supposing  that  he  had  a  suitable  opportunity,  in  consequence of  the  death  of  Festus,  and  Albinus  being  yet  on  the way,  calls  an  assembly  of  the  judges ;  and  bringing  thither  the brother  of  Jesus  who  is  called  Christ,  whose  name  was  James, with  some  others,  he  presented  an  accusation  against  them,  as  if they  had  violated  the  law,  and  committed  them  to  be  stoned  as criminals.     But  those  of  the  city  that  seemed  most  moderate  and most  accurate  in  observing  the  law,  were  greatly  offended  at  this, and  secretly  sent  to  the  king,  entreating  him  to  send  to  Ananus with  the  request  not  to  do  these  things,  saying  that  he  had  not acted  legally  even  before.     Some  also  went  out  to  meet  him  as he  came  from  Alexandria,  and  inform  him  that  it  was  not  lawful for  Ananus  to  summon  the  sanhedrim  without  his  knowledge.  Albinus, induced  by  this  account,  writes  to  Ananus  in  a  rage,  and threatening  that  he  would  call  him  to  an  account.     But  king Agrippa,  for  the  same  reason,  took  from  him  the  priesthood,  after he  had  held  it  three  months,  and  appointed  Jesus  the  son  of  Dammasus  his  successor.     These  accounts  are  given  respecting  James, who  is  said  to  have  written  the  first  of  the  epistles  general,  (ca
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  79

tholic ;)  but  it  is  to  be  observed  that  it  is  considered  spurious.  Not many  indeed  of  the  ancients  have  mentioned  it,  and  not  even  that called  the  epistle  of  Jude,  which  is  also  one  of  the  seven  called catholic  epistles.  Nevertheless  we  know,  that  these,  with  the  rest, are  pubhcly  used  in  most  of  the  churches.

CHAPTER   XXIV.

Annianus  was  appointed  the  first  hisJiop  of  Alexandria  after  Marh
Nero  was  now  in  the  eighth  year  of  his  reign,  when  Annianus succeeded  the  apostle  and  evangelist  Mark  in  the  administration of  the  church  at  Alexandria.  He  was  a  man  distinguished  for his  piety,  and  admirable  in  every  respect.

CHAPTER  XXV.

The  persecution  under  Kero,  in  which  Paul  and  Peter  were  honoured with  viartijrdoni  in  the  cause  of  religion  at  Rome.

But  Nero  now  having  the  government  firmly  established  under him,  and  henceforth  plunging  into  nefarious  projects,  began  to take  up  arms  against  that  very  religion  which  acknowledges the  one  Supreme  God.  To  describe,  indeed,  the  greatness  of this  man's  wickedness,  is  not  compatible  with  our  present  object; and  as  there  are  many  that  have  given  his  history  in  the most  accurate  narratives,  every  one  may,  at  his  pleasure,  in  these contemplate  the  grossness  of  his  extraordinary  madness.  Under the  influence  of  this,  he  did  not  proceed  to  destroy  so  many  thousands with  any  calculation,  but  wdth  such  indiscriminate  murder as  not  even  to  refrain  from  his  nearest  and  dearest  friends.  His own  mother  and  wife,  with  many  others  that  were  his  near  relatives, he  killed  like  strangers  and  enemies,  with  various  kinds  of deaths.  And,  indeed,  in  addition  to  all  his  other  crimes,  this  too was  yet  wanting  to  complete  the  catalogue,  that  he  was  the  first
80  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

of  the  emperors  that  displayed  himself  an  enemy  of  piety  towards the  Deity.  This  fact  is  recorded  by  the  Roman  Tertullian,  in  language like  the  following :  "  Examine  your  records.  There  you will  find  that  Nero  was  the  first  that  persecuted  this  doctrine, particularly  then  when  after  subduing  all  the  east,  he  exercised his  cruelty  against  all  at  Rome.  Such  is  the  man  of  whom  we boast,  as  the  leader  in  our  punishment.  For  he  that  knows  who he  was,  may  know  also  that  there  could  scarcely  be  any  thing  but what  was  great  and  good,  condemned  by  Nero."  Thus  Nero  publicly announcing  himself  as  the  chief  enemy  of  God,  was  led  on  in his  fury  to  slaughter  the  apostles.  Paul  is  therefore  said  to  have been  beheaded  at  Rome,  and  Peter  to  have  been  crucified  under him.  And  this  account  is  confirmed  by  the  fact,  that  the  names of  Peter  and  Paul  still  remain  in  the  cemeteries  of  that  city  even to  this  day.  But  likewise,  a  certain  ecclesiastical  writer,  Caius by  name,  who  was  born  about  the  time  of  Zephyrinus  bishop  of Rome,  disputing  with  Proclus  the  leader  of  the  Phrygian  sect, gives  the  following  statement  respecting  the  places  where  the earthly  tabernacles  of  the  aforesaid  apostles  are  laid.  "  But  I  can show,"  says  he,  "  the  trophies  of  the  apostles.  For  if  you  will  go to  the  Vatican,  or  to  the  Ostian  road,  you  will  find  the  trophies of  those  who  have  laid  the  foundation  of  this  church.  And  that both  suffered  martyrdom  about  the  same  time,  Dionysius  bishop  of Corinth  bears  the  following  testimony,  in  his  discourse  addressed to  the  Romans.  '  Thus,  hkewise  you,  by  means  of  this  admonition, have  mingled  the  flourishing  seed  that  had  been  planted  by Peter  and  Paul  at  Rome  and  Corinth.  For  both  of  these  having planted  us  at  Corinth,  likewise  instructed  us ;  and  having  in  like manner  taught  in  Italy,  they  suffered  martyrdom  about  the  same time.'  "*  This  testimony  I  have  superadded,  in  order  that  the truth  of  the  history  might  be  still  more  confirmed.

*  In  this  passage  from  Dionysius,  Valesius  has  followed  the  text  of  Syncellus sontrary  to  that  commonly  received.     We  give  the  passage  according  to  the  latter
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  81

CHAPTER  XXVL

The  Jews  rcere  afflicted  iciih  innumerable  evils,  and  finally  commenced a  tear  irith  the  Romans.

JosEPHus,  in  his  account  of  the  great  distresses  that  seized  the Jewish  nation,  relates  also,  in  his  writings,  that  beside  many others,  vast  numbers  also  of  those  that  were  of  the  first  rank among  the  Jews,  were  scourged  with  rods,  and  nailed  upon  the cross  at  Jerusalem,  by  Florus.  For  he  happened  to  be  procurator of  Judea  at  the  commencement  of  tlie  war,  in  the  twelfth  year of  Nero's  reign.  "  Then,"  says  he,  "  throughout  all  Syria  a  tre mendous  commotion  seized  upon  the  inhabitants,  in  consequence of  the  revolt  of  the  Jews.  Every  where  did  the  inhabitants  of the  cities  destroy  the  Jews  without  mercy.  So  that  you  could see  the  cities  filled  with  unburied  corpses,  and  the  dead  bodies  of the  aged  mixed  with  those  of  children,  and  women  not  even having  the  necessary  covering  of  their  bodies.  The  whole  province, indeed,  w^as  filled  with  indescribable  distresses.  But  greater still  than  the  crimes  already  endured,  was  the  anticipation of  those  that  threatened."  Such  is  the  statement  of  Josephus, and  such  was  the  condition  of  the  Jews  at  this  time.

BOOK   IIL

CHAPTER  I.

The  j)artsofthe  icoi^Id  ivhere  Christ  was  preached  by  the  Apostles.

Such,  then,  was  the  state  of  the  Jews  at  this  time.  But  the holy  apostles  and  disciples  of  our  Saviour,  being  scattered  over the  whole  world,  Thomas,  according  to  tradition,  received  Parthia  as  his  allotted  region ;  Andrew  received  Scythia,  and  John, Asia ;  where,  after  continuing  for  some  time,  he  died  at  Ephesus.
Peter  appears  to  have  preached  through  Pontus,  Galatia,  Bithynia,  Cappadocia  and  Asia,  to  the  Jews  that  were  scattered  abroad ;
who  also,  finally  coming  to  Rome,  was  crucified  with  his  head downward,  having  requested  of  himself  to  suffer  in  this  way.
Why  should  we  speak  of  Paul,  spreading  the  gospel  of  Christ from  Jerusalem  to  Illyricum,  and  finally  suffering  martyrdom  at Rome,  under  Nero?  This  account  is  given  by  Origen,  in  the third  book  of  his  exposition  of  Genesis.

CHAPTER  II.

The  first  that  presided  over  the  church  at  Rome.

After  the  martyrdom  of  Paul  and  Peter,  Linus  was  the  first
that  received  the  episcopate  at  Rome.     Paul  makes  mention  of
him  in  his  epistle  from  Ptome  to  Timothy,  in  the  address  at  the
close  of  the  epistle,  saying,  "  Eubulus  and  Prudcns,  and  Linus,
and  Claudia,  salute  thee,"

82

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  83

CHAPTER  in.

Of  the  Epistles  of  the  Apostles.

As  to  the  writings  of  Peter,  one  of  his  epistles  called  the  first, is  acknowledged  as  genuine.  For  this  was  anciently  used  by  the ancient  fathers  in  their  writings,  as  an  undoubted  work  of  the apostle.  But  that  which  is  called  the  second,  we  have  not,  indeed, understood  to  be  imbodied  with  the  sacred  books,  EvSiaOyixov, yet  as  it  appeared  useful  to  many,  it  was  studiously  read  with the  other  Scriptures.  As  to  that  work,  however,  which  is ascribed  to  him,  called  "  The  Acts,"  and  the  "  Gospel  according to  Peter,"  and  that  called  "  The  Preaching  and  the  Revelations of  Peter,"  we  know  nothing  of  their  being  handed  down  as  Catholic* writings.  Since  neither  among  the  ancient  nor  the  ecclesiastical writers  of  our  own  day,  has  there  been  one  that  has  appealed to  testimony  taken  from  them.  But  as  I  proceed  in  my history,  I  shall  carefully  show  with  the  successions  of  the  apostles, what  ecclesiastical  writers  in  their  times  respectively  made  use of  any  of  the  disputed  writings,  and  what  opinions  they  have expressed,  both  respecting  the  incorporated  (svmaOyjxoi)  and acknowledged  writings,  and  also  what  respecting  those  that  were not  of  this  description.  These,  however,  are  those  that  are  called Peter's  epistles,  of  which  I  have  understood  only  one  epistle  to be  genuine,  and  admitted  by  the  ancient  fathers.  The  epistles of  Paul  are  fourteen,  all  well  known  and  beyond  doubt.  It should  not,  however,  be  concealed,  that  some  have  set  aside  the Epistle  to  the  Hebrews,  saying,  that  it  was  disputed,  as  not  being one  of  St.  Paul's  epistles ;  but  we  shall  in  the  proper  place,  also subjoin  what  has  been  said  by  those  before  our  time  respecting this  epistle.  As  to  what  are  called  his  acts,  I  have  not  even  understood that  they  were  among  the  works  of  undisputed  authority.
But  as  the  same  apostle  in  the  addresses  at  the  close  of  the  Epis
*  Catholic]     The  word  here  plainly  means  universally  received;  i.  e.  genuine,  as it  is  happily  rendered  by  Shorting.
10

S4  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

tie  to  the  Romans,  has  among  others  made  mention  also  of Hermes,  of  whom  they  say  we  have  the  book  called  Pastor,  it should  be  observed,  that  this  too  is  disputed  by  some,  on  account of  whom  it  is  not  placed  among  those  of  acknowledged  authority Qof-LokoyoviiBVOi^  By  others,  however,  it  is  judged  most  necessary, especially  to  those  who  need  an  elementary  introduction.
Hence  we  know  that  it  has  been  already  in  public  use  in  our churches,  and  I  have  also  understood  by  tradition,  that  some  of the  most  ancient  writers  have  made  use  of  it.  Let  this  suffice for  the  present,  to  show  w^hat  books  were  disputed,  what  admitted bv  all  in  the  sacred  Scriptures.

CHAPTER  IV.

The  first  successors  of  the  Apostles,
That  Paul  preached  to  the  Gentiles,  and  established  churches from  Jerusalem  and  around  as  far  as  Illyricum,  is  evident  both from  his  own  expressions,  and  from  the  testimony  of  Luke  in  the book  of  Acts.  And  in  what  provinces  Peter  also  proclaimed  the doctrine  of  Christ,  the  doctrine  of  the  New  Covenant,  appears from  his  own  writings,  and  may  be  seen  from  that  epistle  we have  mentioned  as  admitted  in  the  canon,  and  which  he  addressed to  the  Hebrews  in  the  dispersion  throughout  Pontus,  Galatia, Cappadocia,  Asia  and  Bithynia.  But  how  many  and  which  of these,  actuated  by  a  genuine  zeal,  were  judged  suitable  to  feed the  churches  established  by  these  apostles,  it  is  not  easy  to  say, any  farther  than  may  be  gathered  from  the  writings  of  Paul.
For  he,  indeed,  had  innumerable  fellow-labourers,  or  as  he  himself calls  them,  fellow-soldiers  in  the  church.  Of  these,  the greater  part  are  honoured  with  an  indelible  remembrance  by  him in  his  epistles,  where  he  gives  a  lasting  testimony  concerning them.  Luke  also,  in  his  Acts,  speaking  of  his  friends,  mentions them  by  name.  Timothy,  indeed,  is  recorded  as  having  first  received the  episcopate  at  Ephcsus,  (sv  Eplicso  nagoixiag)  as
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  85

Titus  also,  was  appointed  over  the  churches  in  Crete.  But Luke,  who  was  born  at  Antioch,  and  by  profession  a  physician, being  for  the  most  part  connected  with  Paul,  and  familiarly  acquainted with  the  rest  of  the  apostles,  has  left  us  in  two  inspired books,  the  institutes  of  that  spiritual  healing  art  which  he  obtained from  them.  One  of  these  is  his  gospel,  in  which  he  testifies that  he  has  recorded,  "  as  those  who  were  from  the  beginning eye-witnesses,  and  ministers  of  the  word,"  delivered  to  him, whom  also,  he  says,  he  has  in  all  things  followed.  The  other  is his  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  which  he  composed,  not  from  what  he had  heard  from  others,  but  from  what  he  had  seen  himself  It  is also  said,  that  Paul  usually  referred  to  his  gospel,  whenever, in  his  epistles  he  spoke  of  some  particular  gospel  of  his  own, saying,  '*  according  to  my  gospel."  But  of  the  rest  that  accompanied Paul,  Cr  esc  ens  is  mentioned  by  him  as  sent  to  Gaul.  Linus, whom  he  has  mentioned  in  his  Second  Epistle  to  Timothy  as his  companion  at  Rome,  has  been  before  shown  to  have  been  the first  after  Peter,  that  obtained  the  episcopate  at  Rome.  Clement also,  who  was  appointed  the  third  bishop  of  this  church,  is  proved by  him  to  have  been  a  fellow-labourer  and  fellow-soldier  with him.  Beside,  the  Areopagite,  called  Dionysius,  whom  Luke  has recorded  in  his  Acts,  after  Paul's  address  to  the  Athenians,  in  the Areopagus,  as  the  first  that  believed,  is  mentioned  by  Dionysius, another  of  the  ancients,  and  pastor  of  the  church  at  Corinth,  as the  first  bishop  of  the  church  at  Athens.  But  the  manner  and times  of  the  apostolic  succession  shall  be  mentioned  by  us  as  we proceed  in  our  course.  Now  let  us  pursue  the  order  of  our  history.

CHAPTER  V.

The  last  siege  of  the  Jews  after  Christ.

After  Nero  had  held  the  government  about  thirteen  years, Galba  and  Otho  reigned  about  a  year  and  six  months.  Vespasian, who  had  become  illustrious  in  the  campaign  against  the  Jews,
S6  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

was  then  proclaimed  sovereign  in  Judea,  receiving  the  title  of  em peror  from  the  armies  there.  Directing  his  course,  therefore,  immediately to  Rome,  he  commits  the  care  of  the  war  against  the Jews,  into  the  hands  of  his  son  Titus ;  for  after  the  ascension  of our  Saviour,  the  Jews,  in  addition  to  their  wickedness  against him,  Vv-ere  now  incessantly  plotting  mischief  against  his  apostles.
First,  they  slew  Stephen  by  stoning  him,  next  James  the  son  of Zebedee,  and  the  brother  of  John,  by  beheading,  and  finally James,  who  first  obtained  the  episcopal  seat  at  Jerusalem,  after the  ascension  of  our  Saviour,  and  was  slain  in  the  manner  before related.  But  the  rest  of  the  apostles  who  were  harassed  in  innumerable ways,  with  a  view  to  destroy  them,  and  driven  from the  land  of  Judea,  had  gone  forth  to  preach  the  gospel  to  all  na tions,  relying  upon  the  aid  of  Christ,  when  he  said,  "  Go  ye,  teach all  nations  in  my  name."  The  whole  body,  however,  of  the church  at  Jerusalem,  having  been  commanded  by  a  divine  revelation, given  to  men  of  approved  piety  there  before  the  war,  removed from  the  city,  and  dwelt  at  a  certain  town  beyond  the Jordan,  called  Pella.  Here,  those  that  believed  in  Christ,  having removed  from  Jerusalem,  as  if  holy  men  had  entirely  abandoned the  royal  city  itself,  and  the  whole  land  of  Judea ;  the  divine  justice, for  their  crimes  against  Christ  and  his  apostles,  finally overtook  them,  totally  destroying  the  whole  generation  of  these evildoers  from  the  earth.  But  the  number  of  calamities  which then  overwhelm.ed  the  whole  nation ;  the  extreme  misery  to  which particularly  the  inhabitants  of  Judea  were  reduced,  the  vast numbers  of  men,  with  women  and  children  that  fell  b}^  the  sword and  famine,  and  innumerable  other  forms  of  death ;  the  numerous and  great  cities  of  Judea  that  were  besieged,  as  also  the  great and  incredible  distresses  that  those  experienced  who  took  refuge at  Jerusalem,  as  to  a  place  of  perfect  security ;  these  facts,  as well  as  the  whole  tenor  of  the  war,  and  each  particular  of  its progress,  when  finally,  the  abomination  of  desolation,  according to  the  prophetic  declaration,  stood  in  the  very  temple  of  God,  so celebrated  of  old,  but  which  now  was  approaching  its  total  downfal  and  final  destruction  by  fire ;  all  this,  I  say,  any  one  that  wishes may  see  accurately  stated  in  the  history  written  by  Josephus,
.       .  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  87

It  may,  however,  be  necessary  to  state,  in  the  very  words  of  this writer,  how  about  three  hundred  thousand  that  flocked  from  all parts  of  Judea  at  the  time  of  the  passover,  were  shut  up  in  Jerusalem as  in  a  prison.  For  it  was  indeed  just,  that  in  ibose  very days  in  which  they  had  inflicted  sufferings  upon  the  Saviour  and benefactor  of  all  men,  the  Christ  of  God,  destruction  ;-hould  overtake them,  thus  shut  up  as  in  a  prison,  as  an  exhibition  of  the  divine justice.  Passing  by,  then,  the  particular  calamities  which befel  them,  such  as  they  suffered  from  the  sword,  and  other  means employed  against  them,  I  may  deem  it  sufficient  only  to  subjoin the  calamities  they  endured  from  the  famine.  So  that  they  who peruse  the  present  history,  may  know  in  some  measure,  tliat  the divine  vengeance  did  not  long  delay  to  visit  them  for  their  iniquity against  the  Christ  of  God.

CHAPTER   VI.

The  famine  ichich  oppi'cssed  the  Jews.

Let  us,  then,  with  the  fifth  book  of  Josephus's  history  again  in  our hands,  go  through  the  tiagedy  of  events  which  then  occurred.  "  It was  equally  dangerous,"  says  he,  "  for  the  more  wealthy  to  remain.
For  under  the  pretext  of  desertion,  a  man  was  siain  for  his  wealth.
But  the  madness  of  the  rioters  increased  with  the  famine,  and  both kinds  of  misery  were  inflamed  from  day  to  day.  Provisions  were plainly  nowhere  to  be  had.  Hence  they  burst  into  houses  to  search for  food,  and  if  they  found  any,  they  would  scourge  the  owners  as if  they  intended  to  deny  they  had  it ;  but  if  they  found  none,  they tortured  them  as  if  they  had  carefully  concealed  it.  The  bodies of  the  poor  wretches,  however,  were  evidence  enough  whether they  had  or  had  not.  Some  of  them,  therefore,  that  were  yet sound  in  health,  they  supposed  to  have  an  abundance  of  food,  but those  that  were  wan  and  pallid  they  passed  by :  for  it  seemed  absurd to  kill  men  that  were  soon  likely  to  die  for  v.'ant.  Many  secretly e:s:changed  their  property  for  a  single  measure  of  wheat,  if
they  happened  to  be  the  more  wealthy ;  of  barley,  if  they  were 10#

88  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

of  the  poorer  sort.  Then  locking  themselves  in  the  most  retired parts  of  their  houses,  some,  from  excessive  hunger,  eat  the  grain unprepared ;  others  however,  baked  it  according  as  necessity  or fear  directed.  As  to  a  table,  there  was  none  set  any  where ;  but taking  the  food  from  the  fire,  they  tore  it  asunder  yet  crude  and raw.  Wretched  indeed  was  the  fare,  and  a  lamentable  sight  it was,  where  the  most  powerful  grasped  after  all,  and  the  weaker were  constrained  to  mourn.  For  famine  surpasses  all  other  evils, but  it  destroys  nothing  so  effectually  as  shame ;  for  that  which would  otherwise  demand  some  regard,  is  contemned  in  this.  Thus wives  tore  away  the  food  from  the  very  mouths  of  their  husbands, children  from  their  parents,  and  what  was  most  wretched  of  all, mothers  from  their  infants ;  so  that  whilst  their  dearest  children lay  wasting  in  their  arms,  there  was  not  shame  enough  to  prevent them  taking  away  the  very  drops  that  supported  life.  And  even in  doing  this,  they  did  not  remain  undiscovered ;  for  whenever they  saw  a  door  locked,  this  was  a  sign  that  those  within  were taking  food,  and  then  immediately  bursting  open  the  doors  they rushed  in,  and  choked  them,  almost  forcing  the  morsels  out  of their  very  throats.  Old  men  were  beaten  that  held  back  their food,  and  women  were  torn  by  the  hair,  if  they  concealed  what they  had  in  their  hands.  Nor  was  there  any  pity  for  gray  hairs or  for  infants ;  but  taking  up  the  infants  clinging  to  the  morsels, Ihey  dashed  them  to  the  ground.  But  they  were  much  more  cruel to  those  who  anticipated  their  entrance,  and  were  devouring  what they  wished  to  seize,  just  as  if  they  had  been  wronged  by  them.
They  also  devised  terrible  modes  of  torture,  to  discover  where there  was  any  food.  For  by  cruel  devices  to  prevent  every  relief of  nature,  they  caused  the  unhappy  individual  to  suffer  such  torment,* that  the  very  recital  makes  one  shudder  at  what  he  would endure,  before  he  confessed  that  he  had  one  loaf  of  bread,  or  that he  had  a  single  handful  of  wheat  concealed.  The  tormentors themselves,  however,  suffered  no  want ;  for  it  might  have  been some  palliation,  if  necessity  had  compelled  them  thus.     But  they
*  The  passages  that  we  have  here  thrown  into  one,  are  thus  given  by  Valec  us  :
*  Nam  miseris  hominibus  ipsos  quidem  genitalium  meatus  ervis  obturabant,  podicem  praeacutis  sudibus  transfigebant."

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  89

did  it  with  the  view  to  exercise  their  ferocity  and  to  provide  for themselves  for  the  following  days.  When  any  crept  forth  at  night to  the  outposts  of  the  Romans,  for  the  purpose  of  collecting  wild herbs  and  grass,  these  tormentors  would  go  out  to  meet  them,  and when  they  seemed  just  to  have  escaped  the  hands  of  the  enemy, the  oppressors  robbed  them  of  whatever  they  brought.  And  very often,  though  they  entreated  them,  and  conjured  them  by  the most  awful  name  of  God,  to  give  them  som.e  part  of  that  for  which they  had  risked  their  lives,  they  notwithstanding  gave  them  nothing. It  was  a  happy  circumstance  yet,  if  in  addition  to  robbery, they  were  not  also  slain."  This  same  author,  after  a  few  particulars, also  says :  "  But  with  the  hope  of  egress,  was  cut  off  all hope  of  safety  to  the  Jews ;  and  the  famine  now  penetrating  deeply, was  consuming  the  people  by  houses  and  families.  The  houses were  filled  with  women  and  children  that  had  thus  perished ;  the byways  with  the  dead  bodies  of  old  men.  But  the  boys  and  young men,  swelling  up,  tottered  and  reeled  like  shadows  through  the markets,  and  then  falling  down,  lay  wheresoever  the  malady  had overtaken  them.  The  sick  w^re  not  even  able  to  bury  their  dead, and  those  yet  in  health  and  strength  were  loth  to  do  it,  both  on account  of  the  number  of  the  dead,  and  the  uncertainty  of  their own  fate.  Many,  indeed,  fell  down  and  died  upon  those  they  were bur}' ing ;  many  went  to  the  sepulchres,  even  before  they  were overtaken  by  the  struggles  of  death.  There  was,  however,  neither weeping  nor  lamentation,  but  the  famine  prevailed  over  all affection.  With  tearless  eyes  did  they  who  were  yet  struggling with  death,  look  on  those  that  had  gone  to  rest  before  them.  A
deep  silence  and  deadly  gloom  also  pervaded  the  city.  But  more oppressive  than  all  these,  were  the  robbers  that  broke  into  the houses,  now  mere  sepulchres,  and  spoiling  the  dead,  and  tearing off  the  garments  of  their  bodies,  they  went  off  with  a  laugh.  They would  also  try  the  points  of  their  swords  in  the  dead  bodies,  and some  of  those  that  were  lying  yet  alive,  they  thrust  through,  in order  to  try  the  edge  of  their  weapons.  But  those  that  prayed them  the  relief  of  their  arm  and  sword,  they  contemptuously  left to  be  destroyed  by  the  famine;  whilst  those  expiring  died  with their  eyes  fixed  upon  the  temple,  and  left  the  factious  to  survive

M

90  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

them.  These,  at  first,  not  bearing  the  effluvia  from  the  dead  bodies, ordered  them  to  be  buried  out  of  the  pubUc  treasury ;  afterwards, when  they  were  not  able  to  continue  tliis,  they  threw  the bodies  from  the  walls  into  the  ditches  below.  As  Titus  went around  these,  and  saw  them  filled  with  the  dead,  and  the  deep gore  flowing  around  the  putrid  bodies,  he  groaned  heavily,  and raising  his  hands,  called  God  to  witness  that  it  was  none  of  his work."  After  some  additional  remarks,  Josephus  proceeds :  "  I
cannot  hesitate  to  declare  what  my  feelings  demand.  I  think that  had  the  Romans  lingered  to  proceed  against  these  guilty wretches,  the  city  would  either  have  been  swallowed  up  by  the opening  earth,  or  overwhelmed  with  a  flood,  or  like  Sodom,  been struck  with  the  lightning.  For  it  bore  a  much  more  impious  race than  those  who  once  endured  such  visitations.  Thus,  by  the  madness of  these  wretches,  the  whole  people  perished."  In  the  sixth book,  he  also  writes  thus:  "Of  those  that  perished  by  the  famine in  the  city,  there  fell  an  infinite  number.  The  miseries  that  befel them  were  indescribable;  for  at  every  house,  wherever  there  was a  shadow  of  food,  there  was  war.  The  nearest  relatives  contended with  one  another,  to  seize  the  wretched  supports  of  life.  There was  no  belief  that  hunger  was  the  cause,  even  when  they  saw the  dying ;  but  the  robbers  would  search  them  whilst  yet  breathing, lest  any  one  should  pretend  that  he  was  dying,  whilst  he  concealed food  in  his  bosom.  But  the  robbers  themselves,  with  their mouths  wide  open  for  want  of  food,  roved  and  straggled  hither and  thither,  like  mad  dogs,  beating  the  doors  as  if  they  were drunk ;  and  for  want  of  counsel,  rushing  twice  or  thrice  an  hour into  the  same  houses.  Indeed,  necessity  forced  them  to  apply  their teeth  to  every  thing,  and  gathering  what  was  no  food,  even  for the  filthiest  of  irrational  animals,  they  de.oured  it,  and  did  not abstain  at  last  even  from  belts  and  shoes.  They  took  off'  the  hides from  their  shields  and  devoured  them,  and  some  used  even  the remnants  of  old  straw  as  food ;  others  gathered  the  stubble,  and sold  a  very  small  weight  of  it  for  four  Attic  drachms.*     And  why
Attic  drachms.]  The  drachma  was  a  coin  of  about  fifteen  cents.  Some  make  it more.  Shorting,  in  his  translation,  has  computed  the  four  drachms  to  be  half  a pound  sterling,  and  refers  to  his  note  on  B.  I.  ch.  viii.     He  there  states  very  cor
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  91

should  we  speak  of  the  excessive  severity  of  the  famine  displayed upon  inanimate  objects  ?  I  am  going  to  relate  a  piece  of  wickedness, such  as  is  not  recorded  either  by  Greeks  or  barbarians.
It  is  horrid  to  relate,  and  incredible  to  hear.  And  indeed,  lest  I
should  appear  to  deal  in  marvellous  stories,  I  would  cheerfully pass  by  this  occurrence,  if  I  had  not  innumerable  witnesses  still living.  I  should  also  deserve  but  cold  thanks  from  my  country,  if I  should  pass  by  in  carelessness  what  she  in  reality  did  suffer.
A  woman  that  dwelt  beyond  the  Jordan,  named  Maria,  the daughter  of  Eleazar,  of  the  village  Bathezor,  signifying  the  home of  hyssop,  distinguished  for  her  family  and  wealtli,  having  taken refuge  at  Jerusalem  among  the  rest  of  the  multitude,  was  shut up  in  the  city  with  them.  The  tyrants  had  already  robbed  her of  all  her  other  possessions,  as  much  as  she  had  collected,  and brought  with  her  from  beyond  the  river  into  the  city.  But  as  to the  relics  of  her  property,  and  whatever  food  she  provided,  the ruffians  daily  rushing  in,  seized  and  bore  it  away.  A  dreadful indignation  overpowered  the  woman,  and  frequently  reviling  and cursing  the  robbers,  she  endeavoured  by  these  means  to  irritate them  against  herself.  But  as  no  one  either  through  resentment or  pity  would  slay  licr,  and  she  was  weary  of  providing  food  for others,  and  there  was  now  no  probability  of  finding  it  any  where;
the  famine  now  penetrated  the  very  bowels  and  marrow,  and  resentment raged  more  violently  than  the  famine.  Urged  by  frenzy and  necessity  as  her  counsellors,  she  proceeded  against  nature herself.  Seizing  her  httle  son,  who  was  yet  at  her  breast,  she said,  "  wretched  child !  in  the  midst  of  war,  famine,  and  faction, for  what  do  I  preserve  thee  ?  Our  condition  among  the  Romans, though  we  might  live,  is  slavery.  But  even  slavery  is  anticipated by  famine,  and  the  assassins  are  more  cruel  than  either — come,
rectly.  that  four  Attic  drachms  equal  one  ordinary  shekel,  and  the  shekel  to  be  2*.
6d  But  by  some  unnaccountable  oversight,  makes  the  four  drachms  equal  to  ten shillings!  He  appears  to  have  substituted  the  value  of  the  shekel  for  the  drachm, as  the  reader  will  readily  see.  But  what  is  still  more  surprising,  this  error  has been  transcribed  by  Reading  in  his  accurate  edition  of  Valesius.  See  Reading's edition  in  loc.

92  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

be  thou  food  to  me,  fury*  to  the  assassins,  and  a  tale  for  men,  the only  one  yet  wanting  to  complete  the  miseries  of  the  Jews."  As she  said  this,  she  slew  her  son ;  then  roasting  him,  she  eat  one half  herself,  and  covering  over  the  rest,  she  kept  it.  It  was  not long  before  the  murderers  came  in,  and  perceiving  the  fumes  of the  execrable  food,  they  threatened  immediately  to  slay  her  if she  did  not  produce  what  she  had  prepared.  She  answered  she had  reserved  a  fine  portion  of  it  for  them,  and  then  uncovered the  relics  of  her  son.  Horror  and  amazement  immediately  seized them.  They  stood  mute  with  the  sight.  "  This  is  my  own  son,"
said  she,  "  and  the  deed  is  mine.  Eat,  for  I  too  have  eaten,  be not  more  delicate  than  a  woman,  nor  more  tender  than  a mother ;  but  if  you  are  so  pious,  and  reject  my  offering,  I  have already  eaten  half,  and  let  the  rest  remain  for  me."  After  this, they  indeed,  went  trembling  away,' cowardly  at  least  in  this  one instance,  and  yet  scarcely  yielding  to  the  mother  even  this  kind of  food.  Forthwith  the  whole  city  was  filled  with  the  dreadful crime,  and  every  one  placing  the  wickedness  before  his  eyes,  was struck  with  a  horror  as  if  it  had  been  perpetrated  by  himself.
Thenceforth  the  wretched  people  overcome  with  hunger,  only strove  to  hasten  death ;  and  it  was  a  happiness  yet  for  those  who died  before  they  heard  and  saw  miseries  hke  these."  Such then,  was  the  vengeance  that  followed  the  guilt  and  impiety  of the  Jews  against  the  Christ  of  God.

CHAPTER  VII.

The  Predictions  of  Christ.

To  these  accounts  it  may  be  proper  to  add  the  sure  prediction of  our  Saviour,  in  which  he  foretold  these  very  events  as  follows :
"  But  wo  to  them  that  arc  with  child  and  those  that  give  suck  in
*  Fury,  or  vengeance.l  The  Erynnes  or  Furies,  according  to  the  belief  of  the ancients,  were  among  the  tormenting  fiends  of  Tartarus.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  93

those  days ;  but  pray  that  your  flight  be  not  in  tJie  winter,  nor on  the  Sabbath.     But  there  shall  be  then  great  distress,  such as   has  not  been   from  the  beginning  of  the  world  until   now, neither  may  be."     The  historian,  adding  up   the   whole   number of  those  slain,  says,  that  eleven  hundred  thousand  perished by  famine   and   the  sword,  and  that   the  rest,  the  factious and  robbers,  mutually  informing  against  each  other  after  the  capture, were  put  to  death.     Of  the  young  men,  the  tallest,  and those  tliat  were  distinguished  for  beauty,  were  preserved  for  the triumph.     Of  the  remaining  multitude,  those  above   seventeen were  sent  prisoners  to  labour  at  the  mines  in  Egypt.     But  great numbers  were  distributed  to  the  provinces,  to  be  destroyed  by  the sword  or  wild  beasts  in  the  theatres.     Those  under  seventeen were  carried  away  to  be  sold  as  slaves.     Of  these  alone,  there were  upwards  of  ninety  thousand.     All   this   occurred   in    this manner,  in  the  second  year  of  the  reign  of  Vespasian,  accordinoto  the  predictions  of  our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  who  by his  divine  power  foresaw  all  these  things  as  if  already  present  at the  time,  who  wept  and  mourned  indeed,  at  the  prospect,  as  the holy  evangelists  show  in  their  writings.     These  give  us  the  very words  that  he  uttered,  when  he  said  to  this  same  Jerusalem,  "  If thou  didst  know,  even  thou,  in  this  thy  day  the  things  that  belong to  thy  peace,  but  now  they  are  hidden  from  thy  eyes,  for  the  days will  come  upon  thee,  and  thy  enemies  shall  cast  a  trench  around thee,  and  shall  encompass  thee  around,  and  shall  every  where  shut thee  in,  and  they  shall  level  thee  and  thy  children  with  the ground."     Afterwards  he  speaks  as  if  of  the  people — "  For  there shall  be  great  distress  upon  earth,  and  wrath  upon  this  people, and  they  shall  fall  by  the  edge  of  the  sword,  and  they  shall  be carried  away  captive  to  all  nations,  and  Jerusalem  shall  be  trodden dow^n  by  the  nations,  until  the  times  of  the  nations  shall  be fulfilled."     And  again,  "  When  ye  shall  see  Jerusalem  surrounded by  armies,  then  know  that  her  desolation  has  drawn  near."

On  comparing  the  declarations  of  our  Saviour  with  the  other parts  of  the  historian's  work,  where  he  describes  the  whole  war, how  can  one  fail  to  acknowledge  and  wonder  at  the  truly  divine and  extraordinary  foreknowledge  and  prediction  of  our  Saviour  '^

94  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Concerning  the  events,  then,  that  befel  the  Jews  after  our  Sa viour's  passion,  and  those  outcries  in  which  the  multitude  of  the Jews  refused  the  condemnation  of  a  robber  and  murderer, but  entreated  that  the  Prince  of  Life  should  be  destroyed,  it  is superfluous  to  add  to  the  statement  of  the  historian.  Yet  it  may be  proper  to  mention,  also,  what  things  occurred  that  show  the benignity  of  that  all-gracious  Providence  that  had  deferred  their destruction  for  forty  years  after  their  crimes  against  Christ.  During which  time  the  greater  part  of  the  apostles  and  disciples, James  himself,  the  first  bishop  there,  usually  called  the  brother of  our  Lord,  still  surviving,  and  still  remaining  at  Jerusalem,  continued the  strongest  bulwark  of  the  place.  Divine  Providence yet  bearing  them  with  long-suffering,  to  see  whether  by  repentance for  what  they  had  done,  they  might  obtain  pardon  and  salvation ;  and  beside  this  long-suffering,  it  also  presented  wonderful prodigies  of  what  was  about  to  happen  to  those  that  did  not  repent ;  all  which  having  been  recorded  by  the  historian  already cited,  it  well  deserved  to  be  submitted  to  the  view  of  our  readers.

CHAPTER  VIIL

The  signs  that  preceded  the  tear.

Taking,  then,  the  work  of  this  author,  read  for  yourself  the account  given  by  him  in  the  sixth  book  of  his  history.  "  The wretched  people,"  says  he,  "  at  this  time  were  readily  persuaded to  give  credit  to  the  impostors  and  liars  against  God,  but  they neither  believed  nor  paid  regard  to  the  significant  and  wonderful events  that  prognosticated  the  approaching  desolation.  On the  contrary,  as  if  struck  with  stupidity,  and  as  if  they  had  neither eyes  nor  understanding,  they  slighted  the  declarations  of God.  At  one  time,  when  a  star  very  like  a  sword  stood  above the  city,  as  also  a  comet  that  continued  to  be  seen  a  whole  year, at  another,  when  before  the  rebellion  and  the  commotions  that Dreceded  the  war,  whilst  the  people  were  collected  at  the  feast
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  95

of  unleavened  bread,  on  the  eighth  of  the  month  of  April,  about the  ninth  hour  of  the  night,  so  great  a  light  shone  around  the altar  and  the  temple,  as  to  seem  a  bright  day.  And  this  continued for  half  an  hour.  To  the  ignorant  this  appeared  a  good omen,  but  by  the  scribes  it  was  immediately  judged  to  refer  to the  events  that  took  place  at  the  issue.  At  the  same  festival  also, a  cow  struck  by  the  priest  for  sacrifice,  brought  forth  a  lamb  in the  midst  of  the  temple.  The  eastern  gate  also,  of  the  inner  temple, which  was  of  brass  and  immense  weight,  and  which  at  evening was  scarcely  shut  by  twenty  men,  and  resting  on  ironbound hinges,  and  secured  with  bolts  very  deeply  sunk  in  the  ground, was  seen  in  the  sixth  hour  of  the  night  to  open  of  itself.  But not  many  days  after  the  feast,  on  the  twenty-first  of  the  month of  Artimisium,  (May)  a  wonderful  spectre  was  seen,  which surpasses  all  behef  And  indeed,  that  which  I  am  about  to tell  would  appear  a  prodigy,  were  it  not  related  by  those  who had  seen  it,  and  unless  the  subsequent  miseries  had  corresponded to  the  signs.  For  before  the  setting  of  the  sun  there  were  seen chariots  and  armed  troops  on  high,  wheeling  through  the  clouds around  the  whole  region,  and  surrounding  the  cities.  And  at the  festival  called  Pentecost,  the  priests  entering  the  temple  at night  according  to  their  custom,  to  perform  the  service,  said they  first  perceived  a  motion  and  noise,  and  after  this  a  confused voice  saying,  "  let  us  go  hence."  But  what  follows  is  still  more awful.

One  Jesus  the  son  of  Ananias,  a  common  and  ignorant  rustic, four  years  before  the  war,  when  the  city  was  most  at  peace  and well  regulated,  coming  to  the  festival  at  which  it  was  customary for  all  to  make  tabernacles  at  the  temple,  to  the  honour  of  God, suddenly  began  to  cry  out,  "  A  voice  from  the  east,  a  voice  from the  west,  a  voice  from  the  four  winds.  A  voice  against  Jerusalem and  the  temple,  a  voice  against  bridegrooms  and  brides,  a voice  against  all  people."  This  man  went  about  crying  through all  the  lanes,  night  and  day.  But  some  of  the  more  distinguished citizens,  being  offended  at  the  ominous  cry,  and  enraged  at  the man,  seized  him,  and  scourged  him  with  many  and  severe  lashes.
But  w^ithout  uttering  a  word  for  himself  or  privately  to  those 11

96  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

present,  he  still  persisted  in  the  cries  he  had  before  uttered.  The magistrates,  therefore  judging,  what  it  really  was,  a  more  than ordinary  divine  movement  in  the  man,  conducted  him  to  the Roman  governor.  Then,  though  he  was  scourged  to  the  bone, he  neither  entreated  nor  shed  a  tear.  But  lowering  his  voice  in as  mournful  a  tone  as  was  possible,  he  answ^ered  to  every  blow, "  Alas,  alas,  for  Jerusalem."  The  same  historian  relates  a  fact still  more  remarkable.  He  says,  "  that  an  oracular  passage  was found  in  the  sacred  writings,  declaring  that  about  this  time  a  certain one  proceeding  from  that  region  would  obtain  the  sovereignty of  the  world.  This  prediction,  he  supposed,  was  fulfilled in  Vespasian.  He,  however,  did  not  obtain  the  sovereignty  over the  whole  world,  but  only  over  the  Romans.  More  justly, therefore,  would  it  be  referred  to  Christ,  to  whom  it  was  said by  the  Father,  "  Ask  of  me,  and  I  will  give  thee  the  heathen for  thine  inheritance,  and  the  uttermost  parts  of  the  earth  for thy  possession."  Of  w^hom,  indeed,  at  this  very  time,  "  the  sound of  the  holy  apostles  went  throughout  all  the  earth,  and  their words  to  the  ends  of  the  world."

CHAPTER   IX.

Of  Josephus  and  the  ivorhs  he  has  left.

Since  we  have  referred  to  this  writer,  it  may  be  proper  also to  notice  Josephus  himself,  who  has  contributed  so  much  to  the history  in  hand,  whence  and  from  what  family  he  sprung.  He shows  this,  indeed,  in  his  own  works,  as  follows.  "  Josephus  the son  of  Mattathias,  a  priest  of  Jerusalem,  who  at  first  himself fought  against  the  Romans,  and  at  whose  aflfairs  he  was  afterward of  necessity  present,"  was  a  man  most  distinguished,  not only  among  his  own  countrymen  the  Jews,  but  also  among  the R,omans ;  so  that  they  honoured  him  with  the  erection  of  a  statue at  Rome,  and  the  books  that  he  composed,  with  a  place  in  the public  library.     He  wrote  the  whole  Antiquities  of  the  Jews,  in
ECCLESIASTICAL    HISTORY.  9/

twenty  books,  and  his  history  of  the  Jewish  w^ar  in  seven  books, w^hich  he  says  were  not  only  written  in  Greek,  but  also  translated by  him  into  his  native  tongue ;  in  all  wdiich  he  is  worthy  of credit,  as  well  as  in  other  matters.  There  are  also  two  other works  of  his  that  deserve  to  be  read,  viz.  those  on  the  Antiquity of  the  Jew^s.  In  these  he  also  makes  his  reply  to  Apion,  the grammarian,  who  had  then  written  against  the  Jew^s  ;  they  contain also  a  refutation  of  others,  who  attempted  to  vilify  the  national pecuharities  of  the  Jewish  people.  In  the  first  of  these works  he  gives  us  the  number  of  the  canonical  books  of  the Scriptures  called  the  Old  Testament,  such  as.are  of  undoubted authority  among  the  Hebrew^s,  setting  them  forth,  as  handed down  by  ancient  tradition,  in  the  following  w^ords.

CHAPTER  X.

The  manner  in  wliich  Josephus  mentions  the  Hohj  Scriptures.

"  We  have  not  therefore  among  us  innumerable  books  that disagree  and  contradict  each  other,  but-  only  tAvo  and  twenty, embracing  the  record  of  all  history,  and  w^hich  are  justly  considered divine  compositions.  Of  these,  five  are  the  books  of  Moses, comprehending  both  the  laws  and  the  tradition  respecting  the origin  of  man,  down  to  his  own  death.  This  time  comprehends a  space  of  nearly  three  thousand  years.  But  from  Moses  until the  death  of  Artaxerxes,  who  reigned  after  Xerxes  king  of  Persia, the  prophets  after  Moses  wrote  the  events  of  their  day  in  thirteen books.  The  remaining  four,  comprehend  hymns  to  the praise  of  God,  and  precepts  for  the  regulation  of  human  life.
From  Artaxerxes  until  our  own  times,  the  events  are  all  recorded, but  they  are  not  deemed  of  authority  equal  wdth  those before  them,  because,  that  there  was  not  an  exact  succession  of the  prophets.  But  it  is  evident  from  the  thing  itself,  how  we  regard these  books  of  ours.  For  in  the  lapse  of  so  many  ages,  no one  has  dared  either  to  add  to  them,  or  to  take  from  them,  or  to

N

98  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

change  them,  but  it  has  been  implanted  in  all  Jews,  from  the  very origin  of  the  nation,  to  consider  them  as  the  doctrines  of  God, and  to  abide  by  them,  and  cheerfully  to  die  for  them  if  necessary." These  declarations  of  this  historian,  I  thought  might  be properly  here  subjoined.  There  is  also  another  work,  of  no  mean execution,  by  the  same  writer,  "  On  the  Supremacy  of  Reason,"
which,  indeed,  is  entitled  by  some  Maccabaicum,  because  it  contains the  conflicts  of  those  Hebrews  that  contended  manfully  foi the  true  religion,  as  is  related  in  the  books  called  Maccabees.
And  at  the  end  of  the  twentieth  book  of  his  Antiquities,  the  same author  intimates,  that  he  had  purposed  to  write  four  books  on  God, and  his  existence,  according  to  the  peculiar  opinions  of  the  Jewish nation  ;  also  on  the  laws,  wherefore  it  is  permitted  by  them to  do  some  things  whilst  others  are  forbidden.  Other  subjects, he  says,  are  also  discussed  by  him  in  his  works.  In  addition  to these,  it  seems  proper  to  subjoin  also  the  expressions  that  he uses  at  the  close  of  his  Antiquities,  in  confirmation  of  the  testimony that  we  have  taken  from  him.  For  when  he  accuses  Justus of  Tiberias,  who,  like  himself,  attempted  the  history  of  his own  times,  and  convicts  him  of  not  writing  according  to  truth, after  upbraiding  him  with  many  other  misdemeanours,  he  also adds  the  followins^  Ian2:ua2fe :  "  I  am  not,  however,  afraid  respecting  my  writings,  as  you  are;  but  have  presented  them  to  the emperors  themselves,  as  the  facts  occurred  almost  under  their eyes.  For  I  was  conscious  of  adhering  closely  to  the  truth  in my  narration,  and  hence  was  not  disappointed  in  expecting  to receive  their  testimony.  To  many  others,  also,  did  I  hand  my history,  some  of  whom  were  present  at  the  war,  as  king  Agrippa  and  some  of  his  relatives.  For  the  emperor  Titus  desired  so much  that  the  knowledge  of  these  events  should  be  communicated to  the  world,  that  with  his  own  hand  he  wrote  they  should be  published.  And  king  Agrippa  wrote  sixty-tw^o  letters  bearing testimony  to  their  truth,  of  which  Josephus  subjoined  two.  But this  may  suffice  respecting  him.  Let  us  now  proceed  to  what follows  in  order.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  99

CHAPTER  XL

Simeon  ruled  the  church  of  Jerusalem  after  James.

After  the  martyrdom  of  James,  and  the  capture  of  Jerusalem, which  immediately  followed,  the  report  is,  that  those  of  the apostles  and  the  disciples  of  our  Lord,  that  were  yet  surviving, came  together  from  all  parts  with  those  that  were  related  to our  Lord  according  to  the  flesh.  For  the  greater  part  of  them were  yet  living.  These  consulted  together,  to  determine  whom it  was  proper  to  pronounce  worthy  of  being  the  successor  of James.  They  all  unanimously  declared  Simeon  the  son  of  Clcophas,  of  whom  mention  is  made  in  the  sacred  volume,  as  worth}of  the  episcopal  seat  there.  They  say  he  was  the  cousin  german*  of  our  Saviour,  for  Hegesippus  asserts  that  Cleophas  was the  brother  of  Joseph.

CHAPTER  XIL

Vespasian  commands  the  descendants  of  David  to  he  sought.

It  was  also  said  that  Vespasian,  after  the  capture  of  Jerusalem, commanded  all  of  the  family  of  David  to  be  sought,  that  no  one might  be  left  among  the  Jews  who  was  of  the  royal  stock,  and, that  in  consequence  another  very  violent  persecution  was  raised against  the  Jews.

*  The  word  :tv£v<oi-  is  here  correctly  rendered  cousin  german,  by  the  mother's tf'dc  Valesius  has  incorrectly  rendered  patruelis,  cousin  german,  by  the  father's side.  Mary  the  wife  of  Cleophas,  and  Mary  the  mother  of  our  Lord,  were  sisters.
John  XIX.  25.  Hence,  Shorting  has  correctly  observed,  that  Hegesippus  calls Joseph  and  Cleophas  brothers,  by  reason  of  this  matrimonial  connexion.  See  his note.

11=^

100  ECCLESIASTICAL  fflSTORY.

CHAPTER  XIIL

Anendetus,  the  second  bishop  of  Rome.

After  Vespasian  had  reigned  about  ten  years,  he  was  succeeded by  his  son  Titus ;  in  the  second  year  of  whose  reign,  LinuS;
bishop  of  the  church  at  Rome,  who  had  held  the  office  about twelve  years,  transferred  it  to  Anencletus.  But  Titus  w^as  succeeded by  Domitian,  his  brother,  after  he  had  reigned  two  years and  as  many  months.

CHAPTER   XIV.

Avilius,  the  second  bishop  of  Alexandria,
In  the  fourth  year  of  Domitian,  Annianus,  who  was  the  first bishop  of  Alexandria,  died,  after  having  filled  the  office  twentytwo  years.  He  was  succeeded  by  Avilius,  who  was  the  second bishop  of  that  city.

CHAPTER  XV.

Clement,  the  third  bishop  of  Rome.

In  the  twelfth  year  of  the  same  reign,  after  Anencletus  had been  bishop  of  Rome  twelve  years,  he  was  succeeded  by  Clement, who,  the  apostle,  in  his  Epistle  to  the  Philippians,  shows, had  been  his  fellow-labourer,  in  these  words :  "  With  Clement and  the  rest  of  my  fellow-labourers,  whose  names  are  in  the  book of  life."

ECCLESIASTICAL  fflSTORY.  101

CHAPTER  XVI.

The  Epistle  of  Clement
Of  this  Clement  there  is  one  epistle  extant,  acknowledged  as genuine,  of  considerable  length  and  of  great  merit,  which  he wrote  in  the  name  of  the  church  at  Rome,  to  that  of  Corinth,  at the  time  when  there  was  a  dissension  in  the  latter.  This  we know  to  have  been  publicly  read  for  common  benefit,  in  most  of the  churches,  both  in  former  times  and  in  our  own ;  and  that  at the  time  mentioned  a  sedition  did  take  place  at  Corinth,  is  abundantly attested  by  Hegesippus.

CHAPTER  XVn.

The  persecution  of  the  Christians  under  Domitian.

DoMiTiAN,  indeed,  having  exercised  his  cruelty  against  many, and  unjustly  slain  no  small  number  of  noble  and  illustrious  men at  Rome,  and  having,  without  cause,  punished  vast  numbers  of honourable  men  with  exile  and  tlie  confiscation  of  their  property, at  lensjth  established  himself  as  the  successor  of  Nero,  in  his hatred  and  hostility  to  God.  He  was  the  second  that  raised  a persecution  against  us,  although  his  father  Vespasian  had  attempted nothing  to  our  prejudice.

CHAPTER  XVin.

Of  John  the  Apostle,  and  the  Revelation,
Lv  this  persecution,  it  is  handed  down  by  tradition,  that  the apostle  and  evangelist  John,  who  was  yet  living,  in  consequence of  his  testimony  to  the  divine  word,  was  condemned  to  dwell  on the  island  of  Patmos.  Irenaeus,  indeed,  in  his  fifth  book  against the  heresies,  where  he  speaks  of  the  calculation  formed  on  the
102  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

epithet  of  Antichrist,  in  the  abovementioned  revelation  of  Jolm, speaks  in  the  following  manner  respecting  him.  "  If,  however,  it were  necessary  to  proclaim  his  name,  (i.  e.  Antichrist,)  openly  at the  present  time,  it  would  have  been  declared  by  him  who  saw the  revelation,  for  it  is  not  long  since  it  was  seen,  but  almost  in our  own  generation,  at  the  close  of  Domitian's  reign."  To  such a  degree,  indeed,  did  the  doctrine  which  we  profess,  flourish,  that even  historians  that  are  very  far  from  befriending  our  religion, have  not  hesitated  to  record  this  persecution  and  its  martyrdoms in  their  histories.  These  also,  have  accurately  noted  the  time, for  it  happened,  according  to  them,  in  the  fifteenth  year  of  Domitian.  At  the  same  time,  for  professing  Christ,  Flavia  Domitilla, the  niece  of  Flavins  Clemens,  one  of  the  consuls  of  Rome  at  that time,  was  transported  with  many  others,  by  way  of  punishment, to  the  island  of  Pontia.

CHAPTEPw  XIX.

Domitian  commands  the  jpostcrity  of  David  to  he  slain.

But  when  the  same  Domitian  had  issued  his  orders,  that  the descendants  of  David  should  be  slain  according  to  an  ancient  tradition, some  of  the  heretics  accused  the  descendants  of  Judas,  as the  brother  of  our  Saviour,  according  to  the  flesh,  because  they  were of  the  family  of  David,  and  as  such,  also,  were  related  to  Christ.
This  is  declared  by  Hegesippus  as  follows.

CHAPTER  XX.

Of  the  relatives  of  our  Lord,
There  were  yet  living  of  the  family  of  our  Lord,  the  grandchildren of  Judas,  called  the  brother  of  our  Lord,  according  to the  flesh.  These  were  reported  as  being  of  the  family  of  David, and  were  brought  to  Domitian  by  theEvocatus.  For  this  emperor
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  103

was  as  much  alarmed  at  the  appearance  of  Qirist  as  Herod.  He put  the  question,  whether  they  were  of  David's  race,  and  they confessed  that  they  were.  He  then  asked  them  what  property they  had,  or  how  much  money  they  owned.  And  both  of  them answered,  that  they  had  between  them  only  nine  thousand  denarii,* and  this  they  had  not  in  silver,  but  in  the  value  of  a  piece  of land,  containing  only  thirty-nine  acres ;  from  which  they  raised their  taxes  and  supported  themselves  by  their  own  labour.  Then they  also  began  to  show  their  hands,  exhibiting  the  hardness of  their  bodies,  and  the  callosity  formed  by  incessant  kibour  on their  hands,  as  evidence  of  their  own  labour.  When  asked also,  respecting  Christ  and  his  kingdom,  what  was  its  nature, and  when  and  where  it  was  to  appear,  they  replied,  "  that  U  was not  a  temporal  nor  an  earthly  kingdom,  but  celestial  and  angelic  ;
that  it  would  appear  at  the  end  of  the  world,  when  comjng  in glory  he  would  judge  the  quick  and  dead,  and  give  to  every  one according  to  his  works."  Upon  which,  Domitian  despising  them, made  no  reply;  but  treating  them  with  contempt,  as  simpletons, commanded  them  to  be  dismissed,  and  b}^  a  decree  ordered  the persecution  to  cease.  Thus  delivered,  they  ruled  the  churches, both  as  witnesses  and  relatives  of  the  Lord.  When  peace  was established,  they  continued  living  even  to  the  times  of  Trajan."
Such  is  the  statement  of  Hegesippus.  Tertullian  also  has  mentioned Domitian  thus :  "  Domitian  had  also  once  attempted  the same  against  him,  who  was,  in  fact,  a  limb  of  Nero  for  cruelty ;
but  I  think,  because  he  yet  had  some  remains  of  reason,  he  very soon  suppressed  the  persecution,  even  recalling  those  whom  he had  exiled.  But  after  Domitian  had  reigned  fifteen  years,  and Nerva  succeeded  to  the  government,  the  Roman  senate  decreed, that  the  honours  of  Domitian  should  be  revoked,  and  that  those who  had  been  unjustly  expelled,  should  return  to  their  homes,  and have  their  goods  restored.  This  is  the  statement  of  the  historians of  the  day.  It  was  then  also,  that  the  apostle  John  returned  from his  banishment  in  Patmos,  and  took  up  his  abode  at  Ephesus,  ac cording  to  an  ancient  tradition  of  the  church.

*  The  Roman  dennrius  was  about  the  value  of  a  Greek  drachma,  each  fifteeu cents  nearly.

104  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XXI.

Cei'don,  the  third  bishop  of  Alexandria.   ,
After  Nerva  had  reigned  a  little  more  than  a  year,  he  was  succeeded by  Trajan.  It  was  in  the  first  year  of  his  reign,  that  Cerdon  succeeded  Avihus  in  the  church  of  Alexandria,  after  the  latter had  governed  it  thirteen  years.  He  was  the  third  that  held the  episcopate  there  since  Annianus.  During  this  time,  Clement was  yet  bishop  of  the  Pi-omans,  who  was  also  the  third  that  held the  episcopate  there  after  Paul  and  Peter ;  Linus  being  the  first and  Anencletus  next  in  order.

CHAPTER  XXII.

Ignatius,  the  second  bishop  of  Antioch.

OiV  the  death  of  Evodius,  who  was  the  first  bishop  of  Antioch, Ignatius  was  appointed  the  second.  Simeon  also  was  the  second after  the  brother  of  our  Lord,  that,  had  charge  of  the  church  at Jerusalem  about  this  time.

CHAPTER  XXIIL

Karrative  respecting  the  Apostle  John.

About  this  time  also,  the  beloved  disciple  of  Jesus,  John  the apostle  and  evangelist,  still  surviving,  governed  the  churches  in Asia,  after  his  return  from  exile  on  the  island,  and  the  death  of Domitian.  But  that  he  was  still  living  until  this  time,  it  may  suffice to  prove,  by  the  testimony  of  two  witnesses.  These,  as  maintaining sound  doctrine  in  the  church,  may  surely  be  regarded  as worthy  of  all  credit:  and  such  were  Irenaeus  and  Clement  of  Alexandria.  Of  these,  the  former,  in  the  second  book  against  lieresies,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  105

writes  in  the  following  manner :  "  And  all  the  presbyters  of  Asia, that  had  conferred  with  John  the  disciple  of  our  Lord,  testify  that John  had  delivered  it  to  them ;  for  he  continued  with  them  until the  times  of  Trajan."  And  in  the  third  book  of  the  same  work, he  shows  the  same  thing  in  the  following  words :  "  But  the  church in  Ephesus  also,  which  had  been  founded  by  Paul,  and  where John  continued  to  abide  until  the  times  of  Trajan,  is  a  faithful witness  of  the  apostolic  tradition."  Clement  also,  indicating  the time,  subjoins  a  narrative  most  acceptable  to  those  who  delight  to hear  what  is  excellent  and  profitable,  in  that  discourse  to  which he  gave  the  title,  "  What  Rich  Man  is  saved  ?"  Taking  therefore the  book,  read  it  where  it  contains  a  narrative  like  the  following :
"  Listen  to  a  story  that  is  no  fiction,  but  a  real  history,  handed down  and  carefully  preserved,  respecting  the  apostle  John.  For after  the  tyrant  was  dead,  coming  from  the  isle  of  Patmos  to Ephesus,  he  went  also,  when  called,  to  the  neighbouring  regions of  the  Gentiles;  in  some  to  appoint  bishops,  in  some  to  institute entire  new  churches,  in  others  to  appoint  to  the  ministry some  one  of  those  that  were  pointed  out  by  the  Holy  Ghost.
When  he  came,  therefore,  to  one  of  those  cities,  at  no  great distance,  of  which  some  also  give  the  name,  and  had  in  other respects  consoled  his  brethren,  he  at  last  turned  towards  the bishop  ordained,  (appointed,)  and  seeing  a  youth  of  fine  stature, graceful  countenance,  and  ardent  mind,  he  said,  '  Him  I  commend to  you  with  all  earnestness,  in  the  presence  of  the  church  and  of Christ'  The  bishop  having  taken  him  and  promised  all,  he  repeated and  testified  the  same  thing,  and  then  returned  to  Ephesus. The  presbyter  taking  the  youth  home  that  was  committed to  him,  educated,  restrained,  and  cherished  him,  and  at  length baptized  him.  After  this  he  relaxed  exercising  his  former  care and  vigilance,  as  if  he  had  now  committed  him  to  a  perfect  safeguard in  the  seal  of  the  Lord.  But  certain  idle,  dissolute  fellows, familiar  with  every  kind  of  wickedness,  unhappily  attach  themselves to  him,  thus  prematurely  freed  from  restraint.  At  first  they lead  him  on  ty  expensive  entertainments.  Then  going  out  at  night to  plunder,  they  take  him  with  them.  Next,  they  encourage  him to  something  greater,  and  gradually  becoming  accustomed  to  their

O

106  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

ways  in  his  enterprising  spirit,  like  an  unbridled  ana  powerful steed  that  has  struck  out  of  the  right  way,  biting  the  curb,  he rushed  with  so  much  the  greater  impetuosity  towards  the  precipice. At  length  renouncing  the  salvation  of  God,  he  contemplated no  trifling  offence,  but  having  committed  some  great  crime,  since he  was  now  once  ruined,  he  expected  to  suffer  equally  with  the rest.  Taking,  therefore,  these  same  associates,  and  forming  them into  a  band  of  robbers,  he  became  their  captain,  surpassing  them all  in  violence,  blood,  and  cruelty.  Time  elapsed,  and  on  a  certain occasion  they  send  for  John.  The  apostle,  after  appointing those  other  matters  for  which  he  came,  said,  '  Come,  bishop,  return me  my  deposite,  which  I  and  Christ  committed  to  thee,  in  the  presence of  the  church  over  which  thou  dost  preside.'  The  bishop at  first,  indeed,  was  confounded,  thinking  that  he  was  insidiously charged  for  money  which  he  had  not  received ;  and  yet  he  could neither  give  credit  respecting  that  which  he  had  not,  nor  yet  disbelieve John.  But  when  he  said,  '  I  demand  the  young  man,  and the  soul  of  a  brother,'  the  old  man,  groaning  heavily  and  also weeping,  said,  *  He  is  dead.'  '  How,  and  what  death  V  '  He  is dead  to  God,'  said  he.  '  He  has  turned  out  wicked  and  abandonea, and  at  last  a  robber ;  and  now,  instead  of  the  church,  he  has  beset the  mountain  with  a  band  like  himself  The  apostle,  on hearing  this,  tore  his  garment,  and  beating  his  head  with  great lamentation,  said,  'I  left  a  fine  keeper  of  a  brother's  soul!  But let  a  horse  now  be  got  ready,  and  some  one  to  guide  me  on  my way.'  He  rode  as  he  was,  away  from  the  church,  and  coming  to the  country,  was  taken  prisoner  by  the  outguard  of  the  banditti.
He  neither  attempted,  however,  to  flee,  nor  refused  to  be  taken ;
but  cried  out,  '  For  this  very  purpose  am  I  come ;  conduct  me  to your  captain.'  He,  in  the  meantime  stood  waiting,  armed  as  he  was.
But  as  he  recognised  John  advancing  towards  him,  overcome  with shame  he  turned  about  to  flee.  The  apostle,  however,  pursued  him with  all  his  might,  forgetful  of  his  age,  and  crying  out,  '  Why  dost thou  fly,  my  son,  from  me,  thy  father ;  thy  defenceless,  aged  father?
Have  compassion  on  me,  my  son ;  fear  not.  Thou  still  hast  hope  of life.  I  will  intercede  with  Christ  for  thee.  Should  it  be  necessary, I  will  cneerfully  suffer  death  for  thee,  as  Christ  for  us.  I  will  give
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  107

my  life  for  thine.  Stay ;  believe  Christ  hath  sent  me.'  Hearing  this, he  at  first  stopped  with  downcast  looks.  Then  threw  away  his arms ;  then  trembling,  lamented  bitterly,  and  embracing  the  old man  as  he  came  up,  attempted  to  plead  for  himself  with  his  lamentations, as  much  as  he  was  able  ;  as  if  baptized  a  second  time with  his  own  tears,  and  only  concealing  his  right  hand.  But  the apostle  pledging  himself,  and  solemnly  assuring  him,  that  he  had fouiid  pardon  for  him  in  his  prayers  at  the  hands  of  Christ,  praying, on  his  bended  knees,  and  kissing  his  right  hand  as  cleansed from  all  iniquity,  conducted  him  back  again  to  the  church.  Then supplicating  with  frequent  prayers,  contending  with  constant fastings,  and  softening  down  his  mind  with  various  consolatory declarations,  he  did  not  leave  him  as  it  is  said,  until  he  had  restored him  to  the  church.  Affording  a  powerful  example  of  true repentance,  and  a  great  evidence  of  a  regeneration,  a  trophy  of a  visible  resurrection."

CHAPTER  XXIV.

The  order  of  the  Gospels.

These  extracts  from  Clement  may  here  suffice,  both  fur  the sake  of  the  history  and  the  benefit  of  the  readers.  Let  us  now also  show  the  undisputed  writings  of  the  same  apostle.  And  of these  his  gospel,  so  well  known  in  the  churches  throughout  the world,  must  first  of  all  be  acknowledged  as  genuine.  That  it  is, however,  with  good  reason,  placed  the  fourth  in  order  by  the ancients,  may  be  made  evident  in  the  following  manner.  Those inspired  and  truly  pious  men,  the  apostles  of  our  Saviour,  as  they were  most  pure  in  their  life,  and  adorned  with  every  kind  of  virtue in  their  minds,  but  common  in  their  language,  relying  upon the  divine  and  wonderful  energy  granted  them,  tljcy  neither knew  how,  nor  attempted  to  propound  the  doctrines  of  their  master, with  the  art  and  refinement  of  composition.  But  employing only  the  demonstration  of  the  divine  Spirit,  w'orking  with  them, and  the  wonder-working  power  of  Christ,  displayed  through 12

108  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

ihem,  they  proclaimed  the  knowledge  of  the  kingdom  of  heaven throughout  the  world.  They  bestowed  but  little  care  upon  the study  of  style,  and  this  they  did,  because  they  were  aided  by  a co-operation  greater  than  that  of  men.  Paul,  indeed,  who  war the  most  able  of  all  in  the  preparations  of  style,  and  who  w^as most  powerful  in  sentiments,  commiitted  nothing  miore  to  writing than  a  few  very  short  epistles.  And  this  too,  although  he  had innumerable  mysterious  matters  that  he  might  have  communicated, as  he  had  attained  even  to  the  view  of  the  third  heavens, had  been  taken  up  to  the  very  paradise  of  God,  and  had  been honoured  to  hear  the  unutterable  words  there.  The  other  followers of  our  Lord  were  also  not  ignorant  of  such  things,  as  the twelve  apostles,  and  the  seventy,  together  with  many  others ;  yet of  all  the  disciples,  Matthew  and  John  are  the  only  ones  that  have left  us  recorded  comments,  and  even  they,  tradition  says,  undertook it  from  necessity.  Matthew  also  having  first  proclaimed  the gospel  in  Hebrew,  when  on  the  point  of  going  also  to  other  nations, committed  it  to  wa^iting  in  his  native  tongue,  and  thus  supplied the  want  of  his  presence  to  them,  by  his  writings.  But after  Mark  and  Luke  had  already  published  their  gospels,  they say,  that  John,  who  during  all  this  time  was  proclaiming  the  gospel v/ithout  writing,  at  length  proceeded  to  write  it  on  the  following occasion.  The  three  gospels  previously  written,  having been  distributed  among  all,  and  also  handed  to  him,  they  say that  he  admitted  them,  giving  his  testimony  to  their  truth  ;  but  that there  was  only  wanting  in  the  narrative  the  account  of  the  things done  by  Christ,  among  the  first  of  his  deeds,  and  at  the  commencement of  the  gospel.  And  this  was  the  truth.  For  it  is  evident that  the  other  three  evangelists  only  wrote  the  deeds  of  our Lord  for  one  year  after  the  imprisonment  of  John  the  Baptist, and  intimated  this  in  the  very  beginning  of  their  history.  For after  the  fasting  of  forty  days,  and  the  consequent  temptation, Matthev/  indeed  specifies  the  time  of  his  history,  in  these  w^ords :
"  But  hearing  that  John  was  delivered  up,  he  returned  from  Judea into  Galilee."  Mark  in  like  manner  writes :  "  But  after  John  was delivered  up,  Je?'js  came  into  Galilee  ?"  And  Luke,  before  he  commenced the  d  jeds  of  Jesus,  in  much  the  same  way  designates  the
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  109

time  saying,  "  Herod  thus  added,  yet  this  wickedness  above  all he  had  committed,  and  that  he  shut  up  John  in  prison."  For  these reasons  the  apostle  John,  it  is  said,  being  entreated  to  undertake it,  wrote  the  account  of  the  time  not  recorded  by  the  former evangelists,  and  the  deeds  done  by  our  Saviour,  Vv-hich  they  have passed  by,  (for  these  were  the  events  that  occurred  before  the imprisonment  of  John,)  and  this  A^ery  fact  is  intimated  by  him, when  he  says,  "this  beginning  of  miracles  Jesus  made;"  and  then proceeds  to  make  mention  of  the  Baptist,  in  the  midst  of  our Lord's  deeds,  as  John  was  at  that  time  "  baptising  at  JEnon  near Salim."  He  plainly  also  shows  this  in  the  words :  "  John  was not  yet  cast  into  prison."  The  apostle,  therefore,  in  his  gospel, gives  the  deeds  of  Jesus  before  the  Baptist  was  cast  into  prison, but  the  other  three  evangelists  mention  the  circumstances  after that  event.  One  who  attends  to  these  circumstances,  can  no longer  entertain  the  opinion,  that  the  gospels  are  at  variance  with each  other,  as  the  gospel  of  John  comprehends  the  first  events  of Christ,  but  the  others,  the  history  that  took  place  at  the  latter part  of  the  time.  It  is  probable,  therefore,  that  for  these  reasons John  has  passed  by  in  silence  the  genealogy  of  our  Lord,  because it  was  written  by  Matthew  and  Luke,  but  that  he  commenced with  the  doctrine  of  the  divinity,  as  a  part  reserved  for him,  by  the  divine  Spirit,  as  if  for  a  superior.  Let  this  suffice  to be  said  respecting  the  gospel  of  John.  The  causes  that  induced Mark  to  write  his,  have  already  been  stated.  But  Luke  also  in the  commencement  of  his  narrative,  premises  the  cause  w^hich led  him  to  write,  showing  that  many  others,  having  rashly  undertaken to  compose  a  narration  of  matters  that  he  had  already completely  ascertained,  in  order  to  free  us  from  the  uncertain suppositions  of  others,  in  his  own  gospel,  he  delivered  the  certain account  of  those  things,  that  he  himself  had  fully  received from  his  intimacy  and  stay  with  Paul,  and  also,  his  intercourse with  the  other  apostles.  But  this  may  suffice  respecting  these.
At  a  more  proper  time  w^e  shall  endeavour  also  to  state,  by  a  reference to  some  of  the  ancient  writers,  what  others  have  said respecting  the  sacred  books.  But  besides  the  gospel  of  John,  his first  epistle  is  acknowledged  without  dispute,  both  by  those  of  the
110  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

present  day,  and  also  by  the  ancients.     The  other  two  epistles, however,  are  disputed.     The  opinions  respecting  the  revelation are  still  greatly  divided.    But  we  shall,  in  due  time,  give  a  judg mcnt  on  this  point,  also  from  the  testimony  of  the  ancients.

CHAPTER  XXV.

Tfie  sacred  Scriptures  acknowledged  as  genuine,  and  those  thai
are  not.

This  appears  also  to  be  the  proper  place,  to  give  a  summary statement  of  the  books  of  the  New  Testament  already  mentioned.
And  here,  among  the  first,  must  be  placed  the  holy  quaternion of  the  gospels ;  these  are  followed  by  "  The  book  of  the  Acts  of the  Apostles ;"  after  this  must  be  mentioned  the  epistles  of  Paul, which  are  follow^ed  by  the  acknowledged  first  Epistle  of  John,  as also  the  first  of  Peter,  to  be  admitted  in  like  manner.  After  these, are  to  be  placed,  if  proper,  the  Revelation  of  John,  concerning w^hich  we  shall  offer  the  different  opinions  in  due  time.
These,  then,  are  acknowledged  as  genuine.  Among  the  disputed books,  although  they  are  well  known  and  approved  by many,  is  reputed,  that  called  the  Epistle  of  James  and  Jude.  Also the  "  Second  Epistle  of  Peter,"  and  those  called  "  The  Second  and Third  of  John,"  whether  they  are  of  the  evangeUst  or  of  some other  of  the  same  name.  Among  the  spurious  must  be  numbered, both  the  books  called  "  The  Acts  of  Paul,"  and  that called  "  Pastor,"  and  "  The  Revelation  of  Peter."  Beside  these, the  books  called  "  The  Epistle  of  Barnabas,"  and  v.  hat  are called  "  The  Institutions  of  the  Apostles."  Moreover,  as  I  said before,  if  it  should  appear  right,  "  The  Revelation  of  John,"
which  some,  as  before  said,  reject,  but  others  rank  among  the genuine.  But  there  are  also  some  who  number  among  these, the  gospel  according  to  the  Hebrews,  with  which  those  of  the Hebrews  that  have  received  Christ  are  particularly  delighted These  may  be  said  to  be  all  concerning  which  there  is  any  dispute.  We  have,  however,  necessarily  subjoined  here  a  catalogue
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  Ill
of  these  also,  in  order  to  distinguish  those  that  are  true,  genuine, and  well  authenticated  writings,  from  those  others  which  are not  only  not  imbodied  in  the  canon,  but  likewise  disputed,  notwithstanding that  they  are  recognized  by  most  ecclesiastical  writers.
Thus  we  may  have  it  in  our  power  to  know  both  these  books, and  those  that  are  adduced  by  the  heretics  under  the  name  of the  apostles,  such,  viz.,  as  compose  the  gospels  of  Peter,  Thomas, and  Matthew,  and  others  beside  them,  or  such  as  contain  the Acts  of  the  Apostles,  by  Andrew,  and  John,  and  others,  of which  no  one  of  those  writers  in  the  ecclesiastical  succession has  condescended  to  make  any  mention  in  his  works ;  and  indeed, the  character  of  the  style  itself  is  very  different  from  that  of  the apostles,  and  the  sentiments,  and  the  purport  of  those  things  that are  advanced  in  them,  deviating  as  far  as  possible  from  sound  orthodoxy, evidently  proves  they  are  the  fictions  of  heretical  men  ;
whence  they  are  to  be  ranked  not  only  among  the  spurious  writings, but  are  to  be  rejected  as  altogether  absurd  and  impious.
Let  us  now  proceed  to  the  continuation  of  our  history.

CHAPTER  XXVL

Menander  the  imj)ostcn\

Menaxder,  who  succeeded  Simon  Magus,  exhibited  himself  in his  conduct  an  instrument  of  diabolical  wickedness,  not  inferior to  the  former.  He  also,  was  a  Samaritan,  and  having  made no  less  progress  in  his  impostures  than  his  master,  revelled  in still  more  arrogant  pretensions  to  miracles  ;  saying  that  he  was in  truth  the  Saviour,  once  sent  from  the  invisible  worlds  for  the salvation  of  men ;  teaching  also,  that  no  one  could  overcome even  the  very  angels  that  formed  the  heavens  in  any  other  way, than  by  being  first  initiated  into  the  magic  discipline  imparted  by him,  and  by  the  baptism  conferred  by  him  for  this  purpose.  Of which,  those  who  were  deemed  worthy  would  obtain  perpetual immortality  in  this  very  life,  being  no  more  subject  to  death,  but continuing  here  the  same,  would  be  exempt  from  old  affe,  and  be 12^

112  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

in  fact  immortal.  This  account  may  be  easily  confirmed  from Irenseus ;  but  Justin,  in  the  same  place  where  he  mentions Simeon,  also  adds  the  narrative  respecting  this  one  as  follows  :
"But  we  know  that  Menander  who  was  a  Samaritan  of  the village  Caparattasa,  becoming  a  disciple  of  Simeon,  and  likewise stimulated  by  the  daemons,  came  to  Antioch,  and  deceived  many by  his  magic  arts.  He  persuaded  those  that  followed  him,  that they  should  never  die.  And  there  are  now  some  of  his  followers that  make  a  profession  of  the  same  thing.  It  was  indeed,  a diabolical  artifice,  by  means  of  such  impostors  assuming  the  title of  Christians,  to  evince  so  much  zeal  in  defaming  the  great mystery  of  piety  by  magic  arts,  and  to  rend  asunder  by  these means  the  doctrines  of  the  church  respecting  the  immortality  of the  soul,  and  the  resurrection  of  the  dead.  Those,  however,  who called  these  their  Saviours,  fell  away  from  solid  hope.

CHAPTER  XXYII.

The  Heresy  of  the  Ehionites.

The  spirit  of  wickedness,  however,  being  unable  to  shake  some in  their  love  of  Christ,  and  yet  finding  them  susceptible  of  his impressions  in  other  respects,  brought  them  over  to  his  purposes.
These  are  properly  called  Ebionites  *  by  the  ancients,  as  those who  cherished  low  and  mean  opinions  of  Christ.  For  they  considered him  a  plain  and  common  man,  and  justified  only  by  his advances  in  virtue,  and  that  he  was  born  of  the  Virgin  Mary, by  natural  generation.  With  them  the  observance  of  the  law was  altogether  necessary,  as  if  they  could  not  be  saved,  only  by faith  in  Christ  and  a  corresponding  life.  Others,  however,  besides these,  but  of  the  same  name,  indeed  avoided  the  absurdity of  the  opinions  maintained  by  the  former,  not  denying  that  the r^ord  was  born  of  the  Virgin  by  the  Holy  Ghost,  and  yet  in  like
*  The  word  ebion,  in  Hebrew,  signifying  poor,  seems  to  allude  either  to  the opinions  or  the  condition  of  this  sect.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  113

manner,  not  acknowledging  his  pre-existence,  though  he  was God,  tha  word  and  wisdom,  they  turned  aside  into  the  same  irreligion,  as  with  the  former  they  evinced  great  zeal  to  observe  the ritual  service  of  the  law.  These,  indeed,  thought  on  the  one  hand that  all  the  epistles  of  the  apostles  ought  to  be  rejected,  calling him  an  apostate  from  the  law,  but  on  the  other,  only  using  the gospel  according  to  the  Hebrews,  they  esteem  the  others  as  of but  little  value.  They  also  observe  the  Sabbath  and  other  discipline of  the  Jews,  just  like  them,  but  on  the  other  hand,  they also  celebrate  the  Lord's  days  very  much  like  us,  in  commemoration of  his  resurrection.  Whence,  in  consequence  of  such  a course,  they  have  also  received  their  epithet,  the  name  of  Ebionites,  exhibiting  the  poverty  of  their  intellect.  For  it  is  thus  that tlie  Hebrews  call  a  poor  man.

CHAPTER  XXVIII.

Cerinthus  the  Heresiarch.

About  the  same  time,  we  have  understood,  appeared  Cerinthus, the  leader  of  another  heresy.  Caius,  whose  word's  we quoted  above,  in  "  The  Disputation"  attributed  to  himy  writes thus  respecting  him  :  "  But  Cerinthus,  by  means  of  revelations which  he  pretended  were  written  by  a  great  apostle,  also  falsely pretended  to  wonderful  things,  as  if  they  were  showed  him by  angels,  asserting,  that  after  the  resurrection  there  would be  an  earthly  kingdom  of  Christ,  and  that  the  flesh,  i.  e.  men, again  inhabiting  Jerusalem,  would  be  subject  to  desires  and  pleasures. Being  also  an  enemy  to  the  divine  Scriptures,  with  a view  to  deceive  men,  he  said  that  there  would  be  a  space  of  a thousand  years  for  celebrating  nuptial  festivals."  Dionysius also,  who  obtained  the  episcopate  of  Alexandria  in  our  day,  in the  second  book  "  On  Promises,"  where  he  says  some  things  as if  received  by  ancient  tradition,  makes  mention  of  the  same  man, in  these  words  :  "  But  it  is  highly  probable  that  Cerinthus,  the same  that  estabhshed  the  heresy  that  bears  his  name,  designedly

P

114  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

affixed  the  name  (of  John)  to  his  own  forgery.  For  one  of  the doctrines  that  he  taught  was,  that  Christ  would  have  an  earthly kingdom.  And  as  he  was  a  voluptuary,  and  altogether  sensual, he  conjectured  that  it  would  consist  in  those  things  that  he craved  in  the  gratification  of  appetite  and  lust ;  i.  e.  in  eating, drinking,  and  marrying,  or  in  such  things  whereby  he  supposed these  sensual  pleasures  might  be  presented  in  more  decent  expressions ;  viz.  in  festivals,  sacrifices,  and  the  slaying  of  victims."
Thus  far  Dionysius.  But  Irenasus,  in  his  first  book  against  heresies, adds  certain  false  doctrines  of  the  man,  though  kept  more secret,  and  gives  a  history  in  his  third  book,  that  deserves  to  be recorded,  as  received  by  tradition  from  Polycarp.  He  says  that John  the  apostle  once  entered  a  bath  to  wash ;  but  ascertaining Cerinthus  was  within,  he  leaped  out  of  the  place,  and  fled  from the  door,  not  enduring  to  enter  under  the  same  roof  with  him, and  exhorted  those  with  him  to  do  the  same,  saying,  "  let  us  flee, lest  the  bath  fall  in,  as  long  as  Cerinthus,  that  enemy  of  the  truth, is  within."

CHAPTER  XXIX.

JVicoIaus  and  his  followers.

About  this  time,  also,  for  a  very  short  time,  arose  the  heresy of  those  sailed  Nicolaites,  of  which  also  mention  is  made  in  the revelation  of  John.  These  boasted  of  Nicolaus  as  their  founder, one  of  those  deacons  who  with  Stephen  were  appointed  by  the apostles  to  minister  unto  the  poor.  Clement  of  Alexandria,  in  the third  book  of  his  Stromata,  relates  the  following  respecting  him, *'  Having  a  beautiful  wife,  and  being  reproached  after  the  ascension of  our  Lord,  with  jealousy  by  the  apostles,  he  conducted  her into  the  midst  of  them,  and  permitted  any  one  that  wished  to marry  her.  This  they  say  w^as  perfectly  consistent  with  that expression  of  his,  "  that  every  one  ought  to  abuse  his  own flesh  '*     And  thus  those  that  adopted  his  heresy,  following  both
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  115

this  example  and  expression  literally,  rush  headlong  into  fornication without  shame.  I  have  ascertained,  however,  that  Nicolaus lived  with  no  other  woman  than  the  one  to  whom  he  was  married, but  that  his  daughters  continued  in  the  state  of  virginity to  advanced  life;  that  his  son  also  remained  uncorrupt.  It would  appear,  therefore,  from  these  facts,  that  the  introduction of  his  wife  into  the  midst  of  the  apostles,  on  account  of  jealousy, was  rather  the  suppression  of  passion.  And,  therefore,  abstinence from  those  pleasures  that  are  so  eagerly  pursued,  was  inculcated by  the  expression,  '  we  ought  to  abuse  the  flesh.'  For  I  do  not think,  that  according  to  the  saying  of  our  Lord,  he  wished  to serve  two  masters,  the  flesh  and  the  Lord.  They  indeed  say that  Matthew  thus  tauc^ht  to  fio^ht  a']^ainst  and  to  abuse  the  flesh, not  to  give  way  to  any  thing  for  the  sake  of  pleasure,  and  to  cultivate the  spirit  by  faith  and  knowledge."  But  it  may  suffice  to have  said  thus  much  concerning  those  who  have  attempted  to mutilate  the  truth,  and  which  again  became  extinct,  sooner  than said.

CHAPTER  XXX.

Tlie  apostles  that  lived  in  marriage.

Cleme\t  indeed,  whose  words  we  have  just  cited,  after  the above  mentioned  facts,  next  gives  a  statement  of  those  apostles that  continued  in  the  marriage  state,  on  account  of  those  who  set marriage  aside.  "  And  will  they,"  says  he,  "  reject  even  the  apostles !  Peter  and  Philip,  indeed,  had  children,  Philip,  also  ga^e  his daughters  in  marriage  to  husbands,  and  Paul  does  not  demur  in a  certain  epistle  to  mention  his  own  wife,  whom  he  did  not  take about  with  him,  in  order  to  expedite  his  ministry  the  better."
Since  however,  we  have  mentioned  these,  we  shall  not  regret  to subjoin  another  history  worthy  of  record,  from  the  same  autho^
continued  in  the  seventh  book  of  the  same  work,  Strom ateus.
"  They  relate,"  says  he,  "  that  the  blessed  Peter,  seeing  his  own wife  led  away  to  execution,  was  delighted,  on   account  of  her
116  ECCLESIASTICAL  HJSTORY.

calling  and  return  to  her  country,  and  that  he  cried  to  her  in  a consolatory  and  encouraging  voice,  addressing  her  by  name:
"  Oh  thou,  remember  the  Lord  !"  Such  was  the  marriage  of  these blessed  ones,  and  such  was  their  perfect  affection  towards  their dearest  friends-j  and  this  account  we  have  given  in  its  proper place,  as  well  adapted  to  the  subject.

CHAPTER  XXXL

The  death  of  John  and  Philip,
The  time  and  manner  of  the  death  of  Paul  and  Peter,  and also  the  place  where  their  bodies  were  interred  after  their  departure from  this  life,  has  already  been  stated  by  us.  The  time when  John  died,  has  also,  in  some  measure,  been  mentioned,  but the  place  of  his  burial  is  shown  from  the  epistle  of  Polycrates, who  was  bishop  of  the  church  of  Ephesus,  which  epistle  he  wrote to  Victor,  bishop  of  Rome,  and  at  the  same  time  makes  mention  of him  (John)  and  the  apostle  Philip,  and  his  daughters,  thus :  "  For in  Asia,  also,  mighty  luminaries  have  fallen  asleep,  which  shall rise  again  at  the  last  day,  at  the  appearance  of  the  Lord,  when he  shall  come  with  glory  from  heaven,  and  shall  gather  again  all the  saints.  Philip,  one  of  the  twelve  apostles  who  sleeps  in  Hierapolis,  and  his  two  aged  virgin  daughters.  Another  of  his  daughters, who  lived  in  the  holy  Spirit,  rests  at  Ephesus.  Moreover, John,  that  rested  on  the  bosom  of  our  Lord,  who  was  a  priest that  bore  the  sacerdotal  plate,  and  martyr  and  teacher,  he,  also, rests  at  Ephesus."  This  may  suffice  as  to  their  death  ;  and  in  the dialogue  of  Caius,  which  we  mentioned  a  little  before,  Proclus, against  whom  he  wrote  his  disputation,  coinciding  with  what  we have  already  advanced  concerning  the  death  of  Philip  and  his daughters,  speaks  thus :  "  After  this  there  were  four  prophetesses the  daughters  of  Philip  at  Hierapolis  in  Asia,  whose  tomb,  and that  of  their  father,  are  to  be  seen  there."  Such  is  his  statement.
But  Luke,  in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  mentions  the  daughters  of Philip,  tarrying  in  Cesarea  of  Judea,  and  as  endued  with  the  gift
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  117

of  prophecy,  in  these  words :  "  We  came  to  Cesarea,  and  having entered  the  house  of  Phihp  the  evangelist,  one  of  the  seven,  we abode  with  him.  But  he  had  four  virgin  daughters  that  prophesied." But  as  we  have  thus  set  forth  wdiat  has  come  to  our knowledge  respecting  the  apostles  and  the  apostolical  times,  as also  respecting  the  sacred  books  that  they  have  left  us,  both  the disputed  writings,  though  publicly  used  by  many  in  most  of  the churches,  and  those  that  are  altogether  spurious,  and  far  removed from  the  correct  doctrine  of  the  apostles,  let  us  now  proceed  to our  history  in  order.

CHAPTER  XXXII.

The  martyrdom  of  Simeon,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,
After  Nero  and  Domitian,  w^e  have  also  been  informed,  that in  the  reign  of  the  emperor,  whose  times  we  are  now  recording, there  was  a  partial  persecution  excited  throughout  the  cities,  in consequence  of  a  popular  insurrection.  In  this  w^e  have  understood, also,  that  Simeon  died  as  a  martyr,  w^ho,  w^e  have  shown, was  appointed  the  second  bishop  of  the  church  at  Jerusalem.  To this  the  same  Hegesippus  bears  testimony,  w^hose  words  we  have already  so  often  quoted.  This  author,  speaking  of  certain  heretics, superadds,  that  Simeon  indeed,  about  this  time  having  borne  the accusation  of  Christian,  although  he  was  tortured  for  several  days, and  astonished  both  the  judge  and  his  attendants  in  the  highest degree,  terminated  his  life  with  suflferings  hke  those  of  our  Lord.
But  it  is  best  to  hear  the  writer  himself,  who  gives  the  account as  follows :  "  Of  these  heretics,"  says  he,  "  some  reported  Simeon the  son  of  Cleophas,  as  a  descendant  of  David,  and  a  Christian;  and thus  he  suffered  as  a  martyr,  w^hen  he  was  an  hundred  and  twenty years  old,  in  the  reign  of  the  emperor  Trajan,  and  the  presidency  of the  consular  Atticus.  The  same  author  says,  that  as  search was  made  for  the  Jews  that  w-ere  of  the  tribe  of  David,  his  accusers, as  if  they  w^ere  descended  from  this  family,  w^ere  taken  in custody.     One   might   reasonably  assert  that  this  Simeon  wai?

118  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

among  the  witnesses  that  bore  testimony  to  what  they  had  both heard  and  seen  of  our  Lord,  if  we  are  to  judge  by  the  length  of his  Hfe,  and  the  fact  that  the  gospels  make  mention  of  Mary  the daughter  of  Cleophas,  whose  son  Simeon  was,  as  we  have  already shown.  But  the  same  historian  says,  that  there  were  others,  the offspring  of  one  of  those  considered  brothers  of  the  Lord,  whose name  was  Judas,  and  that  these  lived  until  the  same  reign  after their  profession  of  Christ,  and  the  testimony  under  Domitian beforementioned.  He  writes  thus :  "  There  are  also,  those  that take  the  lead  of  the  whole  church  as  martyrs,  even  the  kindred of  our  Lord.  And  when  profound  peace  was  established  throughout the  church,  they  continued  to  the  days  of  the  emperor  Trajan, until  the  time  that  the  abovementioned  Simeon,  the  relative of  our  Lord,  being  the  son  of  Cleophas,  was  waylaid  by  the heresies,  and  also  himself  accused  for  the  same  cause,  under  Atticus,  who  was  of  similar  dignity.  After  he  was  tormented  many days,  he  died  a  martyr,  with  such  firmness,  that  all  were  amazed, even  the  president  himself,  that  a  man  of  a  hundred  and  twenty years  should  bear  such  tortures.  He  was  at  last  ordered  to  be crucified."  The  same  author,  relating  the  events  of  the  times, also  sa3^s,  that  the  church  continued  until  then  as  a  pure  and  uncorrupt  virgin ;  whilst  if  there  were  any  at  all,  that  attempted to  pervert  the  sound  doctrine  of  the  saving  gospel,  they  were  yet skulking  in  dark  retreats ;  but  when  the  sacred  choir  of  apostles became  extinct,  and  the  generation  of  those  that  had  been  privileged to  hear  their  inspired  wisdom,  had  passed  away,  then  also the  combinations  of  impious  error  arose  by  the  fraud  and  delusions of  false  teachers.  These  also,  as  there  was  none  of  the apostles  left,  henceforth  attempted,  without  shame,  to  preach their  false  doctrine  against  the  gospel  of  truth.  Such  is  the statement  of  Hegesippus.   Let  us,  however,  proceed  in  our  history.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  119

CHAPTER    XXXin.

Trajan  forbids  the  Christians  to  he  sought  after.

So  ^reat  a  persecution  was  then  commenced  against  our  faith, m  m  3^  t  places,  that  Plinius  Secundus,  one  of  the  most  distinguished governors,  moved  by  the  number  of  martyrs,  communicated  with the  emperor  respecting  the  multitudes  that  were  put  to  death  for their  faith.  At  the  same  time  he  informed  him,  that  as  far  as  he had  ascertained,  they  did  nothing  wicked  or  contrary  to  the  laws  ;
except  that  they  rose  with  the  morning  sun,  and  sang  a  hymn  to Christ  as  to  a  god.  But  that  adultery,  and  murder,  and  criminal excesses  like  these,  were  totally  abhorred  by  them ;  and  that  in all  things  they  acted  according  to  the  laws.  To  this,  Trajan  in reply,  issued  a  decree,  the  purport  of  which  was,  that  no  search should  be  made  after  those  that  were  Christians,  but  when  they presented  themselves  they  should  be  punished.  On  this,  the  persecution in  some  measure  seemed  abated,  in  its  extreme  violence, but  there  were  no  less  pretexts  left  for  those  that  wished  to  harass us.  Sometimes  the  people,  sometimes  the  rulers  of  different places,  would  waylay  us  to  ensnare  us.  So  that  without  an  obvious persecution,  there  were  partial  persecutions  in  the  provinces, and  many  of  the  faithful  endured  martyrdoms  of  various  kinds.
We  have  taken  the  account  from  the  Apology  of  Tertullian,  in Latin,  mentioned  above,  of  which,  the  translation  is  as  follows :
"  And  indeed,"  saj^s  he,  "  we  have  found  that  the  inquisition  against us  is  prohibited.  For  Plinius  Secundus,  who  was  governor  of  the province,  having  condemned  certain  Christians,  and  deprived  them of  their  dignity,  was  confounded  by  the  great  number,  and  in  doubt what  course  he  should  pursue.  He  communicated,  therefore,  the fact  to  Trajan  the  emperor,  saying,  that  with  the  exception  they were  not  willing  to  sacrifice,  he  found  nothing  criminal  in  them.
He  stated  also  this,  that  the  Christians  arose  with  the  sun,  and sang  to  Christ  as  to  a  god ;  and  that  for  the  purpose  of  keeping their  discipline,  they  prohibited  adultery,  murder,  overreacliing,
fraud,  and  all  crimes  like  them.     To  this,  Trajan  wrote  in  reply, 13

120  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

that  the  Christians  should  not  be  inquired  after,  but  when  they presented  themselves  they  should  be  punished."  And  such  were the  circumstances  attending  these  events.

CHAPTER  XXXIV.

Euarestus,  the  fourth  bishop  of  the  church  at  Rome.

In  the  third  year  of  the  abovementioned  reign,  Clement,  bishop of  Ptome,  committed  the  episcopal  charge  to  Euarestus,  and  departed this  life,  after  superintending  the  preaching  of  the  divine word  nine  years.

CHAPTER  XXXV.

Justus,  the  third  bishop  of  Jerusalem.

Simeon  also  having  died  in  the  manner  shown  above,  a  certain Jew  named  Justus  succeeded  him  in  the  episcopate  of  Jerusalem.
As  there  were  great  numbers  from  the  circumcision,  that  came over  to  the  Christian  faith  at  that  time,  of  whom  Justus  was  one.

CHAPTER  XXXVI.

The  epistles  of  Ignatius.

About  this  time  flourished  Polycarp  in  Asia,  an  intimate  disciple of  the  apostles,  who  received  the  episcopate  of  the  church  at Smyrna,  at  the  hands  of  the  eyewitnesses  and  servants  of  the Lord.  At  this  time,  also,  Papias  v*as  well  known  as  bishop  of  the church  at  Hierapolis,  a  man  well  skilled  in  all  manner  of  learning, and  well  acquainted  with  the  Scriptures.  Ignatius,  also,  who  is celebrated  by  many  even  to  this  day,  as  the  successor  of  Peter  at Antioch,  was  the  second  that  obtained  the  episcopal  office  there.
Tradition  says  that  he  was  sent  away  from  Syria  to  Rome,  and
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  121

was  cast  as  food  to  wild  beasts,  on  account  of  his  testimony  to Christ.  And  being  carried  through  Asia  under  a  most  rigid  custody, fortified  the  different  churches  in  the  cities  were  he  tarried, by  his  discourses  and  exhortations ;  particularly  to  caution  them more  against  the  heresies  which  even  then  were  springing  up  and prevaiKng.  He  exhorted  them  to  adhere  firmly  to  the  tradition  of the  apost'les;  which,  for  the  sake  of  greater  security,  he  deemed  it necessary  to  attest  by  committing  it  to  writing.  When,  therefore, he  came  to  Smyrna,  where  Polycarp  was,  he  wrote  one  epistle, viz.  that  to  the  church  of  Ephcsus,  in  which  he  mentions  its  pastor Onesimus.  Another,  also,  to  the  church  in  Magnesia,  which  is situated  on  the  Meander,  in  which  again  he  makes  mention  of Damas  the  bishop.  Another,  also,  to  the  church  of  the  Trallians, of  which  he  states  that  Polybius  was  then  bishop.  To  these  must be  added,  the  epistle  to  the  church  at  Rome,  which  also  contains an  exhortation,  not  to  disappoint  him  in  his  ardent  hope,  by  refusing to  endure  martyrdom.  Of  these,  it  is  worth  while  also  to subjoin  very  short  extracts,  by  way  of  specimen.  He  writes, therefore,  in  the  following  manner :  "  From  Syria  to  Rome,  I
am  contending  with  wild  beasts  by  land  and  sea,  by  night  and day,  being  tied  to  ten  leopards,  the  number  of  the  military  band, who,  even  when  treated  with  kindness,  only  behave  with  greater ferocity.  But  in  the  midst  of  these  iniquities,  I  am  learning.  Yet I  am  not  justified  on  this  account.  May  I  be  benefited  by  those beasts  that  are  in  readiness  for  me,  which  I  also  pray  may  be quickly  found  for  me,  which  also  I  shall  entice  and  flatter  to  devour me  quickly,  and  not  to  be  afraid  of  me  as  of  some  whom  they did  not  touch.  But,  should  they  perchance  be  unwilling,  I  will force  them.  Pardon  me ;  I  know  what  advantage  it  will  confer.
Now  I  begin  to  be  a  disciple.  Nothing,  whether  of  things  visible or  invisible,  excites  my  ambition,  as  long  as  I  can  gain  Christ.
Whether  fire,  or  the  cross,  the  assault  of  wild  beasts,  the  tearing asunder  of  my  bones,  the  breaking  of  my  limbs,  the  bruising  o-f my  whole  body,  let  the  tortures  of  the  devil  all  assail  me,  if  I  do but  gain  Christ  Jesus."  This  he  wrote  from  the  abovementioned city  to  the  aforesaid  churches.  But  after  he  had  left  Smyrna, he  wrote  an  exhortation  from  Troas  to  those  in  Philadelphia,  and

a

120  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

that  the  Christians  should  not  be  inquired  after,  but  when  they presented  themselves  they  should  be  punished."  And  such  were the  circumstances  attending  these  events.

CHAPTER  XXXIV.

Euarestus,  the  fourth  bishop  of  the  church  at  Rome.

In  the  third  year  of  the  abovementioned  reign,  Clement,  bishop of  Rome,  committed  the  episcopal  charge  to  Euarestus,  and  departed this  life,  after  superintending  the  preaching  of  the  divine word  nine  years.

CHAPTER  XXXV.

Justus,  the  third  bishop  of  Jerusalem.

Simeon  also  having  died  in  the  manner  shown  above,  a  certain Jew  named  Justus  succeeded  him  in  the  episcopate  of  Jerusalem.
As  there  were  great  numbers  from  the  circumcision,  that  came over  to  the  Christian  faith  at  that  time,  of  whom  Justus  was  one.

CHAPTER  XXXVI.

The  epistles  of  Ignatius.

About  this  time  flourished  Polycarp  in  Asia,  an  intimate  disciple of  the  apostles,  who  received  the  episcopate  of  the  church  at Smyrna,  at  the  hands  of  the  eyewitnesses  and  servants  of  the Lord.  At  this  time,  also,  Papias  v*as  well  known  as  bishop  of  the church  at  Hierapolis,  a  man  well  skilled  in  all  manner  of  learning, and  well  acquainted  with  the  Scriptures.  Ignatius,  also,  who  is celebrated  by  many  even  to  this  day,  as  the  successor  of  Peter  at Antioch,  was  the  second  that  obtained  the  episcopal  office  there.
Tradition  says  that  he  was  sent  away  from  Syria  to  Rome,  and
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  121

was  cast  as  food  to  wild  beasts,  on  account  of  his  testimony  to Christ.  And  being  carried  through  Asia  under  a  most  rigid  custody, fortified  the  different  churches  in  the  cities  were  he  tarried, by  his  discourses  and  exhortations ;  particularly  to  caution  them more  against  the  heresies  which  even  then  were  springing  up  and prevailing.  He  exhorted  them  to  adhere  firmly  to  the  tradition  of the  aposfles;  which,  for  the  sake  of  greater  security,  he  deemed  it necessary  to  attest  by  committing  it  to  writing.  When,  therefore, he  came  to  Smyrna,  where  Polycarp  was,  he  wrote  one  epistle, viz.  that  to  the  church  of  Ephesus,  in  which  he  mentions  its  pastor Onesimus.  Another,  also,  to  the  church  in  Magnesia,  which  is situated  on  the  Meander,  in  which  again  he  makes  mention  of Damas  the  bishop.  Another,  also,  to  the  church  of  the  Trallians, of  which  he  states  that  Polybius  was  then  bishop.  To  these  must be  added,  the  epistle  to  the  church  at  Rome,  which  also  contains an  exhortation,  not  to  disappoint  him  in  his  ardent  hope,  by  refusing to  endure  martyrdom.  Of  these,  it  is  worth  while  also  to subjoin  very  short  extracts,  by  way  of  specimen.  He  writes, therefore,  in  the  following  manner :  "  From  Syria  to  Rome,  I
am  contending  with  wild  beasts  by  land  and  sea,  by  night  and day,  being  tied  to  ten  leopards,  the  number  of  the  military  band, who,  even  when  treated  with  kindness,  only  behave  with  greater ferocity.  But  in  the  midst  of  these  iniquities,  I  am  learning.  Yet I  am  not  justified  on  this  account.  May  I  be  benefited  by  those beasts  that  are  in  readiness  for  me,  which  I  also  pray  may  be quickly  found  for  me,  which  also  I  shall  entice  and  flatter  to  devour me  quickly,  and  not  to  be  afraid  of  me  as  of  some  whom  they did  not  touch.  But,  should  they  perchance  be  unwilling,  I  will force  them.  Pardon  me ;  I  know  what  advantage  it  will  confer.
Now  I  begin  to  be  a  disciple.  Nothing,  whether  of  things  visible or  invisible,  excites  my  ambition,  as  long  as  I  can  gain  Christ.
Whether  fire,  or  the  cross,  the  assault  of  wild  beasts,  the  tearing asunder  of  my  bones,  the  breaking  of  my  limbs,  the  bruising  o-f my  whole  body,  let  the  tortures  of  the  devil  all  assail  me,  if  I  do but  gain  Christ  Jesus."  This  he  wrote  from  the  abovementioned city  to  the  aforesaid  churches.  But  after  he  had  left  Smyrna, he  wrote  an  exhortation  from  Troas  to  those  in  Philadelphia,  and

a

122  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

particularly  to  Polycarp,  who  was  bishop  there;  whom  he designates  as  an  apostolical  man  and  as  a  good  and  faithful shepherd,  commends  the  flock  of  Antioch  to  him,  requesting  him to  exercise  a  diligent  oversight  of  the  church.  Writing  to  the Smyrnians,  he  has  also  employed  words  respecting  Jesus,  I  know not  whence  they  are  taken,  to  the  following  effect.  "  But  I  know and  believe  that  he  was  seen  after  the  resurrection,  and  that  he said  to  those  that  came  to  Peter,  '  take,  handle  me,  and  see  that I  am  not  an  incorporeal  spirit ;'  and  they  immediately  touched him  and  believed."  Irenaeus,  also,  knew  his  martyrdom,  and makes  mention  of  his  epistles,  as  follows :  "  As  some  one  of  our faith  has  said,  who  was  condemned  to  the  wild  beasts,  *  I  am  the food  of  God,  and  am  ground  by  the  teeth  of  wild  beasts  that  I  may be  found  pure  bread.' "  Polycarp  also  makes  mention  of  these same  epistles  in  the  Epistle  to  the  Philippians,  that  bears  his name,  in  the  following  words :  "  I  exhort  you,  therefore,  all  to yield  obedience,  and  to  exercise  all  the  patience  which  you  see with  your  own  eyes,  not  only  in  the  blessed  martyrs  Ignatius  and Rufus,  and  Zosimus,  but  likewise  in  others  of  your  fellow-citizens, as  also  in  Paul  and  the  other  apostles,  being  persuaded  that  all these  did  not  run  in  vain,  but  in  faith  and  righteousness,  and  that they  are  gone  to  the  place  destined  for  them  by  the  Lord,  for whom  also  they  suffered.  For  they  did  not  love  the  world  that now  is,  but  him  that  died  for  us,  and  that  was  raised  again  by God."  And  afterwards  he  writes :  "  You  have  also  written  to me,  both  you  and  Ignatius,  that  if  any  one  is  going  to  Syria,  he should  carry  your  letters  thither,  which  shall  be  done  if  I  find  a suitable  opportunity,  either  by  me  or  the  one  that  I  send  on  this errand  to  you.  The  epistles  of  Ignatius  that  were  sent  to  us  by him,  I  have  sent  you  at  your  request,  and  they  are  appended  to this  epistle,  from  which  you  will  be  able  to  deriv^e  great  benefit :
for  they  comprise  faith,  and  patience,  and  all  edification  pertainmg  to  our  Lord."  Thus  much  respecting  Ignatius.  But  he  was succeeded  in  the  episcopal  office  at  Antioch  by  Heros
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY  123

CHAPTER  XXXVII.

The  preaching  evangelists  that  were  yet  living  in  that  age.

Of  those  that  flourished  in  these  times,  Quadratus  is  said  to  have been  distinguished  for  his  prophetical  gifts.  There  were  many others,  also,  noted  in  these  times,  who  held  the  first  rank  in  the  apostolic succession.  These,  as  the  holy  disciples  of  such  men,  also  built up  the  churches  where  foundations  had  been  previously  laid  in every  place  by  the  apostles.  They  augmented  the  means  of  promulgating the  gospel  more  and  more,  and  spread  the  seeds  of  salvation and  of  the  heavenly  kingdom  throughout  the  world  far  and wide.  For  the  most  of  the  disciples  at  that  time,  animated  with a  more  ardent  love  of  the  divine  word,  had  first  fulfilled  the  Saviour's precept  by  distributing  their  substance  to  the  needy.  Afterwards leaving  their  country,  they  performed  the  oflice  of  evangelists to  those  who  had  not  yet  heard  the  faith,  whilst  with  a noble  ambition  to  proclaim  Christ,  they  also  delivered  to  them  the books  of  the  holy  gospels.  After  laying  the  foundation  of  the faith  in  foreign  parts  as  the  particular  object  of  their  mission, and  after  appointing  others  as  shepherds  of  the  flocks,  and  committing to  these  the  care  of  those  that  had  been  recently  introduced, they  went  again  to  other  regions  and  nations,  with  the grace  and  co-operation  of  God.  The  holy  Spirit  also,  wrought many  wonders  as  yet  through  them,  so  that  as  soon  as  the  gospel was  heard,  men  voluntarily  in  crowds,  and  eagerly,  embraced  the true  faith  with  their  whole  minds.  As  it  is  impossible  for  us  to give  the  numbers  of  the  individuals  that  became  pastors  or  evangelists, during  the  first  immediate  succession  from  the  apostles  in the  churches  throughout  the  world,  we  have  only  recorded  those by  name  in  our  history,  of  whom  we  have  received  the  traditional account  as  it  is  delivered  in  the  various  comments  on  the  apostolic doctrine,  still  extant.
13=^

124  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XXXVIIL

The  Epistle  of  Clement,  and  those  that  are  falsely  ascribed  to  him.

We  may  mention  as  an  instance  what  Ignatius  has  said  in  the epistles  we  have  cited,  and  Clement  in  that  universally  received by  all,  which  he  wrote  in  the  name  of  the  church  at  Rome  to that  of  Corinth.  In  which,  after  giving  many  sentiments  taken from  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews,  and  also,  literally  quoting  the words,  he  most  clearly  shows  that  this  work  is  by  no  means  a  late production.  Whence  it  is  probable  that  this  was  also  numbered with  the  other  writings  of  the  apostles.  For  as  Paul  had  addressed the  Hebrews  in  the  language  of  his  country ;  some  say  that  the evangelist  Luke,  others  that  Clement,  translated  the  epistle.
Which  also  appears  more  like  the  truth,  as  the  epistle  of  Clement and  that  to  the  Hebrews,  preserve  the  same  features  of  style  and phraseology,  and  because  the  sentiments  in  both  these  works  are not  very  different.  It  should  also  be  observed,  that  there  is  a second  epistle  ascribed  to  Clement;  but  we  know  not  that  this  is  as highly  approved  as  the  former,  and  know  not  that  it  has  been  in use  with  the  ancients.  There  are  also  other  writings  reported  to be  his,  verbose  and  of  great  length.  Lately,  and  some  time  ago, those  were  produced  that  contain  the  dialogues  of  Peter  and Apion,  of  which,  however,  not  a  syllable  is  recorded  by  the  primitive church.  For  they  do  not  preserve  the  pure  impress  of apostolic  orthodoxy.  The  epistle,  therefore,  of  Clement,  that  is acknowledged  as  genuine  is  evident.  But  sufficient  has  been said  on  the  writings  of  Ignatius  and  Polycarp.

CHAPTER  XXXIX.

The  irritings  of  Papias.

There  are  saia  to  be  five  books  of  Papias,  which  bear  the title  "  Interpretation  of  our  Lord's  Declarations."     Irenaeus  also,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  125

makes  mention  of  tliese  as  the  only  works  written  by  him,  in  the following  terms :  "  These  things  are  attested  by  Papias,  who  was John's  hearer  and  the  associate  of  Polycarp,  an  ancient  writer, who  mentions  them  in  the  fourth  book  of  his  works.  For  he  has written  a  work  in  five  books."  So  far  Irenasus.  But  Papias himself,  in  the  preface  to  his  discourses,  by  no  means  asserts  that he  was  a  hearer  and  an  eye-witness  of  the  holy  apostles,  but informs  us  that  he  received  the  doctrines  of  faith  from  their  intimate friends,  which  he  states  in  the  following  words :  "  But  I
shall  not  regret  to  subjoin  to  my  interpretations,  also  for  your benefit,  whatsoever  I  have  at  any  time  accurately  ascertained and  treasured  up  in  my  memory,  as  I  have  received  it  from  the elders,  and  have  recorded  it  in  order  to  give  additional  confirmation to  the  truth,  by  my  testimony.  For  I  have  never,  like  many, delighted  to  hear  those  that  tell  many  things,  but  those  that  teach the  truth,  neither  those  that  record  foreign  precepts,  but  those that  are  given  from  the  Lord,  to  our  faith,  and  that  came  from the  truth  itself  But  if  I  met  with  any  one  who  had  been  a follower  of  the  elders  any  where,  I  made  it  a  point  to  inquire what  were  the  declarations  of  the  elders.  What  was  said  by Andrew,  Peter  or  Philip.  What  by  Thomas,  James,  John,  Matthew, or  any  other  of  the  disciples  of  our  Lord.  What  was  said by  Aristion,  and  the  presbyter  John,  disciples  of  the  Lord ;  for  I
do  not  think  that  I  derived  so  much  benefit  from  books  as  from the  living  voice  of  those  that  are  still  surviving."  Where  it  is also  proper  to  observe  the  name  of  John  is  twice  mentioned.
The  former  of  which  he  mentions  with  Peter  and  James  and Matthew,  and  the  other  apostles ;  evidently  meaning  the  evangelist. But  in  a  separate  point  of  his  discourse  he  ranks  the other  John,  with  the  rest  not  included  in  the  number  of  apostles, placing  Aristion  before  him.  He  distinguishes  him  plainly by  the  name  of  presbyter.  So  that  it  is  here  proved  that  the statement  of  those  is  true,  who  assert  there  were  two  of  the same  name  in  Asia,  that  there  were  also  two  tombs  in  Ephesus, and  that  both  are  called  John's  even  to  this  day ;  which  it  is particularly  necessary  to  observe.  For  it  is  probable  that  the second,  if  it  be  not  allowed  that  it  was  the  first,  saw  the  revela
126  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

tion  ascribed  to  John.  And  the  same  Papias,  of  whom  we  now speak,  professes  to  have  received  the  declarations  of  the  apostles from  those  tliat  were  in  company  with  them,  and  says  also  that he  was  a  hearer  of  Aristion  and  the  presbyter  John.  For  as  he has  often  mentioned  them  by  name,  he  also  gives  their  statements in  his  own  works.  These  matters,  I  trust,  have  not  been uselessly  adduced.  But  it  may  be  important  also  to  subjoin  other declarations  to  these  passages  from  Papias,  in  which  he  gives  cer tain  wonderful  accounts,  to2;ether  with  other  matters  that  he seems  to  have  received  by  tradition.  That  the  apostle  Philip continued  at  Hierapolis,  with  his  daughters,  has  been  alread}^
stated  above.  But  we  must  now  show  how  Papias,  coming  to them,  received  a  wonderful  account  from  the  daughters  of  Phihp.
For  he  writes  that  in  his  time  there  was  one  raised  from  the  dead.
Another  wonderful  event  happened  respecting  Justus,  surnamed Barsabas,  who,  though  he  drank  a  deadly  poison,  experienced nothing  injurious  through  the  grace  of  the  Lord.  This  same Justus  is  mentioned  in  the  book  of  Acts,  after  the  resurrection, as  the  one  over  whom,  together  with  Matthew,  the  holy  apostles prayed,  in  order  to  fill  up  their  number,  by  casting  lots,  to  supply the  place  of  Judas  the  traitor.  The  passage  is  as  follows  ;
"  And  they  placed  two,  Joseph,  called  Barsabas,  who  was  surnamed Justus  and  Matthias.  And  having  prayed,  they  said."
The  same  historian  also  gives  other  accounts,  which  he  says  he adds  as  received  by  him  from  unwritten  tradition,  likewise  certain strange  parables  of  our  Lord,  and  of  his  doctrine  and  some other  matters  rather  too  fabulous.  In  these  he  says  there  would be  a  certain  millennium  after  the  resurrection,  and  that  there would  be  a  corporeal  reign  of  Christ  on  this  very  earth ;  which things  he  appears  to  have  imagined,  as  if  they  v^^ere  authorized by  the  apostolic  narrations,  not  understanding  correctly  those matters  which  they  propounded  mystically  in  their  representations. For  he  was  very  hmited  in  his  comprehension,  as  is  evident from  his  discourses ;  yet  he  was  the  cause  why  most  of  the  ecclesiastical writers,  urging  the  antiquity  of  the  man,  were  carried away  by  a  similar  opinion  ;  as,  for  instance,  Irenaus,  or  any  other that  adopted  such  sentiments.     He  has  also  inserted  in  his  work
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  127

other  accounts  given  by  the  abovementioned  Aristion,  respecting our  Lord,  as  also  the  traditions  of  the  Presbyter  John,  to which  referring  those  that  are  desirous  of  learning  them,  we  shall now  subjoin  to  the  extracts  from  him,  already  given,  a  tradition which  he  sets  forth  concerning  Mark,  who  wrote  the  gospel  in the  following  words :  "  And  John  the  Presbyter  also  said  this, Mark  being  the  interpeter  of  Pet/^-  '^^hatsoever  he  recorded  he wrote  with  great  accuracy,  but  not  however,  in  the  order  in which  it  was  spoken  or  done  b}^  our  I^ord,  for  he  neither  heard nor  followed  our  Lord,  but  as  before  said,  he  was  in  company  with Peter,  who  gave  him  such  instruction  as  was  necessary,  but  not to  give  a  history  of  our  Lord's  discourses :  wherefore  Mark  has not  erred  in  any  thing,  by  writing  some  things  as  he  has  recorded them ;  for  he  was  carefully  attentive  to  one  thing,  not  to  pass  by any  thing  that  he  heard,  or  to  state  any  thing  falsely  in  these  accounts." Such  is  the  account  of  Papias,  respecting  Mark.  Of Matthew  he  has  stated  as  follows  :  "  Matthew  composed  his  history in  the  Hebrew  dialect*,  and  every  one  translated  it  as  he was  able."  The  same  author  (Papias)  made  use  of  testimonies from  the  first  epistle  of  John,  and  likewise  from  that  of  Peter.
He  also  gives  another  history  of  a  woman,  who  had  been  accused of  many  sins  before  the  Lord,  which  is  also  contained  in  the  gospel according  to  the  Hebrews.  And  this  may  be  noted  as  a  necessary addition  to  what  we  have  before  stated.

*  The  author  here,  doubtless,  means  the  Syro-Chaldaic,  which  is  sometimes  m fecripture.  and  primitive  writers,  called  Hebrew.

BOOK  IV

CHAPTER  I.

The  bishops  of  Rome  and  Alexandria^  in  the  reign  of  Trajan,
About  the  twelfth  year  of  the  reign  of  Trajan,  the  bishop  of the  church  of  Alexandria,  who  w^as  mentioned  by  us  a  little  before, departed  this  life.  Primus  was  the  fourth  from  the  apostles to  whom  the  functions  of  the  office  were  there  allotted.  At the  same  time  also,  after  Euarestus  had  completed  the  eighth year  as  bishop  of  Rome,  he  was  succeeded  in  the  episcopal  office by  Alexander,  the  fifth  in  the  succession  from  Peter  and  Paul.

CHAPTER   11.

The  calamities  of  the  Jews  about  this  time.

But  the  doctrines  of  our  Saviour,  and  the  church  flourishmg from  day  to  day,  continued  to  receive  constant  accessions.  But  the calamities  of  the  Jews  also  continued  to  grow  with  one  accumulation of  evil  upon  another.  The  emperor  was  now  advancing  into the  eighteenth  year  of  his  reign,  and  another  commotion  of  the Jews  being  raised,  he  destroyed  a  very  great  number  of  them.
For  in  Alexandria  and  the  rest  of  Egypt,  and  also  in  Gyrene,  as if  actuated  by  some  terrible  and  tempestuous  spirit,  they  rushed upon  seditious  measures  against  the  Greeks  of  the  same  place.
Having  increased  the  insurrection  to  a  great  extent,  they  excited no  inconsiderable  war  the  following  year,  when  Lupus  was  governor of  all  Egypt.  And  in  the  first  conflict,  indeed,  it  happenea that  they  prevailed  over  the  Greeks  ;  who,  retreating  into  Alexandria, took  and  destroyed  the  Jews  that  were  found  in  the  city,
128

ECCLESIAbrCAL  HISTORY.  129

But  the  Jews  of  Cjrene  being  deprived  of  their  assistance,  after laying  waste  the  country  of  Egypt,  also  proceeded  to  destroy  its districts,  under' their  leader  Lucuas.  Against  these  the  emperor sent  Marcius  Turbo,  with  foot  and  naval  forces,  besides  cavalry.
He,  how^ever,  protracting  the  war  a  long  time  against  them  in many  battles,  slew  many  thousand  Jews,  not  only  of  Cyrene,  but also  of  Eg}qpt  that  had  joined  them,  together  with  their  leader Lucuas.  But  the  emperor  suspecting  that  the  Jews  in  Mesopotamia would  also  make  an  attack  upon  those  there,  ordered  Lucius Quietus  to  clear  the  province  of  them,  who  also  led  an  army against  them,  and  slew  a  great  multitude  of  them.  Upon  wdiich victory,  he  was  appointed  governor  of  Judea  by  the  emperor.
These  things  are  recorded  by  the  Greek  writers  of  the  day,  in nearly  the  same  words.

CHAPTER   IIL

The  authors  that  icrote  in  the  defence  of  the  faith,  in  the  reign  of
Adrian.

But  Trajan  having  held  the  sovereignty  for  twenty  years,  wanting six  months,  is  succeeded  in  the  imperial  office  by  ^Elius  Hadrian. To  him,  Quadratus  addressed  a  discourse,  as  an  apology for  the  religion  that  we  profess ;  because  certain  malicious  persons attempted  to  harass  our  brethren.  The  work  is  still  in  the  hands of  some  of  the  brethren,  as  also  in  our  own,  from  which  any  ont may  see  evident  proof,  both  of  the  understanding  of  the  man,  and of  his  apostolic  faith.

This  writer  shows  the  antiquity  of  the  age  in  which  he  lived, in  these  passages :  "  The  deeds  of  our  Saviour,"  says  he,  "  were always  before  you,  for  they  were  true  miracles ;  those  that  were healed,  those  that  were  raised  from  the  dead,  who  v^^ere  seen,  not only  when  healed  and  when  raised,  but  were  always  present.
They  remained  living  a  long  time,  not  only  whilst  our  Lord  was on  earth,  but  likewise  v/hen  he  had  left  the  earth.  So  that  some of  them  have  also  lived  to  our  own  times."   Such  was  Quadratus.

R

130  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Aristides,  also,  a  man  faithfully  devoted  to  the  religion  we  profess, like  Quadratiis,  has  left  to  posterity  a  defence  of  the  faith,  addressed to  Adrian.  This  work  is  also  preserved  by  a  great  number, even  to  the  present  day.

CHAPTER  IV

The  bishops  of  Alexandria  and  Rome,  under  the  same  emperor.

But  in  the  third  year  of  the  same  reign,  Alexander,  bishop  of Rome,  died,  having  completed  the  tenth  year  of  his  ministrations.
Xystus  was  his  successor;  and  about  the  same  time  Primus  dying, in  the  twelfth  year  of  the  episcopate,  was  succeeded  by  Justus.

CHAPTER  V.

The  bishops  of  Jerusalem,  from  the  period  of  our  Saviour  until
these  times.

We  have  not  ascertained  in  any  way,  that  the  times  of  the bishops  in  Jerusalem  have  been  regularly  preserved  on  record,  for tradition  says  that  they  all  hved  but  a  very  short  time.  So  much, however,  have  I  learned  from  writers,  that  down  to  the  invasion of  the  Jews  under  Adrian,  there  were  fifteen  successions  of  bishops in  that  church,  all  which,  they  say,  were  Hebrews  from  the first,  and  received  the  knowledge  of  Christ  pure  and  unadulterated ;  so  that,  in  the  estimation  of  those  who  were  able  to  judge they  were  well  approved,  and  worthy  of  the  episcopal  office.  Foi at  that  time  the  whole  church  under  them,  consisted  of  faithful Hebrews,  who  continued  from  the  time  of  the  apostles,  until  the siege  that  then  took  place.  The  Jews  then  again  revolting  from the  Romans,  were  subdued  and  captured,  after  very  severe  conflicts.    In  the  mean  time,  as  the  bishops  from  the  circumcision
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  131

failed,  it  may  be  necessarY  now  to  recount  them  in  order,  from the  first.  The  first,  then,  was  James  called  the  brother  of  our Lord ;  after  whom,  the  second  was  Simeon,  the  third  Justus,  the fourth  Zaccheus,  the  fifth  Tobias,  the  sixth  Benjamin,  the  seventh John,  the  eighth  Matthew,  the  ninth  Philip,  the  tenth  Seneca, the  eleventh  Justus,  the  twelfth  Levi,  the  thirteenth  Ephres,  the fourteenth  Joseph,  and  finally,  the  fifteenth  Judas,  These  are  all the  bishops  of  Jerusalem  that  filled  up  the  time  from  the  apostles until  the  abovementioned  time,  all  of  the  circumcision.  And Adrian  being  now  in  the  twelfth  year  of  his  reign,  Xystus,  who had  now^  completed  the  tenth  year  of  his  episcopate,  was  succeeded by  Telesphorus  the  seventh  in  succession  from  the  apostles.
In  the  mean  time,  however,  after  the  lapse  of  a  year  and  some months,  Eumenes  succeeded,  the  sixth  in  order  in  the  episcopate of  Alexandria,  his  predecessor  having  filled  the  office  eleven  years.

CHAPTER   VI.

The  last  siege  of  the  Jews,  under  Adrian.

As  the  revolt  of  the  Jews  again  proceeded  to  many  and  great excesses,  Rufus,  who  was  lieutenant-governor  of  Judea,  having received  an  augmentation  of  forces  from  the  emperor,  and  using their  madness  as  a  pretext,  destroyed,  without  mercy,  myriads  of men,  women,  and  children  in  crowds ;  and  by  the  laws  of  war,  he reduced  their  country  to  a  state  of  absolute  subjection.  The  Jews were  then  led  on  by  one  Barchochebas,  signifying  a  star,  but  who was  in  other  respects  a  murderer  and  robber.  But  by  means  of his  assumed  title,  among  a  degraded  race,  now  reduced  to  th;:
condition  of  slaves,  he  pretended  to  many  miracles,  as  if  he  were a  light  descending  from  heaven,  whose  object  was  to  cheer  them in  their  oppression.  But  in  the  eighteenth  year  of  the  reign  of Adrian,  when  the  war  had  reached  its  height  at  the  city  of  Bitthera,  a  very  strong  fortress  not  very  far  from  Jerusalem,  the  siege  was continued  for  some  time,  and  the  revolters  were  driven  to  the  last 14

132  ECCELSIASTICAL  HISTORY.

extreme  by  hunger  and  famine.  The  author  of  their  madness  had also  suffered  his  just  punishment,  and  the  whole  nation  from  that time  were  totally  prohibited,  by  the  decree  and  commands  of Adrian,  from  even  entering  the  country  about  Jerusalem,  so  that they  could  not  behold  the  soil  of  their  fathers  even  at  a  distance.
Such  is  the  statement  of  Aristo,  of  Pella.  The  city  of  the  Jewjs being  thus  reduced  to  a  state  of  abandonment  for  them,  and  totally stripped  of  its  ancient  inhabitants,  and  also  inhabited  by  strangers ;
the  Roman  city  which  subsequently  arose,  changing  its  name,  was called  yElia,  in  honour  of  the  emperor  M\ms  Adrian;  and  when the  church  was  collected  there  of  the  Gentiles,  the  first  bishop after  those  of  the  circumcision  was  Marcus.

CHAPTER  VII.

Those  icho  ivere  considered  leaders  in  false  doctrine  at  this  time.

As  the  churches  now  were  reflecting  the  light  like  splendid luminaries  throughout  the  world,  and  the  faith  of  our  Lord  and Saviour  Jesus  Christ  was  spreading  so  as  to  embrace  the  whole human  race,  the  malignant  spirit  of  iniquity,  as  the  enemy  of  all truth,  and  always  the  most  violent  enemy  to  the  salvation  of  men, was  now  devising  every  species  of  machination  against  the church,  as  he  had  already  before  armed  himself  against  it  by former  persecutions.  When,  however,  cut  off  from  those,  he then  waged  a  war  by  other  methods,  in  which  he  employed the  agency  of  wicked  impostors  as  certain  abandoned  instruments and  minions  of  destruction.  Intent  upon  every  course, he  instigated  these  insidious  impostors  and  deceivers,  by  assuming the  same  name  with  us  (Christians)  to  lead  those  believers whom  they  happened  to  seduce  to  the  depths  of  destruction,  and by  their  presumption,  also  turn  those  that  were  ignorant  of  the faith,  from  the  path  that  led  to  the  saving  truth  of  God.  Hence a  certain  double-headed  and  double-tongued  serpentine  power, proceeding  from  that  Menander  whom  we  have  already  mentioned as  the  successor  of  Simon,  produced  two  leaders  oi  dif
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  133

ferent  heresies;  Saturninus,  a  native  of  Antioch,  and  Basilides, of  Alexandria.  The  former  of  these  estabh'shed  schools  of  impious heresy  in  Syria,  the  latter  in  Egypt.  Irenseus,  indeed,  states, that  in  most  respects  Saturninus  held  the  same  false  doctrines with  Menander,  but  that  Basilides,  under  the  pretext  of  matters  too deep  to  be  divulged,  stretched  his  inventions  to  a  boundless  extent, in  his  astonishing  fictions  of  impious  heresy.  But  as  there were  at  the  time  many  ecclesiastical  writers,  who  contended  for the  truth,  and  defended  the  doctrine  of  the  apostles  and  the church,  with  more  than  common  learning,  so  there  were  also some  who,  by  publishing  their  writings,  furnished  preventives  by he  way  against  these  heresies.  Of  these,  the  best  refutation  of Basilides  that  has  come  down  to  us,  is  that  of  Agrippa  Castor, one  of  the  most  distinguished  writers  of  that  day.  In  this  refutation he  fully  exposes  the  dreadful  imposture  of  the  man,  and reveals  his  pretended  mysteries.  He  says,  that  he  composed tu'enty-four  books  upon  the  gospels,  and  that  he  mentions  Barcabbas,  and  Barcoph,  as  prophets,  and  invents  others  for  himself that  never  existed.  That  he  also  gave  them  certain  barbarous names,  in  order  to  astonish  those  the  more  who  are  easily  ensnared by  such  things  as  these.  That  he  taught  also,  it  was  indifferent for  those  that  tasted  of  things  sacrificed  to  idols,  and  w^ere  betrayed unwarily  to  abjure  the  faith  in  times  of  persecution.  Like Pythagoras,  he  enjoined,  also,  upon  his  follow^ers  a  silence  of five  years.  Other  accounts  similar  to  these  are  given  by  the abovementioned  author,  respecting  Basilides,  in  which  he  ably exposes  the  fallacy  of  his  heresy.  Irena^us  also  writes,  that Carpocrates  was  contemporary  W' ith  these,  who  v/as  also  the  father of  another  heresy,  called  the  heresy  of  the  Gnostics.

These  did  not,  like  the  former,  wish  to  retain  the  magic  arts  ot Simon  in  secret,  but  thought  that  they  should  be  made  public.  So that,  as  if  it  were  something  great  and  glorious,  they  boasted  of preparations  of  love  potions,  and  of  tutelary  and  dream-exciting daemons,  and  other  similar  magic  rites.  In  accordance  with these  things,  they  also  taught,  that  the  basest  deeds  should  be perpetrated  by  those  that  would  arrive  at  perfection  in  the  mysteries, or  rather,  that  would  reach  the  extent  of  their  abomina
134  ECCLESL^STICAL  HISTORY.

tions.     So  that,  as  they  were  accustomed  to  speak,  one  could  in no  other  way  escape  the  rulers  of  the  world,  unless  by  performmg his  part  of  obscenity  to  all.     By  the  aid  of  such  coadjutors,  it ^-  **ppened,  that  the  spirit  of  wickedness  enslaved  those  that  were \ed  astray  by  them  to  their  own  destruction ;  whilst  to  the  unbeJieving  Gentiles,  they  afforded  abundant  scope  to  slander  the  truth of  God,  as  the  report  proceeding  from  them  extended  with  its infamy  to  the  whole  body  of  Christians.   In  this  way  it  happened, therefore,  for  the  most  part,  that  a  certain  impious  and  most absurd   suspicion  was  spread  abroad  among  the  unbelievers  respecting us,  as  of  those  who  had  unlawful  commerce  with  mothers and  sisters,  and  made  use  of  execrable  food.     These  artifices, however,  did  not  continue  to  advance  far,  as  the  truth  nevertheless established  itself,  and  in  process  of  time  shed  abroad  its own  light  more  and  more.     Indeed,  the  machinations  of  its  enemies were  almost  immediately  extinguished  by  the  power  of truth ;  one  sect  rising  after  another,  the  first  always  passing away,  and  one  in  one  way,  and  another  in  another,  evaporating into  speculations  of  many  modes,  and  as  many  forms.     But  the splendour  of  the  universal  and  only  true  church  constantly  advanced in  greatness  and  glory,  always  the  same  in  all  matters under  the  same  circumstances,  and  reflected  its  dignity,  its  sincerity, ts  freeaom  tne  modesty  and  purity  of  that  divine  fife  and temper  v/nicn  it  niculcates,  to  all  nations,  both  Greeks  and  barbarians.    At  the  same  time  with  the  above  heresy,  were  extinguished, also,  the  aspersions  upon  our  rehgion.    For  the  doctrine that  we  hold  has  alone  survived,  has  prevailed  over  all,  and  been universally  acknowledged  as  surpassing  all  in  dignity  and  gravity, in  divine  truths  that  evince  a  genuine  and  sound  philosophy.
So  that  no  one,  down  to  the  present  time,  has  dared  to  affix any  calumny  upon  our  faith,  nor  any  such  slander,  such  as v/as  formerly  so  eagerly  applied  by  those  that  rose  up  against  us.
Nevertheless,  in  those  times  the  truth  presented  many  champions that  undertook  its  defence,  not  only  by  unwritten  argumentation, but,  also,  by  their  written  demonstrations  against  the  provailing  heretical  impieties.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  135

CHAPTER   VIII.

The  ecclesiastical  writers  then  flourishing.

Amoxg  these,  Hegesippus  holds  a  distinguished  rank,  many  of whose  writings  we  have  ah'eady  quoted,  where  we  have  given some  things  as  he  has  dehvered  them  from  apostoKc  tradition.
This  author  compiled,  in  five  books,  the  plain  tradition  of  the  apostohc  doctrine,  in  a  most  simple  style  of  composition,  and  clearly show^s  the  time  in  w^hich  he  lived,  where  he  writes  respecting  those that  began  to  erect  idols,  as  follows :  "  To  w^hom  they  made  cenotaphs and  temples,  as  w^e  see  to  this  day.     Among  whom  was Antinous,  the  slave  of  Adrian  the  emperor,  to  whose  honour  likewise games  are  celebrated,  which  has  been  done  in  our  own  days.
For  he  (Adrian,)  also  built  a  city,  called  after  Antinous,  and  instituted prophets."     At  this  time  also,  Justin,  a  true  lover  of  sound philosophy,  whilst  he  yet  continued  exercising  himself  in  the  literature of  the  Greeks,  likewise  show^s  this  very  time  in  his  apology to  Antonine,  as  follows :  "  I  do  not  think  it  out  of  place  here,  to  mention Antinous  of  our  own  day,  w^hom  all,  notwithstanding  they know  w^ho  and  whence  he  was,  yet  affected  to  worship  as  a  god."
The  same  author  adds  this  remark,  speaking  of  the  Jewish  war :
"  And,  indeed,  in  the  Jewish  war  which  has  happened  in  our  times, Barchochebas,  the  leader  of  the  Jewish  revolt,  commanded  the Christians  alone  to  be  led  to  severe  and  dreadful  tortures,  unless they  would  deny  and  blaspheme  Christ  Jesus."  In  the  same  work, also,  showing  his  own  conversion  from  the  Greek  philosophy  to  religion to  be  the  effect  of  cool  deliberation  and  judgment,  and  not without  good  reason,  writes  as  follows:  "For  whilst  I  was  delighted with  the  doctrines  of  Plato,  and  heard  the  Christians  calumniated, but  at  the  same  time  saw  them  intrepid  at  the  prospect of  death,  and  every  thing  deemed  terrific,  I  reflected  that  it  was impossible  they  should  live  devoted  to  vice  and  voluptuousness..
For  what  lover  of  pleasure,  or  intemperate  man,  or  what  man deeming  human  flesh  a  delicacy,  could  embrace  death  in  order to  be  deprived  of  the  objects  of  his  own  desires ;  and  w^ould  not 14^

13G  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

rather  strive  to  live  always  to  escape  the  eye  of  the  magistrate, and  not  inform  against  himself,  in  the  expectation  of  certain death."  The  same  author,  moreover,  relates,  that  Adrian  havinp-  received  letters  from  Serenius  Granianus,  the  most  illustrious proconsul,  respecting  the  Christians,  in  which  he  states,  that  it did  not  appear  just  to  put  the  Christians  to  death  without  a  regular accusation  and  trial,  merely  to  gratify  the  outcries  of  the populace ;  and  that  he  wrote  back  to  Minucius  Fundanus,  proconsul of  Asia,  enjoining  upon  him  to  put  no  one  to  death,  without an  indictment  and  lawful  accusation.  Of  this  epistle,  also,  he (Justin,)  adds  a  copy  in  the  Latin  tongue,  in  which  it  was  written.
He  also  premises  the  following  explanation.  "  Although  we  have good  cause,  from  the  epistle  of  your  most  illustrious  father,  the emperor  Adrian,  to  request  of  you  as  we  requested  of  him,  that the  Christians  should  be  regularly  tried;  this  we  have  requested, not  so  much  because  it  was  ordered  by  Adrian,  as  because  we know  that  the  object  of  our  request  is  just.  We  have  also  subjoined a  copy  of  Adrian's  epistle,  that  you  may  know  we  declare the  truth  likewise  in  this.  And  here  it  follows."  To  this,  the  author adds  the  copy  of  the  epistle,  in  the  Latin  tongue ;  and  we  have translated  it  into  the  Greek,  according  to  the  best  of  our  abilities, as  follows.

CHAPTER   IX.

The  epistle  of  Hadrian,  forbidding  the  Christians  to  he  punished ivithout  trial,
"  To  Minucius  Fundanus.  I  have  received  an  epistle,  written to  me  by  the  most  illustrious  Serenius  Granianus,  whom  you  have succeeded.  I  do  not  wish,  therefore,  that  the  matter  should  be passed  by  without  examination,  so  that  these  men  may  neither be  harassed,  nor  opportunity  of  malicious  proceedings  be  offered to  informers.  If,  therefore,  the  provincials  can  clearly  evince  their charges  against  the  Christians,  so  as  to  answer  before  the  tribu
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  13^

nal,  let  them  pursue  this  course  only,  but  not  by  mere  petitions, and  mere  outcries  against  the  Christians.  For  it  is  far  more  proper, if  any  one  would  bring  an  accusation,  that  you  should  examine it.  If  any  one,  therefore,  brings  an  accusation,  and  can show  that  they  have  done  any  thing  contrary  to  the  laws,  determine it  thus  according  to  the  heinousness  of  the  crime.  So  that indeed,  if  any  one  should  pui-pose  this  with  a  view  to  slander,  investigate it  according  to  its  criminality,  and  see  to  it  that  you inflict  the  punishment."  Such,  then,  is  the  copy  of  Adrian's  letter.

CHAPTER  X.

The  bishops  of  Rome  and  Alexandria,  in  the  reign  of  Antonine.

But  this  emperor  (Adrian,)  having  finished  his  mortal  career, after  the  twenty-first  year  of  his  reign,  is  succeeded  by  Antonine, called  the  Pious,  in  the  government  of  the  Romans.  In  the  first year  of  this  reign,  and  in  the  eleventh  year  of  his  episcopate,  Telesphorus  departed  this  life,  and  was  succeeded  in  the  charge  of the  Roman  church  by  Hyginus.  Irenaeus,  indeed,  relates  that Telesphorus  was  rendered  illustrious  by  martyrdom ;  showing,  at the  same  time,  that  under  the  abovemcntioned  Roman  bishop Hyginus,  Valentinus  the  founder  of  a  peculiar  heresy,  and  Cerdon  the  leader  in  the  errors  propagated  by  Marcion,  were  both notorious  at  Rome.     His  statement  is  as  follows.

CHAPTER  XL

The  heresiarchs  of  these  times.

"  Valentine  came  to  Rome  under  Hyginus,  was  in  his  prime under  Pius,  and  lived  until  the  time  of  Anicetus.  But  Cerdon, who  preceded  ^larcion,  and  flourished  under  the  episcopate  of  Hyginus   the  ninth  in   succession,  coming  to  the  church,  and  ac

S

138  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

knowledging  his  error,  continued  in  this  way,  at  one  time  secretl'/
teaching  his  doctrines,  at  another  renouncing  them  again,  sometimes also,  convicted  of  his  perverse  doctrines,  kept  aloof  from assembhng  with  the  brethren."  Such  is  the  account  of  Irena^us in  the  third  book  against  the  heresies.  In  the  first,  however,  he relates  the  following  respecting  Cordon :  "  A  certain  man,  however, by  name  Cordon,  who  derived  his  first  impulse  from  the  fol lowers  of  Simon,  and  who  made  some  stay  at  Rome,  under  Hyginus  the  ninth,  that  held  the  episcopate  in  succession  from  the apostles,  taught  that  the  God  who  had  been  proclaimed  by  the law  and  prophets,  was  not  the  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, for  the  latter  was  revealed,  the  other  was  unknown ;  the  former also,  was  just,  but  the  other  was  good.  Marcion,  who  was  from Pontus,  having  succeeded  Cordon,  augmented  his  school  by  uttering his  blasphemies  without  a  blush.  But  the  same  Irenasus, having  most  dexterously  unravelled  the  bottomless  abyss  of  the errors  enveloped  in  the  Valentinian  heresy,  laid  bare  the  wickedness concealed  in  it,  like  a  serpent  lurking  in  his  nest."  Besides these,  he  says  there  was  another  (Marcus  was  his  name,)
about  the  same  time,  who  was  a  most  perfect  adept  in  magic  illusions; and  he  describes  also,  their  profane  rites  of  initiation,  and their  abominable  mysteries,  in  the  following  language :  "  Some of  them,"  says  he,  "  prepare  a  nuptial  bed,  and  they  perform  the mystery  of  initiation  with  certain  forms  addressed  to  the  initiated.
This,  they  say,  is  the  spiritual  marriage  that  has  taken  place  with them,  bearing  form  and  resemblance  to  the  marriages  above.
Some  conduct  them  to  water,  and  baptizing  them,  repeat  these words,  '  unto  the  name  of  the  unknown  Father  of  the  universe, unto  the  truth  the  mother  of  all,  unto  Jesus,  unto  him  that descended.'  Others,  again,  repeated  Hebrew  names  in  order  the better  to  confound  the  initiated."  But  Hyginus  dying  after  the fourth  year  of  his  office,  Pius  received  the  episcopate,  but  at Alexandria  Marcus  was  appointed  the  pastor,  after  Eumcnes had  filled  the  office  thirteen  years  in  all.  Marcus  also  dying, after  ten  years  of  his  ministrations,  Celadin  had  charge  of  the church  of  Alexandria,  and  Pius  dymg  at  Rome  in  the  fifteenth year  of  his  episcopate,  the  church  there  was  governed  by  Anice
i:.c^J.ESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  139

tus.  At  this  time  Hegesippus  writes  that  he  was  at  Rome,  and continued  there  until  the  episcopate  of  Eleutherus.  But  Justin was  the  most  noted  of  those  that  flourished  in  those  times,  who, in  the  guise  of  a  philosopher,  preached  the  truth  of  God,  and contended  for  the  faith,  also,  in  his  writings.  In  a  work  that  he wrote  against  Marcion,  he  mentions,  that  at  the  time  he  wrote, the  man  was  yet  living.  He  says  that  a  certain  Marcion  from Pontus,  who  is  now  still  teaching  those  that  believe  him,  to  think that  there  is  another  God  greater  than  God  the  creator ;  that  he by  means  of  conjunction  with  da3mons,  persuaded  many  throughout the  whole  world,  to  utter  blasphemy,  and  to  deny  that  the Creator  of  all  things  was  the  father  of  Christ ;  they  asserted, also,  that  another  who  was  greater  than  He,  was  the  creator.
But,  as  we  said  before,  all  the  followers  of  these  were  called Christians,  just  as  the  name  of  philosophy  is  applied  to  philosophers, although  they  may  have  no  opinions  in  common.  To these  he  adds :  "  We  have  also  written  a  work  against  all  the heresies  that  have  arisen,  which  we  will  give  you  to  peruse  if you  wish."  But  this  same  Justin,  after  having  contended  with great  success  against  the  Greeks,  addressed  also  other  works, containing  a  defence  of  our  faith,  to  the  emperor  Antonine,  surnamed  the  Pious,  and  to  the  senate  of  Rome.  He  also  had  his residence  at  Rome,  but  he  shows  who  and  whence  he  was  in  the following  extracts  in  his  Apology.

CHAPTER  XII.

The  Apology  of  Justin,  addressed  to  Antoninus.

"  To  the  emperor  Titus  iElius  Adrian  Antoninus  Pius  Cesai Augustus,  and  to  Onesimus  his  son  the  philosopher,  and  to  Lucius the  natural  son  of  Cesar  the  philosopher,  and  the»adopted  son  of Pius,  a  votary  of  learning  ;  also,  to  the  sacred  senate  and  the whole  Roman  people,  in  behalf  of  those  who  of  all  nations  are now  unjustly  hated  and  aspersed ;  I,  Justin,  the  son  of  Priscus,  the grandson  of  Bacchius  of  Flavia,  the  new  city  of  Palestine,  Syria,
140  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

being  one  of  their  number,  present  this  volume  and  address."  The same  emperor  was  also  addressed  by  others  when  the  brethren in  Asia  were  suffering  under  every  kind  of  injury  from  the  provincials, and  honoured  the  people  of  Asia  with  an  ordinance  like the  following.

CHAPTER  XIII.

The  Epistle  of  Antonine,  to  the  assembly  of  Asia^  respecting  our
doctrine.

The  emperor  Cesar  Marcus  Aurelius  Antoninus  Augustus, Armenicus,  Pontifex  Maximus,  Tribune  of  the  people  XV.
Consul  III.,  sends  greeting,  to  the  Assembly  of  Asia ;  '  I  know, indeed,  that  the  gods  themselves  will  take  care  that  such  men as  these  shall  not  escape  detection.  For  it  would  more  properly belong  to  them  to  punish  those  that  will  not  worship  them, than  to  you.  And  whilst  you  drive  them  into  a  tumult,  you  only confirm  them  the  more  in  their  mind,  by  accusing  them  as  impious. And  thus,  to  them  it  would  be  more  desirable  when  arraigned, to  appear  to  die  for  their  God,  than  to  live.  Whence, also,  they  may  come  off  in  triumph,  when  they  yield  up  their lives  in  preference  to  a  conformity  with  those  things  which  you exact  of  them.  But  as  to  those  earthquakes  which  have  taken place  and  still  continue,  it  is  not  out  of  place  to.  admonish  you who  are  cast  down  whenever  these  happen,  and  you  compare your  own  deportment  with  theirs.  They,  indeed,  become  on these  occasions  so  much  the  more  cheerful  towards  God,  but you,  the  whole  of  this  time  in  which  you  seem  not  to  have  correct knowledge,  neglect  both  the  gods  and  other  duties,  especially the  worship  of  the  ImmortaL  But  the  Christians  who  worship Him,  you  expel  and  persecute  to  death.  Respecting  these,  however, many  of  the  governors  of  the  provinces  also  wrote  to  our most  divine  father.  To  whom,  also,  he  wrote  in  reply,  not  to trouble  them  at  all,  unless  they  appeared  to  make  attempts against  the  Roman  government.     Many  also  have  sent  commu
ECCLESIASTICAL    HISTORY.  141

nications  to  me  respecting  them,  to  whom  also,  I  wrote  in  reply, following  the  course  pursued  by  my  father.  But  if  any  still  persevere in  creating  difficulties  to  any  one  of  these  because  he  is of  this  description  (i.  e.  a  Christian,)  let  him  that  is  thus  arraigned be  absolved  from  crime,  although  he  should  appear  to be  such,  but  let  the  accuser  be  held  guilty."  This  was  published at  Ephesus  in  the  public  convention  of  Asia.  To  these  events Melito  bears  testimony,  who  was  then  bishop  of  Sardis,  and  well known  at  that  time.  This  is  clear  from  what  he  has  said  in  that most  excellent  defence  of  our  faith  which  he  wrote  and  addressed to  the  emperor  Verus.

CHAPTER  XIV.

Circumstances  related  of  Pohjcarp,  an  apostolic  man.

About  this  time,  w^hen  Anicetus  was  at  the  head  of  the  Roman church,  Irena^us  says  that  Polycarp  was  yet  living,  and  coming to  Rome,  had  a  conference  with  Anicetus,  on  a  question  respecting the  day  of  the  passover.  He  also  gives  another  account  of Polycarp,  which  should  be  added  to  what  is  already  related respecting  him.  The  story  is  taken  from  the  third  book  of  Irenaeus against  the  heresies,  and  is  as  follows :  "  And  Polycarp,  a  man who  had  been  instructed  by  the  apostles,  and  had  familiar  intercourse with  many  that  had  seen  Christ,  and  had  also  been  appointed bishop  by  the  apostles  in  Asia,  in  the  church  at  Smyrna, whom  we  also  have  seen  in  our  youth,  for  he  lived  a  long  time, and  to  a  very  advanced  age,  when,  after  a  glorious  and  most distinguished  martyrdom,  he  departed  this  life.  He  always taught  what  he  had  learned  from  the  apostles,  what  the  church had  handed  dow^n,  and  w^hat  is  the  only  true  doctrine.  All  the churches  bear  witness  to  these  things,  and  those  that  have  been the  successors  of  Polycarp,  to  the  present  time,  a  witness  of  the truth  much  more  worthy  of  credit,  and  much  more  certain  than either  Valentine  or  Marcion,  or  the  rest  of  those  perverse  teachers.    The  same  Polycarp,  coming  to  Rome  under  the  episcopate
142  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

of  Anicetus,  turned  many  from  the  aforesaid  heretics  to  the church  of  God,  proclaiming  the  one  and  only  true  faith,  that  he had  received  from  the  apostles,  that,  viz.,  which  was  delivered by  the  church.  And  there  are  those  still  living  who  heard  him relate,  that  John  the  disciple  of  the  Lord  went  into  a  bath  at Ephesus,  and  seeing  Cerinthus  within,  ran  out  without  bathing, and  exclaimed,  "  let  us  flee  lest  the  bath  should  fall  in,  as  long  as Cerinthus,  that  enemy  of  truth,  is  within."  And  the  same  Polycarp,  once  coming  and  meeting  Marcion,  who  said,  "  acknowledge us, "  he,  replied, "  I  acknowledge*  the  first  born  of  Satan."
Such  caution  did  the  apostles  and  their  disciples  use,  so  as  not even  to  have  any  communion,  even  in  word  with  any  of  those that  thus  mutilated  the  truth,  according  to  the  declaration  of Paul :  "  An  heretical  man  after  the  first  and  second  admonition avoid,  knowing  that  such  an  one  is  perverse,  and  that  he  sins, bringing  condemnation  upon  himself"  There  is,  also,  an  excellent epistle  of  Polycarp  to  the  Philippians.  From  which  those that  wish,  and  that  have  any  concern  for  their  salvation,  may perceive  both  the  character  of  his  faith,  and  the  doctrine  of  the truth."  Such  is  the  account  of  Irenseus.  But  Polycarp,  in  the epistle  to  the  Philippians,  still  extant,  has  made  use  of  certain testimonies  taken  from  the  first  epistle  of  Peter.  About  this  time Antonine,  surnamed  the  Pious,  having  completed  the  twenty-second year  of  his  reign,  was  succeeded  by  Marcus  Aurelius  Verus,  who  is  also  called  Antoninus,  his  son,  together  with  his  brother Lucius.

*  It  was  customary  in  the  primitive  church  to  use  this  expression  as  a  form  ol salutation,  particularly  at  the  communion.  I  acknowledge  thee,  therefore,  is  the same  as  "  I  salute  thee."

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  143

CHAPTER  XV.

The  martyrdom  of  Polycarp,  with  others  at  Smyrna*

At  this  time,  as  there  were  the  greatest  persecutions  excited in  Asia,  Polycarp  ended  his  Hfe  by  martyrdom.  But  I  consider  it all-important  also  to  record  his  end  in  this  history,  as  it  is  handed down  in  writings  still  extant.  There  is,  however,  an  epistle  of  the church  which  he  superintended,  to  the  churches  of  Pontus,  which shows  what  befel  him,  in  the  following  words :  "  The  church  of God  at  Smyrna,  to  that  of  Philomelius,  and  to  all  parts  of  the holy  catholic,  (universal  church,)  everywhere,  mercy,  peace,  and the  love  of  God  the  Father,  and  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  be  multiplied. We  have  WTitten  to  you,  brethren,  the  circumstances respecting  the  martyrs,  and  the  blessed  Polycarp,  who  as  if  sealing it  with  his  martyrdom  has  also  put  a  stop  to  the  persecution."
After  these,  before  the  account  of  Polycarp's  death,  they  give  the account  of  the  other  martyrs,  and  show  what  firmness  they evinced  against  the  tortures  they  endured.  "  For,"  say  they, "  those standing  around,  were  struck  with  amazement,  at  seeing  them lacerated  with  scourges,  to  their  very  blood  and  arteries,  so  that now  the  flesh  concealed  in  the  very  inmost  parts  of  the  body, and  the  bowels  themselves  were  exposed  to  view.  Then  they were  laid  upon  conch  shells  from  the  sea,  and  on  sharp  heads and  points  of  spears  on  the  ground,  and  after  passing  through every  kind  of  punishment  and  torment,  were  at  last  thrown  as food  to  w^ild  beasts.  But  they  relate  that  Germanicus,  a  most noble  youth,  was  particularly  eminent  as  a  martyr;  who, strengthened  by  divine  grace,  overcame  the  natural  dread  of death  implanted  in  us  ;  although  the  proconsul  was  desirous of  persuading  him,  and  urged  him  from  considerations  of  his  youth, and  entreated  him,  that  as  he  was  so  very  young  and  blooming he  should  take  compassion  on  himself  He,  how^ever,  hesitated not,  but  eagerly  irritated  the  wild  beast  against  him,  all  but forcing  and  stimulating  him,  that  he  might  the  sooner  be  freed from  this  unjust  and  law^less  generation.  On  the  glorious  death 15

144  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

of  this  one,  the  whole  multitude  amazed  at  the  courage  of  the.
pious  martyr,  and  at  the  fortitude  of  the  whole  race  of  Christians, began  to  cry  out  "  Away  with  the  wicked  fellows,  let  Polycarp  be  sought."  A  very  great  tumult  arising  in  consequence of  these  outcries,  a  certain  Phrygian,  Qiiintus  by  name,  who  had recently  come  from  Phrygia,  seeing  the  beasts  and  the  additional tortures  threatened,  was  so  overcome  by  fear  and  shaken  in  his resolution,  that  he  finally  gave  up  his  salvation.  The  contents  of the  aforesaid  epistle,  show  that  this  man  had  frowardly  rushed forward  to  the  tribunal  with  others,  and  not  in  a  modest  retiring manner  ;  and  yet  when  seized,  he  gave  a  manifest  proof  to  all, that  it  is  not  proper  for  those  in  this  situation,  to  brave  danger  by rushing  blindly  and  rashly  upon  it.  Thus  far,  however,  respecting these.  But  the  admirable  Polycarp  hearing  these  things,  at  first, continued  unmoved,  preserving  his  firm  and  unshaken  mind,  and, had  determined  to  remain  there  in  the  city.  But  persuaded  by  the entreaties  of  those  around  him,  and  exhorting  him  to  leave  the  city secretly,  he  went  forth  to  a  farm  not  far  from  it.  There  he  staid with  a  few  friends,  night  and  day,  engaged  in  nothing  but  constant prayer  to  the  Lord,  and  imploring  peace  for  all  the  churches throughout  the  world.  For  this  had  always  been  his  practice.  In this  situation,  three  days  before  he  was  seized,  in  a  vision  at  night, and  during  prayer,  the  pillow  under  his  head  seemed  to  him  suddenly to  take  fire,  and  thus  to  be  consumed.  On  this,  waking  out of  his  sleep,  he  immediately  began  to  interpret  the  vision  to  those present,  almost  fortelling  the  event  that  was  about  to  take  place, and  plainly  declaring  to  those  around  him,  that  it  would  be  necessary for  him  to  give  up  his  life  in  the  flames  for  Christ's  sake.
Those,  however,  that  were  in  search  of  him,  making  every  effort  to discover  him,  he  was  again  constrained  by  the  affection  and  love  of the  brethren,  to  go  away  to  another  part  of  the  country.  Thither the  pursuers  came  upon  him,  not  long  after,  and  caught  two  boys there,  one  of  which  they  scourged  in  order  to  direct  them  to  the retreat  of  Polycarp.  Entering  upon  him  at  a  late  hour  of  the day,  they  found  him,  indeed,  resting  in  an  upper  room,  whence, although  he  might  easily  have  escaped  to  another  house,  he would  not,  saying :     "  The  Lord's   will  be  done,"  and  having
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  145

understood  also  that  they  were  come,  as  it  is  said,  he  descended and  addressed  the  men  with  a  very  cheerful  and  mild  countenance, so  that  those  who  did  not  know  him  before,  thought  they beheld  a  miracle,  as  they  beheld  the  advanced  age  of  the  man, the  gravity  and  firmness  of  his  countenance,  and  were  surprised that  so  much  zeal  should  be  exercised  to  seize  a  venerable  old man  like  this.  He,  however,  without  hesitation,  ordered  a  table to  be  immediately  prepared  for  the  men;  then  requests  them  to partake  of  food  largely,  and  begged  of  them  only  one  hour,  that he  might  pray  undisturbed.  As  they  gave  him  permission,  he arose  and  prayed,  so  full  of  the  grace  of  the  Lord,  that  those  present who  heard  him  were  amazed,  and  many  of  them  now  repented, that  so  venerable  and  pious  a  man  should  be  put  to  death.
Beside  these  things,  the  abovementioned  epistle  respecting  him pursues  the  narrative  as  follows :

"  But  after  he  had  ended  praying,  and  had  in  this  remembered all  that  had  ever  been  connected  with  him,  small  and  great,  noble and  obscure,  and  the  whole  catholic  (universal)  church  throughout the  world,  when  the  hour  come  for  him  to  go,  they  placed him  upon  an  ass  and  conducted  him  to  the  city,  it  being  a  great Sabbath-day.*  He  was  met  by  Herod,  who  was  the  irenarch,-|and  his  father  Nicetes ;  who,  taking  him  into  their  vehicle,  persuaded him  to  take  a  seat  with  them,  and  said,  "  For  what  harm is  there  in  saying  Lord  Cesar,  and  to  sacrifice,  and  thus  save  your life  ?"  He,  however,  did  not  at  first  make  any  reply ;  but  as  they persevered,  he  said,  "  I  shall  not  do  what  you  advise  me."  Failing, therefore,  to  persuade  him,  they  uttered  dreadful  language,  and thrust  him  down  from  the  car  with  great  vehemence,  so  that  as he  descended  from  the  car  he  sprained  his  thigh.  But  not  at  all moved  from  his  purpose,  as  if  nothing  had  happened,  he  eagerly went  on,  and  was  conducted  to  the  stadium.  But  as  there  was so  great  an  uproar  in  the  place  that  not  many  could  hear,  a  v^oice came  from  heaven  to  Polycarp  as  he  entered  the  stadium  :  "  Be strong,  Polycarp,  and  contend  manfully."     No  one  saw  who  it
*  The  great  Sabbath  was  the  feast  of  unleavened  brea^^  which  immediately  preceded the  passover.     See  Beverege  in  Can.  Apost.

j-  The  irenarch,  as  the  name  implies,  was  an  officer  to  preserve  the  public  peace.

T

146  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

was  that  spoke ;  but  the  voice  itself  was  heard  by  many  of  our brethren.  When  he  was  led  forward,  however,  a  great  tumult arose  among  those  that  heard  Polycarp  was  taken.  At  length,  as he  advanced,  the  proconsul  asked  him  whether  he  was  Polycarp, and  he  answering  that  he  was,  he  persuaded  him  to  renounce Christ,  saying,  "  Have  a  regard  for  your  age,"  and  adding  similar expressions,  such  as  is  usual  for  them  to  svy,  he  said,  "  Swear  by the  genius  of  Cesar.  Repent ;  sa}^,  Away  with  those  that  deny the  gods."  But  Polycarp,  with  a  countenance  grave  and  serious, and  contemplating  the  whole  multitude  that  were  collected  in  the •stadium,  beckoned  with  his  hand  to  them,  and  with  a  sigh  he looked  up  to  heaven,  and  said,  "  Away  with  the  impious."  As  the governor,  however,  continued  to  urge  him,  and  said,  "  Swear,  and I  will  dismiss  you.  Revile  Christ ;"  Polycarp  replied,  "  Eighty and  six  years  have  1  served  him,  and  he  never  did  me  wrong ;
and  how  can  I  now  blaspheme  my  King  that  has  saved  me  V  The governor  still  continuing  to  urge  him,  and  again  saying,  "  Swear by  the  genius  of  Cesar,"  said  Polycarp,  "  If  you  are  so  vain  as  to think  that  I  should  swear  by  the  genius  of  Cesar,  as  you  say,  pretending not  to  know  who  I  am,  hear  my  free  confession.  I  am  a Christian.  But  if  you  wish  to  learn  what  the  doctrine  of  Christianity is,  grant  me  a  day  and  listen  to  me."  The  proconsul  said, "  Persuade  the  people."  Polycarp  replied,  "  I  have  thought  proper to  give  you  a  reason ;  for  we  have  been  taught  to  give  magistrates and  powers  appointed  by  God,  the  honour  that  is  due  to them,  as  far  as  it  does  not  injure  us ;  but  I  do  not  consider  those the  proper  ones  before  whom  I  should  deliver  my  defence.  The  proconsul said,  "  I  have  wild  beasts  at  hand,  I  will  cast  you  to  these unless  you  change  your  mind."  He  answered,  "  Call  them.  For we  have  no  reason  to  repent  from  the  better  to  the  worse,  but  it is  good  to  change  from  wickedness  to  virtue."  He  again  urged him.  "  I  will  cause  you  to  be  consumed  by  fire,  should  you  despise the  beasts,  and  not  change  your  mind.  Polycarp  answered ■"■  You  threaten  fire  that  burns  for  a  moment  and  is  soon  extin guished,  for  you  know  nothing  of  the  judgment  to  come,  and  the fire  of  eternal  punishment  reserved  for  the  wicked.  But  wdiy  do you  delay  ?     Bring  what  you  wish."     Saying  these,  and  man}

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  147

other  similar  declarations,  he  was  filled  with  confidence  and  joy, and  his  countenance  was  brightened  with  grace.  So  that  he  not only  continued  undismayed  at  what  was  said  to  him,  but  on  the contrary,  the  governor,  astonished,  sent  the  herald  to  proclaim  in the  middle  of  the  stadium,  "  Polycarp  confesses  that  he  is  a  Christian." When  this  was  declared  by  the  herald,  all  the  multitude.
Gentiles  and  Jews  dwelling  at  Smyrna,  cried  out,  "  This  is  that teacher  of  Asia,  the  father  of  the  Christians,  the  destroyer  of  our gods ;  he  that  teaches  multitudes  not  to  sacrifice,  not  to  worship."
Saying  this,  they  cried  out,  and  asked  Philip  the  Asiarch,*  to  let loose  a  lion  upon  Polycarp.  But  he  replied,  that  he  was  not  permitted, as  he  had  already  completed  the  exhibition  of  the  chase in  the  amphitheatre.  Then  all  cried  out  together,  that  Polycarp should  be  burnt  alive.  For  it  seemsd  necessary  that  the  vision which  he  saw  on  his  pillow  should  be  fulfilled ;  when  seeing  it  on fire  whilst  he  prayed,  he  turned  to  those  few  faithful  friends  with him,  and  said  prophetically,  "  I  must  be  burnt  alive."  These things  were  executed,  however,  with  such  haste  that  they  were no  sooner  said  than  done.  The  crowd,  however,  forthwith  collected wood  and  straw  from  the  shops  and  baths,  especially  the Jews,  as  usual,  freely  ofTered  their  services  for  this  purpose.  But when  the  pile  was  prepared,  laying  aside  all  his  clothes,  and loosing  his  girdle,  he  attempted  also  to  take  off  his  shoes,  which he  had  not  been  in  the  habit  of  doing  before,  as  he  always  had some  one  of  the  brethren,  that  were  soon  at  his  side,  and  rivalled each  other  in  their  services  to  him.  For  he  had  always  been treated  with  great  respect  on  account  of  his  exemplary  life  even before  his  gray  hairs.  Presently  the  instruments  prepared  for  the funeral  pile  were  applied  to  him.  As  they  were  also  on  the point  of  securing  him  with  spikes,  he  said,  "  let  me  be  thus.  For he  that  gives  me  strength  to  bear  the  fire,  will  also  give  me  power without  being  secured  by  you  with  these  spikes,  to  remain  unmoved on  the  pile."  They,  therefore,  did  not  nail  him,  but  merely bound  him  to  the  stake.     But  he,  closins^  his  hands  behind  him.

*  The  Asiarchs  were  the  priests  of  the  assembly  or  common  council  of  Asia, whose  office,  among  others,  was  to  exhibit  the  public  shows  in  the  amphitheatre.

15^

148  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

and  bound  to  the  stake  as  a  noble  victim  selected  from  the  great flock,  an  acceptable  sacrifice  to  Almighty  God,  said  :  "  Father  of thy  well-beloved  and  blessed  Son  Jesus  Christ,  through  whom  we have  received  the  knowledge  of  thee.  The  God  of  angels  and powers,  and  all  creation,  and  of  all  the  iamily  of  the  righteous, that  live  before  thee,  I  bless  thee  that  thou  hast  thought  me worthy  of  the  present  day  and  hour,  to  have  a  share  in  the number  of  the  martyrs  and  in  the  cup  of  Christ,  unto  the  resurrection of  eternal  life,  both  of  the  soul  and  body,  in  the  incorruptible felicity  of  the  holy  Spirit.  Among  whom  may  I  be  received  in thy  sight,  this  day,  as  a  rich  and  acceptable  sacrifice  as  thou  the faithful  and  true  God  hast  prepared,  hast  revealed  and  fulfilled.
Wherefore,  on  this  account,  and  for  all  things  I  praise  thee,  I
bless  thee,  I  glorify  thee,  through  the  eternal  high  priest,  Jesus Christ,  thy  well-beloved  Son.  Through  whom  glory  be  to  thee with  him  in  the  Holy  Ghost,  both  now  and  for  ever.     Amen."

After  he  had  repeated  amen,  and  had  finished  his  prayer,  the executioners  kindled  the  fire.  And  when  it  arose  in  great  flames, we  saw  a  miracle,  those  of  us  who  were  privileged  to  see  it,  and who,  therefore,  were  preserved  to  declare  the  facts  to  others.  For the  flames  presented  an  appearance  like  an  oven,  as  when  the sail  of  a  vessel  is  filled  with  the  wind ;  and  thus  formed  a  wall around  the  body  of  the  martyr.  And  he  was  in  the  midst  not like  burning  flesh,  but  like  gold  and  silver  purified  in  the  furnace.
We  also  perceived  a  fragrant  odour,  like  the  fumes  of  incense,  or some  other  precious  aromatic  drugs.  At  length  the  wicked  persecutors, seeing  that  the  body  could  not  be  consumed  by  fire, commanded  the  executioner  to  draw  near  to  him  and  to  plunge his  sword  into  him ;  and  w  hen  he  had  done  this,  such  a  quantfty of  blood  gushed  forth  that  the  fire  was  extinguished.  So  that the  whole  multitude  were  astonished  that  such  a  difference  should be  made  between  the  unbehevers  and  the  elect,  of  whom  this one,  bishop  of  the  catholic  church  in  Smyrna,  was  the  most  admirable, apostolical,  and  prophetical  teacher  of  our  times.  For every  word  that  he  uttered,  was  either  fulfilled  or  will  yet  be fulfilled.  But  that  envious  and  malignant  adversary,  that  wicked enemy  of  all  the  righteous,  seeing  the  lustre  of  his  martyrdom.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  149

and  his  uniform  walk  and  conversation,  and  him  now  crowned with  the  crown  of  immortahty,  and  bearing  off  the  indisputable prize,  had  provided  that  not  even  his  corpse  could  be  obtained  by us,  though  many  of  us  eagerly  wished  it,  so  as  to  have  communion with  the  sacred  body.  Some,  therefore,  secretly  engaged Nicetas,  the  father  of  Herod  and  brother  of  Dalce,  to  go  to  the  governor, so  as  not  to  give  the  body,  lest,  said  they,  abandoning  him that  was  crucified,  they  should  begin  to  worship  this  one.  And  this they  said  on  the  suggestion  and  urging  of  the  Jews,  who  were also  watching  and  looking  out  whilst  we  were  preparing  to  take him  from  the  fire.  Not  knowing,  however,  that  we  can  never abandon  Christ,  who  suffered  for  the  salvation  of  those  that  are becoming  saved  from  all  the  world,  nor  even  worship  any  other.
For  him  we  worship  as  the  Son  of  God ;  but  the  martyrs  we  deservedly love  as  the  disciples  and  imitators  of  our  Lord,  on  account of  their  exceeding  love  to  their  king  and  master.  Of whom  may  we  only  become  true  associates  and  fellow-disciples.
The  centurion  then  seeing  the  obstinacy  of  the  Jews,  placed  him in  the  middle,  and  burnt  it  according  to  the  custom  of  the  Gentiles. Thus,  at  last,  taking  up  his  bones,  more  valuable  than precious  stones,  and  more  tried  than  gold,  we  deposited  them where  it  was  proper  they  should  be.  There,  also,  as  far  as  we  can, the  Lord  wall  grant  us  to  collect  and  celebrate  the  natal  day*  of his  martyrdom  in  joy  and  gladness,  both  in  commemoration  of those  who  finished  their  contest  before,  and  to  exercise  and  prepare those  that  shall  hereafter."  Such  is  the  account  respecting the  blessed  Polycarp,  who,  together  with  the  twelve  from  Philadelphia, W'as  crowned  a  martyr.  Who,  however,  is  rather  mentioned alone  by  all,  so  that  he  is  spoken  of  by  the  Gentiles  in every  place.  Of  such  an  end,  then,  was  the  admirable  and apostolic  Polycarp  deemed  worthy,  according  to  the  account which  the  brethren  in  Smyrna  recorded  in  the  epistle  that  we have  quoted.  In  this  same  epistle,  also,  respecting  him,  othei martyrdoms  are  also  recorded,  which  took  place  in  the  same  city,
*  The  martyrdom  of  Polycarp  is  here  called  his  natal  day,  as  his  birthday  foi a  better  world.

150  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

and  about  the  time  of  Polycarp's  death.  Among  these,  also,  was Metrodorus,  a  follower  of  Marcion's  error,  but  who  appears  to have  been  a  presbyter,  and  who  was  committed  to  the  flames.
A  very  celebrated  martyr  of  those  times  was  Pionius.  Those who  feel  inclined  to  know  respecting  him,  we  refer  to  that  epistle that  has  been  imbodied  in  the  work  on  the  ancient  martyrs  collected by  us,  in  which  is  given  a  very  full  account  of  his  particular confessions,  of  the  freedom  with  w^hich  he  spoke,  of  his defence  of  the  faith  before  the  people  and  rulers.  Also  his  in structive  exhortations;  moreover  his  strong  invitations  to  those that  fell  away  under  the  temptation  of  persecution,  the  consolations which  he  presented  to  the  brethren  that  came  in  to  him  in prison,  what  excruciating  tortures  he  also  endured  besides,  when he  was  secured  with  spikes,  his  firmness  on  the  pile,  and  after  all his  extraordinary  sufferings,  his  death.  There  are,  also,  records extant  of  others  that  suffered  martyrdom  in  Pergamus,  a  city  of Asia.  Of  these  we  mention  only  Carpus  and  Papylus,  and  a woman  named  Agathonice ;  who,  after  many  and  illustrious  testimonies given  by  them,  gloriously  finished  their  course.

CHAPTER  XVI.

Hotv  Justin,  the  •philosopher,  suffered  martyrdom,  asserting  the doctrine  of  Christ.

About  this  time,  the  same  Justin  who  was  mentioned  by  us  a little  before,  after  having  given  a  second  defence  of  our  doc trines  to  the  abovementioned  rulers,  was  crowned  with  divine martyrdom,  at  tlie  insidious  instigation  of  Crescens  the  philosopher, who  was  called  a  cynic,  and  emulated  the  life  and  manner indicated  by  the  name  he  bore.  After  having  frequently  refuted him  in  discussion,  in  the  presence  of  many  hearers,  he  at  length also  bore  away  the  palm  of  victory,  in  the  truth  wdiich  he  asserted, by  his  own  martyrdom.  It  is  also  plainly  stated  by  the  same excellent  and  most  learned  author,  in  the  Apology  already  quoted
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  151

that  he  predicted  the  issue  just  as  it  was  about  to  happen  in  reference to  himself,  in  the  following  words ;  "  I  also  expect  to  be waylaid  by  some  one  of  those  whom  I  have  named,  and  to  be  put to  the  rack,  even  by  Crescens  himself,  that  unphilosophical,  and vainglorious  opponent.  For  it  seems  not  proper  to  call  a  man  a philosopher,  since  he  publicly  attempts  to  contend  against  matters that  he  does  not  understand,  as  if  Christians  were  infidels  and wicked  characters,  merely  for  the  purpose  of  captivating  and  gratifying the  multitude.  He  has  done  all  this  under  a  strong  delusion. For  if  he  counteracts  us  without  having  read  the  doctrines of  Christ,  he  is  most  iniquitous  in  his  conduct,  and  much  worse than  common  men,  who  for  the  most  part  are  cautious  in  speaking and  bearing  a  false  testimony  in  matters  that  they  do  not  understand ;  and  if  when  happening  to  read,  he  does  not  understand the  sublimity  in  them,  or  if  understanding,  he  does  those things  that  may  lead  one  to  suspect  he  is  not  one  of  them,  (i.  e.)  no Christian,  he  is  so  much  the  more  base  and  nefarious,  inasmuch as  he  is  enslaved  to  vulgar  applause  and  an  absurd  fear.  And, indeed,  when  I  proposed  certain  questions  to  him,  in  order  to  ascertain and  convince  him  that  he  really  was  ignorant,  I  would beg  leave  to  inform  you,  that  I  found  this  to  be  the  case.  And that  you  may  know  all  that  I  here  say  is  true,  if  these  discussions have  not  yet  reached  you,  I  am  prepared  to  repeat  these  interrogations in  your  presence.  This,  too,  would  be  a  work  suited  to your  majesties.  But  if  these  questions  of  mine,  and  his  answers are  known  to  you,  it  is  obvious  to  you,  that  he  knows  nothing  of our  doctrines,  or  if  he  knows,  he  does  not  declare  them  on  account of  his  hearers ;  so  that,  as  I  before  said,  he  proves  himself to  be  not  a  true  lover  of  wisdom,  a  philosopher,  but  a  lover  of vainglory.  He,  indeed,  does  not  even  regard  that  excellent  saying of  Socrates,  viz.  "  that  no  one  is  to  be  preferred  to  truth :"
Thus  far  Justin.  But  that  in  consequence  of  his  freedom  against Crescens,  he  was  brought  to  his  end,  is  shown  by  Tatian,  a  man who  at  first,  as  a  sophist,  taught  the  various  branches  of  literature among  the  Greeks,  and  obtained  no  small  celebrity  in  tliem, and  who  left  numerous  monuments  of  his  attainments  in  his vvorks.     This  he  relates  in  the  book  against  the  Greeks,  thus :

152  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

''  And  that  most  excellent  Justin,  justly  declared  that  the  aforesaid persons  were  like  robbers."  Then  after  some  comments  on these  philosophers,  he  adds  the  following :  "  Crescens  indeed, who  had  nestled  in  the  great  city  (Rome,)  surpassed  all  in  his unnatural  lust  (jtaiSepagLa)  and  was  also  wholly  enslaved  to  the love  of  money.  And  he  who  advised  others  to  despise  death,  was nimself  so  much  in  dread  of  death,  that  he  plotted  death  for  Justin as  a  very  great  evil.  Because  that  when  proclaiming  the truth,  he  proved  the  philosophers  gluttons  and  impostors."  And <\ich  was  the  cause  that  produced  the  martyrdom  of  Justin.

CHAPTER  XVIII.

The  martyrs  mentioned  by  Justin  in  his  books.

But  the  same  author  before  his  conflict  makes  mention  of others  that  suffered  martyrdom  before  him,  in  his  first  Apology In  which  he  aptly  introduces  the  following  statement : "  A  certain woman,"  says  he,  "  had  a  husband  that  was  intemperate.  She herself,  had  also  previously  led  a  dissolute  life ;  but  after  she was  made  acquainted  with  the  doctrines  of  Christ,  she  became modest,  and  endeavoured  to  persuade  her  husband  also  to  lead a  virtuous  life,  presenting  to  his  mind  the  doctrines  of  Christianity, and  the  punishment  of  eternal  fire  awaited  those  that  would not  live  virtuously,  and  according  to  right  reason.  But  he  still continuing  in  the  same  lascivious  habits,  wholly  alienated  his wife's  affections  by  his  practices.  Finally,  the  woman  considering it  wicked  to  live  with  one  who,  contrary  to  the  law  of  nature and  propriety,  was  intent  upon  every  course  to  gratify  his lusts,  contemplated  a  divorce.  But  when  she  was  encouraged by  her  friends,  who  advised  her  still  to  remain  with  him,  as  if he  might  give  hopes  of  a  change  of  life,  she  did  violence  to  herself and  remained.  Afterwards,  however,  her  husband,  who  had gone  to  Alexandria,  was  reported  to  be  acting  much  worse.
Fearing,  therefore,  lest  she  should  become  a  sharer  in  his  unrighteousness and  impieties,  if  she  continued  united  to  him,  and
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  153

should  be  his  companion,  she  sent  him  what  is  called  the  bih of  divorce,  and  was  separated.  This  good  and  excellent  husband, however,  who  ought  to  have  rejoiced  that  his  wife,  who had  formerly  delighted  in  debauchery  and  all  manner  of  vice, had  now  ceased  from  those  deeds  in  which  she  had  formerlv been  wantonly  engaged  with  servants  and  hirelings,  and  that  she now  wished  him,  also,  to  cease  from  doing  the  same  things, would  not  do  thus,  when  she  left  him,  but  he  brought  an  accusation against  her,  asserting  that  she  was  a  Christian.  And  she dehvered  to  you,  the  emperor,  a  petition,  requesting  that  she might  first  be  permitted  to  regulate  her  domestic  affairs,  and  then, after  the  regulation  of  her  affairs,  she  would  make  her  defence in  reference  to  the  accusation.  And  this  you  granted.  But  he, who  had  formerly  been  the  husband  of  the  woman,  not  being  able to  say  anything  against  her  now,  turned  upon  a  certain  Ptolemy, whom  Urbicius  had  punished,  and  who  had  become  her  instructer in  the  principles  of  Christianity,  in  the  following  manner.

He  had  persuaded  the  centurion  to  seize  Ptolemy  his  friend, and  cast  him  in  prison,  and  to  ask  him  only  this,  whether  he  was a  Christian  ?  Ptolemy,  who  v/as  a  lover  of  truth,  and  averse  to all  deceit  and  falsehood,  confessed  himself  a  Christian ;  in  consequence of  which,  he  was  cast  into  prison,  and  punished  by  the centurion  in  this  way  for  a  long  time.  At  last,  when  the  man came  before  Urbicius  in  like  matter,  only  this  one  thing  was asked,  whether  he  was  a  Christian  ?  And  as  he  was  conscious of  deriving  every  happiness  and  blessing  from  the  doctrine  of Christ,  he  again  professed  the  principles  of  celestial  virtue. —
For  he  that  denies  that  he  is  a  Christian,  either  denies,  because he  despises,  or  because  he  is  conscious  that  he  is  unworthy of  this  religion,  and  a  stranger  to  its  excellency ;  and  thus  avoids the  confession.  Neither  of  these  things  can  apply  to  the  true Christian.  Urbicius,  however,  having  commanded  him  to  be led  forth,  a  certain  Lucius,  who  was  also  a  Christian,  seeing  the judgment  so  unjustly  passed,  says  to  Urbicius,  "  What  charge  is this,  that  you  should  punish  one  who  is  neither  an  adulterer,  nor fornicator,  nor  a  murderer,  nor  a  thief,  nor  a  robber ;  nor  convicted, indeed,  of  any  crime,  but  simply  confessing  the  name  of

U

154  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

a  Christian  T  O,  Urbicius,  you  do  not  judge  what  becomes  our pious  emperor,  nor  the  philosophic  son  of  Cesar,  nor  the  sacred senate."  But  without  any  other  reply,  he  said  to  Lucius,  "  Thou appearest  also  to  be  one  such  as  these,"  and  as  Lucius  answered "  by  all  means,"  he  in  like  manner  commanded  him  to  be  led forth.  But  he,  (Lucius,)  said,  he  thanked  him ;  "  for  now,"  he added,  "  he  was  liberated  from  wicked  masters,  and  was  goinj;
to  the  good  Father  and  king,  even  God.  And  a  second  and third  coming  up,  w^crc  punished  in  the  same  way."  To  these Justin,  next  in  order,  adds  the  passages  that  we  quoted  above, where  he  says :  *'  But  I  am  now  waiting  to  be  waylaid  by  a •ertain  one  of  those  called  philosophers,"  &c.

CHAPTER  XVIIL

The  hooks  of  Justiii  that  have  come  doicn  to  us.

This  Justin  has  left  us  many  monuments  of  a  mind  well  stored with  learning,  and  devoted  to  sacred  things,  replete  with  matter profitable  in  every  respect.  To  these  w^e  shall  refer  our  studious readers,  only  indicating  as  we  proceed,  those  that  have  come to  our  knowledge.  There  is  a  discourse  of  his,  addressed  to Antonine,  surnamed  the  Pious,  and  his  sons  and  the  Roman  senate, in  defence  of  our  doctrines.  Another  work,  comprising  a defence  of  our  faith,  which  he  addressed  to  the  emperor  of  the same  name,  Antoninus  Verus,  the  successor  of  the  preceding,  the circumstances  of  whose  times  we  are  now  recording.  Also,  another book,  against  the  Greeks,  in  which,  dilating  upon  most  of  the questions  agitated  between  us  and  the  Greek  philosophers,  he also  discusses  the  nature  of  daemons ;  of  which  it  is  not  necessary to  add  anything  here.  There  is  also  another  work,  that  has reached  us,  also  against  the  Gentiles,  to  which  he  gave  the  title, "  Refutation:'  Besides  these,  also  another,  "  On  the  Sovereignty/
of  God"  which  he  establishes  not  only  by  the  holy  Scriptures, but  also  by  references  to  the  works  of  the  Greeks.     Moreover
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  155

he  wrote  a  work  called  PsaJies,  (the  psalmist,)  another,  also  consisting of  Pvemarks  on  the  Soul,  in  which,  after  proposing  various questions  on  the  subject,  he  adds  the  opinions  that  prevailed among  the  Greek  philosophers,  which  he  also  promises  to  disprove, and  to  give  his  own  opinion  in  a  separate  work.  He  also wrote  a  dialogue  against  the  Jews,  which  he  held  at  Ephesus with  Tryphon,  the  most  distinguished  among  the  Hebrews  of  the day.  In  this  he  shows  how  the  Divine  grace  stimulated  him  to this  discourse  on  the  faith,  what  zeal  also  he  had  before  evinced in  the  studies  of  philosophy,  and  what  indefatigable  research  he had  applied  in  the  discovery  of  the  truth.  In  this  also  he  states respecting  the  Jews,  how  insidiously  they  plotted  against  the  doctrine of  Christ,  and  addresses  the  following  words  to  Tryphon :
"  But  you  do  not  only  continue  impenitent  for  your  evil  deeds, but  selecting  chosen  men,  you  sent  them  from  Jerusalem  to  all the  world,  declaring  that  the  infidel  sect  of  Christians  had  made its  appearance,  and  uttering  all  those  falsehoods  against  us  which those  that  know  us  not  are  accustomed  to  repeat.  Thus  you  are the  causes  of  iniquity  not  only  to  yourselves  but  to  all  others also."  He  writes  also,  that  even  down  to  his  time,  gifts  of  prophecy shone  forth  in  the  church ;  mentions  also,  the  Revelation of  John,  plainly  calling  it  the  w^ork  of  the  apostle,  and  records also,  certain  prophetic  declarations,  in  his  discussion  with  Tryphon, and  showing  that  the  Jews  had  expunged  them  from  the Scriptures.  There  are  also  many  other  works  of  his  in  the hands  of  many  of  our  brethren.  So  valuable  and  worthy  of study  were  these  works  esteemed  by  the  ancients,  that  Irenaeus quotes  him  often.  This  he  does  in  the  fourth  book  against heresies,  adding  the  words :  "  And  well  does  Justin,  in  his work  against  Marcion,  say :  'I  would  not  even  believe  the  Lord himself,  if  he  were  to  announce  any  other  God  but  the  Creator.'  "
And  in  the  fifth  book,  he  says :  "  And  well  did  Justin  say,  that  before the  appearance  of  our  Lord,  Satan  never  ventured  to  blaspheme God,  because  he  did  not  yet  know  his  own  condemnation."
These  we  deemed  necessary  to  state,  in  order  to  stimulate  the studious  likewise  to  the  diligent  perusal  of  these  books.  And thus  much  respecting  Justin.
16

156  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XIX.

Those  that  presided  over  the  churches  of  Rome  and  Alexandridf in  the  reign  of  Vents.

It  was  in  the  eighth  year  of  the  ahovementioned  reign,  viz., that  of  Verus,  that  Anicetus,  who  had  held  the  episcopate  of Rome  for  eleven  years,  was  succeeded  by  Soter ;  but  at  Alexandria, Celadion,  who  had  presided  over  the  church  fourteen  years, was  succeeded  by  Agrippinus.

CHAPTER  XX.

The  bishops  of  Antioch,
At  this  time,  also,  Theophilus  in  the  church  of  Antioch,  was well  known  as  the  sixth  in  succession  from  the  apostles.  As Cornelius,  who  succeeded  Heron,  had  been  the  fourth  of  those that  presided  there,  and  after  him  Eros,  the  fifth  in  order  that held  the  episcopate.

CHAPTER  XXI.  ^

The  ecclesiastical  writers  that  flourished  in  these  times.

About  this  time  flourished  Hegesippus,  whom  we  quoted  above.
Also  Dionysius,  bishop  of  Corinth,  and  Pinytus,  bishop  of  Crete.
Moreover,  Philip  and  Apollinaris  and  Melito.  Musanus,  also, and  Modestus,  and,  lastly,  Irenaeus,  whose  correct  views  of  the sound  faith  have  descended  to  us  in  the  works  written  by  them, as  they  received  it  from  apostolic  tradition.

ii^tULESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  157

CHAPTEPv    XXII.

Of  HegesippuSf  and  those  whom  he  mentions.

Hegesippus,  indeed,  in  the  five  books  of  commentaries  that  have come  down  to  us,  has  left  a  most  complete  record  of  his  own views.  In  these  he  states  that  he  conversed  with,  most  of  the bishops  when  he  travelled  to  Rome,  and  that  he  received  the same  doctrine  from  all.  We  may  also  add  what  he  says,  after some  observations  on  the  Epistle  of  Clement  to  the  Corinthians :
"  And  the  church  of  Corinth,"  says  he,  "  continued  in  the  true faith,  until  Primus  was  bishop  there.  With  whom  I  had  familiar conversation  (as  I  passed  many  days  at  Corinth,)  w^hen  I  was on  the  point  of  sailing  to  Rome,  during  which  time  also,  w^e  were mutually  refreshed  in  the  true  doctrine.  After  coming  to  Rome, I  made  my  stay  with  Anicetus,  whose  deacon  was  Eleutherus.
After  Anicetus,  Soter  succeeded,  and  after  him  Eleutherus.  In every  succession,  however,  and  in  every  city,  the  doctrine  prevails according  to  what  is  declared  by  the  law  and  the  prophets  and  the Lord."  The  same  author,  also,  treats  of  the  beginnings  of  the  heresies that  arose  about  his  time,  in  the  following  words :  "But  after James  the  Just  had  suffered  martyrdom,  as  our  Lord  had  for  the same  reason,  Simeon,  the  son  of  Cleophas  our  Lord's  uncle,  was appointed  the  second  bishop,  whom  all  proposed,  as  the  cousin  of our  Lord.  Hence  they  called  the  church  as  yet  a  virgin,  for  it  was not  yet  corrupted  by  vain  discourses.  Thebuthis  made  a  beginning secretly  to  corrupt  it,  on  account  of  his  not  being  made bishop.  He  w^as  one  of  those  seven  sects  among  the  Jewish  people. Of  these,  also,  was  Simeon,  whence  sprung  the  seqt  of  Simonians;  also,  Cleobius,  from  whom  came  the  Cleobians;  also, Dositheus,  the  founder  of  the  Dositheans.  From  these  also sprung  the  Gorthoeonians,  from  Gorthoeus,  and  the  Masbothoeans, from  Masbotheus.  Hence,  also,  the  Menandrians,  and  Marcionists,  and  Carpocratians,  and  Valentinians,  and  Basilidians,  and the  Saturnilians,  every  one  introducing  his  own  peculiar  opinions, one  differing  from  the  other.    From  these  sprung  the  false  Christs
158  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

and  false  prophets  and  false  apostles,  who  divided  the  unity  of  the church,  by  the  introduction  of  corrupt  doctrines  against  God  and asrainst  his  Christ."  The  same  author  also  mentions  in  his  history,  the  ancient  heresies  prevalent  among  the  Jews,  as  follows :
"  There  were  also,  different  opinions  in  the  circumcision  among the  children  of  Israel,  against  the  tribe  of  Judah  and  the  Messiah, viz.,  the  Esscnes,  the  Galileans,  Hemerobaptists,  the  Masbothceans,  the  Samaritans,  the  Sadducees  and  Pharisees."  He  also speaks  of  many  other  matters,  which  we  have  in  part  already quoted,  and  introduced  in  their  appropriate  places.  He  also states  some  particulars  from  the  gospel  of  the  Hebrews  and  from the  Syriac,  and  particularly  from  the  Hebrew  language,  showing that  he  himself  was  a  convert  from  the  Hebrews.  Other  matters he  also  records  as  taken  from  the  unwritten  tradition  of  the Jews.  And  not  only  he,  but  Irenaeus  also,  and  the  whole  body of  the  ancients,  called  the  Proverbs  of  Solomon,  "Wisdom, comprehending  every  virtue."  Also  in  discoursing  on  the  books called  Apocrypha,  he  relates  that  some  of  them  were  forged  in his  day,  by  some  of  the  heretics.  But  it  is  now  time  to  proceed to  another.

CHAPTER  XXIII.

Of  Dionysius,  bishop  of  Corinth,  and  his  epistles.

And  first  we  must  speak  of  Dionysius,  who  was  appointed over  the  church  at  Corinth,  and  imparted  freely,  not  only  to  his own  people,  but  to  others  abroad  also,  the  blessings  of  his  divine labours.  But  he  was  most  useful  to  all  in  the  catholic  epistles that  he  addressed  to  the  churches.  One  of  which  is  addressed to  the  Lacedaemonians,  and  contains  instructions  in  the  true  religion, and  inculcates  peace  and  unity.  One  also  to  the  Athenians, exciting  them  to  the  faith,  and  the  life  prescribed  by  the gospel,  from  which  he  shows  that  they  had  sw^erved,  so  that  they had  nearly  fallen  from  the  truth,  since  the  martyrdom  of  Publius,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  159

then  bishop,  which  happened  in  the  persecutions  of  those  times.
He  also  makes  mention  of  Quadratus,  who  was  bishop  after  the martyrdom  of  PubHus,  bearing  witness  also  that  the  church  was again  collected,  and  the  faith  of  the  people  revived  by  his  exer tions.  He  states,  moreover,  that  Dionysius  the  Areopagite,  who was  converted  to  tlie  faith  by  Paul  the  apostle,  according  to  the statement  in  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  first  obtained  the  episcopate of  the  church  at  Athens.  There  is  also  another  epistle  of  his  extant, addressed  to  the  Nicomedians,  in  which  he  refutes  the  heresy of  Marcion  and  adheres  closely  to  the  rule  of  faith.  Jn  an epistle  to  the  church  of  Gortyna,  and  to  the  other  churches  in Crete,  he  commends  their  bishop  Philip,  for  the  numerous  instances of  fortitude  that  the  church  evinced  under  him,  according to  the  testimony  of  all,  whilst  he  cautions  them  against  the  perversions of  the  heretics.  He  also  wrote  to  the  church  at  Amastris,  together  with  those  at  Pontus,  in  which  he  makes  mention of  Bacchyhdes  and  Elpistus,  as  those  who  urged  him  to  write.  He also  adds  some  expositions  of  the  sacred  WTitings,  where  he  intimates that  Palmas  was  then  bishop.  He  also  recommends  many things  in  regard  to  marriage,  and  the  purity  to  be  observed  by those  who  enter  this  state,  and  enjoins  upon  the  church  to  receive again  kindly  all  that  return  again  from  any  fall ;  w^hether of  heresy  or  delinquency.  Among  them  is  also  inserted  an  epistle to  the  Gnossians,  in  which  he  admonishes  Pinytus,  the  bishop  of the  church,  not  to  impose  upon  the  brethren  without  necessity,  a burden  in  regard  to  purity  too  great  to  be  borne,  but  to  pay  regard to  the  infirmity  of  the  great  mass.  To  which  Pinytus,  writing in  repl}^,  admires  and  applauds  Dionysius,  but  exhorts  him  at  the same  time  to  impart  some  time  or  other  stronger  food,  and  to feed  the  people  under  him  with  writings  abounding  in  more  perfect doctrine  when  he  wrote  again,  so  that  they  might  not  remain constantly  nurtured  with  milky  doctrine,  and  imperceptibly grow  old,  under  a  discipline  calculated  only  for  children,  ki w^hich  epistle,  also,  the  correct  views  which  Pinytus  cherished, and  his  solicitude  respecting  the  welfare  of  those  that  were  committed to  his  care,  also  his  learning  and  intelligence  in  divine  matters is  exhibited  as  in  a  most  perfect  image.  There  is  yet  another 16^

160  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

epistle  ascribed  to  Dionysius,  to  the  Romans,  and  addressed  to Soter  the  bishop  of  that  city,  from  which  we  may  also  subjoin some  extracts,  viz.,  from  that  part  where  he  commends  a  practice of  the  Romans  retained  even  to  the  persecution  in  our  day,  and writes  as  follows:  "For  this  practice  has  prevailed  with  you from  the  very  beginning,  to  do  good  to  all  the  brethren  in  every way,  and  to  send  contributions  to  many  cliurches  in  every  city.
Thus  refreshing  the  needy  in  their  want,  and  furnishing  to  the brethren  condemned  to  the  mines,  what  was  necessary,  by  these contributions  which  ye  have  been  accustomed  to  send  from  the  beginning, you  preserve,  as  Romans,  the  practices  of  your  ancestors the  Romans.  Which  was  not  only  observed  by  your  bishop  Soter, but  also  increased,  as  he  not  only  furnished  great  supplies  to  the saints,  but  also  encouraged  the  brethren  that  came  from  abroad, as  a  loving  father  his  children,  with  consolatory  words."  In  this same  letter  he  mentions  that  of  Clement  to  the  Corinthians,  showing that  it  was  the  practice  to  read  it  in  the  churches,  even  from the  earliest  times.  "  To-day,"  says  he,  "  we  have  passed  the Lord's  holy  day,  in  which  we  have  read  your  epistle.  In  reading which  we  shall  always  have  our  minds  stored  with  admonition, as  we  shall,  also,  from  that  written  to  us  before  by  Clement." Besides  this,  the  same  author  writes  respecting  his  own epistles  as  having  been  corrupted  :  "  As  the  brethren,"  says  he, "  desired  me  to  write  epistles,  I  wrote  them,  and  these  the  apostles of  the  devil  have  filled  wdth  tares,  exchanging  some  things, and  adding  others,  for  whom  there  is  a  wo  reserved.  It  is  not, therefore,  matter  of  wonder,  if  some  have  also  attempted  to  adulterate the  sacred  writings  of  the  Lord,  since  they  have  attempted the  same  in  other  works  that  are  not  to  be  compared  with  these."
There  is  also  another  epistle  attributed  to  this  Dionysius,  addressed to  his  most  faithful  sister  Chrysophora,  in  which  he  writes what  was  suitable  to  her,  and  imparts  also  to  her  the  proper spiritual  food.     And  thus  much  respecting  Dionysius.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  161

CHAPTER  XXIV.

Of  Theophilus,  bishop  ofAntioch,
There  are  three  books  containing  the  elements  of  the  faith, addressed  to  Autolycus,  which  are  ascribed  to  Theophilus,  whom we  have  mentioned  as  bishop  of  Antioch.  Another,  also,  which has  the  title,  "  Against  the  heresy  of  Hermogenis  ;"  in  which  he makes  use  of  testimony  from  the  Revelation  of  John,  besides  certain other  catechetical  works.  And  as  the  heretics,  no  less  then, than  at  any  other  time,  were  like  tares  destroying  the  pure  seed of  the  apostolical  doctrines,  the  pastors  of  the  churches  every where  hastened  to  restrain  them  as  wild  beasts  from  the  fold  of Christ.  Sometimes  they  did  it  by  their  exhortations  and  admonitions to  the  brethren,  sometimes  more  openly  contending  \vith the  heretics  themselves,  by  oral  discussions  and  refutations,  and then  again  confuting  their  opinions,  by  the  most  rigid  proofs  in their  written  works.

Theophilus,  therefore,  with  others,  also  contended  against  these, as  is  manifest  from  a  work  of  no  mean  character,  written  by  him against  Marcion,  which,  together  with  others  that  we  have  mentioned, is  still  preserved.  He  was  succeeded  by  Maximinus,  the seventh  from  the  apostles  in  the  church  of  Antioch.

CHAPTER  XXV.

Of  Philip  and  Modestus.

Philip,  also,  who  we  have  seen  from  the  words  of  Dionysius, was  bishop  of  the  church  at  Gortyna,  has  written  a  very  elaborate work  against  Marcion.  Irenasus,  also,  and  Modestus,  the  last of  whom  beyond  all  others,  has  detected  the  error  of  the  man, and  exposed  it  to  the  view  of  all.  Many  others  have  also  written, whose  labours  are  carefully  preserved  by  the  brethren  even
to  this  day.

X

162  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XXVL

Of  Melito,  and  the  circumstances  he  records.

In  these  times,  also  flourished  Melito,  bishop  of  the  church  in Sardis,  and  Apollinaris,  the  bishop  of  Hierapolis.  Each  of  these separately  addressed  discourses  as  apologies  for  the  faith,  to  the existing  emperor  of  the  Romans,  already  mentioned.  Of  these, those  that  follow  below,  are  those  that  have  come  to  our  knowledge. Of  Melito,  two  works  On  the  Passover,  and  those,  On  the Conduct  of  Life f  and  the  Prophets.  One,  On  the  Church,  and  another discourse.  On  the  Lord's-day.  One,  also,  On  the  Nature  of Man,  and  another  On  his  Formation.  A  work  On  the  Subjection of  the  Senses  to  Faith.  Besides  these,  a  treatise  On  the  Soul,  the Body,  and  the  Mind.  A  dissertation  also.  On  Baptism ;  one  also, on  Truth,  and  Faith,  and  the  Generation  of  Christ.  His  discourse On  Prophecy,  and  that  On  Hospitality.  A  treatise  called  The  Key, his  works  On  the  Devil,  and  The  Revelation  of  John.  The  treatise On  the  Incarnate  God.  And  last  of  all,  the  discourse  addressed to  Antonine.  In  the  work  on  the  passover,  he  shows  the  time in  which  he  wrote  it,  beginning  with  these  words :  "  When  Servilius  Paulus  was  proconsul  of  Asia,  says  he,  at  which  time  Sagaris  suffered  martyrdom,  there  was  much  discussion  in  Laodicea,  respecting  the  passover,  which  occurred  at  that  time  in  its proper  season,  and  in  which,  also,  these  works  were  written."
This  work  is  also  mentioned  by  Clement  of  Alexandria,  in  his own  work  on  the  passover,  which,  he  says,  he  wrote  on  occasion of  Melito's  work.  But  in  the  book  addressed  to  the  emperor,  he relates  the  following  transactions  against  those  of  our  faith,  under this  emperor.  "  What,  indeed,  says  he,  never  before  happened, the  race  of  the  pious  is  now  persecuted,  driven  about  in  Asia,  by new  and  strange  decrees.  For  the  shameless  informers,  and those  that  crave  the  property  of  others,  taking  occasion  from  the edicts  of  the  emperors,  openly  perpetrate  robbery ;  night  and  day plundering  those  who  are  guilty  of  no  crime."  And  afterwards he  says,  "  and  if  these  things  are  done  by  your  orders  let  them  be
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY  163

done  at  least  in  a  proper  way.  For  a  just  ruler  should  never form  unjust  decrees.  We,  indeed,  cheerfully  bear  the  reward  of such  a  death,  but  we  only  urge  upon  you  this  request,  that  you yourself  would  first  take  cognisance  of  these  plotters  of  mischief, and  justly  judge,  whether  the}^  deserve  death  and  punishment,  oi safety  and  security.  But  if  this  decree,  and  this  unheard  of  ordinance, which  ought  not  be  tolerated  even  against  barbarous enemies,  have  not  proceeded  from  you,  so  much  the  more  do  we entreat  you  not  to  overlook  us  in  the  midst  of  this  lawless  plunder of  the  populace."  After  a  few  other  remarks,  he  adds,  "  The philosophy  which  we  profess,  first  indeed,  flourished  among  the barbarians,  but  afterwards,  when  it  grew  up,  also  among  the  nations under  your  government;  under  the  glorious  reign  of  Augustus your  ancestor,  it  became,  especially  to  your  reign,  an  auspicious blessing.  For  since  that  time,  the  Roman  power  has  grown in  greatness  and  splendour.  Whose  desired  successor  you  have become,  and  will  be,  together  with  your  son,  if  you  preserve  that philosophy  which  has  been  nurtured  with  the  empire,  which  commenced its  existence  with  Augustus,  and  which  also  your  ancestors did  honour,  with  other  religions ;  and  one  of  the  greatest evidences,  that  our  doctrine  flourished,  to  the  advantage  of  a reign  so  happily  begun,  is  this  :  that  there  has  nothing  disastrous occurred  to  the  empire,  since  the  reign  of  Augustus ;  on  the  contrary, all  things  have  proceeded  splendidly  and  gloriously  according to  the  wishes  of  all.  Nero,  and  Domitian,  alone,  stimulated by  certain  malicious  persons,  showed  a  disposition  to  slander  our faith.  From  whom  it  has  happened,  also,  that  this  falsehood  respecting Christians  has  been  propagated  by  an  absurd  practice  of w^aylaying  and  informing.  But  your  pious  fathers  corrected  what was  done  by  the  ignorance  of  those,  by  frequently  reproving  many in  writing,  as  many  as  dared  to  attempt  any  innovations  against those  of  our  religion.  Your  grandfather  Adrian,  evidently  wrote, among  others,  to  Fundanus  the  proconsul  of  Asia.  But  your father,  also,  when  you  held  the  government  with  him,  wrote  to the  cities,  forbidding  any  strange  movements  against  us.  Amonc;
these  were  the  ordinances  to  the  Larissasans,  to  the  Thessalonians,  and  Athenians,  and  all  the  Greeks.     But  as  you  cherish  the
164  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

same  opinion  on  these  matters  with  those,  and,  indeed,  have  still more  benevolent  and  more  philosophical  views,  we  are  so  much the  more  confident  you  will  do  what  we  entreat."  This  passage is  given  in  the  discourse  beforementioned.  But  in  the  selections made  by  him,  the  same  writer  in  the  beginning  of  his  preface, gives  a  catalogue  of  the  books  of  the  Old  Testament  acknowledged as  canonical.  This  we  have  thought  necessary  to  give here,  literally  as  follows:

"  Melito  sends,  greeting,  to  his  brother  Onesimus,  as  you  have frequently  desired  in  your  zeal  for  the  Scriptures,  that  I  should make  selections  for  you,  both  from  the  law  and  the  prophets, respecting  our  Saviour,  and  our  whole  faith;  and  you  w^ere, moreover,  desirous  of  having  an  exact  statement  of  the  Old Testament,  how  many  in  number,  and  in  what  order  the  books were  written,  I  have  endeavoured  to  perform  this.  For  I
know  your  zeal  in  the  faith,  and  your  great  desire  to  acquire knowledge,  and  that  especially  by  the  love  of  God,  you  prefer these  matters  to  all  others,  thus  striving  to  gain  eternal  life.
When,  therefore,  I  went  to  the  east,  and  came  as  far  as  the place  where  these  things  w^ere  proclaimed  and  done,  I  accurately ascertained  the  books  of  the  Old  Testament,  and send  them  to  thee  here  below.  The  names  are  as  follows :  Of MoseSf  five  hoohs,  Genesis,  Exodus,  Leviticus,  JVumbers,  Deuteronomy. Jesus  JVave,  Judges,  Ruth.  Four  of  Kings.  Two  of  Paralipomena,  (Chronicles,)  Psalms  of  David,  Proverbs  of  Solomon, which  is  also  called  Wisdom,  Ecdesiastes,  Song  of  Songs,  Job.
Of  prophets,  Isaiah,  Jeremiah.  Of  the  twelve  prophets,  one book.  Daniel,  EzeJdel,  Esdras.  From  these  I  have,  therefore, made  the  selections  which  I  have  divided  into  six  books."  Thus much  of  Melito's  writings.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  165

CHAPTER   XXVIL

Of  ApoIIinaris  bishop  of  Hierapolis.

Although  there  are  many  works  of  ApoIIinaris  preserved  by many,  those  that  have  reached  us  are  the  following :  An  Apology, addressed  to  the  abovementioned  emperor,  and  five  books against  the  Greeks.  Two  books  on  Truth,  two  also  against  the  Jews, and  those  that  he  afterwards  wTote  against  the  Heresy  of  the Phrygians,  which  was  revived  not  long  after.  Then,  indeed, also  began  as  it  were .  to  spring  up,  the  sect  of  Montanus,  who, with  his  false  prophetesses,  laid  the  foundation  of  their  errors.
Thus  much,  how^ever,  may  suffice,  also,  concerning  this  author.

CHAPTER  XXVIIL

Of  Musanus  and  his  works.

MusANus,  also,  whom  we  have  mentioned  among  the  foregoing authors,  is  said  to  have  written  a  very  elegant  w^ork  addressed  to certain  brethren,  who  had  swerved  from  the  truth  to  the  heresy of  the  Encratites,  which  had  even  then  made  its  appearance,  and which  introduced  a  singular  and  pernicious  error  into  the  world.
The  founder  of  this  singularity  is  said  to  have  been  Tatianus.

CHAPTER  XXIX.

The  heresy  of  Tatianus.

He  is  the  same  whose  words  we  adduced  before  in  reference to  the  excellent  Justin,  mentioning  that  he  was  also  the disciple  of  that  martyr.  This  is  sho\^Ti  by  Irenasus,  in  the  first book  against  heresies,  w'here  he  whites  both  respecting  the  man and  against  his  heresy :  "  Those,"  says  he,  "  that  sprung  from  Sa
16G  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

turiiinus  and  Marcion,  called  the  Encratites,  proclaimed  absti nence  from  marriage,  setting  aside  the  original  design  of  God, and  tacitly  censuring  him  that  made  male  and  female  for  the propagation  of  the  human  race.  They  also  introduced  the  abstinence from  things  called  animate  with  them,  displaying  ingratitude to  God  who  made  all  things.  They  also  deny  the  salvation of  our  first  parents.  And  this  has  been  but  lately  discovered by  them,  a  certain  Tatian  being  the  first  that  taught  the  horrible doctrine.  This  man,  who  had  been  a  hearer  of  Justin,  as  long as  he  w^as  in  company  with  him,  exhibited  nothing  like  this,  but after  his  martyrdom,  having  apostatized  from  the  church,  and elated  with  the  conceit  of  a  teacher,  and  vainly  puffed  up  as  if he  surpassed  all  others,  he  established  a  peculiar  characteristic of  his  own  doctrine,  by  inventing  certain  invisible  ^ons,  similar to  those  of  Valentinus.  Marriage,  also,  he  asserted,  with  Marcion and  Saturninus,  was  only  corruption  and  fornication.  And  he also  devised  arnjuments  of  his  own  a^rainst  the  salvation  of  Adam."
Thus  far  Irenasus  then.  A  little  after,  however,  a  certain  man by  the  name  of  Severus,  having  strengthened  the  abovementioned  heresy,  became  the  cause  of  another  sect,  called  after  himself, the  Severians.  These  indeed,  make  use  of  the  law  and  prophets and  gospels,  giving  a  peculiar  interpretation  to  the  passages  of the  sacred  writings,  but  abuse  Paul  the  apostle,  and  set  aside  his epistles ;  neither  do  they  receive  the  Acts  of  the  Apostles.  But their  chief  and  founder  Tatianus,  having  formed  a  certain  body and  collection  of  gospels,  I  know  not  how,  has  given  this  the  title, Diatessaron,  that  is  the  gospel  by  the  four,  or  the  gospel  formed of  the  four ;  which  is  in  the  possession  of  some  even  now.  ]t is  also  said  that  he  dared  to  alter  certain  expressions  of  the  apostles, in  order  to  correct  the  composition  of  the  phrase.  He  has also  left  a  great  multitude  of  writings,  of  which  the  most  noted among  all,  is  that  work  against  the  Greeks,  in  which,  as  he  records ancient  times,  he  proves  Moses  and  the  prophets  are  more ancient  than  all  the  celebrated  writers  among  the  Greeks.  This book,  indeed,  appears  to  be  the  most  elegant  and  profitable  of  all his  works.     And  so  much  for  these.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  167

CHAPTER  XXX.

Of  BardeFanes,  the  Syrian,  and  the  icorhs  of  his  extant.

Under  the  same  reign,  also,  as  heresies  abounded  in  the  country between  the  rivers  (Mesopotamia,)  hved  one  Bardesanes;  a  man of  very  great  abihties,  and  a  powerful  disputant  in  the  Syriac tongue.  This  man  composed  dialogues  against  Marcion  and certain  others  of  different  opinions,  and  committed  them  to  writing in  his  native  language,  together  with  many  other  works.
These  were  translated  from  the  Syriac  into  the  Greek,  by  his friends ;  for  as  a  powerful  assertor  of  the  word,  he  had  many followers.  Among  these  there  is  a  most  able  dialogue  On  Fate, addressed  to  Antonine.  Many  others  also,  he  is  said  to  have WTitten  on  occasion  of  the  persecution  which  then  arose.  He  was at  first  indeed  a  disciple  of  Valentine,  but  afterwards,  rejecting his  doctrine,  and  having  refuted  most  of  his  fictions,  he  appeared somehow  to  himself  to  have  returned  again  to  the  more  correct opinion.  But  he  did  not  entirely  wipe  away  the  filth  of  his  old heresy.  About  this  time,  also,  died  Soter,  bishop  of  the  church at  Rome.

17

BOOK  V.

PRELIMINARY

SoTER,  bishop  of  Rome,  died,  after  having  held  the  episcopate eight  years.  He  was  succeeded  b}^  Eleutherus  the  twelfth  in  order from  the  apostles.  It  was  also  the  seventeenth  year  of  the  reign of  the  emperor  Antoninus  Verus,  when  a  more  violent  persecution having  broken  out  against  our  brethren,  in  certain  parts,  occasioned by  insurrections  in  the  cities,  it  is  probable  that  innumerable martyrs  obtained  the  crown  of  eminence  in  the  conflict,  from the  events  that  happened  in  a  single  nation.  These,  as  worthy  of imperishable  remembrance,  were  also  handed  down  to  posterity  in historical  records.  The  full  account  of  these  is  given  in  our  history of  martyrs,  comprising  not  only  historical  narrative,  but  that  which may  contribute  to  edification.  But  whatsoever  may  have  a  reference to  our  present  purpose,  I  shall  here  select  for  the  present.
Others,  indeed,  that  compose  historical  narratives,  would  record nothing  but  victories  in  battle,  the  trophies  of  enemies,  the  warlike achievements  of  generals,  the  bravery  of  soldiers,  sullied with  blood  and  innumerable  murders,  for  the  sake  of  children and  country  and  property.  But  our  narrative  embraces  that conversation  and  conduct  which  is  acceptable  to  God.  The  wars and  conflicts  of  a  most  pacific  character,  whose  ultimate  tendency is  to  establish  the  peace  of  the  soul.  Those,  also,  that  have  manfully contended  for  the  truth,  rather  than  for  their  country,  and who  have  struggled  for  piety  rather  than  their  dearest  friends.
Such  as  these  our  narrative  would  engrave  on  imperishable monuments.  The  firmness  of  the  champions  for  the  true  religion, their  fortitude  in  the  endurance  of  innumerable  trials,  their  trophies erected  over  da^moniacal  agency,  and  their  victories  over their  invisible  antagonists,  and  the  crowns  that  have  been  placed upon  all  these,  it  would  proclaim  and  perpetuate  by  an  everlast ing  remembrance.

168

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  169

CHAPTER  I.

The  numher  and  sufferings  of  those  that  suffered  for  the  faith  in
*  Gaul
Gaul  was  the  place  where  the  arena  was  prepared  for  the abovementioned  conflict.  Of  these  the  two  distinguished  capitals are  celebrated  as  surpassing  all  the  rest,  viz.,  Lyons  and Vienna.  Through  both  of  these  the  river  Rhone  passes,  traversing the  whole  region  with  a  mighty  stream.  The  account,  however, of  the  martyrs,  was  sent  by  the  most  illustrious  churches there,  to  those  of  Asia  and  Phrygia,  by  whom  the  events  that took  place  among  them,  are  related  in  the  following  manner — I
will  subjoin  their  own  declarations :  "  The  servants  of  Christ dwelling  at  Lyons  and  Vienna,  in  Gaul,  to  those  brethren  in  Asia and  Phrygia,  having  the  same  faith  and  hope  with  us,  peace  and grace  and  glory  from  God  the  Father  and  Christ  Jesus  our  Lord."
Then,  premising  some  other  matters,  they  commence  their  subject in  the  following  words :

"  The  greatness,  indeed,  of  the  tribulation,  and  the  extent  of the  madness  exhibited  by  the  heathen  against  the  saints,  and  the sufferings  which  the  martyrs  endured  in  this  country,  we  are  not able  fully  to  declare,  nor  is  it,  indeed,  possible  to  describe  them.
For  the  adversary  assailed  us  with  his  whole  strength,  giving  us already  a  prelude,  how  unbridled  his  future  movements  among  us would  be.  And,  indeed,  he  resorted  to  every  means,  to  accustom and  exercise  his  own  servants  against  those  of  God,  so  that we  should  not  only  be  excluded  from  houses,  and  baths,  and  markets, but  every  thing  belonging  to  us  was  prohibited  from  appearing in  any  place  whatever.  But  the  grace  of  God  contended  for us,  and  rescued  the  weak,  and  prepared  those  who,  like  firm  pillars, were  able  through  patience,  to  sustain  tlie  whole  weight  of the  enemy's  violence  against  them.  These  coming  in  close  conflict, endured  every  species  of  reproach  and  torture.  Esteeming what  was  deemed  great,  but  little,  they  hastened  to  Christ,  showing in  reality,  "  that  the  sufferings  of  this  time  are  not  worthy  to

Y

170  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

be  compared  with  the  glory  that  shall  be  revealed  in  us."     And first,  they  nobly  sustained  all  the  evils  that  were  heaped  upon them  by  the  populace,  clamours,  and  blows,  plundering  and  robberies, stonings  and  imprisonments,  and  whatsoever  a  savage people  delight  to  inflict  upon   enemies.     After  this   they  were led   to  the  forum,  and  when  interrogated  by  the  tribune,  and the  authorities  of  the  city,  in   the  presence  of  the   multitude, they  were  shut  up  in  prison  until  the  arrival  of  the  governor.
Afterwards,  they  were   led  away  to  be  judged   by  him,  from whom  we  endured  all  m.anner  of  cruelty.     Vettius  Epagathus, one  of  the  brethren,  who  abounded  in  the  fulness  of  the  love of  God  and  man,  and  whose  walk  and  conversation  had  been so  unexceptionable   though   he  was  only  young,  shared  in   the same   testimony   with   the   elder  Zacharias.     He   had  walked, therefore,  in  all  the  commandments  and  righteousness  of  the  Lord blameless,  and  with  alacrity  in  kind  offices  to  man,  abounding  in zeal  for  God,  and  fervent  in  spirit.     As  he  was  of  this  high  character, he  could  not  bear  to  see  a  judgment  so  unjustly  passed against  us,  but  gave  vent  to  his  indignation,  and  requested  also, that  he  should  be  heard  in  defence  of  his  brethren,  whilst  he ventured  to  assert  that  there  was  nothing  either  at  variance  with religion  or  piety  among  us.     At  this,  those  around  the  tribunal cried  out  against  him,  for  he  was  a  man  of  eminent  standing.
Nor  did  the  governor  allow  a  request  so  just  and  so  properly made,  but  only  asked  whether  he  also  were  a  Christian  ?     He confessed  in  as  clear  a  voice  as  possible,  and  he,  too,  was  transferred to  the  number  of  martyrs,  being  publicly  called  the  advocate of  the  Christians.     But  he  had  the  paraclete,  (advocate,)
within  him,  viz.,  the  spirit  more  abundant  than  Zacharias,  which, indeed,  he  displayed  by  the  fulness  of  his  love ;  glorying  in  the defence  of  his  brethren,  and  to  expose  his  own  life  for  theirs.    He was,  indeed,  a   genuine  disciple   of  Christ,  following  the  Lamb whithersoever  he  would  go.     After  this,  the  others  were  also  set apart,  and  the  first  martyrs  endured  their  sufferings  with  promptness  and  alacrity,  most   cheerfully  finishing  the   confession  of martyrdom.     They  appeared,  indeed,  unprepared   and  inexperienced, and  yet  so  weak  as  to  be  incapable  of  bearing  the  in
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  171

tensity  of  the  mighty  contest.     Of  these,  indeed,  about  ten  also fell  away,  causing  great  sorrow  and  excessive  grief  to  our  brethren, and  damping  the  ardour  of  those  who  had  not  yet  been taken.     These,  however,  although  they  endured  all  manner  of affliction,  nevertheless  were  always  present  with  the  martyrs,  and never  left  them.     Then,  indeed,  we  w  ere  all  struck  wdth  great fear,  on  account  of  the  uncertainty  of  their  holding  out  in  the profession,  not  indeed  dreading  the  tortures  inflicted,  but  looking at  tlie  end,  and  trembling  lest  they  should  apostatize.     Those, indeed,  that  were  w^orthy  to  fill  up  the  number  of  the  martyrs, were  seized  from  day  to  day,  so  that  all  the  zealous  members  of the  two  churches,  and  those  by  whose  exertions  the  church  had been   there  established,  were   collected.     Some  domestics  that were  heathen,  belonging  to  our  brethren,  w^ere  also  seized  as  the governor  had  publicly  commanded  search  to  be  made  for  all  of us.     But  these,  at  the  instigation  of  Satan,  fearing  the  tortures which  they  saw  the  saints  suffering,  and  the  soldiers  beside  this urging  them,  charged  us  with  feasts  of  Thyestes,*  and  the  incests of  Oedipus,-|-  and  such  crimes  as  are  neither  lawful  for  us  to  speak nor  to  think ;  and,  such,  indeed,  as  we  do  not  even  beheve  were committed  by  men.     These  things  being  spread  abroad  amonp, the  people,  all  were  so  savage  in  their  treatment  of  us,  that,  if before   some   had   restrained   themselves   on   account   of  some affinity,  they  then  carried  their  cruelty  and  rage  against  us  to  a great  excess.     Then  was  fulfilled  the  declaration  of  our  Lord, "  that  the  day  would  come  when  every  one  that  slayeth  you  will think  he  is  doing  God  a  service."     The  holy  martyrs,  after  this, finally  endured  tortures,  beyond  all  description ;   Satan  striving with  all  his  power,  that  some  blasphemy  might  be  uttered  by them.     Most  violently  did  the  collective  madness  of  the  mob,  the governor  and  the  soldiers  rage  against  the  holy  deacon  of  Vienna, and  against  Maturus,  a  new  convert,  indeed,  but  a  noble  champion of  the  faith.     Also,  against  Attains,  a  native  of  Pergamus, who  w^as  a  pillar  and  foundation  of  the  church  there.     Against
*  Thyestes,  according  to  the  heathen  mythology,  ate  part  of  his  own  son,  whom his  brother  Atreus,  to  revenge  the  crime  committed  against  himself,  had  slain, -j-  Oedipus,  in  ignorance,  slew  his  father  Laius,  and  married  his  mother  Jocasta ]7#

172  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Blandina,  also,  in  \vhom  Christ  made  manifest,  that  the  things that  appear  mean  and  deformed  and  contemptible  among  men, are  esteemed  of  great  glory  ^vith  God,  on  account  of  love  to  him, which  is  really  and  powerfully  displayed,  and  glories  not  in  mere appearance.  For  whilst  we  were  all  trembling,  and  her  earthly mistress,  who  was  herself  one  of  the  contending  martyrs,  was  apprehensive lest  through  the  weakness  of  the  flesh  she  should  not be  able  to  profess  her  faith  with  sufficient  freedom,  Blandina was  filled  with  such  power,  that  her  ingenious  tormentors  who relieved  and  succeeded  each  other  from  morning  till  night,  confessed that  they  were  overcome,  and  had  nothing  more  that  they could  inflict  upon  her.  Only  amazed  that  she  still  continued  to breathe  after  her  whole  body  was  torn  asunder  and  pierced, they  gave  their  testimony  that  one  single  kind  of  the  torture  inflicted was  of  itself  suflicient  to  destroy  life,  without  resorting  to so  many  and  such  excruciating  suflferings  as  these.

Bat  this  blessed  saint,  as  a  noble  \\Testler,  in  the  midst  of  her confession  itself  renewed  her  strength,  and  to  repeat,  '•  I  am  a Christian,  no  ^^^ckedness  is  carried  on  by  us,"  was  to  her  rest,  refreshment and  relief  from  pain.  But  Sanctus  himself,  also  nobly sustaining  beyond  all  measure  and  human  power,  the  various torments  devised  by  men,  whilst  the  \\-icked  tormentors  hoped that  by  the  continuance  and  the  greatness  of  the  tortures,  they would  get  to  hear  something  from  him  that  he  ought  not  to  say, withstood  them  with  so  much  firmness,  that  he  did  not  even declare  his  name,  nor  that  of  his  nation,  nor  the  city  whence  he was,  nor  whether  he  was  a  slave  or  a  freeman,  but  to  all  the questions  that  were  proposed,  he  answered  in  the  Roman  tongue, "  I  am  a  Christian."  For  this  he  confessed  instead  of  his  name, his  city,  his  race,  and  instead  of  every  thing.  No  other  expression did  the  heathen  hear  from  him.  Whence,  also,  an  ambitious  strug gle  in  torturing  arose  between  the  governor  and  the  tormentors against  him ;  so  that  when  they  had  nothing  further  that  they could  inflict,  they  at  last  fastened  red  hot  plates  of  brass  to  the most  tender  parts  of  his  body.  But  he  continued  unsubdued  and unshaken,  firm  in  his  confession,  refreshed  and  strengthened  by the  celestial  fountain  of  li vine:  water  that  flows  from  Christ.    But
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  HS

the  corpse  itself  was  evidence  of  his  sufferings,  as  it  was  one  continued wound,  mangled  and  shrivelled,  that  had  entirely  lost  the form  of  man  to  the  external  eye.  Christ  suffering  in  him  exhibited wonders  ;  defeating  the  adversary,  and  presenting  a  kind  of model  to  the  rest,  that  there  is  nothing  terrific  where  the  love  of the  Father,  nothing  painful  where  the  glory  of  Christ  prevails.
For  when  the  lawless  tormentors  tortured  the  martyr  again during  the  day,  and  supposed  that  whilst  the  wounds  were swollen  and  inflamed,  if  they  applied  the  same  torments,  they would  subdue  him,  as  if  he  would  not  then  be  able  to  bear  even the  touch  of  the  hand,  or  else,  that  dying  under  his  tortures  he would  strike  a  terror  into  the  rest,  not  only  was  there  no  appearance like  this,  but,  beyond  all  human  expectation,  the  body  raised itself,  and  stood  erect  amid  the  torments  afterwards  inflicted,  and recovered  the  former  shape  and  habit  of  the  limbs  ;  so  that  his second  tortures  became,  through  the  grace  of  Christ,  not  his torment,  but  his  cure.  But  the  devil  also  led  forth  a  certain Biblias  to  punishment,  who  was  one  of  those  that  had  renounced the  faith,  thinking  that  he  had  already  swallowed  her,  was  anxious to  increase  her  condemnation  by  blasphemy,  and  constraining  her as  a  frail  and  timid  character,  easily  overpowered,  to  utter  impieties against  us.  But  in  the  midst  of  the  torture  she  repented and  recovered  herself,  and  as  if  awaking  out  of  a  deep  sleep,  was reminded  by  the  punishment  before  her,  of  the  eternal  punishment in  helL  And  accordingly  she  contradicted  the  blasphemers in  her  declarations.  "  How,"  said  she, "  could  such  as  these  devour children,  who  considered  it  unlawful  even  to  taste  the  blood  of irrational  animals  ?"  After  that,  she  professed  herself  a  Christian, and  was  added  to  the  number  of  martyrs.  But  as  all  the  tortures of  the  tyrants  were  defeated  by  Christ,  through  the  patience  of  the martyrs,  the  devil  devised  other  machinations ;  among  these  were their  confinement  in  prison,  in  a  dark  and  most  dismal  place ;
their  feet  also  stretched  in  the  stocks,*  and  extended  to  the  fifth hole,  and  other  torments,  which  the  enraged  minions  of  wicked
•  The  instrument  of  punishment  here  mentioned  was  a  piece  of  timber,  with  five pair  of  holes  cut  at  certain  distances  apart.  The  feet  were  put  into  these  and  secured with  cords  and  fetters.

174  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

ness,  especially  when  stimulated  by  the  influence  of  Satan,  are accustomed  to  inflict  upon  the  prisoners.  Numbers  of  them  were, therefore,  suffocated  in  prison,  as  many,  viz.,  as  the  Lord  would have  to  depart,  thus  showing  forth  his  glory.  Some  of  them,  indeed, had  been  cruelly  tormented,  so  that  it  appeared  they  could scarcely  live,  though  every  means  were  applied  to  recover  them.
Though  confined  in  prison,  devoid  of  all  human  aid,  they  were strengthened  by  the  Lord,  and  filled  with  powder  from  him  both  in body  and  mind,  and  even  stimulated  and  encouraged  the  rest.  But the  new  converts  and  those  that  were  recently  taken,  whose bodies  were  not  exercised  in  trials,  did  not  bear  the  oppression of  incarceration.  ]>ut  died  within  the  prison.

But  the  blessed  Pothinus,  who  had  faithfully  performed  the  ministrations of  the  episcopate  at  Lyons,  and  who  was  past  his  ninetieth year,  and  very  infirm  in  body ;  who,  indeed,  scarcely  drew^
his  breath,  so  weak  was  he  in  body  at  the  time ;  3  et  in  the  ardour of  his  soul,  and  his  eager  desire  for  martyrdom,  he  roused his  remaining  strength,  and  was  himself  also  dragged  to  the  tribunal. Though  his  body,  indeed,  was  already  nearly  dissolved, partly  by  age  and  partly  by  disease,  yet  he  still  retaining  his fife  in  him,  that  Christ  might  triumph  by  it.  When  carried  by the  soldiers  to  the  tribunal,  wdiither  the  public  magistrates  accompanied him,  as  if  he  were  Christ  himself,  and  when  all  the mob  raised  every  outcry  against  him,  he  gave  a  noble  testimony.
When  interrogated  by  the  governor,  who  was  the  God  of  the  Christians, he  said,  "  If  thou  art  worthy,  thou  shalt  know."  After  this, he  was  unmercifully  dragged  away  and  endured  many  stripes, whilst  those  that  w^re  near  abused  him  with  their  hands  and  feet in  ev'ery  possible  way,  not  even  regarding  his  age.  But  those  at a  distance,  whatsoever  they  had  at  hand,  every  one  hurled  at him,  all  thinking  it  w^ould  be  a  great  sin  and  impiety  if  they  fell short  of  w^anton  abuse  against  him.  For  they  supposed  they would  thus  avenge  their  own  gods.  Thus,  scarcely  drawing breath,  lie  was  throwm  into  prison,  and  after  two  days  he  there expired.  A  wonderful  interposition  of  God  was  then  exhibited, and  the  boundless  mercy  of  Christ  clearly  displayed  a  thing  that had  rarely  happened  among  brethren,  but  by  no  means  beyond  the
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  175

reach  of  the  skill  of  Christ.  For  those  that  had  fallen  from  the faith  on  the  first  seizure,  were  also  themselves  imprisoned,  and shared  in  the  sufferings  of  the  rest.  Their  renunciation  did them  no  good  at  this  time,  but  those  that  confessed  what  they really  were,  were  imprisoned  as  Christians ;  no  other  charge  being alleged  against  them.  But  these,  at  last,  were  confined  as  murderers and  guilty  culprits,  and  were  punished  with  twice  the  severity of  the  rest.  The  former,  indeed,  were  refreshed  by  the  joy of  martyrdom,  the  hope  of  the  promises,  the  love  of  Christ,  and the  spirit  of  the  Father  ;  but  the  latter  were  sadly  tormented  by their  own  conscience.  So  that  the  difference  was  obvious  to  all  in their  very  countenances,  when  they  were  led  forth.  \  Far-ihe„
one  w^ent  on  joyful,  much  glory  and  grace  being  mixed  in  their faces,  so  that  their  bonds  seemed  to  form  noble  ornaments,  and, like  those  of  a  bride,  adorned  with  various  golden  bracelets,  and  impregnated with  the  sw^eet  odour  of  Christ,  they  appeared  to  some anointed  with  earthly  perfumes.  But  the  others,  with  downcast look,  dejected,  sad,  and  covered  with  every  kind  of  shame,  in  addition to  this,  were  reproached  by  the  heathen  as  mean  and  cowardly, bearing  the  charge  of  murderers,  and  losing  the  honourable, glorious,  and  life-giving  appellation  of  Christians.  '  The  rest,  however, seeing  these  eflects,  were  so  much  the  more  confirmed,  and those  that  were  taken  immediately,  confessed,  not  even  admitting the  thought  suggested  by  diabolical  objections.  Introducing some  further  remarks,  they  again  proceed :  "  After  these  things their  martyrdom  was  finally  distributed  into  various  kinds  ;
tor  platting  and  constituting  one  crown  of  various  colours  and all  kinds  of  flowers,  they  offered  it  to  the  Father.  It  was  right, indeed,  that  these  noble  wrestlers,  who  had  sustained  a  diversified contest,  and  had  come  off  with  a  glorious  victory,  should bear  away  the  great  crown  of  immortality.  Maturus,  therefore, and  Sanctus,  and  Blandina,  and  Attalus,  were  led  into  the  amphitheatre to  the  wild  beasts,  and  to  the  common  spectacle  of  heathenish inhumanity,  the  day  for  exhibiting  the  fight  w^ith  wild beasts  being  designedly  published  on  our  account.  Maturus,  however, and  Sanctus,  again  passed  through  all  the  tortures  in  the amphitheatre,  just  as  if  they  had  suffered  nothing  at  all  before,  or
176  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

rather  as  those  who  in  many  trials  before  had  defeated  the  adversary, and  now  contending  for  the  crown  itself,  again  as  they  passed, bore  the  strokes  of  the  scourge*  usually  inflicted  there,  the draggings  and  lacerations  from  the  beasts,  and  all  that  the  madness of  the  people,  one  here  and  another  there,  cried  for  and  demanded ;  and  last  of  all  the  iron  chair,  upon  which  their  bodies were  roasted,  whilst  the  fumes  of  their  own  flesh  ascended  to annoy  them.  The  tormentors  did  not  cease  even  then,  but  continued to  rage  so  much  the  more,  intending  if  possible  to  conquer their  perseverance.  They  could  not,  however,  elicit  or  hear  anything from  Sanctus,  besides  that  confession  which  he  had  uttered from  the  beginning."

These  two,  therefore,  in  whom  life  for  the  most  part  had  remained through  the  mighty  conflict,  were  at  last  despatched.  On that  day,  they  were  made  an  exhibition  to  the  world,  in  place  of the  variety  of  gladiatorial  combats.  Blandina,  how^ever,  was  bound and  suspended  on  a  stake,  and  thus  exposed  as  food  to  the  assaults of  wild  beasts,  and  as  she  thus  appeared  to  hang  after  the  manner of  the  cross,  by  her  earnest  prayers  she  infused  much  alacrity  into the  contending  martyrs.  For  as  they  saw  her  in  the  contest,  with the  external  eyes,  through  their  sister,  they  contemplated  Him  that was  crucified  for  them,  to  persuade  those  that  believe  in  him,  that every  one  who  suffers  for  Christ,  wdll  for  ever  enjoy  communion with  the  living  God.  But  as  none  of  the  beasts  then  touched  her,  she was  taken  down  from  the  stake,  and  remanded  back  again  to  prison to  be  reserved  for  another  contest ;  so  that  by  gaining  the  victory in  many  conflicts,  she  might  render  the  condemnation  of  the  wily serpent,  irrefragable,  and  though  small  and  weak  and  contemptible, but  yet  clothed  with  the  mighty  and  invincible  wrestler Christ  Jesus,  might  also  encourage  her  brethren.  Thus  she  overcame the  enemy  in  many  trials,  and  in  the  conflict  received  the crown  of  immortality.  But  Attalus  himself,  being  vehemently demanded  by  the  populace,  as  he  was  a  distinguished  character, came  well  prepared  for  the  conflict,  conscious  as  he  w^as  of  no
*  The  punishment  here  inflicted,  was  much  like  what  is  called  running  the  gantlet. The  hunters  stood  in  a  long  line,  and  as  the  martyrs  passed,  each  one  inflicted a  stroke  with  a  scourge  upon  the  naked  body.

ECCLESIASTICAL    HISTORY.  177

evil  done  by  him,  and  as  one  who  had  been  truly  exercised  in  Christian discipline,  and  had  always  been  a  witness  of  the  truth  with us.  When  led  about  in  the  theatre,  with  a  tablet  before  him,  on which  was  written  in  Latin,  "This  is  Attalus  the  Christian,"
and  the  people  were  violently  incensed  against  him,  the  governor learning  that  he  was  a  Roman,  ordered  him  to  be  remanded  back again  to  prison  wdth  the  rest,  concerning  whom  he  had  written to  Cesar,  and  was  now  awaiting  his  determination.  But  he (Attalus)  in  the  meantime  was  neither  idle  nor  unprofitable  to them,  but,  by  their  patient  endurance,  the  immeasurable  mercy  of Christ  was  manifested.  For  by  means  of  those  that  were  yet living,  were  things  dead  made  to  live.  And  the  martyrs  conferred benefits  upon  those  that  were  no  martyrs,  (i.  e.  upon  those that  had  fallen  away.)  Much  joy  was  also  created  in  the  Virgin Mother,  (the  church,)  for  those  whom  she  had  brought  forth  as dead  she  recovered  again  as  living.  For  by  means  of  these  the greater  part  of  those  that  fell  away,  again  retraced  their  steps, were  again  conceived,  were  again  endued  with  vital  heat,  and learned  to  make  the  confession  of  their  faith.  And  now  living again,  and  strengthened  in  their  faith,  they  approached  the  tribunal, where  that  God  that  willeth  not  the  death  of  the  sinner,  but inviteth  all  to  repentance,  sw^eetly  regarding  them,  they  were again  interrogated  by  the  governor.  For  as  Cesar  had  written that  they  should  be  beheaded,  but  if  any  renounced  the  faith these  should  be  dismissed ;  at  the  commencement  of  the  fair which  is  held  here,  which  indeed  is  attended  by  an  immense  concourse of  people  from  all  nations,  the  governor  led  forth  the martyrs,  exhibiting  them  as  a  show  and  public  spectacle  to  the crowd.  Wherefore,  he  also  examined  them  again,  and  as  many as  appeared  to  have  the  Roman  citizenship,  these  he  beheaded.
The  rest  he  sent  away  to  the  wild  beasts.  But  Christ  was  wonderfully glorified  in  those  that  had  before  renounced  him,  as  they then,  contrary  to  all  suspicion,  on  the  part  of  the  Gentiles,  confessed. And  these  indeed,  were  separately  examined,  as  if  they were  soon  to  be  dismissed ;  but  as  they  confessed,  they  were  added to  the  number  of  the  martyrs.  Those,  however,  who  had never  anv  traces  of  the  faith,  nor  any  conception  of  the  marriage

Z

178  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

garment,  nor  any  thought  of  the  fear  of  God,  remained  without, who,  as  the  sons  of  perdition,  blasphemed  the  way  by  their  apostacy.  All  the  rest,  however,  were  attached  to  the  church,  of whom,  when  examined,  a  certain  Alexander  was  found  to  be  one, a  Phrygian  by  birth,  and  physician  by  profession.  Having passed  many  years  in  Gaul,  and  being  well  known  for  his  love  of God  and  his  freedom  in  declaring  the  truth,  for  he  was  not  destitute of  apostolical  grace,  he  stood  before  the  tribunal,  and  by signs  encouraged  them  to  a  good  confession,  appearing  to  those around  the  tribunal  as  one  in  the  pains  of  childbirth.  The  mob, however,  chagrined  that  those  who  had  before  renounced  the  faith were  again  confessing,  cried  out  against  Alexander,  as  if  he  had been  the  cause  of  this.  And  when  the  governor  urged  and asked  him  who  he  was,  and  he  replied  that  he  was  a  Christian, in  his  rage  he  condemned  him  to  the  wild  beasts,  and  accordingly on  the  following  day,  he  entered  the  arena  with  Attalus.  For  the governor  to  gratify  the  people,  also  gave  up  Attalus  a  second time  to  the  beasts.

Thus,  enduring  all  the  torments  that  were  invented  as  punishment in  the  amphitheatre,  and  after  sustaining  the  arduous  conflict, these  w^ere  likewise  finally  despatched.  As  to  Alexander,  he neither  uttered  a  groan  nor  any  moaning  sound  at  all,  but  in  his heart  communed  with  God ;  and  Attalus,  when  placed  upon  the iron  chair,  and  the  fumes  from  his  roasting  body  arose  upon  him, said  to  the  multitude  in  Latin :  "  Lo  this  is  to  devour  men,  what you  are  doing.  But  as  to  us,  we  neither  devour  men  nor  commit any  other  evil."  And  when  asked  what  was  the  name  of God,  he  answered,  God  has  no  name  like  a  man.  After  all  these, on  the  last  day  of  the  shows  of  gladiators,  Blandina  was  again brought  forth,  together  with  Ponticus,  a  youth  about  fifteen years  old.  These  were  brought  in  every  day  to  see  the  tortures  of the  rest.  Force  was  also  used  to  make  them  swear  by  their  idols ;
and  when  they  continued  firm,  and  denied  their  pretended  divinity, the  multitude  became  outrageous  at  them,  so  that  they  neither compassionated  the  youth  of  the  boy  nor  regarded  the  sex  of  the woman.  Hence  they  subjected  them  to  every  horrible  suffering, and  led  them  through  the  whole  round  of  torture,  ever  and  anon
ECCLEvSIASTICAL  HISTORY.  179

striving  to  force  them  to  swear,  but  were  unable  to  effect  it.
Ponticus,  indeed,  encouraged  by  his  sister,  so  that  the  heathen could  see  that  she  was  encouraging  and  confirming  him,  nobly bore  the  whole  of  thase  sufferings,  and  gave  up  his  life.  But  the blessed  Blandina,  last  of  all,  as  a  noble  mother  that  had  animated her  children,  and  sent  them  as  victors  to  the  great  King,  herself I'etracing  the  ground  of  all  the  conflicts  her  children  had  endured, hastened  at  last,  with  joy  and  exultation  at  the  issue,  to  them,  as if  she  were  invited  to  a  marriage  feast,  and  not  to  be  cast  to wild  beasts.  And  thus,  after  scourging,  after  exposure  to  the beasts,  after  roasting,  she  was  finally  thrown  into  a  net  and  cast before  a  bull,  and  when  she  had  been  well  tossed  by  the  animal, and  had  now  no  longer  any  sense  of  what  was  done  to  her  by reason  of  her  firm  hope,  confidence,  faith,  and  her  communion with  Christ,  she  too  was  despatched.  Even  the  Gentiles  confessed, that  no  woman  among  them  had  ever  endured  sufferings  as many  and  great  as  these.  But  not  even  then  was  their  madness and  cruelty  to  the  saints  satisfied ;  for  these  fierce  and  barbarous tribes,  stimulated  by  the  savage  beast  Satan,  were  in  a  fury  not easily  to  be  assuaged,  so  that  their  abuse  of  the  bodies  assumed another  novel  and  singular  aspect.  Not  abashed  when  overcome by  the  martyrs,  but  evidently  destitute  of  all  reason,  the  madness both  of  the  governor  and  the  people,  as  of  some  savage  beast, blazed  forth  so  much  the  more,  to  exhibit  the  same  unjust  hostility against  us.  That  the  Scriptures  might  be  fulfilled,  *'  He  that is  unjust  let  him  be  unjust  still,  and  he  that  is  righteous  let  him be  righteous  still."  Rev.  xxii.  11.  For  those  that  were  suffocating in  the  prison,  they  cast  to  the  dogs,  carefully  watching them  night  and  day,  lest  any  should  be  buried  by  us,  and  then also  cast  away  the  remains  left  by  the  beasts  and  the  fire,  howsoever they  had  either  been  mangled  or  burnt.  They  also guarded  the  heads  of  the  others,  together  with  the  trunks  of their  bodies,  with  military  watches,  for  many  days  in  succession, in  order  to  prevent  them  from  being  buried.  Some,  indeed, raged  and  gnashed  their  teeth  against  them,  anxious  to  find  out some  better  way  of  punishment.  Others,  again,  laughed  at  and insulted  them,  extolling  their  idols,  and  imputing  to  them  the 18

180  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

punishment  of  the  martyrs.  But  others,  more  moderate,  and  who in  some  measure  p^ppeared  to  sympathize,  frequently  upbraided them,  saying,  "  where  is  their  God,  and  what  benefit  has  their  religion been  to  them,  which  they  preferred  to  their  own  life?"  Such was  the  variety  of  disposition  among  the  Gentiles,  but  among  our brethren,  matters  were  in  great  affliction  for  want  of  liberty  to commit  the  bodies  to  the  earth.  For  neither  did  the  night  avail us  for  this  purpose,  nor  had  money  any  effect  to  persuade,  nor could  any  prayers  or  entreaties  move  them.  But  they  guarded them  in  every  possible  way,  as  if  it  were  a  great  gain,  to  prevent them  from  burial.  To  these,  they  afterwards  add  other  accounts, saying  :  "  The  bodies  of  the  martyrs  after  being  abused in  every  possible  manner,  and  thus  exposed  to  the  open  air  for six  days,  were  at  length  burned  and  reduced  to  ashes  by  the wretches,  and  finally  cast  into  the  Rhone  that  flows  near  at  hand, that  there  might  not  be  a  vestige  of  them  remaining  on  the  land.
These  things  they  did  as  if  they  were  able  to  overcome  God,  and destroy  their  resurrection,  (naT^LyyeveGiav)  as  they  themselves gave  out,  '  that  they  might  not  have  any  hope  of  rising  again,  in the  belief  of  which,  they  have  introduced  a  new  and  strange  religion, and  contemn  the  most  dreadful  punishments,  and  are  prepared to  meet  death  even  with  joy.  Now  we  shall  see,  whether they  will  rise  again  ;  and  whether  their  god  is  able  to  help  them, and  rescue  them  out  of  our  hands.'  "

CHAPTER  II.

Those  that  had  fallen  away,  kindly  restored,  by  the  pious  martyi^s.

Such  were  the  occurrences  that  befel  the  churches  of  Christ under  the  abovementioned  emperor,  from  which  it  is  easy  to  conjecture what  w^as  the  probable  course  of  things  in  the  remaining provinces.  It  may  be  well  here  to  add  to  these  accounts,  other extracts  from  the  same  epistle,  in  which  the  moderation  and  benevolence of  these  martyrs  whom  we  have  mentioned,  is  recorded  in  the  following  w^ords :  "  They  were  also  so  zealous  in  their
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  181

imitation  of  Christ,  who,  though  in  the  form  of  God,  thought  it not  robbery  to  be  equal  with  God,"  that  though  they  were  esteemed in  the  same  Hght,  and  had  neither  once  nor  twice,  but frequently,  endured  martyrdom,  and  had  been  again  taken  away from  the  beasts  to  prison,  and  had  brands,  and  scars,  and  wounds spread  over  them,  they  did  not  proclaim  themselves  martyrs,  for it  did  not  become  us  to  apply  this  name  to  them  ;  but  if  any  one of  us,  either  by  letter  or  in  conversation,  called  them  martyrs, they  seriously  reproved  us.  For  they  cheerfully  yielded  the title  of  martyr  to  Christ,  the  true  and  faithful  martyr,  (witness)
the  first  begotten  from  the  dead,  the  prince  of  divine  life.  They also  made  mention  of  those  martyrs  that  had  already  departed, and  said:  "They  now  are  martyrs  v/horn  Christ  has  thought worthy  to  be  received  in  their  confession,  setting  the  seal  to  their martyrdom',  (testimony,)  by  the  issue.  But  we  are  but  indifferent and  mean  confessors,  and  with  tears  did  they  entreat  the  brethren, that  they  should  offer  up  incessant  prayers,  that  they  might be  made  perfect.  They  exhibited,  indeed,  the  power  of  martyrdom in  fact,  exercising  much  freedom  in  declaring  themselves to  all  people,  and  manifested  their  noble  patience  and  fearless  intrepidity; but  the  name  of  martyrs,  (witnesses)  they  declined  receiving from  the  brethren,  filled  as  they  were  with  the  fear  of God."  Again,  after  a  little,  they  say,  "  They  humbled  themselves under  the  mighty  hand,  by  which  they  are  now  highly  exalted.
Then,  however,  they  pleaded  for  all,  they  accused  none,  they  absolved all,  they  bound  none,  and  prayed  for  those  that  were  so bitter  in  their  hostility,  like  Stephen,  that  perfect  martyr.  '  Lord impute  not  this  sin  to  them.'  But  if  he  pra3^ed  for  those  that stoned  him,  how  much  more  for  the  brethren."  And  again  they say,  after  mentioning  other  matters,  "  This  was  their  greatest conflict  against  him,  (the  devil,)  on  account  of  the  genuine  character of  their  love,  that  the  beast  being  choaked  and  throttled might  be  forced  to  return  alive  again  (to  vomit  up)  those  whom he  had  already  thought  to  have  swallowed.  For  they  did  not arrogate  any  superiority  over  the  backsliders :  but  in  those  things wherein  they  themselves  abounded ;  in  this  they  supplied  those that  were  deficient,  exercising  the  compassion  of  mothers,  and
182  ECC1.ESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

pouring  forth  many  prayers,  to  the  Father  on  their  account.
They  implored  life,  and  he  gave  it  to  them,  which  they  also shared  with  their  neighbours ;  coming  off  victorious  over  all, to  God:  always  lovers  of  peace,  they  always  recommended peace,  and  with  peace  they  departed  to  God.  Not  leaving grief  to  their  mother,  (the  church,)  no  discord  or  dissensions to  the  brethren,  but  joy  and  peace,  unanimity  and  love.  This account  may  be  profitably  added,  respecting  the  love  of  those blessed  brethren  towards  those  that  fell  away,  on  account  of those  also,  who  after  these  events,  unsparingly  exercised  an  inhuman and  merciless  disposition  towards  the  members  of  Christ.

CHAPTER    III.

The  vision  that  appeared  to  Attains  the  martyr,  in  a  dream.

The  same  epistle  of  the  abovementioned  martyrs,  also  contains another  account  worthy  of  record,  which  no  one  could  regret to  be  presented  to  the  knowledge  of  our  readers.  It  is  as  follows :  "  A  certain  Alcibiades,  who  was  one  of  these  (martyrs,)
and  who  had  led  a  hard  and  rough  kind  of  life,  partook  of  no food  usually  eaten,  but  merely  bread  and  water.  When  cast into  prison,  and  he  attempted  to  lead  the  same  kind  of  Hfe,  it  was revealed  to  Attalus,  after  the  first  conflict  which  he  finished  in the  amphitheatre,  that  Alcibiades  did  not  do  v/ell  in  not  making use  of  the  creatures  of  God,  and  affording  an  example  of  offence to  others.  Alcibiades,  therefore,  in  obedience  to  this,  partook of  all  kinds  of  food,  and  gave  thanks  to  God ;  for  neither  were they  destitute  of  divine  grace,  but  the  divine  spirit  was  their counsellor."  But  let  this  suffice  concerning  these.  Now  as Montanus,  and  Alcibiades,*  and  Theodotus,  in  Phrygia,  then first  began  to  be  esteemed  by  many  for  their  gifts,  (as  there  were many  other  wonderful  powers  of  divine  grace,  yet  exhibited  even at  that  time  in  different  churches,)  they  created  the  belief  with
*  This  is  a  different  Alcibiades  from  the  one  beforementioned.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  J  83

many,  that  they  also  were  endued  with  prophecy.  And  as there  was  a  dissension  in  consequence  of  these  men,  the  brethren in  Gaul  again  presented  their  own  pious  and  correct  judgment also  concerning  these,  and  published  several  letters  of  the  martyrs that  had  been  put  to  death  among  them.  These  they  had  written whilst  yet  in  prison,  and  addressed  to  the  brethren  in  Asia  and Phrygia.  And  not  only  to  these  but  likewise  to  Eleutherus,  who w^as  then  bishop  of  Rome,  negotiating  as  it  were  for  the  peace  of the  churches.

CHAPTER   IV.

The  martyrs  commend  Irenceus  in  their  epistle.

But  these  same  martyrs  recommending  also  Irenaeus,  who was  then  a  presbyter  of  the  church  at  Lyons,  to  the  bishop  of Rome  beforementioned,  bear  abundant  testimony  in  his  favour, as  the  following  extracts  show  :  "  We  pray  and  desire,  father Eleutherus,  that  you  may  rejoice  in  God  in  all  things  and always.  We  have  requested  our  brother  and  companion  Irenaeus  to  carry  this  epistle  to  you,  and  we  exhort  you  to  consider him  as  commended  to  you  as  a  zealous  follower  of  the  testament (covenant)  of  Christ.  For  if  we  knew  that  any  place  could  confer righteousness  upon  any  one,  we  would  certainly  commend him  among  the  first  as  a  presbyter  of  the  church,  the  station  that he  holds."  Why  should  we  here  transcribe  the  list  of  those  martyrs given  in  the  abovementioned  epistle,  of  whom  some  were made  perfect  by  decapitation,  some  cast  to  be  devoured  by wild  beasts,  and  others  again  fell  asleep  in  prison.  Why  repeat the  number  of  confessors  still  living  ?  For  whoever  wishes  to learn  these,  can  more  easily  obtain  the  fullest  account  by  consulting the  epistle  itself,  which,  as  I  said,  has  been  inserted  by  us in  our  collection  of  martyrs.  But  such  were  the  events  that happened  under  Antonine.
18=^

184  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER   V.

God  sent  rain  from  heaven  to  Marcus  AureliuSf  the  emperor ,  at  the prayers  of  our  brethren.

But  it  is  said  that  Marcus  Aurelius  Cesar,  the  brother  of the  former,  when  about  to  engage  in  battle  with  the  Germans and  Sarmatians,  and  his  army  was  sufJering  with  thirst,  was greatly  at  a  loss  on  this  account.  Then,  however,  those  soldiers that  belonged  to  the  Melitine  legion,  as  it  was  called,  by  a  faith which  has  continued  from  that  time  to  this,  bending  their  knees upon  the  earth  whilst  drawn  up  in  battle  array  against  the enemy,  according  to  our  peculiar  custom  of  praying,  entered  into prayer  before  God.  And  as  this  was  a  singular  spectacle  to  the enemy,  a  still  more  singular  circumstance  is  reported  to  have happened  immediately  ;  that  the  lightning  drove  the  enemy  into flight  and  destruction,  but  that  a  shower  came  down  and  refreshed the  army  of  those  that  then  called  upon  God,  the  whole of  which  was  on  the  point  of  perishing  with  thirst.  This  history is  related  also  by  historians  who  are  strangers  to  our  doctrine, who,  however,  took  an  interest  in  the  writings  of  those  whom we  have  mentioned ;  but  it  is  also  stated  by  our  own  writers, whilst  the  wonderful  event  is  also  added  by  historians  who  differ from  our  faith,  but  who  do  not  admit  that  this  happened  at  the prayers  of  our  brethren.  But  the  fact  is  handed  down  on  record by  our  brethren,  as  lovers  of  truth,  in  a  plain  and  undisguised manner.  Of  these  we  might  mention  Apollinaris,  who  says  that from  that  time  the  legion  at  whose  prayers  the  wonder  took  place, received  an  appellation  appropriate  to  the  event,  from  the  emperor, being  called  the  fulminea,  or  thundering  legion.  Tertullian  also  might  be  cited  as  a  suitable  witness  of  these  things,  in the  Apology  that  he  addressed  to  the  Roman  senate  for  the  faith, the  work  which  has  been  already  mentioned  by  us,  in  which  he confirms  the  history  with  greater  and  more  powerful  proof,  where he  writes  as  follows ;  "  There  are  epistles  of  the  most  learned  emperor Marcus  still  extant,  in  which  he  himself  bears  testimony  that
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  185

when  his  army  was  ready  to  perish  for  want  of  water,  it  was saved  by  the  prayers  of  the  Christians ;"  he  says  also,  "  that  the same  emperor  threatened  death  to  those  that  attempted  to  accuse us."  To  w  hich  he  also  adds,  "  What  kind  of  laws  are  those which  the  wicked,  unjust,  and  cruel  put  in  force  against  us  alone  ?
which  neither  Vespasian  observed,  although  be  conquered  the Jews,  which  Trajan  in  part  annulled ;  forbidding  that  the  Christians should  be  hunted  up ;  which  not  even  Adrian,  though  very inquisitive  in  all  matters,  nor  he  that  was  surnamed  the  Pious, confirmed."  But  every  one  may  place  these  to  what  account he  pleases.  Let  us  proceed  to  the  order  of  our  history.  Pothinus  having  died  with  the  other  martyrs  of  Gaul,  in  the  ninetieth year  of  his  age,  he  was  succeeded  by  Irenoeus  in  the  episcopate of  the  church  at  Lyons.  We  have  understood  he  was  a hearer  of  Polycarp  in  his  youth.  This  writer  has  inserted  the succession  of  the  bishops  in  his  third  book  against  the  heresies, where  he  reviews  the  catalogue  dow^n  to  Eleutherus,  whose times  we  are  now  examining,  as  he  laboured  with  him  in  the production  of  this  work,  writing  as  follows.

CHAPTER  VL

Catalogue  of  the  bishops  of  Rome.

"The  blessed  apostles  having  founded  and  established  the church,  transmitted  the  office  of  the  episcopate  to  Linus.  Of this  Linus,  Paul  makes  mention  in  his  Epistles  to  Timothy.  He was  succeeded  by  Anencletus,  and  after  him  Clement  held  the episcopate,  the  third  from  the  apostles.  Who,  as  he  had  seen the  blessed  apostles,  and  had  been  connected  wdth  them,  might be  said  to  have  the  doctrine  of  the  apostles  still  sounding  in  his ears,  and  what  they  delivered  before  his  eyes.  And  not  only  he, but  many  others  were  still  left,  who  had  been  taught  by  the apostles.  In  the  times  of  this  Clement,  there  was  no  little  dissension among  the  brethren  at  Corinth,  on  occasion  of  which the  church  at  Rome  wrote  a  considerable  Epistle  to  the  Corin
2  A

186  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

thians,  confirming  them  in  peace,  and  renewing  their  faith  and  the doctrine  they  had  lately  received  from  the  apostles.  After  a little,  he  subjoins :  "  But  this  Clement  was  succeeded  by  Euarestus,  and  Euarestus  by  Alexander.  Xystus  followed  as  the  sixth from  the  apostles,  after  whom  was  Telesphorus,  who  also  illustriously suffered  martyrdom,  then  came  Hyginus,  and  after  him Pius.  He  w^as  followed  by  Anicetus,  and  as  he  was  succeeded by  Soter,  the  twelfth  from  the  apostles  in  the  episcopate  now  is Eleutherus,  in  the  same  order  and  the  same  doctrine  (or  succession*) in  which  the  tradition  of  the  apostles  in  the  church  and  the promulgation  of  the  truth  has  descended  to  us."

CHAPTER  VII.

Miracles  were  performed  in  those  times  by  the  believers.

These  accounts  are  given  by  Irenaeus  in  those  five  books  of  his, to  which  he  gave  the  title  of  "  Refutation  and  Overthrow  of False  Doctrine."  In  the  second  book  of  the  same  work,  he  also shows  that  even  down  to  his  times,  instances  of  divine  and  miraculous power  were  remaining  in  some  churches.  "  So  far  are they,"  says  he,  "  from  raising  the  dead,  as  the  Lord  raised,  and as'the  apostles  by  means  of  prayer,  for  even  among  the  brethren frequently  in  a  case  of  necessity  when  a  whole  church  united  in much  fasting  and  prayer,  the  spirit  has  returned  to  the  ex-animated body,  and  the  man  was  granted  to  the  prayers  of  the saints."  And  again,  he  says,  after  other  observations :  "  But  if they  say  that  our  Lord  also  did  these  things  only  in  appearance, we  shall  refer  them  back  to  the  prophetic  declarations,  and shall  show  from  them  that  all  those  things  were  strictly  foretold, and  were  done  by  him,  and  that  he  alone  is  the  Son  of  God.
Wherefore,  also,  those  that  were  truly  his  disciples,  receiving grace  from  him,  in  his  name  performed  these  things  for  the  benefit
*  The  word  succession,  in  the  parenthesis,  is  adopted  by  Valesius  as  the  correct reading.

f.OCI.F.S\ASTICAL  HISTORY.  187

01  iht  ^o»t  ^1  itien,  as  every  owe  received  the  free  gift  from  him.
Some,  indeed,  most  certainly  and  truly  cast  out  daemons,  so  that frequently  thuss  persons  themselves  that  were  cleansed  from wicked  spirits  believed  and  were  received  into  the  church.
Others  have  the  knowledge  of  things  to  come,  as  also  visions and  prophetic  communications ;  othei's  heal  the  sick  by  the  imposition of  hands,  and  restore  them  to  health.  And,  moreover, as  we  said  above,  even  the  dead  have  been  raised  and  continued with  us  many  years.  And  why  should  we  say  more  ?  It  is  impossible to  tell  the  num.ber  of  the  gifts  which  the  church  throughout the  world  received  from  God,  and  the  deeds  performed  in  the name  of  Jesus  Christ,  that  was  crucified  under  Pontius  Pilate, and  this  too  every  day  for  the  benefit  of  the  heathen,  without deceiving  any,  or  exacting  their  money.  For  as  she  has  received freely  from  God,  she  also  freely  ministers."  In  another  place the  same  author  writes :  "  As  we  hear  many  of  the  brethren  in the  church  who  have  prophetic  gifts,  and  who  speak  in  all tongues  through  the  spirit,  and  who  also,  bring  to  light  the  secret things  of  men  for  their  benefit,  and  who  expound  the  mysteries of  God."  These  gifts  of  different  kinds  also  continued  with  those that  were  worthy  until  the  times  mentioned.

CHAPTER  VIII.

The  statement  of  Irencms  respecting  the  sacred  Scriptures.

Since  we  have  promised  in  the  outset  of  our  work  to  give  extracts occasionally  when  we  refer  to  the  declarations  of  the  ancient presbyters  and  historians  of  the  church,  in  which  they  have transmitted  the  traditions  that  have  descended  to  us  respecting the  sacred  Scriptures,  among  these  Irenasus  was  one.  Let  us now  give  his  words,  and  first  of  all  what  he  has  said  of  the  holy gospels :  "  Matthew,  indeed,"  says  he,  "  produced  his  gospel  written among  the  Hebrews  in  their  own  dialect,  whilst  Peter  and Paul  proclaimed  the  gospel  and  founded  the  church  at  Rome.

188  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

After  the  departure  of  these,  Mark,  the  disciple  and  interpreter of  Peter,  also  transmitted  to  us  in  writing  what  had  been  preached by  Peter.  And  Luke,  the  companion  of  Paul,  committed  to writing  the  gospel  preached  by  him,  i.  e.  Paul.  Afterwards  John the  disciple  of  our  Lord,  the  same  that  lay  upon  his  bosom,  also pubhshed  the  gospel,  whilst  he  was  yet  at  Ephesus  in  Asia."
This  is  what  this  author  says  in  the  third  book  of  the  work  already mentioned ;  and  in  the  fifth,  he  thus  descants  on  the  Revelation of  John  and  the  calculation  of  antichrist's  name :  "  As  mat
^ters  are  thus,  and  the  number  is  thus  found  in  all  the  genuine and  ancient  copies,  and  as  they  who  saw  John  attest,  reason itself  shows  that  the  number  of  the  name  of  the  beast  is  indicated by  the  Greek  letters  which  it  contains."  And  a  little further  on  he  speaks  of  the  same  John :  "  We,  therefore,"  says he,  "  do  not  venture  to  affirm  any  thing  with  certainty  respecting the  name  of  antichrist.  For  were  it  necessary  that  his  name should  be  clearly  announced  to  the  present  age,  it  would  have been  declared  by  him  who  saw  the  revelation.  For  it  has  not been  long  since  it  was  seen,  but  almost  in  our  own  generation, about  the  end  of  Domitian's  reign."     These  are  what  he  states
'respecting  the  Revelation.  He  also  mentions  the  First  Epistle of  John,  extracting  many  testimonies  from  it :  he  also  mentions the  First  Epistle  of  Peter.  And  he  not  only  knew,  but  also  admitted the  book  called  Pastor,  in  these  v/ords :  "  Well  is  it  said  in that  work  w^iich  declares,  '  first  of  all  believe  that  there  is  one God,  who  created  and  arranged  all  things,' "  &c.

He  also  quotes  some  expressions  from  the  W^isdom  of  Solomon, almost  in  these  words :  "  The  vision  of  God  is  productive  of  immortality, but  immortality  makes  us  to  be  next  to  God."  He  also mentions  the  commentaries  of  a  certain  apostolical  presbyter, whose  name  he  has  passed  by  in  silence ;  he  also  adds  his  expositions of  the  sacred  Scriptures.  He  moreover  makes  mention  of Justin  Martyr  and  Ignatius,  taking  some  testimony  also  from  the works  written  by  these.  He  also  promises  in  a  separate  work  to refute  some  of  the  writino-s  of  Marcion.  Hear  also  what  he  has written  respecting  the  translation  of  the  holy  Scriptures  by  the seventy.     "  God,"  says  he,  "  became  man,  and  the  Lord  himsell
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  189

saved  us,  giving  us  the  sign  of  the  Virgin.  But  not  as  some  say, that  now  presume  to  interpret  the  Scriptures.  '  Behold  a  young v^oman  shall  conceive  and  bear  a  son,'  as  Theodotian  of  Ephesus and  Aquila  of  Pontus,  have  translated,  both  of  them  Jewish  proselytes. Whom  the  Ebionites  following,  assert  that  Jesus  was  begotten of  Joseph."  After  a  little,  he  adds  :  "  For  before  the  Romans established  their  empire,  whilst  yet  the  Macedonians  had possession  of  Asia,  Ptolemy  the  son  of  Lagus  being  ambitious  to adorn  the  library  estabUshed  by  him  in  Alexandria,  with  the v/orks  of  all  men,  as  many  as  Vv^ere  worthy  of  being  studied, requested  of  the  inhabitants  of  Jerusalem  to  have  their  works translated  into  the  Greek ;  but  as  they  were  yet  subject  to  the Macedonians,  they  sent  seventy  of  their  elders  that  were  best skilled  in  the  Scriptures,  and  in  both  languages,  to  Ptolemy,  and thus  Providence  favoured  his  design.  But  as  he  wished  them  to make  the  attempt  separately,  and  apprehensive,  lest  by  concert they  might  conceal  the  truth  of  the  Scriptures  by  their  interpretation, therefore  separating  them  from  one  another,  he  commanded all  to  write  the  same  translation.  And  this  he  did  in  all  the  books.
Assembling  therefore  in  the  same  place,  in  the  presence  of  Ptolemy, and  each  of  them  comparing  their  respective  versions,  God  was glorified,  and  the  Scriptures  were  recognised  as  truly  divine,  as all  of  them  rendered  the  same  things,  in  the  very  same  expressions, and  the  same  words,  from  the  beginning  to  the  end.  So  that the  Gentiles  present  knew  that  the  Scriptures  were  translated by  a  divine  inspiration.  Neither  was  it  any  thing  extraordinary that  God  should  have  done  this,  who,  indeed,  in  the  captivity  of the  people  under  Nebuchadnezzar,  when  the  Scriptures  had  been destroyed,  and  the  Jews  returned  to  their  country  after  seventy years,  subsequently  in  the  times  of  Artaxeres  king  of  the  Persians he  inspired  Esdras  the  priest,  of  the  tribe  of  Levi,  to  compose anew  all  the  discourses  of  the  ancient  prophets,  and  to  restore  te the  people  the  laws  given  by  Moses."    Thus  far  Trenaeus.

190  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  IX.

The  bishops  under  Commodus.

Antojjinus  having  held  the  empire  nineteen  years,  Commodus received  the  government.  In  his  first  year  Julian  undertook  the superintendance  of  the  churches  of  Alexandria,  after  Agrippinus had  filled  the  office  twelve  vears.

CHAPTER  X.

Of  Pantcenus  ike  philosopher.

About  the  same  time,  the  school  of  the  faithful  was  governed by  a  man  most  distinguished  for  his  learning,  whose  name  was Panta^nus.  As  there  had  been  a  school  of  sacred  learning  established there  from  ancient  times,  which  has  continued  down  to  our own  times,  and  which  we  have  understood  was  held  by  men  able in  eloquence,  and  the  study  of  divine  things.  For  the  tradition is,  that  this  philosopher  was  then  in  grnat  eminence,  as  he  had been  first  disciplined  in  the  philosophical  principles  of  those  called stoics.  But  he  is  said  to  have  displayed  such  ardour,  and  so  zealous a  disposition,  respecting  the  divine  word,  that  he  was  constituted a  herald  of  the  gospel  of  Christ  fo  the  nations  of  the  east, and  advanced  even  as  far  as  India.  There  were  even  there  yet many  evangelists  of  the  word,  who  were  ardently  striving  to  employ their  inspired  zeal  after  the  apostolic  example,  to  increase and  build  up  the  divine  word.  Of  these  Pantaenus  is  said  to  have been  one,  and  to  have  come  as  far  as  the  Indies.  And  the  report is,  that  he  there  found  his  own  arrival  anticipated  by  some who  there  were  acquainted  with  the  gospel  of  Matthew,  to whom  Bartholomew^  one  of  the  apostles,  had  preached,  and  had left  them  the  gospel  of  Matthew  in  the  Hebrew,  which  w^as  also preserved  until  this  time.  Pantaenus,  after  many  praiseworthy deeds,  was  finally  at  the  head  of  the  Alexandrian  school,  commenting on  the  treasures  of  divine  truth,  both  orally  and  in  his writings.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  191

CHAPTER  XL

Clement  of  Alexandria,
At  this  time,  also,  flourished  Clement,  at  Alexandria,  of  the same  name  with  him  who  anciently  presided  over  the  church  of Rome,  and  who  was  a  disciple  of  the  apostles.  This  Clement was  devoted  to  the  study  of  the  same  Scriptures  with  Pantasnus, and  in  his  Institutions  expressly  mentions  the  latter  by  name  as  his teacher.  He  also  appears  to  me  to  designate  this  same  one  in  the first  book  of  his  Stromata,  when  he  points  out  the  most  distinguished of  the  apostolic  succession,  which  he  had  received  from tradition,  in  the  following  words :  "  These  books,"  says  he,  "  were not  fabricated  as  a  work  of  ostentation,  but  they  are  treasured up  by  me  as  a  kind  of  commentaries  for  my  old  age,  and  an  antidote to  forgetfulness,  as  a  natural  image  and  sketch  of  those eflicacious  and  inspired  doctrines  which  I  was  honoured  to  have from  those  blessed  and  truly  excellent  men.  Of  these,  the  one was  lonicus  in  Greece,  but  the  other  in  Magna  Grsecia ;  the  one of  them  being  a  Syrian,  the  other  a  native  of  Egypt.  Others, however,  there  were,  living  in  the  east ;  and  of  these,  one  was from  Assyria,  another  of  Palestine,  a  Hebrew  by  descent.  The last  that  I  met  with  was  the  first  in  excellence.  Him  I  fo-und concealed  in  Egypt;  and,  meeting  him  there,  I  ceased  to  extend my  search  beyond  him,  as  one  who  had  no  superior  in  abilities.
These,  indeed,  preserved  the  true  tradition  of  the  salutary  doctrine, which,  as  given  by  Peter  and  James,  John  and  Paul,  had descended  from  father  to  son.  Though  there  are  few  like  their fathers,  they  have,  by  the  favour  of  God,  also  come  down  to  us to  plant  that  ancient  and  apostolic  seed  Hkewise  in  our  minds."
19

192  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XIL

The  bishops  of  Jerusalem.

At  this  time  also,  Narcissus,  who  is  celebrated  among  many even  at  this  day,  was  noted  as  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  being  the fifteenth  in  succession  since  the  invasion  of  the  Jews  under  Hadrian. Since  this  event,  we  have  shown  that  the  church  there consisted  of  Gentiles  after  those  of  the  circumcision,  and  that Marcus  was  the  first  bishop  of  the  Gentiles  that  presided  there.
After  him,  Cassianus  held  the  episcopal  ofhce ;  after  him  followed Publius,  then  Maximus;  these  were  followed  by  Julian,  then Caius ;  after  him  Symmachus,  and  another  Caius ;  and  then  another Julian,  who  was  followed  by  Capito,  and  Valens  and  Dolichianus.  Last  of  all  Narcissus,  the  thirtieth  in  regular  succession from  the  apostles.

CHAPTER  XIIL

Of  Rhodo,  and  the  dissension  occasioned  hy  Marcion^  which  he
records.

About  this  time,  also,  Rhodo,  a  native  of  Asia,  being  instructed, as  himself  says,  by  Tatian,  with  whom  we  have  already  become acquainted,  and  having  written  various  other  books,  among  the rest,  also  combatted  the  heresy  of  Marcion.  This,  he  says,  was split  into  various  opinions  in  his  time ;  and  describing  those  that occasioned  the  decision,  he  also  accurately  refutes  the  perverse doctrines  devised  by  each  of  them.  Hear  him  in  his  own  words :
"  Hence,"  says  he,  "  they  are  also  divided  among  themselves, as  they  maintain  a  doctrine  that  cannot  stand.  For  from  this herd  arose  Apelles,  who,  assuming  a  gravity  of  deportment,  and presuming  upon  his  age,  professed  to  believe  but  one  principle, and  that  the  prophetic  declarations  proceeded  from  an  adverse
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  193

spirit.  He  was  deluded,  however,  by  the  responsive  oracular  answers of  a  certain  virsjin  under  demoniacal  influence,  and  whose name  was  Philumena.  But  others,  as  the  Mariner  Marcion  himself, introduced  two  principles,  to  which  sect  belong  Potitus  and Basilicus.  These  following  that  wolf  of  Pontus  (Marcion),  and, like  the  former,  unable  to  find  the  division  of  things,  sunk  into licentiousness,  and  roundly  asserted,  without  any  proof,  that  there were  two  principles.  Others,  again,  declining  from  them  to  a still  greater  error,  established  not  only  two  but  three  natures."
Of  these,  the  chief  and  leader  was  Syneros,  as  those  that  established his  school  say.  But  the  same  author  WTites,  that  he  also had  some  conference  with  Apelles.  "  For,"  says  he,  "  the  old man  Apelles,  w^hen  he  came  into  conversation  with  us,  was  refuted in  many  of  his  false  assertions.  Hence,  he  also  said,  that one  ought  not  to  examine  doctrine,  but  that  each  one  should  continue as  he  believed.  For  he  asserted,  that  those  who  trusted  in him  that  was  crucified  would  be  saved,  if  they  were  only  found engaged  in  good  works.  But  he  asserted,  that  the  most  obscured of  all  things  was,  as  we  before  said,  the  question  respecting  the Deity."  For  he  said  there  was  one  principle,  as  our  doctrine asserts :  then,  after  advancing  the  whole  of  his  opinion,  he  subjoins the  following :  "  When  I  said  to  him,  '  how  do  you  prove this  ?  or,  how  can  you  say  there  is  one  principle  ?  I  wish  you  to explain,'  he  said,  *  that  the  prophecies  refuted  themselves,  because they  uttered  nothing  that  was  true.  For  they  are  inconsistent and  false,  and  contradict  themselves.  But  said,  that  he  did  not, however,  know  there  was  only  one  principle,  he  was  only  moved to  adopt  this  opinion.'  Then  conjuring  him  to  speak  the  truth, he  swore  that  he  did  speak  the  truth,  and  said  he  did  not  understand how  there  could  be  a  God  without  being  produced,  but that  he  believed  it.  On  learning  this,  I  laughed,,  and  reproved him ;  because  whilst  he  asserted  that  he  was  a  teacher,  he  knew not  how  to  establish  that  which  he  taught."

In  the  same  work  which  he  addressed  to  Callistion,  he  confesses that  he  himself  was  taught  by  Tatian  at  Rome,  and  says,  also, that  a  book  of  questions  had  been  \vritten  by  Tatian,  in  which Tatian.  having  promised  that  he  would  explain  what  was  hidden
2B

194  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

and  obscure  in  the  sacred  writings;  Rhodon  himself  promises that  he  would  give  solutions  to  these  questions  in  a  work  of  his own.  There  is  also  a  commentary  of  his  extant,  on  the  Hexahemeron.  But  this  same  Apelles  uttered  innumerable  impieties against  the  law  of  Moses,  and  in  many  works  he  reviled  the  sacred Scriptures,  using  no  small  exertions,  as  it  seems,  to  refute and  overturn  them.     Thus  far,  however,  respecting  these
CHAPTER  XIV.

The  false  'prophets  of  the  Phrygians.

But,  as  the  enemy  of  the  church  of  God  is  the  great  adveraary  of  all  goodness,  the  promoter  of  evil,  and  omits  no  method  of plotting  against  men,  he  was  active  again  in  causing  new  heresies to  spring  up  against  the  church.  Some  of  these  crept  like venomous  reptiles  over  Asia  and  Phrygia,  pretending  that  Montanus  was  the  Paraclete,*  but  that  the  two  women  who  follow^ed him,  Priscilla  and  Maximilla,  were  prophetesses  of  Montanus.

CHAPTER   XV.

Of  the  schism  of  Blastus,  at  Rome.

Others  there  were  that  flourished  at  Rome,  at  the  head  of whom  was  Florinus,  who  falling  from  his  office  as  a  presbyter  of the  church,  Blastus  was  very  nearly  involved  in  the  same  fall
*  Paraclete,  the  epithet  of  the  holy  Spirit,  occurring  in  St.  John's  gospel.  Ii is  the  Greek  derivative,  signifying  Comforter  or  Advocate.  Other  false  teachers besides  Montanus,  have  either  assumed  or  had  this  epithet  applied  to  them ;  among these,  the  impostor  Mahomet  is  not  the  least  noted.  In  the  gospel  of  Barnabas, this  name,  by  a  mere  change  of  the  vow^els,  is  s-£pix\uTos,  the  most  glorious,  instead of  5r«p«)c?.nTo;.  As  this  expresses  the  meaning  of  Mahomet's  name,  this  gospel  of Barnabas  is  much  valued,  at  least  among  the  African  Mahometans.  See  the  Coran,  Sur.  LXI.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  195

with  him.  These,  also,  drawing  away  many  of  the  church,  seduced them  into  their  opinions,  each  one  endeavouring  separately to  introduce  his  own  innovations  respecting  the  truth.

CHAPTER  XVL

The  affairs  of  Montanus,  and  his  false  prophets.

Against  the  abovementioned  heresy  of  the  Cataphrygians, that  power  which  is  the  defender  of  the  truth,  raised  up  a  powerful weapon  and  antagonist  in  Apollinaris  of  HierapoHs,  whom we  mentioned  before,  and  many  other  eloquent  men  with  him there.  Of  whom,  also,  most  abundant  matter  has  been  left  us for  our  history.  A  certain  one  of  them,  in  the  very  beginning of  his  work  against  them  (the  Cataphrygians.)  first  intimates that  he  would  meet  and  refute  them  by  open  argument.  For thus  he  commences  his  work :  "  As  for  a  long  and  very  considerable time,  0  beloved  Avircius  Marcellus,  I  have  been urged  by  thee  to  write  a  discourse  against  the  heresy  which is  called  after  Miltiades,  I  have  been  somehow  too  much  in doubt  until  now,  not  indeed,  for  want  of  argument  to  refute  the false  doctrine,  or  to  bear  witness  to  the  truth,  but  fearing  and apprehensive,  lest,  perhaps,  I  should  appear  to  any  to  give  any new  injunctions,  or  to  superadd  any  thing  to  the  doctrine  of  the New  Testament,  to  which  it  is  impossible  that  any  thing  should be  added  or  diminished,  by  one  who  has  resolved  to  live  according to  the  gospel.  Lately,  however,  having  been  at  Ancyra,  a city  of  Galatia,  and  having  understood  that  the  church  in  Pontus was  very  much  agitated  by  this  new  prophecy,  as  they  call  it, but  which,  as  shall  be  shown,  with  divine  assistance,  deserves rather  the  name  of  false  prophesy,  I  discoursed  many  days  in the  church,  both  respecting  these  matters  and  others  that  were proposed  by  them.  So  that  the  church,  indeed,  rejoiced  and was  strengthened  in  the  truth ;  but  the  adversaries  were  put  to flight,  and  the  opponents  were  cast  down.  But  as  the  presbyters of  the  place  requested  that  we  should  leave  some  comment  of
196  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

those  things  that  we  said,  in  opposition  to  the  opponents  of  the truth,  Zoticus  Otrenus  also  being  present,  who  was  our  fellowpresbyter  ;  this,  indeed,  I  did  not  perform,  but  I  promised  writing hither,  and  to  send  it  as  soon  as  possible,  if  the  Lord  permitted."
Such,  and  other  matters,  he  states  in  the  beginning  of  his  w^ork, premising  the  cause  of  the  mentioned  heresy,  as  follows:  "Their combination,  therefore,  and  the  recent  heretical  severance  of theirs  from  the  church,  had  for  its  origin  the  following  cause : —
There  is  said  to  be  a  certain  village  of  Mysia  in  Phrygia,  called Ardaba.  There,  they  say,  one  of  those  who  was  but  a  recent convert,  ^Montanus  by  name,  when  Cratus  was  proconsul  in Asia,  in  the  excessive  desire  of  his  soul  to  take  the  lead,  gave the  adversary  occasion  against  himself  So  that  he  was  carried away  in  spirit,  and  wrought  up  into  a  certain  kind  of  frenzy  and irregular  ecstasy,  raving,  and  speaking,  and  uttering  strange things,  and  proclaiming  what  was  contrary  to  the  institutions that  had  prevailed  in  the  church,  as  handed  down  and  preserved in  succession  from  the  earliest  times.  But  of  those  that  happened then  to  be  present,  and  to  hear  these  spurious  oracles, some  beino:  indisrnant,  rebuked  him  as  one  under  the  influence of  daemons  and  the  spirit  of  delusion,  and  w^ho  w^as  only  exciting disturbances  among  the  multitude.  These  bore  in  mind  the distinction  and  the  warning  given  by  our  Lord,  when  he  cautioned them  to  be  vigilantly  on  their  guard  against  false  prophets.
Others  again,  as  if  elated  by  the  holy  spirit,  and  the  gift  of  grace, and  not  a  little  puffed  up,  and  forgetting  the  distinction  made  by our  Lord,  challenged  this  insidious,  flattering,  and  seducing  spirit, being  themselves  captivated  and  seduced  by  him ;  so  that  they could  no  longer  restrain  him  to  keep  silence.  Thus,  by  an  artifice, or  rather  by  a  certain  crafty  process,  the  devil  having devised  destruction  against  those  that  disobeyed  the  truth,  and thus  excessively  honoured  by  them,  secretly  stimulated  and  fired their  understandings,  already  wrapt  in  insensibility,  and  w^andering  away  from  the  truth.  For  he  excited  two  others,  females, and  filled  them  with  the  spirit  of  delusion,  so  that  they  also  spake like  the  former,  in  a  kind  of  extatic  frenzy,  out  of  all  season, and  in  a  manner  strange  and  novel,  whilst  the  spirit  of  evi   ton
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  197

gratulated  them,  thus  rejoicing  and  inflated  by  him,  and  continu ed  to  puff  them  up  the  more,  by  promises  of  great  tilings.  Sometimes pointedly  and  deservedly,  directly  condemning  them  that he  might  appear  also  disposed  to  reprove  them.  Those  few  that were  deceived  were  Phrygians ;  but  the  same  inflated  spirit taught  them  to  revile  the  whole  church  under  heaven,  because  it gave  neither  access  nor  honour  to  this  false  spirit  of  prophecy.
For  w^hen  the  faithful  held  frequent  conversations  in  many places  throughout  Asia  for  this  very  purpose,  and  examined their  novel  doctrines,  and  pronounced  them  vain,  and  rejected them  as  heresy,  then  indeed  they  were  expelled  and  prohibited from  communion  with  the  church."  After  relating  these  facts in  the  beginning  of  his  work,  and  introducing  the  refutation  of their  error  in  the  body  of  the  work,  he  adds  the  following  remarks in  the  second  book,  respecting  their  end  :  "  Therefore,"
says  he,  "  since  they  call  us  slayers  of  the  prophets,  because  wc did  not  promptly  receive  their  talkative  prophets,  saying,  *  these were  those  whom  the  Lord  promised  to  send  to  the  people.' "  Let them  answer  us  in  the  name  of  God,  O  friends,  which  of  these who  began  prating  from  Montanus  and  his  w^omen,  is  there  that suffered  persecution,  or  was  slain  by  the  evil  doers  ?  None.  Not even  one  of  them  has  been  seized  and  crucified  for  the  name  (of Christ.)  None  at  all.  Not  one  of  their  women  was  ever  scourged in  the  synagogues  of  the  Jews,  or  stoned.     No,  never.

Montanus  and  Maximilla  indeed,  are  said  to  have  died another  death  than  this,  for  at  the  instigation  of  that  mischievous spirit,  the  report  is,  that  both  of  them  hung  themselves,  not  indeed at  the  same  time,  but  at  the  particular  time  of  each  one's  death, as  the  general  report  is  ;  and  thus  they  died  and  terminated  their life  like  the  traitor  Judas.  Thus,  also,  the  general  opinion  is,  that Theodotus,  one  of  the  first  that  was  carried  away  by  their  prophecy, as  it  was  called,  and  who  became  a  kind  of  patron  of  the delusion,  as  if  he  should  at  some  time  be  taken  up  and  received  into the  heavens,  and  who  falling  into  trances,  gave  himself  up  to  the spirit  of  deception,  was  finally  tossed  by  him  like  a  quoit  in  the air,  and  thus  miserably  perished.  They  say  this  happened  as we  have  stated.     But,  my  friend,  we  do  not  presum.e  to  know
19&  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

anything  certain  of  these  matters,  unless  we  had  seen  them.  Foi perhaps  both  Montanus  and  Theodotus,  and  the  abovementioned woman,  may  have  died  in  this  way,  or  they  may  not."  He  mentions also  in  the  same  book,  that  the  holy  bishops  of  that  time attempted  to  refute  the  spirit  in  Maximilla,  but  were  prevented by  others  who  manifestly  co-operated  with  the  spirit.  His  statement is  as  follows :  "  And  let  not,  as  is  said  in  the  same  work  of Asterius  Urbanus,  let  not  the  spirit  of  Maximilla  say,  '  I  am chased  like  a  wolf  from  the  flock,  I  am  no  wolf.  I  am  utterance, spirit,  and  power.'  But  let  him  show  the  power  in  the  spirit eiTectually,  and  prove  it.  And  let  him  by  the  spirit  face  those that  w^ere  present  at  the  time,  to  examine  and  argue  with  the babbling  spirit,  men  who  were  eminent,  and  bishops  of  the  church, Zoticus  of  Comana,  Julian  of  Apamea,  whose  tongues  the  followers of  Themison  bridled  and  prevented  them  from  refuting  the false  and  seducing  spirit."

In  the  same  work,  after  stating  other  matters  in  refutation  of the  false  predictions  of  Maximilla,  he  likewise  indicates  the  time that  he  wrote  this,  and  mentions  also,  her  declarations  in  which she  foretold  that  there  would  be  wars  and  political  convulsions.
The  falsity  of  which  is  evinced  by  him  as  follows :  "  And  has  not,"
says  he,  "  the  falsehood  of  this  been  made  obvious  ?  For  it  is now  more  than  thirteen  years  since  the  woman  died,  and  neither has  there  been  a  partial  nor  a  general  war,  but  rather,  by  the mercy  of  God,  continued  peace  to  the  Christians."  This  he writes  in  the  second  book.  I  shall  also  subjoin  some  extracts from  the  third  book,  in  which  he  speaks  as  follows,  against  those who  boasted  that  there  were  many  of  thei/  number  that  had suflered  martyrdom :  "  But,"  says  he,  "  since  they  are  at  a  loss what  to  reply  to  the  refutation  of  their  errors,  they  attempt  to take  refuge  to  their  martyrs,  saying  they  have  many  martyrs, and  that  this  is  one  sure  evidence  of  the  powder  of  that  spirit which  they  call  prophetical.  But  this,  as  it  appears,  is  nothing the  more  true  on  that  account.  For  some  of  the  other  heresies also  have  a  vast  number  of  martyrs,  but  neither  do  we  the  more on  that  account  agree  with  them,  nor  acknowledge  that  they  have truth  on  their  side.     Indeed,  they  w-ho  are  called  Marcionites,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  199

say  that  they  had  vast  numbers  that  were  martyrs  for  Christ But  they  do  not  confess  Christ  in  truth."  And  a  Kttle  after,  he adds :  "  Hence,  whenever  those  that  are  called  martyrs  by  the church,  on  account  of  enduring  martyrdom  for  the  true  faith, happen  to  fall  in  with  those  called  martyrs  of  the  Phrygian heresy,  they  always  separate  from  them  and  undergo  death, having  no  communion  with  them,  because  they  do  not  assent  to the  spirit  of  Montanus  and  the  women,  and  that  all  this  is  true, and  happened  in  our  own  times  at  Apamea  on  the  Menander, is  manifest  from  those  who  suffered  martrydom  with  Caius  and Alexander  of  Eumenia."

CHAPTER   XVII.

Of  Miltiades  and  his  works.

In  the  same  work  he  also  makes  mention  of  the  historian  Miltiades, who  also  wrote  a  book  against  the  same  heresy.  After quoting  some  passages  from  them,  he  adds :  "  As  I  found  these statements  in  one  of  their  works  against  another  work  written by  our  brother  Alcibiades,  in  which  he  demonstrates  the  impropriety of  a  prophet's  speaking  in  ecstasy.  This  work  I  have abridged."  After  stating  other  matters,  he  enumerates  those  who had  prophesied  under  the  New  Testament.  'Among  these  he mentions  one  Ammias  and  Quadratus.  "  But  the  false  prophet,"
says  he,  "  is  carried  aw^ay  by  a  vehement  ecstasy,  accompanied by  want  of  all  shame  and  fear.  Beginning,  indeed,  with  a  designed ignorance,  and  terminating,  as  beforesaid,  in  involuntary madness.  They  will  never  be  able  to  show  that  any  of  the  Old or  any  of  the  New  Testament,  were  thus  violently  agitated  and carried  aw^ay  in  spirit.  Neither  will  they  be  able  to  boast  that Agabus,  or  Judas,  or  Silas,  or  the  daughters  of  Philip,  or  Ammias in  Philadelphia,  or  Quadratus,  or  others  that  do  not  belong to  them,  ever  acted  in  this  way."  Again,  after  a  little,  he says  :"  If  after  Quadratus  and  Ammias  in  Philadelphia,  the  women that  followed  Montanus  succeeded  in  the  gift  of  prophecy,
200  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

let  them  show  us  what  women  among  them  succeeded  Montanus and  his  women.  For  the  apostle  shows  that  the  gift  of  prophecy should  be  in  all  the  church  until  the  coming  of  the  Lord,  but  they can  by  no  means  show  any  one  at  this  time,  the  fourteenth  year from  the  death  of  Maximilla."  Thus  far  of  this  author.  But the  Miltiades  mentioned  by  him  has  left  other  monuments  of  his study  in  the  holy  Scriptures,  both  in  the  works  that  he  wrote against  the  Greeks,  and  those  against  the  Jews.  Both  treatises are  composed  in  two  separate  volumes.  He  has,  moreover,  written a  work  against  the  philosophers  of  the  age,  in  favour  of  the philosophy  which  he  embraced.

CHAPTER    XVIII.

ApoIIonius  also  refutes  the  Phrygian  heresy,  and  those  ivhom  he has  mentioned.

But  the  heresy  of  the  Phrygians,  as  it  was  called,  still  continuing to  prevail  in  Phrygia,  ApoIIonius  undertook  to  refute  it  in  a particular  work  which  he  wrote;  on  the  one  hand  correcting  their false  predictions  in  reference  to  what  they  said,  and  on  the  other describing  the  life  that  those  led  who  were  its  founders.  Hear  him in  his  own  words  respecting  Montanus :  "  But  who,"  says  he,  "  is this  new  teacher  ?  His  works  and  his  doctrines  sufficiently  show it.  This  is  he  that  taught  the  dissolutions  of  marriage,  he  that imposed  laws  of  fasting,  that  called  Pepuza  and  Tymium,  little places  in  Phrygia,  a  Jerusalem,  in  order  to  collect  men  from every  quarter  thither ;  who  established  exactors  of  money,  and under  the  name  of  offerings,  devised  the  artifice  to  procure  presents ;  who  provided  salaries  for  those  that  preached  his  doctrine, that  it  might  grow  strong  by  gormandizing  and  gluttony."  Thus far  concerning  Montanus ;  and  further  on  he  writes  concerning his  prophetesses :  "  We  show,  therefore,"  says  he,  "  that  these same  leading  prophetesses,  as  soon  as  they  were  filled  with  the spirit,  abandoned  their  husbands.  How  then  can  they  utter  this falsehood,  who  call  Prisca  a  virgin?"     He  afterwards  proceeds
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  201

again :  "  Does  it  not  appear  to  you  that  the  Scripture  forbids  any prophet  to  receive  gifts  and  money  ?  When,  therefore,  I  see  a prophetess  receiving  both  gold  and  sih^er,  and  precious  garments, how  can  I  fail  to  reject  her  ?"  Again,  further  on,  respecting  a certain  one  of  their  confessors,  he  says :  "  Moreo\'ev,  Themison, who  was  completely  clad  in  a  most  plausible  covetousness,  who could  not  bear  the  great  characteristic  of  confession,  but  threw aside  bonds  and  imprisonment  for  the  abundance  of  wealth,  and though  it  became  him  to  walk  humbly,  boasted  as  a  martyr, and  dared  to  imitate  the  apostles  hy  drawing  up  a  certain  catholic epistle,  to  instruct  those  who  had  a  better  faith  than  himself,  to contend  for  doctrines^  of  empty  sound,  and  to  utter  impieties against  the  Lord  and  his  apostles  and  the  holy  church."  Again, speaking  of  others  that  are  honoured  among  them  as  martyrs,  he writes  thus :  "  But  not  to  speak  of  many,  let  the  prophetess  tell us  the  circumstances  of  Alexander,  who  called  himself  a  martyr, with  whom  she  feasted,  the  same  too  that  is  adored  by  numbers ;
whose  robberies  and  other  crimes,  for  which  he  was  punished,  it is  not  for  us  to  tell,  but  which  are  preserved  in  the  public  records.
Which  of  them  forgives  another  his  sins?  Does  the  prophetess forgive  the  martyr  his  robberies  ?  or  the  martyr  forgive  the  prophetess her  avarice  ?  Although  the  Lord  has  said,  '  lay  not  up  for yourselves  gold  or  silver,  nor  two  coats,'  these,  in  direct  opposition, have  committed  great  crimes  in  regard  to  the  possession  of things  thus  prohibited.  For  we  shall  show,  that  those  that  are called  martyrs  and  prophets  among  them,  have  derived  pecuniary gain,  not  only  from  the  wealthy,  but  from  the  poor,  and  from widows  and  orphans,  and  if  they  have  any  confidence  (of  innocence) in  this,  let  them  stand  and  settle  these  matters  with  us ;  so that  if  they  are  convicted,  they  may  abandon  their  misdemeanours hereafter.

"  The  fruits  of  a  prophet  must  be  examined ;  for  by  its  fruits the  tree  is  known.  But  that  those  who  wish  may  understand the  circumstances  respecting  this  Alexander,  he  was  tried by  iEmilius  Frontinus,  the  proconsul  (of  Asia)  at  Ephesus,  not for  the  name  (of  Christian),  but  for  the  robberies  which  ho dared   to  commit,  as  he  had  already  been  a  transgressor. —

2C

202  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Then,  however,  pretending  to  the  name  of  the  Lord,  he  was liberated,  after  he  had  spread  his  errors  among  the  faithful there.  But  the  church  of  the  place  whence  he  sprung  would not  receive  him,  because  he  was  a  robber.  Those,  however, that  wish  to  learn  his  history,  can  consult  the  public  archives  of Asia.  And  yet  the  prophet  professed  to  be  totally  ignorant  of having  lived  with  him  many  years ;  but  by  refuting  him,  through him,  we  also  overturn  the  pretensions  of  the  prophet.  The  same thing  could  be  shown  in  many  others,  and  if  they  have  the courage  let  them  undergo  the  test  of  argument."  In  another  part of  the  same  work,  he  adds  the  following,  respecting  their  boasted prophets :  "  If,"  says  he,  "  they  deny  that  their  prophets  took presents,  let  them  at  least  acknowledge,  that,  if  they  should  be proved  to  have  received  them,  they  are  no  prophets.  And  of these  matters  we  will  furnish  a  thousand  proofs.  But  it  is  necessary that  all  the  fruits  of  a  prophet  should  be  examined.  Tell me,  does  a  prophet  dye  (his  hair)  ?  Does  a  prophet  stain  (his eyelids)  ?  Does  a  prophet  delight  in  ornament  ?  Does  a  prophet play  with  tablets  and  dice  ?  Does  he  take  usury  ?  Let them  first  acknowledge  these  things,  whether  they  are  right  or not ;  and  I  will  show  that  they  have  been  done  by  them."

This  same  Apollonius  relates,  in  the  same  work,  that  it  was forty  years  from  the  time  that  Montanus  undertook  his  pretended prophecy  down  to  the  period  when  he  wrote  his  work.  And again  he  says,  that  Zoticus,  who  was  also  mentioned  by  the  former historian,  when  Maximilla  was  pretending  to  utter  prophecies at  Pepuza,  attempted  to  interfere  and  reason  with  the  spirit by  which  she  was  stimulated,  but  was  hindered  by  those  that followed  her  opinions.  He  mentions,  also,  a  certain  Thraseas among  the  martyrs  of  the  times,  and  also  that  it  was  handed down  by  tradition,  that  our  Saviour  commanded  his  disciples  not to  depart  from  Jerusalem  for  twelve  years.  He  quotes,  also,  ihe Revelations  of  John  as  testimony ;  and  relates,  also,  that  a  dead man  was  raised  by  the  divine  power,  through  the  same  John,  at Ephesus.  Many  other  matters  he  also  states;  by  which  he abundantly  refutes  the  error  of  the  abovementioned  heresy. —
These  are  the  matters  stated  by  Apollonius.

ECCLESIASTICAL    HISTORY.  208

CHAPTER  XIX.

The  opinion  of  Ser apian  respecting  the  heresy  of  the  Phrygians.

Serapiox,  who  is  said  about  this  time  to  have  been  the  bishop  of the  church  of  Antioch,  after  Maximinus,  has  also  made  mention  of the  writings  of  Apollinaris  against  the  same  heresy.  In  a  pi  Ivate letter,  which  he  wrote  to  Carious  and  Ponticus,  he  mentions  him, and  also  refutes  his  heresy  in  the  following  words :  "  But  that you  may  also  see,  that  the  influence  of  this  lying  party  of  a  new prophecy,  as  it  is  called,  is  abominated  by  all  the  brethren  in  the world,  I  have  also  sent  you  the  epistle  of  Claudius  Apollinaris, that  most  blessed  bishop  of  Hicrapolis  in  Asia."  In  this  same epistle  of  Serapion  are  also  given  the  subscriptions  of  several bishops.  Of  whom  one  wrote  as  follows :  "  I,  Aurelius  Cy renins, a  witness,  wish  you  health."  Another,  as  follows :  "  iElius  Publius  Julius,  bishop  of  Debeltum,  a  colony  of  Thrace,  as  sure  as God  lives  in  the  heavens,  the  blessed  Sotas,  in  Anchialus,  wished to  cast  out  the  daemon  from  Priscilla,  and  the  hypocrites  would not  suffer  him."  The  signatures  of  many  other  bishops  who  bear witness  to  the  facts,  are  given  in  their  own  hand  in  this  epistle.
And  such  are  the  statements  referring  to  these.

CHAPTER  XX.

The  vyintings  of  Irenasus  against  the  schismatics  at  Rome.

But  Ireuceus  composed  various  epistles  in  opposition  to  those that  attempted  to  disfigure  the  sound  institutions  of  the  church  at Rome.  One  addressed  to  Blastus,  On  Schism.  One  to  Florinus, On  Sovereignty,  or  on  the  truth  that  God  is  not  the  author  of  evil:
for  the  latter  appeared  to  maintain  this  opinion.  On  whose  account, as  he  was  again  on  the  point  of  being  carried  away  by  the Valentinian  delusion,  Irenaeus  also  wrote  the  treatise  on  the  Og
doad,  or  the  number  eight ;  in  which  book  he  also  shows  that  he 20

204  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

was  the  first  that  received  the  original  succession  from  the  apostles.
There,  also,  at  the  close  of  the  work,  we  found  a  most  delightful remark  of  his,  which  we  shall  deem  incumbent  on  us  also  to  add to  the  present  work.  It  is  as  follows :  "  I  adjure  thee,  whoever thou  art,  that  transcribest  this  book,  by  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, and  by  his  glorious  appearance,  when  he  shall  come  to  judge  the quick  and  dead,  to  compare  what  thou  last  copied,  and  to  correct it  by  this  original  manuscript,  from  which  thou  hast  carefully transcribed.  And  that  thou  also  copy  this  adjuration,  and insert  it  in  the  copy."  These  things  may  be  profitably  read  in his  works,  and  we  hope  with  equal  profit  have  been  related  by us,  that  we  may  have  these  ancient  and  truly  holy  men,  as  the noblest  examples  before  us.  In  that  epistle,  indeed,  which  we have  already  mentioned,  and  which  Irenaeus  addressed  to  Florinus,  he  again  speaks  of  his  intimacy  with  Polycarp.  "  These doctrines,"  says  he,  "  O  Florinus,  to  say  the  least,  are  not  of  a sound  understanding.  These  doctrines  are  inconsistent  with  the church,  and  calculated  to  thrust  those  that  follow  them  into  the greatest  impiety.  These  doctrines,  not  even  the  lieretics  out  of the  church  ever  attempted  to  assert.  These  doctrines  were never  delivered  to  thee  by  the  presbyters  before  us,  those  who also  were  the  immediate  disciples  of  the  apostles.  For  I  saw thee  when  I  was  yet  a  boy  in  the  lower  Asia  with  Polycarp, moving  in  great  splendour  at  court,  and  endeavourning  by  all means  to  gain  his  esteem.  I  remember  the  events  of  those  times much  better  than  those  of  more  recent  occurrence.  As  the studies  of  our  youth  growing  with  our  minds,  unite  with  it  so firmly  that  I  can  tell  also  the  very  place  where  the  blessed  Polycarp was  accustomed  to  sit  and  discourse ;  and  also  his  entrances, his  walks,  the  complexion  of  his  life  and  the  form  of  his body,  and  his  conversations  with  the  people,  and  his  familiar  intercourse with  John,  as  he  was  accustomed  to  tell,  as  also  his familiarity  with  those  that  had  seen  he  Lord.  How  also  he used  to  relate  their  discourses,  and  what  things  he  had  heard from  them  concerning  the  Lord.  Also  concerning  his  miracles, his  doctrine,  all  these  were  told  by  Polycarp,  in  consistency  with the  holy  Scriptures,  as  he  had  received  them  from  the  eyewit
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  205

nesses  of  the  doctrine  of  salvation.  These  things,  by  the  mercy of  God,  and  the  opportunity  then  afforded  me,  I  attentively  heard, noting  them  down,  not  on  paper,  but  in  my  heart ;  and  these same  facts  I  am  always  in  the  habit,  by  the  grace  of  God,  to recall  faithfully  to  mind.  And  I  can  bear  witness  in  the  sight of  God,  that  if  that  blessed  and  apostolic  presbyter  had  heard any  such  thing  as  this,  he  would  have  exclaimed,  and  stopped his  ears,  and  according  to  his  custom,  would  have  said :  "  O
good  God,  unto  what  times  hast  thou  reserved  me,  that  I  should tolerate  these  things."  He  would  have  fled  from  the  place  in which  he  had  sat  or  stood,  hearing  doctrines  like  these.  From  his epistles,  also,  which  he  wrote  to  the  neighbouring  churches,  in order  to  confirm  them,  or  to  some  of  the  brethren  in  order  to  admonish or  to  exhort  them,  the  same  thing  may  be  clearly  shown."
Thus  far  Irenaeus.

CHAPTER  XXI.

The  martyrdom  of  ApoUonius,  at  Rome.

About  the  same  period,  in  the  reign  of  Commodus,  our  circumstances were  changed  to  a  milder  aspect,  as  there  was  peace by  the  grace  of  God  prevailing  in  the  churches  throughout  the whole  w^orld.  Then  also  the  salutary  doctrine  brought  the  minds of  men  from  every  race  on  eaith,  to  the  devout  veneration  of the  Supreme  God.  So  that  now,  many  of  those  eminent  at Rome  for  their  wealth  and  kindred,  with  their  whole  house  and family,  yielded  to  their  salvation.  But  this  w^as  not  to  be  easily borne  by  the  adversary  of  all  good,  that  daemon  who  in  his  own nature  is  envy  itself:  for  he  again  prepared  for  action,  and commenced  plotting  various  devices  against  us.  He  led  to  the tribunal  Apollonius,  one  of  the  faithful  at  that  day,  renowned  for his  learning  and  wasdom,  by  stimulating  a  certain  man,  well  calculated to  be  his  minister  for  such  a  purpose,  to  bring  accusation against  him.  But  this  miserable  instrument,  entering  upon  the charge  out  of  season,  when  such  informers  were  not  suffered  to
206  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

live  according  to  the  imperial  edict,  his  Hmbs  were  immediately broken,  after  Perennis  the  judge  had  pronounced  the  sentence. But  this  most  approved  and  divinely  favoured  martyr,  as the  judge  earnestly  desired  and  entreated  him  to  give  an  account of  himself  before  the  senate,  delivered  a  most  eloquent  defence of  the  faith  for  which  he  was  suffering,  in  the  presence  of  all, terminated  his  life,  by  decapitation,  according  to  the  decree  of  the senate ;  as  there  was  a  law  of  long  standing  with  them,  that  those who  had  once  been  led  to  trial,  and  that  would  by  no  means change  their  purpose,  should  not  be  dismissed.  But  the  declarations of  this  martyr  before  the  judge,  and  the  answers  that  he gave  to  the  questions  of  Perennis,  and  his  whole  defence  before the  senate,  whoever  wishes  to  know,  may  learn  from  the  narratives of  ancient  martyrs  collected  by  us.

CHAPTER  XXII.

The  bishops  that  Jlourished  at  this  time.

In  the  tenth  year  of  the  reign  of  Commodus,  Eleutherus,  who had  held  the  episcopate  for  thirteen  years,  was  succeeded  by Victor.  In  this  year,  also,  Julianus,  who  had  the  episcopal charge  of  the  churches  at  Alexandria  ten  years,  was  succeeded by  Demetrius.  At  this  time,  also,  was  yet  living  the  abovementioned  Serapion,  bishop  of  Antioch,  and  the  eighth  in  succession from  the  apostles.  At  Cesarea,  in  Palestine,  Theophilus  presided ;
and  Narcissus,  who  was  mentioned  before,  had  yet  at  the  same time  the  administration  of  the  church  in  Jerusalem.  Bacchyllus was  then  also  bishop  of  Corinth,  in  Greece,  and  Polycrates  of  the church  at  Ephesus,  and  many  others  besides  these,  as  is  probable, were  prominent.  We  have  only  given  the  names  of  those  whose orthodoxy  has  descended  to  us  on  record.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  207

CHAPTER   XXIII.

The  question  then  agitated  respecting  the  passover.*

There  was  a  considerable  discussion  raised  about  this  time, in  consequence  of  a  difference  of  opinion  respecting  the  observance of  the  paschal  season.  The  churches  of  all  Asia,  guided  by a  remoter  tradition,  supposed  that  they  ought  to  keep  the  fourteenth day  of  the  moon  for  the  festival  of  the  Saviour's  passover, in  which  day  the  Jews  were  commanded  to  kill  the  paschal  lamb ;
and  it  was  incumbent  on  them,  at  all  times,  to  make  an  end  of the  fast  on  this  day,  on  whatever  day  of  the  week  it  should  hap pen  to  fall.  But  as  it  was  not  the  custom  to  celebrate  it  in  this manner  in  the  churches  throughout  the  rest  of  the  w^orld,  who observe  the  practice  that  has  prevailed  from  apostoUc  tradition until  the  present  time,  so  that  it  would  not  be  proper  to  terminate our  fast  on  any  other  but  the  day  of  the  resurrection  of  our  Saviour. Hence  there  were  synods  and  convocations  of  the  bishops on  this  question ;  and  all  unanimously  drew  up  an  ecclesiastical decree,  which  they  communicated  to  all  the  churches  in  all  places, that  the  mystery  of  our  Lord's  resurrection  should  be  celebrated on  no  other  day  than  the  Lord's-day ;  and  that  on  this  day  alone we  should  observe  the  close  of  the  paschal  fasts.  There  is  an epistle  extant  even  now,  of  those  who  were  assembled  at  the  time;
among  whom  presided  Theophilus,  bishop  of  the  church  in  Cesarea,  and  Narcissus,  bishop  of  Jerusalem.  There  is  also  another epistle  extant  on  the  same  question,  bearing  the  name  of  Victor.

*  Our  English  word  passover,  happily,  in  sound  and  sense,  almost  corresponds to  the  Hebrew  nD£3,  of  which  it  is  a  translation.  Exod.  xii.  27.  The  Greek  pascha, formed  from  the  Hebrew,  is  the  name  of  the  Jewish  festival,  appUed  invariably  m the  primitive  church  to  designate  the  festival  of  the  Lord's  resurrection,  which  took place  at  the  time  of  the  passover.  Our  word,  Easter,  is  of  Saxon  origin,  and  ot precisely  the  same  import  with  its  German  cognate  Ostern.  The  latter  is  derived from  the  old  Teutonic  form  of  auferstehn,  auferstehung,  i.  e.  resurrection.  Tlw name  Easter,  as  expressive  of  meaning,  is  undoubtedly  preferable  to  pascha  or  pass over,  but  the  latter  was  the  primitive  name.
20^

208  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

An  epistle,  also,  of  the  bishops  in  Pontus,  among  whom  Palmas, as  the  most  ancient,  presided ;  also,  of  the  churches  of  Gaul,  over whom  Irenaeus  presided.  Moreover,  one  from  those  in  Osrhoene, and  the  cities  there.  And  a  particular  epistle  from  Bacchyllus, bishop  of  the  Corinthians ;  and  epistles  of  many  others,  who,  advancing one  and  the  same  doctrine,  also  passed  the  same  vote.
And  this,  their  unanimous  determination,  was  the  one  already mentioned.

CHAPTER  XXIV.

Tke  dissension  of  the  churches  in  Asia,
The  bishops,  how^ever,  of  Asia,  persevering  in  observing  the custom  handed  down  to  them  from  their  fathers,  were  headed by  Polycrates.  He,  indeed,  had  also  set  forth  the  tradition  handed down  to  them,  in  a  letter  which  he  addressed  to  Victor  and  the church  of  Rome.  "  We,"  said  he,  "  therefore,  observe  the  genuine day  ;  neither  adding  thereto  nor  taking  therefrom.  For  in  Asia great  lights  have  fallen  asleep,  which  shall  rise  again  in  the  day of  the  Lord's  appearing,  in  which  he  \\\\\  come  with  glory  from heaven,  and  w^ill  raise  up  all  the  saints ;  Philip,  one  of  the  twelve apostles,  w^ho  sleeps  in  Hierapolis,  and  his  two  aged  virgin daughters.  His  other  daughter,  also,  who  having  lived  under the  influence  of  the  Holy  Ghost,  now  likewise  rests  in  Ephesus.  Moreover,  John,  who  rested  upon  the  bosom  of  our  Lord ;
who  also  w^as  a  priest,  and  bore  the  sacerdotal  plate  *  {jieraTjov)^
both  a  martyr  and  teacher.  He  is  buried  in  Ephesus;  also Polycarp  of  Smyrna,  both  bishop  and  martyr.  Thraseas,  also, bishop  and  martyr  of  Eumenia,  who  is  buried  at  Smyrna.
Why  should  I  mention  Sagaris,  bishop  and  martyr,  who  rests  at Laodicea.  Moreover,  the  blessed  Papirius;  and  Melito,  the eunuch,  whose  walk  and  conversation  was  altogether  under  the
*  The  sacerdotal  plate  here  mentioned,  is  not  to  be  understood  of  the  Jewish priesthood,  for  John  had  no  connexion  with  that.  It  is  probable  that  he,  with others,  wore  a  badge  like  this,  as  the  priests  of  a  better  covenant.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  209

influence  of  the  Holy  Spirit,  who  now  rests  at  Sardis,  awaiting the  episcopate  from  heaven,  when  he  shall  rise  from  the  dead.
All  these  observed  the  fourteenth  day  of  the  passover  according to  the  gospel,  deviating  in  no  respect,  but  following  the  rule  of faith.  Moreover,  I,  Polycrates,  who  am  the  least  of  all  of  you, according  to  the  tradition  of  my  relatives,  some  of  whom  I  have followed.  For  there  were  seven,  my  relatives  bishops,  and  I  am the  eighth ;  and  my  relatives  always  observed  the  day  when  the people  (z.  e.  the  Jews)  threw  away  the  leaven.  I,  therefore,  brethren, am  now  sixty-five  years  in  the  Lord,  who  having  conferred with  the  brethren  throughout  the  world,  and  having  studied  the whole  of  the  sacred  Scriptures,  am  not  at  all  alarmed  at  those things  with  which  I  am  threatened,  to  intimidate  me.  For  they who  are  greater  than  I,  have  said,  '  we  ought  to  obey  God  rather than  men.'  "  After  this,  he  also  proceeds  to  write  concerning  all the  bishops  that  were  present,  and  thought  the  same  with  himself: "  I  could  also  mention,"  says  he,  "  the  bishops  that  were present,  whom  you  requested  to  be  summoned  by  me,  and  whom I  did  call.  Whose  names,  did  I  write  them,  would  present  a great  number.  Who,  however,  seeing  my  slender  body,  consented to  the  epistle,  well  knowing  that  I  did  not  bear  my  gray hairs  for  nought,  but  that  I  did  at  all  times  regulate  my  life  in the  Lord  Jesus."  Upon  this,  Victor,  the  bishop  of  the  church  of Rome,  forthwith  endeavoured  to  cut  off  the  churches  of  all  Asia, together  with  the  neighbouring  churches,  as  heterodox,  from  the common  unity.  And  he  publishes  abroad  by  letters,  and  proclaims, that  all  the  brethren  there  are  wholly  excommunicated.
But  this  was  not  the  opinion  of  all  the  bishops.  They  immediately exhorted  him,  on  the  contrary,  to  contemplate  that  course that  was  calculated  to  promote  peace,  unity,  and  love  to  one  another.

There  are  also  extant,  the  expressions  they  used,  who  pressed upon  Victor  with  much  severity.  Among  these  also  was  Irenaeus,  who,  in  the  name  of  those  brethren  in  Gaul  over  whom he  presided,  wrote  an  epistle,  in  which  he  maintains  the  duty  of celebrating  the  mystery  of  the  resurrection  of  our  Lord,  only  on the  day  of  the  Lord.     He  becomingly  also  admonishes  Victor,
2D

210  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

not  to  cut  off  whole  churches  of  God,  who  observed  the  tradition of  an  ancient  custom.  After  many  other  matters  urged  by  him, he  also  adds  the  following  :  "  For  not  only  is  the  dispute  respecting the  day,  but  also  respecting  the  manner  of  fasting.  For  some think,  that  they  ought  to  fast  only  one  day,  some  two,  some  more days ;  some  compute  their  day  as  consisting  of  forty  hours  night and  day  ;  and  this  diversity  existing  among  those  that  observe  it, is  not  a  matter  that  has  just  sprung  up  in  our  times,  but  long  ago among  those  before  us,  who  perhaps  not  having  ruled  with  sufficient strictness,  established  the  practice  that  arose  from  their simplicity  and  inexperience.  And  yet  with  all,  these  maintained peace,  and  we  have  maintained  peace  with  one  another ;  and the  very  difference  in  our  fasting  establishes  the  unanimity  in  our faith."  To  these  he  also  adds  a  narrative,  which  I  may  here appropriately  insert.  It  is  as  follows :  "  And  those  presbyters who  governed  the  church  before  Soter,  and  over  which  you  now preside,  I  mean  Anicetus  and  Pius,  Hyginus  with  Telesphorus and  Xystus,  neither  did  themselves  observe,  not  did  they  permit those  after  them  to  observe  it.  And  yet,  though  they  themselves did  not  keep  it,  they  were  not  the  less  on  peace  with  those  from churches  where  it  was  kept,  whenever  they  came  to  them ;  although to  keep  it  then  was  so  much  the  more  in  opposition  to those  who  did  not.*  Neither  at  any  time  did  they  cast  off  any merely  for  the  sake  of  the  form.  But  those  very  presbyters  before thee,  who  did  not  observe  it,  sent  the  eucharistf  to  those  of churches  who  did.  And  when  the  blessed  Poly  carp  went  to Rome,  in  the  time  of  Anicetus,  and  they  had  a  little  difference am.ong  themselves  likewise  respecting  other  matters,  they  immediately were  reconciled,  not  disputing  much  with  one  another on  this  head.  For  neither  could  Anicetus  persuade  Polycarp  not to  observe  it,  because  he  had  always  observed  it  with  John  the
*  The  meaning  of  this  passage,  if  it  has  any  obscurity,  is,  that  the  act  of  observing and  celebrating,  was  a  more  decided  attitude  of  opposition,  in  the  very  face  of  the church  that  did  not  observe  the  festival  at  this  time.  And  that  the  western  church bore  with  this,  is  here  adduced  as  proof  of  the  love  and  unity  prevailing  in  the churches.

f  The  bishops  were  accustomed  at  Easter  to  send  the  eucharist  to  one  another.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  211

disciple  of  our  Lord,  and  the  rest  of  the  apostles,  with  whom  he associated ;  and  neither  did  Poly  carp  persuade  Anicetus  to  observe, who  said  that  he  was  bound  to  maintain  the  practice  of the  presbyters  before  him.  Which  things  being  so,  they  communed with  each  other  ;  and  in  the  church,  Anicetus  yielded  to Polycarp,  out  of  respect  no  doubt,  the  office  of  consecrating,  and they  separated  from  each  other  in  peace,  all  the  church  being  at peace ;  both  those  that  observed  and  those  that  did  not  observe, maintaining  peace.  And  this  same  Irenseus,  as  one  whose  character answered  well  to  his  name,  being  in  this  way  a  peacemaker, exhorted  and  negociated  such  matters  as  these  for  the peace  of  the  churches.  And  not  only  to  Victor,  but  likewise  to the  most  of  the  other  rulers  of  the  churches,  he  sent  letters  of  exhortation on  the  agitated  question.

CHAPTER  XXV.

All  agree  to  one  opinion  respecting  the  passover.

The  bishops  indeed  of  Palestine,  whom  we  have  just  men doned.  Narcissus  and  Theophilus,  and  Cassius  with  them,  the bishop  of  the  church  at  Tyre,  and  Clarus  of  Ptolemais,  and  those that  came  together  with  them,  having  advanced  many  things respecting  the  t>radition  that  had  been  handed  down  to  them  by succession  from  the  apostles,  regarding  the  passover,  at  the  close of  the  epistle,  use  these  words  :  "  Endeavour  to  send  copies  of the  epistle  through  all  the  church,  that  we  may  not  give  occasion to  those  whose  minds  are  easily  led  astray.  But  we  inform  you also,  that  they  observe  the  same  day  at  Alexandria,  which  we also  do  ;  for  letters  have  been  sent  by  us  to  them,  and  from  them to  us,  so  that  we  celebrate  the  holy  season  with  one  mind  and  at one  time."

212  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XXVL

The  elegant  icorks  of  Irenceus  that  have  come  down  to  us.

Besides  the  works  and  epistles  of  Irenasus  abovementioned, there  is  a  certain  very  brief  and  most  important  discourse  by  him On  Knowledge,  against  the  Greeks ;  another  also,  which  he  dedicated to  his  brother  named  Marcion,  as  a  proof  of  the  apostolic preaching ;  a  book  also  of  various  disputes,  in  which  he  mentions the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews ;  and  the  book  called  the  Wisdom  of Solomon,  quoting  certain  passages  from  them.  These  are  the works  of  Ireneeus  that  have  come  down  to  us.  But  after  Commodus  had  ended  his  reign  in  the  thirteenth  year,  and  Pertinax had  held  the  government  not  quite  six  months,  Severus  w^as created  emperor,  and  ruled  the  state.

CHAPTER  XXVII.

The  works  of  others  that  flourished  at  the  time.

Numerous  works,  indeed,  of  ancient  ecclesiastical  writers  are still  preserved  by  many,  the  monuments  of  a  virtuous  industry.
Those  which  we  would  select  of  them,  might  be  the  commentaries of  Heraclitus  On  the  Apostle ;  the  works  of  Maximus,  also, on  that  question  so  much  agitated  among  the  heretics.  The  Origin of  Evil;  also.  On  the  Creation  of  Matter.  Also,  the  works  of Candidus  On  the  Hexaejneron.*  And  Apion's  work  on  the  same subject  Sextus,  also.  On  the  Resurrection,  and  a  certain  other treatise  of  Arabianus,  with  many  others,  of  whom,  as  we  have no  data,  we  can  neither  insert  the  times  nor  any  extracts  in  our history.  Innumerable  others  there  also  are,  that  have  come down  to  us,  even  the  names  of  whom  it  would  be  impossible  to give.     All  of  these  were  orthodox  and  ecclesiastical  writers  as
*  The  Greek  name,  desicfnatiiif?  the  six  davs  of  tlie  creation.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  213

the  interpretation  which   each  gives  of  the   sacred  Scriptures shows ;  yet  they  are  not  known  to  us,  because  the  ^vorks  them selves  do  not  give  their  authors.

CHAPTER   XXVIII.

Those  that  followed  the  heresy  of  Artemon,  in  the  beginning.
Their  character  and  conduct;  and  their  attempt  at  corrupting the  Scriptures,
L\  a  work  written  by  a  certain  one  of  these  authors  against the  heresy  of  Artemon,  which  Paul  of  Samosata  again  attempted to  revive  among  us,  there  is  a  narrative  well  adapted  to  the history  we  are  now  investigating.  This  writer,  not  long  since,  in refuting  the  heresy  mentioned,  which  asserts  that  Christ  is  a  m.ere man,  since  its  leaders  wish  to  boast  as  if  it  were  the  ancient  doctrine, besides  many  other  arguments  that  he  adduces  in  refutation of  their  impious  falsehood,  he  gives  the  following  account :
"  For  they  assert,"  says  he,  "  that  all  those  primitive  men  and the  apostles  themselves,  both  received  and  taught  these  things  as they  are  now  taught  by  them,  and  that  the  truth  of  the  gospel was  preserved  until  the  times  of  Victor,  who  was  the  thirteenth bishop  of  Rome  from  Peter.  But  that  from  his  successor  Zephyrinus,  the  truth  was  mutilated.  And  perchance  what  they  say might  be  credible,  were  it  not  that  the  holy  Scriptures  contradict them ;  and  then,  also,  there  are  w^orks  of  certain  brethren older  than  Victor's  times,  which  they  wrote  in  defence  of  the truth,  and  agamst  the  heresies  then  prevailing.  I  speak  of  Justus and  Miltiades,  and  Tatian  and  Clement,  and  many  others,  in  all which  the  divinity  of  Christ  is  asserted.  For  who  knows  not  the works  of  Irenasus  and  Melito,  and  the  rest,  in  which  Christ  is  announced as  God  and  man  ?  Whatever  psalms  and  hymns  were written  by  the  brethren  from  the  beginning,  celebrate  Christ  the word  of  God,  by  asserting  his  divinity.  Hov/  then  could  it  happen, that  since  the  doctrine  of  the  church  has  been  proclaimed for  so  many  years,  that  those  until  the  times  of  Victor,  preached
214  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

the  gospel  after  this  manner  1  And  how  are  they  so  devoid  ot shame  to  utter  these  falsehoods  against  Victor,  well  knowing  that Victor  excommunicated  that  currier  Theodotus,  the  leader  and father  of  this  God-denying  apostacy,  as  the  first  one  that  asserted Christ  was  a  mere  man.  For  had  Victor  entertained  the  sentiments which  their  impious  doctrine  promulgates,  how  could  he have  expelled  Theodotus,  the  inventor  of  this  heresy?"  Thus much  with  respect  to  Victor.  But  after  this  author  had  superintended the  church,  Zephyrinus  was  appointed  his  successor about  the  ninth  year  of  the  reign  of  Severus.  The  same  author that  composed  the  book  already  mentioned  respecting  the  founder of  this  heresy,  also  adds  an  account  of  another  event  that  occurred in  the  times  of  Zephyrinus,  in  these  words :  "  1  shall  remind many  of  the  brethren  of  a  fact,"  says  he,  "  that  happened  in  our days,  which,  had  it  happened  in  Sodom,  I  think  would  have  led them  to  reflection.  There  was  a  certain  Natahus,  who  lived  not in  remote  times,  but  in  our  own.  This  man  was  seduced  on  a certain  occasion  by  Asclepiodotus,  and  another  Theodotus,  a moneychanger.  Both  of  these  were  disciples  of  Theodotus  the currier,  the  first  that  had  been  excommunicated  by  Victor,  then bishop,  as  before  said,  on  account  of  this  opinion  or  rather  insanity.
Natalius  was  persuaded  by  them  to  be  created  a  bishop  of  this heresy,  with  a  salary  from  them  of  one  hundred  and  fifty  denarii a  month.  Being  connected,  therefore,  with  them,  he  was  frequently brought  to  reflection  by  the  Lord  in  his  dreams.  For the  merciful  God  and  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  would  not  that  he who  had  been  a  witness  of  his  own  sufferings,  should  perish, though  he  was  out  of  the  church.  But  as  he  paid  but  little  attention to  these  visions,  being  ensnared  both  by  the  desire  of  presiding among  them,  and  that  foul  gain  which  destroys  so  many,  he was  finally  lashed  by  holy  angels,  through  the  whole  night,  and ^vas  thus  most  severely  punished ;  so  that  he  arose  early  in  the morning,  and  putting  on  sackcloth  and  covered  with  ashes,  in great  haste,  and  bathed  in  tears,  he  fell  down  before  Zephyrinus the  bishop,  rolling  at  the  feet  not  only  of  the  clergy  but  even  of the  laity,  and  thus  moved  the  compassionate  church  of  Christ with  his  tears.     And,  although  he  implored  their  clemency  with
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  215

much  earnestness,  and  pointed  to  the  strokes  of  the  lashes  he  had received,  he  was  at  last  scarcely  admitted  to  communion."  To this,  we  will  also  add  other  extracts  from  the  same  writer  respecting this  sect:  "The  sacred  Scriptures,"  says  he,  "have  been boldly  perverted  by  them;  the  rule  of  the  ancient  faith  they have  set  aside,  Christ  they  have  renounced,  not  inquiring  what the  holy  Scriptures  declared,  but  zealously  labouring  v,'hat  form of  reasoning  may  be  devised  to  establish  their  impiety.  And should  any  one  present  a  passage  of  divine  truth,  they  examined first  whether  a  connected  or  disjoined  form  of  syllogism*  can  be formed  from  it.  But  they  abandon  the  holy  Scriptures  for  the study  of  geometry ,-f  as  being  of  the  earth  they  talk  of  the  earth, and  know  not  him  that  cometh  from  above.  Euclid,  therefore, is  industriously  measured^  by  them.  Aristotle  and  Theophrastus, are  also  admired,  and  as  to  Galen,  he  is  even  perhaps  worshipped by  some.  But  as  to  these  men  who  abuse  the  acts  of  the  unbelievers, to  their  own  heretical  views,  and  who  adulterate  the simplicity  of  that  faith  contained  in  the  holy  Scriptures,  by  the wily  arts  of  impious  men;  where  is  the  necessity  of  asserting that  they  are  not  right  in  the  faith  ?  For  this  purpose  they  fearlessly lay  their  hands  upon  the  holy  Scriptures,  saying  that  they have  corrected  them.     And  that  I  do  not  say  this  against  them
*  Logicians  call  the  syllogisms  here  spoken  of,  hypothetical  and  disjunctive.  In the  former,  the  premises  arc  supposed ;  in  the  latter,  they  are  separated  by  a  disjunctive conjunction,  whence  their  names.

•j-  The  author  whose  words  are  here  quoted,  plays  upon  the  word  geometry^  in its  original.  The  word  literally  means  earth  or  land-measuring.  The  science appears  to  owe  its  origin  to  the  necessity  of  frequently  measuring  the  lands  in Egypt,  after  the  inundations  of  the  Nile;  and  when  reduced  to  its  more  abstract principles,  it  still  continued  to  bear  its  original  name.  The  author  here  quoted seems  to  reprove,  in  these  men,  an  absorbing  devotedness  to  a  science,  the  study of  which  is  doubtless  a  powerful  auxiliary  in  disciplining  the  human  mind,  independently of  its  practical  utiUty.  It  was  considered  so  important  a  preparatory discipUne  among  the  ancients,  that  the  words  o>^Ji';  a>£x^iTp^T=,-  cuJ.  £4o-£a3>,  were written  over  the  gates  of  their  philosophical  schools.

\  Measured.]  Another  play  upon  the  word  geometry,  the  force  of  which  is entirely  lost  in  a  translation.  The  author  had  already  hinted  that  this  was  only an  earthly  study ;  and  now  he  sarcastically  remarks,  Euclid  is  earth  measured  bv them.

21

216  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

without  foundation,  whoever  wishes  may  learn ;  for  should  any one  collect  and  compare  their  copies  one  with  another,  he  would find  them  greatly  at  variance  among  themselves.  For  the copies  of  Asclepiodotus  will  be  found  to  differ  from  those  of Theodotus.  Copies  of  many  you  may  find  in  abundance,  altered, by  the  eagerness  of  their  disciples  to  insert  each  one  his own  corrections,  as  they  call  them,  i.  e.  their  corruptions.  Again, the  copies  of  Hermophilus  do  not  agree  with  these,  for  those  of Appollonius  are  not  consistent  with  themselves.  For  one  may compare  those  which  were  prepared  before  by  them,  with  those which  they  afterwards  perverted  for  their  own  objects,  and  you will  find  them  widely  differing.  But  what  a  stretch  of  audacity this  aberration  indicates,  it  is  hardly  probable  themselves  can  be ignorant.  For  either  they  do  not  beheve  that  the  holy  Scriptures were  uttered  by  the  holy  Spirit,  and  they  are  thus  infidels,  or  they deem  themselves  wiser  than  the  holy  Spirit,  and  what  alternative is  there  but  to  pronounce  them  daemoniacs  ?  For  neither  can  they deny  that  they  have  been  guilty  of  the  daring  act,  when  the copies  were  written  with  their  own  hand,  nor  did  they  receive such  Scriptures  from  those  by  whom  they  were  instructed  in  the elements  of  the  faith ;  nor  can  they  show  copies  from  which  they were  transcribed.  But  some  of  them  did  not  even  deign,  or think  it  worth  while,  to  mutilate  the  Scriptures,  but  directly  denying the  law  and  the  prophets  by  their  lawless  and  impious doctrine,  under  the  pretext  of  grace,  they  sunk  down  to  the  lowest depths  of  perdition."     But  let  this  suffice  on  this  subject.

BOOK  VI.

CHAPTER  I.

The  persecution  under  Severus.

But  when  Severus  raised  a  persecution  against  the  churches, there  were  illustrious  testimonies  given  by  the  combatants  of  religion in  all  the  churches  every  where.  They  particularly abounded  in  Alexandria,  whilst  the  heroic  wrestlers  from  Egypt and  Thebais  were  escorted  thither  as  to  a  mighty  theatre  of God,  where,  by  their  invincible  patience  under  various  tortures and  modes  of  death,  they  were  adorned  with  crowns  from heaven.  Among  these  was  Leonides,  said  to  be  the  father  of Origen,  who  was  beheaded,  and  left  his  son  behind  yet  very young.  His  early  predilection  for  the  divine  word,  as  instructed by  his  father,  it  is  not  out  of  place  here  briefly  to  state,  so  much the  more  especially  as  his  fame  is  celebrated  by  many.

CHAPTER  II.

The  education  of  Origen,  from  his  earliest  youth.

OxE  might,  indeed,  say  much  in  attempting  to  write  the  Kfe of  the  man  at  school,  for  the  subject  respecting  him  would  require a  particular  and  separate  work.  Nevertheless,  for  the  present, we  shall  endeavour  by  abridging  the  most  of  the  materials, as  briefly  as  possible  to  relate  some  few  events  respecting  him, and  adduce  the  facts  from  certain  epistles  and  histories  which have  come  down  to  our  own  day,  by  those  of  his  familiar  friends who  are  yet  living.  The  life  of  Origen,  indeed,  appears  to  me worthy  of  being  recorded,  even  from  his  tender  infancy.     It  was
2E  217

218  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

in  the  tenth  year  of  the  reign  of  Severus,  when  Alexandria  and the  rest  of  Egypt  was  under  the  government  of  his  viceroy  Lastus,  and  the  churches  there  were  under  the  episcopal  administration of  Demetrius,  the  successor  of  Julian,  that  the  kindled  flame of  persecution  blazed  forth  mightily,  and  many  thousands  were crowned  with  martyrdom.

It  was  then,  too,  that  the  love  of  martyrdom  so  powerfully seized  the  soul  of  Origen,  though  yet  an  almost  infant  boy,  that he  advanced  so  close  to  encounter  danger,  and  was  eager  to leap  forward  and  rush  upon  the  conflict.  And  indeed,  there  had been  now  but  little  wanting,  and  the  termination  of  his  life  had not  been  far  oflT,  unless  the  heavenly  providence  of  God  for  the benefit  of  vast  numbers,  had,  by  means  of  his  mother,  interposed an  impediment  to  his  eager  desire.  She,  indeed,  at  first,  implored and  entreated  him  to  spare  a  mother's  tenderness  regarding him,  but  seeing  him  only  the  more  vehemently  bent  upon  it, as  he  imderstood  that  his  father  was  taken  and  kept  a  prisoner, and  he  was  wholly  borne  away  by  the  desire  of  becoming  a  martyr, his  mother  concealed  his  clothes  in  order  to  compel  him to  remain  at  home.  But  when  he  saw  that  there  was  no  other course  for  him  to  pursue,  as  his  great  zeal  was  far  beyond  his years,  he  could  not  remain  inactive,  but  sent  to  his  father  a  most encouraging  letter  on  martyrdom,  in  which  he  encourages  him, saying,  "  take  heed,  (father)  not  to  change  thy  mind  on  account of  us."  This  may  serve  as  the  first  specimen  that  we  mention of  Origen's  shrewdness,  and  his  genuine  devotedness  to  piety.
For  he  had  even  then  made  no  little  progress  in  the  doctrine  of faith,  as  he  had  been  conversant  with  the  holy  Scriptures  even when  a  child.  He  had  been  considerably  trained  in  them  by  his father,  who,  besides  the  study  of  the  liberal  sciences,  had  also carefully  stored  his  mind  with  these.  First  of  all,  therefore,  before he  studied  the  Grecian  literature,  he  led  him  to  frequent  exercise in  the  study  of  sacred  things,  appointing  him  to  commit and  repeat  some  passages  every  day ;  and  these  things  were  not unw^illingly  done  by  the  child,  but  studies  most  cheerfully  per^ormed  with  great  diligence.  So  that  it  was  not  sufficient  for him  merely  to  read  what  was  simple  and  obvious  in  the  sacred
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY,  219

books,  but  he  sought  also  what  was  beyond  this,  into  the  deeper senses  of  the  text,  and  was  busily  employed  in  such  speculations even  at  that  age  ;  so  that  he  gave  his  father  trouble,  by  his  questions what  forsooth  the  passage  of  the  inspired  Scriptures  should mean.  He,  indeed,  to  appearance,  rebuked  him  to  his  face,  telling him  not  to  inquire  into  things  beyond  his  age,  nor  to  search beyond  the  obvious  meaning  of  Scriptures.  But  he,  greatly  delighted in  his  own  mind,  gave  most  hearty  thanks  to  Almighty God,  the  author  of  all  good,  that  he  had  honoured  him  to  be  the father  of  such  a  child.  And  they  say,  that  frequently,  w^hen standing  over  his  sleeping  boy,  he  would  uncover  his  breast,  and as  a  shrine  consecrated  by  the  divine  Spirit,  he  reverently  kissed it  and  congratulated  himself  upon  his  favoured  offspring.  These and  other  similar  circumstances  are  related  of  Origen  when  yet a  boy.  But  now,  as  his  father  had  ended  his  days  a  martyr,  he  is left  in  this  bereaved  condition  wdth  his  mother  and  younger brothers,  in  number  six,  when  he  was  yet  in  his  seventeenth  year.
And  as  his  father's  property  was  forfeited  to  the  imperial  treasury, he  was  reduced  with  his  relatives  to  great  straits  for  the necessaries  of  life.  But  he  was  honoured  with  a  provision  from God.  For  he  found  a  kind  reception  and  retreat  with  a  certain lady  of  great  wealth  and  distinction  ;  but  who  at  the  same  time patronized  a  certain  celebrated  man  who  w^as  an  advocate  of  the heretics  then  existing  in  Alexandria.  This  man  was  a  native  of Antioch,  and  was  taken  home  by  the  lady  as  an  adopted  son,  and was  treated  with  the  greatest  kindness  by  her.  But  as  Origen thus  necessarily  associated  with  him,  he  thenceforth  gave  him strong  specimens  of  his  orthodox  faith.  As  great  numbers  not only  of  heretics  but  ours  also,  induced  by  the  apparent  eloquence of  the  man,  collected  to  hear  this  Paul,  for  that  was  his  name, he  could  never  be  induced  to  join  with  him  in  prayer,  observing even  from  a  boy  that  rule  of  the  church,  and  as  he  himself  says, somewhere,  abominating  the  inculcation  of  heretical  doctrines.
But  as  he  had  been  instructed  by  his  father  in  Greek  literature, and  after  his  death  devoted  himself  more  ardently  to  the  sole study  of  literature,  so  that  he  acquired  a  tolerable  acquaintance with  philology,  he  devoted  himself  not  long   after  his  father's
220  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

death  to  this  study,  and  young  as  he  was,  he  thus  acquired  sulficient  to  supply  his  necessary  wants  in  abundance.

CHAPTER   III.

fV/ieji  a  very  young  man  he  preached  the  Gospel
But  whilst  he  was  thus  engaged  with  his  school  where  he abode,  as  he  somewhere  states,  and  there  was  no  one  at  Alexandria that  applied  himself  to  give  instruction  in  the  principles  of  the faith,  but  all  driven  away  by  the  threatening  aspect  of  persecution, some  of  the  Gentiles  came  to  him  with  a  mind  to  hear  the  word  of God.  The  first  of  whom,  he  states,  was  Plutarch ;  w^ho,  after  a life  of  piety,  was  also  crowned  with  divine  martyrdom.  The second  w^as  Heraclas,  the  brother  of  Plutarch,  who,  indeed,  having given  abundant  proof  of  a  life  of  retired  contemplation  and  discipline, was  deemed  worthy  of  the  episcopate  of  Alexandria  after Demetrius.  But  he  w^as  in  his  eighteenth  year  when  he  conducted the  school  for  elementary  instruction  in  the  faith,  in  which  also he  made  great  proficiency  under  the  persecutions  of  Aquila  governor of  Alexandria;  where,  also,  he  obtained  a  celebrated name  with  all  the  believers,  on  account  of  that  cordiahty  and promptness  which  he  exhibited  to  all  the  martyrs,  whether  known to  him  or  not.  For  not  only  w^as  he  with  them  when  in  bonds, nor  only  until  the  last  of  their  trial  at  the  tribunal ;  but,  even after  this,  when  led  away  to  die,  he  conversed  freely  with  these holy  martyrs,  and  advanced  in  the  face  of  danger.  So,  that  as  he boldly  proceeded,  and  with  great  freedom  saluted  the  brethren with  a  kiss,  the  infuriate  multitude  who  stood  around  had  more than  once  almost  overwhelmed  him  (with  stones),  had  he  not  this once  experienced  the  helping  hand  of  God,  and  w^onderfully  escaped. But  this  same  celestial  grace,  at  one  time  and  another, again  and  again,  and  indeed  no  one  can  tell  how  often,  in  consequence of  his  great  zeal  for  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  and  his  fearlessness, as  often  protected  him  in  danger.     So  great,  indeed,  was
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  221

the  hostility  of  the  unbelievers  to  him,  that  they  formed  themselves into  companies,  to  station  soldiers  about  the  house  where he  abode,  on  account  of  the  numbers  that  were  instructed  by him  in  the  principles  of  the  faith.  But  the  persecution  against him  daily  blazed  forth  with  such  virulence,  that  the  whole  city of  Alexandria  could  no  longer  contain  him,  as  he  removed  from house  to  house,  driven  about  in  every  direction,  on  account  of  the great  number  of  those  that  had  been  brought  over  by  him  to  the true  faith,  since  also  his  daily  actions  afforded  admirable  specimens of  a  conduct  resulting  from  a  sound  philosophy.  For,  "  as  his doctrine,  say  they,  so  was  his  life ;  and  as  his  Hfe,  so  also  was  his doctrine."  Wherefore,  also,  with  the  divine  assistance,  he  induced numbers  to  imitate  him.  But  when  he  saw  a  greater number  of  pupils  coming,  the  instruction  of  them  having  been committed  to  him  entirely  by  Demetrius  the  bishop  of  the  church, he  thought  that  to  teach  literature  exclusively*  was  inconsistent with  the  study  of  divine  truth,  and  without  delay  abandoned  the school  of  philosophy,  as  useless,  and  an  obstruction  to  his  sacred studies.  Then,  also,  with  a  becoming  consideration  that  he  might not  stand  in  need  of  aid  from  others,  he  disposed  of  whatsoever works  he  had  formerly  written  on  ancient  works,  and  composed with  great  elegance  and  taste,  and  was  content  with  receiving  four oboU  f  the  day  from  the  purchaser.  Many  years  he  continued to  lead  this  life  of  philosophy,J  completely  removing  all  the  incentives to  youthful  passions  from  him,  during  the  whole  day
*  Literature  exclusivelif.]  We  have  added  the  word  exclusively  as  the  obvious meaning.  Origen  could  not,  without  great  inconsistency,  consider  the  business  of literary  instruction  as  hostile  to  the  study  of  divine  things,  nor  does  this  appear  to have  been  his  opinion.  But  the  exclusive  occupation  of  such  a  teacher  in  his  relative situation  was  incompatible  with  a  higher  duty.  We  have  also  rendered ypx,u,u=tTrAoi  xzy.i,  contrary  to  our  predecessors,  by  the  terras  literature  and  pkilology.  Others  render  grammar,  but  seem  to  have  overlooked  the  fact,  that  the terms,  beside  the  grammatical  study  of  a  language,  also  comprehended  the  whole compass  of  philology  and  the  belles  lettres.

■j-  OboU.]     The  obolus  was  a  small  coin,  about  two  or  three  cents  in  value.

+  Philosophy.]  Our  author  uses  this  word,  when  applied  to  the  primitive  Christians, in  a  practical  sense,  indicating  the  austerity  of  life  and  self-denial  which  they exercised.

222  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

undergoing  no  trifling  amount  of  laborious  exercise,  and  at  night devoting  himself  the  most  of  the  time  to  the  study  of  the  holy Scriptures,  and  restraining  himself,  as  far  as  possible,  by  a  most rigid  and  philosophical  life.  Sometimes  he  was  exercised  in  the discipline  of  fasting ;  then,  again,  at  night,  he  limited  his  times for  sleep,  which,  in  consequence  of  liis  great  zeal,  he  never  enjoyed on  his  bed,  but  upon  the  bare  ground.  But,  most  of  all,  he thought  that  the  evangelical  precepts  of  our  Saviour  should  be observed,  in  which  he  exhorts  that  we  should  not  have  two  coats, nor  make  use  of  shoes,  nor  pass  our  time  in  cares  for  the  future.
But  indulging,  also,  an  ardour  greater  than  his  years,  he  persevered in  cold  and  nakedness ;  and  advancing  to  the  greatest  extremes of  j)overty,  astonished,  most  of  all,  his  nearest  friends.
Many,  indeed,  that  wished  to  impart  to  him  some  of  their  means, were  grieved  on  account  of  the  laborious  toil  that  he  endured  for the  sake  of  inspired  truth.  He  did  not,  however,  relax  in  his perseverance.  He  is  said,  indeed,  to  have  walked  the  ground for  many  years  without  any  shoes ;  and  also  to  have  abstained from  the  use  of  wine  and  other  food  not  necessary  for  sustenance, many  years.  So  that  now  he  was  greatly  in  danger  of  subverting and  destroying  his  constitution.*  But  in  presenting  such specimens  of  his  ascetic  life  to  the  beholders,  he  naturally  induced many  of  liis  visiters  to  pursue  the  same  course ;  so  that now  many,  both  of  the  unbelieving  heathen,  and  some  of  the learned,  and  even  philosophers  of  no  mean  account,  were  prevailed upon  to  adopt  his  doctrine.  Some  of  these,  also,  liaving been  deeply  imbued  by  him,  with  the  sound  faith  in  Christ  deeply implanted  in  the  soul,  were  also  eminent  in  the  midst  of  the  persecution then  prevailing ;  so  that  some  were  taken,  and  finished their  course  by  martyrdom.

•  The  word  used  here  is  5^px;,  the  chest.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  223

CHAPTER   IV.

The  number  of  his  catechumens  that  suffered  martyrdom.

Of  these,  then,  the  first  was  that  Plutarch,  mentioned  above, at  whose  martyrdom  when  led  away  to  die,  the  same  Origen of  whom  we  are  now  speaking,  being  present  with  him  to  the last  of  his  life,  was  nearly  slain  by  his  own  countrymen,  as  if  he were  the  cause  of  his  death.  But  the  providence  of  God  preserved him  likewise  then.  But  after  Plutarch,  the  second  of Origen's  disciples  that  was  selected,  was  Severus,  who  presented in  the  fire,  a  proof  of  that  unshaken  faith  which  he  had  received.
The  third  that  appeared  as  martyr  from  the  same  school,  was Heraclides ;  and  the  fourth,  after  him,  was  Heron :  both  of  these were  beheaded.  Besides  these,  the  fifth  of  this  school  that  was announced  a  champion  for  religion,  was  another  Severus,  who, after  a  long  series  of  tortures,  is  said  to  have  been  beheaded.
Of  women,  also,  Herais,  who  was  yet  a  catechumen,  and,  as Origen  himself  expresses  it,  after  receiving  her  baptism  by  fire, departed  this  life.

CHAPTER  V.

Of  Potamicena.

But,  among  these,  Basilidcs  must  be  numbered  the  seventh ;  he who  led  away  the  celebrated  Potamia^na  to  execution,  concerning whom  many  traditions  are  still  circulated  abroad  among  the  inhabitants of  the  place,  of  the  innumerable  conflicts  she  endured  for the  preservation  of  her  purity  and  chastity,  in  which  indeed  she was  eminent.  For,  besides  the  perfections  of  her  mind,  slie  was blooming  also  in  the  maturity  of  personal  attractions.  Many things  are  also  related  of  her  fortitude  in  suflcring  for  faith  in Christ ;  and,  at  length,  after  horrible  tortures  and  pains,  the  very relation  of  which  makes  one  shudder,  she  was,  with  her  mother
224  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Macella,  committed  to  the  flames.  It  is  said,  indeed,  that  the judge,  Aquila  by  name,  after  having  applied  the  severest  tortures to  her  on  every  part  of  her  body,  at  last  threatened  that  he would  give  her  body  to  be  abused  by  the  gladiators ;  but  that  she, having  considered  the  matter  a  little,  after  being  asked  what  she would  determine,  made  such  a  reply  as  made  it  appear  that  she uttered  something  deemed  impious  with  them.  Immediately, therefore,  receiving  the  sentence  of  condemnation,  she  was  led away  to  die  by  Basilides,  one  of  the  officers  in  the  army.  But when  the  multitude  attempted  to  assault  and  insult  her  with abusive  language,  he,  by  keeping  off,  restrained  their  insolence ;
exhibiting  the  greatest  compassion  and  kindness  to  her.  Perceiving the  man's  sympathy,  she  exhorts  him  to  be  of  good  cheer, for  that  after  she  was  gone  she  would  intercede  for  him  with  her Lord,  and  it  would  not  be  long  before  she  would  reward  him  for his  kind  deeds  towards  her.  Saying  this,  she  nobly  sustained the  issue ;  having  boiling  pitch  poured  over  different  parts  of  her body,  gradually  by  little  and  little,  from  her  feet  up  to  the  crown of  her  head.  And  such,  then,  was  the  conflict  which  this  noble virgin  endured.  But  not  long  after,  Basilides,  being  urged  to swear  on  a  certain  occasion  by  his  fellow-soldiers,  declared  that it  was  not  lawful  for  him  to  swear  at  all ;  for  he  was  a  Christian, and  this  he  plainly  professed.  At  first,  indeed,  they  thought  that he  was  thus  far  only  jesting ;  but  as  he  constantly  persevered in  the  assertion,  he  was  conducted  to  the  judge,  before  whom, confessing  his  determination,  he  was  committed  to  prison.  But when  some  of  the  brethren  came  to  see  him,  and  inquired  the cause  of  this  sudden  and  singular  resolve,  he  is  said  to  have  declared, that  Potamiasna,  indeed  for  the  three  days  after  her  martyrdom, standing  before  him  at  night,  placed  a  crown  upon  his head,  and  said  that  she  had  entreated  the  Lord  on  his  account, and  she  had  obtained  her  prayer,  and  that  ere  long  she  would take  him  with  her.  On  this,  the  brethren  gave  him  the  seal  *
in  the  Lord ;  and  he,  bearing  a  distinguished  testimony  to  the
*  Our  author  here  means  baptism,  which,  in  the  primitive  church,  was  sometimes thus  figuratively  called.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  225

Lord,  was  beheaded.  Many  others,  also,  of  those  at  Alexandria, are  recorded  as  having  promptly  attached  themselves  to  the  doctrine of  Christ  in  these  times ;  and  this  by  reason  of  Potamiaena, who  appeared  in  dreams,  and  exhorted  many  to  embrace  the  divine word.     But  of  these  let  this  suffice.

CHAPTER  VI.

Clement  of  Alexandria.

Clement  having  succeeded  Pantaenus  in  the  office  of  elementary instruction,  had  charge  of  it  until  this  time ;  so  that  Origen, whilst  yet  a  boy,  w^as  one  of  his  pupils.  Clement,  in  the  first  book of  the  work  that  he  wrote,  called  Stromata,  gives  us  a  chronological deduction  of  events  down  to  the  death  of  Commodus.  So that  it  is  evident  these  works  were  written  in  the  reign  of  Severus, whose  times  we  are  now  recording.

CHAPTER  VII.

The  historian  Judas.

At  this  time,  also,  another  historian,  discoursing  on  the  seventy wrecks  of  Daniel,  extends  his  chronology  down  to  the  tenth  year  f  |
of  the  reign  of  Severus,  w^ho  also  thought  that  the  appearance  1 1
of  antichrist,  so  much  in  the  mouths  of  men,  was  now  fully  al   *
hand.     So  mightily  did  the  agitation  of  persecution,  then  prevail ing,  shake  the  minds  of  many.

2F

22G  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  VIIL

The  resolute  act  of  Origen,
Whilst  at  this  time  Origen  was  performing  the  oflice  of  an elementary  instructor  at  Alexandria,  he  also  carried  a  deed  into effect,  which  would  seem,  indeed,  rather  to  proceed  from  a  youthful understanding  not  yet  matured ;  at  the  same  time,  however, exhibiting  the  strongest  proof  of  his  faith  and  continence.  For understanding  this  expression,  "  There  are  eunuchs  who  have made  themselves  such  (who  have  acted  the  eunuch)  for  the  sake of  the  kingdom  of  heaven,"  in  too  literal  and  puerile  a  sense,  and at  the  same  time  thinking  that  he  would  fulfil  the  words  of  our Saviour,  whilst  he  also  wished  to  preclude  the  unbelievers  from all  occasions  of  foul  slander,  it  being  necessary  for  him,  young  as he  was,  to  converse  on  divine  truth  not  only  with  men  but  with females  also,  he  was  led  on  to  fulfil  the  words  of  our  Saviour  by his  deeds,  expecting  that  it  would  not  be  known  to  the  most  of his  friends.  But  it  was  impossible  for  him,  much  as  he  wished it,  to  conceal  such  an  act.  And  when  it  was  at  last  ascertained by  Demetrius,  the  bishop  of  the  church  there,  well  did  he  admire the  courage  of  the  deed ;  and  perceiving  the  ardour,  and  the soundness  of  his  faith,  he  immediately  exhorts  him  to  cherish  confidence ;  and  at  this  time,  indeed,  urges  him  the  more  to  continue in  his  work  of  instruction.  Such,  indeed,  w^as  his  conduct  then.
But  not  long  after  this,  the  same  Demetrius,  seeing  him  doing well,  great  and  illustrious,  and  celebrated  among  all,  w-as  overcome by  human  infirmity,  and  wrote  against  him  to  the  bishops throughout  the  world,  and  attempted  to  traduce  what  he  had done  as  a  most  absurd  act.  Then,  as  the  most  distinguished bishops  of  Palestine,  and  those  of  Cesarea  and  Jerusalem,  judged Origen  worthy  of  the  first  and  highest  honour,  they  ordained  him to  the  presbytery  by  the  imposition  of  hands.  He  advanced^
therefore,  at  this  time,  to  great  reputation,  and  obtained  a  celebrity among  all  men,  and  no  little  renown  for  his  virtue  and wisdom ;  but  Demetrius,  though  he  had  no  other  charge  to  urge
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  227

than  that  act  which  was  formerly  done  by  him  when  but  a  boy, raised  a  violent  accusation  against  him.  He  attempted,  also,  to involve  those  in  his  accusations  who  had  elevated  him  to  the  presbytery. These  things  were  done  a  long  time  after.  But  Origen performed,  without  fear,  his  labours  of  instruction  at  Alexandria, \ight  and  day,  to  all  that  came ;  devoting  the  whole  of  his  leisure incessantly  to  the  study  of  divine  things,  and  to  those  that  frequented his  school.  In  the  meanwhile,  Severus,  having  held  the government  about  eighteen  years,  was  succeeded  by  his  son  Antoninus. At  this  time,  one  of  those  that  had  courageously  endured the  persecution,  and  who,  by  the  providence  of  God,  had been  preserved  after  the  persecution,  was  Alexander,  who  we have  already  shown  was  bishop  of  the  church  at  Jerusalem,  and had  been  deemed  worthy  of  this  episcopate,  on  account  of  his distinguished  firmness  in  his  confession  of  Christ  during  the  persecution.    This  happened  whilst  Narcissus  w^as  yet  living.

CHAPTEPw   IX.

The  miracle  of  Narcissus.

Many  miracles  are  attributed  to  Narcissus  by  his  countrymen, as  they  received  the  tradition  handed  down  from  the  brethren.
Among  these  they  relate  a  wonderful  event  hke  the  following.
About  the  great  watch  of  the  passover,  they  say,  that  whilst  the deacons  were  keeping  the  vigils  the  oil  failed  them ;  upon  which all  the  people  being  very  much  dejected,  Narcissus  commanded the  men  that  managed  the  lights  to  draw  water  from  a  neighbouring well,  and  to  bring  it  to  him.  He  having  done  it  as  soon as  said.  Narcissus  prayed  over  the  water,  and  then  commanded them  in  a  firm  faith  in  Christ,  to  pour  it  into  the  lamps.  When they  had  also  done  this,  contrary  to  all  natural  expectation,  by an  extraordinary  and  divine  influence,  the  nature  of  the  water was  changed  into  the  quality  of  oil,  and  by  most  of  the  brethren a  small  quantity  was  preserved  from  that  time  until  our  own,  as  a specimen  of  the  wonder  then  performed.  They  relate  also  many 22

228  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

other  matters  worthy  of  note  respecting  the  hfe  of  this  man.
Among  these,  such  as  the  following.  Certain  fellows  not  being able  to  endure  the  firm  and  constant  character  of  his  life,  fearing also  lest  they  should  be  taken  and  punished  for  the  numerous crimes  of  which  they  were  conscious,  endeavoured  to  anticipate him,  by  plotting  an  artifice  against  him.*  They  gave  currency therefore  to  a  foul  slander  against  him.  Then,  in  order  to  make the  hearers  believe,  they  confirmed  their  accusations  with  oaths :
and  one  of  them  swore  that  he  might  perish  with  fire ;  another  that his  body  might  be  wasted  with  a  miserable  and  foul  disease ;  a third  that  he  should  be  deprived  of  his  eyes ;  but  notwithstanding their  oaths,  none  of  the  faithful  heeded  them,  on  account  of  the well  known  continent  and  virtuous  life  which  Narcissus  had  always led.  Unable,  however,  to  endure  the  wickedness  of  these men,  and  having  besides  already  long  before  embraced  a  Hfe  of  contemplation, he  ran  away  from  the  body  of  the  church,  and  continued many  years  concealed  in  deserts  and  trackless  wilds.  But  the omnipotent  eye  of  justice  did  not  remain  inactive  in  the  midst  of these  things ;  but  soon  descended  with  his  judgments  upon  the impious  wretches,  and  bound  them  with  the  curses  they  had invoked.  The  first  indeed,  in  consequence  of  a  light  spark  falling upon  his  habitation  without  any  apparent  cause,  was  burnt with  his  whole  family.  The  next  was  forthwith  covered  with the  disease  which  he  had  imprecated  upon  himself,  from  the  extremity of  his  feet  to  the  top  of  his  head.  But  the  third,  perceiving the  events  of  the  former  two,  and  dreading  the  inevitable judgment  of  the  all-seeing  God,  confessed  indeed  to  all  the slander  which  had  been  concocted  in  common  among  them.  But he  w^as  so  wasted  with  excessive  grieving,  and  so  incessantly  diffused with  tears,  that  at  last  both  his  eyes  were  destroyed.  And these  suffered  the  punishment  due  to  their  calumnies.

*  The  meaning  is,  that  Narcissus  was  so  rigid  in  his  discipUne,  that  these  slanderers could  not  bear  his  uniform  and  exemplary  life,  whilst  they  were  also  afraid of  detection  and  punishment  for  their  own  crimes.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  229

CHAPTER  X.

The  bishops  in  Jerusalem.

Narcissus  having  retired  from  the  world,  and  no  one  knowing whither  he  had  gone,  it  seemed  proper  to  the  bishops  of  the  neighbouring churches,  to  proceed  to  the  ordination  of  another  bishop.
Dius  was  his  name,  who,  after  presiding  over  the  church  a  short time,  was  succeeded  by  Germanio,  and  he  by  Gordins,  in  whose times  Narcissus  appearing  again  as  one  raised  from  the  dead,  was entreated  by  the  brethren  to  undertake  the  episcopate  again ;  all admiring  him  still  more,  both  for  his  retired  life,  and  his  philosophy, and  above  all  on  account  of  the  punishment  inflicted  by  God upon  his  slanderers.

CPIAPTER   XL

Of  Alexander.

But  as  on  account  of  his  extreme  age,  he  was  now  no  longer able  to  perform  the  duties  of  his  office,  by  a  divine  dispensation revealed  in  a  dream  at  night,  the  abovementioned  Alexander, who  was  bishop  of  another  church,  was  called  to  the  office  at the  same  time  with  Narcissus.  Influenced  by  this,  as  if  an  oracle from  God  had  commanded  him,  he  performed  a  journey  from Cappadocia,  where  he  was  first  made  bishop,  to  Jerusalem,  in consequence  of  a  vow  and  the  celebrity  of  the  place.  Whilst he  was  there,  most  cordially  entertained  by  the  brethren,  who would  not  suffer  him  to  return  home,  another  revelation  also  appeared to  them  at  night,  and  uttered  a  most  distinct  communication to  those  that  were  eminent  for  a  devoted  life.  This  communication was,  that  by  going  forth  beyond  the  gates,  they  should receive  the  bishop  pointed  out  to  them  by  God.  Having  done this,  with  the  common  consent  of  the  bishops  of  the  neighbouring churches,  they  constrain  him  to  stay  among  them.     Alexander,
230  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

indeed,  himself  in  his  particular  epistles  to  the  Antinoites,  which are  still  preserved  among  us,  makes  mention  of  the  episcopal office  as  shared  by  himself  with  Narcissus,  in  the  following words,  at  the  end  of  the  epistle :  "  Narcissus  salutes  you,  the same  who  before  me  held  the  episcopate  here,  and  is  now  colleagued  with  me  in  prayers,  being  now  advanced  to  his  hundred and  tenth  year,  and  who  with  me  exhorts  you  to  be  of  one  mind."
Such,  then,  were  these  events.  But  Serapion  dying  at  Antioch, he  was  succeeded  by  Asclepiades;  he  also,  was  distinguished among  the  confessions*  in  the  persecution.  His  consecration  is also  mentioned  by  Alexander,  who  writes  to  the  inhabitants  of Antioch  thus :  "  Alexander,  a  servant  and  prisoner  of  Jesus Christ,  sends,  greeting,  in  the  Lord,  to  the  blessed  church  at  Antioch, in  the  Lord.  The  Lord  has  made  my  bonds  easy  and hght  during  the  time  of  my  imprisonment,  since  I  have  ascertained, that  by  divine  Providence,  Asclepiades,  who  in  regard  to his  faith  is  most  happily  qualified,  has  undertaken  the  trust  of the  episcopate  of  your  holy  church."  This  same  epistle  intimates, that  he  sent  it  by  Clement,  writing  at  the  end  of  it,  as  follows :  "  This  epistle,  my  brethren,  I  have  sent  to  you  by  Clement, the  blessed  presbyter,  a  man  endued  with  all  virtue,  and  well approved,  whom  you  already  know,  and  will  learn  still  more  to know ;  who,  also,  coming  hither,  by  the  providence  and  superintendence of  the  Lord,  has  confirmed  and  increased  the  church of  God."

*  The  primitive  church,  as  is  evident  from  our  author,  distinguished  a  confession from  martyrdom.  The  former  implied  all  sufferings  and  trials  for  the  sake  of  religion, except  the  loss  of  life.  The  latter  was  attended  with  tliis  also.  Hence,  the latter  was  regarded  as  the  highest  grade  of  confession,  and  as  such  the  martyr,  in contradistinction  to  the  confessor,  was  said  to  be  perfected.  The  expression,  therefore, to  be  perfected,  often  occurs  in  our  author,  in  the  sense  of  being  put  to  death.
This  remark  will  explain  the  expression  as  it  occurs  sometimes  in  the  book  of martyrs.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  231

CHAPTER   XIL

SerapioTif  and  the  icritings  ascribed  to  hhm.

Serapion,  however,  it  is  probable,  has  left  many  monuments of  his  application  to  learning,  which  are  preserved  by  others ;  but only  those  that  are  addressed  to  Domninus  have  com.e  down  to us.  He  was  one  of  those  that  had  fallen  away  from  the  faith, at  the  time  of  the  persecution,  and  relapsed  into  Jewish  superstition. Those  epistles,  also,  that  he  addressed  to  Pontus  and  Carious, ecclesiastical  writers,  and  many  others  to  others.  There  is also  another  w^ork  composed  by  him  on  the  gospel  of  Peter,  as  it is  called ;  which,  indeed,  he  wrote  to  refute  the  false  assertions which  it  contains,  an  account  of  some  in  the  church  of  Rhosse,*
who  by  this  work  were  led  astray  to  perverted  doctrines.  From which  it  may  be  w^ell  to  add  some  brief  extracts,  by  which  it may  be  seen  what  he  thought  of  the  book : —

"  We,  brethren,"  says  he,  "  receive  Peter  and  the  other  apostles as  Christ  himself.  But  those  writings  which  falsely  go  under their  name,  as  we  are  well  acquainted  with  them,  w^e  reject,  and know  also,  that  we  have  not  received  such  handed  dow^n  to  us.
But  when  I  came  to  you,  I  had  supposed  that  all  held  to  the  true faith ;  and  as  I  had  not  perused  the  gospel  presented  by  them under  the  name  of  Peter,  I  said,  '  If  this  be  the  only  thing  that creates  difference  among  you,  let  it  be  read ;'  but  now  having understood,  froni  what  was  said  to  me,  that  their  minds  were  enveloped in  some  heresy,  I  will  make  haste  to  come  to  you  again ;
therefore,  brethren,  expect  me  soon.  But  as  we  perceived  what was  the  heresy  of  Marcianus,  we  plainly  saw  that  he  ignorantly contradicted  himself,  which  things  you  may  learn  from  what  has been  written  to  you.  For  we  have  borrowed  this  gospel  from others,  who  have  studied  it,  that  is,  from  the  successors  of  those who  led  the  way  before  him,  whom  we  call  Docetse,  (for  most opinions  have  sprung  from  this  sect.)  And  in  this  we  have  discovered many  things,  superadded  to  the  sound  faith  of  our  Sa
*  Rhosse  was  a  town  of  Cilicia.    Plutarch  calls  it  Orossus,
22^

232  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

viour ;  some  also,  attached  that  are  foreign  to  it,  and  which  we have  also  subjoined  for  your  sake."  Thus  far  of  the  works  of Scrapion.

CHAPTEPc  XIII.

TJie  works  of  Clement.

Of  Clement  there  are,  in  ail,  eight  books  extant,  called  Stromata,*  to  which  he  has  prefixed  the  following  title :  "  Stromata of  G)mmentaries,  by  Titus  Flavius  Clement,  on  the  Knowledge of  the  True  Philosophy."

Equal  in  number  to  these,  are  the  books  that  go  under  the title  of  Hypotyposes,  or  Institutions.  In  these,  he  also  mentions Pantasnus  by  name,  as  his  teacher,  giving  the  opinions  that  he expressed,  and  traditions  that  he  had  received  from  him.  There is  also  a  book  of  exhortation,  addressed  by  him  to  the  Greeks.
Also,  one  entitled  the  Psedagogue,  and  another  with  the  title, "  What  Rich  Man  may  be  saved."  A  work  also  on  the  Passover.
Discussions  also  on  Fasting  and  Detraction.  An  Exhortatation also,  to  Patience,  or  an  Address  to  the  New  Converts.  (Neophytes.) A  work  also,  with  the  title.  Ecclesiastical  Canon,  or  an Address  to  the  Judaizing  (Christians,)  which  he  dedicated  to  the abovementioned  bishop  Alexander.  In  these  Stromata,  he  has not  only  spread  outf  the  divine  Scriptures  (made  a  spreading),  but he  also  quotes  from  the  Gentiles  where  he  finds  any  useful  remark with  them,  elucidating  many  opinions  held  by  the  multitude both  among  the  Greeks  and  barbarians.  Moreover,  he  refutes the  false  opinions  of  the  heresiarchs.     He  also,  reviews  a  great
*  The  Greek  word  siromateus,  which  Clement  prefixed  as  the  title  to  each  of his  books,  means  a  covering,  or  hangings  for  a  table,  or  couch,  mostly  of  various colours.  It  also  signified,  in  later  times,  the  bag  in  which  the  beds  and  covers were  tied  up.  The  former,  however,  gave  rise  to  the  use  of  it  as  a  title  for  books of  various  contents.  Hence,  they  were  miscellanies.  The  plural  of  this  word  is stromates,  or  stromateis,  to  avoid  which  we  use  the  synonymous  stromata.

■j-  Our  author  here  plays  upon  the  title  Stromateus,  giving  us  by  the  way  to  understand what  was  meant  by  the  word,  viz.,  a  variegated  covering  spread  out.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  233

point  of  history,  in  which  he  presents  materials  of  great  variety of  learning.  With  all  these  he  intermixes  the  opinions  of  philosophers; whence,  in  all  probability,  he  took  the  title  Stromata, as  corresponding  to  the  materials  (of  his  book.)  In  these  he  also makes  use  of  testimony  from  the  Antilegomenoi,  the  disputed Scriptures ;  also  from  that  book  called  the  Wisdom  of  Solomon, and  that  of  Jesus  the  son  of  Sirach ;  also  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews, that  of  Barnabas,  and  Clement,  and  Jude.  He  mentions also  the  w^ork  of  Tatian  against  the  Greeks ;  Cassian,  also,  who wrote  a  history  of  the  times  in  chronological  order.  Moreover,  he mentions  the  Jewish  authors  Philo,  and  Aristobulus,  Josephus,  and Demetrius,  and  Eupolemus,  as  all  of  these  in  their  w^orks  prove, that  Moses  and  the  Jewish  nation  are  much  older  than  the  earliest origin  of  the  Greeks.  The  works  of  this  writer  here  mentioned, also  abound  in  a  great  variety  of  other  learning.  In  the  first  of these  he  speaks  of  himself  as  being  the  next  that  succeeded  the apostles,  and  he  promises  in  his  w^orks  also,  to  write  a  commentary on  Genesis ;  also  in  his  treatise  on  the  Passover,  he  acknowledges that  for  the  benefit  of  posterity,  he  was  urged  by  his friends  to  commit  to  writing  those  traditions  that  he  had  heard from  the  ancient  presbyters.  He  mentions,  also,  Melito  and  Irenseus,  and  others,  some  of  whose  narratives  he  also  gives.

CHAPTER  XIV.

The  books  that  Clement  mentions.

In  the  work  called  Hypotyposes,  to  sum  up  the  matter  briefly, he  has  given  us  abridged  accounts  of  all  the  canonical  Scriptures, not  even  omitting  those  that  are  disputed,  (The  Antilegomenoi,)
I  mean  the  book  of  Jude,  and  the  other  general  epistles.  Also  the epistle  of  Barnabas,  and  that  called  the  revelation  of  Peter.  But the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews  he  asserts  was  written  by  Paul,  to  the Hebrews,  in  the  Hebrew  tongue ;  but  that  it  was  carefully  translated by  Luke,  and  published  among  the  Greeks.  Whence,  also, one  finds  the  same  character  of  style  and  of  phraseology  in  the
2G

234  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

epistle,  as  in  the  Acts.  "  But  it  is  probable  that  the  title,  Paul the  Apostle,  was  not  prefixed  to  it.  For  as  he  wrote  to  the  Hebrews, who  had  imbibed  prejudices  against  him,  and  suspected him,  he  wisely  guards  against  diverting  them  from  the  perusal, by  giving  his  name."  A  little  after  this  he  observes :  "  But  now  as the  blessed  presbyter  used  to  say,  '  since  the  Lord  who  was  the apostle  of  the  Almighty,  w^as  sent  to  the  Hebrews,  Paul  by  reason of  his  inferiority,  as  if  sent  to  the  Gentiles,  did  not  subscribe himself  an  apostle  of  the  Hebrews ;  both  out  of  reverence  for the  Lord,  and  because  he  wrote  of  his  abimdance  to  the  Hebrews, as  a  herald  and  apostle  of  the  Gentiles.' "  A  gain,  in  the  same work,  Clement  also  gives  the  tradition  respecting  the  order  of  the gospels,  as  derived  from  the  oldest  presbyters,  as  follows :  "  He says  that  those  which  contain  the  genealogies  were  written  first ;
but  that  the  gospel  of  Mark  was  occasioned  in  the  following manner:  'When  Peter  had  proclaimed  the  word  pubHcly  at Rome,  and  declared  the  gospel  under  the  influence  of  the  spirit  ;
as  there  was  a  great  number  present,  they  requested  Mark,  who had  followed  him  from  afar,  and  remembered  well  what  he  had said,  to  reduce  these  things  to  writing,  and  that  after  composing the  gospel  he  gave  it  to  those  who  requested  it  of  him.  Which, when  Peter  understood,  he  directly  neither  hindered  nor  encouraged it.  But  John,  last  of  all,  perceiving  that  what  had  reference to  the  body  in  the  gospel  of  our  Saviour,  was  sufficiently detailed,  and  being  encouraged  by  his  familiar  friends,  and  urged by  the  spirit,  he  wrote  a  spiritual  gospel.'  "  Thus  far  Clement.
But  again,  the  abovementioned  Alexander  mentions  both  Clement and  Pantsenus,  in  a  certain  epistle  to  Origen,  as  men  with whom  he  was  familiarly  acquainted.  Thus  he  writes  :  "  For  this, thou  knowest  was  the  divine  will,  that  the  friendship  which  has existed  between  us  from  our  ancestors,  should  remain  unshaken, rather  that  it  should  grow  warmer  and  firmer.  For  we  well know  those  blessed  fathers,  that  have  trod  the  path  before  us, and  to  whom  we  ere  long  shall  go.  Panta^nus,  that  truly  blessed man,  my  master,  also  the  holy  Clement,  who  was  both  my  master and  benefactor,  and  whoever  there  may  be  like  them,  by whom  I  have  become  acquainted  with  thee,  my  Lord  and  brother
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  235

surpassing  all."  Such  is  the  complexion  of  these  matters.  But Adamantius,  for  this  too  was  Origen's  name,  whilst  Zephyrimis, at  this  time,  was  bishop  of  the  church  of  Rome,  says  that  he  also came  to  Rome,  being  desirous  of  seeing  the  very  ancient  church of  Rome.  After  no  long  stay,  he  returned  to  Alexandria,  and there  fulfilled  the  duties  of  an  instructor,  with  the  greatest  diligence, in  which  he  w^as  also  encouraged  by  Demetrius  who  was then  bishop,  and  who  earnestly  counselled  him  to  labour  cheerfully for  the  benefit  of  the  brethren.

CHAPTER  XV.

Of  Heradas.

But  when  he  saw  that  he  was  not  adequate  at  the  same  time to  the  more  intense  study  of  divine  things,  and  to  the  interpretation of  the  Scriptures,  and  in  addition  to  the  instruction  of  the catechumens,  who  scarcely  allowed  him  even  to  draw  breath, one  coming  after  another  from  morning  till  night,  to  be  taught  by him,  he  divided  the  multitude,  and  selected  Heraclas,  one  of  his friends,  who  was  devoted  to  the  study  of  the  Scriptures,  and  in other  respects  also  a  most  learned  man,  not  unacquainted  w^ith philosophy,  and  associated  him  with  himself  in  the  oftice  of  instruction. To  him,  therefore,  he  committed  the  elementary  initiation of  those  that  were  yet  to  be  taught  the  first  beginning, or  rudiments,  but  reserved  for  himself  lecturing  to  those  that were  more  familiar  with  the  subject.

CHAPTER    XVI.

The  great  study  ivhich  Origen  devoted  to  the  holy  Scriptures,
But  so  great  was  the  research  which  Origen  applied  in  the investigation  of  the  holy  Scriptures,  that  he  also  studied  the  Hebrew language ;  and  those  original  works  written  in  the  Hebrew
236  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

and  in  the  hands  of  the  Jews,  he  procured  as  his  own.  He  also investigated  the  editions  of  others,  who,  besides  the  seventy,  had published  translations  of  the  Scriptures,  and  some  different  from the  well  known  translations  of  Aquila,  Symmachus  and  Theodotion,  which  he  searched  up,  and  traced  to  I  know  not  what  ancient lurking  places,  where  they  had  lain  concealed  from  remote times,  and  brought  them  to  the  light.  In  which,  when  it  was doubtful  to  him  from  what  author  they  came,  he  only  added  the remark  that  he  had  found  this  translation  at  Nicopolis  near  Actium,  but  this  other  translation  in  such  a  place.  In  the  Hexapla, indeed,  of  the  Psalms,  after  those  four  noted  editions  he  adds,  not only  a  fifth,  but  a  sixth,  and  seventh  translation,  and  in  one  it  is remarked  that  it  was  discovered  at  Jericho,  in  a  tub,  in  the  times of  Antonine  the  son  of  Severus.  Having  collected  all  these  versions, and  divided  them  by  punctuation  into  their  proper  members, and  arranged  them  opposite  one  another  in  parallel  columns, together  with  the  Hebrew  texts,  he  left  us  those  copies of  the  Hexapla  which  we  now  have.  In  a  separate  work  he  also prepared  an  edition  of  Aquila  and  Symmachus,  and  Theodotion, together  with  the  Septuagint,  in  what  is  called  the  Tetrapla.

CHAPTER  XVII.

Of  the  tt^anslator  Symmachus.

Of  these  translators  it  should  be  observed  that  Symmachus  was an  Ebionite ;  but  the  heresy  of  the  Ebionites  as  it  is  called,  asserts that  Christ  was  born  of  Joseph  and  Mary,  and  supposes  him  to be  a  mere  man,  and  insists  upon  an  observance  of  the  law  too much  after  the  manner  of  the  Jews,  as  we  have  already  seen  in a  previous  part  of  our  histor}^  There  are  also  commentaries  of Symmachus  still  extant,  in  wliich  he  appears  to  direct  his  remarks against  the  gospel  of  Matthew,  in  order  to  establish  this heresy.  But  Origen  remarks  that  he  received  these  with  interpretations of  others,  from  one  Juliana,  who,  he  also  said,  de rived  them  by  inheritance  from  Symmachus  himself
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  237

CHAPTER  XVIIl.

Of  Ambrose
About  this  time  also,  Ambrose,  who  had  favoured  the  heres}^
of  Valentinus,  being  convinced  by  the  truth  as  maintained  by Origen,  and  as  if  illuminated  by  a  light  beaming  on  his  mind, became  attached  to  the  sound  doctrine  of  the  church.  Many others,  also,  induced  by  the  celebrity  of  Origen's  learning,  came to  him  from  all  parts,  to  make  trial  of  the  man's  skill  in  sacred literature.  Many  also  of  the  heretics,  and  of  distinguished  philosophers not  a  few,  were  among  his  diligent  hearers,  deriving  instructions from  him,  not  only  in  divine  things  but  also  in  those which  belonged  to  foreign  philosophy.  As  m.any  as  he  saw  endowed wath  abilities,  he  also  taught  the  philosophical  branches, such  as  geometry,  arithmetic,  and  other  preparatory  studies  ;  and then  advancing  them  to  the  opinions  in  vogue  ^  mong  the  philosophers, and  explaining  their  writings,  he  commented  and  speculated upon  each,  so  that  he  was  celebrated  as  a  great  philosopher even  among  the  Greeks.  He  also  instructed  many  of  the  more common  people  in  the  liberal  studies,  asserting  frequently  that they  would  receive  no  small  advantage  from  these  in  understanding the  holy  Scriptures ;  whence  also  he  considered  the  studies of  political  and  philosophical  matters  particularly  necessary  for himself.

CHAPTER  XIX.

The  accounts  given  of  Origen  by  others.

But  the  Gentile  philosophers,  themselves,  among  the  Greeks v»  ho  flourished  in  the  age  of  Origen,  bear  witness  to  his  proficiency in  these  studies,  in  whose  works  we  find  frequent  mention made  of  the  man ;  at  one  time  quoting  his  own  words,  at  another
238  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

referring  their  own  labours  to  his  judgment  as  to  a  master.  Why should  we  say  this,  when  even  Porphyry,  who  was  our  contemporary, wrote  books  against  us,  and  attempted  to  slander  the sacred  writings  ;  when  he  mentioned  those  that  had  expounded them,  and  when  unable  to  urge  any  opprobrious  censure  against the  doctrines,  for  want  of  argument,  he  turned  to  reviling,  and to  slander  especially  the  commentators,  among  whom  he  is  particularly fierce  against  Origen,  saying  that  he  knew  him  when he  was  a  young  man.  But,  in  fact,  without  knowing  it,  he  commends the  man ;  saying  some  things  in  confirmation  of  the  truth when  he  could  not  do  otherwise,  and  in  other  matters  uttering falsehoods  where  lie  thought  he  \vould  not  be  detected.  Sometimes he  accuses  him  as  a  Christian,  and  sometimes  he  admires and  describes  his  proficiency  in  the  branches  of  philosophy.
Hear  his  own  words :  "  But  some,"  says  he,  "  ambitious  rather to  find  some  solution  to  the  absurdities  of  the  Jewish  writings, instead  of  abandoning  them,  have  turned  their  minds  to  expositions, inconsistent  with  themselves, and  inapplicable  to  the  writings;
and  which,  instead  of  furnishing  a  defence  of  these  foreigners, only  give  us  encomiums  and  remarks  in  their  praise.  For  boasting of  what  Moses  says  plainly  in  his  writings,  as  if  they  were  dark and  intricate  propositions,  and  attaching  to  them  divine  influence, as  if  they  were  oracles  replete  with  hidden  mysteries ;  and  in their  vanity  pretending  to  great  discrimination  of  mind,  they  thus produce  their  expositions."

Then,  again,  he  says  :  "  But  let  us  take  an  example  of  this  absurdity, from  the  very  man  whom  I  happened  to  meet  when  1  was very  young,  and  who  was  very  celebrated,  and  is  still  celebrated by  the  writings  that  he  has  left ;  I  mean  Origen,  whose  glory  is very  great  with  the  teachers  of  these  doctrines.  For  this  man having  been  a  hearer  of  Ammonais,  who  had  made  the  greatest proficiency  in  philosophy  among  those  of  our  day,  as  to  knowledge, derived  great  benefit  from  his  master,  but  with  regard  to a  correct  purpose  of  life,  he  pursued  a  course  directly  opposite.
For  Ammonias,  being  a  Christian,  had  been  educated  among Christians  by  his  parents,  and  when  he  began  to  exercise  his  own understanding,  and  apply  himself  to  philosophy,  he  immediately
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  239

changed  his  views,  and  lived  according  to  the  laws.  But  Origen, as  a  Greek,  being  educated  in  Greek  literature,  declined  to  this barbarian  impudence.  To  which,  also,  betaking  himself,  he  both consigned  himself  and  his  attainments  in  learning,  living  like  a Christian,  and  swerving  from  the  laws;  but  in  regard  to  his opinions,  both  of  things  and  the  Deity,  acting  the  Greek,  and  intermingling Greek  literature  with  these  foreign  fictions.  For  he was  always  in  company  with  Plato,  and  had  the  w^orks  also  of Numenius  and  Cranius,  of  Apollophanes  and  Longinus,  of  Moderatus  and  Nicomachus,  and  others  whose  writings  are  valued,  in his  hands.  He  also  read  the  works  of  Chasremon,  the  stoic,  and those  of  Cornutus.  From  these  he  derived  the  allegorical  mode of  interpretation  usual  in  the  mysteries  of  the  Greelts,  and  applied it  to  the  Jewish  Scriptures."

Such  are  the  assertions  made  by  Porphyry,  in  the  third  book of  his  works,  against  the  Christians,  in  which  he  asserts  the  truth respecting  the  study  and  great  learning  of  the  man,  but  also plainly  asserts  a  falsehood  (for  what  would  not  a  man  do  writing against  Christians  ?)  when  he  says  that  he  went  over  from  the Greeks  to  the  Christians,  and  that  Ammonius  apostatised  from  a life  of  piety  to  live  like  the  heathen.  For  the  doctrine  of  Origen, and  his  Christian  instruction,  he  derived  from  his  ancestors,  as  our history  has  already  shown ;  and  Ammonius  continued  to  adhere unshaken,  to  the  end  of  his  days,  to  the  unadulterated  principles of  the  inspired  philosophy.  This  is  evident,  from  the  labours  of \he  man  that  are  extant,  in  his  written  works,  and  that  establishes his  reputation  with  most  men,  even  at  the  present  day.  As,  for instance,  that  work  with  the  title,  "  The  Harmony  of  Moses  and Jesus,"  and  whatsoever  others  are  found  among  the  learntid.
Let  these,  therefore,  suffice  to  evince  both  the  calumnies  of  the false  accuser,  and  also  the  great  proficiency  of  Origen  in  the branches  of  Grecian  literature.  Respecting  this,  he  defends  himself, in  an  epistle,  against  the  allegations  of  some  who  censured him  for  devoting  so  much  study  to  these,  writing,  as  follows :
"  But,"  says  he,  "  when  I  had  devoted  myself  wholly  to  the  word, and  my  fame  went  abroad  concerning  my  proficiency,  as  I  was sometimes  visited  by  heretics,  sometimes  by  those  who  were  con23

240  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

versant  with  the  studies  of  the  Greeks,  especially  those  that were  pursuing  philosophy,  I  was  resolved  to  examine  both  the opinions  of  the  heretics,  and  those  works  of  the  philosophers which  pretend  to  speak  of  truth.  This  we  have  also  done,  in imitation  of  Panteenus,  by  whom  so  many  have  been  benefited before  us,  and  who  was  not  meanly  furnished  with  erudition  like this.  In  this  I  have  also  followed  the  example  of  Heraclas,  who has  now  a  seat  in  the  presbytery  of  Alexandria,  who  I  have found  persevered  five  years  with  a  teacher  of  philosophy  before I  began  to  attend  to  these  studies.  Wherefore,  also,  as  he  had before  used  a  common  dress,  he  threw  it  aside,  and  assuming  the habit  of  philosophers,  he  retains  it  even  until  now.  He  also  still continues  to  criticise  the  works  of  the  Greeks  with  great  diligence." These  remarks  were  made  by  Origen,  when  he  defended himself  for  his  application  to  the  study  of  the  Greeks.

About  the  same  time,  also,  whilst  he  was  staying  at  Alexandria, a  soldier  arriving,  handed  a  letter  both  to  Demetrius,  the bishop  of  the  place,  and  to  the  prefect  of  Egypt,  from  the  governor of  Arabia ;  the  purport  of  which  was  that  he  should  send  Origen to  him,  in  all  haste,  in  order  to  communicate  to  him  his  doctrine.
Wherefore  he  was  sent  by  them.  But,  ere  long,  having  finished the  objects  of  his  visit,  he  again  returned  to  Alexandria.  Some time  after,  however,  when  a  considerable  war  broke  out  in  the city,  he  made  his  escape  out  of  the  city ;  and  not  thinking  it  would be  safe  to  stay  in  Egypt,  came  to  Palestine,  and  took  up  his abode  in  Cesarea.  There  he  was  also  requested  by  the  bishops to  expound  the  sacred  Scriptures  publicly  in  the  church,  although he  had  not  yet  obtained  the  priesthood  by  the  imposition  of  hands.
This  might  also  be  shown,  from  what  was  written  to  Demetrius respecting  him,  by  Alexander  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  and  Theoctistus  bishop  of  Cesarea,  who  defended  him  in  the  following  manner :  * — "  He  has  added  (i.  e.  Demetrius)  to  his  letter,  that  this was  never  before  either  heard  or  done,  that  laymen  should  deliver discourses  in  the  presence  of  the  bishops.  I  know  not  how it  happens  that  he  is  here  evidently  so  far  from  the  truth.     For,
*  Demetrius  is  here  addressed,  by  way  of  respect,  in  the  third  person.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  241

indeed,  wheresoever  there  are  found  those  qualified  to  benefit  the brethren,  these  are  exhorted  by  the  holy  bishops  to  address  the people.  Thus  at  Laranda,  Euelpis  was  exhorted  by  Neon,  and at  Iconium,  Paulinus  by  Celsus,  and  at  Synada,  Theodore  by Atticus,  our  blessed  brethren.  It  is  also  probable,  that  this  has happened  in  other  places,  but  we  know  not  that  it  has."  In  this way  the  selfsame  Origen  was  honoured,  when  yet  a  young  man, not  only  by  his  own  familiar  friends,  but  also  by  bishops  abroad.
But  Demetrius,  recalling  him  by  letter,  and  urging  his  return  to Alexandria,  by  sending  members  and  deacons  of  the  church,  he returned  and  pursued  the  accustomed  duties  of  his  occupation.

CHAPTER    XX.

The  works  of  the  writers  of  the  day  still  extant.

Many  learned  men  of  the  church  also  flourished  in  these times,  of  whom  we  may  easily  find  epistles,  which  they  wrote  to one  another,  still  extant.  These  have  been  also  preserved  for  us in  the  library  of  JElia,  which  was  built  by  Alexander,  who  was bishop  there.  From  this  we  have  also  been  able  to  collect  materials for  our  present  work.  Of  these  Beryllus  has  lei^t  us,  together with  epistles  and  treatises,  also  different  kinds  of  works written  with  elegance  and  taste.  But  he  was  bishop  of  Bostra in  Arabia.  Hippolytus,  also,  who  was  bishop  of  another  church, has  left  us  some  works.  There  is  beside,  a  discussion  that  has come  down  to  us,  of  Caius,  a  most  learned  man,  held  at  Rome  in the  times  of  Zephyrinus,  against  Proclus,  who  contended  for  the Phrygian  heresy.  In  which,  whilst  he  silences  the  rashness and  daring  of  his** opponents  in  composing  new  books,  (z.  e.  of Scripture,)  he  makes  mention  of  only  thirteen  epistles,  not  reck oning  that  to  the  Hebrews  with  the  rest ;  as  there  are,  even  to this  day,  some  of  the  Romans  who  do  not  consider  it  to  be  the work  of  the  apostles.

2H

242  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XXL

The  bishops  that  were  noted  at  this  time.

Antonine  reigned  seven  years  and  six  months,  and  was  succeeded by  Macrinus ;  and  he,  after  the  lapse  of  a  year,  was  succeeded by  another  Antonine,  in  the  sovereignty  of  Rome.  In  the first  year  of  the  latter,  Zephyrinus  the  bishop  of  Rome,  departed this  life,  after  having  charge  of  the  church  eighteen  years.
He  was  succeeded  in  the  episcopate  by  CaUisthus,  who  survived him  five  years,  and  left  the  church  to  Urbanus.  After  these  the government  of  Rome  was  held  by  the  emperor  Alexander,  Antonine having  Hved  only  four  years  from  the  commencement  of his  reign.  At  this  time  also,  Phil  etas  succeeds  Asclepiades  in the  church  of  Antioch.  But  Mamasa,  the  emperor's  mother,  a woman  distinguished  for  her  piety  and  religion,  when  the  fame of  Origen  had  now  been  every  where  spread  abroad,  so  that  it also  reached  her  ears,  was  very  eager  both  to  be  honoured  with a  sight  of  the  man,  and  to  make  trial  of  his  skill  in  divine  things so  greatly  extolled.  Therefore,  whilst  staying  at  Alexandria,  she sent  for  him  by  a  military  escort.  With  her  he  staid  some  time, exhibiting  innumerable  matters  calculated  to  promote  the  glory of  the  Lord,  and  to  evince  the  excellence  of  divine  instruction, after  which  he  hastened  back  again  to  his  accustomed  engagements.

CHAPTER  XXIL

The  icorJiS  of  Hippolytus,  that  have  reached  us.

At  the  same  time,  Hippolytus,  who  composed  many  other treatises,  also  wrote  a  w^ork  on  the  passover.  In  this  he  traces back  the  series  of  times,  and  presents  a  certain  canon  comprising a  period  of  sixteen  years,  on  the  Passover,  limiting  his  computation of  the  times  to  the  first  year  of  the  emperor  Alexander.

ECCLESIASTICAL  fflSTORY.  243

But  the  remaining  works  written  by  him,  that  have  come  down to  us,  are  the  following :  On  the  Hexaemeron,  On  the  Works  after the  Hexaemeron,  To  Marcion,  On  the  Canticles,  On  parts  of  Ezekiel,  On  the  Passover,  Against  all  the  Heresies.  You  will  also find  many  others  still  preserved  by  many.

CHAPTER  XXIII.

Origen's  zeal,  and  his  elevation  to  Vie  priesthood.

From  this  time,  however,  Origen  began  his  Commentaries  on the  sacred  Scriptures,  to  which  he  was  particularly  urged  by Ambrose,  who  presented  innumerable  incentives,  not  only  by verbal  exhortation,  but  by  furnishing  the  most  ample  supplies  of all  necessary  means ;  for  he  had  more  than  seven  amanuenses, when  he  dictated,  who  relieved  each  other  at  appointed  times.
He  had  not  fewer  copyists,  as  also  girls,  who  were  well  exercised in  more  elegant  writing.  For  all  which,  Ambrose  furnished  an abundant  supply  of  all  the  necessary  expense.  And,  indeed  he, for  his  own  part,  evinced  an  inexpressible  zeal  in  the  study  of  the sacred  Scriptures,  by  which  also  he  particularly  stimulated Origen  to  write  his  Commentaries.  Whilst  this  was  the  state  of things.  Urban,  who  had  been  bishop  of  Rome  eight  years,  was succeeded  by  Pontianus.  At  Antioch,  Philetus  was  succeeded  by Zebinus.  At  this  time  Origen,  being  compelled  by  some  necessary affairs  of  the  church,  went  to  Greece  by  way  of  Palestine,  where he  received  the  ordination  to  the  priesthood,  at  Cesarea,  from  the bishops  of  that  country.  The  matters  that  were  agitated  upon this  in  reference  to  him,  and  the  decisions  of  the  bishops  of  the churches,  in  consequence  of  these  movements,  and  whatsoever other  works  he  wrote  in  the  prime  of  his  life,  to  advance  the divine  word,  as  it  demands  a  separate  treatise,  we  have  sufciently  stated  in  the  second  book  of  the  work  we  have  written
in  his  defence.

•23^

244  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XXIV.

The  expositions  he  gave  at  Alexandria.

To  these  it  might  be  necessary,  perhaps,  to  add,  that  in  the sixth  book  of  his  exegetical  works  on  the  gospel  of  John,  he shows  that  the  first  five  were  composed  by  him  whilst  yet  at Alexandria.  But  of  the  whole  work  on  this  gospel,  only  twentytwo  books  have  come  down  to  us.  But  in  the  ninth  book  on  Genesis, for  there  are  twelve  in  all,  he  not  only  shows  that  the  eight preceding  ones  were  written  at  Alexandria,  but  also,  his  commentaries on  the  first  five  and  twenty  Psalms.  Moreover,  those on  Lamentations,  of  which  five  books  have  reached  us,  in  which he  also  makes  mention  of  his  books  on  the  resurrection.  But these  are  two  in  number.  Likewise,  the  works  on  the  Principles were  written  before  his  removal  from  Alexandria,  and  also  those entitled  Stromata,  in  number  ten,  he  composed  in  the  same  city during  the  reign  of  the  emperor  Alexander,  as  is  shown  by  his own  notes,  fully  written  out  before  the  books.

CHAPTER  XXV.

His  revieiv  of  the  collective  Scriptures.

In  his  exposition  of  the  first  Psalm,  he  has  given  a  catalogue of  the  books  in  the  sacred  Scriptures  of  the  Old  Testament,  as follows :  "  But  it  should  be  observed  that  the  collective  books,  as handed  down  by  the  Hebrews,  are  twenty-two,  according  to  the number  of  letters  in  their  alphabet."  After  some  further  remarks, he  subjoins :  "  These  twenty-two  books,  according  to  the Hebrews,  are  as  follows,  '  That  which  is  called  Genesis,  but  by the  Hebrews,  from  the  beginning  of  the  book,  Bresith,  which means,  in  the  beginning.     Exodus,  Walesmoth,*  which  means,
*  We  have  here  given  the  Hebrew  pronunciation  according  to  Origen's  Greek, which  differs  sometimes  from  the  common  pronunciation ;  allowance  must  also  be made  for  the  pronunciation  of  the  Greek  itself.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  245

these  are  the  names.  Leviticus,  Waikra,  and  he  called.  Numbers, Anmesphekodlim.  Deuteronomy,  Elle  haddabarim,  that  is, these  are  the  words.  Jesus  the  son  of  Nave,  in  Hebrew,  Joshue ben  Nun.  Judges  and  Ruth,  in  one  book,  with  the  Hebrew^s, which  they  call  Sophetim.  Of  Kings,  the  first  and  second,  one book,  with  them  called  Samuel,  the  called  of  God.  The  third and  fourth  of  Kings,  also  in  one  book  with  them,  and  called, Wahammelech  Dabid,*  which  means,  and  king  David.  The first  and  second  book  of  the  Paralipomena,  contained  in  one volume  with  them,  and  called  Dibre  Hamaim,  which  means  the words,  i.  e.  the  records  of  days.  The  first  and  second  of  Esdras, in  one,  called  Ezra,  i.  e.  an  assistant.  The  book  of  Psalms,  sepher Thehillim.  The  Proverbs  of  Solomon,  Misloth.  Ecclesiastes, Coheleth.  The  Song  of  Songs,  Sir  Hasirim.  Isaiah,  lesaia.
Jeremiah,  with  the  Lamentations,  and  his  Epistle,  in  one,  Jeremiah. Daniel,  Daniel.  Ezekiel,  Jeezkel.  Job,  Job.  Esther, also  with  the  Hebrews,  Esther.  Besides  these,  there  are,  also, the  Maccabees,  which  are  inscribed  Sarbeth  sarbane  el' "

These,  then,  are  the  books  that  he  mentions  in  the  book  mentioned above.  But  in  the  first  book  of  his  Commentaries  on  the gospel  of  Matthew,  following  the  Ecclesiastical  Canon,  he  attests that  he  knows  of  only  four  gospels,  as  follows :  "  As  I  have  understood from  tradition,  respecting  the  four  gospels,  which  are the  only  undisputed  ones  in  the  whole  church  of  God  throughout the  world.  The  first  is  written  according  to  Matthew,  the  same that  was  once  a  publican,  but  afterwards  an  apostle  of  Jesus Christ,  who  having  published  it  for  the  Jewish  converts,  wrote  it in  the  Hebrew.  The  second  is  according  to  Mark,  \vho  composed it,  as  Peter  explained  to  him,  whom  he  also  acknowledges as  his  son  in  his  general  Epistle,  saying,  '  The  elect  church  in Babylon,  salutes  you,  as  also  Mark  my  son.'  And  the  third, according  to  Luke,  the  gospel  commended  by  Paul,  which  was
*  David  is  here  written  with  a  f^,  and  we  have  given  it  according  to  our  usual Greek  pronunciation.  But  Origen  appears  to  have  pronounced  the  beta  as  vj  as also  the  Septuagint,  who,  in  several  instances  give  the  name  Ay-iiT,  from  the  Hebrew, where  it  would  be  impossible  to  suppose  they  had  the  sound  of  b.  Some  of the  older  grammarians,  as  Clenardus,  follow  the  same  pronunciation.

246  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

written  for  the  converts  from  the  Gentiles,  and  last  of  all  the gospel  according  to  John.     And  in  the  fifth  book  of  his  Commentaries on  John,  the  same  author  writes  as  follows  :  "  But  he being  well  fitted  to  be  a  minister  of  the  New  Testament,  Paul,  1
mean  a  minister  not  of  the  letter  but  of  the  spirit ;  who,  after spreading  the  gospel  from  Jerusalem  and  the  country  around  as far  as  Illyricum,  did  not  even  write  to  all  the  churches  to  which he  preached,  but  even  to  those  to  whom  he  wrote  he  only  sent  a few  lines.     But  Peter,  upon  whom  the  church  of  Christ  is  built, against  which  the  gates  of  hell  shall  not  prevail,  has  left  one epistle  undisputed.     Suppose,  also,  the  second  was  left  by  him, for  on  this  there  is  some  doubt.     AVhat  shall  we  say  of  him  who reclined  upon  the  breast  of  Jesus,  I  mean  John  ?  who  has  left one  gospel,  in  which  he  confesses  that  he  could  write  so  many that  the  whole  world  could  not  contain  them.  He  also  wrote  the Apocalypse,  commanded  as  he  was,  to  conceal,  and  not  to  write the  voices  of  the  seven  thunders.     He  has  also  left  an  epistle consisting  of  very  few  lines ;  suppose,  also,  that  a  second  and  third is  from  him,  for  not  all  agree  that  they  are  genuine,  but  both  together do  not  contain  a  hundred  lines."     To  these  remarks  he also  adds  the  following  observation  on  the  Epistle  to  the  Hebrews, in  his  homilies  on  the  same :  "  The  style  of  the  Epistle with  the  title,  '  To  the  Hebrew^s,'  has  not  that  vulgarity  of  diction which  belongs  to  the  apostle,  who  confesses  that  he  is  but common  in  speech,  that  is  in  his  phraseology.      But  that  this epistle  is  more  pure  Greek  in  the  composition  of  its  phrases, every  one  will  confess  who  is  able  to  discern  the  difference  of style.     Again,  it  will  be  obvious  that  the  ideas  of  the  epistle  are admirable,  and  not  inferior  to  any  of  the  books  acknowledged  to be  apostolic.     Every  one  will  confess  the  truth  of  this,  who  attentively reads  the  apostle's  writings."      To  these  he  afterwards again  adds:  "But  I  would  say,  that  the  thoughts  are  the  apostle's, but  the  diction  and  phraseology  belong  to  some  one  who  has recorded  what  the  apostle  said,  and  as  one  who  noted  down  at  his leisure  what  his  master  dictated.     If  then,  any  church  considers this  epistle  as  coming  from  Paul,  let  it  be  commended  for  this, for  neither    did  those  ancient  men  deliver  it  as  such  without
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  247

cause.  But  who  it  was  that  really  wrote  the  epistle,  God  only knows.  The  account,  however,  that  has  been  current  before  us is,  according  to  some,  that  Clement  who  was  bishop  of  Rome wTote  the  epistle :  according  to  others,  that  it  was  written  by Luke,  who  wrote  the  gospel  and  the  Acts.  But  let  this  suffice on  these  subjects.

CHAPTER   XXVI.

Heraclas  succeeds  to  the  episcopate  of  Alexandna,
But  this  was  the  tenth  year  of  the  abovementioned  reign  (of Alexander,)  in  which  Origen,  after  removing  from  Alexandria  to Cesarea,  left  his  school  for  catechetical  instruction  there  in  the charge  of  Heraclas.  But  ere  long  Demetrius,  the  bishop  of  the church  of  Alexandria,  died,  having  performed  the  duties  of  the office,  upon  the  whole,  forty-three  years.  He  was  succeeded  by Heraclas.  About  this  time  also  flourished  Firmilianus  bishop  of Cesarea  in  Cappadocia.

CHAPTER  XXVII.
Hoiv  the  bishops  regarded  him.

This  bishop  was  so  favourably  disposed  tow^ards  Origen,  that he  then  called  him  to  the  regions  in  which  he  dwelt,  to  benefit the  churches ;  at  another  time,  he  went  to  visit  him  in  Judea,  and passed  some  time  with  him  there,  for  the  sake  of  improvement in  things  divine.  Moreover  Alexander,  the  bishop  of  Jerusalem, and  Theoctistus,  bishop  of  Cesarea,  attending  him  the  whole time  nearly  like  pupils  their  master,  allowed  him  alone  to  perform the  duties  of  expounding  the  sacred  Scriptures,  and  other matters  that  pertain  to  the  doctrines  of  the  church.

24R  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER   XXVIIL

The  persecution  under  Maximinus.

But  the  emperor  Alexander  being  carried  off  after  a  reign  of thirteen  years,  was  succeeded  by  Maximinus,  who,  inflamed  with hatred  against  the  house  of  Alexander,  consisting  of  many  believers, raised  a  persecution,  and  commanded  at  first  only  the heads  of  the  churches  to  be  slain,  as  the  abettors  and  agents  of evangelical  truth.  It  w^as  then  that  Origen  wrote  his  book  on Martyrdom,  which  he  dedicated  to  Ambrose  and  Protoctetus a  presbyter  of  the  church  at  Cesarea,  because  both  of  these  encountered no  common  danger  in  the  persecution.  In  which  also it  is  said  that  these  men  were  pre-eminent  for  (persevering  in)
their  confession,  as  Maximinus  did  not  reign  longer  than  three years.  Origen  has  assigned  the  time  of  this  persecution,  both  in the  twenty-second  book  of  his  G)mmentaries  on  John,  and  in  different epistles.

CHAPTER  XXIX.

Of  Fabianus,  ivJio  icas  remarkably  appointed  bishop  of  Rome  by  a divine  communication.

GoRDiAN  succeeded  Maximinus  in  the  sovereignty  of  Rome, w^hen  Pontianus  who  had  held  the  episcopate  six  years,  W'as  succeeded by  Anteros  in  the  church  of  Rome ;  he  also  is  succeeded by  Fabianus,  after  having  been  engaged  in  the  service  about  a month.  It  is  said  that  Fabianus  had  come  to  Rome  with  some others  from  the  country,  and  staying  there  in  the  most  remarkable manner,  by  divine  and  celestial  grace,  was  advanced  to  be  one  of the  candidates  for  the  office.  When  all  the  brethren  had  assembled in  the  church,  for  the  purpose  of  ordaining  him  that  should succeed  in  the  episcopate,  though  there  were  very  many  eminent and  illustrious  men  in  the  expectation  of  many,  Fabianus  being
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  249

present,  no  one  thought  of  any  other  man.  They  relate,  further, that  a  dove  suddenly  flying  down  from  on  high,  sat  upon  his head,  exhibiting  a  scene  like  that  of  the  holy  Spirit  once  descending upon  our  Saviour  in  the  form  of  a  dove.  Upon  this  the whole  body  exclaimed,  with  all  eagerness  and  with  one  voice,  as if  moved  by  the  one  spirit  of  God,  that  he  was  worthy;  and without  delay  they  took  and  placed  him  upon  the  episcopal  throne.
At  the  same  time  Zebinus,  bishop  of  Antioch,  dying,  was  succeeded in  the  government  (of  the  church,)  by  Babylas,  and  at Alexandria,  Demetrius  held  the  episcopate  forty- three  years,  and was  succeeded  in  the  office  by  Heraclas.  But  in  the  catechetical school  there,  he  was  succeeded  by  Dionysius,  who  was  also  one of  Origen's  pupils.

CHAPTER  XXX.

The  pupils  of  Origen.

Whilst  Origen  was  attending  to  his  accustomed  duties  at  Cesarea,  many  frequented  his  school,  not  only  of  the  residents  of the  place,  but  also  innumerable  others  from  abroad,  who  left their  country  in  order  to  attend  his  lectures.  Of  these  the  most noted  whom  we  know  is  Thedorus,  known  also  by  the  name  of Gregory,  and  so  celebrated  among  the  bishops  of  our  day ;  also his  brother  Athenodorus.  Origen,  seeing  them  excessively  wrapt in  the  prosecution  of  the  studies  of  the  Greeks  and  Romans,  infused into  them  the  love  of  philosophy,  and  induced  them  to  exchange their  former  zeal  for  the  study  of  divine  things.  But after  being  with  him  five  years,  they  made  such  improvement  in the  divine  oracles,  that  both,  though  very  young,  were  honoured with  the  episcopate  in  the  churches  of  Pontus.

21

250  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XXXL

Gf  Africanus.

At  this  time,  also,  flourished  Africanus,  who  wrote  the  books with  the  title  Cesti*  There  is  an  epistle  of  his  extant,  addressed to  Origen,  in  which  he  intimates  his  doubts  on  the  history  of  Susannah, in  Daniel,  as  if  it  were  a  spurious  and  fictitious  composition. To  which  Origen  wrote  a  very  full  answer.  Other  works of  the  same  Africanus  that  have  reached  us,  are  his  five  books of  Chronography,  a  most  accurate  and  laboured  performance.
In  these,  he  says  that  he  had  gone  to  Alexandria,  on  account  of the  great  celebrity  of  Heraclas,  the  same  that  we  have  already shown  was  advanced  to  the  episcopate  there,  and  who  was,  also, very  eminent  for  his  sldll  in  philosophical  studies,  and  the  other sciences  of  the  Greeks.  Another  epistle  of  the  same  Africanus IS  also  extant,  addressed  to  Aristides,  on  the  supposed  discrepancy between  Matthew  and  Luke  in  the  genealogy  of  Christ.  In  this he  most  clearly  establishes  the  consistency  of  the  two  evangelists, from  an  account  which  had  been  handed  down  from  his  ancestors, which,  in  its  proper  place,  we  have  already  anticipated  in the  first  book  of  the  work  we  have  in  hand.

CHAPTEU  XXXII.

The  Commentarit  s  that  Origen  wrote  in  Palestine
About  this  time,  also,  Origen  composed  his  Commentary  on Isaiah,  as  also  on  Ezekiel.  Of  the  former,  thirty  books  *  have come  down  to  us  as  far  as  the  third  part  of  Isaiah,  until  (the chapter  beginning)  the  vision  of  the  beast  in  the  desert.     On
*  The  word  t^/^o?,  from  winch  we  get  tome,  properly  signifies  a  section;  and  as the  sections  of  a  work  were  sometimes  on  different  scrolls,  hence  they  were  called books,  volumes,  and  ro//.oi.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  251

Ezekiel  there  are  twenty-five  books,  which  are  all  that  he  wrote upon  this  prophet.  But  when  he  came  to  Athens,  he,  indeed, finished  his  Commentaries  on  Ezekiel,  but  also  commenced  his Notes  on  the  Song  of  Solomon,  and  advanced  there  as  far  as  the fifth  book.  But  on  his  return  to  Cesarea,  he  also  brought  these to  a  close,  in  number  ten.  Why  should  we,  however,  give  a minute  statement  of  the  man's  labours,  a  performance,  in  itself, that  would  require  a  separate  and  distinct  work  ?  And,  indeed, this  has  already  been  done  by  us  in  our  life  of  Pamphilus^  that holy  martyr  of  our  day,  in  which,  after  exhibiting  the  great zeal  of  Pamphilus,  we  also  subjoin  the  catalogues  of  the  Hbrary collected  by  him,  of  the  works  written  by  Origen  and  other  ecclesiastical writers.  By  which  any  one  that  wishes  may  most satisfactorily  learn  what  works  of  Origen  have  come  down  to us.

CHAPTER  XXXIII.

The  error  of  Beryllus.

Beryllus,  who  was  mentioned  a  Httle  before,  as  bishop  of  Bostra in  Arabia,  perverting  the  doctrine  of  the  church,  attempted  to  in troduce  certain  opinions  that  are  foreign  to  Christian  faith,  daring to  assert  that  our  Lord  and  Saviour  did  not  exist  in  the  proper sense  of  existence,  before  his  dw^elling  among  men ;  neither  had he  a  proper  divinity,  but  only  that  divinity  which  dwelt  in  him from  the  Father.  As  the  bishops  had  many  examinations  and discussions  on  this  point  with  the  man,  Origen,  who  was  also  invited together  with  the  rest,  at  first  entered  into  conversation with  him,  in  order  to  ascertain  what  opinion  the  man  held.
But  when  he  understood  what  he  advanced,  after  correcting  his error,  by  reasoning  and  demonstration,  he  convinced  him,  and thus  recovered  him  to  the  truth  in  doctrine,  and  brought  him back  again  to  the  former  sound  opinion.  There  are  also  works still  extant,  both  of  Beryllus  and  the  synod  that  was  held  on  his 24

252  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

account,  containing  the  questions  put  to  him  by  Origen,  and  the discussions  held  in  his  church,  together  with  all  that  was  dono there.  Innumerable  other  facts  are  reported  by  our  elder brethren,  which  I  have  thought  proper  to  pass  by,  as  having  no reference  to  the  objects  of  the  present  work ;  but  whatsoever  it was  necessary  to  select  of  matters  concerning  him,  these  may  be collected  from  that  defence  of  him  which  we  and  Pamphilus, that  holy  martyr  of  our  times,  have  written,  which  work  we  performed jointly,  in  order  to  obviate  the  malevolence  of  some.

CHAPTER  XXXIV.

Of  Philip  Cesar.

GoRDiAxus  had  held  the  government  of  Rome  six  years,  when he  was  succeeded  by  Philip,  together  with  his  son  Philip.  It  is said  that,  as  a  Christian,  on  the  day  of  the  last  vigil  of  the  passover,  he  wished  to  share  with  the  multitude  in  the  prayers  of  the church,  but  was  not  permitted  by  the  existing  bishop  to  enter before  he  had  confessed  liis  sins,  and  numbered  himself  with  those who  were  referred  to  transgressors,  and  had  space  for  repentance. For  otherwise  he  would  never  be  received  by  him,  unless he  first  did  this,  on  account  of  the  many  crimes  which  he  had committed.  The  emperor  is  said  to  have  obeyed  cheerfully,  and exhibited  a  genuine  and  religious  disposition  in  regard  to  his  fear of  God.

CHAPTER  XXXV.

Diony silts  succeeds  Heraclas  in  the  episcopate.

In  the  third  year  of  this  reign  also,  Heraclas  dying,  after  an episcopate  of  sixteen  years,  was  succeeded  by  Dionysius  in  the supervision  of  the  church  of  Alexandria.

/

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  253

CHAPTER  XXXVL

Other  icorks  written  hy  Origen,
Thex  also,  as  was  to  be  expected,  our  religion  spreading  more and  more,  and  our  brethren  beginning  to  converse  more  freely with  all,  Origen,  who  they  say  was  now  more  than  sixty  years of  age,  and  who  from  long  practice  had  acquired  the  greatest facility  in  discoursing,  permitted  his  discourses  to  be  taken  down by  ready  writers,  a  thing  which  he  had  never  allowed  before.
At  this  time,  also,  he  composed  in  eight  books  a  reply  to  that work  \witten  against  us  by  Celsus  the  Epicurean,  bearing  the title,  "  The  True  Doctrine,"  and  the  twenty-five  books  on  Matthew's gospel,  those  also  on  the  twelve  apostles,  of  which  we  have found  only  twenty-five.  There  is  also  an  epistle  of  his  extant, addressed  to  the  emperor  Philip,  and  another  to  his  wife  Severa ;
several  others  also  to  different  persons.  Of  these  as  many  as we  have  been  able  to  collect,  scattered  in  the  hands  of  different individuals,  we  have  reduced  to  certain  distinct  books,  in  number exceeding  one  hundred.  But  he  also  wrote  to  Fabianus  bishop of  Rome,  and  to  many  others  of  the  bishops  of  churches  respecting his  orthodoxy  ;  and  of  these  you  have  the  proofs  in  the  sixth book  of  our  Apology  for  the  man.

CHAPTER  XXXVIL

The  dissension  of  the  Arabians.

But  about  this  time,  also,  other  men  sprung  up  in  Arabia  as the  propagators  of  false  opinions.  These  asserted,  that  the  human soul,  as  long  as  the  present  state  of  the  world  existed,  perished at  death  and  died  with  the  body,  but  that  it  v/ould  be raised  again  with  the  body  at  the  time  of  the  resurrection.  And as  a  considerable  council  was  held  on  account  of  this,  Origen being  again  requested,  likewise  here  discussed  the  point  in  ques
254  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

tion  with  so  much  force,  that  those  who  had  been  before  led astray,  completely  changed  their  opinions.

CHAPTER  XXXVIIL

The  heresy  of  the  Helcesaites.

Another  error  also  sprung  up  about  this  time,  called  the  heresy of  the  Helcesaites,  which,  however,  was  almost  stifled  in its  birth.  But  it  is  mentioned  by  Origen,  in  his  public  lecture on  the  eighty-second  Psalm  :  "  A  certain  one,  says  he,  came  recently with  a  great  opinion  of  his  abilities,  to  maintain  that  ungodly and  wicked  error  of  the  Helcesaites,  which  has  but  lately appeared  in  the  churches.  The  mischievous  assertions  of  this heresy,  I  will  give  you,  that  you  may  not  be  carried  away  with it.  It  sets  aside  certain  parts  of  the  collective  Scriptures,  and  it makes  use  of  passages  from  the  Old  Testament,  and  from  the gospels.  It  rejects  the  apostle  altogether.  It  asserts,  also,  to deny  (Christ)  is  indifferent,  and  that  one  who  has  made  up  his mind,  in  case  of  necessity  will  deny  with  his  mouth,  but  not  in  his heart.  They  also  produce  a  certain  book,  which  they  say  fell from  heaven  :  and  that  whoever  has  heard  and  believed  this, will  receive  remission  of  sins ;  a  remission  different  from  that given  by  Christ."     And  such  is  the  account  respecting  these.

CHAPTER  XXXIX.

The  persecution  of  Decius.

PmLip,  after  a  reign  of  seven  years,  was  succeeded  by Decius,  who,  in  consequence  of  his  hatred  to  Philip,  raised  a persecution  against  the  church,  in  which  Fabianus  suffered  martyrdom, and  was  succeeded  as  bishop  of  Rome  by  Cornehus.
— In  Palestine,  however,  Alexander,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  was again  brought  before  the  tribunal  of  the  governor,  at  Cesarea, and  after   an  eminent  perseverance    in  his   profession,  though
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  255

crowned  with  the  hoary  locks  of  venerable  age,  he  was  cast into  prison.  After  giving  a  splendid  and  illustrious  testimony  at the  governor's  tribunal,  and  expiring  in  prison,  he  was  succeeded by  Mazabanes  as  bishop  of  Jerusalem.  But  Babylas,  like Alexander,  dying  in  prison  at  Antioch,  after  his  confession,  the church  there  was  governed  by  Fabius.  But  the  number  and greatness  of  Origen's  sufferings  there  during  the  persecution,  and the  nature  of  his  death,  when  the  spirit  of  darkness  drew  up  his forces,  and  waged  a  w^ar  with  all  his  arts  and  power  against  the man,  and  assailed  him  particularly  beyond  all  that  were  then  assaulted by  him;  the  nature  and  number  of  bonds  which  the man  endured  on  account  of  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  and  all  his torments  of  body,  the  sufferings  also  which  he  endured  under an  iron  collar,  and  in  the  deepest  recesses  of  the  prison,  when for  many  days  he  was  extended  and  stretched  to  the  distance  of four  holes  on  the  rack;  besides  the  threats  of  fire,  and  whatsoever other  sufferings  inflicted  by  his  enemies  he  nobly  bore,  and finally  the  issue  of  these  sufferings,  when  the  judge  eagerly strove  with  all  his  might  to  protract  his  life  (in  order  to  prolong his  sufferings,)  and  what  expressions  after  these  he  left  behind, replete  with  benefit  to  those  needing  consolation,  all  this  the  many epistles  of  the  man  detail  with  no  less  truth  than  accuracy.

CHAPTER  XL.

What  happened  to  Dionysius.

I  SHALL  now  subjoin  the  occurrences  that  befel  Dionysius,  from his  epistle  to  Germanus,  where,  speaking  of  himself,  he  gives  the following  account :  "  But  I  speak  before  God,  and  he  knows  that I  lie  not ;  it  was  never  by  my  own  counsel,  nor  without  divine  intimation, that  I  projected  my  flight.  But  before  the  persecution of  Decius,  Sabinus,  at  the  very  hour,  sent  Frumentarius  to  search for  me.  And  I  indeed,  staid  at  home  about  four  days,  expecting the  arrival  of  Frumentarius.  But  he  w^ent  about  examining  all places,  the  roads,  the  rivers,  the  fields,  where  he  suspected  that 2m
256  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

I  would  go  or  lie  concealed.  But  he  was  smitten  with  blindness, not  being  able  to  find  the  house,  for  he  could  not  believe  that  1
would  remain  at  home  when  persecuted.  Four  days  had  scarcely elapsed  when  God  ordered  me  to  remove,  and  opened  the  way for  me  in  a  most  remarkable  manner.  I  and  my  domestics, and  many  of  my  brethren,  went  forth  together.  And  that  this happened  by  the  providence  of  God,  w^as  show^n  by  what  followed, and  in  which,  perhaps,  we  were  not  unprofitable  to  some."
After  this,  he  shows  the  events  that  befel  him  after  his  flight, adding  the  following :  "  But  about  sunset,  being  seized,  together with  my  company,  by  the  soldiers,  I  was  led  to  Taposiris.  But Timothy,  by  the  providence  of  God,  happened  not  to  be  present, nor  even  seized.  But  coming  afterwards,  he  found  the  house  deserted, and  servants  guarding  it,  and  us  he  found  reduced  to  slavery." After  other  remarks,  he  observes :  "  And  what  was  the manner  of  this  divine  interposition  of  his  ?  For  the  truth  shall be  told.  A  certain  man  of  the  country  met  Timothy  flying,  and much  disturbed,  and  when  he  was  asked  the  cause  of  his  haste, he  declared  the  truth.  When  he  heard  it,  he  went  his  way,  for he  was  going  to  a  marriage  festival,  (as  it  is  the  custom  with  them on  these  occasions  to  keep  the  whole  night,)  and  when  he  entered he  told  it  to  those  that  were  present  at  the  feast.  These,  forthwith, w^ith  a  single  impulse,  as  if  by  agreement,  all  arose,  and came  as  quick  as  possible  in  a  rush  upon  us,  and  as  they  rushed they  raised  a  shout.  The  soldiers  that  guarded  us  immediately took  to  flight,  and  they  came  upon  us,  lying  as  we  w^ere  upon  the bare  bedsteads.  I  indeed,  as  God  knows,  supposed  them  at  first to  be  robbers,  who  had  come  to  plunder  and  pillage.  Remaining, therefore,  on  my  bed,  naked  as  I  was,  only  covered  with  a  linen garment,  the  rest  of  my  dress  I  offered  them  as  it  lay  beside  me.
But  they  commanded  me  to  rise  and  to  depart  as  quick  as  possible. Then,  understanding  for  what  purpose  they  had  come,  I
began  to  cry  out,  beseeching  and  praying  them  to  go  away  and to  let  us  alone.  But  if  they  wished  to  do  us  any  good,  to  anticipate those  that  had  led  me  away,  and  to  cut  off*  my  head.
When  I  thus  cried  out,  as  my  companions  and  partners  in  all  my distresses  well  know,  they  attempted  to  raise  me  by  force.     1

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  257

then  cast  myself  on  my  back  upon  the  ground.  But  they  seized me  by  the  hands  and  feet,  and  dragged  me  away,  whilst  those who  were  witnesses  of  all  these  things,  Caius,  Faustus,  Peter,  and Paul,  followed  on.  These  also,  taking  me  up,  bore  me  away from  the  town,  and  carried  me  off  on  an  unsaddled  ass."  Such is  the  account  of  Dionysius  respecting  himself.

CHAPTER  XLI.

Of  those  icho  suffered  martyrdom  at  Alexandria.

But  the  same  wTiter  in  the  epistle  which  he  addressed  to  Fabius  bishop  of  Antioch,  relates  the  conflicts  of  those  who  suffered martyrdom  at  Alexandria  in  the  following  manner :  "  The  persecution with  us  did  not  begin  with  the  imperial  edict,  but  preceded it  a  whole  year.  And  a  certain  prophet  and  poet,  inauspicious to  the  city,  whoever  he  was,  excited  the  mass  of  the  heathen against  us,  stirring  them  up  to  their  native  superstition.  Stimulated by  him,  and  taking  full  liberty  to  exercise  any  kind  of wickedness,  they  considered  this  the  only  piety,  and  the  worship of  their  daemons,  viz.,  to  slay  us.  First  then,  seizing  a  certain aged  man  named  Metra,  they  called  upon  him  to  utter  impious expressions,  and  as  he  did  not  obey,  they  beat  his  body  with clubs,  and  pricked  his  face  and  eyes ;  after  which  they  led  him away  to  the  suburbs,  where  they  stoned  him.  Next  they  led  a woman  called  Quinta,  who  w^as  a  believer,  to  the  temple  of  an idol,  and  attempted  to  force  her  to  worship ;  but  when  she  turned away  in  disgust,  they  tied  her  by  the  feet,  and  dragged  her through  the  whole  city,  over  the  rough  stones  of  the  paved streets,  dashing  her  against  the  millstones,  and  scourging  her  at the  same  time,  until  they  brought  her  to  the  same  place,  where they  stoned  her.  Then,  with  one  accord,  all  rushed  upon  the houses  of  the  pious,  and  whomsoever  of  their  neighbours  they knew,  they  drove  thither  in  all  haste,  and  despoiled  and  plundered them,  setting  apart  the  more  valuable  of  the  articles  for  themselves ;  but  the  more  common  and  wooden  furniture  thev  threw
2K

258  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

about  and  burnt  in  the  roads,  jjrcscnting  a  sight  Hkc  a  city  taken by  the  enemy.

But  tlic  brethren  retired,  and  gave  way,  and  like  those  to  whom Paul  bears  witness,  they  also  regarded  the  plunder  of"  tlieir  goods with  joy.  And  I  know  uoi  whether  any  besides  one,  who  fell into  their  hands,  has  thus  far  denied  the  Lord.  But  they  also seized  tliat  admirable  virgin,  Apollonia,  then  in  advanced  age, and  beating  her  jaws,  they  broke  out  all  her  teeth,  and  kindling  a fire  before  the  city,  threatened  to  burn  her  alive,  unless  she  would repeat  their  impious  expressions.  She  appeared  at  first  to  shrink a  little,  but  when  suffered  to  go,  she  suddenly  sprang  into  the  fire and  was  consumed.  They  also  seized  a  certain  Serapion  in  his own  house,  and  after  torturing  him  with  the  severest  cruelties, and  breaking  all  liis  limbs,  threw  him  lieadlong  from  an  upper story.  But  there  was  no  way,  no  public  road,  no  lane,  where w^e  could  walk,  whether  by  day  or  night ;  as  they  all,  at  all  times and  places,  cried  out,  whoever  would  refuse  to  repeat  those  impious expressions,  that  he  should  be  immediately  dragged  forth and  burnt.

These  things  continued  to  prevail  for  the  most  part  after  this manner.  But  as  the  sedition  and  a  civil  war  overtook  the wretches,  their  cruelty  was  diverted  from  us  to  one  another.
We  then  drew  a  little  breath,  whilst  their  rage  against  us  was  a little  abated.  But,  presently,  that  change  from  a  milder  reign was  announced  to  us,  and  much  terror  was  now  threatening  us.
The  decree  had  arrived,  very  much  like  that  which  was  foretold by  our  Lord,  exhibiting  the  most  dreadful  aspect ;  so  that,  if  it were  possible,  the  very  elect  would  stumble.  All,  indeed,  were greatly  alarmed,  and  many  of  the  more  eminent  immediately  gave way  to  them ;  others,  who  were  in  public  offices,  were  led  forth by  their  very  acts ;  others  were  brouglit  by  their  acquaintance, and  when  called  by  name,  they  approached  the  impure  and  unholy sacrifices.  But,  pale  and  trembling,  as  if  they  were  not  to sacrifice,  but  themselves  to  be  the  victims  and  the  sacrifices  to the  idols,  they  were  jeered  by  many  of  the  surrounding  multitude, and  were  obviously  equally  afraid  to  die  and  to  offer  the  sacrifice.    But  some  advanced  with  greater  readiness  to  the  altars,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  259

and  boldly  asserted  that  they  had  never  before  been  Christians.
Concerning  whom  the  declaration  of  our  Lord  is  most  true,  that they  will  scarcely  be  saved.     Of  the  rest,  some  followed  the  one or  the  other  of  the  preceding ;  some  fled,  others  were  taken, and  of  these  some  held  out  as  far  as  the  prison  and  bonds,  and some  after  a  few  days  imprisonment  abjured  (Christianity)  before they  entered  the  tribunal-     But  some,  also,  after  enduring  the torture  for  a  time,  at  last  renounced.     Others,  however,  firm  and blessed  pillars  of  the  Lord,  confirmed  by  the  Lord  himself,  and receiving  in  themselves  strength  and  power,  suited  and  proportioned to  their  faith,  became  admirable  witnesses  of  his  kingdom.
The  first  of  these  was  Julian,  a  man  afflicted  with  the  gout, neither  able  to  walk  nor  stand,  who,  with  two  others  that  carried him,  was  arraigned.     Of  these,  the  one  immediately  denied,  but the  other,  named  Cronion,  surnamed  Eunus,  and  the  aged  Julian himself,  having  confessed  the  Lord,  was  carried  on  camels  throughout the  whole  city,  a  very  large  one  as  you  know,  and  in  this elevation  were  scourged,  and  finally  consumed  in  an  immense  fire, surrounded  by  the  thronging  crowds  of  spectators.     But  a  soldier, whose  name  was  Besas,  standing  near  them,  who  had  opposed  the insolence  of  the  multitude,  whilst  they  were  led  away  to  execution, was  himself  assailed  with  their  loud  vociferations,  and  thus this  brave  soldier  of  God,  after  he  had  excelled  in  the  great  conflict of  piety,  was  beheaded.     Another,  who  was  a  Lybian  by birth,  but  both  in  name  and  blessedness  a  Macar  (blessed),  after much  solicitation  from  the  judge  to  have  him  renounce,  still  remaining inflexible,  was  burnt  alive.     After  these,  Epimachus  and Alexander,  who  ha-d  continued  for  a  longtime  in  prison,  enduring innumerable  sufTering  from  the  scourges  and  scrapers,*  were  also destroyed  in  an  immense  fircf     With  these  there  were  also
*  The  instrument  of  torture  here  mentioned  was  an  iron  scraper,  calculated  to wound  and  tear  the  flesh  as  it  passed  over  it.

j-  The  same  expression,  n^u^,  xt/Sso-tou,  occurs  here  as  abov  .  We  have  rendered it,  therefore,  as  above,  by  the  word  fire.  Talesius,  who  is  followed  by  Shorting, translates  unslacked  lime.  But  why  he  should  understand  it  differently  here  from what  he  does  above,  does  not  appear.  The  martyrs  here  were  destroyed  by  the same  kind  of  death  as  the  preceding.     If  the  word  s-^p  did  not  determine  the  sig
260  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

four  women ;  Ammonarium,  a  holy  virgin,  who  was  ingeniously tortured  for  a  very  long  time  by  the  judge,  because  she  had plainly  declared  she  would  utter  none  of  those  expressions  which he  dictated;  and  having  made  good  her  promise,  she  was  led away.  The  others  were  the  venerable  and  aged  Mercuria;
Dionysia,  also,  who  was  the  mother  of  many  children,  but  did not  love  them  more  than  the  Lord.  These,  after  the  governor became  ashamed  to  torture  them  to  no  purpose,  and  thus  to  be defeated  by  women,  all  died  by  the  sword,  without  the  trial  by tortures.  But  as  to  Ammonarium,  she,  like  a  chief  combatant, received  the  greatest  tortures  of  all.  Heron  and  Ater  and  Isidorus,  who  were  Egyptians,  and  with  them  a  youth  named  Dioscorus,  about  the  age  of  fifteen,  were  delivered  up.  At  first  he attempted  to  deceive  the  youth  with  fair  words,  as  if  he  could be  easily  brought  over,  and  to  force  him  by  tortures,  as  if  he would  readily  yield.  Dioscorus,  however,  was  neither  persuaded by  words  nor  constrained  by  tortures.

After  scourging  the  rest  in  a  most  savage  manner,  and  seeing them  persevere,  he  also  delivered  these  to  the  fire.  But  Dioscorus was  dismissed  by  the  judge,  who  admired  the  great  wisdom of  his  answers  to  the  questions  proposed  to  him,  and  was  also illustrious  in  the  eyes  of  the  people,  with  the  view,  as  he  said,  to give  him  further  time  for  repentance  on  account  of  his  age.  And now  this  most  godly  Dioscorus  is  among  us,  expecting  a  longer  and a  more  severe  conflict.  A  certain  Nemesion,  also  an  Egyptian, was  first  indeed  accused  as  a  companion  of  thieves ;  but  when he  had  repelled  this  charge  before  the  centurion,  as  a  slander against  him,  in  which  there  was  no  truth,  being  reported  as  a Christian,  he  was  brought  as  a  prisoner  before  the  governor.
He,  a  most  unrighteous  judge,  inflicted  a  punishment  more  than double  that  of  robbers,  both  scourges  and  tortures,  and  then committed  him  to  the  flames  between  thieves ;  thus  honouring
nification,  there  might  be  some  reason,  perhaps,  for  this  version,  the  word  arp.=<rTo,having  T.xavcg  understood.  But  it  is  surely  going  far  out  of  our  way  to  look  for this  meaning,  when  the  meaning  is  so  obviously  determined  by  the  many  circumstances which  here  combine.  It  may  be  remarked,  by  the  way,  that  the  expression is  literally  inextinguishable  fire,  a  strong  hyperbole  for  immeiise  fire.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  261

the  blessed  martyr  after  the  example  of  Christ.  But  there  was a  band  of  soldiers,  standing  in  a  dense  body  before  the  tribunal, who  were  Ammon,  and  Zeno,  and  Ptolemy,  and  Ingenuus,  together wdth  the  aged  Theophilus.  A  certain  one  being  brought and  tried  as  a  Christian,  and  already  incHning  to  deny,  they  stood near,  gnashed  with  their  teeth,  and  beckoned  to  them  with  their faces,  and  stretched  out  their  hands,  and  made  gestures  with  their bodies.  And  whilst  all  were  directing  their  eyes  upon  them,  before they  were  seized  by  any  one  else,  they  ran  up  to  the  tribunal and  declared  that  they  were  Christians ;  so  that  the  governor and  his  associates  themselves  were  greatly  intimidated,  whilst those  who  wxre  condemned  were  most  cheerful  at  the  prospect of  what  they  were  to  suffer ;  but  their  judges  trembled.  And these,  therefore,  retired  from  the  tribunals,  and  rejoiced  in  their testimony,  in  which  God  had  enabled  them  to  triumph  gloriously.

CHAPTEPc  XLII.

Other  accounts  given  by  Dionysius.

But  many  others  w^ere  also  torn  asunder  in  cities  and  villages, of  which  I  shall  mention  one  as  an  example.  Ischyrion  was hired  by  one  of  the  rulers  in  the  capacity  of  a  steward.  This man  was  ordered  by  his  employer  to  sacrifice,  but  as  he  did  not obey,  he  was  abused  by  him.  Persevering  in  his  purpose,  he  was treated  with  contumely,  and  as  he  still  continued  to  bear  with all,  his  employer  seized  a  long  pole  and  slew  him,  by  thrusting it  through  his  bowels.  Why  should  I  mention  the  multitudes that  wandered  about  in  deserts  and  mountains,  that  perished  by hunger  and  thirst,  and  frost  and  diseases,  and  robbers  and  wild beasts  ?  The  survivors  of  whom  are  the  witnesses  both  of  their election  and  victory.  But  I  will  add  one  fact  to  illustrate  this :
"  Chaeremon  w^as  a  very  aged  bishop  of  the  city  called  Nile.  He fleeing  into  the  Arabian*  mountain,  with  his  partner,  did  not  re
*  Valesius  thinks  that  the  mountain  here  mentioned,  was  not,  as  the  name  seems to  imply,  in  Arabia,  but  translates  in  both  places  where  it  occurs,  Arabicus  raons,
262  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

turn  again,  nor  could  the  brethren  learn  any  thing  of  him  any more,  though  frequent  search  was  made  for  him.  They  neither found  them  nor  their  bodies,  but  many  were  carried  off  as  slaves by  the  barbarous  Saracens,  to  the  same  mountains.  Some  of these  were  ransomed  wdth  difficulty,  others  not  even  to  the  present day.  And  these  facts,  I  have  stated  brethren,  not  without an  object,  but  that  thou  mayest  see  how  great  and  terrible  distresses have  befallen  us.  Of  which,  indeed,  they  who  have  been most  tried,  also  understand  the  most."  Then,  after  a  few  remarks, he  observes :  "  But  these  same  martyrs,  who  are  now  sitting with  Christ,  and  are  the  sharers  in  his  kingdom,  and  the partners  in  his  judgment,  and  who  are  now  judging  with  him,  received those  of  the  brethren  that  fell  aw^ay,  and  had  been  convicted of  sacrificing,  (to  idols,)  and  when  they  saw  their  conversion and  repentance,  and  that  it  might  be  acceptable  to  him  who doth  not  by  any  means  wish  the  death  of  the  sinner  so  much  as their  repentance,  and  having  proved  them  (as  sincere)  they  received and  assembled  with  them.  They  also  communicated with  them  in  prayer  and  at  their  feasts.  What  then,  brethren, do  ye  advise  concerning  these?  What  should  we  do?  Let  us join  in  our  sentiments  with  them,  and  let  us  observe  their  judgment and  their  charity ;  and  let  us  kindly  receive  those  who  were treated  with  such  compassion  by  them.  Or  should  we  rather pronounce  their  judgment  unjust,  and  set  ourselves  up  as  the judges  of  their  opinion  ?  And  thus  grieve  the  spirit  of  mildness, and  overturn  established  order  ?"  These  remarks  were  probably added  by  Dionysius  when  he  spoke  of  those  that  had  fallen  away through  weakness,  during  the  persecution.

Arabian  mountain.     He  thinks  that  it  was  so  called  merely  from  its  vicinity  or contiguity  to  Arabia.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  263

CHAPTER  XLIIL

Of  JVovatas,  his  manners  and  habits,  and  his  heresy.

About  this  time  appeared  Novatus,  a  presbyter  of  the  church of  Rome,  and  a  man  elevated  with  haughtiness  against  these  (that had  fallen),  as  if  there  was  no  room  for  them  to  hope  salvation, not  even,  if  they  performed  every  thing  for  a  genuine  and  pure confession.  He  thus  became  the  leader  of  the  peculiar  heresy of  those  who,  in  the  pomp  of  their  imaginations,  called  themselves Cathari.  A  very  large  council  being  held  on  account  of  this,  at which  sixty  indeed  of  the  bishops,  but  a  still  greater  number  of presbyters  and  deacons  were  present ;  the  pastors  of  the  remaining provinces,  according  to  their  places,  deliberated  separately what  should  be  done :  this  decree  was  passed  by  all ;  "  That Novatus,  indeed,  and  those  who  so  arrogantly  united  with  him, and  those  that  had  determined  to  adopt  the  uncharitable  and most  inhuman  opinion  of  the  man,  these  they  considered  among those  that  were  ahenated  from  the  church  ;  but  that  brethren who  had  incurred  any  calamity  should  be  treated  and  healed with  the  remedies  of  repentance."

There  are  also  epistles  of  Cornelius,  bishop  of  Rome,  addressed to  Fabius,  bishop  of  Antioch,  which  show  the  transactions  of the  council  of  Rome,  as  also,  the  opinions  of  all  those  in  Italy  and Africa,  and  the  regions  there.  Others  there  are  also  written  in the  Roman  tongue,  from  Cyprian,  and  the  bishops  with  him  in Africa.  In  these,  it  is  shown  that  they  also  agree  in  the  necessity of  relieving  those  who  had  fallen  under  severe  temptations, and  also  in  the  propriety  of  excommunicating  the  author  of  the heresy,  and  all  that  were  of  his  part3^  To  these  is  attached  also an  epistle  from  Cornelius  on  the  decrees  of  the  council,  besides others  on  the  deeds  of  Novatus,  from  which  we  ma  y  add  extracts, that  those  who  read  the  present  work  may  know  the  circum.stances  respecting  him.  What  kind  of  a  character  Novatus  was, Cornelius  informs  Fabius,  writing  as  follows  :  "But  that you  may  know,  says  he,  how  this  singular  man,  who  formerlv 25

264  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

aspired  to  the  episcopate,  and  secretly  concealed  Vvithin  himself this  precipitate  ambition,  making  use  of  those  confessors  that adhered  to  him  from  the  beginning,  as  a  cloak  for  his  own  folly I  will  proceed  to  relate :  Maximus,  a  presbyter  of  our  church, and  Urbanus,  twice  obtained  the  highest  reputation  for  their  confessions. Sidonius  also,  and  Celerinus,  a  man  w^ho,  by  the  mercy of  God,  bore  every  kind  of  torture  in  the  most  heroic  manner,  and by  the  firmness  of  his  ow.a  faith  strengthened  the  weakness  of  the liesh,  completely  worsted  the  adversary.  These  men,  therefore, as  they  knew  him,  and  had  well  sounded  his  artifice  and  duplicity, as  also  his  perjuries  and  falsehoods,  his  dissocial  and  savage character,  returned  to  the  holy  church,  and  announced  all  his devices  and  wickedness,  which  he  had  for  a  long  time  dissembled within  himself,  and  this  too  in  the  presence  of  many  bishops  ;  and the  same  also,  in  the  presence  of  many  presbyters,  and  a  great number  of  laymen,  at  the  same  time  lamenting  and  sorrowing that  they  had  been  seduced,  and  had  abandoned  the  church  for  a short  time,  through  the  agency  of  that  artful  and  malicious beast."  After  a  little,  he  further  says  :  "  We  have  seen,  beloved brother,  within  a  short  time,  an  extraordinary  conversion  and change  in  him.  For  this  most  illustrious  man,  and  he  who  affirmed with  the  most  dreadful  oaths,  that  he  never  aspired  to  the episcopate,  has  suddenly  appeared  a  bishop,  as  thrown  among  us by  some  machine.  For  this  dogmatist,  this  (pretended)  champion of  ecclesiastical  discipline,  when  he  attempted  to  seize  and usurp  the  episcopate  not  given  him  from  above,  selected  two desperate  characters  as  his  associates,  to  send  them  to  some  small, and  that  the  smallest,  part  of  Italy,  and  from  thence,  by  some  fictitious plea,  to  impose  upon  three  bishops  there,  men  altogether  ignorant and  simple,  affirming  and  declaring,  that  it  was  necessary for  them  to  come  to  Rome  in  all  haste,  that  all  the  dissension which  had  there  arisen  might  be  removed  through  their  mediation, in  conjunction  with  the  other  bishops.  When  these  men had  come,  being,  as  before  observed,  but  simple  and  plain  in  discerning the  artifices  and  villany  of  the  wicked,  and  when  shut  up with  men  of  the  same  stamp  with  himself,  at  the  tenth  hour,  when heated  wqth  wine  and  surfeiting,  they  forced  them  by  a  kind  of
ECCLESIASTICAL  fflSTORY.  265

shadowy  and  empty  imposition  of  hands,  to  confer  the  episcopate upon  him,  and  which,  though  by  no  means  suited  to  him,  he  claims by  fraud  and  treachery.  One  of  these,  not  long  after,  returned  to his  church,  mourning  and  confessing  his  error,  with  whom  also  we communed  as  a  layman,  as  all  the  people  present  interceded  for him,  and  we  sent  successors  to  the  other  bishops  ordaining  them in  the  place  where  they  were.  This  assertor  of  the  gospel  then did  not  know  that  there  should  be  but  one  bishop  in  a  cathohc church.*  (ev  xodoXixri  Exx?,yjma,)  In  which,  however,  he  well knew,  (for  how  could  he  be  ignorant  ?)  that  there  were  forty-six presbyters,  seven  deacons,  seven  sub-deacons,  forty-two  acoluthi (clerks,)  exorcists,  readers,  and  janitors,  in  all  fifty-two :  widows, with  the  afflicted  and  needy,  more  than  fifteen  hundred ;  all which  the  goodness  and  love  of  God  doth  support  and  nourish.  But neither  this  great  number,  so  necessary  in  the  church,  nor  those that  by  the  providence  of  God  were  w^ealthy  and  opulent,  together w^ith  the  innumerable  multitude  of  the  people,  were  able to  recall  him  and  turn  him  from  such  a  desperate  and  presumptuous course."

And,  again,  after  these,  he  subjoins  the  follow  ing :  "  Now  let us  also  tell  by  what  means  and  conduct  he  had  the  assurance  to claim  the  episcopate.  Whether,  indeed,  it  was  because  he  was engaged  in  the  church  from  the  beginning,  and  endured  many conflicts  for  her,  and  encountered  many  and  ^reat  dangers  in  the
*  The  word  catholic,  in  its  Greek  etymology,  means  universal,  as  we  have  sometimes explained  it  in  this  translation.  It  is  applied  to  the  Christian,  as  a  universal church,  partly  to  distinguish  it  from  the  ancient  church  of  the  Jews,  which  was limited,  partial,  and  particular  in  its  duration,  subjects,  and  country.  The  Christian is  also  called  a  universal  or  catholic  church,  because  it  must  in  regard  to  doctrine hold  quod  semper,  quod  tibique,  quod  ab  omnibus.  In  this  latter  view,  which  it should  be  well  observed  is  the  original  application,  it  is  synonymous  with  orthodox.
This  is  evident,  from  thf,  fact  that  our  author  applies  it  to  different  churches  in other  parts  of  his  history.  And  in  the  present  instance  the  expression  is  general, a  catholic  church.  It  is  in  a  sense  allied  to  this  also,  that  we  are,  no  doubt,  to  understand the  title  of  our  general  (catholic)  epistles,  in  the  New  Testament.  They are  catholic,  because  as  consonant  to  the  doctrines  of  the  church  in  all  respects,  they have  been  also  universally  received.  In  this  sense,  the  term  is  also  synonymous with  canonical.

2L

266  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

cause  of  true  religion  ?  None  of  all  this.  To  him,  indeed,  the author  and  instigator  of  his  faith  was  Satan,  who  entered  into and  dwelt  in  him  a  long  time.  Who  aided  by  the  exorcists,  when attacked  with  an  obstinate  disease,  and  being  supposed  at  the point  of  death,  was  baptised  by  aspersion,  in  the  bed  on  w  hich he  lay ;  if,  indeed,  it  be  proper  to  say  that  one  Uke  him  did  receive baptism.  But  neither  when  he  recovered  from  disease,  did he  partake  of  other  things,  which  the  rules  of  the  church  prescribe as  duty,  nor  was  he  sealed  (in  confirmation)  by  the  bishop.  But as  he  did  not  obtain  this,  how  could  he  obtain  the  holy  spirit  1"
And,  again,  soon  after,  he  says :  "  He  denied  he  was  a  presbyter, through  cowardice  and  the  love  of  life,  in  the  time  of  persecution.
For  when  requested  and  exhorted  by  the  deacons,  that  he  should go  forth  from  his  retreat,  in  which  he  had  imprisoned  himself, and  should  come  to  the  relief  of  the  brethren,  as  far  as  was  proper and  in  the  power  of  a  presbyter  to  assist  brethren  requiring relief,  he  was  so  far  from  yielding  to  any  exhortation  of  the deacons,  that  he  went  away  offended  and  left  them.  For  he said  that  he  wished  to  be  a  presbyter  no  longer,  for  he  was  an admirer  of  a  different  philosophy."

Passing  over  some  other  matters,  our  author  again  adds : —
"  This  illustrious  character  abandoning  the  church  of  God,  in which,  when  he  was  converted  he  was  honoured  with  the  presbytery, and  that  by  the  favour  of  the  bishop  placing  his  hands upon  him  (ordaining  him),  to  the  order  of  bishops,  and  as  all  the clergy  and  many  of  the  laity  resisted  it,  since  it  was  not  lawful that  one  baptized  in  his  sick  bed  by  aspersion,  as  he  was,  should be  promoted  to  any  order  of  the  clergy,  the  bishop  requested  that it  should  be  granted  him  to  ordain  only  this  one."  After  this,  he adds  another  deed,  the  worst  of  all  the  man's  absurdities,  thus ;
"  For  having  made  the  oblation,  and  distributed  a  part  to  each one,  whilst  giving  this,  he  compels  the  unhappy  men  to  swear  instead of  blessing ;  holding  the  hands  of  the  one  receiving,  with both  of  his  own,  and  not  letting  them  go  until  he  had  sworn  in these  words,  for  I  shall  repeat  the  very  words :  '  Swear  to  me, by  the  body  and  blood  of  our  Saviour,  Jesus  Christ,  that  you  will never   desert   me,   nor   turn   to  Cornelius,'     And  the  unhappy
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  267

man  is  then  not  suffered  to  taste  until  he  has  first  cursed  himself; and  instead  of  saying  Amen  after  he  had  taken  the  bread, he  says,  *  I  will  no  longer  return  to  Cornelius.' "  And,  after  other matters,  he  again  proceeds,  as  follows :  "  Now,  you  must  know, that  he  is  stripped  and  abandoned,  the  brethren  leaving  him  every day  and  returning  to  the  church.  He  was  also  excommunicated by  Moses,  that  blessed  witness,  w^ho  but  lately  endured  a glorious  and  wonderful  martyrdom,  and  who,  whilst  yet  among the  living,  seeing  the  audacity  and  the  folly  of  the  man,  excluded him  from  the  communion,  together  with  the  five  presbyters  that had  cut  themselves  off  from  the  church."

At  the  close  of  the  epistle,  he  gives  a  list  of  the  bishops  who had  come  to  Rome,  and  had  discarded  the  incorrigible  disposition of  Novatus ;  at  the  same  time  adding  the  names,  together  with the  churches  governed  by  each.  He  also  mentions  those  that w^ere  not  present  at  Rome,  but  who,  by  letter,  assented  to  the decision  of  the  former,  adding  also  the  names  and  the  particular cities  whence  each  one  had  wTitten.  Such  is  the  account  wTitten by  Cornelius  to  Fabius  bishop  of  Antioch.

CHAPTER  XLIV.

Dlonysius's  account  of  Serapion.

Ijf  a  letter  to  this  same  Fabius,  who  in  some  measure  seemed to  incline  to  this  schism,  Dionysius  of  Alexandria,  amongst  many other  matters  that  he  wrote  to  him  on  repentance,  and  in  which he  describes  the  conflicts  which  the  martyrs  had  recently  endured at  Alexandria,  with  other  accounts,  relates  one  fact  w^onderful indeed.  This  we  deem  belonging  to  our  history,  and  is  as  follows ;
"  But  I  will  give  you  one  example  that  occurred  with  us.  There was  a  certain  Serapion,  an  aged  believer,  who  had  passed  his long  hfe  irreproachably,  but  as  he  had  sacrificed  during  the  persecution, though  he  frequently  begged,  no  one  would  listen  to  him.
He  was  taken  sick,  and  continued  three  days  in  succession  speechless and  senseless.  On  the  fourth  day,  recovering  a  little,  he 25^

268  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

called  his  grandchild  to  him,  and  said,  "  O  son,  how  long  do  jon detain  me?  I  beseech  you  hasten,  and  quickly  absolve  me.
Call  one  of  the  presbyters  to  me.  Saying  this,  he  again  became speechless.  The  boy  ran  to  the  presbyter.  But  it  was  night, and  the  presbyter  was  sick.  As  I  had,  however,  before  issued an  injunction,  that  those  at  the  point  of  death,  if  they  desired  it, and  especially  if  they  entreated  for  it  before,  should  receive  absolution, that  they  might  depart  from  life  in  comfortable  hope,  I
gave  the  boy  a  small  portion  of  the  eucharist,  telling  him  to  dip it  in  water,  and  to  drop  it  into  the  mouth  of  the  old  man.  The  boy returned  with  the  morsel.  When  he  came  near,  before  he  entered, Serapion  having  again  recovered  himself,  said,  '  Thou  hast come,  my  son,  but  the  presbyter  could  not  come.  But  do  thou quickly  perform  what  thou  art  commanded,  and  dismiss  me.'
The  boy  moistened  it,  and  at  the  same  time  dropped  it  into  the old  man's  mouth.  And  he,  having  swallowed  a  little,  immediately expired.  Was  he  not,  then,  evidently  preserved,  and  did  he  not continue  living  until  he  was  absolved ;  and  his  sins  being  wiped away,  he  could  be  acknowledged  as  a  believer  for  the  many  good acts  that  he  had  done  ?"     Thus  far  Dionysius.

CHAPTER  XLV.

The  epistle  of  Dionysius  to  Kovatus.

Let  us  also  see  what  kind  of  epistle  the  same  writer  addressed to  Novatus,  who  was  then  disturbing  the  brethren  at  Rome;
since  he  pretended  that  certain  brethren  were  the  cause  of  his apostacy  and  schism,  because  he  had  been  forced  by  them  to proceed  thus  far.  Observe  i\\Q  manner  in  which  he  writes  to him :  "  Dionysius  sends  greeting  to  his  brother  Novatus.  If,  as you  say,  you  were  forced  against  your  will,  you  will  show  it  by retiring  voluntarily.  For  it  was  a  duty  to  suffer  any  thing  at  all, so  as  not  to  afflict  the  church  of  God ;  and,  indeed,  it  would  not be  more  inglorious  to  suffer  even  martyrdom  for  its  sake,  than  to
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  269

sacrifice ;  and  in  my  opinion  it  would  have  been  a  greater  glory For  there,  in  the  one  case,  the  individual  gives  a  testimony  for his  own  soul,  but  in  the  other  he  bears  witness  for  the  whole church.  And  now,  if  thou  persuade  or  constrain  the  brethren  to return  to  unanimity,  thy  uprightness  will  be  greater  than  thy  delusion, and  the  latter  will  not  be  laid  to  thy  charge,  but  the  other will  be  applauded ;  but  if  thou  art  unable  to  prevail  with  thy friends,  save  thy  own  soul.  With  the  hope  that  thou  art  desirous of  peace  in  the  Lord,  I  bid  thee  farew^ell."  Such  was  the  epistle of  Dionysius  to  Novatus.

CHAPTER  XLVI.

Other  epistles  af  Dionysius.

He  wrote,  also,  an  epistle  to  the  brethren  in  Egypt,  On  Repent ance,  in  which  he  gives  his  opinion  respecting  those  who  had fallen,  and  in  which  lie  also  gives  the  degrees  of  faults.  There is  also  a  separate  work  of  his  extant,  On  Repentance,  addressed to  Conon  bishop  of  Hermopolis ;  and  also  another  epistle  of  reproof to  his  flock  at  x\lexandria.  Among  these,  is  also  the  work addressed  to  Origen,  On  Martyrdom;  also,  an  epistle  to  the brethren  of  Laodicea,  where  Thelymidres  was  bishop.  He  wrote in  like  manner  to  the  Armenians,  On  Repentance,  where  Meruzanes  was  bishop.  Besides  all  these,  he  wrote  to  Cornelius  at Rome,  in  answer  to  an  epistle  from  him,  against  Novatus ;  in whiuh  answer  he  shows  that  he  had  been  invited  by  Helenus, bishop  of  Tarsus  in  Cilicia,  and  the  rest  that  were  collected  with him,  viz.  Firmilianus,  bishop  in  Cappadocia,  and  Theoctistus  of Palestine,  that  he  should  meet  them  at  the  council  of  Antioch, where  certain  persons  were  trying  to  establish  the  schism  of  Novatus. Besides  this,  he  wrote  that  he  had  been  informed  Fabius was  dead  but  that  Demetrianus  was  appointed  his  successor  in the  episcopate  of  the  church  at  Antioch.  He  also  writes  respecting the  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  in  these  words :  "  As  to  the  blessed
270  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Alexander,  he  was  cast  into  prison,  and  departed  happily."
Next  to  this,  there  is  also  another  epistle  of  Dionysius  to  the  Ro mans,  On  the  Office  of  Deacons,  sent  by  Hippolytus.  To  the same  people  he  also  wrote  another  epistle.  On  Peace ;  also,  On Repentance ;  and  another,  again,  to  the  confessors  there,  who were  yet  affected  with  the  opinion  of  Novatus.  To  these  same he  wrote  two  others,  after  they  had  returned  to  the  church.  To many  others,  also,  he  addressed  letters  of  admonition  and  exhortation, calculated  to  afford  various  advantage,  even  now,  to  those who  wish  to  study  his  writings.

BOOK   VII.

That  great  bishop  of  Alexandria,  Dionysius,  shall  aid  us  also in  the  composition  of  the  seventh  book  of  our  history,  by  extracting from  his  works  whatsoever  particulars  of  his  day  he  has separately  detailed  in  the  epistles  that  he  has  left  us.  With these,  at  least,  we  shall  commence  our  account.

CHAPTER  I.

The  great  icicJcedness  of  Decius  and  Gallus.

Decius  had  scarcely  reigned  two  years,  when  he,  with  his children,  w^as  slain.  Gallus  was  his  successor.  Origen  died  at this  time,  in  the  seventieth  year  of  his  age.  Dionysius,  in  an epistle  to  Hermamon,  makes  the  following  remarks  on  Gallus :
"  But  neither  did  Gallus  understand  the  wickedness  of  Decius, nor  did  he  foresee  what  it  was  that  had  destroyed  him,  but  he stumbled  at  the  same  stone  lying  before  his  eyes.  For  when  his reign  was  advancing  prosperously,  and  his  affairs  succeeding  according to  his  wishes,  he  persecuted  those  holy  men,  who  interceded with  God  both  for  his  peace  and  safety.  Hence,  together v/ith  them,  he  also  persecuted  the  very  prayers  that  were  offered up  in  his  behalf."     Thus  much  he  has  said  respecting  him.

CHAPTER   11.

The  bishops  of  Rome  at  this  time.

After  Cornelius  had  held  the  episcopal  office  at  Rome  about three  years,  he  was  succeeded  by  Lucius,  but  the  latter  did  not
271

272  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

hold  the  office  quite  eight  months,  when  dying  he  transferred  it  to Stephen.  To  this  Stephen,  Dionysius  wrote  the  first  of  his  epistles on  baptism,  as  there  was  no  little  controversy,  whether  those turning  from  any  heresy  whatever,  should  be  purified  by  baptism;
as  the  ancient  practice  prevailed  with  regard  to  such,  that  they should  only  have  imposition  of  hands  with  prayer.

CHAPTER   III.

Cyprian,  and  the  bishops  connected  with  him,  maintained,  that those  ivho  had  turned  from  heretical  error,  should  he  baptized again,
Cyprian,  who  was  bishop  (rCOLiiyiv)  of  the  church  of  Carthage, was  of  opinion,  that  they  should  be  admitted  on  no  conditions, before  they  were  first  purified  from  their  error  by  baptism.  But Stephen,  who  thought  that  no  innovations  should  be  made  con trary  to  traditions  that  had  prevailed  from  ancient  times,  was greatly  oftended  at  this.

CHAPTER    IV.

The  epistles  that  Dionysius  icrote  on  this  subject
Dionysius,  therefore,  after  addressing  to  him  many  arguments by  letter,  on  this  subject,  finally  showed,  that  as  the  persecution had  abated,  the  churches,  every  where  averse  to  the  innovations of  Novatus,  had  peace  among  themselves.  But  he  writes  as follows.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  273

CHAPTER  V.

The  peace  after  the  persecution.

"Now  I  wish  you  to  understand,  my  brother,  that  all  the churches  throughout  the  east,  and  farther,  that  w^ere  formerly divided,  have  been  united  again.  All  the  bishops,  also,  are  every where  in  harmony,  rejoicing  exceedingly  at  the  peace  which  has been  established  beyond  all  expectation.  These  are,  Demetrianus of  Antioch,  Theoctistus  of  Cesarea,  Mazabanes  of  ^lia  after  the death  of  Alexander,  Marinus  of  Tyre,  Heliodorus  of  Laodicea after  the  decease  of  Thelymidres,  Helenus  of  Tarsus,  and  all the  churches  of  Cilicia,  Firmihanus,  and  all  Cappadocla ;  for  I
have  mentioned  only  the  more  distinguished  of  the  bishops  by name,  that  neither  the  length  of  my  letter,  nor  the  burden  of  my words,  may  offend  you.  All  the  provinces  of  Syria  and  Arabia, which  at  different  times  you  supplied  with  necessaries,  and  to whom  you  have  now  written,  Mesopotamia,  Pontus,  and  Bithynia, and  to  comprehend  all  in  a  word,  all  are  rejoicing  every  where at  the  unanimity  and  brotherly  love  now  prevailing,  and  are  glorifying God  for  the  same."     Such  are  the  words  of  Dionysius.

But  after  Stephen  had  held  the  episcopal  office  two  years,  he was  succeeded  by  Xystus,  and  Dionysius  having  addressed  a second  letter  to  him  on  baptism,  at  the  Same  time  showing  the opinion  and  decision  passed  by  Stephen  and  the  rest  of  the bishops,  makes  the  following  remarks  on  Stephen :  "  He  had  written before  respecting  Helenus  and  Firmihanus,  and  all  those  from CiUcia,  and  Cappadocia,  and  Galatia,  and  all  the  nations  adjoining, that  he  would  not  have  communion  with  them  on  this  account, because  they,  said  he,  rebaptized  the  heretics.  And  behold,  I  pray you,  the  importance  of  the  matter.  For  in  reality,  as  I  have ascertained,  decrees  have  been  passed  in  the  greatest  councils  of the  bishops,  that  those  who  come  from  the  heretics,  are  first  to  be instructed,  and  then  are  to  be  washed  and  purified  from  the  filth of  their  old  and  impure  leaven.  And  respecting  all  these  things, I  have  sent  letters  entreating  them.     After  stating  other  matters,
2M

274  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

he  proceeds :  "  But  I  have  also  written  to  our  beloved  and  fellowpresbyters  Dionysius  and  Philemon,  who  agreed  before  with Stephen  in  sentiment,  and  wrote  to  me  on  these  matters ;  before, indeed,  I  wTote  briefly,  but  now  more  fully."  Such  were  the  accounts respecting  the  controversy  mentioned.

CHAPTER   VI.

The  heresy  of  Sabellius.

Speaking  of  the  heresy  of  Sabellius,  that  arose  about  this time,  and  that  was  then  increasing,  he  writes  as  follows :  "  But as  to  the  opinion  which  is  now  agitated  at  Ptolemais  of  PentapoUs,  it  is  impious,  and  replete  w^ith  blasphemy  towards  Almighty God  and  the  Father  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  and  abounds  also in  much  infidelity  in  regard  to  his  only  begotten  Son,  and  the  first born  of  all  creation,  the  incarnate  word ;  it  abounds  also  in  irreverence to  the  Holy  Spirit.  But  as  the  brethren  came  to  me from  both  sides,  both  before  the  letters  were  received  and  the question  was  discussed,  I  drew  up  a  more  regular  treatise  on  the subject,  as  far  as  I  was  enabled  under  God ;  copies  of  which  I
have  sent  to  thee.

CHAPTER  VII.

The  execrable  error  of  the  heretics,  the  divine  vision  of  Dionysius, and  the  ecclesiastical  canon  given  to  him.

But  in  the  third  epistle  on  baptism,  which  Dionysius  wrote  to Philemon  a  presbyter  of  Rome,  he  relates  the  following  circumstances :  "  I  perused,"  says  he,  "  the  works  and  traditions  of  the heretics,  defiling  my  mind  for  a  little  with  their  execrable  sentiments ;  but  I  have  also  derived  this  benefit  from  them,  viz.,  to refute  them  in  my  own  mind,  and  to  feel  the  greater  disgust  at them.  And  when  a  certain  brother  of  the  presbyters  attempted  to
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  275

restrain  me,  and  was  much  in  dread  lest  I  should  be  carried  away by  this  sink  of  iniquity,  saying  that  my  mind  would  be  corrupted, in  wdiich  he  spoke  the  truth,  as  I  thought,  I  was  confirmed  in my  purpose  by  a  vision  sent  me  from  heaven,  when  a  voice  came to  me  and  commanded  me  in  words  as  follows  :  '  Read  all  that thou  takcst  in  hand,  for  thou  art  qualified  to  correct  and  prove  all, and  this  very  thing  has  been  the  cause  of  thy  faith  in  Christ  from the  beginning.'  I  received  the  vision,  as  coinciding  wuth  the apostolic  declaration,  which  says  to  the  more  competent,  *  Be ye  skilful  moneychangers.'  "

Then  after  some  remarks  on  all  the  heresies,  he  adds:  ''This rule  and  form  I  have  received  from  our  father*'  (narta)  the  blessed Heraclas,  that  those  who  come  from  the  heretics,  although they  had  apostatized  from  the  church,  or  rather  that  had  not  apostatized, but  seemed  to  have  communion  with  the  brethren,  but  were reported  as  frequenting  some  one  of  those  who  taught  strange doctrines,  after  they  had  been  expelled  from  the  church  were not  admitted  again  by  him,  though  tliey  entreated  much,  until they  had  publicly  declared  all  that  they  had  heard  from  their adversaries ;  and  then  indeed  he  admitted  them  to  commune,  without deeming  another  baptism  necessary  for  them.  For  they  had already  before  received  the  Holy  Spiritf  from  him."  But  after agitating  the  question  again  considerably,  he  adds :  "  I  have  also understood  that  this  practice  was  introduced  not  only  by  those of  Africa,  but  also  long  since,  during  the  times  of  those  bishops before  us,  in  the  most  populous  churches,  the  same  thing  was decreed  by  the  councils  of  the  brethren  at  Iconium  and  Synada."
To  overturn  their  determinations,  and  to  drive  them  into  contention and  strife,  I  cannot  endure.     For  thou  shalt  not  remove,  as  it  is
*  The  word  ^»t«{  here  used,  and  applied  by  Dionysius  to  his  predecessor  at Alexandria  was,  as  we  see  in  this  instance,  applied  to  the  more  aged  and  venerable prelates.  We  thus  see  the  origin  of  the  word  pope,  Latin  papa,  German  pabst.
This  word  is  no  doubt  to  be  traced  to  the  language  of  nature,  as  forming  the  first syllables  that  the  infant  lisps.  It  is  explained  by  a  scholiast  on  Juvenal,  Senex veneratione  dignus,  pater.     See  Juv.  Sat.  vi.  632.

-j-  This  phrase  was  applied  where  the  bishop  admitted  the  heretics  by  the  imposition of  hands
26

276  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

said,  the  landmarks  of  thy  neighbour,  which  thy  fathers  have placed.  His  fourth  -epistle  On  Baptism  was  written  to  Dyonisius at  Rome,  who  was  then  a  presbyter,  but  ere  long  was  ordained bishop  of  that  church.  From  this  it  is  evident,  that  this  same Dionysius  of  Rome  was  a  learned  and  excellent  man,  as  is proved  by  the  Dionysius  of  Alexandria.  But  he  wrote  to  him, among  other  matters,  respecting  the  affairs  of  Novatus,  as  follows.

CHAPTER  VIII.

The  heterodoxy  of  JVovatus.

We  justly  cherish  an  aversion  to  the  Novatian,  says  he,  by whom  the  church  is  split  asunder,  and  some  of  the  brethren have  been  drawn  into  impiety  and  blasphemy,  and  most  nefarious doctrine  has  been  introduced  respecting  God,  and  our  most gracious  Lord  and  Saviour  Christ  has  been  calumniated  as  devoid of  compassion ;  which  also,  beside  all  this,  sets  aside  the holy  baptism,  and  overturns  the  faith  and  confession  that  precede it,  and  totally  drives  away  the  Holy  Spirit  from  themselves, should  there  happen  to  be  any  hope  yet,  that  he  would  remain  or return  to  them.

CHAPTER  IX.

The  ungodly  baptism  of  heretics.

But  there  was  also  a  fifth  epistle  written  by  him  to  Xystus, bishop  of  Rome,  in  which,  stating  many  things  against  the  heretics, be  relates  that  some  occurrence  like  the  following  took  place in  his  times.  "  Really  brother,"  says  he,  "  I  need  your  counsel,  and I  beg  your  opinion,  on  an  affair  that  has  presented  itself  to  me, and  in  which,  indeed,  I  am  afraid  I  may  be  deceived.  One  of  the brethren  that  collected  with  us,  who  was  considered  a  believer long  since,  even  before  my  ordination,  and  who  I  think  assem
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  277

bled  with  us  before  the  appointment,  (consecration)  of  the  blessed Heraclas ;  this  man  happening  to  be  present  with  those  that  were immediately  baptized,  and  listening  to  the  questions  and  answers, came  to  me  weeping  and  bewaihng  himself,  casting  himself  also at  my  feet ;  he  began  to  acknowledge  and  abjure  his  baptism  by the  heretics,  because  their  baptism  was  nothing  Hke  this,  nor  in deed,  had  any  thing  in  common  with  it,  for  it  was  filled  with  impiety and  blasphemies.  He  said  also,  that  his  soul  now  was wholly  pierced,  and  he  had  not  confidence  enough  to  raise his  eyes  to  God,  coming  from  those  execrable  words  and  deeds.
Hence  he  prayed  that  he  might  have  the  benefit  of  this  most  perfect cleansing,  reception  and  grace,  which  indeed  I  did  not  dare to  do,  saying,  that  his  long  communion  was  sufficient  for  this.
For  one  who  had  been  in  the  habit  of  hearing  thanksgiving,  and repeating  the  amen,  and  standing  at  the  table,  and  extending  his hand  to  receive  the  sacred  elements,  and  after  receiving  and  becoming a  partaker  of  the  body  and  blood  of  our  Lord  and  Saviour Christ  for  a  long  time,  I  would  not  dare  to  renew  again  any further.  I  exhorted  him,  therefore,  to  take  courage,  and  with  a firm  faith  and  good  conscience  to  approach  and  take  part  with the  saints  in  the  solemnity  of  the  holy  supper.  But  he  did  not cease  lamenting.  He  shuddered  to  approach  the  table,  and scarcely  could  endure  it,  even  when  exhorted  to  be  present  at prayers."

There  is  beside  the  above  epistles,  also,  one  and  another  of the  same  on  baptism,  from  him  and  his  church,  addressed  to Xystus  and  the  church  of  Rome.  In  this  he  protracts  his  discourse to  a  great  length  of  argument  on  the  question  there  discussed. There  is  also  a  certain  other  epistle  of  his  besides  these, addressed  to  Dionysius  of  Rome,  that  concerning  Lucianus.  But thus  much  respecting  these.

278  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  X.

Valerian,  and  the  persecution  raised  hy  him,
Gallus  had  not  held  the  government  quite  two  years  when  he was  removed,  and  Valerian,  with  his  son  Gallienus,  succeeded  in his  place.  What  Dionysius  has  also  said  respecting  him,  may  be learned  from  his  epistle  to  Hermammon,  in  which  he  gives  the following  account :  "  In  like  manner  it  was  revealed  to  John,  and there  was,"  says  he,  "  a  mouth  given  him,  speaking  great  things, and  blasphemy.  And  there  was  given  him  power,  and  fortyt'vo  months,  but  it  is  wonderful  that  both  took  place  in  Valerian, and  especially  when  we  consider  the  condition  of  the  man  before this,  how  kind  and  friendly  he  was  towards  the  pious.  For  never was  there  any  of  the  emperors  before  him  so  favourably  and benevolently  disposed  toward  them,  not  even  those  who  were openly  said  to  be  Christians,  so  plainly  received  them,  with  such excessive  civility  and  friendship  in  the  commencement  of  his reign.  All  his  house  was  likewise  filled  with  pious  persons,  and was,  indeed,  a  congregation  {exK7.riaia)  of  the  Lord.  But  the master  and  chief  ruler  of  the  Egyptian  magi  (Macrianus,)  persuaded him  to  abandon  this  course,  exhorting  him  to  persecute and  slay  these  pure  and  holy  men,  as  enemies  and  obstacles  to their  wicked  and  detestable  incantations.  For  there  were,  and still  are,  men  who,  by  their  very  presence,  or  when  seen,  and only  breathing  and  speaking,  are  able  to  dissipate  the  artifices  of wicked  daemons.  But  he  suggested  to  him  to  study  rites  of  initiation, and  abominable  arts  of  sorcery,  to  perform  execrable sacrifices,  to  slay  unhappy  infants,  and  to  sacrifice  the  children of  wretched  fathers,  and  to  search  the  bowels  of  new-born  babes, and  to  mutilate  and  dismember  the  creatures  of  God,  as  if  by doing  this  they  should  obtain  great  felicity."  To  this  account  he also  subjoins  the  following :  "  Macrianus,  therefore,  returned  them handsome  rewards  for  his  desired  accession  to  the  government, who  before  was  generally  called,  from  his  character,  the  emperor's steward  and  receiver-general,  now  did  nothing  that  could  be
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  279

pronounced  for  the  public  good,  or  even  reasonable  ;*  but  that prophetic  malediction  which  sa^^s,  '  Wo  to  those  that  prophesy according  to  their  own  hearts,  and  do  not  see  to  the  public  good ;'
for  neither  did  he  perceive  that  Providence  that  regulates  the whole ;  and  neither  did  he  expect  that  judgment  of  him  that  is before  all,  and  through  all,  and  over  all.  Hence,  he  became  an enemy  to  his  universal  church.  But  he  also  estranged  and  stripped himself  of  the  mercy  of  God,  and  thus  fled  as  far  as  possible from  his  salvation.  In  this,  indeed,  he  really  expressed  the  peculiarity of  his  name."f  Again,  he  says:  "Valerian,  indeed, was  thus  urged  by  this  man  to  these  measures,  whilst  he  exposed himself  to  insults  and,  reproaches,  according  to  what  Isaias  has said :  '  And  these  have  chosen  their  own  ways,  and  their  own abominations,  which  their  soul  hath  desired.  And  I  will  choose their  derisions,  and  will  repay  them  their  sins.'  But  the  latter (viz.  Macrianus,)  anxious  without  any  merit  to  have  the  government, and  yet  unable  to  assume  the  imperial  garb,  with  his  feeble body,  appointed  his  two  sons  to  take  upon  them,  as  it  were,  their father's  crimes.  For  the  declaration  of  God  respecting  such, prov^ed  its  truth,  when  he  said,  '  visiting  the  sins  of  the  fathers upon  the  children,  to  the  third  and  fourth  generations  of  them that  hate  me.'  For  heaping  his  own  wicked  passions,  in  the gratification  of  which  he  did  not  succeed,  upon  the  heads  of  his cJiildren,  he  swept  off  upon  them  his  own  wickedness  and  hatred of  God."  And  such  is  the  account  which  Dionysius  has  given of  Valerian.

*  Dionysius  here  puns  upon  the  honourable  title  and  office  that  Macrianus  had borne,  as  the  emperor's  faithful  minister,  s^r.  xxSoxouxoycov,  but  to  which  his  subsequent conduct  did  not  correspond.     The  pun  is  lost  in  a  translation.

■\  Macrianus,  derived  from  the  Greek /^^xpsj  lnng,ox  f^x/.pxv  at  a  distance;  another witty  allusion.

26^

280  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER   XL

The  siifferings  of  Dionysius,  and  those  in  Egypt
But  as  to  the  persecutions  that  raged  so  violently  under  him, and  what  sufferings  he  with  others  endured  for  their  piety  towards the  Supreme  God,  liis  own  words  shall  declare,  which  he addressed  to  Germanus,  one  of  the  contemporary  bishops  that attempted  to  slander  him.  His  words  are  as  follows :  "  But,"
says  he,  "  I  apprehend  that  as  I  am  forced  to  relate  the  wonderful providence  of  God  respecting  us,  I  shall  be  liable  to  much folly  and  insensibihty.  But,  as  it  is  said,  it  is  honourable  to conceal  the  secrets  of  the  king,  and  glorious  to  make  manifest the  works  of  God,  I  will  face  the  violence  of  Germanus.  I  came to  iEmilianus  not  alone,  but  in  company  with  my  fellow-presbyter Maximus,  and  the  deacons  Faustus,  Eusebius,  and  Chaeremon,  together with  a  certain  one  of  the  brethren  who  had  come  from Rome,  ^milianus,  however,  did  not  at  first  say  to  me,  hold  no assemblies,  as  this  was  superfluous,  and  was  the  last  to  one  who was  aiming  at  what  was  the  first  in  importance  ;*  for  he  was  not concerned  about  my  collecting  others,  but  that  we  should  not  b(
Christians,  and  from  this  he  commanded  me  to  desist,  thinking,  nc doubt,  that  if  I  changed,  others  would  follow  my  example.  But  J
answered  him  not  without  good  reason,  and  without  many  words, *  We  must  obey  God  rather  than  man.'  But  I  directly  bore  witness, that  I  could  neither  change  worshipping  the  only  true  God and  none  other,  nor  ever  cease  to  be  a  Christian.  Upon  this  he commanded  us  to  go  away  to  a  neighbouring  village  of  the desert,  called  Cephro.

"  But  hear  the  words  that  were  uttered  by  both  of  us,  as  they were  recorded.     Dionysius  and  Faustus,  Maximus,  Marcellus,
*  The  great  question  with  the  judge  was,  not  whether  those  arraigned  held  meetings, but  whether  they  were  Christians.  To  have  commenced  with  the  former, when  the  latter  was  the  great  object,  would  have  been  a  kind  of  vinpov  -s  p^wrtpoi-,  that abandoned  the  primary  for  the  secondary.  Hostility  to  Christianity  as  a  religion, was  the  great  incentive  here,  to  which  all  other  acts  were  referred,  as  their  head and  fountain.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  281

and  Chaeremon,  being  arraigned,  iEmilianus,  the  prefect,  said :
*  I  have  even  personally  reasoned  with  you  on  the  clemency  of our  sovereigns,  w^hich  you  have  also  experienced.  For  they have  given  you  the  chance  of  saving  yourselves,  if  you  are  disposed to  turn  to  the  course  of  nature,  and  worship  the  gods  that have  preserved  them  in  their  government,  and  to  forget  those practices  which  are  so  unnatural  {"Tov  Tta^a  (pvaiv).  What, then,  say  ye  to  these  things  1  For  neither  do  I  expect  that  you will  be  ungrateful  for  their  kindness,  since  they  would  dispose you  to  a  better  cause.'  Dionysius  answered,  '  All  the  gods  are not  w^orshipped  by  all,  but  each  party  worships  those  whom  they think  to  be  gods.  We,  therefore,  worship  the  one  God  and  Creator of  all  things,  and  the  very  same  that  has  committed  the government  to  their  most  excellent  and  sacred  majesties.  Valerian and  Gallienus.  Him  we  worship  and  adore,  and  to  him  we incessantly  pray  that  their  reign  may  continue  firm  and  unshaken.' iEmilianus,  the  prefect,  again  replied :  '  But  who prevents  you  from  worshipping  this  one  God,  if  he  is  a  god,  together with  those  that  are  the  natural  gods  ?  For  you  are  commanded to  worship  the  gods,  and  those  gods  which  all  know  to be  such.'  Dionysius  answered :  '  We  worship  no  other  one.'
JEmilianus,  the  prefect,  said,  '  I  perceive  that  you  are  at  the same  time  ungrateful,  and  insensible  to  the  clemency  of  our  Cesars.  Therefore  you  shall  not  remain  in  this  city,  but  you  shall be  sent  to  the  parts  of  Lybia,  to  a  place  called  Cephro.  For this  place  I  have  selected  according  to  the  orders  of  our  Cesars.
But  neither  you,  nor  any  others,  shall  in  any  wise  be  permitted, either  to  hold  conventions,  or  to  enter  what  you  call  your  cemeteries.*    But  if  any  one  appear  not  to  have  gone  to  the  place
*  The  Chiistians  called  their  burial  places  cemeteries,  y.oi/x>;ry,p,:i^  dormitories,  because death,  in  the  light  of  the  gospel,  is  a  sleep.  These  dormitories,  as  we  here see,  were  frequented  by  the  Christians,  as  peculiarly  calculated  to  cherish  religious sentiments,  particularly  if  these  places  had  been  the  depositories  of  martyred  confessors. It  was  here,  too,  where,  in  the  firm  faith  that  death  is  but  a  sleep,  they could  hold  a  kind  of  communion  with  departed  virtue,  and  find  their  own  strengthened by  it.  Well  may  Christianity  be  pronounced  the  only  true  philosophy,  when she  arrays  our  greatest  terrors  in  such  a  light.

2N

282  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

which  I  have  commanded,  or  if  he  shall  be  found  in  any  assembly, he  will  do  it  at  his  peril  For  the  necessary  punishment  will  not fail.  R,emove,  therefore,  whither  ye  are  commanded.'  Thus he  compelled  me,  sick  as  I  was,  nor  did  he  grant  me  a  day's  respite. What  leisure,  then,  had  I  to  hold  assemblies,  or  not  to hold  them?"

After  other  matters,  he  says  again,  "  But  neither  did  we  keep aloof  from  assembling  ourselves  by  divine  assistance;  but  so much  the  more  diligently  did  I  gather  those  that  were  in  the city,  as  if  I  were  in  their  midst :  absent,  indeed,  in  the  body,  as I  said,  but  present  in  spirit.  But  in  Cephro  a  large  congregation collected  with  us,  partly  of  the  brethren  that  accompanied  us from  the  city,  partly  of  those  that  joined  us  from  Egypt ;  and thus  God  opened  a  door  for  the  word  likewise  there.  And  at first,  indeed,  we  were  persecuted,  we  were  stoned ;  but,  at  last, not  a  few  of  the  heathen,  abandoning  the  idols,  turned  to  God, for  the  word  was  then  first  sown  among  them,  as  they  had  never before  heard  it.  And  thus,  as  if  God  had  conducted  us  for  this cause  to  them,  after  we  had  fulfilled  this  ministry,  we  were  again transferred  to  another  part.  For  ^mihanus  designed  to  transport us,  as  it  seemed,  to  places  more  rough,  and  more  replete with  Libyan  horrors  (more  Libyan-like),  and  he  commanded those  in  the  Mareotic  district  every  where  to  collect,  appointing them  separate  villages  throughout  the  country.  But  our  party, together  with  those  that  should  be  first  taken,  he  commanded  to be  left  on  the  way.  For,  no  doubt,  it  was  among  his  plans  and preparations,  that  whenever  he  wished  to  seize  us  he  might  easily take  us  captive.  But  when  I  w^as  first  ordered  to  go  away  to Cephro,  though  I  knew  not  the  place  where  it  was,  having scarcely  even  heard  the  name  before,  yet  I  nevertheless  went away  cheerfully  and  calmly.  But  when  it  was  told  me  to  remove to  the  parts  of  Colluthion,  those  present  know  how  I  was affected.  For  here  I  shall  accuse  myself  At  first,  indeed,  I
was  afHicted,  and  bore  it  hard.  For  though  these  places  happened to  be  more  know^n  and  familiar  to  me,  yet  they  said  that  it  was a  region  destitute  of  brethren  and  good  men,  and  exposed  to  the insolence  of  travellers,  and  the  in  mrsions  of  robbers.     But  I  re
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  283

ceived  comfort  from  the  brethren,  who  reminded  me  that  it  was nearer  to  the  city.  Cephro,  indeed,  brought  us  a  great  number of  brethren  promiscuously  from  Egypt,  so  that  we  w^ere  able  to spread  the  church  farther ;  but  as  the  city  was  nearer  there,  we should  more  frequently  enjoy  the  sight  of  those  that  were  really beloved  and  most  dear  to  us.  For  they  would  come,  and  would tarry,  and  as  if  in  the  more  remote  suburbs,  there  would  be  still meetings  in  part.     And  so  it  was."

After  these,  and  other  remarks,  he  proceeds  to  tell  what  happened to  him  again  :  "  Germanus,  indeed,  may  pride  himself  for many  confessions ;  he  may  have  much  to  say  of  what  happened to  him  :  he  may,  as  well  as  we,  speak  of  the  great  number  of sentences  of  condemnation,  confiscations,  proscriptions,  spoliations of  goods  ;  loss  of  dignities  ;  contempt  of  worldly  honour ;  contempt of  praise  from  the  prefects  or  from  counsellors,  and  the endurance  of  the  opposite  threats  of  outcries ;  of  dangers  of  persecutions; of  exile  ;  of  great  trouble  and  various  kinds  of  affliction, such  as  happened  to  me  under  Decius  and  Sabinus,  such  as I  have  suffered  until  the  present  persecution  of  iEmilianus.  But where  in  the  world  was  Germanus?  What  is  said  of  him?
But  I  will  abstain  from  the  great  folly  into  which  I  have  fallen on  account  of  Germanus.  And  hence,  also,  I  shall  dismiss  giving a  particular  account  of  what  happened  to  the  brethren,  who already  know  the  facts."

The  same  writer,  also,  in  the  epistle  toDomitius  and  Didymus, again  makes  mention  of  some  particulars,  in  reference  to  the  persecution, as  follows :  "  But  it  is  superfluous  for  me  to  recount  to you  our  brethren  by  name,  as  they  are  both  numerous  and  unknown to  you.  But  you  must  know  that  they  are  men  and women,  young  and  old,  young  virgins  and  aged  matrons,  soldiers and  private  men,  every  class  and  every  age,  some  that  obtained the  crown  of  victory  under  stripes  and  in  the  flames,  some  by  the edge  of  the  sword.  For  many,  however,  the  lapse  of  a  very  long time  was  not  sufficient  to  appear  acceptable  to  God,  as  indeed  it has  not  appeared  to  me  to  the  present  time.  Therefore,  I  have been  reserved  for  a  time  which  he  knows  most  suitable,  who  has said,  *  In  the  accepted  time  I  have  heard  thee,  and  in  the  day  of
284  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

salvation  I  have  assisted  thee.'  But  since  you  have  inquired,  and wish  to  be  informed  of  all  concerning  us,  you  have  fully  heard how  w^e  fare :  how  we  were  led  away  as  prisoners  by  the  centurion and  magistrates,  and  the  soldiers  and  officers  with  them, myself  and  Caius,  Faustus,  Peter,  Paul,  when  a  certain  party came  from  Mareotis  and  forcibly  dragged  us  away,  we  following them  not  of  our  own  accord,  but  forced.  But  now  Caius  and Peter,  with  myself,  solitary  and  deprived  of  the  rest  of  our  brethren, are  shut  up  in  a  wild  and  desert  place  of  Libya,  three  days'
journey  distant  from  Paraetonium."

After  some  further  remarks,  he  proceeds :  "  But  in  the  city some  concealed  themselves,  secretly  visiting  the  brethren ;  presbyters Maximinus,  Dioscorus,  Demetrius,  and  Lucius.  For Faustinus  and  Aquila,  who  are  more  prominent  in  the  world,  are wandering  about  in  Egypt.  But  of  those  that  died  of  the  sickness, the  surviving  deacons  are  Faustus,  Eusebius,  Chaeremon.
Eusebius,  who  was  strengthened  by  the  Lord  from  the  beginning, and  who  was  w^ell  qualified  to  fulfil  the  arduous  and  necessary duties  to  those  confessors  that  were  in  prison,  and  to  perform  the dangerous  office  of  burying  those  perfected  and  blessed  men  who suffered  martyrdom.  For,  to  the  present  day,  the  governor  does not  cease  killing  some,  as  I  before  said,  in  a  most  cruel  manner, whenever  they  are  arraigned,  torturing  others  with  scourging, wasting  others  with  imprisonment  and  bonds,  and  commanding that  no  one  shall  go  nigh  them,  and  examining  whether  any, perhaps,  is  seen  to  do  so.  And  yet  God,  by  the  alacrity  and kindness  of  the  brethren,  has  afforded  some  relief  to  the  afflicted.'
Such  is  the  statement  of  Dionysius  in  this  epistle.

But  it  should  be  observed,  that  this  Eusebius,  whom  he  called a  deacon,  was  not  long  after  appointed  bishop  of  Laodicea,  in Syria.  But  Maximus,  whom  he  called  a  presbyter,  at  that  time succeeded  Dionysius  as  bishop  of  the  church  at  Alexandria.  But Faustus,  who  was  at  that  time  greatly  distinguished  for  his  confession, being  reserved  until  the  persecution  of  our  times,  in  a very  advanced  age,  and  full  of  days,  was  made  perfect  as  a  martyr, and  was  beheaded.  Such,  however,  were  the  events  that happened  to  Dionysius  at  this  time.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  285

CHAPTER  XIL

The  maHiji's  at  Cesarea  of  Palestine.

Ix  the  persecution  of  Valerian,  mentioned  above,  three  men of  Cesarea  in  Palestine,  who  shone  gloriously  in  their  confession  of Christ,  were  honoured  with  divine  martyrdom  by  becoming  the food  of  wild  beasts.  Of  these,  one  ^vas  called  Priscus,  another Malchus,  the  third  was  named  Alexander.  These,  it  is  said, lived  at  first  in  the  country,  pretending  to  be  careless  and  indifferent ;  but  when  occasion  presented  itself  from  heaven  to  them, already  burning  with  desire  to  obtain  the  prize,  they  w^ould  then cease,  with  the  view  that  they  might  not  be  too  forward  in  seizing the  martyr's  crown.  With  these  purposes,  therefore,  they hasted  to  Cesarea,  and  advanced  to  the  judge,  and  obtained  the sentence  mentioned.  It  is  also  said,  that  a  certain  female  endured a  similar  conflict  in  the  same  persecution  and  city,  but who  is  also  said  to  have  been  of  the  sect  of  Marcion.

CHAPTER  XIIL

Tlie  peace  after  Galliemis.

But  as  it  was  not  long  before  Valerian  was  taken  captive,  and reduced  to  slavery  by  the  barbarians,  his  son  Gallienus,  obtaining the  sole  command,  was  disposed  to  use  more  clemency  in  the exercise  of  his  power.  He,  therefore,  immediately  restrained the  persecution  against  us,  by  sending  edicts,  in  which  he  commanded that  the  ministers  of  the  word  might  perform  the  customary duties  of  their  office  w  ith  freedom,  the  copy  of  which  was as  follows  :  '*  The  emperor  Cesar,  Publius,  Licinius,  Gallienus, Pius,  Felix,  iVugustus,  to  Dionysius,  Pinna,  Demetrius  and  the other  bishops.  The  benefit  of  the  privilege  granted  by  me,  I
have  ordered  to  be  issued  throughout  the  whole  world,  that  all may  depart  from  their  religious  retreats ;  and  therefore  you  also
286  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTOHV'.

may  make  use  of  this  copy  of  my  edict,  that  no  one  may  molest you.  And  this  Hberty  indeed,  which  you  are  now  permitted  to have,  has  been  long  since  granted  by  me.  Aurelius  Cyrenius, therefore,  who  has  the  chief  administration  of  affairs,  will  observe the  copy  here  given  by  me."  This,  that  it  may  be  the  better understood,  we  have  here  presented  to  our  readers,  in  a translation  from  the  Latin  tongue.  There  is  also  another  ordinance from  him,  which  he  addressed  to  other  bishops,  in  which he  grants  permission  to  recover  what  are  called  the  cemeteries.

CHAPTER  XIV.

The  bishops  that  Jlowrished  at  this  time.

At  this  time  the  episcopate  in  the  Roman  church  was  yet held  by  Xystus;  but  in  the  church  of  Antioch,  after  Fabius,by Demetrianus  ;  of  Cesarea  in  Cappadocia  by  Firmilianus  ;  of  the churches  in  Pontus,  by  Gregory,  and  his  brother  Athenodorus, both  of  them  familiar  friends  of  Origen.  At  Cesarea,  however, of  Palestine,  after  the  death  of  Theoctistus,  the  episcopal  office was  conferred  on  Domnus,  and  he  not  surviving  long,  was  succeeded by  Theotecnus  our  contemporary.  He  was  also  of  the school  of  Origen,  but  in  Jerusalam,  after  the  decease  of  Mazabanus,  Hymen^us  followed  as  his  successor  in  the  episcopal  seat, the  same  that  has  obtained  much  celebrity  in  our  times  for  many years.

CHAPTER    XV.

The  martyrdom  of  MariniLS  at  Cesarea,
About  this  time,  as  peace  was  every  where  restored  to  the chuibhes,  Marinus  of  Cesarea  in  Palestine,  who  was  one  of  the army,  distinguished  for  his  military  honours,  and  illustrious  for his  family  and  wealth,  was  beheaded  for  his  confession  of  Christy
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  287

on  the  following  account :  "  There  is  a  certain  honour  among the  Romans,  called  the  vine,  which  they  who  obtain  are  said  to be  centurions.  A  place  becoming  vacant,  Marinus,  by  the  order of  succession,  was  called  to  this  promotion ;  but  when  he  was  on the  point  of  obtaining  this,  however,  another  one  advancing  to the  tribunal  began  to  make  opposition,  by  saying  that  according to  the  ancient  institutions  it  was  not  lawful  for  him  to  share  in the  Roman  honours,  as  he  was  a  Christian,  and  refused  to  sacrifice to  the  emperors  ;  but  that  the  office  devolved  on  him.  The judge,  whose  name  was  Acha3us,  roused  at  this,  first  began to  ask  what  the  opinions  of  Marinus  were ;  and  when  he  saw^
him  constantly  affirming  that  he  was  a  Christian,  he  granted  him three  hours  for  reflection.  But  as  soon  as  he  came  out  of  the praetorium,  or  judgment  hall,  Theotecnus,  the  bishop  of  the  place, coming  to  him,  drew  him  aside  in  conversation,  and  taking  him by  the  hand,  conducted  him  to  the  church ;  and  having  placed him  within  by  the  altar,  he  raised  his  cloak  a  little,  and  pointing to  the  sword  that  was  attached  to  his  side,  at  the  same  time  presenting before  him  the  book  of  the  holy  gospels,  told  him  to choose  either  of  the  tw^o  according  to  his  wish.  Without  hesitation he  extended  his  hand  and  took  the  book.  "  Hold  fast,  then, hold  fast  to  God,"  said  Theotecnus,  "  and  strengthened  by  him, mayest  thou  obtain  what  thou  hast  chosen — go  in  peace."  Immediately upon  his  return  from  thence,  a  crier  began  to  proclaim before  the  praetorium,  for  the  appointed  time  had  already  passed away ;  and  being  thus  arraigned,  after  exhibiting  a  still  greater ardour  in  his  faith,  he  w^as  forthwith  led  away  as  he  was,  and made  perfect  by  martyrdom.

CHAPTER   XVI.

Some  account  of  Astyrius.

Mention  is  also  made  in  these  times  of  the  pious  confidence of  Astyrius,  a  man  who  vas  a  Roman  of  senatorial  rank,  m  great
27

288  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

favour  with  the  emperors,  and  well  known  to  all  for  his  noble birth  and  his  wealth.  As  he  was  present  at  the  death  of  the abovementioned  martyr;  taking  up  the  corpse,  he  bore  him  on his  shoulder  in  a  splendid  and  costly  dress,  and  covering  it  in  a magnificent  manner,  committed  it  to  a  decent  burial.  Many other  facts  are  stated  of  the  man  by  his  friends,  who  have  lived to  the  present  times.

CHAPTER  XVII.

The  miracles  of  our  Saviour  at  Paneas.

Among  these  there  was  the  following  remarkable  occurrence.
At  Cesarea  Philippi,  which  is  called  Paneas  by  the  Phoenicians, the}^  say  there  are  springs  that  are  shown  there,  at  the  foot  of the  mountain  called  Panius,  from  which  the  Jordan  rises ;  and that  on  a  certain  festival  day  there  was  usually  a  victim  thrown into  these,  and  that  this,  by  the  power  of  the  daemon,  in  some wonderful  rnanner  entirely  disappeared.  The  thing  was  a  famous wonder  to  all  that  were  there  to  see  it.  Astyrius  happening to  be  once  present  at  these  rites,  and  seeing  the  multitude astonished  at  the  affair,  pitied  their  delusion.  Then  raising  his eyes  to  heaven,  he  implored  the  God  over  all  through  Christ,  to refute  this  seducing  daemon,  and  to  restrain  the  delusion  of  the people.  As  soon  as  he  prayed,  it  is  said  that  the  victim  floated on  the  stream,  and  that  thus  this  miracle  vanished,  no  wonder 2ver  more  occurring  in  this  place.

CHAPTER  XVIII.

The  statue  erected  by  the  woman  having  an  hemorrhage.

But  as  we  have  mentioned  this  city,  I  do  not  think  it  right  to pass  by  a  narrative  that  also  deserves  to  be  recorded  for  posterity.
They  say  that  the  woman  who  had  an  issue  of  blood,  mentioned
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  289

by  the  evangelists,  and  who  obtained  deHverance  from  her  affliction by  our  Saviour,  was  a  native  of  this  place,  and  that  her house  is  shown  in  the  city,  and  the  wonderful  monuments  of  our Saviour's  benefit  to  her  are  still  remaining.  At  the  gates  of  her house,  on  an  elevated  stone,  stands  a  brazen  image  of  a  woman on  her  bended  knee,  with  her  hands  stretched  out  before  her like  one  entreating.  Opposite  to  this  there  is  another  image  of  a man,  erect,  of  the  same  materials,  decently  clad  in  a  mantle  (diplois,)  and  stretching  out  his  hand  to  the  woman.  Before  her feet,  and  on  the  same  pedestal,  there  is  a  certain  strange  plant growing,  which  rising  as  high  as  the  hem  of  the  brazen  garment, is  a  kind  of  antidote  to  all  kinds  of  diseases.  This  statue,  they say,  is  a  statue  of  Jesus  Christ,  and  it  has  remained  even  until our  times ;  so  that  we  ourselves  saw  it  whilst  tarrying  in  that city.  Nor  is  it  to  be  wondered  at,  that  those  of  the  Gentiles  who were  anciently  benefited  by  our  Saviour,  should  have  done  these things.  Since  we  have  alsp  seen  representations  of  the  apostles Peter  and  Paul,  and  of  Christ  himself,  still  preserved  in  paintings ;
as  it  is  probable  that,  according  to  a  practice  among  the  Gentiles, the  ancients  were  accustomed  to  pay  this  kind  of  honour  indiscriminately to  those  who  were  as  saviours  or  deliverers  to  them..

CHAPTER  XIX.

The  episcopal  seat  of  James,
James  being  the  first  that  received  the  dignity  of  the  episcopate at  Jerusalem,  from  our  Saviour  himself,  as  the  sacred  Scriptures show  that  he  was  generally  called  the  brother  of  Christ ;  this  see, which  has  been  preserved  until  the  present  times,  has  ever  been held  in  veneration  by  the  brethren  that  have  followed  in  the  succession there,  in  which  they  have  sufficiently  shown  what  reverence both  the  ancients  and  those  of  our  own  times  exhibited,  and still  exhibit,  towards  holy  men  on  account  of  their  piety.  But enough  of  this.

2  0

290  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER  XX.

The  epistles  of  Dionysius,  on  festivals,  in  ithich  he  gives  the canon  on  the  Passover.

Besides  these  epistles,  the  same  Dionysius,  about  this  time also  composed  others,  called  his  Festival  Epistles,  in  which  he discourses  much  in  praise  of  the  festival  of  the  Passover.  One  of these  he  addressed  to  Flavius,  another  to  Domitius  and  Didymus, in  which  also  he  gives  the  canon  for  eight  years,  showing  that  it is  not  proper  to  observe  the  paschal  festival  before  the  vernal equinox  was  past.  Beside  these,  he  composed  another  epistle, addressed  to  his  compresbyters  at  Alexandria.  Also,  to  several others,  and  these  during  the  prevalence  of  the  persecution.

CHAPTER   XXI.

The  events  that  occurred  at  Alexandria.

Peace  having  been  scarcely  established,  he  returned,  indeed, to  Alexandria ;  but  as  sedition  and  war  again  broke  out,  so  that it  was  impossible  for  him  to  superintend  all  the  brethren  then divided  into  different  parties,  he  again  addresses  them  by  letter at  the  passover,  as  if  he  were  still  an  exile  from  Alexandria.  He also  wrote,  after  this,  another  paschal  letter  to  Hierax,  a  bishop of  Egypt,  in  which  he  makes  mention  of  the  sedition  then  existing at  Alexandria,  as  follows :  "  But  what  cause  of  wonder  is there,  if  it  be  difficult  for  me  also  to  address  epistles  to  those that  are  so  very  remote,  when  I  am  at  a  loss  to  consult  for  my own  life,  or  to  reason  with  myself  For,  indeed,  I  have  great need  to  send  epistolary  addresses  to  those  who  are  as  my  own bowels,  my  associates  and  dearest  brethren  and  members  of  the same  church.  But  how  I  shall  send  these  I  cannot  devise.  For  it would  be  more  easy  for  any  one,  I  would  not  say  to  go  beyond  the limits  of  the  province,  but  even  to  travel  from  east  to  west,  than
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  291

to  go  from  Alexandria  to  Alexandria  itself.  For  the  very  heart of  the  city  is  more  desolate  and  impassable  than  that  vast  and trackless  desert  which  the  Israelites  traversed  in  two  generations, and  our  smooth  and  tranquil  harbours  have  become  like  that sea  which  opened  and  arose  like  walls  on  both  sides,  enabled them  to  drive  through,  and  in  whose  highway  the  Egyptians  were overwhelmed.  For  often  they  appear  like  the  Red  Sea,  from  the frequent  slaughters  committed  in  them ;  but  the  river  which washes  the  city,  has  sometimes  appeared  more  dry  than  the parched  desert,  and  more  exhausting  than  that  in  which  Israel was  so  overcome  with  thirst  on  their  journey  that  they  exclaimed against  Moses,  and  the  water  flowed  for  them  from  the  broken rock,  by  the  power  of  Him  who  alone  doeth  wondrous  works.
Sometimes,  also,  it  has  so  overflowed,  that  it  has  inundated  all the  country  round ;  the  roads  and  the  fields  seeming  to  threaten that  flood  of  waters  which  happened  in  the  days  of  Noah.  It also  flows  always  polluted  with  blood  and  slaughter,  and  the  constant drowning  of  men,  such  as  it  formerly  was,  when,  before Pharaoh,  it  was  changed  by  Moses  into  blood  and  putrid  matter.
And  what  other  purification  could  be  applied  to  water  which itself  purifies  all?  Could  that  vast  and  impassable  ocean  ever wash  away  this  bitter  sea  ?  or  could  that  great  river,  itself,  which flowed  from  Eden,  though  it  poured  the  four  heads  into  which  it was  divided,  into  one  Gihon,  w^ash  away  this  filth  ?  When  will this  air,  corrupted  as  it  is  by  the  noxious  exhalations  every  where rising,  become  pure  and  serene  ?  For  there  are  such  vapours from  the  earth,  and  such  storms  from  the  sea-breezes,  from  the rivers  and  mists  coming  from  the  harbours,  that  make  it  appear as  if  we  should  have  for  dew,  the  gore  of  these  dead  bodies  that are  putrifying  in  all  the  elements  around  us.

"  Then,  and  notwithstanding  all  this,  men  wonder,  and  are  at a  loss  to  know  whence  come  the  constant  plagues;  whence these  malignant  diseases;  whence  those  variegated  infections;
whence  all  that  various  and  immense  destruction  of  human  lives.
Wherefore  it  is,  that  this  mighty  city  no  longer  cherishes  within it  such  a  number  of  inhabitants,  from  speechless  children  to  the aged  and  decrepid,  as  it  formerly  had  of  those  whom  it  could
2n
292  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

pronounce  firm  and  vigorous  in  years.  But  those  of  forty  years and  up  to  seventy,  were  so  much  the  more  numerous  then,  that their  number  cannot  now  be  made  up,  if  even  those  from  fourteen to  eighty  were  inserted  and  enrolled  among  the  receivers  of  the public  grain.  And  those  v^'ho  in  appearance  are  but  the  youngest, are  now  as  of  an  age  with  those  formierly  the  oldest.  And  yet, though  they  constantly  see  the  human  race  diminishing,  and  constantly wasting  away,  in  the  very  midst  of  this  increasing  destruction, and  this  annihilation,  they  are  not  alarmed."

CHAPTER  XXII.

The  pestilence  which  then  prevailed.

The  pestilence,  after  these  things,  succeeding  the  war,  and  the festival  being  at  hand,  he  again  addresses  the  brethren  in  epistles;
in  which  he  shows  the  great  calamities  attending  this  affliction, as  follows :  "  To  other  men,  indeed,  the  present  would  not  appear a  fit  season  for  a  festival,  and  neither  is  this,  nor  any  other time  a  festival  for  them,  not  to  speak  of  sorrowful  times,  but  not even  that  which  a  cheerful  person  might  especially  deem  such.
But  now  all  things  are  filled  with  tears,  all  are  mourning,  and  by reason  of  the  multitudes  already  dead,  and  still  dying,  groans  are daily  resounding  throughout  the  city.  For  as  it  is  written  respecting the  first  born  of  Egypt,  thus  now,  also,  a  great  lamentation has  arisen,  for  there  is  not  a  house  in  which  there  is  not one  dead.  And  I  wish,  indeed,  this  were  all.  Many,  indeed, and  horrible  calamities  have  preceded  this.  First,  indeed,  they drive  us  away,  and  solitary  and  in  exile,  and  persecuted  and  put to  death  by  all,  we  still  celebrated  the  festival ;  and  every  place, marked  by  some  particular  affliction,  was  still  a  spot  distinguished by  our  solemnities ;  the  open  field,  the  desert,  the  ship,  the  inn, the  prison.  But  the  most  joyous  festival  of  all  was  celebrated  by those  perfect  martyrs  who  are  now  feasting  in  the  heavens.
"  After  this,  war  and  famine  succeeded,  which  indeed  we  en
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  293

dured  with  the  heathen,  but  bore  alone  those  miseries  with  which thev  afflicted  us,  whilst  we  also  experienced  the  effects  of  those which  they  inflicted,  and  suffered  from  one  another.     And  again we  rejoiced  in  the  peace  of  Christ,  which  he  gave  to  us  alone, and  when  both  we  and  they  obtained  a  very  short  respite,  then  .
we  were  assailed  by  this  pestilence.     A  calamity  more  dreadful to  them  than  any  dread,  and  more  afflictive  that  any  affliction, and  which  as  one  of  their  own  historians  has  said,  was  of  itself alone  beyond  all  hope.     To  us,  however,  it  did  not  wear  this character,  but  no  less  than  other  events  it  was  a  school  for  exercise and  probation.     For  neither  did  it  keep  aloof  from  us,  although it  assailed  the  heathen  most."  To  this  he  afterwards  adds :
"Indeed,  the  most  of  our  brethren,  by  their  exceeding  great  love and  brotherly  affection,  not  sparing  themselves,  and  adhering  to one  another,  were  constantly  superintending  the  sick,  ministering to  their  wants  without  fear  and  without  cessation,  and  healing them  in  Christ,  have  departed  most  sweetly  with  them."  Though tilled  with  the  disease  from  others,  and  taking  it  from  their  neighbours,  they   voluntarily,   by   exsuction,  extracted   their    pains.
Many  also,  who  had  healed  and  strengthened  others,  themselves died,  transferring  their  death  upon  themselves,  and  exemplifying in  fact,  that  trite  expression  which  seemed  before  only  a  form  of politeness,  or  an  empty  compliment ;  they  were  in  fact,  in  their death,  the  offscouring  of  all.  {Ttept^^yiua  Tiavrm'-)    The  best  of our  brethren,  indeed,  have  departed  this  life  in  this  way,  some  indeed presbyters,  some  deacons,  and  of  the  people  those  that  were '  exceedingly  commended.     So  that  this  very  form  of  death,  with the  piety  and  ardent  faith  which  attended  it,  appeared  to  be  but little  inferior  to  martyrdom  itself.     They  took  up  the  bodies  of the  saints  with  their  open  hands  and  on  their  bosoms,  cleaned  their eyes  and  closed  their  mouths,  carried  them  on  their  shoulders,  and composed  their  limbs,  embraced,  clung  to  them,  and  prepared them  decently  with  washing  and  garments,  and  ere  long  they  themselves shared  in  receiving  the  same  offices.  Those  that  survived ahvays  following  those  before  them.    Among  the  heathen  it  was the  direct  reverse.     They  both  repelled  those  who  began  to  be sick,  and  avoided  their  dearest  friends.     They  would  cast  them
294  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

out  into  the  roads  half  dead,  or  throw  them  when  dead  without burial,  shunning  any  communication  and  participation  in  death, which  it  was  impossible  to  avoid  by  every  precaution  and  care."
After  this  epistle,  when  the  city  was  at  peace,  he  addressed another  paschal  epistle  to  the  brethren  in  Egypt,  and  wrote many  others  besides.  There  is  one  of  his  extant,  On  the  Sabbath, another  On  Exercise.  He  also  addressed  one  to  Her  mammon, and  to  the  brethren  in  Egypt  Many  other  facts,  after  describing the  wickedness  of  Decius  and  his  successors,  he  states, and  also  mentions  the  peace  ofGallienus.

CHAPTER  XXIII.

The  7'eign  of  Gallienus.

But  it  is  best  to  hear  his  own  words,  as  follows :  "  He  indeed, viz.,  Macrianus,  having  betrayed  the  one,  and  waged  war  with the  other  emperor,  suddenly  perished  with  his  whole  family.  But Gallienus  was  proclaimed  and  universally  acknowledged  emperor, an  emperor  at  once  new  and  old,  having  been  before  them,  and now  surviving  them.  For  as  it  is  said  by  the  prophet  Isaiah, Those  things  that  were  from  the  first,  lo  they  have  come,  and those  are  new  which  shall  now  arise.  As  the  cloud  which  enters the  sun's  rays,  and  for  a  little  obscures  it  by  its  shadow  and  appears in  its  place,  when  the  cloud  has  passed  by,  or  is  dissipated, the  sun  which  had  arisen  before  seems  to  rise  again.  Thus Macrianus,  who  had  established  himself,  and  aspired  higher,  to the  very  power  of  Gallienus,  himself  is  now  no  more,  because he  never  was ;  but  the  latter  is  just  as  he  was,  and  his  government as  if  it  had  lost  the  feebleness  of  age,  and  had  become  purified of  its  former  filth,  now  arose  and  assumed  a  more  flourishing aspect.  And  it  is  now  seen  and  heard  at  a  greater  distance,  and expanded  to  every  part."  After  this  he  also  indicates  the  time when  he  wrote  this.  "  And  it  occurs  to  me  again,  to  survey  the days  of  our  emperor's  reign.  For  I  see,  indeed,  that  those  most impious  men,  once  honoured,  and  famous,  ere  long  became  with
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  295

out  a  name.  But  the  more  holy  and  pious  emperor,  surviving the  seventh  year,  is  now  in  the  ninth,  in  which  we  are  about  to celebrate  tlie  festival."

CHAPTER  XXIV.

OfJVepoSf  and  his  schism.

Besides  these,  there  are  two  w^orks  of  his  on  the  Promises ;
the  occasion  of  which  was  Nepos  a  bishop  in  Egypt.     He  taught, that  the  promises  given  to  holy  men  in  the  Scriptures,  should be  understood  more  as  the  Jews  understood  them,  and  supposed that  there  would  be  a  certain  millennium  of  sensual  luxury  on  this earth.     Thinking,  therefore,   that  he   could   establish   his   own opinion  by  the  Revelation  of  John,  he  composed  a  book  on  this subject,  with,  the  title.  Refutation  of  the  Allegorists.     This,  therefore, was  warmly  opposed  by  Dionysius,  in  his  work  on  the  Promises.    In  the  former,  indeed,  he  gives  his  own  opinion  on  the subject;  in  the  other  he  enters  into  a  discussion  on  the  Revelation of  John,  where,  in  the  introduction,  he  makes  mention  of  Nepos, as  follows :  "  But  they  produce  a  certain  work  of  Nepos,  upon which  they  lay  great  stress,  as  if  he  advanced  things  that  are irrefragable,  when   lie   asserts   that   there   will  be  an   earthly reign  of  Christ.     In   many  other  respects  I  accord   with   and gieatly  love  Nepos,  both  on  account  of  his  faith  and  industry, and  his  great  study  in  the  Scriptures ;  as  also  for  his  great  attention to  psalmody,  by  which  many  are  still  delighted.     I  greatly reverence  the  man  also,  for  the  manner  in  which  he  has  departed this  life.     But  the  truth  is  to  be  loved  and  honoured  before  all.
It  is  just,  indeed,  that  w^e  should  applaud  and  approve  whatever is  said  aright,  but  it  is  also  a  duty  to  examine  and  correct  whatever may  not  appear  to  be  written  with  sufficient  soundness.     If,  indeed, he  were  present,  and  were  advancing  his  sentiments  orally, it  would  be  sufficient  to  discuss  the  subject  without  writing,  and lO  commence  and  confirm  the  opponents  by  question  and  answerBut  as  the  work  is  published,  and  as  it  appears  to  some,  is  calcu
296  ECCLESIASTICAT.  HISTORY.

lated  to  convince,  and  there  are  some  teachers  who  say  that the  law  and  prophets  are  of  no  value,  and  who  give  up  following the  gospels,  and  who  depreciate  the  epistles  of  the  apostles, and  who  at  the  same  time  announced  the  doctrine  of  this  work as  a  great  and  hidden  mystery,  and  who  also  do  not  allow  that our  brethren  have  any  sublime  and  great  conception,  either  of the  glorious  and  truly  divine  appearance  of  our  Lord,  nor  of  our own  resurrection,  and  car  being  gathered,  and  assimilated  to him ;  but  persuade  them  to  expect  what  is  little  and  perishable, and  such  a  state  of  things  as  now  exists  in  the  kingdom  of  God.
It  becomes,  therefore,  necessary  for  us  also,  to  reason  with  our brother  Nepos  as  if  he  were  present."  To  these  he  adds,  after other  remarks :  "  When  I  was  at  Arsinoe,  where,  as  you  know long  since,  this  doctrine  was  afloat,  so  that  schisms  and  apostacies  of  whole  churches  followed,  after  I  had  called  the  presbyters and  teachers  of  the  brethren  in  the  villages,  when  those brethren  had  come  who  wished  to  be  present,  I  exhorted  them to  examine  the  doctrine  publicly.  When  they  had  produced  this book  as  a  kind  of  armour  and  impregnable  fortress,  I  sat  with them  for  three  days,  from  morning  till  evening,  attempting  to  refute what  it  contained.  Then,  also,  I  was  greatly  pleased  to  ob serve  the  constancy,  the  sincerity,  the  docility,  and  intelligence of  the  brethren,  as  we  proceeded  to  advance  in  order,  and  the moderation  of  our  questions  and  doubts  and  mutual  concessions.
For  we  carefully  and  studiously  avoided,  in  every  possible  w^ay, insisting  upon  those  opinions  which  were  once  adopted  by  us, though  they  might  appear  to  be  correct.  Nor  did  we  attempt to  evade  objections,  but  endeavoured  as  far  as  possible  to  keep to  our  subject,  and  to  confirm  these.  Nor  ashamed  if  reason prevailed,  to  change  opinions,  and  to  acknowledge  the  truth;
but  rather  received  with  a  good  conscience  and  sincerity,  and with  single  hearts,  before  God,  whatever  was  established  by the  proofs  and  doctrines  of  the  holy  Scriptures.  At  length  Coracio,  who  w^as  the  founder  and  leader  of  this  doctrine,  in  the hearing  of  all  the  brethren  present,  confessed  and  avowed  to  us, that  he  would  no  longer  adhere  to  it,  nor  discuss  it,  that  he  w^ould ;neither  mention  nor  teach  it,  as  he  had  been  fully  convinced  by
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  297

the  opposite  arguments.     The  other  brethren  present  rejoiced also  at  this  conference,  and  at  the  conciliatory  spirit  and  unani mity  exhibited  by  all."

CHAPTER  XXV.
The  apocalypse  of  John,
After  this,  he  proceeds  further  to  speak  of  the  Revelation  of John,  as  follows :  "  Some,  indeed,  before  us,  have  set  aside,  and have  attempted  to  refute  the  whoiC  book,  criticising  every  chapter, and  pronouncing  it  "vVithout  sense  and  without  reason.  They say  that  it  has  a  false  title,  for  it  is  not  of  John.  Nay,  that  it  is not  even  a  revelation,  as  it  is  covered  with  such  a  dense  and  thick veil  of  ignorance,  that  not  one  of  the  apostles,  and  not  one  of  the holy  men,  or  those  of  the  church  could  be  its  author.  But  that Cerinthus,  the  founder  of  the  sect  of  Cerinthians,  so  called  from him,  wishing  to  have  reputable  authority  for  his  own  fiction, prefixed  the  title.  For  this  is  the  doctrine  of  Cerinthus,  that there  will  be  an  earthly  reign  of  Christ ;  and  as  he  was  a  lover of  the  bodv,  and  altoo^ether  sensual  in  those  thinc^s  which  he  so eagerly  craved,  he  dreamed  that  he  would  revel  in  the  gratification of  the  sensual  appetite,  i.  e.  in  eating  and  drinking,  and marrying ;  and  to  give  the  things  a  milder  aspect  and  expression, in  festivals  and  sacrifices,  and  the  slaying  of  victims.  For  my part  I  w^ould  not  venture  to  set  this  book  aside,  as  there  are  many brethren  that  value  it  much ;  but  having  formed  a  conception  of its  subject  as  exceeding  my  capacity,  I  consider  it  also  containing a  certain  concealed  and  \vonderful  intimation  in  each  particular.
For,  though  I  do  not  understand,  yet  I  suspect  that  some  deeper sense  is  enveloped  in  the  words,  and  these  I  do  not  measure  and judge  by  my  private  reason ;  but  allowing  more  to  faith,  I  have regarded  them  as  too  lofty  to  be  comprehended  by  me,  and  those things  which  I  do  not  understand,  I  do  not  reject,  but  I  wonder the  more  that  I  cannot  comprehend."

After  this,  he  examines  the  whole  book  of  the  Revelation,  and
2P

298  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

after  proving  that  it  is  impossible  that  it  should  be  understood according  to  the  obvious  and  literal  sense,  he  proceeds  :  "  The prophet,  as  I  said,  having  completed  the  whole  prophecy,  he  pronounces those  blessed  that  should  observe  it  as  also  himself.
*  For  blessed,'  says  he,  '  is  he  that  keepeth  the  words  of  the  prophecy of  this  book,  and  I,  John,*  who  have  seen  and  heard  these things.'  I  do  not,  therefore,  deny  that  he  was  called  John,  and that  this  was  the  writing  of  one  John.  And  I  agree  that  it  was the  work,  also,  of  some  holy  and  inspired  man.  But  I  would  not easily  agree  that  this  was  the  apostle,  the  son  of  Zebedee,  the brother  of  James,  who  is  the  author  of  the  gospel,  and  the  general (catholic)  epistle  that  bears  his  name.  But  I  conjecture,  both from  the  general  tenor  of  both,  and  the  form  and  complexion  of the  composition,  and  the  execution  of  tlie  w^hole  book,  that  it  is not  from  him.  For  the  evangelist  never  prefixes  his  name,  never proclaims  himself,  either  in  the  gospel  or  in  his  epistle."

A  little  farther,  he  adds :  "  But  John  never  speaks  as  of  bun self  (in  the  first  person),  nor  as  of  another  (in  the  third),  but  be that  wrote  the  apocalypse,  declares  himself  immediately  in  the beginning :  '  The  Revelation  of  Jesus  Christ,  which  he  gave  to him  to  show  to  his  servants  quickly.  And  he  sent  and  signified it  by  his  angel,  to  his  servant  John,  w^lio  bare  record  of  the  w^ord of  God,  and  of  his  testimony  (of  Jesus  Christ)  and  of  all  things that  he  saw.'

"  Besides  this,  he  wrote  an  epistle :  '  John  to  the  seven  churches of  Asia,  grace  and  peace  to  you.'  But  the  evangelist  does  not prefix  his  name  even  to  his  general  epistle  ;  but,  without  any  introduction or  circumlocution,  begins  from  the  very  mystery  of  the divine  revelation :  '  That  which  was  from  the  beginning,  w^hich we  have  heard,  which  we  have  seen  with  our  eyes ;'  for  upon such  a  revelation  as  this  Peter  was  blessed  by  our  Lord :  '  Blessed art  thou,  Simon  Bar-jona,  because  flesh  and  blood  hath  not revealed  it  to  thee,  but  my  Father  in  heaven.'     But  neither  in
♦  Dionysius  here  understands  the  author  of  the  Apocalypse,  introducing  himself as  a  subject  of  the  same  blessedness  of  which  he  speaks.  This  connexion, though  not  usually  regarded,  is  obvious  on  an  inspection  of  the  original.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  299

the  second  nor  third  epistle  ascribed  to  John  (the  apostle),  though they  are  very  brief,  is  the  name  of  John  presented.  But  anonymously it  is  written,  the  presbyter.  But  the  other  did  not  consider it  sufficient  to  name  himself  but  once,  and  then  to  proceed  in  his narration,  but  afterwards  again  resumes,  '  I,  John,  your  brother and  partner  in  tribulation,  and  the  kingdom  and  patience  of  Jesus, was  on  the  island  called  Patmos,  on  account  of  the  word  of God,  and  the  testimony  of  Jesus.'  And,  hkewise,  at  the  end  (of the  book)  he  says ;  *  Blessed  is  he  that  keepeth  the  words  of  the prophecy  of  this  book,  and  I  am  John  that  saw  and  heard  these things.'

"  That  it  is  a  John  that  wrote  these  things  we  must  believe  him, as  he  says  it ;  but  what  John  it  is,  is  uncertain.  For  he  has  not said  that  he  was,  as  he  often  does  in  the  gospel,  the  beloved  disciple of  the  Lord,  neither  the  one  leaning  on  his  bosom,  nor  the brother  of  James,  nor  he  that  himself  saw  and  heard  what  the Lord  did  and  said.  For  he  certainly  would  have  said  one  of these  particulars,  if  he  wished  to  make  himself  clearly  known.
But  of  all  this  there  is  nothing,  he  only  calls  himself  our  brother and  companion,  and  the  witness  of  Jesus,  and  blessed  on  account of  seeing  and  hearing  these  revelations.  I  am  of  opinion  there were  many  of  the  same  name  with  John  the  apostle,  who,  for their  love  and  admiration  and  emulation  of  him,  and  their  desire at  the  same  time,  like  him,  to  be  beloved  of  the  Lord,  adopted the  same  epithet,  just  as  we  find  the  name  of  Paul  and  of  Peter to  be  adopted  by  many  among  the  faithful.

•'  There  is  also  another  John,  surnamed  Mark,  mentioned  in the  Acts  of  the  Apostles,  whom  Paul  and  Barnabas  took  in  company with  them.  Of  whom  it  is  again  said  :  '  But  they  had  John as  their  minister.'  (Acts  xiii.  5.)  But  whether  this  is  the  one  that wrote  the  Apocalypse,  I  could  not  say.  For  it  is  not  written  that he  came  with  them  to  Asia.  But  he  says  ;  'When  Paul  and  hiis company  loosed  from  Paphos,  they  came  to  Perga  in  Pamphylia, but  John,  departing  from  them,  returned  to  Jerusalem.'  I  think, therefore,  that  it  was  another  one  of  those  in  Asia.  For  they say  that  there  are  two  monuments  at  Ephesus,  and  that  each hears  the  name  of  John,  and  from  the  sentiments  and  the  expres28

300  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

sions,  as  also  their  composition,  it  might  be  very  reasonably  conjectured that  this  one  is  different  from  that.  For  the  gospel  and epistle  mutually  agree.  They  commence  in  the  same  way ;  for the  one  says,  '  In  the  beginning  was  the  w^ord ;'  the  other,  '  That which  was  from  the  beginning.'  The  one  says,  '  and  the  word was  made  flesh,  and  dwelt  (tabernacled)  among  us,  and  we  saw his  glory,  the  glory  as  of  the  only  begotten  of  the  Father.'  The other  says  the  same  things,  a  little  altered :  '  That  which  we have  heard,  which  we  have  seen  wdth  our  eyes,  that  which  we have  seen  and  our  hands  have  handled  of  the  w^ord  of  life,  and the  life  was  manifested.'  These  things,  therefore,  are  premised, alluding,  as  he  has  shown  in  the  subsequent  parts,  to  those  who say  that  the  Lord  did  not  come  into  the  flesh.  Wherefore,  also, he  has  designedly  subjoined  :  '  What  w^e  have  seen  we  testify, and  we  declare  to  you  that  eternal  life,  which  was  with  the Father,  and  was  made  manifest  to  us ;  what  we  have  seen  and heard  we  declare  to  you.'  He  keeps  to  the  point,  and  does  not depart  from  his  subjects,  but  goes  through  all  in  the  same  chapters and  names,  some  of  which  we  shall  briefly  notice.

"  But  the  attentive  reader  will  find  the  expressions,  the  lifSf the  light,  frequently  occurring  in  both ;  in  both  he  will  find  the expressions,  Jleeing  from  darkness,  the  truth,  grace,  joy,  the  Jiesh and  blood  of  the  Lord,  the  judgment,  forgiveness  of  sins,  the  love of  God  to  us,  the  commandment  given  us  of  love  to  one  another, that  ice  ought  to  keep  all  the  commandments,  the  conviction  of  the world,  the  devil,  of  anti-christ,  the  promise  of  the  holy  spirit,  the adoption  of  God  (z.  e.  the  adoption  made  by  God),  the  faith  to  he exhibited  by  us  in  all  matters,  the  Father  and  the  Son,  every  where occurring  in  both.  And  altogether  throughout,  to  attentive  observers, it  will  be  obvious  that  there  is  one  and  the  same  complexion and  character  in  the  gospel  and  epistle.  Very  diflerent and  remote  from  all  this,  is  the  apocalypse ;  not  even  touching,  or even  bordering  upon  them  in  the  least,  I  might  say.  Not  even containing  a  syllable  in  common  with  them  ;  but  the  epistle,  to say  nothing  of  the  gospel,  has  not  made  any  mention,  or  given any  intimation  of  the  apocalypse,  nor  does  the  apocalypse  menlion  the  epistle.     Whereas,  Paul  indicates  something  of  his  reve
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  301

lations  in  his  epistles;  which,  however,  he  never  recorded  ii.
writing.

"  We  may,  also,  notice  how  the  phraseology  of  the  gospel  and the  epistle  differs  from  the  apocalypse.  For  the  former  are written  not  only  irreprehensibly,  as  it  regards  the  Greek  language, but  are  most  elegant  in  diction  in  the  arguments  and  the  w^hole structure  of  the  style.  It  would  require  much  to  discover  any barbarism  or  solecism,  or  any  odd  peculiarity  of  expression*  at all  in  them.  For,  as  is  to  be  presumed,  he  was  endued  with  all the  requisites  for  his  discourse;  the  Lord  having  granted  him both  that  of  knowledge  and  that  of  expression  and  style.  That the  latter,  however,  saw  a  revelation,  and  received  knowledge and  prophecy,  I  do  not  deny.  But  I  perceive  that  his  dialect  and language  is  not  very  accurate  Greek ;  but  that  he  uses  barbarous idioms,  and  in  some  places  solecisms,  which  it  is  now  unnecessary to  select ;  for  neither  would  I  have  any  one  suppose  that I  am  saying  these  things  by  way  of  derision,  but  only  with  the view  to  point  out  the  great  difference  between  the  writings  of these  men."

CHAPTER  XXVI.

The  epistles  of  Dicmysius,
Besides  these,  there  are  many  other  epistles  of  Dionysius  extant, as  those  to  Ammon,  bishop  of  the  church  at  Bernice,  against Sabellius ;  another  to  Telesphorus,  and  one  to  Euphranor ;
another  to  Ammon  and  Euporus.  He  wTote  also  four  books  on the  same  subject,  which  he  addressed  to  his  namesake  Dionysius at  Rome.  There  are  also  many  other  epistles  beside  these  written by  him,  together  with  longer  treatises  in  the  form  of  epistles, as  those  addressed  to  the  youth  Timothy,  and  that  On  Temptations, which  he  also  dedicated  to  Euphranor.  He  also  says,  in  a letter  to  Basilides,  bishop  (of  the  churches)  of  Pentapolis,  that  he
•  We  have  here  paraphrased  the  word  »ftoTKr^of,
802  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

had  written  a  commentary  on  the  beginning  of  Ecclesiastes.  But he  has  also  left  us  several  epistles  addressed  to  the  same  Basilides.  These  are  the  works  of  Dionysius.  Having  given  this account,  let  us  now  proceed  to  inform  posterity  of  the  nature  and character  of  our  own  age.

CHAPTER   XXVII.

Paul  of  Samosata,  and  the  heresy  introduced  hy  him  at  Antioch,
Xystus  had  been  bishop  of  Rome  eleven  years,  when  he  was succeeded  by  Dionysius,  the  namesake  of  the  bishop  of  Alexandria. At  this  time  also,  Demetrianus  dying  at  Antioch,  the  episcopate was  conferred  on  Paul  of  Samosata.  As  he  entertained low  and  degrading  notions  of  Christ,  contrary  to  the  doctrine  of the  church,  and  taught  that  he  was  in  nature  but  a  common  man, the  Dionysius  of  Alexandria  being  invited  to  attend  the  council, urged  his  age  and  the  infirmity  of  his  body,  as  his  reason  for  deferring his  attendance,  but  gave  his  sentiments  of  the  subject  before them  in  an  epistle.  But  the  other  heads  of  churches,  assembled in  all  haste  from  different  parts,  at  Antioch,  as  against  one who  was  committing  depredations  on  the  flock  of  Christ.

CHAPTER  XXVIII.

The  different  bishops  then  distinguished.

Among  these,  the  most  eminent  were  Firmilianus,  bishop  of Cesarea  in  Cappadocia,  Gregory  and  Athenodorus,  brothers  and pastors  of  the  churches  in  Pontus ;  also  Helenus,  bishop  of  the church  at  Tarsus,  and  Nicomas,  of  Iconium  ;  besides  Hymenaeus  of  the  church  at  Jerusalem,  and  Theotecnus,  of  the  adjacent church  at  Cesarea  :  moreover,  Maximinus,  who  governed the  brethren  at  Bostra  with  great  celebrity.  The  vast  number of  others,  both  presbyters  and  deacons,  that  assembled  in  the
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  303

said  city,  for  the  same  cause,  one  could  hardly  number,  but  these were  the  most  distinguished  ;  all,  therefore,  having  convened  at different  times  and  frequently,  various  subjects  and  questions were  agitated  at  every  meeting :  the  adherents  of  the  Samosatians,  attempting  to  conceal  and  cover  over  their  heterodoxy,  but at  the  same  time  those  on  the  other  side  used  every  effort  to  unmask and  bring  to  light  the  heresy,  and  the  blasphemy,  of  the  men against  Christ.  In  the  mean  time  Dionysius  died,  in  the  twelfth year  of  the  reign  of  Gallienus,  having  presided  over  the  church of  Alexandria  seventeen  years.  He  was  succeeded  by  Maximinus.  But  Gallienus  reigned  fifteen  years  in  all,  when  he  was succeeded  by  Claudius,  who,  after  the  lapse  of  two  years,  transferred the  government  to  Aurelian.

CHAPTER   XXIX.

Pavl  refuted  by  a  certain  Makhion,  one  of  the  presbyters  who  had been  a  sophist,  icas  deposed.

It  w^as  in  the  reign  of  this  emperor,  when  a  final  council  was convened,  in  which  a  great  number  of  bishops  was  present,  and this  arch  heretic  at  Antioch  being  detected,  and  now  evidently discarded  by  all,  was  now  excommunicated  from  the  whole catholic  church  under  heaven.  He  was  refuted,  however,  and argued  out  of  his  lurking  place,  chiefly  by  Malchion  ;  a  man well  versed  in  other  departments  of  learning,  and  who  had  been at  the  head  of  the  sophist's  Greek  school  of  sciences  at  Antioch  ;
but  who  also,  on  account  of  his  great  and  sincere  faith  in  Christ, was  honoured  with  the  office  of  presbyter  in  that  church.  This man  indeed,  was  the  only  one  who,  after  commencing  the  discussion with  him,  which,  as  there  were  ready  writers  that  took down  the  whole,  we  know  to  be  now  extant,  was  able  to  ferret out  the  sly  and  deceitful  sentiments  of  the  man.
28=^

304  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY

CHAPTER  XXX.

The  epistle  of  the  council  against  Paul.

The  pastors,  therefore,  who  had  been  convened,  having  drawn up  an  epistle,  by  common  consent  addressed  it  to  Dionysius  bishop of  Rome,  and  to  Maximus  of  Alexandria,  and  sent  it  to  all  the  provinces. In  this,  they  set  forth  their  own  zeal  to  all,  and  the  perverse doctrine  of  Paul,  together  with  the  arguments  and  discussions which  they  had  had  with  him  ;  stating  at  the  same  time,  the whole  life  and  conduct  of  the  man,  from  whose  statement  it  may be  well  perhaps  to  give  the  follow^ing  extracts  for  the  present.
The  epistle :  "  To  Dionysius  and  Maximus,  and  to  all  our  fellowministers  throughout  the  world,  the  bishops  and  presbyters  and deacons,  and  to  the  whole  catholic  church  throughout  the  world under  heaven :  Helcnus,  Hymenseus,  and  Theophilus,  and  Theotecnus,  and  Maximus,  Proculus,  Nicomas  and  ^lianus,  Paul  and Bolanus  and  Protogenes,  Hierax,  and  Eutychiiis  and  Theodorus, and  Malchion  and  Lucius,  and  all  the  rest,  who  are  bishops, presbyters,  or  deacons,  dwelling  with  us,  in  the  neighbouring cities,  and  nations,  together  with  the  churches  of  God,  wish joy  to  the  beloved  brethren  in  the  Lord."  After  a  short  preliminary, the  following  is  subjoined :  "  We  have  addressed  epistle-s, and  at  the  same  time  have  exhorted  many  of  the  bishops  at  a distance,  to  come  to  our  rehef  from  this  destructive  doctrine :
among  these,  to  Dionysius  the  bishop  of  Alexandria,  and  Firmilianus  of  Cappadocia,  those  holy  men,  of  whom  the  one  wrote  to Antioch,  not  even  deigning  to  honour  the  leader  in  this  delusion with  an  address,  nor  writing  to  him  in  his  name,  but  to  the  whole church,  of  which  epistle  we  have  also  added  a  copy.  But  Firmilianus  who  came  twice  to  Antioch,  despised  his  new  fangled doctrines,  as  we  w^ho  were  present,  and  many  others  besides, well  know,  and  can  attest.  But  as  he  promised  to  change  his mind,  he  believed  him,  and  hoped  that,  without  any  reproach upon  the  word,  the  matter  would  be  settled  in  a  proper  manner.
He  deferred  it  therefore ;  in  which,  however,  he  was  deceived
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  305

by  this  denier  of  his  God  and  Lord,  and  this  deserter  of  his  former faith.  Firmihanus  was  now,  also,  on  his  way  to  Antioch,  and had  come  as  far  as  Tarsus,  because  he  had  before  made  trial  of his  infidel  wickedness :  but  whilst  we  were  thus  collecting  and  requesting him  to  come,  and  awaiting  his  arrival,  he  departed  this life."

After  these,  and  other  matters,  they  also  describe  what  kind of  a  life  the  man  led,  as  follows :  "  But  in  those  instances  where he  abandoned  the  rule  of  faith,  and  went  over  to  spurious  and corrupt  doctrines  before,  there  is  no  necessity  of  judging  his conduct,  when  he  was  yet  in  no  connexion  with  the  church  ;
nor  that  he  was  in  poverty  and  beggary ;  and  that  he  who  had received  neither  wealth  from  his  fathers,  nor  obtained  possessions by  any  art,  or  any  trade  or  business,  has  now  arrived  at  excessive wealth,  by  his  iniquities  and  sacrileges,  and  by  those various  means  which  he  employed  to  exact  and  extort  from  the brethren,  depressing  the  injured,  and  promising  to  aid  them  for a  reward ;  and  yet  how  he  deceived  them,  and  without  doing them  any  good,  took  advantage  of  the  readiness  of  those  who were  in  difficulties,  to  make  them  give  any  thing  in  order  to  be freed  from  their  oppressors.  We  shall  say  nothing  of  his  making merchandise  of  piety;  (1  Tim.  6.)  nor  how  he  affected  lofty  things, and  assumed  with  great  haughtiness  worldly  dignities,  wishing rather  to  be  called  a  magistrate  (ducenarius)  than  a  bishop,  strutting through  the  forum,  and  reading  letters,  and  repeating  them as  he  walked  in  public,  and  how  he  was  escorted  by  multitudes going  before  and  following  after  him:  how  he,  also,  brought envy  and  odium  upon  the  faith,  by  his  pomp,  and  the  haughtiness of  his  heart.  We  shall  say  nothing  of  the  vanity  and  pretensions with  which  he  contrived,  in  our  ecclesiastical  assemblies, to  catch  at  glory  and  empty  shadows,  and  to  confound  the  minds of  the  more  simple,  with  such  things  as  these ;  nothing  of  his preparing  himself  a  tribunal  and  throne,  not  as  a  disciple  of Christ,  but  having,  like  the  rulers  of  this  world,  a  secretum,*  and
*  The  secretum,  was  the  exclusive  seat  or  place  where  the  magistrate  sat  to  decide cases.     It  was  elevated  and  enclosed  with  railings  and  curtains,  so  as  the  more
2a
.306  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

calling  it  by  this  name ;  nothing  of  his  striking  his  thigh  and  his stamping  on  the  tribunal  with  his  feet,  and  his  reproving  and  insulting those  that  did  not  applaud  nor  clap*  as  in  the  theatres, nor  exclaim  and  leap  about  at  these  things  with  his  partisans, men  and  women  around  him,  who  were  the  indecent  listeners  to these  things ;  but  I  say,  reproving  those  that  were  modestly  and orderly  hearing  as  in  the  house  of  God :  nothing  of  his  harsh  invectives in  the  congregation,  against  the  expounders  of  the  w  ord, who  had  departed  this  life,  and  of  his  magnifying  himself,  not as  a  bishop,  but  as  a  sophist  and  juggler.  Besides  this,  he  stopped the  psalms  that  were  sung  in  honour  of  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, as  the  late  compositions  of  modern  men,  but  in  honour  of  himself he  had  prepared  women  to  sing  at  the  great  festival  in  the  midst of  the  church,  which  one  might  shudder  to  hear.  He  suborned, also,  those  bishops  and  presbyters  of  the  neighbouring  districts and  cities  of  his  party,  to  advance  the  same  things  in  their  addresses to  the  people.  For  if  w^e  may  here  anticipate  something of  what  we  intend  to  write  below,  he  does  not  wish  to  confess with  us  that  the  Son  of  God  descended  from  heaven.  And  this we  do  not  intend  merely  to  assert  in  words,  but  it  is  proved abundantly  from  those  records  that  we  have  sent  you,  and  that too  not  the  least,  where  he  says  that  Jesus  is  from  below.  Whilst they  who  sing  to  his  praise,  and  extol  him  among  the  people,  say that  he  has  descended  as  an  angel  from  heaven.  And  these things  he  by  no  means  prohibits,  but  the  haughty  mortal  is  even present  when  they  are  said.  And  as  to  these  women,  these adopted  sisters,f  as  the  inhabitants  of  Antioch  call  them,  which belong  to  him,  and  the  presbyters  and  deacons  about  him,  whose incurable  sins,  in  this  and  other  respects,  he  conceals  wdth  them,
effectually  to  keep  the  magistrate  separate  from  those  present.  Hence  its  name from  the  Latin  seceimo,  to  separate.  The  Latin  word  is  used  in  the  Greek  text here.

*  The  practice  here  referred  to,  was  that  of  shaking  and  striking  the  oraria,  oi linen  handkerchiefs,  in  token  of  applause.  It  was  accompanied  with  other  expressions of  popular  approbation.

-j-  The  words  literally  mean,  sub-introduced  sisters,  a  sort  of  female  compa*
nions,  on  such  terms  of  familiarity  as  gave  occasion  to  scandal.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  307

though  he  is  conscious  of  the  facts,  and  has  convicted  them,  he dissembles,  in  order  to  have  them  subservient  to  his  purposes ;  so that  fearing  for  themselves,  they  dare  not  venture  to  accuse  him in  regard  to  his  impious  conduct  and  doctrine.  Besides  this,  he has  made  them  rich,  for  which  he  is  both  beloved  and  admired by  those  who  covet  these  things.  But  why  should  we  write tliese  things  ?  For  beloved,  we  know  that  the  bishop  and  all  the clergy  ought  to  be  an  example  to  the  people  of  all  good  works.
Nor  are  we  ignorant  how  many,  by  the  introduction  of  such  females, have  fallen,  or  have  incurred  suspicion.  So  that  should  any one  even  grant,  that  nothing  disgraceful  has  been  done  by  him, yet  it  was  a  duty  to  avoid,  at  least,  the  suspicion  growing  out  of the  matter  ;  so  that  no  one  might  take  offence,  nor  any  be  induced to  imitate  him.  For  how  could  any  one  reprove  or  admonish another  to  beware  of  yielding  too  much  to  this  familiarity  with  a woman,  lest  perchance,  he  should  slip,  as  it  is  written ;  especially when,  after  having  already  dismissed  one,  he  retains  two  others with  him,  blooming  in  age  and  eminent  for  beauty,  and  takes them  w^ith  him  wherever  he  goes ;  and  all  this,  too,  indulging  in luxury  and  surfeiting,  on  account  of  w^liich  things  all  around  them are  groaning  and  lamenting.  But  they  are  so  much  afraid  of his  tyranny  and  power,  that  they  do  not  venture  to  accuse  him.
And  these  matters,  indeed,  one  might  perhaps  correct,  in  a  man who  was  of  the  catholic  faith,  and  associated  with  us ;  but  as to  one  who  has  trifled  away  the  sacred  mystery  (of  religion,)  and who  parades  with  the  execrable  heresy  of  Artemas,  (for  why should  we  not  mention  his  father,)  we  deem  it  unnecessary  to exact  of  him  a  reason  for  all  these  things."

After  this,  at  the  close  of  the  epistle,  they  add  the  follov.  ing .
"  We  have  been  compelled,  therefore,  to  excommunicate  this  man who  sets  himself  up  in  opposition  to  God,  and  is  unwilling  to  yield, and  to  appoint  another  bishop  in  his  place  over  the  catholic  church ;
and  this  we  trust,  with  the  providence  of  God,  viz.,  Domnus  the son  of  Demetrianus,  of  blessed  memory,  and  w^ho  before  this  presided with  much  honour  over  the  same  church,  a  man  we  believe fully  endowed  with  all  the  excellent  quahties  of  a  bishop.  We have  also  communicated  this  to  you,  that  you  may  write,  and
308  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

receive  letters  of  communion  from  him.  But  the  other  may write  to  Artemas  if  he  pleases,  and  those  that  think  with  Arte mas  may  have  communion  with  him."  And  this  may  suffice  in this  place.  Paul,  therefore,  having  thus  fallen  from  the  episcopate, together  with  the  true  faith,  as  already  said,  Domnus  succeeded in  the  administration  of  the  church  at  Antioch.  But  Paul being  unwilling  to  leave  the  building  of  the  church,  an  appeal was  made  to  the  emperor  Aurelian,  who  decided  most  equitably on  the  business,  ordering  the  building  to  be  given  up  to  those whom  the  Christian  bishops  of  Italy  and  Rome  should  write.
Thus,  then,  this  man  was  driven  out  of  the  church  with  extreme disgrace,  by  the  temporal  power  itself.  And  such  was  the  disposition of  Aurelian  at  this  time ;  but  in  the  progress  of  his  reign, he  began  to  cherish  different  sentiments  with  regard  to  us,  and then  proceeded,  influenced  by  certain  advisers,  to  raise  a  persecution against  us.  And  the  rumor  of  this  was  now  every  where abroad.  But  whilst  he  was  already  on  the  point,  and  so  to  say, in  the  very  act  of  subscribing  the  decrees,  the  divine  vengeance overtook  him,  all  but,  as  we  might  say,  restraining  him  from  his design  at  the  very  elbow%  and  illustriously  proving  to  all,  that there  can  be  no  privilege  granted  the  rulers  of  the  world  against the  churches  of  Christ,  unless  by  the  sovereign  hand  of  God,  and the  decree  of  heaven  permitting  it  to  be  done  for  our  correction and  amendment,  and  in  those  times  and  seasons  that  he  may  approve. Aurelian,  therefore,  after  a  reign  of  six  years,  was  succeeded by  Probus,  and  he  held  the  government  the  same  number of  years,  when  he  was  succeeded  by  Carus,  together  with  Carianus  and  Numerianus.  These  again  did  not  continue  three full  years,  when  the  government  devolved  on  Diocletian,  and those  subsequently  associated  wdth  him.  In  their  times  the  persecution of  our  ow^n  day  was  begun,  and  the  destruction  of  the churches  at  the  same  time ;  but  a  little  before  this,  Dionysius,  who had  been  bishop  of  Rome  for  nine  years,  was  succeeded  by  Felix.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  309

CHAPTER  XXXL

The  error  of  the  Manichees,  ivhich  commenced  at  this  time.

L\  the  mean  time,  also,  that  madman  {iiaveig  tag  cppsvag)  Manes, *  as  he  was  called,  well  agreemg  with  his  name,  for  liis  dagmoniacal  heresy,  armed  himself  by  the  perversion  of  his  reason,  and at  the  instio-ation  of  Satan,  to  the  destruction  of  many.  He  was a  barbarian  in  his  life,  both  in  speech  and  conduct,  but  in  his nature  as  one  possessed  and  insane.  Accordingly,  he  attempted to  form  himself  into  a  Christ,  and  then  also  proclaimed  himself  to be  the  very  paracletef  and  the  Holy  Spirit,  and  with  all  this  was greatly  puffed  up  with  his  madness.  Then,  as  if  he  were  Christ, he  selected  twelve  disciples,  the  partners  of  his  new  religion,  and after  patching  together  false  and  ungodly  doctrines,  cpllected  from a  thousand  heresies  long  since  extinct,  he  swept  them  off  like  a deadly  poison,  from  Persia,  upon  this  part  of  the  world.  Hence the  impious  name  of  the  ^lanichees  spreading  among  many,  even to  the  present  day.  Such  then  was  the  occasion  of  this  loiowledge,  as  it  was  falsely  called,  that  sprouted  up  in  these  times.

*  Our  author  here  uses  an  epithet,  ^av;<,-,  instead  of  the  proper  name  of  this  heretic. Eusebius  here  taking  occasion  to  rail  at  the  folly  of  Manes,  by  an  allusion  to his  name,  finds  a  word  in  his  own  language  which  seems  to  characterise,  whilst  it gives  his  name  nearly.  We  cannot,  however,  infer  from  this,  that  Eusebius  considered the  name  Greek.  He  doubtless  knew  as  well  as  we,  that  Manes  was  a  Persian name,  or  at  least  that  it  was  not  Greek.  But  he  wanted  nothing  more  than similarity  of  sound  for  his  purpose.

Shorting  is  mistaken  in  supposing  our  author  here  to  intimate  the  word  was Greek.  The  truth  is,  the  orientals  call  the  name  Mani,  whence  the  Greek  and Latin  »^1  fa 7^(?s.  The  resemblance  of  this  name  to  the  Greek  ^^is*?,  madman,  gave our  author  an  opportunity  to  exercise  his  wit,  by  the  application  of  the  epithet  without the  name.

j-  Paraclete.']  See  note.  Book  V.  ch.  16.  The  names  of  three  prominent  leaders in  delusion,  to  whom  the  holy  epithet  paraclete  was  either  applied,  or  by  whom it  was  claimed,  however  different  their  errors,  seem  almost  to  coalesce  by  alliteration ;  Montanus,  Manes,  Mahomet ;  the  first  a  deluded  and  ignorant  fanatic,  the second  a  crazed  philosopher,  and  the  third  an  ambitious,  artful  voluptuary,  presenting a  singular  concordia  discors,  all  at  antipodes  in  doctrine,  yet  all  aspiring  to  the exalted  attributes  of  the  Paraclete.

vSlO  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER   XXXIL

Of  those  distinguished  ecclesiastical  writers  of  our  own  day,  and which  of  them  survived  until  the  destruction  of  the  churches.

At  this  time  Felix,  having  held  the  episcopate  at  Rome  five years,  was  succeeded  by  Eutychianus,  and  he  did  not  hold  the office  quite  ten  months,  when  he  left  his  place  to  be  occupied  by Caius  of  our  own  day.  Caius,  also,  presided  about  fifteen  years, when  he  was  succeeded  by  Marcellinus.  He  was  overtaken  by the  persecution,  and  in  these  times,  also,  Timseus,  after  Domnus, governed  the  church  of  Antioch,  who  was  succeeded  by  our contemporary  Cyrillus,  under  whom  we  have  known  Dorotheus, a  learned  man,  who  was  honoured  with  the  rank  of  presbyter  of Antioch  at  that  time.  He  was  a  man  of  fine  taste  in  sacred literature,  and  was  much  devoted  to  the  study  of  the  Hebrew language,  so  that  he  read  the  Hebrew  Scriptures  with  great facility.  He,  also,  was  of  a  Yery  liberal  mind,  and  not  unacquainted with  the  preparatory  studies  pursued  among  the  Greeks, but  in  other  respects  a  eunuch  by  nature,  having  been  such  from his  birth ;  so  that  the  emperor,  on  this  account,  as  if  it  were  a  great miracle,  received  him  into  his  house  and  family,  and  honoured  him with  an  appointment  over  the  purple  dye  establishment  of  Tyre.
Him  we  have  heard  in  the  church  expounding  the  Scriptures with  great  judgment;  after  Cyrillus,  the  duties  of  the  episcopal office  in  the  church  of  Antioch  were  administered  by  his  suscessor  Tyrannus,  under  whom  the  destruction  of  the  clmrches took  place.  At  Laodicea,  the  church  was  governed  by  Eusebius, the  successor  of  Socrates,  who  was  sprung  from  an  Alexandrian family.  The  occasion  of  his  removal  was  the  affair  respecting Paul  of  Samosat,  on  which  account  having  come  to  Syria,  he was  prevented  from  returning  home  by  those  w^ho  took  great  interest in  the  Scriptures  there.  He  was  also  an  amiable  instance of  religion  among  our  contemporaries,  as  may  be  readily  seen  in those  extracts  from  Dionysius,  which  we  have  inserted  above.
Anatolius  was  appointed  his  successor,  a  good  man,  as  they  say,  in
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  till
the  place  of  the  good.  He,  too,  was  an  Alexandrian.  But  for  his learning  and  skill  in  the  Greek  philosophy,  he  was  superior  to any  of  the  most  distinguished  men  of  our  day,  as  he  had  attained unto  the  highest  eminence  in  arithmetic,  geometry,  and  astronomy, besides  his  proficiency  in  dialectics,  and  physics,  and rhetoric.  On  this  account  it  is  said,  that  he  was  also  requested by  the  Alexandrians  to  establish  a  school  there  of  the  succession (or  order)  of  Aristotle.  They  relate  innumerable  achievements of  his  at  the  siege  of  the  Bruchium,*  at  Alexandria,  as  he  w^as honoured  by  all  in  office,  with  extraordinary  distinction ;  but  as a  specimen,  we  shall  only  mention  this. — When  the  bread,  as they  say,  failed  in  the  siege,  so  that  they  were  better  able  to sustain  their  enemies  from  without  than  the  famine  within,  Anatolius  being  present,  devised  a  project  like  the  following.  As  the other  part  of  the  city  was  in  alliance  with  the  Roman  army, and  therefore  happened  not  to  be  besieged,  he  sent  to  inform Eusebius,  who  was  among  those  not  besieged,  for  he  was  yet there  before  his  removal  to  Syria,  and  was  very  celebrated,  and in  high  repute  even  with  the  Roman  general,  to  inform  him  of the  siege  and  those  perishing  with  famine.  On  learning  this,  he begs  of  the  Roman  general  to  grant  safety  to  those  who  would desert  from  the  enemy,  as  the  greatest  favour  he  could  grant him.  Obtaining  his  request,  he  immediately  communicates  it  to Anatolius,  The  latter  receiving  the  promise,  collected  the senate  of  Alexandria,  and  at  first  began  to  propose  that  they should  come  to  a  reconciliation  with  the  Romans.  But  as  he  perceived that  they  w^ere  incensed  at  the  suggestion,  he  said.  But  I
do  not  think  you  will  oppose  me,  if  I  should  advise  you  to  send  forth the  superfluous  number,  and  those  that  are  of  no  use  to  us,  the old  women  and  children,  and  old  men,  and  let  them  go  where  they wish.  For  why  should  we  keep  those  with  us,  who  will  ere  long at  any  rate  die  to  no  purpose  ?  and  why  should  we  destroy  with famine  those  that  are  already  bereft  of  sight  and  mutilated  in body  ?     We  ought  to  feed  only  men  and  youth,  and  furnish  the
*  The  Bruchium  here  mentioned,  was  a  part  of  Alexandria ;  it  seems  derived from  ~"r='/-''.  a7ino7i%  prsf edits,  and  was  a  kind  of  corn-market.

29

312  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

necessary  provisions  to  those  that  are  necessary  for  the  defence of  the  city.  With  such  reasoning,  having  persuaded  the  senate, he  was  the  first  that  rose  and  proposed  the  resolution,  that  the Vv'hole  multitude  whether  of  men  or  women,  that  were  not  needed for  the  army,  should  be  dismissed  from  the  city,  because  there would  be  no  hope  of  safety  at  all  for  them,  who,  at  any  rate were  about  to  perish  with  the  famine,  if  they  continued  and lingered  in  the  city  until  the  state  of  affairs  was  desperate.  All the  rest  of  the  senate  agreeing  to  this  decree,  he  nearly  saved the  whole  of  the  besieged ;  among  the  first  providing,  that  those of  the  church,  then  those  of  every  age  in  the  town,  should  make their  escape,  and  among  these  not  only  those  that  were  included in  the  decree,  but  taking  the  opportunity,  many  others,  secretly clad  in  women's  clothes,  went  out  of  the  city  by  his  management at  night,  and  proceeded  to  the  Roman  camp.  There  Eusebius receiving  them  all,  like  a  father  and  physician,  recovered  them, wasted  away  by  a  protracted  siege,  with  every  kind  of  attention to  their  wants.  With  two  such  pastors  in  succession,  was  the church  of  Laodicea  honoured  by  the  divine  interposition,  who after  the  termination  of  the  war  mentioned,  had  left  the  city  of Alexandria,  and  came  to  these  parts.  But  in  other  respects  not many  books  were  written  by  Anatolius ;  so  many,  however,  have come  dovv'n  to  us,  by  which  we  may  both  learn  his  eloquence and  erudition.  In  these  he  sets  forth  his  opinions  on  the  Passover, from  which  it  might  be  proper  to  extract  the  following : —
Extracts  from  the  Canons  of  Anatolius  on  the  Paschal  Festival. "  You  have,  therefore,  in  the  first  year,  the  new  moon  of the  first  month,  which  is  the  beginning  of  every  cycle  of  nineteen years,  on  the  twenty-sixth  of  the  Egyptian  month  Phamenoth.
But  according  to  the  months  of  the  Macedonians  the  twentysecond  of  Dystrus.  But  as  the  Romans  would  say,  before  the eleventh  of  the  calends  of  April.  But  the  sun  is  found  on  the said  twenty-sixth  of  the  month  Phamenoth,  not  only  as  entering the  first  segment  (of  the  zodiac),  but  on  the  fourth  day  is  already found  passing  through  it.  But  this  segment  they  generally  call the  first  dodecatomorium,  and  the  equinox,  and  the  beginning  of the  months,  and  the  head  of  the  cycle,  and  the  head  of  the  pla
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  313

netary  course.  But  that  (segment)  before  this,  they  call  the  last of  the  months,  the  twelfth  segment,  and  the  last  dodecatemorium, and  the  end  of  the  planetary  revolution.  Hence,  also,  those  that place  the  first  month  in  it,  and  that  fix  the  fourteenth  of  the month  by  it,  commit,  as  we  think,  no  little  and  no  common blunder.  But  neither  is  this  our  opinion  only,  but  it  was  also known  to  the  Jews  anciently,  and  before  Christ,  and  was  chiefly observed  by  them,  as  we  may  learn  from  Philo,  Josephus,  and Musseus ;  and  not  only  from  these,  but  also  from  those  still  more ancient,  ?.  e.  the  two  Agathobuli,  commonly  called  the  masters, and  of  Aristobulus,  that  most  distinguished  scholar,  who  was  one of  the  seventy  that  translated  the  holy  Scriptures  from  the  Hebrew for  Ptolemy  Philadelphus,  and  his  father,  and  dedicated his  exposition  of  the  law  of  Moses  to  the  same  kings.  These, when  they  resolve  inquiries  on  Exodus,  say  that  all  ought  to sacrifice  the  passover  alike  after  the  vernal  equinox,  in  the  middle of  the  first  month.  But  this  is  found  to  be  when  the  sun passes  through  the  first  segment  of  the  solar,  or,  as  some  call  it, the  zodiacal  circle.  But  this  Aristobulus  also  adds,  it  was  requisite that  not  only  the  sun  should  have  passed  the  equinoctial •;egment  for  the  feast  of  the  passover,  but  the  moon  also.  For as  there  are  two  equinoctial  segments,  the  vernal  and  the  autumnal, and  diametrically  opposite  to  each  other,  and  since  the day  of  the  passover  is  given  on  the  fourteenth  of  the  month  at the  evening,  the  moon  will  stand  diametrically  opposite  to  the sun,  as  may  be  seen  in  full  moons.  Thus  the  sun  will  be  at  the vernal  equinox,  the  moon,  on  the  contrary,  at  the  autumnal  equinox.

"  Many  other  matters,  I  know,  have  been  discussed  by  him ;
some  of  them  with  great  probability,  others  established  with  the most  certain  demonstrations,  in  which  he  attempts  to  show  that the  festival  of  the  passover,  and  of  unleavened  bread,  ought  to be  observed  altogether  after  the  equinox ;  but  I  shall  omit  demanding such  full  demonstrations  of  matters  from  which  the  veil of  the  Mosaic  law  has  been  removed ;  and  it  now^  remains  for us,  in  this  uncovered  surface,  to  contemplate,  as  in  a  mirror,  th^
reflected  doctrines  and  sufferings  of  Christ.     But  that  the  fir^

2R

314  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

month  of  the  Hebrews  is  about  the  equinox,  may  be  gathered from  the  book  of  Enoch."

The  same  author  has  also  left  an  elementary  work,  On  Calculation, ten  books  in  all ;  and  other  proofs  of  his  great  study  and proficiency  in  sacred  literature.  Theotecnus,  bishop  of  Cesarea in  Palestine,  was  the  first  that  laid  his  hands  upon  him  in  his  ordination to  the  episcopate,  designing  to  constitute  him  his  successor in  his  own  church  after  his  death ;  and,  indeed,  both  of  them presided  for  a  short  time  over  the  same  church.  But  when  the synod  at  Antloch  called  him  to  Antioch  against  Paul,  as  he  passed through  the  city  of  Laodicea,  Eusebius,  the  bishop  of  that  place being  dead,  he  was  constrained  by  the  brethren  to  remain.  And Anatolius  also  dying,  Stephen  was  made  bishop  of  that  church, the  last  bishop  before  the  persecution  ;  a  man  greatly  admired for  his  knowledge  of  philosophy,  and  other  branches  of  Greek learning.  But  he  was  not  equally  disposed  towards  the  divine faith,  as  the  progress  of  the  persecution  evinced ;  in  which  he was  proved  to  be  timid  and  cowardly,  ratlier  than  a  sound  philosopher. The  aflliirs  of  the  church,  however,  were  not  likely to  be  ruined  by  this,  for  these  were  corrected  and  restored  b}
Theodotus,  who,  under  a  special  providence  of  God,  the  saviour of  all,  was  ordained  bishop  of  the  church  there ;  and  by  his  deeds proved  the  reality  of  his  name  (given  of  God),  and  of  his  office as  bishop.  For  he  excelled  in  his  knowledge  of  the  medical  art, as  applied  to  the  body,  and  was  skilled  in  that  healing  art  which is  applied  to  the  soul.  No  one  was  ever  his  (Tqual  in  kindness, sincerity,  sympathy,  and  a  zeal  to  benefit  those  that  needed  his aid.  He  was,  also,  much  exercised  in  the  study  of  divine  things.
Such  was  he.

But  at  Cesarea  in  Palestine,  Theotecnus,  after  a  most  diligent and  active  episcopate,  was  succeeded  at  his  death  by  Agapius.
Him  we  know  to  have  laboured  much,  and  to  have  kept  a  most thorough  oversight  in  superintending  the  people,  and  with  his Hberal  hand  to  have  paid  regard  especially  to  the  poor.  In his  time,  we  were  acquainted  with  that  most  eloquent  man,  and truly  practical  philosopher,  who  was  honoured  with  the  rank  of presbyter  in  that  church  ;  I  mean  Pamphilus,  whose  character
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  315

and  greatness  would  be  no  trifling  subject  to  elucidate.  But  we have  dwelt  in  a  separate  work  on  the  particulars  of  his  life,  and the  school  which  he  established,  as  also  the  trials  which  he  endured amid  the  persecution  in  the  diiferent  confessions,  and  besides this,  the  death  of  martyrdom  with  which  he  was  crowned.
He,  indeed,  was  the  most  admirable  of  all  here.  Among  the  very eminent  men  that  have  flourished  near  our  own  times,  of  presbyters we  have  known  Pierius  of  Alexandria,  Melchius  also  bishop of  the  churches  in  Pontus.  The  former  indeed  was  greatly  celebrated for  his  voluntary  poverty,  and  his  philosophical  knowledge, and  was  abundantly  exercised  in  expositions  of  the  Scriptures, and  the  discourses  in  the  public  assemblies  of  the  church.
But  Miletius  was  called  by  the  learned,  the  honey  (ueXt)  of  Attica, and  was  the  most  perfect  original  of  learned  men  that could  be  described.  It  is  impossible  also  to  admire  sufficiently  the superiority  of  his  eloquence :  it  might  be  said  perhaps  that  he derived  this  from  nature,  but  who  is  there  that  could  excel  him in  the  excellence  of  his  other  skill  and  erudition.  For  in  all  the sciences  that  require  the  exercise  of  argumentation,  if  you  were to  make  trial,  you  would  readily  say  that  he  was  a  most  subtle and  acute  reasoncr.  The  virtues  of  his  life  were  also  a  parallel to  these.  We  have  had  the  opportunity  of  observing  him during  the  persecution,  escaping  its  fury  for  seven  years,  in  the regions  of  Palestine.  But  the  church  of  Jerusalem,  after  Hymenasus,  was  under  the  episcopal  care  of  Zambdas,  and  he  not long  after  dying,  Hermon  was  the  last  before  the  persecution  of our  day ;  the  same  that  now  holds  the  apostolic  chair  preserved there  to  this  day.  At  Alexandria,  however,  Maximus,  who held  the  episcopal  office  eighteen  years  after  the  death  of  Dionysius,  was  succeeded  by  Theonas.  In  his  time  Achillas,  who  had been  honoured  with  the  order  of  presbyter,  was  noted  at  Alexandria, having  entrusted  to  him  the  school  for  religious  instruction.
In  his  life  and  actions  he  exhibited  a  most  rare  instance  of  sound wisdom,  and  a  genuine  specimen  of  evangelical  deportment.  But after  Theonas  had  discharged  the  duties  of  the  office  nineteen years,  he  was  succeeded  in  the  episcopate  of  Alexandria  by  Peter, who  was  also  very  eminent,  and  held  the  office  twelve  years  ;
29=^

316  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

nearly  tliree  of  which  he  governed  the  church,  before  the  persecution ;  but  the  rest  of  his  life  he  subjected  himself  to  a  more  rigid course  of  discipline,  but  still  continued  to  manifest  great  interest in  advancing  the  welfare  of  the  church.  Hence,  in  the  ninth  year of  the  persecution  he  was  beheaded,  and  thus  obtained  the  crow^i of  martyrdom.  But  after  giving  in  our  history  an  account  of the  successors,  since  the  birth  of  our  Saviour  until  the  demolition of  the  churches,  embracing  a  period  of  three  hundred  and  five years,  now  let  us  here  attempt  to  give  the  conflicts  which  have been  endured  in  the  cause  of  religion,  in  our  own  times,  in  all their  extent  and  magnitude,  that  it  may  be  on  record  also  for  the benefit  of  posterity.

BOOK  VIII.

Having  already  related  the  successions  of  the  apostles  in  seven books,  in  this  eighth  we  consider  it  necessary  to  record,  for  the benefit  of  posterity,  the  events  of  our  own  times  that  deserve  a more  than  superficial  narration.  And  our  account,  therefore, shall  besjin  with  these.

CHAPTER  I.

The  events  that  preceded  the  'persecution  in  our  times.

To  give  a  satisfactory  account  of  the  extent,  and  the  nature  of that  glory  and  liberty,  with  which  the  doctrine  of  piety  towards the  supreme  God,  as  announced  to  the  world  through  Christ,  was honoured  among  all,  both  Greeks  and  barbarians,  before  the  persecution in  our  day,  this,  we  say,  were  an  undertaking  beyond our  power.  As  a  proof,  we  might  refer  to  the  clemency  of  the emperors  toward  our  brethren,  to  whom  they  even  entrusted  the government  of  provinces,  exonerating  them  from  all  anxiety  as  it regarded  sacrificing,  on  account  of  that  singular  good  will  that they  entertained  toward  the  doctrine.  Why  should  we  speak of  those  in  the  imperial  palaces,  and  the  sovereigns  themselves, who  granted  their  domestics  the  liberty  of  declaring  themselves freely,  in  word  and  deed,  on  religion,  and  I  would  say  almost  the liberty  of  boasting  of  their  freedom  in  the  practice  of  the  faith  1
These,  indeed,  they  eminently  valued,  and  considered  them  as more  acceptable  than  their  associates  in  the  imperial  service.

Such  was  that  Dorotheus,  the  most  devoted  and  most  faithful of  all  to  them,  and,  on  this  account,  exceedingly  honoured  beyond all  those  that  had  the  charge  of  government,  and  the  most  honour
317

318  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

able  stations  in  the  provinces.  We  may  also  add  Gorgonius, equally  celebrated  with  him;  and  so  many  others  that  were honoured  with  the  same  distiiiction  as  these  on  account  of  the divine  word.  The  same  privileges  one  could  observe  conferred on  the  rulers  in  every  church,  who  were  courted  and  honoured with  the  greatest  subserviency  by  all  the  rulers  and  governors.
Who  could  describe  those  vast  collections  of  men  that  flocked  to the  religion  of  Christ,  and  those  multitudes  crowding  in  from  every city,  and  the  illustrious  concourse  in  the  houses  of  worship  ?  On whose  account,  not  content  with  the  ancient  buildings,  they erected  spacious  churches  from  the  foundation  in  all  the  cities These,  advancing  in  the  lapse  of  time,  and  daily  increasing  in magnitude  and  improvement,  were  not  restrained  by  any  odium or  hostility.  Nor  was  any  malignant  daemon  able  to  infatuate, nor  human  machinations  prevent  them,  as  long  as  the  providential hand  of  God  superintended  and  guarded  his  people  as  the  worthy objects  of  his  care.  But  when,  by  reason  of  excessive  liberty, we  sunk  into  negligence  and  sloth,  one  envying  and  reviling  another in  different  ways,  and  we  were  almost,  as  it  wei'e,  on  the point  of  taking  up  arms  against  each  other,  and  were  assailing each  other  with  words  as  with  darts  and  spears,  prelates  inveighing against  prelates,  and  people  rising  up  against  people,  and hypocrisy  and  dissimulation  had  arisen  to  the  greatest  height  of malignity,  then  the  divine  judgment,  which  usually  proceeds  with a  lenient  hand,  whilst  the  multitudes  were  yet  crowding  into  the church,  with  gentle  and  mild  visitations  began  to  afflict  its  episcopacy ;  the  persecution  having  begun  with  those  brethren  that were  in  the  army.  But,  as  if  destitute  of  all  sensibility,  we  were not  prompt  in  measures  to  appease  and  propitiate  the  Deity ;  some, indeed,  like  atheists,  regarding  our  situation  as  unheeded  and unobserved  by  a  providence,  we  added  one  wickedness  and  misery to  another.  But  some  that  appeared  to  be  our  pastors,  deserting the  law  of  piety,  were  inflamed  against  each  other  with  mutual strifes,  only  accumulating  quarrels  and  threats,  rivalship,  hostility and  hatred  to  each  other,  only  anxious  to  assert  the  government as  a  kind  of  sovereignty  for  themselves.  Then,  as  Jeremiah  says, "  the  Lord  in  his  anger  darkened  the  daughter  of  Sion,  and  hurled
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  319

from  heaven  to  earth  the  glory  of  Israel.  Neither  did  he  remember his  footstool  in  the  day  of  his  wrath.  But  the  Lord,  also, overwhelmed  ail  the  beauty  of  Israel,  and  tore  down  all  his walls."  And,  as  it  is  predicted  in  the  Psalms,  "  He  overturned the  covenant  of  his  servant,  and  he  prostrated  his  sanctuary  to the  earth,"  by  the  demolition  of  the  churches.  "  He  has  destroyed all  his  walls,  and  has  made  all  his  bulwarks  fear.  All  the  multitudes that  pass  through  have  ravaged  him,  and  hence  he  has  become a  reproach  to  his  neighbours.  For  he  has  exalted  the  right •  arm  of  his  enemies,  and  has  turned  away  the  help  of  his  sword,  nor aided  him  in  war.  But  he  has  also  deprived  him  of  his  purification, and  his  throne  he  has  cast  to  the  ground.  He  has  shortened the  days  of  his  time,  and  has  poured  upon  him  all  his  disgrace."

CHAPTER  IL

The  demolition  of  the  churches.

All  this  has  been  fulfilled  in  our  day,  when  we  saw,  with  oui own  eyes,  our  houses  of  worship  thrown  down  from  their  elevation, the  sacred  Scriptures  of  inspiration  committed  to  the  flames in  the  midst  of  the  markets,  the  shepherds  of  the  people  basely concealed  here  and  there,  some  of  them  ignominiously  captured, and  the  sport  of  their  enemies ;  when,  also,  according  to  another prophetic  declaration,  "  contempt  was  poured  out  upon  their rulers,  and  he  has  made  them  to  err  in  a  trackless  by-path,  and where  there  is  no  road."

But  it  is  not  for  me  to  describe  fully  the  sorrowful  calamities which  they  endured,  since  neither  does  it  belong  to  me  to  record  the dissensions  and  follies  which  they  exercised  against  each  other before  the  persecution.  Hence,  also,  w^e  have  purposed  not  to extend  our  narration  beyond  the  events  in  which  we  perceive  the just  judgment  of  God.  Hence,  also,  we  shall  not  make  mention of  those  that  were  shaken  by  the  persecution,  nor  of  those  that suffered  shipwreck  in  their  salvation,  and  of  their  own  accord
320  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

were  sunk  into  the  depths  of  the  watery  gulph.  But  we  shall onlv,  upon  the  whole,  introduce  those  events  in  our  history  that may  be  profitable  first  to  us  of  the  present  day,  and  hereafter  to posterity.  Now  let  us  proceed  to  describe,  in  a  condensed  account, the  holy  contlicts  of  the  witnesses  of  divine  truth.

It  was  the  nineteenth  year  of  the  reign  of  Diocletian,  and the  month  of  Dystrus,  called  by  the  Romans  March,  in  which  the festival  of  our  Saviour's  passion  was  at  hand,  when  the  imperial edicts  were  every  wnere  published,  to  tear  down  the  churches to  the  foundation,  and  to  destroy  the  sacred  Scriptures  by  fire,, and  which  commanaed,  also,  that  those  who  were  in  honourable stations,  should  be  degraded,  but  those  who  were  freedmen should  be  deprived  of  their  liberty,  if  they  persevered  in  their adherence  to  Christianity.  The  first  edict  against  us  was  of  this nature ;  but  it  was  not  long  before  other  edicts  were  also  issued, in  which  it  was  ordered  that  all  the  prelates  in  every  place, should  first  be  committed  to  prison,  and  then,  by  every  artifice constrained  to  ofier  sacrifice  to  the  gods.

CHAPTER    III.

The  nature  of  the  conflicts  endured  hij  the  martyrs,  in  the  pei
secution.

Then,  indeed,  vast  numbers  of  the  prelates  of  the  church  endured with  a  noble  resolution  the  most  appalling  trials,  and  exhibited instances  of  illustrious  conflicts  for  the  faith.  Vast  numbers, however,  of  others,  broken  and  relaxed  in  spirit,  by  timidity before  the  contest,  voluntarily  yielded  at  the  first  onset.  But  of the  rest,  each  encountered  various  kinds  of  torments.  Here  was one  that  was  scourged  with  rods,  there  another  tormented  with the  rack  and  excruciating  scrapings,  in  which  some  at  the  time endured  the  most  terrible  death ;  others  again  passed  through  other torments  in  the  struggle.  Here  one,  whilst  some  forced  him  to the  impure  and  detestable  sacrifices,  was  again  dismissed,  as  if
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  32.

he  had  sacrificed,  although  this  was  not  the  case.  There  another, though  he  had  not  in  the  least  approached  tlie  altar,  not  even touched  the  unholy  thing,  yet  when  others  said  that  he  had  sacrificed, went  away,  bearing  the  calumny  in  silence.  Her^  ^ne, again  taken  up  when  half  dead,  was  thrown  out  as  if  he  were already  dead ;  there  another,  again  lying  upon  the  ground,  was dragged  a  long  distance  by  the  feet,  and  numbered  among  those that  had  sacrificed.  One,  however,  would  cry  out,  and  with  a loud  voice  declared  his  abhorrence  of  the  sacrifice.  Another  exclaimed that  he  w^as  a  Christian,  furnishing,  by  confession,  an illustrious  example  of  this  salutary  name.  Another  asserted  that he  neither  had  sacrificed  nor  intended  to  sacrifice;  but  these were  forced  to  silence  by  numerous  bands  of  soldiers,  prepared for  this  purpose,  by  whom  they  were  struck  on  the  face  and cheeks,  and  violently  driven  away.  Thus  the  enemies  of  religion, upon  the  whole,  deemed  it  a  great  matter  even  to  appear to  have  gained  some  advantage.  But  these  things  did  not  avail them  much  against  the  saints,  to  give  an  exact  account  of  whom no  description  could  suflice.

CHAPTEP^    IV.

The  illustrious  martyrs  of  God,  who  filled  every  'place  with  the celebrity  of  their  name,  and  obtained  various  croivns  of  martyrdom for  their  piety.

Many  instances  might  be  related  of  those  who  exhibited  noble alacrity  in  the  cause  of  that  religion  which  acknowledges  only the  one  Supreme  God,  and  that  not  only  from  the  time  that  the general  persecution  was  raised,  but  also  long  before,  when  al was  yet  in  a  state  of  peace.  Already  then,  when  he  who  ha.
received  such  power,  was  first  roused  as  from  a  deep  slumber, he  had  secretly  and  unobserved,  been  plotting  after  the  times  of Decius  and  Valerian,  how  to  assault  the  churches ;  but  he  did  not all  at  once,  nor  in  a  mass,  wage  an  open  war  against  us,,  but  as yet  only  made  trial  of  those  that  were  in  the  a.mies..    For  in
2S

.S22  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

this  way  he  supposed  that  the  rest  could  easily  be  taken,  if  he could  first  succeed  in  subduing  these.  Then  one  could  see  great numbers  of  the  military,  most  cheerfully  embracing  a  private  life, so  as  not  to  renounce  their  reverence  for  the  Supreme  Creator of  the  universe.  For  when  the  general,  whoever  he  was,  first undertook  the  persecution  against  the  soldiers,  he  began  by  a  review and  lustration  of  those  that  were  enrolled  in  the  army, and  gave  them  their  choice,  either  to  enjoy  the  honour  conferred upon  them  if  they  obeyed,  or  on  the  contrary  to  be  deprived  of this,  if  they  disobeyed  the  command.  Very  many  who  were  soldiers in  the  kingdom  of  Christ,  without  hesitating,  preferred  the confession  of  his  name  to  that  apparent  glory  and  comfort  which .hey  enjoyed,  and  of  these  a  few  here  and  there  exchanged  their honours,  not  only  for  degradation  but  even  for  death,  for  their perseverance  in  religion.  These  last,  however,  were  not  yet many,  as  the  great  instigator  of  these  violent  measures  had,  as yet,  but  moderately  proceeded,  and  ventured  only  so  far  as  to shed  the  blood  of  some  only.  The  great  number  of  the  believers, probably  deterred  and  caused  him  to  shrink  from  a  general attack  upon  all ;  but  when  he  began  to  arm  more  openly,  it  is impossible  to  tell  how  many  and  how  eminent  those  were  that presented  themselves  in  every  place  and  city  and  country,  as martyrs  in  the  cause  of  Christ.

CHAPTER   V.

The  affairs  of  JVicomedia.

Immediately  on  the  first  promulgation  of  the  edict,  a  certain man  of  no  mean  origin,  but  highly  esteemed  for  his  temporal  dignities, as  soon  as  the  decree  was  published  against  the  churches m  Nicomedia,  stimulated  by  a  divine  zeal,  and  exerted  by  an ardent  faith,  took  it  as  it  was  openly  placed  and  posted  up  for public  inspection,  and  tore  it  to  pieces  as  a  most  profane  and wicked  act.     This,  too,  w^as  done  w^hen  two  of  the  Cesar's  were
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  323

in  the  city,  the  first  of  whom  was  the  eldest  and  chief  of  all ;
and  the  other  held  the  fourth  grade  of  the  imperial  dignity  after him.  But  this  man,  as  the  first  that  was  distinguished  there  in this  manner,  after  enduring  what  was  likely  to  follow  an  act  so daring,  preserved  his  mind  calm  and  serene  until  the  moment when  his  spirit  fled.

CHAPTER  VL

Tho^e  that  were  in  the  palace.

But  of  all  those  that  were  celehrated,  or  admired  for  their courage,  whether  among  Greeks  or  barbarians,  these  times  produced noble  and  illustrious  martyrs,  in  the  case  of  Dorotheus  and his  associates,  domestics,  in  the  imperial  palace.  These  though lionoured  with  the  highest  dignity  by  their  masters,  and  treated by  them  with  not  less  affection  than  their  own  children,  esteemed the  reproaches  and  trials  in  the  cause  of  religion,  as  of  much more  real  value  than  the  glory  and  luxuries  of  life ;  and  even the  various  kinds  of  death  that  were  invented  against  them  were prelerred  to  these,  when  they  came  into  competition  with  religion. We  shall  give  an  account  of  the  end  of  one,  leaving  it  for our  readers  to  conjecture  what  must  have  been  the  character  of the  sufferings  inflicted  on  the  others.  He  was  led  into  the  middle of  the  aforesaid  city,  before  those  emperors  already  mentioned.
He  was  then  commanded  to  sacrifice,  but  as  he  refused,  he  was ordered  to  be  stripped  and  lifted  on  high,  and  to  be  scourged  with rods  over  his  whole  body,  until  he  should  be  subdued  in  his  resolution, and  forced  to  do  what  he  was  commanded.  But  as  he was  unmoveable  amid  all  these  sufferings,  his  bones  already  appearing bared  of  the  flesh,  they  mixed  vinegar  with  salt,  and poured  it  upon  the  mangled  parts  of  the  body.  But  as  he  bore these  tortures,  a  gridiron  and  fire  was  produced,  and  the  remnants of  his  body,  like  pieces  of  meat  for  roasting  and  eatinjr,  were placed  in  the  fire,  not  at  once,  so  that  he  misht  not  e^nire  soon.
30

•'^24  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

but  taken  by  little  and  little,  whilst  his  torturers  were  not  permitted to  let  him  alone,  unless  after  these  sufferings  he  breathed his  last  before  they  had  completed  their  task.  He,  however,  persevered in  his  purpose,  and  gave  up  his  life  victorious  in  the midst  of  his  tortures.  Such  was  the  martyrdom  cf  one  of  the imperial  domestics,  worthy  in  reality  of  his  name,  for  he  was called  Peter.  But  we  shall  perceive  in  the  course  of  our  narration, in  which  we  shall  study  brevity,  that  the  martyrdoms  of  the rest  were  in  no  respect  inferior  to  this.  We  shall  only  state  of Dorotheus,  and  Gorgonius,  with  many  others  of  the  imperial freedmen,  that  after  various  sufferings,  they  were  destroyed  by the  halter,  and  bore  away  the  prize  of  a  heavenly  victory.  At this  time  also,  Anthimus,  then  bishop  of  the  church  of  Nicomedia,  was  beheaded  for  his  confession  of  Christ,  and  to  him  were added  a  multitude  of  believers  that  thronged  around  him.

I  know  not  how  it  happened,  but  there  was  a  fire  that  broke out  in  the  imperial  palace  at  Nicomedia,  in  these  days,  which,  by a  false  suspicion  reported  abroad,  was  attributed  to  our  brethren as  the  authors ;  in  consequence  of  which,  whole  families  of  the pious  here  were  slain  in  masses  at  the  imperial  command,  some with  the  sword,  some  also  wdth  fire.  Then  it  is  said  that  men and  women,  with  a  certain  divine  and  inexpressible  alacrity, rushed  into  the  fire.  But  the  populace  binding  another  number upon  planks,  threw  them  into  the  depths  of  the  sea.  But  the  imperial domestics,  also,  who  after  death  had  been  committed  to the  earth  with  proper  burial,  their  legal  masters  thought  necessary to  have  dug  up  again  from  their  sepulchres,  and  likewise cast  into  the  sea,  lest  any,  reasoning  like  themselves,  should  worship them  in  their  graves,  as  if  they  were  gods.  And  such,  then, was  the  complexion  of  things  in  the  commencement  of  the  persecution at  Nicomedia.

But,  ere  long,  as  there  were  some  in  the  region  called  Melitina, and  others,  again,  in  Syria,  that  attempted  to  usurp  the  government, it  was  commanded,  by  an  imperial  edict,  that  the  heads  of me  churches  every  where  should  be  thrust  into  prison  and  bonds.
And  the  spectacle  of  affairs  after  these  events  exceeds  all  description.     Innumerable  multitudes  were   imprisoned  in  ever^

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  325

place,  and  the  dungeons,  formerly  destined  for  muiderers  and the  vilest  criminals,  were  then  filled  with  bishops,  and  presbyters, and  deacons,  readers  and  exorcists,  so  that  there  was  no  room left  for  those  condemned  for  crime.  But  when  the  former  edict was  followed  by  another,  in  which  it  was  ordered  that  the  prisoners should  be  permitted  to  have  their  liberty  if  they  sacrificed, but  persisting  they  should  be  punished  with  the  most  excruciating tortures,  who  could  tell  the  number  of  those  martyrs  in  every province,  and  particularly  in  Mauritania,  Thebais,  and  Egypt, that  suffered  death  for  their  religion  ?  From  the  last  place,  especially, many  went  to  other  cities  and  provinces,  and  became illustrious  for  their  martyrdom.

CHAPTER  VII.

The  Egyptians  that  suffered  in  Phaenice.

We  are  already  acquainted  with  those  of  them  that  shone conspicuous  in  Palestine,  and  know  also  those  in  Tyre  and  Phcenice  ;  and  at  the  sight  of  whom,  who  would  not  himself  be struck  with  astonishment  at  the  numberless  blows  inflicted,  and the  perseverance  of  those  truly  admirable  wrestlers  for  the  true religion  ?  Who  can  behold,  without  amazement,  all  this :  tlieir conflicts,  after  scourging,  w^ith  bloody  beasts  of  prey,  when  they were  cast  as  food  to  leopards  and  bears,  wild  boars  and  bulls, goaded  with  fire,  and  branded  with  glowing  iron  against  them  ?
And  in  each  of  these,  who  can  fail  to  admire  the  wonderful  patience of  these  noble  martyrs  ?  At  these  scenes  we  have  been present  ourselves,  when  we  also  observed  the  divine  power  of 'our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ  himself  present,  and  effectually displayed  in  them  ;  when,  for  a  long  time,  the  devouring  wild beasts  would  not  dare  either  to  touch  or  to  approach  the  bodies of  these  pious  men.  but  directed  their  violence  against  others  that
826  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

wero  any  where  stimulating  them  from  without*  But  they would  not  even  touch  the  holy  wrestlers  standing  naked  and striking  at  them  with  their  hands,  as  they  were  commanded,  in order  to  irritate  the  beasts  against  them.  Sometimes,  indeed, they  would  also  rush  upon  them,  but,  as  if  repulsed  by  some  divine power,  they  again  retreated.

Tiiis  continuing,  also,  for  a  long  time,  created  no  little  wonder to  the  spectators ;  so  that  now  again  on  account  of  the  failure  in the  first  instance,  they  were  obliged  to  let  loose  the  beast  a  second and  a  third  time  upon  one  and  the  same  martyr.  One  could  not help  being  astonished  at  tlie  intrepid  perseverance  of  these  holy men,  and  the  firm  and  invincible  mind  of  those,  also,  whose  bodies were  but  young  and  tender.  For  you  could  have  seen  a youth  of  scarcely  twenty  years,  standing  unbound,  with  his  arms extended,  like  a  cross,  but  with  an  intrepid  and  fearless  earnestness, intensely  engaged  in  prayer  to  God,  neither  removing  nor declining  from  the  spot  where  he  stood,  whilst  bears  and  leopards breathed  rage  and  death,  and  almost  touched  his  very  flesh,  and yet  I  know  not  how^  by  a  divine  and  inscrutable  powder,  they  had their  mouths  in  a  manner  bridled,  and  again  retreated  in  haste.
And  such  was  he  of  whom  we  now  speak.

Again,  you  might  have  seen  others,  for  they  were  five  in  all, ca^t  before  a  wild  bull,  who  indeed  seized  others,  that  approached from  without,  with  his  horns,  and  tossed  them  in  the  air,  leaving them  to  be  taken  up  half  dead,  but  only  rushing  upon  the saints  with  rage  and  menaces ;  for  the  beast  was  not  able  even  to approach  them,  but  beating  the  eartli  with  his  feet,  and  pushing with  his  horns  hither  and  thither,  and  from  the  irritation  excited by  the  brands  of  glowing  iron,  he  breathed  madness  and  death, yet  was  drawn  back  again  by  a  divine  interposition.     So  that  as
*  Valesius  and  others  understand  this  expression  figurativel}^  as  in  tlie  passage, ■"  What  have  we  to  do  with  those  without?"  meaning  the  heathen.  But  the  litcra.
meaning  seems  to  be  natural  and  obvious,  and  refers  to  those  who,  standing  without the  arena,  in  the  amphitheatre,  were  urging  and  stimulating  the  beasts.  Our author  uses  the  same  expression  below,  evidently  with  the  same  intention  as  here, to  designate  particular  persons.  The  figurative  sense  seems  to  be  too  general  ia account  like  this.

ECCLES1.\STICAL  HISTorc*x  327

he  did  not  even  injure  them  in  the  least,  they  kc  locoe  other beasts  upon  them.  At  length,  however,  after  these  various  and terrible  assaults,  all  of  them  were  despatched  with  the  sword, and  instead  of  an  interment  and  sepulchre,  they  were  committed to  the  waves  of  the  sea.

CHAPTEP^  VIII.

Those  who  suffered  in  Egypt.

AxD  such,  too,  was  the  severity  of  the  struggle  which  was  endured by  the  Egyptians,  who  wrestled  gloriously  for  the  faith  at Fyre.  But  one  cannot  but  admire  those  that  suffered  also  in  their native  land,  where  thousands,  both  men,  and  women,  and  children, despising  the  present  life  for  the  sake  of  our  Saviour's  doctrine, submitted  to  death  in  various  shapes.  Some,  after  being  tortured with  scrapings  and  the  rack,  and  the  most  dreadful  scourgings, and  other  innumerable  agonies,  which  one  might  shudder  to  hear, were  finally  committed  to  the  flames ;  some  plunged  and  drowned in  the  sea,  others  voluntarily  offering  their  own  heads  to  the executioners,  others  dying  in  the  midst  of  their  torments,  some wasted  away  by  famine,  and  others  again  fixed  to  the  cross.
Some,  indeed,  were  executed  as  malefactors  usually  were ;  others more  cruelly,  were  nailed  with  the  head  downwards,  and  kept alive  until  thev  were  destroved  bv  starving  on  the  cross  itself.

CHAPTEPv,    IX.

Of  those  in  Thehais.

But  it  would  exceed  all  power  of  detail  to  give  an  idea  of  the
sufferings  and  tortures  which  the  martyrs  of  Thebais  endured.

These,  instead  of  hooks,  had  their  bodies  scraped  with  shells,  and
were  mangled  in  this  way  until  they  died.     Women  tied  by  one
30^

•328  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

.  foot,  and  then  raised  on  high  in  the  air  by  certain  machines,  with their  naked  bodies  and  wholly  uncovered,  presented  this  most foul,  cruel,  and  inhuman  spectacle  to  all  beholders  ;  others  again perished,  bound  to  trees  and  branches.  For,  drawing  the  stoutest of  the  branches  together  by  machines  for  this  purpose,  and  binding the  limbs  of  the  martyrs  to  each  of  these,  they  then  let  loose the  boughs  to  resume  their  natural  position,  designing  thus  to produce  a  violent  action,  to  tear  asunder  the  limbs  of  those whom  they  thus  treated.  And  all  these  things  were  doing  not only  for  a  few  days  or  some  time,  but  for  a  series  of  whole  years.
At  one  time,  ten  or  more,  at  another,  more  than  twenty,  at  another time  not  less  than  thirty,  and  even  sixty,  and  again  at  another time,  a  hundred  men  with  their  wives  and  little  children  were slain  in  one  day,  whilst  they  were  condemned  to  various  and varied  punishments.  We  ourselves  have  observed,  wdien  on  the spot,  many  crowded  together  in  one  day,  some  suffering  decapitation, some  the  torments  of  flames ;  so  that  the  murderous weapon  was  completely  blunted,  and  having  lost  its  edge,  broke
.  to  pieces ;  and  the  executioners  themselves,  wearied  with  slaughter, were  obliged  to  relieve  one  another.  Then,  also,  we  w^ere witnesses  to  the  most  admirable  ardour  of  mind,  and  the  truly divine  energy  and  alacrity  of  those  that  believed  in  the  Christ  of God.  For  as  soon  as  the  sentence  was  pronounced  against  the first,  others  rushed  forward  from  other  parts  to  the  tribunal  before the  judge,  confessing  they  were  Christians,  most  indifferent to  the  dreadful  and  multiform  tortures  that  awaited  them,  but declaring  themselves  fully  and  in  the  most  undaunted  manner  on the  religion  which  acknowledges  only  one  Supreme  God.  They received,  indeed,  the  final  sentence  of  death  with  gladness  and exultation,  so  far  as  even  to  sing  and  send  up  hymns  of  praise and  thanksgiving,  until  they  breathed  their  last.  Admirable,  indeed, were  these,  but  eminently  wonderful  were  also  those  who, though  they  w^ere  distinguished  for  wealth  and  noble  birth  and great  reputation,  and  excelled  in  philosophy  and  learning,  still regarded  all  as  but  secondary  to  the  true  religion  and  faith  in  our Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ.  Such  was  Philoromus,  who held  no  mean  office  in  the  imperial  district  of  Alexandria,  and
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  329

who,  according  to  his  rank  and  Roman  dignity,  was  attended  by a  military  guard,  when  administering  justice  every  day.  Phileas, also,  bishop  of  the  churches  of  Thmuis,  a  man  eminent  for  hisconduct  and  the  services  rendered  to  his  country,  as  well  as  in the  different  branches  of  philosophy.  These,  although  urged  by innumerable  relatives  and  other  friends,  and  though  many  eminent persons  and  the  judge  himself  entreated  them,  that  they should  take  compassion  on  themselves  and  have  mercy  upon  their children  and  wives,  were  nevertheless  not  in  the  least  induced by  these  things  to  prefer  life,  when  it  stood  in  competition  with the  command  that  regarded,  the  confession  or  the  denial  of our  Saviour.  And  thus,  with  a  manly  and  philosophical  mind, rather  let  me  say  with  a  mind  devoted  to  God  and  his  religion, persevering  in  opposition  to  all  the  threats  and  the  insults  of  the judge,  both  of  them  were  condemned  to  lose  their  heads.

CHAPTER   X.

The  writings  of  Phileas,  ichich  give  an  account  of  the  martyrs  of Alexandria.

But  since  we  have  mentioned  Phileas,  as  highly  estimable  for his  great  proficiency  also  in  foreign  hterature  and  science,  we will  let  him  bear  witness  for  himself,  whilst  he  may  also  show  us who  he  was,  and  also  what  martyrdoms  happened  at  Alexandria, all  which  he  can  state  more  accurately  than  ourselves,  in  the  extract we  here  present.

From  the  epistle  of  Phileas  to  the  inhabitants  of  Thmuis.  "  As all  these  signs,  examples,  and  noble  precepts  are  presented  to  us  in the  Holy  Scriptures,  those  holy  martyrs  with  us  did  not  hesitate, whilst  they  sincerely  directed  their  mental  eye  to  that  God  who rules  over  all,  and  in  their  minds  preferred  death  for  their  religion, and  firmly  adhered  to  their  vocation.  They  had  well  understood that  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ  became  man  for  us,  that  he might  remove  all  sin,  and  furnish  us  w^ith  the  means  of  entering
2T

330  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

into  eternal  life.  For  he  thought  it  not  robbery  to  be  equal  with God,  but  humbled  himself,  taking  upon  him  the  form  of  a  servant, and  being  found  in  the  fashion  of  man,  he  humbled  himself  unto death,  even  the  death  of  the  cross."  Hence,  also,  these  Christbearing  *  martyrs,  zealously  strove  to  attain  unto  better  gifts,  and endured  every  kind  of  trial,  every  series  of  tortures  not  merely once,  but  once  and  again,  the  second  time ;  and  though  the guards  assailed  them  with  every  kind  of  threat,  not  merely  in words,  but  vied  with  one  another  in  violent  acts,  they  did  not surrender  their  faith,  because  "  perfect  love  casteth  out  fear."
And  what  language  would  suffice  to  recount  their  virtues,  and their  fortitude  under  every  trial  ?  For  as  every  one  had  the liberty  to  abuse  them,  some  beat  them  with  clubs,  some  with rods,  some  with  scourges,  others  again  with  thongs,  others  with ropes.  And  the  sight  of  these  torments  was  varied  and  multiplied, exhibiting  excessive  malignity.  For  some  had  their  hands tied  behind  them,  and  were  suspended  on  the  rack,  f  and  every limb  was  stretched  with  machines.  Then  the  torturers,  according to  their  orders,  applied  the  pincers  to  the  whole  body,  not merely  as  in  the  case  of  murderers,  to  the  sides,  but  also  to  the stomach  and  knees  and  cheeks.  Some,  indeed,  were  suspended on  high  by  one  hand,  from  the  portico,  whose  sufferings  by  reason of  the  distention  of  their  joints  and  limbs,  were  more  dreadful than  any.     Others  were  bound  face  to  face  to  pillars,  not  resting
*The  original  here  is  the  expressive  epithet  %f.o-To?op3<,  Christ-bearing,  Christophori ;  as  they  bore  all  for  the  sake  of  Christ,  by  a  strong  synecdoche,  they  were said  to  bear  Christ  himself,  the  voluntary  object  of  their  love ;  and  thus  the  indirect cause  of  these  sufferings  in  which  they  rejoiced.  We  must  indulge  such  anomalous compounds,  as  this,  in  our  language,  when  a  novel  idea  seems  to  require  it.
The  composition  itself  is  not  more  singular  than  the  idea  which  it  expresses.  Valesius,  though  he  does  not  follow  the  idea  in  his  version,  explains  the  word  as meaning  full  of  Christ,  and  refers  to  the  epithet  Theophorus  given  to  Ignatius.
Shorting  has  rendered  it,  therefore,  full  of  Christ.  But  by  such  a  version  and  etymology, the  allusion  in  the  context  is  entirely  lost.  The  martyrs  were  called  by  a strong  figure,  Christophori,  because  they  bore,  and  Ignatius  was  called  Theophorus for  the  same  reason.

•j-  The  instrument  of  torture  here  mentioned,  appears  to  have  been  the  Roman eculeus.  It  was  so  constructed,  that  the  person  was  suspended  on  it,  and  his  limbs stretched  by  screws.     It  was  applied  at  first  only  to  slaves.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  331

upon  their  feet,  but  forced  down  by  the  weight  of  the  body, whilst  the  pressure  of  their  weight  also  increased  the  tension  of their  cords.  And  this  they  endured,  not  merely  as  long  as  the governor  spoke  to  them,  or  as  long  merely  as  he  had  leisure  to hear,  but  nearly  the  whole  day.  For  w^hen  he  passed  on  to others,  he  left  some  of  his  subordinate  officers  to  attend  to  the former,  to  observe  whether  any  of  them  seemed  overcome  by the  torments,  to  surrender.  But  he  gave  orders  to  proceed  without sparing,  to  bind  with  bonds,  and  afterwards,  when  they  had breathed  out  their  life,  to  drag  them  on  the  ground.  For  they said  that  there  should  not  the  least  regard  be  paid  to  us,  but  that they  should  think  and  act  w^ith  us  as  if  we  were  nothing  at  all.

Our  enemies,  therefore,  had  devised  this  second  torture  beside the  scourging.  But  there  were  some,  also,  after  the  tortures, placed  in  the  stocks,  stretched  by  both  feet  to  the  fourth  hole.
So  that  they  were  of  necessity  obliged  to  keep  in  a  lying  posture on  their  back,  not  being  able  to  have  any  command  of  their  mangled bodies,  in  consequence  of  the  blow^s  and  scourges  they  had received.  Others,  again,  being  cast  on  the  ground,  lay  prostrated by  the  accumulated  tortures  which  they  had  endured,  exhibiting a  still  more  dreadful  spectacle  in  that  condition  than  when  under the  actual  infliction  of  the  torture,  and  bearing  on  their  bodies the  various  and  multipHed  proofs  of  the  ingenuity  of  their  torturers.

Whilst  these  things  were  doing,  some  indeed  died  under  their torments,  covering  their  enemies  with  shame  by  their  perseverance. Others,  again,  almost  dead,  were  thrust  into  prison,  and before  many  days  ended  their  life  through  incessant  pain.  The rest,  however,  somewhat  recovering  by  the  application  of  remedies, by  time  and  their  long  detention  in  prison,  became  more confident.  Thus,  then,  when  ordered  to  take  their  choice,  either by  touching  the  unholy  sacrifice,  to  remain  without  further  molestation, and  to  obtain  the  execrable  sentence  of  liberation  from them,  or  else,  without  sacrificing,  to  expect  the  sentence  of  death, they  without  delay  cheerfully  embraced  death.  They  well  knew what  had  been  anciently  prescribed  in  the  sacred  Scriptures <^  For  he  that  ofTereth  sacrifice  to  other  gods,"  saith  the  Scrip
332  ECCLESIASTICx^L  HISTORY.

tures,  "  shall  be  destroyed."  And,  again,  "  thou  shalt  have none  other  gods  but  me."  These  are  the  expressions  of  a  martyr, who  was  at  once  a  sound  philosopher  and  one  devoted  to  God.
These  he  addressed  before  the  final  sentence,  whilst  yet  in  prison, to  the  brethren  of  his  church,  at  the  same  time  representing  his own  condition,  and  exhorting  them  to  adhere  firmly,  even  after his  death,  which  was  close  at  hand,  to  the  Christian  religion.
But  why  should  we  say  much,  and  add  one  new  species  of  struggle after  another,  as  they  were  endured  by  these  pious  martyrs throughout  the  world  ;  especially  when  they  were  no  longer  assailed in  a  common  way,  but  regularly  invaded  as  in  war  ?

CHAPTER  XL

The  events  in  Phrygia.

Indeed  the  armed  soldiery  surrounded  a  certain  Christian town  in  Phrygia,  together  with  the  garrison,  and  hurling  fire into  it,  burnt  them,  together  with  women  and  children,  calling upon  Christ  the  God  of  all.  And  this,  because  all  the  inhabitants of  this  town,  even  the  very  governor  and  magistrate,  with  all the  men  of  rank,  and  the  whole  people,  confessed  themselves Christians,  and  would  not  obey,  in  any  degree,  those  that  commanded them  to  offer  sacrifices.

Another  one,  also,  of  Roman  dignity,  Adanetus  by  name,  of  a noble  Italian  family,  a  man  that  had  been  advanced  through every  grade  of  dignity  by  the  emperors,  and  had  reputably  filled the  offices  of  general  administrator,  called  by  them  the  master of  the  revenue,  and  prime  minister.  And  yet  with  all  this  he was  pre-eminent,  also,  for  his  pious  acts,  and  his  profession  of Christ,  and  was  nobly  crowned  with  martyrdom ;  nobly  endunng the  conflict  in  the  cause  of  piety  whilst  he  was  yet  clad  with  the office  of  prime  minister.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  333

CHAPTER  Xn.

Of  many  others,  both  men  and  women,  icho  suffered  in  different
ways.

Why  should  I  now  mention  the  names  of  others,  or  number  the multitude  of  men,  or  picture  the  various  torments  of  the  admirable martyrs  of  Christ ;  some  of  whom  were  slain  with  the  axe, as  in  Arabia ;  some  had  their  limbs  fractured,  as  in  Cappadocia ;
and  some  were  suspended  by  the  feet,  and  a  little  raised  from  the ground,  with  their  heads  downward,  were  sufTocated  with  the ascending  smoke  of  a  gentle  fire  kindled  below,  as  was  done  to those  in  Mesopotamia ;  some  were  mutilated  by  having  their noses,  ears,  and  hands  cut  off,  and  the  rest  of  their  limbs,  and parts  of  their  body  cut  to  pieces,  as  was  the  case  at  Alexandria  1
Why  should  we  revive  the  recollection  of  those  at  Antioch,  who were  roasted  on  grates  of  fire,  not  to  kill  immediately,  but  torture them  with  a  lingering  punishment  ?  Others,  again,  rather  resolved to  thrust  their  arm  into  the  fire,  than  touch  the  unholy  sacrifice ;
some  shrinking  from  the  trial,  sooner  than  be  taken  and  fall  into the  hands  of  their  enemies,  cast  themselves  headlong  from  the lofty  houses,  considering  death  an  advantage  compared  w^ith  the malignity  of  these  impious  persecutors.-  A  certain  holy  and  admirable female,  admirable  for  her  virtue,  and  illustrious  above  all at  Antioch  for  her  wealth,  family,  and  reputation,  had  educated her  two  daughters,  who  were  now  in  the  bloom  of  life,  noted  for their  beauty,  in  the  principles  of  piety.  As  they  had  excited great  envy  among  many,  every  measure  was  tried  to  trace  them in  their  concealment ;  but  when  it  was  discovered  that  they  were abroad,  they  were,  with  a  deep-laid  scheme,  called  to  Antioch.
They  were  now  caught  in  the  toils  of  the  soldiery.  The  mother, therefore,  being  at  a  loss  for  herself  and  daughters,  knowing  what dreadful  outrages  they  would  suffer  from  the  men,  represented their  situation  to  them,  and,  above  all,  the  threatened  violation of  their  chastity,  an  evil  more  to  be  dreaded  than  any  other,  to which  neither  she  nor  they  should  even  listen  for  a  moment.     At
334  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

the  same  time  declaring,  that  to  surrender  their  souls  to  the  slavery of  daemons  was  worse  than  death  and  destruction.  From  all these,  she  suggested  there  was  only  one  way  to  be  delivered,  to betake  themselves  to  the  aid  of  Christ.  After  this,  all  agreeing to  the  same  thing,  and  having  requested  the  guards  a  litt.e  tinu to  retire  on  the  way,  they  decently  adjusted  their  garments,  and cast  themselves  into  the  flowing  river.  These,  then,  destroyed themselves.

Another  pair  of  virgins  at  this  same  Antioch,  distinguished  for piety,  and  truly  sisters  in  all  respects,  illustrious  in  family,  wealth, youth,  and  beauty,  but  no  less  so  for  their  serious  minds,  their pious  deportment,  and  their  admirable  zeal,  as  if  the  earth  could not  bear  such  excellence,  were  ordered  by  the  worshippers  of daemons  to  be  thrown  into  the  sea.  Such  were  the  facts  that occurred  at  Antioch.  Others  at  Pontus,  endured  torments  that are  too  horrible  to  relate.  Some  had  their  fingers  pierced  with sharp  reeds  thrust  under  their  nails.  Others,  having  masses  of melted  lead,  bubbling  and  boihng  with  heat,  poured  down  their backs,  and  roasted,  especially  in  the  most  sensitive*  parts  of  the body.  Others,  also,  endured  insufferable  torments  on  their  bowels and  other  parts,  such  as  decency  forbids  to  describe,  which  those generous  and  equitable  judges,  with  a  view  to  display  their  own cruelty,  devised  as  some  pre-eminence  in  wisdom,  worthy  their ambition.  Thus  constantly  inventing  new  tortures,  they  vied with  one  another,  as  if  there  were  prizes  proposed  in  the  contest, who  should  invent  the  greatest  cruelties.  But  as  to  the  last  of  these calamities,  when  the  judges  now  had  despaired  of  inventing  any thing  more  efTectual,  and  w^ere  weary  with  slaughter,  and  had surfeited  themselves  w4th  shedding  of  blood,  they  then  applied themselves  to  what  they  considered  kindness  and  humanity,  so that  they  seemed  disposed  to  exercise  no  further  cruelty  against us.  For  said  they,  the  cities  should  not  be  polluted  with  blood any  more,  and  the  government  of  the  sovereigns  which  was  so kind  and  merciful  toward  all,  should  not  be  defamed  for  exces
*  Rufimus  translates,  or  rather  paraphrases,  with  much  elegance,  Usque  ad  loca pudenda  quibus  naturalis  egcstio  procurari  solet.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  335

sive  cruelty :  it  was  more  proper  that  the  benefits  afforded  by t.ieir  nuniane  and*imperial  majesties,  should  be  extended  to  all, and  that  we  should  no  longer  be  punished  with  death.  For  we w^ere  liberated  from  this  punishment  by  the  great  clemency  of the  emperors.  After  this,  therefore,  they  w^ere  ordered  only  to tear  out  our  eyes,  to  deprive  us  of  one  of  our  legs.  Such  w^as  their kindness,  and  such  the  Hghtest  kind  of  punishment  against  us ;  so that  in  consequence  of  this  humanity  of  theirs  it  was  impossible to  tell  the  great  and  incalculable  number  of  those  that  had  their right  eye  dug  out  with  the  sword  first,  and  after  this  seared  with I  red  hot  iron ;  those  too,  whose  left  foot  was  maimed  with  a 2aring  iron ;  after  these,  those  who  in  different  provinces  were condemned  to  the  copper  mines,  not  so  much  for  the  service  as for  the  contumely  and  misery  they  should  endure.  Many,  also, endured  conflicts  of  other  kinds,  which  it  would  be  impossible  to detail ;  for  their  noble  fortitude  surpasses  all  power  of  description. In  this  the  magnanimous  confessors  of  Christ  that  shone conspicuous  throughout  the  w^hole  world,  every  where  struck the  beholders  with  astonishment,  and  presented  the  obvious proofs  of  our  Saviour's  divine  interposition  in  tlieir  own  persons.
And  hence,  to  mention  each  by  name,  would  be  at  least  a  long and  tedious  work,  not  to  say  impossible.

CHAPTER  XIII.

Those  prelates  that  evinced  the  reality  of  the  religion  they  'proclaimed with  their  blood.

Or  those  prelates  of  the  church,  however,  who  suffered  martyrdom in  the  most  celebrated  cities,  the  first  of  which  w^e  shall mention,  recorded  by  the  pious  as  a  witness  of  the  kingdom  of Christ,  is  Anthimus,  bishop  of  Nicomedia,  who  was  beheaded.
Of  the  martyrs  at  Antioch,  we  also  name  Lucian,  that  presbyter of  this  church,  who  during  all  his  life  was  pre-eminent  for  his  excellent character  and  piety.  He  had  before,  at  Nicomedia,  and in  the  presence  of  the  emperor,  proclaimed  the  heavenly  king31

336  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

dom  of  Christ,  in  the  defence  that  he  delivered,  and  afterwards bore  testimony  to  its  truth  in  his  actions.  Among  the  martyrs  at Phcenice,  the  most  noted  of  all,  were  those  pious  and  devoted pastors  of  the  spiritual  flocks  of  Christ,  Tyrannio,  bishop  of  the church  of  Tyre,  Zenobius  of  Sidon,  and  Silvanus  bishop  of  Emisa.
The  last  of  these  was  cast  as  food  to  wild  beasts  at  Emisa,  and thus  ranked  in  the  number  of  martyrs,  but  each  of  the  former glorified  the  doctrine  of  God,  by  suffering  with  patience  until death.  The  one,  the  bishop,  was  committed  to  the  depths  of  the sea ;  but  Zenobius,  the  other,  a  most  excellent  physician,  died with  great  fortitude  under  the  tortures  applied  to  his  sides.  But among  the  martyrs  at  Palestine,  Silvanus,  bishop  of  the  churches about  Gaza,  was  beheaded  with  thirty-nine  others  at  the  copper mines  of  Phoeno.  Also,  those  of  Egypt  there,  Peleus  and  Nilus, who  were  bishops,  suffered  death  by  the  flames.  Among  these must  be  mentioned  the  presbyter  Pamphilus,  a  most  admirable man  of  our  times,  and  the  glory  of  the  church  at  Cesarea, whose  illustrious  deeds  we  have  set  forth  in  its  proper  place.
But  of  those  that  w^ere  prominent  as  martyrs  at  Alexandria,  all Egypt  and  Thebais,  the  first  whom  we  shall  mention  is  Peter, bishop  of  Alexandria,  a  man  wonderful  as  a  teacher  of  the Christian  faith,  and  the  presbyters  with  him,  Faustus,  and  Dius, and  Ammonius,  perfect  witnesses*  of  Christ.  Phileas,  Pochumius, Hesychius  and  Theodorus,  bishops  of  churches  in  Egypt,  with many  others,  are  also  mentioned  as  distinguished  martyrs,  by  the
*  We  have  translated  the  word  martyrs  here,  or  rather  presented  its  original meaning,  as  the  evident  intention  of  our  author.  The  word  in  the  Greek,  from signifying  a  witness,  was  applied  to  those  hy  way  of  eminence,  who  by  their  death gave  the  most  striking  evidence  of  their  faith  that  mortals  can  give.  Such,  therefore, were  called  witnesses  emphatically,  both  in  reference  to  the  truth  to  which they  witnessed,  and  the  manner  in  which  they  thus  gave  their  testimony.  In  this sense  our  Lord  himself  is  called  the  "  true  and  faithful  witness,"  (martyr.)  Our author  here,  by  attaching  the  attribute  perfect,  evidently  intimates  that  he  means to  lay  some  stress  on  the  meaning  of  the  word  martyrs,  as  witnesses  made  perfect by  their  Jeath.  The  death  of  these  witnesses  is,  indeed,  according  to  the  ecclesiastical phraseology  implied  in  the  word  perfect.  It  was  by  death  that  they  were constituted  perfect  confessors ;  before  that  they  were  regarded  only  as  confessors.
This  may  suffice  to  explain  why  we  here  differ  from  Valesius  and  others.  See note,  Book  VI.  ch.  x.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  337

churches  in  those  places  and  regions.  To  give  a  minute  description of  the  conflict  which  thej  endured  in  the  cause  of  piety, throughout  the  whole  world,  and  to  give  a  full  account  of  the  circumstances respecting  each,  could  not  be  expected  in  the  present woik.  This  would  rather  belong  to  those  who  w^ere  eyewitnesses of  the  facts.  Those,  indeed,  at  which  I  myself  was present,  I  shall  publish  for  the  benefit  of  posterity  in  another work.

In  the  present  work,  however,  I  shall,  to  the  abovementioned  facts,  add  the  revocation  issued  by  our  persecutors,  as  also those  events  that  occurred  at  the  beginning  of  the  persecution, believing  that  they  will  be  read  not  without  prolit.  To  tell  the state  of  the  Roman  empire  before  the  war  was  waged  against  us, how  long  the  emperors  continued  friendly  and  peaceable  towards us,  and  how  great  was  the  abundance  and  prosperity  of  the  empire, what  description  would  suffice  ?  Then,  indeed,  those  who held  the  supreme  command,  who  had  been  at  the  head  of  government ten  and  twenty  years,  passed  their  time  in  festivities and  shows,  and  joyous  feasts  and  entertainments  in  peace  and tranquillity.  And  in  this  state  of  uninterrupted  and  increasing prosperity  and  power,  they  suddenly  changed  our  peaceful  condition, and  excited  against  us  a  most  unjust  and  nefarious  war.  For scarcely  had  the  second  year  of  this  war  been  passed,  when  a revolution  taking  place  in  the  whole  government,  it  was  completely overturned.  A  disease  of  a  most  obstinate  nature  attacked the  chief  of  the  abovementioned  emperors,  by  which  he was  reduced  to  a  state  of  insanity,  together  with  him  that  was honoured  with  the  second  rank,  and  thus  betook  himself  to  a  private life.  But  these  things  had  been  scarcely  thus  done  when the  whole  empire  was  divided,  a  circumstance  which,  in  the  annals of  history,  never  happened  before,  any  w^here.  But,  it  was not  long  before  the  emperor  Constantius,  who  was  all  his  life  most kindly  and  favourably  disposed  towards  his  subjects,  and  also most  favourably  disposed  toward  the  divine  w^ord,  departed  this life,  leaving  his  son  Constantine  a  true  copy  of  himself,  as  emperor and  Augustus,  his  successor.     He  was  the  first  of  these  em
2U

338  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

perors  that  was  ranked  among  the  gods  *  by  them,  having  every honour  conferred  upon  him,  after  death,  that  was  due  to  an  emperor. He  was  the  kindest  and  mildest  of  the  emperors,  and  indeed the  only  one  of  them  in  our  times,  that  passed  his  life  consistently with  the  imperial  dignity,  and  who  likewise  in  all  other respects  exhibited  the  greatest  condescension  and  benevolence  to all,  and  had  no  share  in  the  hostility  raised  against  us,  but  even preserved  and  protected  those  pious  persons  under  him  free  from harm  and  calumny.  Neither  did  he  demolish  the  churches,  nor devise  any  other  mischief  against  us,  and  at  length  enjoyed  a most  happy  and  blessed  death,  being  the  only  one  who,  at  his death,  did  peaceably  and  gloriously  leave  the  government  to  his own  son,  as  his  successor ;  a  prince  who  in  all  respects  was  endowed with  the  greatest  moderation  and  piety.  His  son  Constantine,  therefore,  in  the  very  commencement,  being  proclaimed supreme  emperor  and  Augustus  by  the  soldiers,  and  much  longer before  this,  by  the  universal  sovereign  God,  resolved  to  tread  in the  footsteps  of  his  father,  with  respect  to  our  faith.  And  such, indeed,  was  he.  But  Licinius  after  this  was  appointed  emperor and  Augustus,  by  a  common  vote  of  the  emperors.  Maximinus was  greatly  offended  at  this,  since  he  had  yet  received  only  the title  of  Cesar  from  all.  He,  therefore,  being  particularly  of  a  tyrannical temper,  arrogating  to  himself  the  dignity,  was  created Augustus  by  himself.  In  the  mean  time,  being  detected  in  a  conspiracy against  the  life  of  Constantino,  the  same  (Maximian)  that we  have  mentioned  as  having  resumed  the  imperial  dignity  after his  resignation  was  carried  off  by  a  most  disgra  ceful  death.     And
*  This  is  to  be  understood  of  the  four  emperors  then  reigning ;  Diocletian,  Maximian, Constantius,  and  Galerius.  It  was  the  custom  of  the  Roman  senate  to  deify  the emperors  at  their  death.  Our  author,  without  intending  to  commend  the  practice, simply  states  the  fact  as  a  proof  of  the  popularity  of  Constantius  ;  as  the  honour  was not  indiscriminately  conferred.  Otherwise,  in  regard  to  this  deification,  ouf  author, in  the  midst  of  his  commendations,  almost  appears  a  little  ironical,  upon  the  practice, how  much  soever  he  honoured  the  memory  of  Constantius.  We  are  here  forcibly reminded  of  the  humorous  strife  between  ^sculapius  and  Hercules,  in  Lucian's dialogues,  where  Jupiter  at  last  decides  the  dispute  about  priority,  by  assigning  it  to jEsculapius,  because  he  died  first.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  339

he  was  the  first  of  these  emperors  whose  statues  and  public monuments  were  demolished  as  commemorative  of  an  impious and  execrable  man.

CHAPTER  XIV.

The  morals  of  the  persecutors.

Maxentius,  the  son  of  Maximian,  who  had  established  his government  at  Rome,  in  the  commencement,  pretended  indeed, by  a  species  of  accommodation  and  flattery  towards  the  Romans, that  he  was  of  our  faith.  He,  therefore,  commanded  his subjects  to  desist  from  persecuting  the  Christians,  pretending  to piety  with  a  view  to  appear  much  more  mild  and  merciful  than the  former  rulers.  But  he  by  no  means  proved  to  be  in  his  actions such  as  he  was  expected.  He  sunk  into  every  kind  of  w^ickedness,  leaving  no  impurity  or  licentiousness  untouched ;  committing every  species  of  adultery  and  fornication,  separating wives  from  their  law^ful  husbands,  and  after  abusing  these,  sending them  thus  most  shamefully  violated  back  again  to  their  husbands. And  these  things  he  perpetrated  not  upon  mean  and obscure  individuals,  but  insulting  more  particularly  the  most  prominent of  those  that  were  most  distinguished  in  the  senate.  Whilst he  was  thus  dreaded  by  all,  both  people  and  magistrates,  high and  low  were  galled  wdth  a  most  grievous  oppression  ;  and though  they  bore  this  severe  tyranny  quietly,  and  without  rebellion, it  produced  no  relief  from  his  murderous  cruelty.  On  a  certain very  slight  occasion,  therefore,  he  gave  up  the  people  to  be slaughtered  by  the  prastorian  guards,  and  thus  multitudes  of  the Roman  people  were  slain  in  the  very  heart  of  the  city,  not  with the  arrows  and  spears  of  Scythians  or  barbarians,  but  of  their own  fellow-citizens.  It  would  be  impossible  to  tell  what  slaughter was  made  of  the  senators  merely  for  the  sake  of  their  wealthy, thousands  being  destroyed  on  a  variety  of  pretexts  and  fictitious crimes.  But  when  these  evils  had  reached  their  greatest  height, the  tvrant  was  induced  to  resort  to  the  mummery  of  magic.  A\
31^

340  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

one  time  he  would  cut  open  pregnant  females,  at  another  examin ing  the  bowels  of  new  born  babes ;  sometimes  also  slaughtering lions  and  performing  any  kind  of  execrable  acts,  to  invoke  the daemons,  and  to  avert  the  impending  war.  For  all  his  hope  now was  that  victory  would  be  secured  to  him  by  these  means.  It  is impossible  then  to  say,  in  what  different  ways  this  cruel  tyrant oppressed  his  subjects,  so  that  they  were  already  reduced  to such  extreme  want  and  scarcity,  such  as  they  say  has  never happened  at  Rome,  or  elsewhere  in  our  time.  But  Maximinus, who  was  sovereign  of  the  east,  as  he  had  secretly  formed  an  alliance with  Maxentius,  his  true  brother  in  wickedness  at  Rome, designed  to  conceal  his  designs  as  long  as  possible.  But  being at  length  detected,  he  suffered  the  deserved  punishment.  It  was w^onderful  how  nearly  allied,  and  similar,  rather  how  vastly  beyond the  tyranny  of  the  Roman,  were  the  cruelties  and  crimes  of this  tyrant.  The  first  of  impostors  and  jugglers,  were  honoured by  him  with  the  highest  rank.  He  became  so  extremely  timorous and  superstitious,  and  valued  the  delusion  and  supposed  influence of  daemons  above  all,  so  that  he  was  hardly  able  to  move his  finger,  one  might  say,  or  undertake  any  thing  without  soothsayers and  oracles.  Hence,  also,  he  assailed  us  with  a  more  violent and  incessant  persecution  than  those  before  him.  He  ordered temples  to  be  erected  in  every  city,  and  those  that  had  been  demolished by  time,  he  commanded  in  his  zeal  to  be  renewed.
Priests  of  the  idols  he  established  in  every  place  and  city ;  and over  these  a  high  priest  in  every  province,  some  one  of  those who  had  been  particularly  distinguished  for  his  skill  in  the  management of  political  affairs,  adding  a  military  guard.  He granted  to  all  his  jugglers  the  same  reverence  as  if  they  were the  most  pious  and  acceptable  to  the  gods,  freely  bestowing  on them  governments,  and  the  greatest  privileges.

And  from  this  time  forth  he  began  to  vex,  not  merely  a  single city  or  region,  but  harassed  all  the  provinces  under  him,  by  exactions of  silver  and  gold  and  money,  by  the  most  oppressive seizures  and  confiscations  of  property,  in  different  ways  and  on various  pretexts.  Despoiling  the  wealthy  of  the  substance  inherited from  their  fathers,  he  bestowed  vast  wealth,  and  heaps
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  341

of  money  upon  the  flatterers  around  him.  And  he  had  now  advanced to  such  a  pitch  of  rashness,  and  was  so  addicted  to  intoxication, that,  in  his  drunken  frolics  he  was  frequently  deranged and  deprived  of  his  reason,  like  a  madman  ;  so  that  what  he  commanded when  he  was  intoxicated,  he  afterwards  regretted  when he  became  sober.  But  determined  to  leave  no  one  his  superior in  surfeiting  and  gluttony,  he  presented  himself  a  fit  master  of iniquity  to  the  rulers  and  subjects  around  him.  Initiating  the soldiers,  by  luxury  and  intemperance,  into  every  species  of  dissipation and  revelling,  encouraging  the  governors  and  generals,  by rapacity  and  avarice,  to  proceed  with  their  oppressions  against their  subjects,  with  almost  the  power  of  associate  tyrants.  Why should  I  mention  the  degrading  and  foul  lust  of  the  man  1  Or why  mention  his  innumerable  adulteries  ?  There  was  not  a  city that  he  passed  through  in  which  he  did  not  commit  violence upon  females.  And  in  these  he  succeeded  against  all  but  the Christians.  For  they,  despising  death,  valued  his  power  but little.

The  men  bore  fire,  sword,  and  crucifixions,  savage  beasts,  and the  depths  of  the  sea,  the  maiming  of  limbs,  and  searing  with  red hot  iron,  pricking  and  digging  out  the  eyes,  and  the  mutilations of  the  whole  body.  Also  hunger,  and  mines,  and  prisons ;  and after  all,  they  chose  these  sufferings  for  the  sake  of  religion,  rather than  transfer  that  veneration  and  worship  to  idols  which  is due  to  God  only.  The  females,  also,  no  less  than  the  men,  were strengthened  by  the  doctrine  of  the  divine  word ;  so  that  somc^
endured  the  same  trials  as  the  men,  and  bore  away  the  same prizes  of  excellence.  Some,  w^hen  forced  away,  yielded  up  their lives  rather  than  submit  to  the  violation  of  their  bodies.

The  tyrant  having  fully  gratified  his  lust  on  others  at  Alexandria, his  unbridled  passion  was  defeated  by  the  heroic  firmness of  one  female  only,  who  was  one  of  the  most  distinguished  and illustrious  at  Alexandria,  and  she  was  a  Christian.  She  was  in other  respects  distinguished  both  for  her  wealth,  and  family,  and condition,  but  esteemed  all  inferior  to  modesty.  Having  frequently made  attempts  to  bring  her  over  to  his  purposes,  though she  was  prepared  to  die,  he  could  not  destroy  her,  as  his  passion
342  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

was  stronger  than  his  anger ;  but,  punishing  her  with  exile,  he took  away  all  her  wealth.  Many  others,  also,  unable  to  bear even  the  threats  of  violation  from  the  rulers  of  the  heathen,  sub mitted  to  every  kind  of  torture,  the  rack  and  deadly  punishment.
Admirable,  indeed,  were  all  these ;  but  far  above  all  most  admirable, was  that  lady  who  was  one  of  the  most  noble  and  modest of  those  whom  Maxentius,  in  all  respects  like  Maximinus,  attempted to  violate.  For  when  she  understood  that  the  minions of  the  tyrant  in  such  matters,  had  burst  into  the  house  (for  she was  also  a  Christian),  and  that  her  husband,  who  w^as  the  prefect of  Rome,  had  suffered  them  to  carry  her  off,  she  requested  but  a little  time,  as  if  now  for  the  purpose  of  adorning  her  body :  she then  entered  her  chamber,  and  when  alone  thrust  a  sword  into her  breast.  Thus,  dying  immediately,  she  indeed  left  her  body to  the  conductors ;  but  in  her  deeds,  more  effectually  than  any language,  proclaims,  to  all  who  are  now  and  will  be  hereafter, that  virtue,  which  prevails  among  Christians,  is  the  only  invincible and  imperishable  possession.  Such,  then,  was  the  flood  of iniquity  wliich  rushed  on  at  one  and  the  sam.e  time,  and  which  was wrought  by  the  two  tyrants  that  swayed  the  east  and  the  west.
And  who  is  there  that  examines  the  cause  of  these  evils,  that would  be  in  doubt  whether  he  should  pronounce  the  persecution raised  against  us,  proceeding  from  these  as  their  cause  ?  Especially as  the  confusion  of  the  empire,  which  prevailed  to  a  grea^
extent,  did  not  cease  before  the  Christians  received  full  liberty  oi conscience  to  profess  their  religion  1

CHAPTER    XV.

T'he  events  that  happened  to  the  heathen.

During  the  whole  ten  years  of  the  persecution,  there  was  no cessation  of  plots  and  civil  wars  among  the  persecutors  themselves. For  the  sea  indeed  was  impassable  to  the  mariner,  nor could  any  set  sail  from  any  part,  without  being  exposed  to  every kind  of  torment,  either  scourged,  or  racked  in  their  limbs,  or  la
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  343

cerarted  and  galled  with  torturing  instruments  in  their  sides,  to  ascertain whether  they  had  come  from  the  enemy  of  the  opposite party,  and  at  last  were  subjected  either  to  the  punishment  of  the cross  or  of  fire.  Besides  these  things,  one  saw  every  where shiel'ds  and  coats  of  mail  preparing,  darts  and  javeHns  and  other implements  of  war ;  and  in  every  place,  also,  were  collections  of galleys  and  naval  arm.our.  Neither  was  there  any  thing  expected any  where  but  the  attacks  of  enemies  from  day  to  day.  Besides this,  famine  and  pestilence  were  superadded,  of  which  we shall  relate  what  is  most  important  in  its  proper  place.

CHAPTER  XVI.

The  change  of  affairs  for  the  better.

Such  was  the  state  of  things  throughout  the  whole  period  of the  persecution.  This,  by  the  goodness  of  God,  had  entirely ceased  in  the  tenth  year,  although  it  had  already  begun  to  relax after  the  eighth.  For  when  the  kindness  of  God's  providence regarded  us  again  with  a  gracious  and  merciful  eye,  then  indeed our  rulers,  and  those  very  persons  who  were  formerly  the  principal agents  of  the  persecutions,  most  remarkably  changed  in  their sentiments,  began  to  recant,  and  attempted  to  extinguish  the  blaze of  persecution  kindled  against  us  by  mild  proclamations  and  ordinances. But  this  was  not  done  by  any  mere  human  agency, nor  was  it,  as  might  perhaps  be  supposed,  by  the  compassion  or the  humanity  of  our  rulers.  For,  so  far  from  this,  they  were daily  devising  more  and  severer  measures  against  us  from  the beginning  of  the  persecution  until  then,  constantly  inventing  new tortures  from  time  to  time  by  an  increasing  variety  of  machinery and  instruments  for  this  purpose.  But  the  evident  superintendence of  divine  Providence,  on  the  one  hand,  being  reconciled to  his  people,  and  on  the  other  assailing  the  author  of  these  miseries, exhibited  his  anger  against  him  as  the  ringleader  in  the  horrors of  the  whole  persecution.  Though  it  had  been  necessary that  these  things  should  occur  by  some  divine  judgment,  yet  it  is.

344  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

declared,  "  Wo  to  him  through  whom  the  offence  cometh."
Hence  he  was  visited  by  a  judgment  sent  from  God,  which  beginning in  his  flesh  proceeded  to  his  very  soul.  For  a  sudden tumor  appeared  about  the  middle  of  the  body,  then  a  spongy fistula  in  these  parts,*  which  continued  to  extend  and  penetrate with  its  ulcerations  to  the  inmost  parts  of  the  bowels.  Hence sprung  an  immense  multitude  of  worms,  hence  also  an  insufferable death-like  effluvia  exhaled,  as  his  whole  body  before  his  disease, by  reason  of  his  gluttony,  had  been  changed  into  an  excessive mass  of  fat,  which  then  becoming  putrid,  exhibited  a  dreadful and  intolerable  spectacle  to  those  that  drew^  near.  Some, indeed,  of  the  physicians,  totally  unable  to  endure  the  excessively oflfensive  smell,  were  slain ;  others  again,  as  the  swelling  had  penetrated every  where,  and  they  unable  to  give  any  relief,  despaired of  safety,  and  were  put  to  death  without  mercy.

CHAPTER  XVII.

The  revocation  of  the  emperors.

Thus  struggling  with  so  many  miseries,  he  had  some  com punctions  for  the  crimes  that  he  had  committed  against  the pious.  Turning,  therefore,  his  reflections  upon  himself,  first  of  all he  confessed  his  sin  to  the  supreme  God,  then  summoning  his oflicers,  he  immediately  orders  that,  without  delay,  they  should stop  the  persecution  against  the  Christians,  and  by  an  imperial ordinance  and  decree,  commanded  that  they  should  hasten  to  rebuild the  churches,  that  they  might  perform  their  accustomed devotions,  and  offer  up  prayers  for  the  emperor's  safety.  This decree  was  immediately  followed  by  its  effects ;  the  imperial  decrees were  published  in  the  cities,  embracing  the  following  revocation with  regard  to  us.

*  Valesius  renders,  Repents  enim  circa  media  occultiorum  corporis  partium  loca ibscessus  ei  nascitur  :  ulcus  deinde  in  imo  fistulosum.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  345

The  Emperor  Cesar  Galerius  Valerius  Maximianus,  Invictus, Augustus,  Pontifex  Maximus,  Germanicus  Maximus,  iEgyptiacus Maximus,  Thebaicus  Maximus,  Sarmaticus  Maximus,  the  fiftli time  Persicus  Maximus,  second  time  Carpicus  Maximus,  sixtli time  Armeniacus  Maximus,  Medicus  Maximus,  Adiabenicus Maximus,  Tribune  of  the  People  XX.  Emperor  XIX.  Consul  VIII.
Father  of  his  country.  Proconsul :  and  the  Emperor  Cesar  Flavius, Valerius  Constantinus,  Pius,  Felix,  Invictus,  Augustus,  Pontifex Maximus,  Tribune  of  the  People,  and  Emperor  V.  Consul,  Father of  his  country.  Proconsul :  also,  the  Emperor  Cesar  Valerius Licinianus,  Pius,  Felix,  Invictus,  Augustus ;  Pontifex,  Maximus, Tribune  of  the  People  IV.  Emperor  IIL  Consul,  Pater  Patriae, Proconsul ;  to  their  subjects  in  the  provinces,  send  greeting :

Among*  other  matters  which  we  have  devised  for  the  benefit and  common  advantage  of  our  people,  we  have  first  determined to  restore  all  things  according  to  the  ancient  laws  and  the  public institutions,-|-  of  the  Romans.  And  to  make  provision  for  this, that  also  the  Christians,  who  have  left  the  religionof  their  fathers, should  return  again  to  a  good  purpose  and  resolution.  For  by some  means.J  such  arrogance  had  overtaken  and  such  stupidity had  beset  them,  that   they  would  not  follow  the  principles  an
*  This  edict,  as  Eusebius  tells  us  below,  he  translated  from  the  Latin,  and  had ne  not  mentioned  it,  it  could  be  inferred  from  the  style  and  phraseology  ;  as  the Latin  idiom  appears  more  than  once.  The  very  beginning  is  calculated  to  make this  impression.

•]•  The  word  £7rt;Ty,y.y,v,  herc  occurring,  is  very  ambiguous.  We  suspected  at  first, our  author  had  before  him  ex  sententia  Romani  pop^di,  or  perhaps  plebiscitum,  of which  Sij.uarix  B7r,grv>/i-,v^  might  scrvc  as  a  literal  translation,  though  not  very  intelii gible.  After  writing  this  conjecture,  however,  we  examined  the  Latin  edict  preserved by  Lanctantius,  and  find  the  original  was  disciplinam.

'+  We  suspect  the  Latin  here  was  qiiadam  ratione,  which  our  author  has  translated T.v.  xo^-.o-y-u),  by  a  certain  mode  of  reasoning.  Valesius  seems  to  have  overlooked the  Latin  idiom  as  well  as  the  Greek,  and  rendered  quodam  consensu.  But Eusebius  appears  to  have  mistaken  quadavi  ratione,  and  translated  into  the  Greek accordingly.  What  confirms  our  conjecture  is,  that  the  edict  does  not  ascribe  any thing  like  reason  to  the  Christians,  but  imputes  their  conduct  to  some  stupid  infatuation.

This  note  was  written  before  we  examined  the  Latin  copy  of  the  edict  in  Lanctantius.

2X

346  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

ciently  prescribed  to  them,  which  in  all  probability  their  ancestors had  established,  but  they  began  to  make  and  follow  laws,  each one  according  to  his  own  purpose  and  his  own  will,  and  thus  different multitudes  assembled  with  different  opinions  and  of  different sects.  Hence,  when  a  decree  of  this  kind  was  issued  by  us, that  they  should  return  again  to  the  established  usages  of  their 'orefathers,  vast  numbers  were  subjected  to  danger,  many,  when threatened,  endured  various  kinds  of  death.  But  though  we  saw (he  great  mass  still  persevering  in  their  folly,  and  that  they neither  gave  the  honour  that  was  due  to  the  immortal  gods,  nor heeded  that  of  the  Christians,  still  having  a  regard  to  our  cU
mency  and  our  invariable  practice,  according  to  which  we  ai wont  to  grant  pardon  to  all,  we  most  cheerfully  have  resolvecl to  extend  our  indulgence  in  this  matter  also:  that  there  may oe  Christians  again,  and  that  they  may  restore  their  houses  in which  they  were  accustomed  to  assemble,  so  that  nothing  be done  by  them  contrary  to  their  profession.  In  another  epistle we  shall  point  out  to  the  judges,  what  they  will  be  required  to observe ;  whence,  according  to  this  condescension  of  ours,  they are  obligated  to  implore  their  God  for  our  safety,  as  well  as  that of  the  people  and  their  own.  That  in  every  place  the  public welfare  may  be  preserved,  and  they  may  live  unmolested  in  their respective  homes  and  fire-hearths.

Such  was  the  purport  of  this  ordinance,  which,  according  lo our  ability,  we  have  translated  from  the  Latin  into  the  Greek.'*^
But  the  affairs  after  this  we  are  now  farther  to  consider.

*  Since  writing  the  above  notes,  we  have  compared  the  original  Latin  edict, which  is  still  preserved  in  Lanctantius,  "  de  7nortibns  perseaitnriim."  Our  conjectures, as  it  regards  style  and  phraseology,  we  have  found  considerably  confirmed by  this  comparison.  The  Latinity,  however,  of  the  edict  itself,  savours  of  the  degeneracy of  the  day.  It  is  surprising,  that  neither  Valesius  nor  his  translator Shorting,  has  noticed  the  edict  as  preserved  by  Lanctantius.  And  yet  the  formei has  struck  upon  the  signification  of  £;r.;T>)//x,  occurring  twice  in  this  edict.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  347

\_In  some  copies,  this  is  appended  to  the  eighth  Book.*']

But  the  author  of  this  edict  after  this  acknowledgment,  soon after  was  liberated  from  his  pains,  and  terminated  his  life.  It  is agreed  he  was  the  original  cause  of  the  miseries  of  the  persecution, as  he  had  long  before  the  movements  of  the  other  emperors, attempted  to  seduce  the  Christian  soldiers  of  his  own  house  from their  faith,  degrading  some  from  their  military  rank,  and  insulting others  in  the  most  abusive  manner,  even  punishing  some  with  dp  xth, and  at  last  exciting  his  associate  emperors  to  a  general  perse-^ution against  all.  Nor  have  I  thought  proper,  that  the  death  ut  these emperors  should  be  passed  over  in  silence.  As  there  «V'jre  four, ^fierefo>:-e,  that  held  the  sovereignty  divided  amonc  v^em,  those thac  were  advanced  in  years  and  honours,  after  n'>irl  avo  years from  the  persecution,  abdicated  the  governmenv,  as  we  have already  shown  ;  and  thus  passing  their  days  in  common  and  retired life,  ended  their  life  in  the  following  manner. — The  one, indeed,  who  preceded  the  others  in  honour  and  age,  was  at length  overpowered  by  a  long  and  distressing  disease,  but  the next  to  him  in  dignity  destroyed  himself  by  strangling,  suffering thus  according  to  certain  da:moniacal  prognostics,  on  account of  the  innumerable  crimes  that  he  had  committed.  But of  the  two  after  these,  the  last,  whom  we  have  mentioned  as  the leader  of  the  whole  persecution,  suffered  such  things  as  we  have already  stated.  But  he  that  surpassed  them  all  in  kindness  and condescension,  the  emperor  Constantius,  who  had  conducted  his government  the  whole  time  consistently  with  the  imperial  dig nity,  and  who  exhibited  himself  a  most  gracious  and  benevolent prince  in  other  respects,  also,  had  no  hand  in  raising  the  perse cution  against  us,  but  even  protected  and  patronised  those  pious persons  that  were  under  him.  He  neither  demolished  the  buildings of  the  churches,  nor  devised  any  thing  in  opposition  to  us ;

*  The  two  sections  that  here  follow,  are  regarded  as  supplementary  to  the  work.
The  first  being  an  Appendix  to  the  eighth  Book,  and  the  following  one  a  preliminary to  the  Book  of  Martyrs.     The  statements  at  the  bead  of  each  are  from  some  of the  copyists,  as  they  are  found  in  the  most  appro    d  manuscripts.
•A9

348  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

and  finally  enjoyed  a  death  really  happy  and  blessed,  being  the onl}  one  of  the  four  that  in  the  midst  of  a  tranquil  and  glorious reign,  at  his  death,  transmitted  the  government  to  his  own  son as  his  successor,  a  prince  most  eminent  in  all  respects  for  his wisdom  a,nd  piety.  He,  at  the  very  beginning,  \vas  proclaimed supreme  emperor  and  Augustus,  by  the  armies,  and  exhibited himself  a  generous  rival  of  his  father's  piety,  with  regard  to  us.
Such  then,  was  the  issue  of  the  life  of  the  four  emperors,  at  different times.  Of  these  the  only  one  that  yet  left  the  abovementined  confession,  was  he  whom  we  mentioned  above,  together with  those  whom  he  had  afterwards  associated  with  him  in  the government,  which  confession  also,  he  sent  abroad  in  his  proclamation to  all.

The  following  we  also  found  appended  to  the  eighth  Book.

Tms  was  the  eighth  year  of  the  reign  of  Diocletian,  in  the month  of  Xanthicus,  which  one  would  call  April  according  to  the Romans,  about  the  time  when  the  paschal  festival  of  our  Saviour took  place,  when  Flavianus  was  governor  of  Palestine.
Suddenly  edicts  were  published  every  where  to  raze  the  churches to  the  ground,  and  to  destroy  the  sacred  Scriptures  in  the  flames, to  strip  those  that  were  in  honour  of  their  dignities,  and  to  deprive the  freedmen  of  their  hberty  if  any  persisted  in  the  Christian profession.  Such  was  the  first  violence  of  this  edict  against us ;  but  it  was  not  long  before  other  mandates  were  issued,  in which  it  was  ordered  that  the  prelates  of  the  churches  should first  be  cast  into  prison  everywhere,  and  then  compelled  by  every artifice  to  oflTer  the  sacrifice.

THE  BOOK  OF  MARTYRS.

CHAPTER  I.

ProcopiuSf  AlpheuSf  and  Zaccheus.

The  first,  therefore,  of  the  martyrs  of  Palestine,  was  Procopius, who,  before  he  was  tried  by  imprisonment,  was  immediately  at the  beginning  arraigned  before  the  tribunal  of  the  governor.
When  commanded  to  sacrifice  to  those  called  gods,  he  declared that  he  knew  but  one,  to  whom  it  was  proper  to  sacrifice,  as  He himself  had  commanded  ;  but  when  he  was  ordered  to  make libations  to  the  four  emperors,  he  uttered  a  sentence  which  did not  please  them,  and  was  immediately  beheaded.  The  sentence was  from  the  poet :  "  A  plurality  of  sovereigns  is  not  good,  let there  be  but  one  prince  and  one  sovereign  Lord."*  This  happened on  the  eighth  of  the  month  Desius,  or  as  one  would  say with  the  Romans,  the  seventh  before  the  Idesf  of  June,  the  fourth day  of  the  week.  This  w^as  the  first  signal  that  was  given  at Cesarea  in  Palestine.  After  him  many  bishops  in  the  same  city, of  the  provincial  churches,  cheerfully  struggled  with  dreadful  tortures, and  exhibited  noble  specimens  of  mighty  conflicts.  Some indeed,  from  excessive  dread,  broken  dow^n  and  ovei'powered  by their  terrors,  sunk  and  gave  way  immediately  at  the  first  onset, but  each  of  the  rest  experienced  various  kinds  of  torture.  Some were  scourged  with  innumerable  strokes  of  the  lash,  others  racked in  their  limbs  and  galled  in  their  sides  with  torturing  instruments, some  with  intolerable  fetters,  by  which  the  joints  of  their
*The  words  of  Ulysses,  in  the  Iliad,  book  ii.  line  208.  Oux.  ay^Sov  5roxu«o<pKi/.)i.
Sentences  from  Homer  were  among  the  proverbs  of  the  day.  The  same  passage was  on  a  certain  occasion  repeated  by  Domitian.  See  his  Life  by  Suetonius,  ch.  13.

•j-  The  Romans  had  three  divisions  of  the  month,  Calends,  Nones,  and  Idos,  and in  marking  the  days  they  counted  backwards.  For  the  days  given  here,  see  any  tabular virw  of  ihe  Roman  calendar.

349

350  ECCLESIAS'iiiJxt.   HISTORY.

hands  were  dislocated.  Nevertheless  they  bore  the  event,  as regulated  by  the  secret  determinations  of  God.  One  was  seized by  the  hands,  and  led  to  the  altar  by  others  who  weic  Ihrusting  the polluted  and  unhallowed  victim  into  his  right  hand,  and  then  suffered to  go  again  as  if  he  had  sacrificed.  Another,  though  he  had not  even  touched,  when  others  said  that  he  had  sacrificed,  went away  in  silence.  Another  was  taken  up  half  dead,  and  cast  out as  already  dead,  and  was  released  from  his  bonds,  and  ranked among  the  sacrificers.  Another  crying  out,  and  asserting  that  he did  not  assent  to  these  things,  w^as  struck  on  the  mouth ;  and  thus silenced  by  the  many  blows  of  those  that  were  suborned  for  this purpose,  was  thrust  away  by  violence,  although  he  had  never sacrificed.  So  much  was  it  valued  by  them,  for  one  upon  the whole  only  to  appear  to  have  performed  their  desire.  Of  these therefore,  so  many  in  number,  only  Alpheus*  and  Zaccheus  were honoured  with  the  crown  of  the  holy  martyrs,  who  after  scourging and  scraping  with  iron  hooks,  and  severe  bonds,  and  the  tortures consequent  on  these,  and  other  different  tortures  on  the rack,  having  their  feet  stretched  a  night  and  day,  to  the  fourth hole  of  the  stocks,  were  at  length  beheaded  on  the  seventeenth day  of  the  month  Dius,  the  same  that  is  called  the  fifteenth  of the  Calends  of  December.  Thus  for  confessing  the  only  God and  Jesus  Christ  the  only  king,  they  suffered  martyrdom  with the  former  martyr,  just  as  if  they  had  uttered  some  dreadful blasphemy.

CHAPTER  II.

The  martyr  Romanus.

Worthy  of  record,  also,  are  the  circumstances  respecting  Romanus, which  occurred  on  the  same  day  ot  Antioch.     He  was  c
*  The  names  of  some  of  these  martyrs  are  to  be  found  in  some  of  the  old  calendars. Thus  Alpheus  is  found  on  the  17th  of  November,  corresponding  to  the  date here  given.  Others  may  be  found  in  the  same  way.  The  names  of  some  have  T»
the  lapse  of  time  given  way  to  others.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  351

native  of  Palestine,  a  deacon  and  exorcist,  of  the  church  at  Ce sarea,  and  was  present  at  the  demolition  of  the  churches  there, and  as  he  saw  many  men  with  women  and  children  approaching the  idols  in  masses,  and  sacrificing,  considering  the  sight  intolerable, and  stimulated  by  a  zeal  for  religion,  he  cried  out  with  a loud  voice,  and  reproved  them.  But  he  was  immediately  seized for  his  boldness,  and  proved,  if  any,  to  be  a  most  noble  witness  of the  truth.  When  the  judge  had  informed  him  that  he  was  to  die by  the  flames,  with  a  cheerful  countenance  and  a  most  prdeni mind,  he  received  the  sentence,  and  was  led  away.  He  was  then tied  to  the  stake,  and  when  the  wood  was  heaped  up  around  him, and  they  were  about  kindling  the  pile,  only  awaiting  the  word  from the  expected  emperor,  he  exclaimed,  "  where  then  is  the  fire  ?"
Saying  this,  he  was  summoned  again  before  the  emperor,  to  be  subjected to  new  tortures,  and  therefore  had  his  tongue  cut  out,  which he  bore  with  the  greatest  fortitude,  as  he  proved  in  his  actions  to all,  showing  also  that  the  power  of  God  is  always  present  to  the aid  of  those  who  are  obliged  to  bear  any  hardship  for  the  sake of  religion,  to  lighten  their  labours,  and  to  strengthen  their  ardour. When,  therefore,  he  learned  the  novel  mode  of  punishment, the  heroic  man  by  no  means  alarmed,  readily  thrust  out  his tongue  and  ofTered  it  with  the  greatest  alacrity  to  those  who  cut out.  After  this  he  was  cast  into  bonds,  and  having  suffered  there a  very  long  time,  at  length  when  the  twentieth  anniversary  of  the emperor  was  at  hand,  according  to  an  established  usage  of granting  liberty  every  where  to  those  that  were  kept  in  prison,  he alone  had  his  feet  stretched  to  the  fifth  hole  in  the  stocks,  lying upon  the  very  wood  with  a  halter  round  his  neck,  was  adorned with  martyrdom,  according  to  his  earnest  desire.  This  one, though  he  suffered  beyond  his  country,  yet  as  a  native  of  Palestine deserved  to  be  ranked  among  the  martyrs  of  Palestine.
These  were  the  events  that  occurred  of  this  descriotion  in  tne first  year  of  the  persecution,  as  it  was  then  excited  oniy  against
the  prelates  of  the  church.
32=^=

352  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER    IIL

Tijnotheus,  Agajpius,  Theda,  and  eight  others.

In  the  course  of  the  second  year,  when  the  war  was  blazing more  violently  against  us,  when  Urbanus  had  the  government  of the  province,  imperial  edicts  were  first  issued  to  him,  in  which  \\
was  ordered  by  a  general  command,  that  all  persons  of  every people  and  city  should  sacrifice  and  make  libations  to  the  idols.
Timotheus,  at  Gaza,  a  city  of  Palestine,  endured  a  multitude  of tortures,  and  after  the  rest  was  condemned  to  be  consumed  by  a slow  and  gentle  fire,  exhibiting  in  all  his  sufferings  a  most  indubitable proof  of  his  sincere  devotedness  to  God,  and  thus  bore  away the  crown  of  those  holy  wrestlers  who  triumphed  in  the  cause of  piety.  At  the  same  time  with  him  were  condemned  to  be cast  to  the  wild  beasts,  Agapius,  wdio  displayed  the  noblest firmness  in  his  confession,  and  Thecla,  our  contemporary.*  But who  could  help  being  struck  with  admiration  and  astonishment at  the  sight,  or  even  at  the  very  recital  of  those  things  that  then occurred  ?  For,  as  the  heathen  in  every  place  were  on  the  point of  celebrating  their  accustomed  games  and  festivals,  it  was  much noised  abroad,  that  besides  the  other  exhibitions  with  which  they were  so  greatly  captivated,  those  that  were  just  condemned  to the  wild  beasts  would  exhibit  a  combat.  This  report  being  increased, and  spreading  among  all,  there  were  six  young  men, who,  first  binding  their  hands,  hastened  with  all  speed  to  Urbanus, to  prove  their  great  alacrity  to  endure  martyrdom,  who  was then  going  to  the  amphitheatre,  and  declared  themselves  Christians. The  names  of  these  were  Timolaus,  a  native  of  Pontus, Dionysius  of  Tripolis  in  Phoenice,  Romulus  a  subdeacon  of  the church  at  Diospolis,  Paesis  and  Alexander,  both  Egyptians;
another  Alexander  from  Gaza.  These,  by  their  great  promptness in  the  face  of  all  terrors,  proved  that  they  gloried  in  the
*  Eusebius  seems  to  add  "  our  contemporary,"  to  distinguish  this  Thecla  from the  companion  of  St.  Paul,  mentioned  by  the  Greek  and  Latin  fathers.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  353

worship  of  the  true  God,  and  were  not  alarmed  at  the  assaults  of beasts  of  prey ;  and,  indeed,  both  the  governor  and  those  around him  were  amazed.  They  were,  however,  immediately  committed to  prison.  Not  many  days  after,  tv/o  others  were  added  to their  number,  of  whom  one  had  already  before  sustained  the conflict  of  confession  several  times,  under  a  variety  of  dreadful torments ;  he  was,  also,  called  Agapius,  but  the  other  who  supplied them  with  the  necessaries  of  life,  was  named  Dionysius.
All  these,  eight  in  number,  were  beheaded  in  one  day  at  Cesarea, on  the  twenty-third  day  of  the  month  Dystrus,  that  is,  the  ninth of  the  calends  of  April.  In  the  mean  time,  a  certain  change took  place  with  the  emperors,  the  first  and  the  second  in  the  imperial dignity  retiring  to  private  life,  and  public  affairs  began  to wear  a  troubled  aspect.  Shortly  after,  the  Roman  empire  was divided,  and  a  dreadful  civil  war  arose  among  the  Romans  themselves :  nor  did  the  schism  cease,  nor  the  consequent  commotions become  finally  settled,  before  peace  was  proclaimed  toward  us throughout  the  whole  Roman  world.  For  as  soon  as  this  arose like  a  light  upon  all,  springing  up  from  the  densest  and  most gloomy  night,  the  government  was  again  restored  to  firmness, tranquillity,  and  peace,  and  they  resumed  that  benevolent  disposition towards  one  another,  which  they  had  derived  from  their  ancestors. But  of  these  matters  we  shall  give  a  more  full  account  in its  proper  place.  Now  let  us  pursue  the  thread  of  our  narrative in  due  order.

CHAPTER    IV.

Apphianus.

Maximinus  Cesar,  who  was  afterwards  raised  to  the  government, as  if  to  exhibit  the  evidences  of  his  innate  hatred  to  God and  his  aversion  to  piety,  armed  himself  to  persecute  with  greater violence  than  those  before  him.  Hence,  as  there  was  no  little confusion  raised  among  all,  some  scattered  here  and  others  there, and  endeavouring  by  all  means  to  escape  the  danger;  and  as
2  Y

354  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

there  was  the  greatest  tumult  throughout  the  empire,  what  description would  suffice  to  give  a  faithful  account  of  that  divine love  and  that  freedom  of  confession,  that  distinguished  the  martyr Apphianus,  that  blessed  and  truly  innocent  lamb?  He  was  scarcely twenty  years  old,  when  he  presented  a  wonderful  instance  of solid  piety  toward  the  one  only  God,  as  a  kind  of  spectacle  to  all before  the  gates  of  Cesarea.  And  first  when  for  the  purpose  of pursuing  Greek  literature,  as  he  was  of  a  very  wealthy  family, he  passed  the  most  of  his  time  at  Berytus,  it  is  wonderful  to tell  how  in  the  midst  of  such  a  city,  notwithstanding  the  enticements of  youthful  passions,  he  was  superior  to  all,  and  was  neither corrupted  in  his  morals  by  the  vigour  of  his  body,  nor  his  association wuth  young  men,  but  embraced  a  modest  and  sober  life, walking  honestly  and  piously,  and  regulating  his  conversation as  one  who  had  embraced  the  Christian  faith.  Were  it  necessary to  mention  his  country,  and  thus  to  celebrate  the  place  that gave  birth  to  so  noble  a  wrestler  in  the  cause  of  religion,  we •shall  cheerfully  do  also  this.  Pagas,  a  city  of  Lycia,  of  no  mean account,  and  which  may  be  known  to  some  of  my  readers,  was the  place  wdience  this  youth  derived  his  origin.  After  his  return from  his  studies  at  Berytus,  though  his  father  held  the  first  rank in  his  country,  being  unable  to  bear  dwelling  with  his  father  and the  rest  of  his  kindred,  because  they  did  not  approve  of  living according  to  the  laws  of  piety,  as  if  impelled  by  the  divine  Spirit and  by  a  kind  of  natural,  rather  say  an  inspired  and  genuine, philosophy,  deeming  it  better  than  what  is  considered  glory  in  life, and  despising  the  soft  pleasures  of  the  body,  he  secretly  fled  from his  friends.  And  without  any  concern  for  his  daily  expenses,  in his  trust  and  faith  in  God,  he  was  conducted  as  if  led  by  the  Holy Spirit,  to  the  city  of  Cesarea,  where  was  prepared  for  him  the crown  of  martyrdom,  for  his  piety.  Having  associated  with  us there,  and  having  studied  the  holy  Scriptures  as  much  as  could be  for  a  short  time,  and  having  prepared  himself  most  cheerfully by  the  proper  exercises  and  discipline,  he  finally  made  so  illustrious an  end,  as  could  not  be  witnessed  again  without  amazement.

Who  could  listen  without  wonder  to  the  freedom  with  which
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  355

he  spoke,  behold  his  firmness,  and  before  this,  the  courage  and the  energy  of  this  youth,  who  gave  evidence  of  a  zeal  for  piety and  a  spirit  more  than  human?  For  when  a  second  excite ment  was  raised  against  us  by  Maximinus,  in  the  third  year  of the  persecution,  and  the  edicts  of  the  tyrant,  to  this  effect  were first  issued,  that  all  persons  every  where  should  publicly  oflfer sacrifices,  and  that  the  rulers  of  the  cities  should  see  to  this  with all  care  and  diligence,  when  the  heralds  also  w^ere  proclaiming throughout  all  Cesarea,  that  men  women  and  children  should come  to  the  temples  of  the  idols,  at  the  command  of  the  governor ;  and  moreover,  the  mihtary  tribunes  were  calling  upon  each one  by  name,  from  a  list,  and  the  heathen  were  rushing  in  an immense  crowd  from  every  quarter,  this  youth  fearlessly  and  without imparting  his  purpose  to  any,  stealing  away  from  us  who dwelt  in  the  same  house,  and  unobserved  by  the  military  band around  the  governor,  approached  Urbanus  who  happened  then to  be  making  libations.  Fearlessly  seizing  his  right  hand,  he  suddenly interrupted  him  in  the  act  of  sacrificing.  Then  he  counselled and  exhorted  him  in  a  solemn  and  serious  tone  to  abandon his  error,  saying  it  was  not  right  that  we  should  desert  the  one only  and  true  God,  to  sacrifice  to  idols  and  daemons.  This  was done  by  the  youth,  as  is  very  probable,  under  the  impulse  of  a divine  power,  which  by  this  deed  gave  a  kind  of  audible  testimony, that  the  Christians,  those  to  wit  that  were  really  such, were  so  far  from  abandoning  the  religion  which  they  had  onct;
embraced,  that  they  were  not  only  superior  to  all  the  threatened dangers,  and  the  punishments  consequent  on  these ;  but  over  and above  this,  acted  with  still  greater  freedom,  and  declared  themselves with  a  noble  and  fearless  utterance,  and  were  it  possible that  their  persecutors  could  be  delivered  from  their  ignorance, even  exhorted  them  to  acknowledge  the  one  only  and  true  God.
After  this,  he  of  whom  we  are  now  speaking,  as  might  be  expected in  the  case  of  an  act  so  daring,  was  immediately  seized and  torn  by  the  soldiers  like  ravenous  beasts,  and  after  suffering most  heroically  innumerable  stripes  on  his  whole  body,  was  cast into  prison  until  further  orders.  There,  being  stretched  by  the ormentor  with  both  feet  a  night  and  day,  on  the  rack,  he  was
<i56  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

the  next  day  brought  to  the  judge,  and  when  force  was  applied to  make  him  sacrifice,  he  exhibited  an  invincible  fortitude  in bearing  pain  and  horrid  tortures.  His  sides  were  not  only  once or  twice,  but  often  furrowed  and  scraped  to  the  very  bones  and bowels,  and  at  the  same  time  he  was  beaten  wdth  so  many  blow^s on  the  face  and  neck,  that  by  reason  of  his  bruised  and  swollen face,  he  was  no  more  recognised  by  those  who  had  known  him well.  But  as  he  did  not  yield  even  to  this,  they  covered  his feet  with  linen  steeped  in  oil,  and  at  the  command  of  the  governor the  tormentors  applied  fire  to  these.  The  sufferings  whicli this  blessed  youth  then  endured,  seems  to  me  to  exceed  all  power of  description.  The  fire,  after  consuming  his  flesh,  penetrated to  the  bones,  so  that  the  humours  of  the  body,  liquefied  like  wax, fell  in  drops ;  but  as  he  did  not  yield  even  to  this,  his  antagonists being  defeated,  and  now  only  at  a  loss  to  account  for  his  more than  human  perseverance,  he  was  again  committed  to  prison.  At last  he  was  summoned  the  third  day  before  the  judge  again,  and still  declaring  his  fixed  purpose  in  the  profession  of  Christ,  already half  dead,  he  was  thrown  into  the  sea  and  drowned.

What  happened  immediately  after  this,  w^ould  scarcely  be credited  by  any  who  had  not  seen  with  his  own  eyes.  But  notwithstanding this,  we  cannot  but  record  the  events,  as  we  may say,  all  the  inhabitants  of  Cesarea  were  witnesses  of  the  fact.
There  was  no  age  that  was  not  present  at  this  wonderful  sight As  soon  as  this  really  blessed  and  holy  youth  was  cast  into  the deepest  parts  of  the  sea,  suddenly  a  roaring  and  uncommon crashing  sound,  pervaded  not  only  the  sea  but  the  whole  surrounding heavens.  So  that  the  earth  and  the  whole  city  was shaken  by  it.  And  at  the  same  time  with  this  wonderful  and sudden  shaking,  the  body  of  the  divine  martyr  was  cast  by  the sea  before  the  gates  of  the  city,  as  if  unable  to  bear  it.  And such  was  the  martyrdom  of  the  excellent  Apphianus,  on  the second  day  of  the  month  Xanthicus,  or,  Roman  style,  the  fourth of  the  nones  of  April,  on  the  day  of  the  preparation,  or  Friday.

flCCLESlASTlCAL  HISTORY  35T

CHAPTER   V.

The  martyrs  Ulpian  and  JEdeshis.

But  about  the  same  time,  and  in  those  very  days,  there  was  a young  man  named  Ulpianus,  at  the  city  of  Tyre,  wlio  also,  after dreadful  torments,  and  the  most  severe  scourgings,  was  sown  in  a raw  bull's  hide,  together  with  a  dog  and  poisonous  asp,  and thrown  into  the  sea.  Hence,  also,  he  appears  deservedly  to claim  a  place  among  the  martyrdoms  noticed  with  Apphianus.
A  short  time  after,  very  much  the  same  sufferings  were  endured by  iEdesius,  who  was  the  own  brother  of  Apphianus,  not  only  in the  flesh  but  in  God,  after  innumerable  confessions,  and  protracted torments  in  bonds,  after  being  repeatedly  condemned  b'y the  judges  to  the  mines  in  Palestine,  and  after  a  life  and  conversation, in  which,  amid  all  these  circumstances,  his  garb  and his  deportment  was  that  of  a  philosopher.  He  had,  also,  enjoyed an  education  st''  more  finished  than  his  brother,  and had  studied  the  difTerOnt  branches  of  philosophy.  When  he saw  the  judge  at  Alexandria,  condemning  the  Christians  there, ind  rioting  beyond  all  bounds,  sometimes  insulting  grave  and Jecent  men  in  various  ways,  sometimes  consigning  females  of the  greatest  modesty,  and  virgins  wdio  had  devoted  themselves  to the  duties  of  religion,  to  panders,  to  endure  every  kind  of  abuse and  obscenity,  on  seeing  this  he  made  an  attempt  similar  to  that of  his  brother.  As  these  things  appeared  insufferable,  he  drew near  wath  determined  resolution  to  the  judge,  and  w^ith  his  words and  acts  covered  him  with  shame.  For  this  he  courageously endured  multiplied  forms  of  torment,  and  was  finally  honoured with  his  brother's  death,  and  cast  into  the  sea.  But  this,  as  1
before  said,  happened  in  the  w'ay  here  related,  a  short  time  after the  death  of  the  former
358  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTOR  .

CHAPTER   VL

The  martyr  Agapius.

But  in  the  fourth  year  of  the  persecution,  on  the  twelfth  of  the calends  of  December,  which  would  be  on  the  twentieth  of  the month  of  Dius,  on  the  day  before  the  Sabbath,  Friday,  in  the  same city  of  Cesarea,  occurred  what  was  eminently  w^orthy  of  record.
This  happened  in  the  presence  of  the  tyrant  Maximinus,  who  was gratifying  the  multitudes  wdth  public  shows,  on  the  day  that  was called  his  birthday.  As  it  was  an  ancient  practice  when  the  emperors were  present,  to  exhibit  splendid  shows  then,  if  at  an}
time,  and  for  the  greater  amusement  of  the  spectators,  to  collect new  and  strange  sights,  in  place  of  those  customary;  eithei animals  from  some  parts  of  India,  Ethiopia,  or  elsewhere ;  sometimes, also,  men  who,  by  artificial  dexterities  of  the  body,  exhibited singular  spectacles  of  adroitness,  and  to  complete  the whole,  as  it  was  an  emperor  that  exhibited  the  spectacles  at this  time,  it  was  necessary  to  have  something  more  than  common and  singular,  in  the  preparation  of  these  games ;  (and  what  then should  this  be  ?)  one  of  our  martyrs  was  led  forth  into  the  arena to  endure  the  contest  for  the  one  and  only  true  religion.  This was  Agapius,  who  we  have  already  said  had  been  thrown,  together with  Thecla,  to  the  wild  beasts.  After  being  paraded with  malefactors,  from  the  prison  to  the  stadium,  already  a  third time  and  often,  and  after  various  threats  from  the  judges,  whether through  compassion,  or  out  of  hope  of  changing  his  purpose,  had been  deferred  from  time  to  time  for  other  contests ;  at  length, when  the  emperor  was  present  he  w^as  led  forth.  As  if  he  had been  designedly  reserved  for  that  time,  and  that  also  the  declaration of  our  Saviour  might  be  fulfilled,  which  he  declared  to  his disciples  in  his  divine  foreknowledge,  that  they  would  be  led  before kings,  for  the  sake  of  confessing  him.  He  was  brought, therefore,  into  the  stadium,  with  a  certain  criminal,  who  they said  was  charged  with  killing  his  master.  This  latter  one  then, the  murderer,  when  cast  to  the  beasts,  was  honoured  with  cle
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  35b
meLcy  and  mercy,  not  unlike  the  manner  in  which  Barnabas was  in  our  Saviour's  time.  Hence  the  whole  theatre  resounded with  applauses,  that  the  blood-stained  homicide  was  so  humanely saved  by  the  emperor,  and  was  moreover  honoured  w  ith  liberty and  dignity.  But  this  wrestler  of  piety  was  first  summoned  by the  tyrant,  then  demanded  to  renounce  his  purpose  with  the  promise of  liberty.  With  a  loud  voice  he  declared,  that  he  would cheerfully  and  with  pleasure  sustain  whatever  he  might  inflict on  him  ;  not  indeed,  for  any  wickedness,  but  for  his  veneration  of the  God  of  the  universe.  Saying  this,  he  combined  actions  with his  words,  and  rushing  against  a  bear  let  loose  upon  him,  he  most readily  offered  himself  to  be  devoured  by  the  beast,  after  which he  was  taken  up  yet  breathing,  and  carried  to  prison.  Surviving yet  one  day,  he  had  stones  bound  to  his  feet,  and  thus  was  plunged into  the  midst  of  the  sea.  Such  then  was  the  martyrdom  of Agapius.

CHAPTER   VIL

The  martyrs  Theodosia,  Dornninus,  and  Auxentlus.

The  persecution  had  now  been  extended  to  the  fifth  year, when  on  the  second  of  the  month  Xanthicus,  that  is  the  fourth of  the  nones  of  April,  on  the  very  day  of  our  Lord's  resurrection, again  at  Cesarea  a  virgin  of  Tyre,  Theodosia  by  name,  not  yet eighteen  years  old,  but  distinguished  for  her  faith  and  virtue,  approached some  prisoners,  confessors  of  the  kingdom  of  Christ, seated  before  the  judgment  seat,  w^ith  a  view  to  salute  them, and  as  is  probable,  with  a  view  to  entreat  them  to  remember her  when  they  should  come  before  the  Lord.  Whilst  she  was doing  this,  as  if  it  were  some  impious  and  atrocious  deed,  she  was seized  by  the  soldiers,  and  led  away  to  the  commander.  Presently, merciless  and  savage  as  he  was,  he  had  her  tortured  with dreadful  and  horrific  cruelties,  furrowing  her  sides  and  breasts with  instruments  even  to  the  very  bones,  and  whilst  yet  breathing, and  with  all  exhibiting  a  cheerful  and  joyous  countenance, 33

360  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

he  orders  her  to  be  cast  into  the  sea.  Proceeding  next  from her  to  the  other  confessors,  he  consigned  them  all  to  the  mines at  Phoeno  in  Palestine.  After  this,  on  the  fifth  of  the  month Dius,  on  the  nones  of  November.  Roman  style,  in  the  same  city, Silvanus,  who  was  yet  a  presbyter,  became  a  confessor,  and  not long  after  he  was  both  honoured  with  the  episcopate,  and  finally crowned  with  martyrdom.  The  same  judge  condemned  those who  exhibited  the  noblest  firmness  in  the  cause  of  piety,  to  labour in  the  same  mines,  having  first  ordered  their  ancles  to  be disabled  by  searing  with  red  hot  irons.  At  the  same  time  that this  sentence  was  passed,  he  ordered  one  who  had  rendered  himself illustrious  on  innumerable  occasions  of  confession,  to  be  con>
mitted  to  the  flames.  This  was  Domninus,  well  known  to  all  in Palestine,  for  his  great  freedom.  After  which,  this  judge,  who was  a  terrible  inventor  of  miseries,  and  particularly  ingenious  in new  devices  against  the  doctrine  of  Christ,  planned  torments against  the  Christians,  such  as  had  never  before  been  heard  of.
He  condemned  three  to  pugilistic  combat ;  but  Anxentius,  a  grave and  holy  presbyter,  he  ordered  to  be  cast  to  the  beasts,  others who  had  reached  the  age  of  maturity,  he  made  eunuchs,  and  condemned them  to  the  mines ;  others  again,  after  dreadful  tortures, he  cast  into  prison.  Among  these  was  Pamphilus  that  dearest*
of  my  friends  and  associates,  a  man  who  for  every  virtue  was the  most  illustrious  martyr  of  our  times.  Urbanus  having  first made  trial  of  his  skill  in  the  art  of  rhetoric,  and  tlie  studies  of philosophy,  after  this  attempted  to  force  him  to  ofier  sacrifice.
When  he  saw  him  refusing,  and  not  even  regarding  his  threats,  at last  becoming  transported  with  rage,  he  orders  him  to  be  tortured with  more  excruciating  pains.  Then  this  monster  in  cruelty  obstinately and  incessantly  applied  the  instruments,  to  furrow  and lacerate  his  sides,  all  but  entering  and  feeding  upon  his  very flesh,  and  yet  after  all,  defeated  and  covered  with  shame,  he committed  likewise  him  to  those  confessors  in  prison.     But  what
*  This  is  the  Pamphilus  from  whom  Eusebius  obtained  the  surname  of  Pamphilus.    This,  however,  should  not  be  understood  as  a  surname,  but  as  an  appellation indicative  of  attachment  to  his  friend.     It  should  be  written  in  its  original,  Eua-s/S*
xixfi^tKiv,  Euaebius,  the  friend  of  Pamphilus ;  ipaoj  being  understood
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  361

kind  of  return  this  tormentor  will  receive  at  the  hands  of  divine justice,  for  his  cruelties  against  the  saints,  and  after  rioting  to such  extent  against  the  confessors  of  Christ,  is  easy  to  conjecture from  the  preludes  to  these  judgments  here.  For  immediately after  his  crimes  against  Pamphilus,  whilst  he  held  the  government, the  divine  justice  suddenly  overtook  him,  thus.  That  man whom  we  but  yesterday  saw  judging  on  a  lofty  seat,  and  surrounded by  a  guard  of  soldiers,  and  ruling  over  all  Palestine,  and (he  associate,  and  favourite,  and  guest  of  the  tyrant,  stripped in  a  single  night,  and  divested  of  all  his  honours,  and  covered with  disgrace  and  ignominy,  before  those  who  had  courted  him as  the  emperor  himself,  him  we  saw  timid  and  cowardly  uttering cries  and  entreaties  like  a  woman  before  all  the  people, whom  he  had  ruled.  The  same  just  providence  also  made  that very  Maximinus  upon  whom  he  so  boastingly  relied,  as  if  he loved  him  exceedingly  for  his  dreadful  deeds  against  us  ;  him  1
say,  in  the  same  city,  the  justice  of  God  erected  into  a  most  relentless and  cruel  judge,  who  pronounced  sentence  of  death against  him,  after  the  numerous  crimes  of  which  he  was  convicted. But  let  this  account  of  him  suffice,  by  the  way.  Perhaps a  suitable  occasion  may  offer,  in  which  we  shall  also  relate  the end  of  those  wicked  men  that  were  principally  concerned  in waging  war  against  us,  and  also  of  Maximinus  himself,  together with  those  of  his  ministers  in  this  work.

CHAPTER  VIIL

Oilier  confessors;  also  Valentina  and  Paulus.

When  the  storm  had  incessantly  raged  against  us  into  the  sixth year,  there  had  been  before  this  a  vast  number  of  confessors  of true  religion  in  what  is  called  the  Porphyry  quarry,  from  the  name of  the  stone  which  is  found  in  Thebais.  Of  these,  one  hundred, w^anting  three,  men,  women,  and  young  infants,  were  sent  to  the
2Z

362  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

governor  of  Palestine,  who,  for  confessing  the  supreme  God  and Christ,  had  the  ancles  and  sinews  of  their  left  legs  seared  off  with a  red  hot  iron.  Besides  this  they  had  their  right  eyes  first  cut out,  together  with  the  lids  and  pupils,  and  then  seared  with  red hot  iron,  so  as  to  destroy  the  eye  to  the  very  roots.  All  this  was done  by  the  order  of  Firmiiianus,  who  was  sent  thither  as  sue cesser  to  Urbanus,  and  acted  in  obedience  to  the  imperial  com mand.  After  this  he  con^mitted  them  to  the  mines  in  Palestine, to  drag  out  a  miserable  existence  in  constant  toil  and  oppressive labour.

Nor  was  it  enough,  that  those  who  endured  such  miseries  were deprived  of  their  eyes,  but  those  natives  of  Palestine,  also,  whom we  have  already  mentioned  as  condemned  to  pugilistic  combats, as  they  neither  would  suffer  themselves  to  be  supported  from  the imperial  treasury,  nor  undergo  the  exercises  preparatory  to  the combat,  hence  they  were  now  brought,  not  only  before  the  governors, but  before  Maximinus  himself,  where,  displaying  the noblest  firmness  in  their  confessions,  by  enduring  hunger  and stripes,  they  suflfered  finally  the  same  that  the  former  did,  with the  addition  of  other  confessors  from  the  same  city.  Immediately after  these,  others  were  seized,  who  had  assembled  in  the city  of  Gaza  to  hear  the  holy  Scriptures  read,  some  of  whoiri suffered  the  same  mutilations  in  their  eyes  and  feet ;  others  were obliged  to  endure  still  greater  sufferings,  by  having  their  sides furrowed  and  scraped  in  the  most  dreadful  manner.  Of  these, one  who  w^as  a  female  in  sex,  but  a  man  in  reason,  not  enduring the  threat  of  violation,  and  having  used  a  certain  expression against  the  tyrant,  for  committing  the  government  to  such  cruel judges,  she  was  first  scourged,  then  raised  on  high  on  the  rack, was  lacerated  and  galled  in  the  sides.  But  as  those  who  were appointed  for  this  incessantly  and  vehemently  applied  the  tortures according  to  the  orders  of  the  judge,  another  w^oman  who, like  the  former,  had  contemplated  a  life  of  perpetual  virginity, though  ordinary  in  bodily  form,  and  common  in  appearance,  yet possessing  a  mind  otherwise  firm,  and  an  understanding  superior to  her  sex,  was  unable  to  bear  the  merciless,  cruel,  and  inhuman scene  before  her,  and  with  a  courage  exceeding  all  the  far-famed
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  363

combatants  among  the  Greeks  for  their  liberty,  she  exclaimed against  the  judge,  from  the  midst  of  the  crowd,  "  And  how  long, then,  will  you  thus  cruelly  torture  my  sister  ?'  He,  the  more bitterly  incensed  by  this,  ordered  the  woman  immediately  to  be seized.  She  was  then  dragged  into  the  midst,  and  after  she  had called  herself  by  the  august  name  of  our  Saviour,  attempts  were first  made  to  bring  her  over  to  sacrifice  by  persuasion.  But when  she  refused,  she  was  dragged  to  the  altar  by  force.  But her  sister  remaining  the  same,  and  still  adhering  to  her  purpose, with  a  resolute,  intrepid  step,  she  kicked  the  altar,  and  overturned all  on  it,  together  wdth  the  fire.  Upon  this,  the  judge,  exasperated, like  a  savage  beast,  applied  tortures  beyond  all  that he  had  done  before,  ail  but  glutting  himself  with  her  very  flesh, by  the  wounds  and  lacerations  of  her  body.  But  when  his  madness was  gratified  to  satiety,  he  bound  her  and  the  former,  whom she  called  sister,  together,  and  condemned  them  to  the  flames.
The  former  of  these  was  said  to  be  of  Gaza,  but  the  other,  Valentina  by  name,  was  a  native  of  Cesarea,  and  well  known  to  many.
But  how  could  I  sufficiently  describe  the  martyrdom  that  follow^ed this,  and  with  which  the  most  blessed  Paulus  was  crowned?
Who,  indeed,  was  condemned  at  the  same  time  with  these,  under one  and  the  same  sentence  of  death.  About  the  time  of  his  execution, he  I'equested  of  the  executioner,  who  was  on  the  point of  cutting  off  his  head,  to  allow  him  a  short  space  of  time,  which being  granted,  with  a  loud  and  clear  voice,  he  first  interceded with  God  in  his  prayers,  imploring  pardon  for  his  fellow-chrlstians, and  earnestly  entreating  that  peace  and  liberty  might  be  soon granted  them.  Then  he  prayed  for  the  conversion  of  the  Jews to  God  through  Christ.  Then  he  proceeded,  in  order,  imploring the  same  things  for  the  Samaritans,  and  those  Gentiles  who  were in  error  and  ignorance  of  God,  that  they  might  come  to  his  knowledge, and  be  led  to  adopt  the  true  religion,  not  omitting,  or neglecting,  to  include  the  mixed  multitude  that  stood  around.
After  all  these,  oh,  the  great  and  inexpressible  forbearance !  he prayed  for  the  judge  that  condemned  him  to  death,  for  the  imperial rulers  themselves,  and  for  him,  too,  that  was  about  to sever  his  head  from  his  body,  in  the  hearing  of  him  and  all  pre
364  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

sent,  supplicating  the  supreme  God,  not  to  impute  to  them  their sin  against  him.

Praying  thus,  with  a  loud  voice,  and  moving  almost  all  to  compassion and  tears,  as  one  unjustly  slain,  yet  composing  himself, and  submitting  his  bare  neck  to  the  stroke  of  the  sword,  he  was cro^^Tied  with  a  diWne  martyrdom  on  the  twent}'-fifth  of  the month  Panemus,  which  would  be  the  eighth  of  the  calends  of August.  And  such  was  the  end  of  these.  But  after  the  lapse of  no  long  time,  one  hundred  and  thirty  other  noble  wrestlers  of the  Christian  faith,  undergoing  the  same  mutilations  of  eyes  and feet  with  the  former  in  Egypt ;  some  by  the  order  of  Maximinus were  condemned  and  sent  away  to  the  inines  in  Palestine,  others to  those  in  Cilicia.

CHAPTER  IX.

The  reneiral  of  the  persecution  with  greater  violence.     Antonimis, Zebina,  Ge/ynanus,  and  others.

After  the  flame  of  persecution  had  relaxed  its  violence  amid such  heroic  achievements  of  the  noble  mart}TS  of  Christ,  and had  been  almost  extinguished  with  the  blood  of  holy  men,  and now  some  relief  and  liberty  had  been  granted  to  those  condemned to  labour  in  the  mines  for  Christ's  sake,  and  we  began  to breathe  an  air  somewhat  purer,  I  know  not  how,  he  that  had received  the  power  to  persecute,  was  again  roused  by  a  new  impulse against  the  Christians.  Immediately,  therefore,  edicts  were issued  against  us  from  ^laximinus,  ever}^  where  in  the  provinces.
Governors  and  the  Praetorian  Praefect,  in  proclamations  and  edicts, and  public  ordinances,  urged  the  magistrates  and  generals,  and notaries  in  every  cit}',  to  execute  the  imperial  mandate,  which ordained,  that  with  all  speed  the  decayed  temples  of  the  idols should  be  rebuilt,  and  that  all  people,  men,  women,  domestics, and  even  infants  at  the  breast,  should  sacrifice  and  make  libations, and  that  they  should  be  diligently  made  to  taste  of  the  ex
ECCLESUSTICAL  HISTORY.  ^^o
ecrable  sacrifices,  that  the  things  for  sale  in  the  markets  should be  defiled  with  the  libations  of  victims,  and  that  before  the  baths, guards  should  be  stationed,  who  should  pollute  those  that  had been  cleansed  in  these,  with  their  execrable  sacrifices.  These things  bemg  thus  perfonned,  and  our  brethren,  as  was  natural, being  from  the  beginning  most  concerned,  and  the  heathen  themselves censuring  the  severity  and  absurdity  of  the  measure,  as superfluous  at  best,  for  these  measures  appeared  overbearing  and oppressive  even  to  them,  and  as  there  ^vas  a  mighty  storm gathering  everv  where  upon  them,  again  the  divine  power  ot  our Saviour  infused  such  courage  and  confidence  into  his  wrestlers, that  without  being  drawn  or  even  impelled  by  any  one,  they voluntarily  trampled  upon  the  threats  of  such  opponents.  Three, therefore,  of  the  believers  joining  together,  rushed  upon  the  governor, offering  sacrifice,  and  called  upon  him  to  desist  from  his error,  for  there  was  no  other  God  but  the  Supreme  Creator  and maker  oi  the  universe.  Then  being  asked  who  they  were,  they boldly  confessed  they  were  Christians.  On  this,  Finnilianus,  in  a racre,  and  without  inflicting  tortures,  condemns  them  to  capital punishment.  Of  these,  one  named  Antoninus  was  a  presbyter, another  named  Zebina  was  a  native  of  Eleutheropolis,  the  third was  named  Germanus.  They  were  executed  on  the  thirteenth of  the  month  Dius,  on  the  ides  of  November.  On  the  same day  Ennathas,  a  woman  of  Scythopolis,  ennobled  also  by  the virgin's  fillet,  was  added  as  an  associate  to  them.  She  had  not, indeed,  done  what  the  foimer  had,  but  was  dragged  by  force, and  brought  before  the  judge,  and  atlter  being  scourged,  and  enduring dreadful  abuses  which  were  heaped  upon  her  by  Maxys, the  tribune  of  the  neighbouring  district,  and  that  without  authority from  a  higher  power,  a  man  who  was  by  no  means  as good  as  his  name,^  a  sanguinaiy  character  in  other  respects,  exceedingly harsh  and  inflexible,  and  in  his  whole  manner  so  really fierce  and  violent  that  he  was  in  bad  repute  with  all  that  knew him.     This  man.  then,  having  stripped  the  blessed  virgin  of  all
•  Perhaps  our  author  alludes  to  some  such  signification  as  the  Hebrew  nDnc reftige,  of  which  Maxys  appears  to  be  a  derivative.

366  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

her  clothes,  so  as  to  leave  only  her  body  covered  from  her  loins to  her  feet,  but  the  rest  bare,  led  her  about  the  whole  city  of Cesarea,  considering  it  a  great  feat  that  he  caused  her  to  be driven  about  the  markets  and  beaten  with  thongs  of  hide.  And after  all  these  cruelties,  which  she  bore  with  the  greatest  firmness, she  exhibited  the  same  most  cheerful  alacrity,  before  the tribunal  of  the  judge  himself,  when  she  w^as  there  condemned  to the  flames.  Whilst  aiming  his  cruelty  and  madness  against  the worshippers  of  the  true  God,  he  also  went  beyond  all  the  dictates of  nature,  not  even  ashamed  to  deny  the  lifeless  bodies  of these  holy  men  a  burial.  Night  and  day  he  ordered  the  dead bodies  to  be  carefully  w^atched,  as  they  lay  exposed  in  the  open air,  the  food  of  beasts,  and  there  was  no  small  number  of  men present  several  days,  of  such  as  attended  to  this  savage  and  barbarous decree,  and  some,  indeed,  were  looking  out  from  their posts  of  observation,  as  if  it  were  something  worthy  of  their  zeal to  see  that  the  dead  bodies  should  not  be  stolen.  But  wild  beasts, and  dogs,  and  carnivorous  birds  of  prey,  scattered  the  human limbs  here  and  there  in  all  directions,  and  the  whole  city  around was  spread  with  the  entrails  and  bones  of  men,  so  that  nothing ever  appeared  more  dreadful  or  horrific,  even  to  those  who  before had  been  most  hostile  to  us ;  they  did  not  indeed  so  much lament  the  calamity  of  those  against  whom  these  things  were done,  as  the  nuisance  against  themselves,  and  the  abuse  heaped upon  our  common  nature.

For  at  the  very  gates  of  the  city  there  was  an  exhibition  presented dreadful  beyond  all  description  and  tragic  recital,  human flesh  devoured  not  in  one  place  only  but  scattered  over  every place ;  for  it  was  said  that  limbs  and  masses  of  flesh,  and  parts of  entrails,  were  to  be  seen  even  within  the  gates.  Which  things continuing  to  occur  for  many  days,  a  strange  event,  like  the  following, took  place.  The  air  happened  to  be  clear  and  bright, and  the  aspect  of  the  whole  heavens  was  most  serene.  Then, suddenly,  from  the  greater  part  of  the  columns  that  supported the  public  porticos,  issued  drops  like  tears,  and  the  market  places and  streets,  though  there  w^as  no  moisture  from  the  air,  I  know not  whence  it  came,  were  sprinkled  with  water,  and  became
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  367

wet :  so  that  it  was  immediately  spread  abroad  among  all,  that in  an  unaccountable  manner  the  earth  wept,  not  being  able  to endure  the  extreme  impiety  of  these  deeds,  and  to  address  a  reproof to  men  of  a  relentless  and  callous  nature,  the  very  stones and  senseless  matter  could  bewail  these  facts.  I  well  know  that this  account  may,  perhaps,  appear  an  idle  tale  and  fable  to  posterity, but  it  was  not  so  to  those  who  had  its  truth  confirmed  by their  presence  at  the  time.*

CHAPTER  X.

Petrus  Ascetes,  Asclepius  the  Marcionite,  and  other  martyrs.

Ox  the  fourteenth  of  the  following  month  Apellaeus,  /.  e.  the nineteenth  of  the  calends  of  January,  there  were  some  from  Egypt again  seized  by  the  spies  appointed  to  observe  those  going  out  at the  gates.  They  had  been  sent  for  the  purpose  of  ministering  to the  necessities  of  the  confessors  in  Cilicia.  These  experienced the  same  lot  with  those  they  came  to  serve,  and  were  thus  mutilated in  their  eyes  and  feet.  Three  of  them,  however,  exhibited a  wonderful  fortitude  at  Ascalon,  where  they  were  imprisoned, and  bore  away  different  prizes  of  martyrdom.  One  of  them, named  Ares,  was  committed  to  the  flames,  the  others,  Promus and  Elias,  were  beheaded.  But  on  the  eleventh  of  the  month Audynasus,  L  e.  on  the  third  of  the  ides  of  January,  in  the  same city  of  Cesarea,  Petrus  Ascetes,-)-  also  called  Apselamus,  from the  village  of  Anea,  on  the  borders  of  Eleutheropolis,  like  the purest  gold,  with  a  noble  resolution,  gave  the  proof  of  his  faith in  the  Christ  of  God.     Disregarding  both  the  judge,  and  those
*  Perhaps  some  might  smile  at  the  supposed  credulity  of  our  author,  but  the miracle  in  this  account  was  not  greater  than  the  malignity,  and  if  man  can  perform miracles  of  vice,  we  can  scarcely  wonder  if  Providence  should  present,  at least,  miracles  of  admonition.

f  Peter,  called  the  Ascetic,  probably  from  the  extraordinary  severity  of  life  and self-denial  that  he  exhibited  so  young.

368  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

around  him,  that  besought  him  in  many  ways,  only  to  have  com passion  on  himself,  and  to  spare  his  youth  and  blooming  years,  he preferred  his  hope  in  the  supreme  God  to  all,  and  even  to  life  itself.
With  him,  also,  was  said  to  be  a  certain  bishop,  named  Asclepius,  a  follower  of  Marcion's  error,  with  a  zeal  for  piety,  as  he supposed,  but  not  according  to  knowledge.  Yet  he  departed  this life  on  the  same  funeral  pile.

CHAPTER  XL

Pamphihs  and  others.

The  time  is  now  come  to  relate,  also,  that  great  and  celebrated spectacle  exhibited  by  those  who,  in  martyrdom,  were  associated with  Pamphilus,  a  name  thrice  dear  to  me.  These  were  twelve, who  were  distinguished  by  a  prophetic  and  apostolic  grace,  as well  as  number.  Of  these,  the  leader,  and  the  only  one  among them,  however,  with  the  dignity  of  presbyter  at  Cesarea,  was Pamphilus ;  a  man  who  excelled  in  every  virtue  through  his whole  life,  whether  by  a  renunciation  and  contempt  of  the  world, by  distributing  his  substance  among  the  needy,  or  by  a  disregard of  worldly  expectations,  and  by  a  philosophic  deportment  and self-denial.  But  he  was  chiefly  distinguished  above  the  rest  of us,  by  his  sincere  devotedness  to  the  sacred  Scriptures,  and  by an  indefatigable  industry  in  what  he  proposed  to  accomplish,  by his  great  kindness  and  alacrity  to  serve  all  his  relatives,  and  all that  approached  him.  The  other  features  of  his  excellence, which  deserve  a  more  full  account,  we  have  already  given  in a  separate  work  on  his  life,  consisting  of  three  books.  Referring, therefore,  those  that  have  a  taste  for  these  things,  and  who  wish to  know  them,  to  this  w^ork,  let  us  now  prosecute  the  history of  the  martyrs  in  order.

The  second  after  Pamphilus  that  entered  the  contest  was Valens,  deacon  of  the  church  of  ^Elia,  a  man  dignified  by  his  venerable and  hoary  locks,  and  most  august  by  the  very  aspect  of his  great  age ;  well  versed  in  the  sacred  Scriptures,  in  which
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  369

he  had  no  superior.  For  he  had  so  much  of  them  treasured  up in  his  memory,  that  he  did  not  require  to  read  them,  if  he  undertook at  any  time  to  repeat  any  parts  of  the  Scriptures.

The  third  that  was  most  ilkistrious  among  them,  was  Paul  of the  city  of  Jamna,  a  man  most  fervent  in  zeal,  and  ardent  in spirit,  who  before  his  martyrdom  had  already  passed  through  the conflict  of  a  confession  for  the  faith,  by  enduring  the  tortures  of searing  with  red  hot  iron.  After  these  had  been  two  wdiole  years in  prison,  the  occasion  of  their  death  w^as  a  second  arrival  of brethren  from  Egypt,  who  also  suffered  martyrdom  with  them.
These  had  accompanied  the  confessors  in  Cilicia  to  the  mines there,  and  were  returning  to  their  homes,  and,  like  the  former, at  the  entrance  of  the  city  of  Cesarea,  being  questioned  by  the guards  stationed  at  the  gates,  men  of  barbarous  character,  as they  did  not  conceal  the  truth,  they  w^ere  immediately  seized  as malefactors  caught  in  the  very  act,  and  taken  in  custody.  There were  five  in  number.  When  brought  before  the  tyrant,  they  declared themselves  freely  before  him,  and  were  immediately  committed to  prison.  On  the  next  day,  being  the  sixteenth  of  the month  Peritisis,  and  the  fourteenth  of  the  calends  of  March,  Roman style,  these,  according  to  the  decree,  together  with  the  associates of  Pamphilus,  were  conducted  before  the  judge.  He  first made  trial  of  the  invincible  firmness  of  the  Egyptians  by  every kind  of  torture,  and  by  new  and  various  machinery  invented  for the  purpose.  And  first  he  asked  the  chief  of  them,  after  he  had practised  these  cruelties  upon  him,  who  he  was ;  when,  instead of  his  proper  name,  he  heard  him  repeat  some  name  of  the  prophets, which  was  done  by  them,  if  they  happened  to  have  had names  given  them  by  their  parents  from  some  of  the  names  of the  idols,  in  which  case  you  would  hear  them  calling  themselves Elias,  and  Jeremiah,  and  Isaiah,  Samuel  and  Daniel ;  thus  exhibiting the  true  and  genuine  Israel  of  God,  as  belonging  to  those who  are  the  real  Jews*  (spoken  of  by  the  apostle),  not  only  in their  works,  but  also  in  their  proper  names.

*  The  author  refers  here  to  that  passage  of  the  apostle,  Rom.  ii.  28,  where  he draws  the  distinction  between  the  mere  nominal  and  the  real  Jew.

3A

370  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

^When  Firmilianus  had  heard  some  name  like  this  of  the  martyr, and  yet  did  not  understand  the  force  or  import  of  the  name, he  next  asked  him  what  was  his  country  ?  He  gave  an  answer alHed  to  the  former,  saying  that  Jerusalem  was  his  country,  referring to  that  city  of  which  Paul  speaks,  "  but  the  Jerusalem above  is  free,  which  is  the  mother  of  us  all ;"  also  again  :  "  And ye  have  come  to  mount  Sion,  and  to  the  city  of  the  living  God, the  heavenly  Jerusalem,"  and  it  was  this  that  the  martyr  meant to  signify.  But  the  judge,  fixed  in  thought  and  cast  down  in  his mind,  anxiously  inquired  what  country,  and  in  what  part  of  the world  it  was  ?  Then  he  also  applied  tortures  to  make  him  confess the  truth.  But  he,  with  his  hands  twisted  behind  his  back, and  his  feet  thrust  into  certain  new  machines,  persevered  in  asserting that  he  had  said  the  truth.  Then,  again,  being  frequently asked  what  and  where  that  city  w^as  that  he  had  mentioned,  he said  that  it  was  the  city  of  the  pious  only,  for  none  but  these were  admitted  to  it ;  but  that  it  lay  to  the  very  east,  and  the  very rising  sun.  And  here  again,  the  martyr  in  this  w^ay  philosophized according  to  his  own  sense,  paying  no  regard  to  the  tortures with  which  he  was  surrounded  ;  but  as  if  he  were  without  flesh and  blood,  he  did  not  even  appear  to  be  sensible  of  his  pains.  But the  judge  at  a  loss,  was  greatly  perplexed  in  mind,  thinking  that the  Christians  were  collectively  about  establishing  a  city  somewhere in  opposition  and  hostile  to  the  Rom.ans,  and  frequently  inquired w^here  this  city  was,  and  examined  w^here  the  country  lay towards  the  east.  But  after  he  had  sufficiently  tortured  the  young man  with  scourging,  and  lacerated  him  with  many  and  various  tortures, perceiving  his  mind  unchangeably  fixed  in  his  former  purpose and  declarations,  he  passed  the  sentence  of  death  against him.  Such  then,  was  the  scene  exhibited  in  the  martyrdom  of this  one.  The  rest  he  exercised  with  trials  of  a  similar  kind,  and finally  destroyed  in  a  similar  manner.  Wearied  at  last,  and perceiving  that  it  was  all  in  vain  to  punish  the  men,  and  having fully  satiated  his  curiosity,  he  proceeded  against  Pamphilus and  his  associates  But  as  he  had  learned  that  they  had  already displayed  aii  unchangeable  alacrity  in  the  confession  of religion  under  torture,  and  also  asked  them  whether  they  were
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  371

yet  disposed  to  obey,  and  yet  received  only  the  same  answer,  the last  confession  of  every  one  in  martyrdom,  he  inflicted  upon  them the  same  punishment  with  the  former.     These  things  done,  a young  man,  who  had  belonged  to  the  family  of  Pamphilus,  as  one who  had  dwelt  with  and  enjoyed  the  excellent  education  and instruction  of  such  a  man,  as  soon  as  he  learned  the  sentence passed  upon  his  master,  cried  out   from  the  midst  of  the  people, requesting  that  the  body  at  least  should  be  interred.     But  the judge,  more  brute  than  man,  and  if  any  thing  worse  than  brute, making  no  allowance  for  the  young  man's  age,  only  inquired  this one  thing,  and  heard  him  confess  himself  a  Christian.     On  this, as  if  he  were  wounded  by  a  dart,  swelling  with  rage,  he  orders the  tormentors  to  exercise  all  their  force  against  him.     When  he saw  him  refusing  to  sacrifice  according  to  his  orders,  he  commanded that  they  should  scrape  and  mutilate  him,  not  as  the flesh  of  a  human  being,  but  as  stones  and  wood,  or  any  othei lifeless  object,  to  the  very  bones,  and  the  inmost  parts  and  recesses of  the  bowels.     This  being  continued  for  a  long  time,  he  at length  perceived  that  he  was  labouring  in  vain,  as  he  continued without  uttering  a  sound   or  evincing  any  feeling,  and  almost totally  lifeless,  although  his  body  was  so  dreadfully  mangled  with tortures.     But  as  the  judge  w^as  of  an  inflexible  cruelty  and  inhumanity, he  condemned  him  in  this  condition  to  be  committed to  a  slow  fire ;  and  thus  this  youth,  although  he  had  entered  upon the  combat  last,  yet  he  received  his  dismission  from  this  life  before the  decease  of  his  master  in  the  flesh,  and  whilst  those  that rivalled  the  first  were  yet  lingering  on  the  way.     One  could  then see  Porphyry,  for  this  was  his  name,  with  the  courage  of  one  who had  already  triumphed  in  every  species  of  combat,  his   body covered  wath  dust,  but  yet  his  countenance  bright  and  cheerful, and  after  this,  with  a  courageous  and  exulting  mind  advancing on  his  w-^y  to  death.     Truly  filled   with  the  divine  Spirit,  and covered  only  with  his  philosophical  garb  thrown  around  him  like a  cloak,  and  with  a  calm  and  composed  mind  giving  exhortations and  beckoning  to   his   acquaintance  and  friends,  he  preserved a  cheerful  countenance  at  the  very  stake.     When  the  fire  was kindled  which  was  at  some  distance  around  him,  he  attracted 34

372  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

and  inhaled  the  flame  in  his  mouth,  and  then  most  nobly  persev^ering  in  silence,  until  his  last  breath,  he  uttered  not  another word  after  that  which  he  uttered  as  soon  as  the  flame  reached him,  calling  upon  Christ  the  Son  of  God,  his  helper.  Such  a wrestler  then  was  Porphyry.  But  Seleucus,  one  of  the  confessors of  the  army,  brought  the  intelligence  of  his  martyrdom  to  Pamphilus  ;  and  he,  as  the  bearer  of  such  intelligence,  was  immediately honoured  with  the  same  lot.  For  as  soon  as  he  had  announced the  end  of  Porphyry,  and  had  saluted  one  of  the  martyrs with  a  kiss,  some  of  the  soldiers  seized  him  and  led  him  to  the governor,  who,  as  if  to  urge  him  to  attach  himself  to  the  former, as  his  companion  on  the  way  to  heaven,  commands  him  immediately to  be  put  to  death.  He  was  from  Cappadocia,  but  among the  chosen  band  of  Roman  soldiers,  and  one  who  had  obtained  ncsmall  share  of  honours.

In  the  vigour  of  age,  strength,  size,  and  firmness  of  body,  he was  greatly  superior  to  his  fellow-soldiers,  so  that  he  was  noted among  all  for  his  very  appearance,  and  admired  for  the  grandeur and  the  comeliness  of  his  whole  form.  At  the  very  beginning of  the  persecution,  indeed,  he  was  prominent  in  the  trials  of  the confessors,  by  his  patient  endurance  of  the  scourge,  and  after  his renunciation  of  military  life,  he  exhibited  himself  a  zealous  follower of  those  who  led  a  life  devoted  to  the  exercises  of  piety, in  which,  like  a  provident  father,  he  proved  himself  a  kind  of overseer  (sTdaxoTtog,)  and  protector  of  destitute  orphans  and Jielpless  widows,  and  of  all  those  that  were  prostrated  in  poverty and  sickness.  Hence,  also,  he  was  honoured  by  that  God  who is  better  pleased  with  such  charities  than  the  fume  and  blood  of sacrifices,  to  receive  an  extraordinary  call  to  martyrdom.  He was  the  tenth  after  those  wrestlers  mentioned  that  were  perfected in  one  and  the  same  day,  on  which,  as  is  probable,  the  mighty portals  of  eternal  life  were  opened  to  Pamphilus,  in  a  manner worthy  of  the  man,  and  presented  to  him  and  to  others  a  ready entrance  into  the  kingdom  of  heaven.  Immediately  after  Seleu cus,  came  the  aged  Theodulus,  a  grave  and  pious  man,  who  was of  the  governor's  family,  and  who  on  account  of  his  age  had been  treated  wdth  more  regard  by  Firmilianus  than  any  of  his
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  373

domestics,  as  also,  because  he  was  now  a  father  of  the  third generation,  and  had  always  evinced  great  fidelity  and  attachment to  himself  and  family.  He,  however,  pursuiiig  the  same course  as  Seleucus,  when  arraigned  before  his  master,  incensed him  yet  more  than  the  former,  and  was  condemned  to  endure  the same  martyrdom  as  our  Saviour  on  the  cross.  One  now  remaining of  those  who  constituted  the  number  twelve,  already mentioned;  after  all  the  rest  came  Julianus,  to  complete  it.  He had  just  come  from  abroad,  and  not  yet  even  entered  the  city, when  learning  the  death  of  the  martyrs  on  the  road,  just  as  he was,  he  immediately  hastened  to  the  sight.  There,  when  he  saw the  earthly  tabernacles  of  the  holy  men  lying  on  the  ground, filled  with  joy,  he  embraced  every  one,  and  kissed  them  all.
Upon  this  he  was  immediately  seized  by  the  ministers  of  death, and  conducted  to  Firmilianus,  who  consistently  with  his  character, also  consiojned  him  to  a  slow^  and  lincrerino;  fire.  Then  Julianus,  also,  leaping  and  exulting  with  joy,  gave  thanks  to  God with  a  loud  voice,  who  had  honoured  him  with  a  martyrdom such  as  these  endured,  and  was  crowned  with  the  martyr's  death.
He  also  was  a  native  of  Cappadocia,  but  in  his  manner  he  was most  religious,  and  eminent  for  the  sincerity  and  soundness  of  his faith.  He  was  also  a  devoted  man  in  other  respects,  and  animated by  the  Holy  Spirit  himself.  Such  was  the  band  and  the company  that  met  with  Pamphilus,  and  were  honoured  to  encounter martyrdom  with  him.  The  sacred  and  holy  bodies  of these  men,  by  the  order  of  the  cruel  and  impious  governor,  were kept  and  guarded  for  four  days  and  nights  to  feed  the  wild beasts.  But,  as  contrary  to  expectation,  nothing  would  approach them,  neither  beast  nor  bird  of  prey,  nor  dog,  by  a  divine providence  they  were  again  taken  up  uninjured,  and  obtaining a  decent  burial,  were  interred  according  to  the  accustomed mode.  But  when  the  cruelty  exercised  against  these  w^as  noised abroad  among  all,  Adrianus,  and  Eubulus,  from  the  region  called Manganasa,  came  to  the  other  confessors  as  far  as  Cesarea,  and were  also  asked  the  cause  of  their  comin^ij  at  the  ffate  of  the city.  They  confessed  the  truth,  and  were  brought  before  Firmilianus.    He,  as  usual,  without  delay,  after  many  tortures  which
374  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

he  inflicted,  by  scourging  and  lacerating  their  sides,  then  condemned them  to  be  devoured  by  the  beasts.  After  the  lapse  of two  days,  on  the  fifth  of  the  month  Dystrus,  the  third  of  the  nones of  March,  the  day  that  was  considered  the  birthday  of  the  tutelary divinity  of  Cesarea,*  he  was  cast  before  a  lion,  and  afterwards slain  with  the  sw^ord.  As  to  Eubulus,  after  another  day and  a  half,  on  the  very  nones  of  March,  which  \\'<;uld  be  the seventh  of  Dystrus,  when  the  judge  had  urged  him  much  to  enjoy that  w^hich  was  considered  liberty  among  them,  by  offering  the sacrifice,  he  preferred  a  glorious  death  in  the  cause  of  religion, and  after  being  cast  to  the  beasts  like  the  former,  was  the  last to  close  the  list  of  the  martyrs  that  wrestled  for  the  faith  at  Cesarea.  It  is  also  worth  while  here  to  state,  how  at  length  the providence  of  God  overtook  the  wicked  governors  themselves, together  with  the  tyrants.  For  the  same  Firmilianus  that  raged with  such  violence  against  the  martyrs  of  Christ,  after  receiving with  the  others  the  most  signal  punishment  inflicted  on  him,  at length  ended  his  life  by  the  sword.  And  such,  then,  were  the martyrdoms  endured  at  Cesarea,  during  the  whole  period  of  the persecution.

CHAPTER  XII.

The  prelates  of  the  cl lurch.

But  the  events  that  occurred  in  the  intermediate  time,  besides those  already  related,  I  have  thought  proper  to  pass  by ;  I  mean particularly  the  circumstances  of  the  different  heads  of  the churches,  who  from  being  shepherds  of  the  reasonable  flocks  of Christ  that  did  not  govern  in  a  lawful  and  becoming  manner, were  condemned,  by  divine  justice,  as  unworthy  of  such  a  charge, to  be  the  keepers  of  the  unreasonable  camel,  an  animal  deformed in  the  very  structure  of  its  body,  and  condemned  further  to  be
*  Every  city  was  supposed  by  the  heathen  to  have  its  tutelary  divinity,  who  presided over  its  destinies,  and  hence  called  tuj^ij,  fortune,  hj  our  author.  The  temples dedicated  to  these  were  hence  called  Tychea.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  375

the  keepers  of  the  imperial  horses ;  also,  the  numher  and  severity of  the  burdens  and  oppressions  they  bore  for  the  sake  of  the sacred  vessels  and  property  of  the  churches,  from  the  imperial rulers  and  governors  at  the  time  in  the  midst  of  insult,  injury,  and torment;  moreover,  the  ambitious  aspirings  of  many  to  office, and  the  injudicious  and  unlawful  ordinations,  that  took  place,  the divisions  among  the  confessors  themselves,  the  great  schisms  and difficulties  industriously  fomented  by  the  factious  among  the  new members,  against  the  relics  of  the  church,  devising  one  innovation after  another,  and  unmercifully  thrusting  them  into  the midst  of  all  these  calamities,  heaping  up  affliction  upon  affliction ;
all  this,  I  say,  I  have  resolved  to  pass  by,  judging  it  foreign  to  my purpose,  wishing,  as  I  said  in  the  beginning,  to  shun  and  avoid giving  an  account  of  them.  But  whatsoever  things  are  serious and  commendable  according  to  the  Scriptures — "  if  there  be any  virtue,  if  there  be  any  praise,"  deeming  it  most  proper  to  tell and  to  describe  these,  and  present  them  to  the  attention  of  the faithful,  in  a  history  of  the  admirable  martyrs,  as  also,  most  consistent with  that  peace  which  has  recently  shone  upon  us  from heaven,  I  shall  consider  myself  as  most  likely  to  decorate  the close  of  my  work,  if  I  present  to  the  attention  of  the  faithful  an account  of  these.

CHAPTER   XIIL

Silvarius  and  John,  and  thirty  more  other  martyrs.

The  seventh  year  of  the  conffict  against  us  was  verging  to  its close,  and  the  measures  against  us  had  gently  and  imperceptibly received  a  less  afflictive  aspect,  and  had  now  continued  until the  eighth  year,  when  there  was  no  small  number  of  confessors collected  in  the  copper  mines  of  Palestine,  and  these  were  enjoying considerable  freedom,  so  far  as  even  to  build  houses  for  assembling together,  then  the  governor  of  the  province,  a  savage and  wicked  man,  such  indeed,  as  his  acts  against  the  martyrs
proved  him  to  be,  came  thither,  and  ascertaining  the  state  of
34=^

37G  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

things,  and  the  manner  of  those  that  Uved  there,  communicated the  whole  to  the  emperor,  and  wrote  against  them  whatever slanders  he  thought  proper.  After  this,  being  appointed  as  superintendent of  the  mines,  he  divided,  as  if  by  imperial  orders, the  multitude  of  confessors  into  different  bodies,  and  sent  some  to inhabit  Cyprus,  some  to  Libanus.  Others  he  scattered  into  several parts  of  Palestine,  and  commanded  them  all  to  labour  in  different works.  Then  selecting  those  that  appeared  to  be  pre-eminent among  them,  he  sent  them  away  to  the  commander  of  the forces  there.  Of  these,  two  were  Egyptians,  bishops  Peleus  and Nilus,  another  was  a  presbyter,  and  a  fourth  added  to  these named  Patermuthius,  well  known  to  all  for  his  great  benevolence toward  all.  These  the  commander,  after  demanding  a  renunciation of  their  religion,  and  not  succeeding,  committed  to  be  consumed by  the  flames.  Others  again,  had  their  lot  cast  there,  in  a  separate place  by  themselves,  as  many  of  the  confessors,  as  whether  from age,  or  blindness,  or  other  infirmities  of  body,  were  exempt  from performing  labour.  Of  these,  the  chief  was  Silvanus,  a  bishop from  Gaza,  who  presented  a  venerable  example  of  genuine Christianity.  This  man,  one  might  say,  was  eminent  for  his  confessions from  the  very  first  day  of  the  persecution,  through  the whole  time,  in  a  variety  of  conflicts,  and  w^as  reserved  until  that time,  that  this  might  be  as  the  last  seal  of  the  whole  conflict  in Palestine.  With  him  wore  associated  many  from  Egypt,  among whom  also  was  John,  who  in  the  excellence  of  his  memory  surpassed all  of  our  time.  He,  indeed,  had  already  before  been  deprived of  his  eyes,  and  had  his  foot  destroyed  with  burning  irons, like  the  others,  on  account  of  his  confessions,  yet  although  his sight  was  already  destroyed,  he  had  the  red  hot  iron  nevertheless applied  to  him ;  the  butchers  aiming  at  every  display  of  cruelty, and  inhumanity,  and  whatever  was  savage  and  brutal.  And  as this  man  was  such,  one  has  no  cause  to  wonder  at  his  philosophical fife  and  habits,  as  he  appeared  not  so  wonderful  on  this  account, as  from  the  excellence  of  his  memory.  He  had  whole books  of  the  sacred  Scriptures  written,  as  the  apostle  says,  not  on tables  of  stone,  neither  on  skins  of  animals,  nor  papers  destroyed by  moths  and  time,  but  on  the  tables  of  flesh,  in  the  heart,  in  an
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  377

enlightened  soul,  and  the  pure  eye  of  the  mind.  So  that  whenever he  wished  to  produce  any  passage,  whether  from  the  law, or  the  prophets,  or  the  apostles,  the  historical  parts  or  the  gospels, he  could  repeat  and  produce  it  as  from  a  treasury  of  learning, whenever  he  pleased.  I  confess  that  I  myself  was  astonished when  I  first  saw  the  man  standing  in  the  midst  of  a  large  multitude, and  repeating  certain  parts  of  the  holy  Scriptures.  For  as  far as  I  had  opportunity  only  to  hear  his  voice,  I  thought  that  he  was reading  as  is  usual  in  the  congregations,  but  when  I  came  near and  saw  the  fact,  all  the  others  standing  around,  with  their  sound eyes,  and  him  alone  raising  his  mind  and  pronouncing  without any  artificial  means,  as  a  kind  of  prophet,  and  far  surpassing those  who  were  robust  in  body,  I  could  not  but  glorify  and  praise God.  And  indeed,  I  seemed  to  behold  an  evident  and  solid  proof in  facts,  that  not  he  who  appears  in  the  external  form  is  the  real man,  but  in  truth  that  which  is  in  the  soul  and  mind.  For  he, though  mutilated  in  body,  exhibited  the  greater  excellence  of power  and  virtue.  But  as  to  those  already  mentioned,  who were  living  in  a  separate  place,  and  were  engaged  in  performing their  accustomed  duties,  in  prayer  and  fasting,  and  other  exercises, God  himself  condescended  to  grant  them  a  salutary  issue, by  extending  his  right  arm  to  help  them.

The  enemy,  no  longer  able  to  bear  them,  armed  with  constant prayer  to  God,  prepared  to  destroy  and  remove  them  from  the earth,  as  troublesome  to  him.  God  granted  him,  also,  power  to do  this,  that  at  the  same  time  he  might  not  be  restrained  in  his determined  wickedness,  and  they  might  now  receive  the  prizes of  their  varied  conflicts.  Thus,  then,  the  thirty-nine,  at  the  command of  the  most  execrable  Maximinus,  were  beheaded  in  one day.  And  these  were  the  martyrdoms  exhibited  in  Palestine in  the  space  of  eight  years,  and  such  was  the  persecution  in  our day.  It  began,  indeed,  with  the  demolition  of  the  churches,  and grew  to  a  great  height  during  the  insurrections  from  time  to time  under  the  rulers.  In  these,  many  and  various  were  the contests  of  the  noble  wrestlers  in  the  cause  of  piety,  who  presented an  innumerable  multitude  of  martyrs  through  the  whole province,  among  those  from  Libya,  and  through  all  Egypt,  Syria,
3B

378  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

and  those  of  the  east,  round  as  far  as  those  of  the  region  of  Illyricum.  For  the  countries  beyond  these,  all  Italy  and  Sicily, Gaul,  and  whatever  parts  extend  toward  the  west,  Spain,  Mauritania, and  Africa,  as  they  did  not  experience  the  hostility  of  the persecution  quite  two  years,  very  soon  were  blessed  with  the interposition  and  peace  of  God,  as  if  his  providence  spared  the simphcity  and  faith  of  these  men.  For  that,  indeed,  which  was never  before  recorded  in  the  annals  of  the  Romans,  this  first  obtained in  our  day  contrary  to  all  expectation.  The  empire  was divided  into  two  parts  during  this  persecution.  Those  in  the  one part  enjoyed  peace,  whilst  those  brethren  that  inhabited  the  other, endured  innumerable  trials  one  after  another.  But  as  soon  as the  divine  favour  prepared  to  display  to  us  his  kind  and  gracious care,  then  at  length,  also,  our  rulers  themselves,  through  whom these  wars  were  formerly  waged  against  us,  changing  their  mind in  a  most  extraordinary  manner,  sounded  a  retreat,  and  extinguished the  flame  of  persecution  by  kind  ordinances  and  milder edicts.     But  we  must  not  omit  the  recantation.*

*  Eusebius  here  intimates  that  he  appended  the  imperial  revocation  to  this  book, and  prepares  us  for  it  in  these  closing  words.  But  as  it  does  not  appear  in  this place,  the  book,  of  course,  does  not  end  here.  The  defect  is  easily  supplied  from the  last  chapter  of  the  eighth  book.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  379

BOOK    IX.

CHAPTER   L

The  pretended  relaxation.

The  revocation  of  the  imperial  edict  that  had  been  issued,  was pubhshed  every  where,  and  in  all  places  throughout  Asia  and its  provinces.  This  being  done,  accordingly,  in  this  way,  Maximinus,  the  tyrant  of  the  east,  the  most  impious  of  men,  and  most hostile  to  the  religion  which  acknowledges  only  the  supreme  God, by  no  means  satisfied  with  these  mandates,  instead  of  issuing  an edict,  gives  verbal  commands  to  the  rulers  under  him,  to  relax the  war  against  us.  For  as  he  had  no  power  to  oppose  or  to pursue  a  different  course,  and  place  himself  in  opposition  to  the judgment  of  his  superiors,  he  suppressed  the  edict ;  and  designing that  it  should  not  be  made  public  in  the  parts  under  him,  he  gives orders,  without  writing  to  his  governors,  to  relax  the  persecution against  us.  These  communicate  the  mandate  to  one  another  by letters.  Sabinus,  who  held  the  highest  rank  and  power  among the  provincial  rulers,  communicated  the  imperial  will  to  the  respective governors  of  the  provinces,  in  a  Latin  letter,  the  translation of  which  is  as  follows :

"  With  a  most  persevering  and  devoted  earnestness,  their  majesties, our  sovereigns  and  most  august  emperors,  had  formerly directed  the  minds  of  all  men  to  live  and  conduct  themselves  according to  the  true  and  holy  way,  that  even  those  who  appeared to  pursue  practices  foreign  to  the  Roman,  should  exhibit  the  proper worship  to  the  immortal  gods.  But  the  obstinacy  and  most unconquerable  determination  of  some,  rose  to  such  a  pitch,  that they  could  neither  be  induced  to  recede  from  their  own  purpose by  a  due  regard  to  the  imperial  command,  nor  be  deterred  by  the
380  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

impending  punishment  inflicted.  Since,  then,  it  has  happened that  many  incurred  danger  from  a  practice  like  this,  their  majesties our  sovereigns,  the  most  powerful  emperors,  in  their  peculiar and  exalted  piety,  deeming  it  foreign  to  the  purpose  of  their  majesties, that  men  should  be  thrust  into  so  great  danger  for  such  a cause,  have  commanded  {me  in)  my  devotedness*  to  address (you  in)  your  wisdom,  that  if  any  of  the  Christians  be  found  to observe  the  worship  of  their  people,  that  you  should  abstain  from molesting  or  endangering  them,  nor  determine  that  any  one  should be  punished  on  such  a  pretext;  as  it  has  been  made  to  appear by  the  lapse  of  so  long  a  time,  that  it  has  been  impossible  to  induce them  in  any  manner  to  abandon  their  obstinate  course.  It is  incumbent,  therefore,  on  your  attentive  care,  to  write  to  the governors  and  magistrates,  and  to  the  praefects  of  the  districts  of every  city,  that  they  may  know  that  it  is  not  necessary  for  them to  pay  any  further  regard  to  this  edict  (or  business.)"

After  this,  the  rulers  of  the  provinces  thinking  that  the  resolution contained  in  these  writings,  was  truly  set  forth  to  them, communicate  by  letter  the  imperial  will  to  the  controllers, magistrates,  and  prasfects  of  the  different  districts.  Nor  did they  urge  these  things  only  by  writing,  but  much  more  by  their
*  The  more  literal  translation  of  this  passage  may  give  the  reader  some  idea  of the  kind  of  phraseology  employed  here.  It  would  run  thus — "  have  given  orders through  my  devotedness  to  write  to  your  discretion  :"  xyx'^oia  signifies  acuteness of  discrimination.  As  Eusebius  gives  us  here  a  Greek  translation  from  the  Latin, it  would  not  be  surprising  to  find  Latinisms  transferred  here  as  well  as  in  the  edict before  translated  by  him.  We  have  suspected  the  original  of  y-aSoo-.orj;;  here,  to have  been  in  the  Latin  sanctitas,  a  very  comprehensive  word,  expressing  integrity, inviolable  fidelity,  attachment.  But  the  classical  use  of  xaSocnorv;,-,  would  rather  be sanctificatio,  very  different,  therefore,  from  sanctitas.

We  have  in  this  mode  of  address,  also,  a  specimen  of  that  kind  of  style  in  which the  great  were  addressed  by  others,  and  by  one  another.  Some  traces  of  it  still exist  in  Europe,  as  in  your  Lordship,  ymir  Grace,  your  Excellency,  «fec. ;  but  it has  prevailed  no  where  to  a  greater  extent  than  among  the  dignitaries  of  the  German empire.  Formerly  almost  every  book  that  had  a  dedicatory  epistle,  abounded in  this  artificial  mode  of  address ;  so  that  unless  one  were  apprized  of  the  fact,  it would  be  difficult  to  tell  who  it  was  that  was  addressed.  This  usage  among  the Germans  is  no  doubt  to  be  traced  back  to  a  more  intimate  connexion  with  the Roman  empire.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  ^381

acts,  to  execute  the  imperial  mandate ;  conducting  those  forth who  had  been  imprisoned  by  them  on  account  of  their  faith, they  set  them  at  liberty,  and  dismissing  those  who  had  been consigned  as  a  punishment  to  the  mines.  For  this  in  mistake they  supposed  to  be  the  true  intention  of  the  emperor.  When these  things  had  thus  been  executed,  all  on  a  sudden,  like  a  flash of  light  blazing  from  dense  darkness,  in  every  city,  one  could see  congregations  collected,  assemblies  thronged,  and  the  accustomed meeting  held  in  the  same  places.  Every  one  of  the heathen  was  not  a  little  astonished  at  these  appearances,  both amazed  at  the  singular  change  of  affairs,  and  exclaiming  that the  God  of  the  Christians  was  the  only  great  and  true  God.
Those  of  our  brethren  who  had  faithfully  and  manfully  passed through  the  conflict  of  persecution,  also  again  obtained  great  privileges with  all.  But  those  who  had  deserted  their  faith,  and had  been  shaken  in  their  souls  by  the  tempest,  eagerly  hastened to  their  remedy,  supplicating  and  entreating  the  strong  to give  them  the  right  hand  of  safety,  and  imploring  God  to  be merciful  unto  them.  Then,  also,  these  noble  wrestlers  of  religion, liberated  from  the  hardships  of  labouring  in  the  mines, were  dismissed  every  one  to  his  own  country.  Joyous  and  cheerful they  proceeded  through  every  city,  filled  with  an  inexpressible pleasure  and  a  confidence  which  language  is  inadequate  to explain.  Numerous  bodies  thus  pursued  their  journey  through the  public  highways  and  markets,  celebrating  the  praises  of  God in  songs  and  psalms.  And  they  who  a  little  before  had  been driven  in  bonds  under  a  most  merciless  punishment,  from  their respective  countries,  you  could  now  see  regaining  their  homes and  firehearths,  with  bright  and  exhilarated  countenances;  so that  even  they  who  before  had  exclaimed  against  us,  seeing  the wonder,  beyond  all  expectation  congratulated  us  on  these  events.

382  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

CHAPTER   11.

The  subsequent  reverse.

But  the  tyrant,  unable  to  bear  this  state  of  things,  an  enemy of  goodness,  and  as  far  as  possible  of  good  men,  who  we  have already  said  was  the  sovereign  of  the  parts  in  the  east,  did  not suffer  this  course  to  hold  out  quite  six  months.  And  thus,  whilst he  was  devising  schemes  in  every  possible  way  to  destroy  the peace,  he  first  attempted  to  restrain  us  by  a  kind  of  pretext  from assembling  in  the  cemeteries.*  Then  he  sent  delegates  to  himself f  against  us,  through  the  agency  of  some  abandoned  characters, stimulating  the  inhabitants  of  Antioch  to  request  of  him,  as a  very  great  favour,  by  no  means  to  permit  any  of  the  Christians to  dwell  at  Antioch,  and  suborned  others  to  do  the  same thing.  Of  all  which  things,  Theotecnus  was  the  cause  and  prime mover  at  Antioch,  a  man  of  a  violent,  artful,  and  wicked  character, altogether  the  reverse  of  the  name  he  bore.  But  he  appears to  have  been  the  controller  of  that  city.

CHAPTER   III.

The  new  statue  erected  at  Antioch.

After  he  had  thus  w^aged  war  against  us  by  every  means, and  had  caused  our  bretliren  with  all  diligence  and  care  to  be hunted  up  in  their  retreats,  as  thieves  and  malefactors,  and  had plotted  against  us  by  slander  and  accusation,  and  been  the  cause of  death  to  vast  numbers,  he  finally  erected  a  certain  statue  of Jupiter  Philius,  with  a  variety  of  mummery  and  magic  rites.
And  after  reciting  forms  of  initiation,  and  pronouncing  dire  in
*  See  note,  Book  VII.  ch.  ii.

\  Our  author  here  represents  Maximinus  in  the  odd  predicament  of  sending  an embassy  to  himself,  by  suborning  his  agents  to  have  this  done.     The  original  is *^^  i-onounced  by  Valesius,  eleq-ajis  locutio,  to  which  we  may  add  sale  plena
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  383

auspicious  mysteries  before  it,  and  inventing  execrable  modes  of expiation,  he  even  went  so  far  as  to  exhibit  his  impostures  to  the emperor,  by  the  oracles  which  he  pretended  to  utter.  Thus,  by a  flatter}"  grateful  to  the  emperor,  he  roused  the  daemon  against the  Christians,  and  said  that  God  had  commanded  to  expel  the Christians  as  his  enemies,  beyond  the  limits  of  the  city  and  the adjacent  territory.

CHAPTER  IV.
The  decrees  against  us.

As  this  man  who  took  the  lead  in  this  matter,  had  thus  succeeded, all  the  rest  in  office  that  inhabited  cities  under  the  same government  (of  Maximinus,)  proceeded  to  issue  a  similar  decree.
And  the  governors  of  provinces  perceiving  that  it  would  be  acceptable to  the  emperor  also,  suggested  to  their  subjects  to  do the  same  thing.  To  these  decrees  the  emperor  himself  most readily  assenting,  the  persecution  that  raged  at  first  was  again kindled  against  us.  Hence,  in  every  city  priests  were  appointed for  the  images,  and  highpriests  over  these,  by  Maximinus  himself; these  were  from  among  those  who  had  been  most  distinguished for  their  public  life,  and  had  gained  celebrity  in  the different  stations  they  had  filled.  Who  were  also  fired  with great  zeal  for  those  objects  that  they  worshipped.  In  short,  the absurd  superstition  of  the  emperor  led  on  the  rulers  under  him, as  well  as  his  subjects,  to  do  all  things  against  us  in  order  to  gratify him ;  supposing  this  was  the  greatest  proof  of  gratitude  they could  give  for  the  kindnesses  they  had  received  from  him,  if they  only  exhibited  slaughter,  and  constantly  devised  new  plots and  modes  of  mischief  against  us.
35

384  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY
CHAPTER   V.

The  false  acts.

HaV'Ing  forged,  therefore,  certain  acts  of  Pilate,  respecting  our Saviour,  full  of  every  kind  of  blasphemy  against  Christ,  these,  wdth the  consent  of  the  emperor,  they  sent  through  the  whole  of  the  empire subject  to  him,  commanding  at  the  same  time  by  ordinances in  every  place  and  city,  and  the  adjacent  districts,  to  publish these  to  all  persons,  and  to  give  them  to  the  schoolmasters  to hand  to  their  pupils  to  study  and  commit  to  memory,  as  exercises for  declamation.  Whilst  these  things  were  doing,  another  commander, whom  the  Romans  call  Dux,  in  Damascus,  a  city  of Phoenicia,  caused  certain  infamous  females  to  be  seized  from  the forum,  and  threatening  to  inflict  torture  upon  them,  he  forced them  to  make  a  formal  declaration,  taken  down  on  record,  thai they  had  once  been  Christians,  and  that  they  were  privy  to  the criminal  acts  among  them  ;  that  in  their  very  churches,  they committed  licentious  deeds,  and  innumerable  other  slanders, which  he  wished  them  to  utter  against  our  religion.  Which  declarations he  inserted  in  the  acts,  and  communicated  to  the  emperor, who  immediately  commanded  that  these  documents  should be  published  in  every  city  and  place.

CHAPTER   VL

Those  who  suffered  martyrdom  at  this  time.

This  commander,  however,  ere  long,  laid  violent  hands  upon himself,*  and  thus  suffered  punishment  for  his  wickedness.  But exiles  and  severe  persecutions  in  the  mean  time  were  again  renewed against  us,  and  the  rulers  of  the  provinces  were  every where  again  stirred  up  against  us,  insomuch  that  some  who  were
*  Our  author's  Greek  here  is  both  elegant  and  nervous.  He  became  his  own  exe»

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  385

more  distinguished  for  their  skill  in  the  divine  word,  when  taken, received  the  sentence  of  death  without  mercy.  Three  of  these  in the  city  of  Emesa  in  Phoenicia,  professing  tliemselves  Christians, were  thrown  to  be  devoured  by  the  wild  beasts.  Among  these  was Silvanus,  a  very  venerable  and  superannuated  bishop,  who  had been  engaged  in  the  ministry  forty  years.  At  the  same  time  also, Peter,  who  presided  over  the  churches  of  Alexandria  with  great reputation,  an  admirable  instance  of  a  bishop,  both  for  the  excellence of  his  life  and  his  study  of  the  sacred  Scriptures.  He  was seized  for  no  reason  whatever,  and  beheaded,  beyond  all  expectation so  suddenly,  and  without  any  cause  assigned,  as  if  by  the  orders of  Maximinus.  Wjth  him  also  many  other  bishops  of  Egypt suffered  the  same  punishment.  Lucianus,  a  man  in  all  respects most  excellent,  temperate  in  his  life,  and  conspicuous  for  his  proficiency in  sacred  literature.  He  was  presbyter  of  the  church at  Antioch,  and  when  brought  to  Nicomedia,  where  the  emperor happened  to  be  staying,  he  delivered  a  defence  of  his  doctrine  before the  governor,  when  he  was  committed  to  prison  and  slain.
Such  were  the  preparations  made  against  us  in  so  short  a time,  by  the  malicious  Maximinus,  so  that  it  would  appear  this persecution  now  raising  against  us,  was  more  severe  than  the former.

CHAPTER   VIL

The  measures  decreed  against  us,  and  engraved  on  pillars.

The  measures  and  the  decrees  of  the  cities  against  us,  and copies  of  the  imperial  edicts  appended  to  these,  were  engraved and  erected  on  brazen  tablets,  a  course  never  before  adopted against  us  any  where.  The  boys  also  in  the  schools  had  the names  of  Jesus  and  Pilate,  and  the  acts  forged  in  derision,  in  their mouths  the  whole  day.  And  here  appears  to  nie  the  proper  place to  insert  the  epistle  of  Maximinus,  engraven  f  n  brass,  that  at  the same  time  the  boasting  and  haughty  arrOc<  ;ance  of  the  man's hatred  of  God,  and  also  God's  just  and  eve.'  vigilant  hatred  of
30

386  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

iniquity  against  the  wicked  may  appear,  which  soon  overtook him,  and  by  which  he  was  urged  onwards ;  so  that  he  did  not long  devise  hostilities,  and  form  decrees  against  us.  The  decree was  as  follows :

Copy  of  the  translated  epistle  of  Maximinus,  in  answer  to  the  ordinances {of  the  cities)  against  us,  taken fwn  the  brazen  tablet  at Tyre.

"  Now  at  length  the  feeble  powers*  of  the  human  mind  have prevailed  so  far  as  to  shake  off  and  to  scatter  the  mists  of  every error,  and  dissipate  the  clouds  of  delusion,  which  before  this had  beset  the  senses  of  those  who  were  more  miserable  than profane,  and  enveloped  them  in  a  destructive  darkness  and  ignorance ;  thus  leading  us  to  acknowledge  that  it  is  regulated  and strengthened  by  the  good  providence  of  the  immortal  gods:
which  things  it  is  incredible  to  say  how  grateful,  how  delightful and  pleasing  it  is  to  us,  how  pow^erful  an  evidence  it  has  furnished of  your  pious  resolutions,  since  before  this  it  could  be  unknown to  none,  how  much  regard  and  reverence  you  cherished  towards the  immortal  gods,  to  whom  faith  is  exhibited  not  by  mere empty  words,  but  by  a  constant  and  eminentf  display  of  illustrious deeds.  Wherefore,  deservedly,  may  your  city  be  called  the seat  and  habitation  of  the  immortal  gods,  for  by  many  evidences it  does  appear  most  clearly  that  it  flourishes  by  the  presence  and residence  of  the  celestial  gods.  So  then,  your  city,  regardless  ol all  local  interest  and  advantage,  and  omitting  the  petitions  formerly presented  to  us,  for  its  own  political  affairs,  when  it  perceived the  votaries  of  an  execrable  vanity  again  insinuating themselves,  and  as  a  funeral  pile  long  disregarded  and  smothered, again  rising  in  mighty  flames  and  rekindling  the  extinguished brands,  immediately  without  delay  it  took  refuge  to  our  piety,  as
*  We  have  rendered  the  word  S-parum;  here,  not  according  to  the  Greek,  but  what we  conjecture  was  the  original  Latin.  Audacity,  the  meaning  of  the  Greek,  seems  entirely at  variance  with  the  whole  drift  of  the  sentence,  even  if  it  should  be  understood in  the  milder  sense  of  confidence.  If  our  author  had  before  him  the  word  vis a?ij??«',  it  is  possible  that  le  might  have  understood  it  in  a  lax  sense,  and  rendered accordingly.

t  Probably  the  Latin  here,  was  sinscularis.  End  our  author  rendered  7ru,fxSoix
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  387

to  the  metropolis  of  all  religion,  entreating  some  remedy  and  relief. Which  salutary  mind  it  is  evident  the  immortal  gods  have imparted  to  you  on  account  of  your  faith  and  piety.  Wlierefore,  that  supreme  and  mighty  Jove,  he  who  presides  over  your most  illustrious  city,  who  has  rescued  your  country's  gods,  and wives,  and  children,  and  houses,  and  homes,  from  every  destructive pest,  has  infused  into  you  the  happy  counsel,  showing  and proving  to  you  how  excellent,  and  noble,  and  profitable  it  is  to observe  the  worship  and  the  sacred  rites  of  the  immortal  gods with  the  becoming  reverence.  For  who  can  be  so  bereft  of  understanding, and  all  sense,  as  not  to  perceive,  that  it  has  happened Ijy  the  gracious  benevolence  of  the  gods,  that  neither  the earth  has  refused  the  seed  committed  to  it,  and  disappointed  the hope  of  the  husbandmen,  with  vain  expectation ;  nor  the  presence of  impious  war  has  been  inevitably  fixed  on  earth,  and under  a  corrupt  atmosphere  wasting  bodies  have  been  dragged and  weighed  down  to  death;  nor  indeed,  the  ocean  swelling and  rising  on  high,  with  the  raging  blasts  of  intemperate  storms, nor  unexpected  tempests  have  burst  and  spread  destruction around.  Moreover,  that  neither  thb  parent  and  nurturing  earth has  risen  in  dreadful  tremblings,  from  its  lowest  depths,  nor  the superincumbent  hills  and  mountains  have  sunk  into  its  opening jaws.  All  which  calamities,  and  worse  than  these,  have,  as  we all  know,  frequently  occurred.  And  all  this  in  consequence  of the  destructive  error  of  this  hollow  delusion  of  those  lawless men,  when  it  began  to  take  root  in  their  minds,  and  we  may  say has  covered  nearly  all  the  world  with  infamy."  A  little  after, he  superadds  the  following  :

"  Let  them  look  at  the  flourishing  crops  in  the  wide  extended fields  waving  with  the  loaded  ears,  and  the  meadows  glittering with  plants  and  flowers,  from  the  seasonable  showers,  and  the temperature  of  the  air  restored  to  a  mild  and  placid  state.  Then let  all  rejoice,  that  by  your  piety,  and  sacrifices,  and  veneration of  the  gods,  the  divinity  of  omnipotent  and  mighty  Mars  has been  propitiated,  and  hence  let  them  enjoy  tranquillity  and  solid peace,  be  filled  wdth  pleasure  and  joy ;  and  as  many  as  have abandoned  that  blind  delusion  and  perplexing  error,  whoever 35^

388  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

they  may  be,  and  have  returned  to  the  right  and  sound  mind,  let ihese  rejoice  still  more,  as  those  who  have  been  rescued  from  an unexpected  storm  or  severe  disease,  and  let  them  enjoy  the  delightful fruits  the  rest  of  their  life.  But  should  they  still  adhere to  their  execrable  folly,  let  them  be  driven  out  and  separated  far from  your  city  and  territory,  as  you  have  desired.  That  thus agreeably  to  your  zeal,  so  praiseworthy  in  this  respect,  your city,  separated  from  all  pollution  and  impiety,  may  attend  to  the sacred  rites  of  the  immortal  gods,  according  to  its  natural  disposition, with  due  veneration.  That  ye  may  also  know  how  acceptable this  request  of  yours  respecting  this  matter  has  been, and  how  very  prompt  our  mind  is  to  confer  benefits  of  our  own voluntary  kindness,  without  decrees  and  without  petitions,  we grant  to  your  devotedness  to  desire  any  privilege  you  please  for this  your  pious  purpose  of  mind,  and  now  present  your  petitions to  have  this  done  and  to  receive  it.  For  you  shall  obtain  without delay.  Which,  indeed,  when  granted  to  your  city,  will  be an  evidence  for  ever  of  your  devoted  piety  to  the  immortal  gods, as  also  of  the  fact  that  you  obtained  by  our  kindness,  merited prizes  for  this  your  purpose  of  life ;  an  evidence  which  will  be exhibited  to  your  children  and  posterity."

Such,  then,  were  the  letters  that  were  sent  abroad  against  us in  all  the  provinces,  cutting  us  off  from  every  hope  of  good,  at least  from  men.  So  that,  according  to  the  holy  Scriptures  themselves, if  it  were  possible  "  the  very  elect  would  take  offence."
And  now,  indeed,  when  the  hope  of  most  of  us  was  almost  extinct, all  on  a  sudden,  almost  whilst  the  agents  of  this  decree against  us  were  in  some  places  yet  on  the  way  to  carry  it  into effect,  that  God,  who  is  the  defender  of  his  church,  all  but  stopping the  pomp  and  boasting  of  the  tyrant's  mouth,  exhibited  his heavenly  interposition  in  our  behalf.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  389

CHAPTER  VOL

The  events  that  occurred  after  these  ;  famine,  pestilence,  and  ivar.

Rains  and  showers  which  usually  fell  in  the  winter  season,  now withheld  their  accustomed  contribution  upon  the  earth.  An  unexpected famine  came  on,  and  pestilence  after  this.  Another kind  of  sickness  also  followed,  which  was  a  species  of  ulcer  called by  an  epithet  the  carbuncle,  on  account  of  its  inflammatory  appearance. This  spreading  over  the  whole  body,  greatly  endangered the  lives  of  those  afflicted  with  it.  But  as  it  prevailed mostly  about  the  eyes,  it  deprived  great  numbers  of  men,  women, and  children  of  their  sight.  In  addition  to  these  calamities,  the war  with  the  Armenians  threatented  the  tyrant.  These  men  had been  the  friends  and  allies  of  the  Romans  from  ancient  times, and  as  they  were  Christians,  and  greatly  valued  piety  toward the  Deity,  and  as  the  profane  and  impious  tyrant  had  attempted to  force  them  to  sacrifice  to  idols  and  da3mons,  he  made  them enemies  instead  of  friends,  and  belligerent  foes  instead  of  allies.
And  all  these  troubles  suddenly  concurring  at  one  and  the  same time,  refuted  the  tyrant's  boastina;  and  blustering  audacity  against God.  When,  indeed,  in  his  great  zeal  for  idols,  and  his  hostility to  us,  he  boasted  that  neither  famine  nor  pestilence  nor  war  had happened  in  his  times.  All  these  then  coming  upon  him  at  once, presented  also  the  preludes  to  his  own  death.

He,  therefore,  together  with  his  army,  was  defeated  in  the  war with  the  Armenians.  But  the  rest  of  the  inhabitants  of  cities under  him  were  dreadfully  afflicted  both  by  famine  and  pestilence, so  that  a  single  measure  of  wheat  was  sold  for  two  thousand five  hundred  Attic  drachms.*  Immense  numbers  were dying  in  the  cities,  still  more  in  the  country  and  villages,  so  that now  the  vast  population  in  the  interior  was  almost  entirely  swept away,  nearly  all  being  suddenly  destroyed  by  w^ant  of  food  and pestilential  disease.     Many,  therefore,  were  anxious  to  sell  their
*  About  175  dollars.

390  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

most  valuable  effects  to  those  better  supplied,  for  the  smallest quantity  of  food.  Others  gradually  spending  all  their  possessions were  reduced  to  the  last  extreme  of  want.  And  now  some even  chewing  remnants  of  hay,  and  others  eating  without  distinction certain  noxious  herbs,  miserably  destroyed  the  constitution of  the  body.  Also,  some  of  the  more  honourable  females  throughout the  cities,  constrained  by  want  to  throw  aside  all  shame, went  into  the  public  markets  to  beg,  indicating  the  evidences  ot their  former  liberal  education,  by  the  modesty  of  their  countenances and  the  decency  of  their  apparel.  Some,  indeed,  wasted away  to  mere  skeletons,  stumbled  hither  and  thither  like  dead shadows,  trembling  and  tottering,  from  excessive  weakness  and inability  to  stand ;  they  fell  down  in  the  midst  of  the  streets, where  they  lay  stretched  out,  and  only  earnestly  begged  some one  to  hand  them  a  little  morsel  of  bread,  then  drawling  in  their breath,  with  the  last  gasp  they  cried  out  hunger  !  having  only strength  sufficient  for  this  most  painful  cry.  Some,  however,  of those  that  appeared  better  supplied,  astonished  at  the  great  multitude of  those  begging,  after  giving  vast  quantities  away,  afterwards yielded  to  a  harsh  and  inflexible  disposition,  expecting that  they  would  soon  suffer  the  same  things  with  those  begging of  them.  So  that  now  in  the  midst  of  the  streets  and  lanes,  the dead  and  naked  bodies,  cast  out  and  lying  for  many  days,  presented a  most  painful  spectacle  to  the  beholders.  Some,  indeed, were  already  the  food  of  dogs,  on  which  account,  especially,  the survivors  began  to  slay  the  dogs,  lest  growing  mad  they  should devour  men.  The  pestilence,  however,  in  the  mean  time,  did  not the  less  prey  upon  every  house  and  family,  particularly  those however,  whom  the  famine  from  their  abundance  of  food  could  not destroy ;  the  wealthy,  the  rulers,  generals,  and  vast  numbers  in office,  who,  as  if  they  had  been  designedly  left  by  the  famine  to the  pestilence,  were  overtaken  by  a  sudden,  violent,  and  rapid death.  All  places,  therefore,  were  filled  with  lamentation,  in  all streets,  lanes,  market  places,  and  highways.  Nothing  was  to  be seen  but  tears,  w^ith  the  accustomed  flutes,  and  funeral  dirge.  In this  manner  death  waged  a  desolating  war  with  these  two  weapons, famine  and  pestilence,  destroying  whole  families  in  a  short
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  391

time,  so  that  one  now  could  see  two  or  three  dead  bodies  carried out  at  once.  Such  were  the  rewards  of  the  pompous  boasting of  Maximinus,  and  of  his  edicts  throughout  the  cities  against  us.
Then,  also,  the  evidences  of  the  zeal  and  piety  of  the  Christians became  manifest  and  obvious  to  all,  for  they  were  the  only  ones in  the  midst  of  such  distressing  circumstances,  that  exhibited sympathy  and  humanity  in  their  conduct.  They  continued  the whole  day,  some  in  the  care  and  burial  of  the  dead,  for  numberless w^ere  they  for  whom  there  w^as  none  to  care ;  others  collecting the  multitude  of  those  wasting  by  the  famine  throughout  the city,  distributed  bread  among  all.  So  that  the  fact  was  cried abroad,  and  men  glorified  the  God  of  the  Christians,  constrained as  they  were,  by  the  facts,  to  acknowledge  that  these  were  the only  really  pious  and  the  only  real  worshippers  of  God.  Whilst these  things  were  thus  doing,  God,  the  great  and  celestial  defender of  the  Christians,  who  exhibited  his  indignation  and  anger  against men  by  these  calamities,  on  account  of  the  excesses  committed against  us,  restored  the  benign  and  smiling  brightness  of  his  providence toward  us,  so  that  by  a  most  wonderful  concurrence  of events,  the  light  of  his  peace  again  began  to  shine  upon  us  as from  the  midst  of  the  densest  darkness.  Showing  plainly  to  all, that  God  himself  has  been  the  ruler  of  our  affairs  at  all  times ;
who  sometimes,  indeed,  chastens  and  visits  his  people  by  various trials,  from  time  to  time,  but  after  he  has  sufhciently  chastened, again  exhibits  his  mercy  and  kindness  to  those  that  trust  in  him.

CHAPTER   IX.

The  death  of  the  tyrants,  and  their  expressions  before  their  end.

CoiVSTANTiNE,  whom  wc  havc  already  mentioned  as  an  emperor  born  of  an  emperor,  the  pious  son  of  a  most  pious  and virtuous  father,  and  Licinius  next  to  him,  were  both  in  great esteem  for  their  moderation  and  piety.  These  two  pious  rulers had  been  excited  by  God,  the  universal  sovereign,  against  the
392  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORV^.

two  most  profane  tyrants,  and  engaging  in  battle,  in  an  extraordinary manner,  Maxentius  fell  under  Constantine.  But  the  other, (Maximinus)  did  not  long  survive  him,  being  himself  put  to  a most  ignominious  death,  by  Licinius,  who  had  not  yet  at  that time  evinced  his  insanity.  But  Constantine,  who  was  first  both in  dignity  and  imperial  rank,  first  took  compassion  upon  those who  were  oppressed  at  Rome,  invoking  the  God  of  heaven,  and his  Son  and  word  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  the  Saviour  of  all,  as his  aid  advanced  with  his  whole  army,  purporting  to  restore the  Romans  to  that  liberty  which  they  had  derived  from  their ancestors.  Maxentius,  however,  relying  more  upon  the  arts  of juggling  than  the  affection  of  his  subjects,  did  not  venture  to advance  beyond  the  gates  of  the  city,  but  fortified  every  place and  region  and  city,  with  vast  numbers  of  soldiers  and  innumer•ible  bands  and  garrisons  in  all  places  of  Rome  and  Italy  that were  enslaved  by  him.  But  the  emperor  (Constantine)  stimulated by  the  divine  assistance,  proceeded  against  the  tyrant,  and defeating  him  without  difficulty  in  the  first,  second,  and  third  engagements, he  advanced  through  the  greatest  part  of  Italy,  and came  almost  to  the  very  gates  of  Rome.  Then,  however,  that he  might  not  be  forced  to  wage  war  w^ith  the  Romans  for  the sake  of  the  tyrant,  God  himself  drew  the  tyrant,  as  if  bound  in fetters,  to  a  considerable  distance  from  the  gates ;  and  here  he confirmed  those  miraculous  events  performed  of  old  against  the wicked,  and  which  have  been  discredited  by  so  many,  as  if  belonging to  fiction  and  fable,  but  which  have  been  established  in  the sacred  volume,  as  credible  to  the  believer.  He  confirmed  them, I  say,  as  true,  by  an  immediate  interposition  of  his  power,  addressed alike  I  may  say  to  the  eyes  of  believers  and  unbelievers.
As,  therefore,  anciently  in  the  days  of  Moses,  and  the  religious people  of  the  Hebrews,  the  chariots  of  Pharaoh,  and  his  forces were  cast  into  the  Red  Sea,  and  his  chosen  triple*  combatants were  overwhelmed  in  it;  thus,  also,  Maxentius,  and  his  com
•  Tills  passage  is  found  Exod.  xv.  4.  The  Hebrew  is  vc'Siy  nr^Di,  is  rendered in  our  version,  his  chosen  captains.  It  probably  refers  to  three  combatants  on  one chariot.  On  the  import  of  the  word  in  the  Hebrew,  and  the  Alexandrian  version, see  Biel,  Drusius,  Bochart,  Gescnius.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  393

batants  and  guards  about  him,  sunk  into  the  depths  Hke  a  stone, when  he  fled  before  the  power  of  God  that  was  with  Constantine, and  passed  through  the  river  in  his  way,  over  which  he  had formed  a  bridge  by  joining  boats,  and  thus  prepared  the  means of  his  own  destruction.  Here  one  might  say,  "  he  digged  a  pit and  opened  it,  and  he  fell  into  the  ditch  that  he  made,  his  mischief shall  fall  upon  his  own  head,  and  his  iniquity  descend upon  his  own  pate."  Thus,  then,  the  bridge  of  boats  over  the river  being  broken,  the  crossing  began  to  cease,  and  immediately the  vessels  with  the  men  sunk,  and  were  destroyed,  and  the  most impious  tyrant  himself  first  of  all,  then  the  guards  that  he  had around  him,  just  as  the  divine  oracles  declare,  sunk  like  lead  in the  swelling  floods.  So  that  justly  might  those  who  obtained  the victory  from  God,  if  not  in  word,  at  least  in  deeds,  similar  to  those whom  that  great  servant  of  God,  I\Toses  led  on,  sing  and  say  the same  that  they  sang  against  that  impious  tyrant  of  old.  "  Let  us sing  unto  the  Lord,  for  he  hath  triumphed  gloriously.  The  horse and  his  rider  he  hath  cast  into  the  sea :  the  Lord  is  my  helper and  defender,  and  he  is  become  my  salvation.  Who  is  like  unto thee,  O  Lord,  among  the  gods  ;  who  is  like  unto  thee,  glorious  in holiness,  fearful  in  praises,  doing  wonders."

Such,  and  the  like  expressions,  did  Constantine  sing  to  God,  the universal  sovereign  and  author  of  the  victory  by  his  deeds,  as  he entered  Rome  in  triumph.  All  the  senate  and  others  of  illustrious rank,  together  with  their  wives  and  infant  children,  with  the whole  Roman  people,  received  him  as  their  deliverer,  their  saviour, and  benefactor,  with  cheerful  countenances  and  hearts,  with  blessings and  unbounded  joy.  But  he,  according  to  the  piety  deeply implanted  m  him,  neither  exulting  in  the  shouts  that  were  raised, nor  elated  by  the  plaudits  bestowed  upon  him,  w^ell  perceiving the  assistance  wdiich  he  had  received  from  God,  immediately commanded  a  trophy  of  the  Saviour's  passion  to  be  placed  in  the hand  of  his  own  statue.  And  when  they  had  erected  his  statue, thus  holding  the  salutary  sign  of  the  cross  in  his  right  hand,  in the  most  public  place  at  Rome,  he  commanded  the  following  inscription to  be  written,  in  the  Roman  tongue,  as  follows :

"  By  this  salutary  sign,  the  true  ornament  of  bravery,  I  have
3D

394  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

saved  your  city,  liberated  from  the  yoke  of  the  tyrant.  Mm^eover,  1
have  restored  both  the  Senate  and  the  Roman  people  to  their  ancient dignity  and  splendour.^^*  After  this,  Constantine  himself,  and his  imperial  colleague  Licinius,  who  had  not  then  yet  been  perverted into  that  madness  which  he  afterwards  evinced,  both  celebrating and  praising  God,  as  the  author  of  all  their  successes, with  one  consent  and  resolve  drew  up  a  full  and  most  comprehensive decree  respecting  the  Christians ;  and  sent  an  account of  the  wonderful  things  done  for  them  by  God,  the  victory  they had  obtained  over  the  tyrant,  and  the  law  itself  to  Maximinus, who  was  yet  sovereign  of  the  east,  and  pretended  friendship  toward them.  But  he,  tyrant  as  he  was,  was  greatly  troubled  at what  he  learned.  Then,  in  order  not  to  seem  disposed  to  yield to  others,  nor  to  suppress  what  was  commanded,  for  fear  of  those who  had  commanded,  as  if  he  acted  on  his  own  authority,  he  of necessity  addressed  the  following  decree,  first  to  the  governors under  him,  respecting  the  Christians,  falsely  and  fictitiously  alleging against  himself  what  had  never  been  done  by  him.f
Copy  of  the  translated  epistle  of  the  tyrant  Maximinus,
"  Jovius  Maximinus  Augustus,  to  Sabinus :  I  trust  that  it  is obvious  to  your  gravity  and  to  all  men,  that  our  sovereigns  and parents,  Diocletian  and  Maximinus,  when  they  saw  almost  all men  abandoning  the  worship  of  the  gods,  and  attaching  themselves to  the  people  of  the  Christians,  rightly  ordained  that  all men  that  swerved  from  the  worship  of  the  same  immortal  gods should  be  reclaimed,  by  the  infliction  of  punishment  and  pain,  to the  worship  of  the  gods.  At  the  time,  however,  when  I  first came  to  the  east,  under  favourable  auspices,  and  ascertained  that great  numbers  of  men,  capable  of  rendering  service  to  the  republic, were  banished  by  the  judges  for  said  reason,  I  issued  or
*  In  the  Greek  style  of  this  inscription,  we  may  see  some  traces  of  the  Latin original.

f  Our  author  here  represents  Maximinus  guilty  of  the  double  inconsistency  of attempting  to  give  a  fair  colouring  to  his  proceedings  against  the  Christians,  although his  conduct  and  procedure  had  wanted  even  the  shadow  of  appearance,  and in  his  very  defence,  saying  what  was  in  fact  a  reproach  to  himself
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  395

ders  to  each  of  the  judges,  that  in  future  none  of  these  should behave  with  severity  to  the  provincials,  but  rather  reclaim  them to  the  worship  of  the  gods,  by  exhortation  and  flattery.     Then, therefore,  whilst,  agreeably  to  my  orders,  the  injunctions  were observed  by  the  judges,  it  happened  that  no  one  of  the  countries in  the  east  was  either  banished  or  insulted,  but  rather  that  they w^ere  reclaimed  to   the  vrorship  of  the  gods,  from  the  fact  that nothing  severe  was  done  against  them.      After  this,  however, W'hen  a  year  had  passed  away,  I  arrived  under  fortunate  circumstances at  Nicomedia,  and  made  my  stay  there,  and  citizens  of that  place  came  to  me  with  the  statues  of  the  gods,  greatly  intreating  me,  that  by  all  means  this  people  should  not  be  suffered to  dwell  in  their  country.*  But  when  I  ascertained  that  many  men of  the  same  religion  dwelt  in  these  parts,  I  gave  them  this  answer :   That  indeed,  I  cheerfully  thanked  them  for  this  petition, but  perceived   this   was   not  alike   requested  by   all.     If,  however, there  were  some  that  persevered  in  this  superstition,  that each  one  had  the  option  to  live  as  he  pleased ;  even  if  they  wished to  adopt  the  worship  of  the  gods.     Nevertheless  I  deemed  it  necessary to  give  a  friendly  answer  both  to  tlie  inliabitants  of  Nicomedia and  the  other  cities,  which  had  so  earnestly  and  zealously presented  the  same   petition,   viz.,  that  not  one  of  the Christians  should  be  permitted  to  dwell  in  their  cities,  because this  same  course  was  observed  by  all  the  ancient  emperors,  and "was  acceptable  to  the  immortal  gods,  by  whom  all  men  and  the whole  administration  of  the  republic  subsists,  and  also,  that  I
would  confirm  this  same  petition  which  they  had  presented  for the  worship  of  the  immortal  gods.     Wherefore,  although  there have  been  before  this,  letters  sent  to  your  devotedness,  and  it has  in  like  manner  been  ordered  that  the  rulers  should  attempt nothing  harsh  against  those  provincials  that  are  desirous  of  observing this  course,  but  that  they  should  deal  mildly  and  moderately with  them,  nevertheless  that  they  may  suffer  neither  blows nor  injuries  from  the  beneficiariesf   or  the  other  common  sol
*  This  is  his  account  of  what  Eusebius  had  wittily  called  "  sending  an  embassy to  himself."

+  The  beneficiarii  were  soldiers,  who  were  promoted  by  the  tribunes,  and  had
36

396  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

diers,  I  deemed  it  consistent  to  remind  your  gravity  by  these letters,  that  you  should  cause  our  provincials  to  cultivate  their regard  for  the  gods,  rather  by  exhortations  and  mild  measures.
Whence  if  any  one  should  determine  to  adopt  the  worship  of  the gods,  of  his  own  accord,  it  is  proper  that  these  should  be  readily received.     But  if  any  wish  to  follow  their  own  worship,  you  ma}'
leave  these  to  have  their  liberty.     Wherefore,  it  is  incumbent  on your  devoted  zeal  to  observe  what  is  committed  to  you,  and  that liberty  be  granted  to  no  one,  to  oppress  our  provincial  subjects with  violence  and  insult ;  whereas,  as  I  wrote  before,  it  is  more becoming  to  reclaim  our  provincials,  by  encouraging  and  inviting measures,  to  the  worship  of  the  gods.     But  that  this  our  will  may come  to  the  knowledge  of  all  our  subjects,  it  is  incumbent  on you  to  communicate  the  mandate  by  a  proclamation  issued  by you."     When  he  had  thus  commanded  these  matters,  he  was neither  sincere  nor  credited  by  any,  but  was  evidently  forced by  necessity,  and  did  not  act  according  to  his  real  sentiments,  as was  obvious   from  his  duplicity,  and  perfidy,  after  the  former similar  grant.     No  one  therefore,  of  our  brethren,  ventured  to hold  meetings,  nor  even  to  appear  in  public,  because  neither  was this  the  import  of  the  writing,  only  enjoining  to  beware  of  harassirig  us  ;  but  not  commanding  that  w^e  might  hold  meetings, or  build  houses  of  worship,  or  perform  any  of  those  things  customary with  us.     And  with  all  this,  those  advocates  of  peace  and piety,  Constantino  and  Licinius,  had  written  to  him  to  permit this,  and  had  granted  it  to  all   those  under  them  in  their  edicts and  ordinances.  But  this  most  impious  ruler  did  not  choose  yielding to  this  course;  until,  driven  by  the  justice  of  God,  he  was  at last  compelled,  though  unwillingly,  to  adopt  it.

certain  privileges.  The  word,  as  it  here  occurs,  forms  a  curious  illustration  of  the manner  in  which  Greek  words  were  formed  from  the  Latin,  /£ev5<p.x;ex.o<.  The  liquids I  and  r  were  frequently  interchanged.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  397

CHAPTER  X.

The  victory  of  the  'pious  emperors.

Such  a  cause  and  circumstances,  indeed,  beset  him  on  all  sides.
Unable  as  he  was  to  sustain  the  magnitude  of  the  government  so undeservedly  conferred  upon  him,  in  consequence  of  his  own  incapacity and  deficiency  in  the  qualities  of  a  prudent  and  imperial mind,  he  administered  his  affairs  in  a  foolish  and  disreputable manner,  and  yet  foolishly  elated  in  all,  with  a  fulsome  arrogance and  haughtiness,  even  toward  those  who  participated  in  the  government with  him,  and  who  were  his  superiors  both  in  birth  and education,  dignity  and  intelligence,  and  in  that  wisdom  and  that true  piety  which  is  the  crown  of  all,  he  yet  dared  to  boast  and proclaim  himself  the  first  of  all  in  dignity  and  honours.  Proceeding at  length  to  that  degree  of  madness  in  his  vanity  and haughtiness,  he  broke  the  league  that  he  had  made  w'ith  Licinius, and  undertook  an  execrable  war.  After  this  he  soon  threw  all into  confusion;  alarming  ev^ery  city,  and  collecting  innumerable armies,  he  went  forth  to  give  him  battle,  elated  with  his  trust  in deemons,  whom  he  supposed  to  be  gods,  and  the  vast  multitudes of  his  soldiers.  Thus  engaging  in  battle,  he  was  deprived  of  the interposition  and  aid  of  God  ;  the  victory  being  decreed  in  favour of  the  emperor  Licinius,  by  the  one  only  and  supreme  God.
And  first,  he  lost  the  soldiery  upon  whom  h(j  relied  so  much,  and as  the  guards  about  him  all  abandoned  and  left  him  destitute,  and deserted  to  the  emperor  Licinius,  he  secretly  stripped  himself  as quickly  as  possible  of  the  imperial  robes,  which,  indeed,  he  had never  deserved,  in  a  cowardly,  abject,  and  effeminate  manner, and  mingled  with  the  crowd.  Then  he  made  his  escape,  lying concealed  in  the  fields  and  villages,  and  with  all  this  caution  and vigilance  for  safety^  scarcely  escaped  the  hands  of  the  enemy.
Thus  showing  in  facts  the  reality  and  truth  of  the  divine  oracles, in  which  it  is  said :  "  A  king  is  not  saved  by  the  multitude  of  an host,  nor  shall  a  giant  in  the  greatness  of  his  strength ;  a  horse is  a  vain  thing  for  safety,  and  in  the  greatness  of  his  strength  he
398  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

shall  not  be  saved.  Behold,  the  eyes  of  the  Lord  are  upon  those that  fear  him,  those  that  trust  in  his  mercy,  to  rescue  their  soul from  death."

Thus  the  tyrant,  loaded  with  disgrace,  returned  to  his  own parts,  and  first  in  the  rage  of  his  mind,  he  slew  many  priests and  prophets  of  those  gods  whom  he  admired,  and  by  whose oracles  he  had  been  induced  to  undertake  the  war ;  these  I  say he  slew,  as  jugglers  and  impostors,  and  above  all  as  the  betrayers of  his  own  safety.  Then,  at  length  giving  glory  to  the  God  of the  Christians,  he  immediately  enacted  a  full  and  final  decree  for their  liberty.  However,  being  seized  with  a  violent  disease,  he died  very  soon  after  it  was  issued.  The  law  enacted  was  as follows.

Co'py  of  the  tyranVs  wdinance,  in  regard  to  the  Christians^  translated from  the  Latin  into  the  Greeh.

"  The  Emperor  Caesar,  Caius,  Valerius,  Maximinus,  Germanicus,  Sarmaticus,  Pius,  Felix,  Invictus,  Augustus, — That  it  behoves us  by  all  means,  and  with  constant  endeavours  to  promote the  good  of  our  provincial  subjects,  and  to  wish  to  bestow  upon them  such  things  as  are  best  calculated  to  establish  the  advantage of  all,  and  whatever  may  contribute  to  their  common  benefit and  utility ;  also,  whatever  is  adapted  to  the  public  advantage, and  is  agreeable  to  the  views  and  wishes  of  all ;  of  this  no  one can  be  ignorant ;  and,  moreover,  we  believe  every  one  can  refer to  past  events,  and  know  and  convince  himself  of  it.  When, therefore,  before  this  it  was  obvious  to  our  mind,  that  by  reason of  the  law  which  was  enacted  under  our  most  sacred  parents Diocletian  and  Maximian,  that  the  assemblies  of  the  Christians should  be  abolished,  many  oppressions  and  spoilations  were  made by  those  in  office,  and  that  this  evil  advanced  daily  to  a  great height,  to  the  injury  of  those  of  our  provincials,  for  whom  we are  particularly  anxious  to  make  the  necessary  provision;  as their  property  and  possessions  were  thus  destroyed  on  this  pretext, letters  were  given  to  the  respective  rulers  of  the  provinces the  past  year,  in  which  it  was  enacted,  that  if  any  one  wjshed
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  399

to  follow  this  practice,  or  this  observance  of  the  same  religion, that  he  was  at  liberty  to  pursue  this  his  purpose  without  hindrance, and  without  obstruction  or  molestation  from  any  one ;
and  also,  that  they  had  full  liberty  to  do  that  without  fear  or  suspicion, what  each  one  preferred.  But  even  now  we  could  not but  perceive  that  some  of  our  judges  have  mistaken  our  injunctions, and  caused  our  subjects  to  be  in  doubt  as  to  our  ordinances, and  have  caused  them  to  proceed  with  too  great  reluctance to  the  performance  of  those  religious  observances  which they  prefer.  Now,  therefore,  that  all  suspicion  of  duplicity  and fear  may  be  removed,  we  have  decreed  that  this  ordinance should  be  published,  tJiat  all  may  clearly  understand,  whosoever wish  to  adopt  this  sect  and  worship  are  at  liberty  to  do  so,  by this  privilege  granted  by  us,  so  that  as  each  one  wishes,  or  as  may be  agreeable  to  him,  thus  he  may  observe  that  religion  to  which he  has  been  accustomed.  And,  moreover,  liberty  is  granted  to build  their  churches.  But  that  this  indulgence  of  ours  may  be the  greater,  we  have  also  thought  proper  to  make  further  provision by  law,  that  if  any  houses  and  lands  happened  to  be  justly  the property  of  Christians  before  this,  and  by  order  of  our  parents, have  been  transferred  to  the  treasury,  or  have  been  confiscated by  any  city,  or  at  least  have  been  seized  and  sold  or  bestowed  as present  to  any  one,  all  these  possessions  we  have  ordered  to  be returned  again  to  the  former  possession  and  control  of  the  Christians, that  all  persons  may  also,  in  this  respect,  have  knowledge of  our  piety  and  foresight."

These  are  the  declarations  of  the  tyrant,  that  were  issued  not quite  a  year  after  the  ordinances  against  the  Christians  had been  published  by  him  on  brazen  tablets,  and  by  the  same  man, to  whom  but  a  little  before,  we  appeared  impious  and  abandoned wretches,  destructive  of  all  society,  so  that  we  were  not  allowed to  dwell,  indeed,  in  a  city,  or  even  the  country  and  the  desert ;  by this  same  one,  ordinances  and  laws  were  enacted  in  favour  of  the Christians.  And  they  who  a  little  before  were  destroyed  by  the tyrants  with  fire  and  sword,  the  food  of  wild  beasts  and  birds  of prey  in  the  very  eyes  of  the  tyrant,  and  sustained  every  kind of  punishment  and  torture,  and  the  most  miserable  death  as  in 36^

400  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

ficlels  and  profane  persons,  these  very  same  are  now  acknowledged by  him  as  worshippers  having  religion,  and  are  allowed to  rebuild  their  churches ;  moreover,  the  tyrant  himself  confesses and  testifies  that  certain  rights  belong  to  them.  Having,  therefore, made  these  confessions,  as  if  he  had  actually  obtained  some positive  benefit,  on  this  very  account,  he  suffered  less  than  was properly  his  due,  and  being  smitten  with  a  sudden  visitation  of  God, he  died  in  the  second  campaign  of  the  war.  But  his  end  was  not like  that  of  generals  and  military  commanders,  who  bravely  and heroically  expose  their  lives,  and  encounter  a  glorious  death  for glory  and  their  friends ;  but  as  one  hostile  to  God  and  religion, whilst  his  army  was  drawn  up  for  battle  in  the  field,  he  himself remained  at  home,  concealing  himself,  and  received  the  punishment that  he  deserved,  being  smitten  with  a  sudden  judgment  of God  over  his  whole  body ;  so  that  he  w^as  harassed  by  dreadful pains  and  torments,  and  prostrated  on  the  ground,  was  wasted away  by  hunger,  whilst  his  whole  flesh  dissolved  by  an  invisible fire  and  burning,  sent  from  God.  So  that  this  being  Avasted away,  the  whole  aspect  of  his  former  shape  was  destroyed,  and there  was  only  left  of  him  a  kind  of  image,  reduced  by  length  of time  to  a  skeleton  of  dry  bones.  Indeed,  all  present  could  regard his  body  as  nothing  but  the  tomb  of  his  soul,  buried  in  one  that was  already  dead,  and  completely  dissolved.  And  as  the  heart began  to  burn  still  more  violently  in  the  very  recesses  of  his marrow,  his  eyes  burst  forth,  and  falling  from  their  sockets  they left  him  blind.  After  this  he  still  continued  to  breathe,  acknowledging many  things  to  the  Lord,  and  invoking  death.  At length,  however,  after  confessing  that  he  justly  sufifered  these judgments  for  his  wanton  excesses  against  the  Christians,  he breathed  his  last.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  401

CHAPTEPv  XL

21ie  total  destruction  of  the  enemies  of  religion.

Thus,  then,  jMaximinus  being  removed  out  of  the  way,  who had  proved  the  worst  of  all  the  surviving  enemies  of  religion,  by the  goodness  of  God,  the  omnipotent  ruler,  the  renovation  of  the churches  was  begun  from  the  very  foundations.  But  the  doctrine of  Christ  shining  forth  to  the  glory  of  the  supreme  God, enjoyed  greater  privileges  than  before,  whilst  the  impious  and profane  were  covered  with  shame  and  irrecoverable  disgrace.
First  of  all,  Maximinus  himself,  being  publicly  announced  by  the emperors  as  the  public  enemy,  was  confirmed  to  be  the  most  impious and  detestable,  as  w^ell  as  the  most  hostile  to  the  Deity,  by his  public  edicts.  And,  whatsoever  paintings  and  representations had  been  placed  in  honour  of  him  or  his  children,  in  every  city, some  were  forced  downi  from  their  elevation,  and  torn  to  pieces or  broken,  others  were  destroyed  by  having  the  face  daubed W'ith  black  paint.  Whatsoever  statues,  also,  had  been  erected to  his  honour,  w^ere  likewise  cast  down  and  broken,  lying  exposed to  the  laughter  and  jests  of  those  that  w^re  disposed  to  insult  and wantonly  abuse  them.  Then,  also,  all  the  honours  of  the  other enemies  of  religion  were  removed.  All  that  fav<  'urcd  the  party of  Maximinus  were  slain,  especially  those  that  had  been  distinguished by  him  with  eminent  offices,  as  rulers,  for  their  flattery to  him,  in  their  insolent  excesses  against  our  faith.  Of  this  number was  Peucetius,  the  most  honoured,  and  revered,  and  dearest  of  all his  favourites,  who  had  been  consul  twice  and  thrice,  and  had  been appointed  by  him  prime  minister.  Culcianus,  also,  w^ho  had  been promoted  through  every  grade  of  office,  and  wdio  was  also  prominent for  his  many  slaughters  of  Christians  in  Egypt.  There  were also  not  a  few  others,  by  whose  agency  especially,  the  tyranny of  Maximinus  had  been  augmented  and  confirmed ;  justice,  also, summoned  Theotecnus,  by  no  means  overlooking  the  evils  he  had done  against  the  Christians.  And  whilst  he  now  expected  to enjoy  himself,  after  he  had  erected  the  statue  at  Antioch,  and
3E

402  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

was  now  promoted  to  the  government  of  a  province,  Licinias came  to  the  city  of  Antioch,  and  making  a  search  for  all  the  impostors, he  put  the  prophets  and  priests  of  the  newly  wrought statue  to  the  torture,  asking  at  the  same  time,  how  they  came  to concoct  such  a  delusion.  And  when  unable  by  reason  of  the tortures  to  conceal  it  any  longer,  they  disclosed  that  the  whole secret  was  a  device  of  Theotecnus.  After  punishing  all  according to  their  deserts,  he  first  condemned  Theotecnus,  and  after  him  all the  partners  of  his  impostures,  to  death,  with  the  greatest  possible torments.  To  all  these  were  superadded  the  children  of  Maximinus,  whom  he  had  already  made  sharers  in  the  imperial  dignity with  his  titles  and  statues.  Also,  the  relatives  of  the  tyrants who  before  this  were  elated  and  boasting,  and  exercising  their power  over  all  men,  had  the  same  punishments,  together  with the  utter  disgrace  of  the  others,  inflicted  upon  them.  As  they would  neither  receive  instruction  nor  understand  the  exhortation given  in  the  Holy  Scriptures :  "  Trust  not  in  princes,  in  the  children of  men,  in  whom  there  is  no  safety.  For  his  breath  goeth from  him,  and  he  will  return  to  his  earth  again.  In  that  day  all their  thoughts  shall  perish."  Thus,  then,  the  impious  being cleared  away,  the  government  was  deservedly  reserved  secure, and  without  a  rival,  for  the  only  two,  Constantine  and  Licinius.
These,  after  first  removing  the  hostility  to  God  out  of  the  way, and  sensible  of  the  great  benefits  conferred  on  them  by  his  goodness, exhibited  ^oth  their  love  of  virtue  and  God,  as  well  as  their piety  and  grai.tude  to  Him,  by  the  laws  they  enacted  in  favoui q[  Christians.

BOOK  X.

CHAPTER   I.

The  peace  icliich  icas  granted  us  by  divine  interposition.

But  thanks  be  to  God,  the  omnipotent  and  universal  sovereign, thanks  also  to  the  Saviour  and  Redeemer  of  our  souls,  Jesus Christ,  through  whom  we  pray  that  peace  will  be  preserved  to us  at  all  times,  firm  and  unshaken  by  any  temporal  molestation from  without,  and  troubles  from  the  mind  within.  Attended with  your  prayers,  O  most  holy  Paulinus,*  whilst  we  superadd this  tenth  book  to  the  preceding  ones  of  our  ecclesiastical  history, we  shall  dedicate  this  to  you,  announcing  you  as  the  seal of  the  whole  work.  Justly,  indeed,  shall  we  here  subjoin  in  a perfect  number,-(-  a  complete  discourse  and  panegyric  on  the  renovation of  the  churches  yielding  to  the  spirit  of  God,  inviting  us in  the  following  manner :  "  Sing  to  the  Lord  a  new  song,  because he  hath  done  wonderful  works.  His  right  hand  hath  saved  him, and  his  holy  right  arm.  The  Lord  hath  made  known  his  salvation, his  righteousness  hath  he  openly  showed  in  the  sight  of  the heathen."  Thus,  then,  as  the  Scriptures  enjoin  upon  us  to  sing  a new  song,  we  shall  accordingly  show  that  after  those  dreadful and  gloomy  spectacles  and  events,  we  have  been  privileged  to
*  Paulinus  was  bishop  of  Tyre,  and  EuseMus  here  dedicates  the  work  to  him, as  the  one  who  suggested  and  urged  him  to  undertake  it.

+  The  number  ten  is  called  perfect,  because  it  is  the  limit  and  close  of  our  system of  numeration ;  all  the  numbers  beyond  ten  being  only  combinations  of  this and  the  included  digits.  Shorting  has  overlooked  the  stress  which  our  author  intended to  lay  on  the  expression.  He  has  considered  it  as  a  mere  qualification  of paneg}'ric.  It  may  be  observed,  this  book  contains  the  celebrated  panegyric  delivered by  Eusebius  at  the  renovation  of  the  cathedral  of  Tyre.  But  the  author seems  to  intend  the  whole  book  as  a  eulogy  upon  the  happy  reverse  of  affairs,  and therefore,  a  happy  close  of  the  whole  work.  He  now  seems  to  lay  aside  the  historian, and  to  swell  into  the  amplifications  of  the  orator.

403

404  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

see  such  things,  and  to  celebrate  such  things  as  niany  of  the really  pious  and  martyrs  of  God,  before  us  ardently  craved  to see,  and  did  not  see  them,  and  to  hear,  and  did  not  hear  them.
But  they,  indeed,  hastening  on  their  course,  obtained  "  what  was far  better ;"  being  transferred  to  the  heavens  themselves,  and  to the  paradise  of  celestial  pleasures.  But  we  freely  acknowledging this  state  of  things  in  our  day  as  better  than  what  we  could expect,  have  been  beyond  measure  astonished  at  the  magnitude of  the  grace  manifested  by  the  author  of  our  mercies,  and  justly do  we  admire  and  adore  him  wath  all  the  powders  of  our  mind, and  bear  witness  to  the  truth  of  those  declarations  recorded, where  it  is  said,  "  come  hither  and  behold  the  works  of  God,  the wonders  that  he  hath  done  upon  the  earth ;  he  removeth  wars until  the  ends  of  the  earth,  he  breaketh  the  bow  and  snappeth the  spear  asunder,  and  burneth  the  shields  in  fire."  Rejoicing in  these  things  fulfilled  in  our  day,  we  shall  pursue  the  tenor  of our  history.  All  the  race  of  the  enemies  of  God  were  destroyed In  the  manner  we  have  stated,  and  were  thus  suddenly  swept away  from  the  sight  of  men,  as  the  divine  Word  again  declares :
"  I  saw  the  wdcked  hfted  up  and  exalted  like  the  cedars  of  Lebanon, and  I  passed  by,  and  lo,  he  was  not ;  and  I  sought,  and his  place  was  not  found."  And  now  a  bright  and  splendid  day, with  no  overshadowing  cloud,  irradiated  the  churches  in  the  whole world  with  its  celestial  light ;  neither  was  there  any  indisposition even  on  the  part  of  those  who  were  strangers  to  our  faith,  to enjoy  w^ith  us  the  same  blessings,  or  of  sharing  at  least  in  the overflowings  of  these  as  they  were  provided  from  God.

CHAPTER   11.

The  restoration  of  the  churches.

All  men,  then,  were  liberated  from  the  oppression  of  the tyrant,  and  those  who  had  been  delivered  from  the  miseries  previously existing,  acknow^ledged,  one  in  one  way,  and  another  in
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  405

another,  that  the  only  true  God  was  the  protector  of  the  pious.
To  us  especially,  all  whose  hopes  are  suspended  on  the  Christ  of God,  there  was  an  incessant  joy,  and  there  sprung  up  for  all  a certain  celestial  gladness,  seeing  every  place,  which  hut  a  short time  before  had  been  desolated  by  the  impieties  of  the  tyrants, reviving  again,  and  recovering  as  from  a  long  and  deadly  distemper, temples  again  rising  from  the  soil  to  a  lofty  height,  and receiving  a  splendour  far  exceeding  those  that  had  been  formerly destroyed.  Moreover,  those  who  held  the  supreme  power,  confirmed the  privileges  granted  us  by  the  divine  beneficence  to  a still  wider  and  greater  extent  by  their  constant  decrees  in  favour of  the  Christians,  and  epistles  of  the  emperor  were  issued,  addressed to  the  bishops,  with  honours  and  superadded  donations of  monies.  Of  which  it  may  not  be  singular  to  insert  extracts in  the  proper  place  in  this  book,  as  in  a  certain  sacred  tablet,  as we  have  translated  them  from  the  Latin  into  the  Greek  language that  they  may  remain  recorded  for  those  that  come  after  us.

CHAPTER   III.

The  dedications  of  the  churches  in  all  places.

After  this  the  sight  was  afforded  us  so  eagerly  desired  and prayed  for  by  all,  the  festiv^als  of  dedications  and  consecrations of  the  newly  erected  houses  of  prayer  throughout  the  cities.
After  this  the  convention  of  bishops,  the  concourse  of  foreigners from  abroad,  the  benevolence  of  people  to  people,  the  unity  of the  members  of  Christ  concurring  in  one  harmonious  body.  Then was  it  according  to  the  prophetic  declaration,  mystically  indicating what  would  take  place,  "  bone  was  brought  to  bone,  and joint  to  joint,"  and  whatsoever  other  matters  the  divine  Word faithfully  intimated  before.  There  was,  also,  one  energy  of  the divine  spirit,  pervading  all  the  members,  and  one  soul  among  all, one  and  the  same  ardour  of  faith,  and  one  song  of  praise  to  the Deity     Yea,  now  indeed,  complete  and  perfect  solemnities  of
406  ECCLESL\STICAL  HISTORY.

tlie  prelates  and  heads  of  the  church,  sacred  performances  of sacred  rites,  and  solemn  rituals  of  the  church.  Here  you  might near  the  singing  of  psalms  and  the  other  voices  given  us  from God,  there  divine  and  sacred  mysteries  performed.  The  mystic symbols  of  our  Saviour's  passion  were  celebrated,  and  at  the  same time  every  sex  of  every  age,  male  and  female,  with  the  whole power  of  the  mind,  and  with  a  mind  and  heart  rejoicing  in  prayer and  thanksgiving,  gave  glory  to  God  the  author  of  all  good.
Every  one  of  the  prelates  present,  also,  delivered  panegyric  discourses, desirous  of  adding  lustre  to  the  assembly  according  to the  ability  of  each.

CHAPTER   IV.

Panegyric  on  the  splendour  of  our  affairs.

And  a  certain  one*  of  those  of  moderate  capacity,  who  had composed  a  discourse,  advanced  in  the  midst  of  the  assembly where  many  pastors  were  present,  as  in  the  congregations  of churches,  and  whilst  all  attended  in  decency  and  silence,  he  addressed himself  as  follows,  to  one  who  was  the  best  and  most pious  of  bishops,  and  by  whose  zeal  principally  the  temple  in Tyre,  by  far  the  most  noble  in  Phoenicia,  was  built.

Panegyric  on  the  building  of  the  churches,  addressed  to  Paulinus bishop  of  Tyre.

"  Friends,  and  priest  of  God,  and  ye  who  are  clad  in  the  sacred gown,f  adorned  with  the  celestial  crown  of  glory,  the  inspired
*  Eusebius  here  means  himself,  and  addresses  the  bishop  of  the  church  of  Tyre.
We  cannot  conceive  how  translators  could  make  our  author  here  speak  of  his merits,  as  Valesius  and  Shorting ;  he  modestly  states  merely  his  moderate  qualifications, £X  Toov  ivriiiy.'^v.  *

+  The  gown  here  mentioned,  derived  its  name  from  its  extending  down  to  the feet:  ^oJ>)p(i
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY-  407

unction  and  the  sacerdotal  garment  of  the  Holy  Spirit.  And thou,  O  excellent  ornament  of  this  new  and  holy  temple  of  God, endowed  by  him  with  the  wisdom  of  age,  and  yet  who  hast  exhibited the  precious  works  and  deeds  of  youthful  and  vigorous virtue,  to  whom  God  himself,  who  comprehends  the  universe,  has granted  the  distinguished  privilege  of  rebuilding  and  renewing  it to  Christ,  his  first  begotten  and  only  begotten  Word,  and  to  his holy  and  divine  spouse ;  whether  one  might  call  thee  a  new  Beseleel,*  the  architect  of  a  divine  tabernacle,  or  a  Solomon,  the king  of  a  new  and  better  Jerusalem,  or  a  new  Zerubbabel,  superadding a  glory  to  the  temple  of  God,  much  greater  than  the former.  You,  also,  O  nurslings  of  the  flock  of  Christ,  the  habitation of  excellent  discourses,  school  of  modesty,  and  the  devout and  religious  auditory  of  piety.  Long  since,  indeed,  we  w^ere allowed  the  privilege  of  raising  hymns  and  songs  of  praise  to God,  when  we  learned  from  hearing  the  sacred  Scriptures  read, the  w^onderful  deeds  of  God,  and  the  benefits  of  the  Lord  conferred upon  men,  and  whom  we  were  taught  to  repeat,  '  O  God, we  have  heard  with  our  ears,  our  fathers  have  told  us,  the  work that  thou  didst  in  those  days,  in  the  days  of  old.'  But  now  as  we perceive  the  lofty  arm  and  the  celestial  hand  of  our  all-gracious and  omnipotent  God  and  king,  not  only  by  the  hearing  and  the report  of  words,  but  by  deeds  ;  and,  as  we  may  say,  with  our own  eyes,  as  we  contemplate  those  faithful  and  true  declarations recorded  in  times  of  old,  we  may  raise  another  song  of  triumph, and  exclaim,  and  appropriately  say,  '  as  we  have  heard,  so  have we  seen,  in  the  city  of  the  Lord  of  hosts,  in  the  city  of  our  God.'
And  in  what  city  but  in  this  newly  built  and  framed  by  God  1
'  which  is  the  church  of  the  living  God,  the  pillar  and  foundation of  the  truth.'  Concerning  which  another  passage  of  the  holy Scriptures  thus,  declares :  *  Glorious  things  are  spoken  of  thee, thou  city  of  God ;'  into  which  the  all-gracious  God  having  collected us  by  the  grace  of  his  only  begotten,  let  each  one  here  assembled only  sing,  cry  aloud,  and  say :  '  I  was  glad  when  they said  unto  me,  we  will  go  into  the  house  of  the  Lord ;'  and  again,
The  name  is  written  in  our  version,  Bezaleel.     Exod.  xxxv.  31.

37

408  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

'  Lord  I  have  loved  the  beauty  of  thine  house,  and  the  place where  thine  honour  dwelleth.'  And  not  only  individually,  but all  together  with  one  breath  and  one  soul,  let  us  with  veneration exclaim,  '  Great  is  the  Lord,  and  highly  to  be  praised  in  the  city of  our  God,  even  upon  his  holy  hill.'  For  he,  indeed,  is  truly great,  and  great  is  his  habitation,  sublime,  and  spacious,  and comely  in  beauty  beyond  the  sons  of  men.  *  Great  is  the  Lord who  only  doeth  wonderful  things,  and  things  past  finding  out, glorious  and  stupendous  things  which  cannot  be  numbered.
Great  is  he  who  changeth  the  seasons  and  times,  who  setteth  up and  debaseth  kings,  who  raiseth  the  poor  from  the  ground,  and exalteth  the  beggar  from  the  dunghill.  He  hath  thrust  down  the mighty  from  their  seats,  and  hath  exalted  the  humble  from  the earth.  Pie  hath  filled  the  hungry  with  good  things,  and  hath broken  in  pieces  the  arms  of  the  proud.'  He  has  confirmed the  record  of  ancient  events,  not  only  to  the  faithful,  but  to  the unbelievers.  '  He  that  worketh  miracles,  he  that  doeth  mighty deeds ;  He,  that  Lord  of  the  universe,  the  Creator  of  the  whole world,  the  omnipotent  one  and  only  God.  In  obedience  to  him we  '  sing  a  ncAv  song,  who  alone  doeth  wonderful  things,  because his  mercy  endureth  for  ever;  that  smiteth  mighty  kings  and slayeth  strong  kings,  because  his  mercy  endureth  for  ever ;  for the  Lord  hath  remembered  us  in  our  humiliation,  and  hath  delivered us  from  our  enemies.'  And  may  we  never  cease  to  celebrate the  Father  of  all  wath  these  praises.  Him  also,  we  would extol,  and  bear  his  name  constantly  upon  our  lips,  the  second cause  of  our  mercies,  the  instructor  in  divine  knowledge,  teacher of  true  religion,  destroyer  of  the  impious,  slayer  of  tyrants  the reformer  of  the  world,  and  the  Saviour  of  us  when  our  condition was  desperate,  our  Lord  Jesus.  For  he  alone  as  the  only  allgracious  Son  of  the  all-gracious  Father,  according  to  the  purpose of  his  Father's  benevolence,  readily  and  freely  assuming the  nature  of  us  who  lay  prostrate  in  the  depths  of  destruction, hke  an  excellent  physician,  who,  '  for  the  sake  of  saving  those who  are  labouring  under  disease,  examines  their  sufferings,  handles their  foul  ulcers,  and  from  others  miseries  produces  grief
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  409

and  pains  to  himself.'*  has  saved  us,  not  only  struggling  with dreadful  ulcers,  and  wounds  already  putrid,  but  even  lying  among the  dead,  and  rescued  us  to  himself  from  the  very  jaws  of  death.
For  none  of  those  in  heaven  had  such  power  at  command,  as  to promote  the  salvation  of  so  many  without  detriment.  But  he alone,  after  having  reached  the  deplorable  corruption  of  our  race, he  alone  taking  upon  him  our  labours,  and  bearing  the  punishment of  our  iniquities,  recovering  us,  not  merely  half  dead,  but altogether  foetid  and  offensive,  in  tombs  and  sepulchres,  both  of old  and  new,  by  his  gracious  love  saves  us  still  beyond  the  hope and  expectation  of  others,  and  even  of  ourselves,  and  liberally imparts  to  us  the  abundance  of  his  Father's  blessings.  He, the  giver  of  life  and  of  light,  our  great  Physician,  King  and  Lord, the  Christ  of  God.  And  then,  indeed,  when  the  whole  human race,  once  lay  buried  in  gloomy  night  and  the  depths  of  darkness, by  the  delusions  of  execrable  daemons,  and  the  machinations and  influences  of  malignant  spirits,  as  soon  as  he  appeared, as  the  wax  melts  under  the  rays  of  the  sun,  he  dissolved  the  knotty and  entangled  bonds  of  our  iniquities,  by  the  rays  of  his  light.
But  when  malignant  envy  and  the  mischievous  spirit  of  iniquity, almost  bursting  asunder  at  such  a  display  of  grace  and  benevolence, was  now  arraying  all  his  deadly  forces  against  us,  and  like a  dog  in  a  fit  of  madness,  first  gnashing  his  teeth  at  the  stones cast  at  him,  and  pouring  his  rage  kindled  by  his  assailants,  against inanimate  weapons,  he  levelled  his  savage  ferocity  at  the  stones of  the  oratories  and  lifeless  materials  to  produce,  as  he  supposed, the  desolation  of  the  churches.  Afterwards,  however,  he  issued dreadful  hissings  and  serpentine  voices,  sometimes  by  the  threats of  impious  tyrants,  sometimes  by  the  blasphemous  ordinances of  profane  governors ;  and  moreover,  he  himself,  pouring  forth death,  and  infecting  the  souls  captured  by  him  with  his  pestilential and  destructive  poison,  almost  destroyed  them  with  the  deadl}^
sacrifices  to  dead  idols,  and  caused  every  sort  of  beast  in  the  shape of  man,  and  every  savage,  to  assault  us.     Then  the  Angel  of  the
*  This  is  a  quotation  from  some  poet,  and  seems  to  belong  to  Sophocles  or ^schylus.  The  verses  in  the  original  are  iambics ;  but  the  poem  from  which they  are  taken  is  lost.

3F

^10  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

mighty  council,  the  great  Captain  and  Leader  of  the  armies  of God,  after  a  sufficient  exercise  which  the  greatest  of  the  soldiers of  Ins  kingdom  had  exhibited  in  their  patience  and  perseverance, again  suddenly  appeared,  and  destroying  what  was hostile,  and  annihilating  his  foes,  so  that  they  scarcely  appeared to  have  had  a  name.  But  those  that  were  his  friends  and  of his  household,  he  advanced  not  only  to  glory  with  all  men,  but now  also,  with  celestial  powers,  the  sun,  the  moon,  and  the stars,  the  whole  heavens  and  the  world.*  So  that  now  what never  happened  before,  the  supreme  sovereigns,  sensible  of  the honour  conferred  upon  them  by  him,  now  spit  upon  the  faces  of idols,  trample  upon  the  unhallowed  rites  of  daemons,  ridicule the  ancient  delusion  of  their  ancestors,  and  acknowledge  only the  one  and  true  God,  the  common  benefactor  of  all  and  of themselves.  They  also  confess  Christ  the  Son  of  God,  as  the universal  king  of  all,  and  proclaim  him  the  Saviour  in  their edicts,  inscribing  his  righteous  deeds  and  his  victories  over  the impious  with  royal  characters,  on  indelible  records,  and  in  the midst  of  that  city  which  holds  the  sway  over  the  earth.  So  that our  Saviour  Jesus  Christ,  is  the  only  one  ever  acknowledged,  by the  supreme  rulers  of  the  earth,  not  as  a  common  king  among men,  but  worshipped  as  the  true  Son  of  God,  and  God  himself.f And  all  this  justly  too.  For  who  of  kings  at  any  time  has  ever advanced  to  such  a  height  of  excellence,  as  to  fill  the  ears  and the  tongues  of  all  men  with  his  own  name  ?  What  king  ever ordained  laws  so  pious  and  wise,  and  extended  them  so  as  to  be read  by  all  men  from  the  ends  of  the  earth  to  its  remotest  borders? Who  has  ever  abrogated  the  fierce  and  barbarous  customs of  fierce  and  barbarous  nations,  by  his  mild  and  most beneficent  laws  ?  Who  is  there,  when  assailed  by  all  for  whole ages,  that  has  ever  exhibited  a  virtue  far  surpassing  man,  so  as to  rise  and  flourish  again  from  day  to  day,  throughout  the  whole world?     Who  is  there  that  has  ever  established  a  nation  never
*  These  expressions,  "  celestial  powers,  sun,  moon,  and  stars,"  may  be  regarded as  oriental  hyperbole,  for  the  "  powers  that  be."  What  immediately  follows,  shows that  Eusebius  means  the  reigning  emperors.

f  The  original  here  is  aursS.o,,  God  himself,  or  very  God.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  411

heard  of  before,  not  concealed  in  a  corner  of  the  earth,  but spread  over  every  part  of  it  under  the  sun  ?  Who  has  so  fortified his  soldiers  with  the  arms  of  piety,  that  their  souls  more firm  than  adamant,  shine  resplendent  in  the  contest  against  their antagonists  ?  What  king  ever  prevailed  to  such  an  extent,  as  to lead  on  his  armies  after  death,  rear  trophies  against  his  enemies, and  fill  every  place  and  city  and  region,  w^hether  Grecian  or  barbarian, with  bis  royal  palaces  and  the  consecrations  of  his  sacred temples  ?  Witness  the  splendid  ornaments  and  donations  of  this very  temple,  which  themselves  are  noble  and  truly  grand,  worthy of  admiration  and  astonishment,  and  expressive  symbols  of our  Saviour's  kingdom.  Truly  '  he  hath  spoken,  and  they  were made ;  he  hath  commanded,  and  they  were  created.'  For  what w^as  there  to  resist  the  beck  of  the  universal  King,  the  universal Prince,  and  God,  the  Word  himself*  It  would  require  a  peculiar leisure  to  survey  and  explain  each  particular  minutely ;  and not  only  this,  but  to  explain  how  great  and  powxrful  the  alacrity of  those  who  have  laboured  in  the  work,  has  been  judged  by him  whom  we  celebrate,  who  looks  into  the  temple  within  our souls,  and  surveys  the  building  of  living  and  moving  stones,  happily and  securely  built  upon  the  foundation  of  the  apostles  and prophets,  Jesus  Christ  himself  being  the  chief  corner  stone.
Whom,  indeed,  not  only  those  of  that  ancient  building  no  longer existing,  have  rejected ;  but  also,  those  of  the  building  now  existing, that  vast  multitude  of  men,  wTetched  architects  of  the wicked  as  they  are.f  But  the  Father  having  proved  him  now as  well  as  then,  has  established  him  as  the  head  of  the  corner  of this  our  common  church.  This,  therefore,  the  living  temple  of the  living  God,  formed  of  yourselves,  I  say,  is  the  greatest  and the  truly  divine  sanctuary,  whose  inmost  shrines,  though  invisible to  the  multitude,  are  really  holy,  a  holy  of  holies.  Who,  when he  has  viewed  it  within,  w^ould  venture  to  declare  it  ?  But  who coi.dd  ever  penetrate  its  sacred  enclosures,  save  only  the  great
*  The  expression  here,  is  ayrou  Qizv  xoj.ou.

\  Eusebius  here  alludes  to  the  two  dispensations,  Jewish  and  Christian.     The former  building  had  passed  away ;  the  latter  now  existing,  was  still  rejected  by  the multitude  of  the  heathen  world.
37^

412  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY

High  Priest  of  all,  who  alone  has  the  right  and  fower  to  search out  the  mysteries  of  every  human  and  rational  soul  ?  Next  to him,  however,  the  second  place*  immediately  devolves  on  one alone  of  his  equals,  the  presiding  prelate  and  leader  of  this  host, who  has  been  honoured  by  the  first  and  great  High  Priest  himself with  the  second  rank  in  this  sanctuary,  and  has  been  appointed by  him  as  his  courtier  and  interpreter,  and  the  shepherd  of  your spiritual  (divine)  flock,  obtaining  this  people  of  yours  as  his  por tion  by  the  judgment  and  allotment  of  the  Father ;  a  new  Aaron or  another  Melchisedech  assimilated  to  the  Son  of  God,  continuing and  always  preserved  by  him  in  accordance  with  the  common wishes  and  prayers  of  you  all.  To  him,  therefore,  alone, let  it  be  granted,  if  not  in  the  first  place,  at  least  in  the  second, after  the  first  and  supreme  High  Priest,  to  inspect  and  superintend the  observation  and  state  of  your  inmost  souls.  As  he  by  experience and  length  of  time  has  diligently  examined  each  one,  and by  his  zeal  and  care  has  disposed  all  of  you  to  cultivate  the  order and  doctrine  of  piety ;  capable,  also,  as  he  is  above  all,  to  give reasons  adequate  to  the  works  which  he  himself  with  the  divine assistance  has  framed.  Our  first  and  great  High  Priest,  saith  the Scripture,  '  whatsoever  He  seeth  the  Father  doing,  these  things also  doeth  the  Son ;'  and  whatsoever  hef  seeth  Him  doing,  using these  things  as  archetypes  and  examples,  their  images  and  resemblances, he  has  as  far  as  possible  expressed,  after  the  most perfect  likeness  in  his  own  works.  In  no  respect  inferior  to  that Beseleel,  whom  the  Spirit  of  God  himself  filled  wdth  wdsdom,  and understanding,  and  whatever  other  knowledge  and  skill  might  be
*  A  scholiast  on  this  expression,  makes  the  remark  x:<i  t«vto  as-s/Si,-.  Valesius videtur  existimavissc  schoUastem  hie  Eusebium  quasi  de  Christo  loquentem  intollexisse.  Sed  vir  doctus  hoc  errare  videtur.  SchoUastes  Eusebium  hie  impietatis  arguit  quod,  episcopo  secundum  gradum  dignitatis  a  Christo  attribuere  ausus est,  et  Valesius  ipse  dicit  in  loc. ;  "  fatendum  est  Eusebium  nimis  hie  tribuisse Paulino,  dum  ei  t^  kt-j.  rTc-jTsptc*,  tanquam  aiquali  et  collegse  Christi  adscribit;
dum  Mclchisedecum  vocat."  Attamen  si  ha3c  excusanda  sint,  eo  nomine  fortassis cxcusari  possint,  quod  Eusebius  noster  hie  oratorem,  (prope  dixissem  poetam)
magis  quam  theologum  egisse,  videtur.  Quis  neseit  orientalium  ingenii  ardorem qui  SEepe  extra  omnes  rerum  fines  excurritl
f  He,  refers  to  Paulinus,  looking  as  it  were  to  Christ,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  413

necessary,  for  the  building  of  that  temple*  appointed  and  selected as  the  builder  of  that  edifice  of  a  temple  of  celestial  types,  a temple  given  in  symbols  and  figures.  Thus,  also,  he  has  framed and  fashioned  the  whole  Christ  complete,  the  word,  the  wisdom, the  fight,  and  bearing  in  his  own  soul  the  image  of  the  same, it  is  impossible  to  tell  with  what  joy  and  gladness,  with  what  an abundant  and  liberal  mind,  and  wdth  what  emulation  among  all of  you,  and  what  magnanimity  among  the  contributors,  ambitiously striving  that  none  should  be  behind  him  in  executing- the same  purpose,  he  has  framed  and  finished  this  magnificent  and noble  temple  of  God,  so  similar  in  its  character  to  the  copy  of that  better  temple,  the  visible  of  the  invisible.  And  what  also deserves  first  of  all  to  be  mentioned,  he  did  not  overlook  this place,  which  had  been  covered  with  filth  and  rubbish,  by  the  artifices of  our  enemies ;  but  could  not  think  of  giving  way  to  the wickedness  of  those  who  were  the  authors  of  it,  though  he  was at  liberty  to  go  to  another  place,  there  being  innumerable  others in  the  city ;  and  thus  to  find  a  diminution  of  his  labour,  and  to  be relieved  from  trouble.  First,  he  prepared  himself  for  the  work.
Then,  also,  after  strengthening  and  animating  the  people,  and forming  all  into  one  great  body,  he  performed  this,  the  first  of his  labours.t  Thinking  that  the  church  wdiich  had  been  most assailed  by  the  enemy,  she  that  had  first  laboured  in  trials,  and that  had  sustained  the  same  persecutions  with  us  and  befi)re  us —
this  church,  like  a  mother  bereft  of  her  children,  should  also  enjoy with  us  the  mercies  and  privileges  of  the  all-gracious  Giver.
For  when  the  great  Shepherd  had  driven  away  the  wild  beasts, the  wolves,  and  every  fierce  and  savage  race,  and,  in  the  language of  Scripture,  had  broken  the  jaws  of  the  lions,  he  again condescended  to  collect  her  children,  and  in  the  most  righteous manner  he  raised  the  fold  of  her  flock,  "  to  shame  the  enemy  and the  avenger :"  and  to  present  a  refutation  against  the  impious audacity  of  those  that  were  fighting  against  God.     And  now
*  Our  author  calls  the  tabernacle  here,  by  a  metonymy,  the  temple.

-j-  The  original  is  «5xov  viy-^v.^'sro,  a  gladiatorial  phrase  applied  to  combatants  and wrestlers,  and  referring  to  the  labours  of  Hercules,  particularly  that  of  cleansing the  Augean  stable.

414  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

these  enemies  of  God  are  no  more,  because  they  never  were."*
For  a  short  time,  indeed,  they  created  alarm,  whilst  themselves were  troubled ;  then  suffering  the  severe  punishment  which  they owed  to  divine  justice,  they  overturned  themselves,  and  friends, and  habitations  to  the  dust.  So  that  it  is  confessed  those  declarations inscribed  of  old  on  the  sacred  tablets,  are  proved  as  true by  facts,  in  which  the  divine  Word,  among  others,  also  asserts the  following  concerning  them :  '  The  ungodly  have  drawn  out the -sword,  they  have  bent  the  bow  to  cast  down  the  poor  and needy,  and  to  slay  such  as  are  of  an  upright  walk.  Their  sword shall  pierce  through  their  own  heart,  and  their  bows  shall  be broken.'  And,  again,  '  Their  memory  is  perished  with  a  sound, and  their  name  hast  thou  blotted  out  for  ever  and  ever.  Because when  they  were  in  miseries  they  cried,  and  there  was  none  to save,  even  to  the  Lord,  and  he  heard  them  not.  They  were boundf  and  fell,  but  we  are  raised  and  stand  upright.'

"  That,  too,  which  was  declared  before,  in  the  following  words, *  0  Lord,  thou  shalt  annihilate  their  image  in  thy  city,'  is  truly manifested  to  the  eyes  of  all.  But  after  waging  a  war  against God,  like  the  giants,  they  terminated  their  lives  in  this  manner  ;
whilst  she  "  which  was  desolate,  and  rejected  of  men,"  has  received that  consummation  that  we  have  seen,  for  her  patient  endurance in  God,  so  that  the  prophecy  of  Isaiah  seemed  to  utter these  things ;  '  Rejoice,  thirsty  desert,  let  the  desert  exult  and blossom  as  the  lily,  and  the  desert  places  shall  flourish  and  be
*  This  expression  seems  to  have  been  misapprehended  by  Valesius  and  Shorting.
It  simply  expresses  the  utter  nothingness  of  the  enemies  of  God.  No  expression could  represent  human  weakness  in  a  stronger  light  when  arrayed  against  Omnipotence. It  is  scarcely  hyperbolical  to  say  such  poiver  never  tvas.  The  compound word  ^sja^.c-m;,  may  mean  either  hated  of  God,  or  God  haters,  according  as the  accent  is  on  the  ultimate  or  penultimate.  Valesius  reads  with  the  accent  on the  last  syllable,  which  would  justify  his  rendering  invisi  Deo.  Besides,  our  author is  fond  of  antithesis,  particularly  if  aided  by  alliteration.  He  had  called  them 5-£o^a%oi,  now  bio/xtmi;.  We  have  given  the  most  comprehensive  sense  ;  as  men,  in the  order  of  Providence,  are  always  God  haters  before  they  can  be  pronounced God  hated.

f  It  will  be  recollected,  we  translate  these  passages  from  our  author,  who  quotes the  Septuagint.     The  Greek  here  means  their  feet  ivere  bound  together.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  415

glad.  Be  strengthened,  ye  languid  hands,  and  ye  relaxed  knees.
Be  consoled,  ye  weak  hearted  in  your  minds,  be  strong  and  fear not.  Behold  our  God  has  repaid  judgment,  and  he  will  repay.
He  will  come  and  save  us.  For  he  says,  water  has  burst  forth in  the  desert,  and  a  pool  in  a  thirsty  land.  And  the  dry  land shall  become  a  pool,  and  a  well  of  water  shall  be  in  the  thirsty land.'  These  things,  uttered  in  ancient  oracles,  have  been  recorded in  the  sacred  books.  But,  now,  these  things,  themselves, are  no  longer  addressed  to  us  in  mere  reports,  but  in  facts.

"  This  desert,  this  dry  and  thirsty  land ;"  this  widow  and deserted  one,  whose  gates  they  cut  down  with  axes,  as  wood  in the  forest,  breaking  them  down  with  the  ax  and  the  hatchet, whose  books  they  destroyed,  and  whose  divine  sanctuary  they burned  with  fire,  whilst  they  profaned  the  habitation  of  his  name unto  the  ground,  and  all  that  passed  by  plucked  off  her  grapes, >reaking  down  her  hedges;  she,  whom  the  wild  boar  of  the forest  has  rooted  up,  and  the  savage  wild  beast  has  devoured, now,  by  the  marvellous  power  of  Christ,  as  he  himself  would have  it,  has  blossomed  as  the  lily.  But,  even  then,  she  was chastened  at  his  nod,  as  by  a  provident  father :  '  For  whom  the Lord  loveth  he  chasteneth,  and  scourgeth  every  son  whom  he receiveth.'  Then,  after  being  chastened  in  measure,  as  far  as was  necessary,  she  was  commanded  to  rejoice  of  anew ;  and  she now  blossoms  as  the  lily,  and  exhales  her  divine  odour  among  all men.  For  it  is  said,  *  Water  gushed  forth  in  the  desert  the fountain  of  divine  regeneration  of  the  salutary  laver.  And  now she,  which  a  little  before  was  desolate,  is  changed  into  pools,  and a  well  of  living  water  has  gushed  out  upon  a  thirsty  land.'
The  arms  formerly  languid  have  become  truly  strong,  and  these works  are  the  great  and  expressive  displays  of  invigorated  hands.
Those  knees,  also,  that  were  formerly  debilitated  and  relaxed, now  recovering  their  former  firmness,  are  walking  in  a  straight course  on  their  way,  and  hastening  on  to  their  proper  fold  of  the al  .-gracious  pastor.  And  are  there,  also,  some  that  were  alarmed and  overawed  by  the  threats  of  the  tyrants,  not  even  these  have been  overlooked  as  incurable  by  the  Saviour's  word,  but  he, thoroughly  healing  likewise  them,  raises  them  to  receive  conso
416  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

lation,  as  he  says,  '  Be  ye  comforted,  ye  dejected  in  mind,  be strong,  fear  not'

"  This  our  new  and  excellent  Zerubbabel,  then  perceiving  by the  acute  hearing  of  his  mind,  the  sacred  oracles  declaring  that she  who  had  been  desolate  for  the  sake  of  her  God,  should  now enjoy  such  things  as  these,  after  her  severe  captivity,  and  the abomination  of  desolation,  did  not  neglect  this  dead  carcase.
First  of  all  with  prayers  and  supplications,  he  propitiated  the Father  with  the  common  consent  and  concurrence  of  you  all,  and calling  upon  the  only  one  who  can  raise  from  the  dead,  as  his aid  and  ally,  he  raised  her,  who  had  fallen,  after  he  had  cleansed and  healed  her  from  her  ills.  He  cast  around  her,  not  the  garment of  old,  but  such  as  he  had  again  learned  from  the  sacred oracles,  clearly  declaring  :  '  And  the  glory  of  this  latter  house shall  far  exceed  the  former.'  Thus,  then,  embracing  a  much wader  space,  he  strengthened  the  outer  enclosure  with  a  wall  to compass  the  edifice,  that  it  might  be  a  most  secure  bulwark  to the  whole  work.  Then  raising  a  large  and  lofty  vestibule,  he extended  it  towards  the  rays  of  the  rising  sun  ;  presenting  even to  those  standing  without  the  sanctuary,  a  full  view  of  those within,  all  but  turning  the  eyes  of  those  who  are  strangers  to the  faith,  to  contemplate  its  entrance ;  so  that  no  one  can  pass by,  without  being  struck  in  his  mind  at  the  recollection  of  the former  desolation,  and  the  present  w^onderful  transformation.  By this,  indeed,  he  also  hoped  that  the  individual  thus  smitten  would be  attracted  by  the  very  sight,  and  induced  to  enter.  And  on entering  within  the  gates,  he  has  not  permitted  you  to  enter  immediately, with  impure  and  unwashed  feet,  within  the  sanctuary, but  leaving  an  extensive  space  between  the  temple,  (the  nave)
and  the  vestibule,  he  has  decorated  and  enclosed  it  with  four  inclined porticoes  around,  presenting  a  quadrangular  space,  with pillars  rising  on  every  side.  Betw^een  these  he  carried  round  the frame  latticed  railing,  rising  to  a  proportioned  and  suitable  height, leaving,  however,  the  middle  space  open,  so  that  the  heavens  can be  seen,  and  present  the  splendid  sky  irradiated  by  the  beams of  the  sun.  Here  too,  he  has  placed  the  symbols  of  the  sacred purification'^,  by  providing   fountains  built  opposite  the  temple,
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  417

(nave)  which,  by  the  abundant  efTusion  of  its  waters,  affords  the means  of  cleansing,  to  those  that  proceed  to  the  inner  parts  of the  sanctuary.  And  this  is  the  first  place  that  receives  those that  enter,  and  which  at  the  same  time  presents  to  those  that need  the  first  introduction,  both  a  splendid  and  a  convenient  station. After  passing  also  this  sight,  he  has  made  open  entrances to  the  temple,  with  many  other  inner  vestibules,  by  placing  again three  gates  on  one  side  towards  the  rising  sun.  Of  these  he  constructed the  midde  one,  far  exceeding  those  on  each  side  in height  and  breadth,  embellishing  it  at  the  same  time  with  exceedingly splendid  brazen  plates  bound  with  iron,  and  decorated with  various  sculpture,  superadding  them  as  guards  and  attendants to  a  queen.  In  the  same  w^ay,  after  disposing  the  number of  the  vestibules,  also  with  the  porticoes  on  each  side  of  the whole  temple,  he  constructed  above  these,  difTerent  openings  to the  building  for  the  purpose  of  admitting  more  light,  and  these lights  or  windows  he  also  decorated  with  various  kinds  of  ornamental sculpture.  But  the  royal  temple  itself,  he  has  furnished with  more  splendid  and  rich  materials,  applying  a  generous  liberality in  his  expenses.  iVnd  here,  it  appears  to  me  to  be  superfluous, to  describe  the  dimensions,  the  length  and  the  breadth  of the  edifice,  the  splendid  elegance,  the  grandeur  that  surpasses description,  and  the  dazzling  aspect  of  works,  glittering  in  the face  of  the  speaker,  the  heights  rising  to  the  heavens,  and  the costly  cedars  of  Lebanon  resting  on  these,  which  have  not  been overlooked  by  the  divine  oracles  themselves,  when  they  say:
*  The  forests  of  the  Lord  shall  rejoice,  and  the  cedars  of  Lebanon which  he  planted.'  Why  should  I  now  detail  minutely  the  skilful architectural  arrangement,  and  the  exceeding  beauty  of  each of  the  parts,  when  the  testimony  of  the  eye  precludes  the  instruction through  the  ear.

"  For  when  he  had  thus  completed  the  temple,  he  also  adorned it  with  lofty  thrones,  in  honour  of  those  who  preside,  and  also with  seats  decently  arranged  in  order  throughout  the  w  hole,  and at  last  placed  the  holy  altar  in  the  middle.  And  that  this  again might  be  inaccessible  to  the  multitude,  he  enclosed  it  with  frame lattice  work,  accurately  wTought  with  ingenious  sculpture,  pre
3G

418  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

sen  ting  an  admirable  sight  to  the  beholders.  And  not  even  the pavement  was  neglected  by  him,  for  this,  too,  he  splendidly adorned  with  marble,  and  then  proceeded  to  the  rest,  and  to  the parts  out  of  the  temple.  He  provided  spacious  exhedrse  and oeci*  on  each  side,  united  and  attached  to  the  cathedral  (palace), and  communicating  wdth  the  entrances  to  the  middle  of  the  temple. Which  buildings  were  erected  by  this  our  most  peaceful Solomon,!  the  founder  of  the  temple,  for  those  who  require  yet the  purification  and  the  sprinklings  of  water  and  the  holy  Spirit.
So  that  the  prophecy  repeated  above,  seems  to  consist  no  longer in  words,  but  in  facts  and  deeds :  '  For  the  glory  of  this  latter house  is  truly  far  beyond  the  former.'

"  For  it  was  just  and  consistent,  that  as  her  (the  church)  pastor and  Lord  had  once  submitted  to  death  on  her  account,  and after  his  suffering  had  changed  that  vile  body,  which  he  assumed for  her  sake,  into  a  splendid  and  glorious  body,  and  had  conducted the  flesh  that  had  been  dissolved  from  corruption  into  incorruption,  that  she  should  likewise  enjoy  these  dispensationsj  of  our Saviour ;  because,  having  received  a  promise  of  far  better  things from  him,  the  far  greater  glory  of  a  regeneration,  in  the  resurrection of  an  incorruptible  body,  with  the  choir  of  the  angels  of  light, in  the  very  celestial  palace  of  God ;  above  all  these,  she  desires also  to  obtain  them  with  Christ  Jesus  himself,  her  all-gracious benefactor  and  Saviour  hereafter  for  ever.     In  the  mean  time,
*  The  exhedrae  and  oeci  were  vestrj'-rooms  on  each  side  of  the  cathedral,  and connected  with  it.  On  each  side  of  the  edifice  there  was  a  long  passage  to  the body  or  nave  of  the  building,  and  these  exhedrse  and  oeci  were  in  the  same  right line,  and  communicated  with  them  by  doors.  They  were  also  baptisteries,  consistories, and,  in  general,  places  intended  for  the  various  subordinate  purposes  of  the church.  See  Valesius's  note  on  Bock  III.  De  Vit.  Const,  ch.  1.  Also,  Bingham's Orig.

■{■  Eusebius  takes  occasion  to  compliment  the  bishop  on  his  resemblance  to  the royal  founder  of  the  Jewish  temple,  in  the  similar  capacity  which  he  had  here  sustained. In  this  resemblance,  he  also  alludes  to  the  signification  of  Solomon's  name, peaceful.

\  The  word  o<icovo.t/.<«,  here  occurring,  is  used  by  our  author  in  the  comprehensive sense,  for  whatever  our  Saviour  did  for  our  salvation.  Here  it  is  evidently  applied not  only  to  the  death  but  the  resurrection  of  our  Lord.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  419

however,  in  the  present  world,  she  that  was  formerly  a  widow and  desolate,  and  now  decorated  with  the  flowers  of  divine  grace, has  truly  become  as  the  lily,  as  the  prophecy  declares,  and  receiving the  bridal  garment,  and  covered  vrith  the  crown  of  glory, as  she  is  taught  to  exult  and  dance  by  the  prophet  Isaiah,  proclaims her  gratitude  in  joyous  language  to  God  her  king.  Let us  hear  her  own  words  :  '  I  will  greatly  rejoice  in  the  Lord,  my soul  shall  be  joyful  in  m.y  God,  for  he  hath  clothed  me  with  the garment  of  salvation,  he  hath  covered  me  with  the  robe  of righteousness,  as  a  bridegroom  decketh  himself  with  ornaments, and  as  a  bride  adorneth  herself  with  jewels.  For  as  the  earth bringeth  forth  her  bud,  and  as  the  garden  causeth  the  things  sown in  it  to  spring  forth,  so  the  Lord  God  will  cause  righteousness  and praise  to  spring  forth  before  all  the  nations.'  Thus,  singing,  she exults  and  dances.

"  In  the  same  words,  also,  that  celestial  spouse  and  word,  Jesus Christ,  himself  answers  her ;  Hear  the  Lord,  saying,  '  Fear  not because  thou  wast  abased,  neither  be  thou  confounded,  that  thou was  put  to  shame.  For  thou  shalt  forget  thy  past  shame  of  old, and  shalt  not  remember  the  shame  of  thy  widowhood  any  more.
The  Lord  hath  not  called  thee  as  a  woman  deserted  and  dejected, neither  as  a  woman  hated  from  her  youth,  saith  thy  God.  For a  small  moment  have  I  forsaken  thee,  but  with  great  mercy  will I  gather  thee.  In  a  little  wrath  I  hid  my  face  i^rom  thee  for  a moment,  but  with  everlasting  kindness  will  I  have  mercy  on  thee, saith  the  Lord  thy  Redeemer.'  *  Awake,  awake,  thou  that  hast drunk  at  the  hand  of  the  Lord  the  cup  of  his  fury,  thou  hast drunk  the  dregs  and  exhausted  them.  There  was  none  to  console thee  of  all  the  soiis  thou  didst  bring  forth,  neither  was  there any  to  take  thee  by  the  hand.  Behold,  I  have  taken  out  of  thine hand  the  cup  of  stumbling,  the  cup  of  my  fury,  and  thou  shalt no  more  drink  it  again.  But  I  will  put  it  into  the  hand  of  them that  afflict  thee,  and  that  have  humbled  thee.'  •'  Awake,  awake, put  on  thy  strength,  put  on  thy  glory,  shake  off  the  dust,  and arise  and  sit  down,  loose  thyself  from  the  bands  of  thy  neck.
Lift  up  thine  eyes  round  about  thee,  and  behold  thy  children  are gathered  together.  Behold  they  are  gathered  and  come  to  thee, 38

420  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

As  I  live,  saith  the  Lord,  thou  shalt  clothe  thyself  with  them  all as  with  an  ornament,  and  thou  shalt  bind  them  on  thee  as  orna ments  on  a  bride.  For  thy  waste  and  desolate  places,  and  the land  of  thy  destruction,  shall  now  be  too  narrow  by  reason  of  the inhabitants,  and  they  that  would  swallow  thee  up  shall  be  fai away.  The  children  which  thou  hast  lost  shall  say  in  thine  ears '  The  place  is  narrow  for  me,  give  place  to  me  that  I  may  dwell.'
Then  shalt  thou  say  in  thine  heart.  Who  hath  begotten  me  these  ?
seeing  I  have  lost  my  children  and  am  a  widow?  and  who  hath brought  up  these.  Behold,  I  w^as  left  alone.  But  these,  where had  they  been  V

"  Such  were  the  oracles  uttered  before  by  Isaiah.  These  were the  declarations  respecting  us  anciently,  recorded  in  the  holy Scriptures.  It  was  just,  therefore,  that  we  should  at  some  time receive  their  truth  in  the  facts  themselves.  Since  then  the spouse  and  ^vord  addressed  such  language  as  this  to  the  holy church  before ;  justly,  therefore,  has  this  our  bride-man  (bridedresser,*)  raised  her  lying  desolate,  and  as  a  dead  carcase,  hopeless in  the  sight  of  men,  and  with  the  common  prayers  of  you all,  stretched  out  his  hands,  raised  her  up,  and  at  the  command of  God,  the  sovereign  king,  and  in  the  manifestation  of  the powers  of  Christ  Jesus,  caused  her  to  stand  upright.  And when  thus  raised,  he  so  ordered  and  established  her,  as  he  had learned  from  the  description  given  by  the  sacred  oracles.  Wonderful and  mighty,  therefore,  and  beyond  all  admiration  is  thi?
work,  especially  to  those  v\dio  attend  only  to  the  external  appear  •
ance.  But  more  wonderful  than  wonders  are  those  archetypes, the  mental  prototypes  and  divine  exemplars,  the  renewals  of  the divine  and  spiritual  buildings  in  our  souls,  which  he,  the  Son  of God  himself,  framed  and  fashioned  according  to  his  own  image, and  to  which  every  where  and  in  all  respects  he  imparted  the likeness  of  God.  An  incorruptible  nature,  incorporeal,  reasonable, separate  from  all  earthly  mixture  and  matter,  an  intelligent existence.     And  having  once  created  herf  and  brought  her
*  i/v/u!?o?Toxo;  here,  applied  to  Paulinus.

f  Our  author  means  the  spiritual  church  of  which  he  had  just  spoken,  using  a  personiftcation  in  the  pronoun  her,  as  common  with  the  Christian  fathers  as  it  is  with  u
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  421

into  being  from  that  which  was  not,  he  also  wrought  her  into  a holy  spouse,  a  completely  sacred  and  holy  temple,  for  himself  and the  Father.  Which,  indeed,  himself  plainly  declares  and  professes in  the  following  words :  '  I  will  dwell  in  them  and  walk  in  them,  and will  be  their  God  and  they  shall  be  my  people.'  And  such,  indeed, IS  the  perfect  and  purified  mind,  having  been  made  such  from  the beginning,  as  to  bear  the  image  of  the  celestial  Word.  By  the envy  and  jealousy  of  the  malignant  daemon,  however,  she  began  tc be  fond  of  pleasures  and  fond  of  evil,  by  her  own  voluntary  choice, and  then  the  Divinity  retiring  from  her,  as  one  destitute  of  her protector,  she  became  an  easy  captive,  and  easily  exposed  to  the insidious  plots  of  those  who  had  long  envied  her  felicity.  And thus  assailed  by  the  batteries  and  machines  of  her  invisible  and spiritual  enemies,  she  fell  a  hideous  carcase.  So  that  there  was not  one  stone  of  her  virtue  remained  standing,  and  she  lay  completely and  entirely  dead  upon  the  earth,  totally  stripped  and destitute  of  her  usual  and  natural  ideas  of  God.  But  as  she thus  lay  fallen  and  prostrate,  she  that  had  been  made  after  the im'ige  of  God,  it  was  not  that  wdld  boar  of  the  forest  that  we  see, but  some  destructive  da?mon  and  spiritual  wild  beasts  that  laid her  waste.  These,  inflaming  her  with  passions,  as  wdth  the  burning darts  of  their  own  iniquity,  set  fire  to  the  really  divine  sanctuary of  God,  and  profaned  the  tabernacle  of  his  name  to  the ground.  Then  burying  the  unhappy  one  with  heaps  of  earth, they  totally  destroyed  every  hope  of  her  deliverance.  But  the divine  and  saving  Word,  w^ho  careth  for  her,  after  she  had  endured the  deserved  punishment  of  her  sins,  again  recovered  and restored  her  to  the  full  confidence  of  the  all-gracious  mercy  of the  Father.  First,  then,  she  gained  the  favour  of  the  supreme imperial  rulers  themselves,  and  with  the  whole  world,  w^as  delivered from  the  impious  tyrants,  those  destructive  and  tremendous enemies  of  all,  by  the  intervention  of  those  most  excellent and  divinely  favoured  princes.  Then  also,  the  men  who  vrere  his (Christ's)  familiar  friends,  those  formerly  consecrated  to  him  for life,  and  who,  concealed  as  in  a  storm  of  afflictions,  had  nevertheless been  secretly  protected  by  their  God ;  these  were  led  forth by  him  to  the  light  and  honoured,  deservedly  by  the  munificence
422  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

of  his  spirit.  iVgain,  then,  by  means  of  these  he  cleansed  and removed  the  filth  of  the  souls  who  a  little  before  had  been  polluted, and  with  the  spades  and  mattocks,  the  reproving  doctrines of  the  divine  w^ord,  he  removed  all  the  accumulated  matter  of  impious commands.*  And  thus  when  he  had  made  the  ground  of your  mind  clear  and  bright,  then  he  committed  it  for  the  future to  this  t  most  wise  and  divinely  favoured  guide.  He,  as  in  other respects,  endowed  with  singular  judgment  and  prudence,  well capable  of  discriminating  and  discerning  the  minds  of  those  committed to  his  charge,  from  the  first  day  that  he  began  to  build,  as  1
may  say,  has  not  ceased  to  the  present.  In  one  place  he  appfied the  splendid  gold,  in  another,  the  refined  and  pure  silver,  and  the valuable  and  precious  stonesj  among  all,  so  that  a  sacred  and mystic  prophecy  is  again  fulfilled  by  facts  displayed  in  you,  when it  is  said,  '  Behold,  I  v/ill  lay  thy  stones  with  fair  carbuncles,  and lay  thy  foundations  with  sapphires,  and  thy  bulwarks  of  jasper stone,  and  thy  gates  with  crystal,  and  thy  walls  with  chosen  stones, and  all  thy  children  shall  be  taught  of  the  Lord,  and  great  shall be  the  peace  of  thy  children,  and  thou  shalt  be  built  in  righteousness.'

"  Building  therefore,  in  righteousness,  he  divided  the  strength  and means  of  the  whole  people,  according  to  a  due  estimate.  With some  §  indeed,  he  surrounded  only  the  exterior  inclosure,  walling it  up  with  an  unwavering  faith.  For  such  is  the  great  multitude and  mass  of  the  people,  that  they  are  incapable  of  bearing  any superior  structure.  But  allowing  others||  the  entrance  into  the edifice,  he  directs  them  to  stand  at  the  doors,  and  to  conduct those  that  are  entering,  who  not  improperly  are  compared  to
*  Alluding  to  the  measures  pursued  by  Maximinus  and  his  governors.

I  Paulinus,  the  bishop.

t  An  allusion  to  1  Cor.  iii.  12.,  in  which  our  author  plainly  understands  by  the gold,  silver,  precious  stones,  «&c.,  the  different  members,  as  the  materials  that  constituted the  moral  and  spiritual  structure.

§  Eusebius  now  gives  an  allegorical  description  of  the  spiritual  temple  at  Tyre, 111  which  he  also  gives  the  different  grades  of  religious  attainment.

II  By  these  are  meant  the  sub-deacons,  whose  office  was  to  conduct  all  that  entered to  their  proper  places,  the  catechumens,  penitent?,  into  the  narthex  or  hall, the  faithful,  &c.  into  the  nave.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  423

the  vestibules  of  the  temple.  Others,  however,  he  has  supported by  the  first  pillars  which  are  placed  v,'ithout,  around  the  quadrangular hall,  by  initiating  them  in  the  first  elements  of  the  literal sense  of  the  four  gospels.  Then  he  also  stations  around,  on both  sides  the  royal  temple,  those  who  are  yet  catechumens,*
and  that  are  yet  making  progress,  and  improvement,  though  not very  far  separated  from  the  inmost  view  of  divine  things,  enjoyed by  the  faithful.  Receiving  from  among  these,  the  souls  that  are cleansed  like  gold,  by  the  divine  washing,  he  likewise  supports and  strengthens  these,  with  columns  far  better  than  those  external ones,  viz.,  by  the  inner  mysteries  and  hidden  doctrines  of  the Scriptures.  He  also  illuminates  them  by  the  openings,  to  admit the  light,  adorning  the  whole  temple  with  one  grand  vestibule of  adoration  to  the  one  only  God,  the  universal  Sovereign.  Exhibiting, however,  as  the  second  splendour,  the  liglit  of  Christ,  and the  Holy  Spirit  on  each  side  of  the  Father's  authority ,f  and  displaying in  the  rest,  throughout  the  whole  of  the  building,  the abundance  and  the  exceeding  great  excellence  of  the  clearness and  the  brilliancy  of  truth  in  every  part.  Having  also  selected every  where,  and  from  every  quarter,  the  living  and  moving,  and well  prepared  stones  of  the  mind,  he  has  built  a  grand  and  truly royal  edifice  of  nil,  splendid  and  filled  with  light  within  and  with
*  Euscbius  here  gives  the  difTerent  classes,  into  which  the  people  were  divided previous  to  a  full  admission.  The  first,  the  indiscriminate  multitude,  compared  to the  outer  wall ;  the  second,  the  catechumens,  or  those  wlio  by  a  course  of  instruction were  preparing ;  and  finally,  those  that  were  called  the  competentes,  or  the  candidates for  baptism.

■}■  That  the  learned  reader  may  have  a  comment  on  these  wonls,  we  here  transcribe the  words  of  a  scholiast,  found  in  the  Mazarine  manuscript,  used  by  Valesius, and  appended  to  the  passage:  aiip^^s,  t.  ^w  -v^v  .u:;/.^  ..i/ tj-jt^.v  z:«.  rry.vy.yvfiy.-w  x-.y^v
'cfji   TOv   vizv   Tsi   7r:iTf.t,   ovTi   ,uy.v   to   ttvs-jux    ro    ■j.yi-.v     (T-Jvii;u.y.vr i .        TllOSB    that     wish    tO

read  the  passage  will  find  it  quoted  at  length  by  Valesius,  in  loc.  This,  however, is  not  the  only  passage  where  the  scholiasts  have  given  utterance  to  what  they  no doubt  conceived  to  be  a  just  indignation.  Sic  non  veriti  sunt  Eusebium  nostrum, impium,  blasphemum,  atheiim,  scholiis  suis  nominare  omniaque  epitheta,  qua  ipse  in tyrannos  conjicere  solebat,  scholiasts;  iterum  in  ipsum  quasi  hostem  religiones  conjecerunt.  Sed  pace  illorum  qui  aliter  sentiunt,  hoe  locutiones  Eusebiante  proculdubio,  secundum  quid  vel  y.y-ry.  r.,  ut  diciturinscholis,  intelligenda;  sunt.     Quis  nescit
3S=^

424  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

out.  For  it  is  resplendent  not  only  in  soul  and  mind,  but  the  body al^o  is  briMiant  with  the  blooming  ornaments  of  chastity  and modesty.  But  in  this  temple  there  are  also  thrones,  many  seats also,  and  benches,  in  all  the  souls  in  which  the  gifts  of  the  Holy Spirit  reside,  such  as  anciently  were  seen  in  the  holy  apostles and  their  followers,  lo  whom  cloven  tongues,  as  of  fire,  appeared, and  sat  upon  each  one  of  them.  But  in  the  chief  of  all,  Christ himself  perhaps  resides  in  his  fulness.  In  those  that  rank  next to  him,  each  one  shares  proportionately  in  the  distribution  of  the power  of  Christ,  and  the  Holy  Spirit.  There  may  also  be  seats for  angels  in  the  souls  of  some  who  are  committed  to  the  instruction and  care  of  each.  Noble  and  grand  also,  and  unique  is the  altar,  such  as  should  be  at  least,  that  sincerity  and  Holy  of Holies,  of  the  mind  and  spirit  of  the  priest  of  the  whole  congregation. That  great  High  Priest  of  the  universe,  Jesus,  the  only begotten  Son  of  God,  himself  standing  at  his  right,  receives  the sweet  incense  from  all,  and  the  bloodless  and  immaterial  sacrifices of  prayer,  with  a  bright  and  benign  eye  ;  and  with  extended hands,  bears  them  to  the  Father  of  heaven  and  God  over  all.  He himself,  first  adoring  him,  and  the  only  one  that  gives  to  the  Father the  worship  that  is  his  due,  and  then  interceding  with  Him  for  us, that  he  may  always  continue  propitious  and  favourable  to  us  all "  Such  is  the  character  of  this  great  temple,  which  the  great creative  Word  hath  established,  throughout  the  whole  w^orld, constituting  this  again  a  kind  of  intellectual  image  on  earth  of those  things  beyond  the  vault  of  heaven.  So  that  in  all  his  creation, and  through  all  his  intelligent  creatures  on  earth,  the  Father should  be  honoured  and  adored.*     But  those  regionsf  beyond  the
Dominum  et  Servatorem  nostrum  •^■■'■■^■■^  -r<  seipsum,  Patre  ininorem,  et  Jt^ira  r.,  iterum  seipsum  et  Patrem  mmm  dicit.  Et  si  locutiones  hujuscemodi,  blasphemiam vel  heterodoxiam  sapiunt,  quis  sapit  recte  1

*  The  Greek  reads  thus:  o  iUt.,p  «.^t.>  (Koy^,)  r,u^ro  ts  ^cxi  o-e^o.to.  Valesius  vertit "Pater  ipsius"  quasi  ^jtco  pro  «o'ou  sed  potius  videtur  indicare agentem.  Versionc nostra  hie  non  redditur  quia  lector  communis  titubet  nee  versione  Valesii  assentiie possumus.  Qui  nexum  sententiarum  penitus  inspexerit  facile  videbit  Eusebium, hie  filium  Dei  quasi  curatorem  adorationis  Patris  innuere.

t  Our  orator,  now  drawing  to  a  close,  winds  up  his  survey  of  the  temple  on earth,  by  an  apostrophe  to  the  transcendant  glory  of  the  church  triumphant.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  425

heavens,  arc  also  displays  of  what  are  here,  and  that  Jerusalem above,  and  that  heavenly  Sion,  and  that  city  of  the  living  God beyond  our  earth,  in  which  are  the  innumerable  choirs  of  angels and  the  assembly  of  the  first  born  w^ritten  in  heaven,  extol  their Maker  and  the  universal  Sovereign  of  all,  with  praises  and  hymns inexpressible.     These  surpass  our  comprehension,  neither  would any  mortal  tongue  be  adequate  to  declare  that  glory.     '  For  eye hath  not  seen,  and  ear  hath  not  heard,  neither  hath  it  entered into  the  heart  of  man  to  conceive  those  things  which  God  hath prepared  for  those  that  love  him.'     Of  which  things  as  we  are already  made  partakers  in  part,  let  us  never  cease,  men,  w^omen and  children,  small  and  great,  all  collectively  at  once,  and  with one  breath,  and  one  mind,  to  proclaim  and  to  celebrate  the  author of  such  great  mercies  to  us.     '  Who  forgiveth  all  our  sins,  and healeth  all  our  infirmities,  who  redeemeth  our  life  from  destruc tion,  and  crowneth  us  with  lovingkindness,  who  filleth  our  soul with  good  things.     For  he  hath  not  dealt  with  us  according  to our  sins  nor  rewarded  us  according  to  our  iniquities.     For  as  far as  the  east  is  from  the  w^cst,  so  far  hath  he  removed  our  iniquities from  us.     As  a  father  piticth  his  children,  so  the  Lord  pitieth them  that  fear  him.'     Rekindling  such  views  now,  and  for  all  future times,  in  our  minds,  and  beside  the  present  festivity,  and  this illustrious  and  most  glorious  day,  contemplating  God  as  its  author, and  the  universal  author  of  all  festivity,  night  and  day,  in  every hour  and  with  every  breath  that  we  drav/,  let  us  love  and  adore Him  with  all  the  powers  of  the  soul.     And  now  rising,  with  the most  earnest  expression  of  our  love  and  devotion,  let  us  beseech Him,  that  he  would  continue  to  shelter  and  save  us  as  those  of  his flock  until  the  end,  and  grant  us  his  peace  for  ever,  inviolate  and immoveable,  in  Jesus  Christ  our  Saviour,  through  whom  the  glory be  to  Him  through  all  ages.     Amen."

3H

426  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY

CHAPTER  V.

Copies  of  the  imperial  decrees.

Now  let  us  also,  subjoin  translations  from  the  Latin,  of  tlie imperial  ordinances  of  Constantino  and  Licinius.

Copy  of  the  imperial  ordinances,  translated  fro??i  the  Latin language.

"  As  we  long  since  perceived  that  religious  liberty  should  not be  denied,  but  that  it  should  be  granted  to  the  opinion  and  wishes of  each  one  to  perform  divine  duties  according  to  his  own  determination, we  had  given  orders,  that  each  one,  and  the  Christians among  the  rest,  have  the  liberty  to  observe  the  religion  of  his choice,  and  his  peculiar  mode  of  worship.  But  as  there  plainly appeared  to  be  many  and  different  sects  added  in  that  edict,*  in which  this  privilege  was  granted  them,  some  of  them  perhaps, after  a  little  while,  on  this  account  shrunk  from  this  kind  of  attention and  observance.  Wherefore,  as  I,  Constantino  Augustus, and  I,  Licinius  Augustus,  came  under  favourable  auspices  to Milan,  and  took  under  consideration  all  affairs  that  pertained to  the  public  benefit  and  welfare,  these  things  among  the  rest appeared  to  us  to  be  most  advantageous  and  profitable  to  all.
We  have  resolved  among  the  first  things  to  ordain,  those  matters by  which  reverence  and  worship  to  the  Deity  might  be  exhibited.
That  is  how  we  may  grant  likewise  to  the  Christians,  and  to  all, the  free  choice  to  follow  that  mode  of  worship  which  they  may wish.  That  whatsoever  divinity  and  celestial  power  may  exist, may  be  propitious  to  us  and  to  all  that  live  under  our  government.

*  The  edict  here  mentioned  is  lost,  and  the  reference  is,  therefore,  subject  to some  obscurity.  The  Latin  original,  however,  of  this  one  is  preserved  by  Lanctantius,  in  his  book  "De  Mortibus  Persecutorum,"  beginning  at  the  words, "  Wherefore,  as  I,  Constantine."  Valesius  here,  as  well  as  in  the  other  edict?, has  no  reference  to  Lanctantius.  The  Greek  translation  is  in  the  main  so  faithful as  to  transfer  the  Latinity ;  the  text,  however,  still  preserved  in  Lanctantius,  differs in  some  places  from  that  which  Eusebius  appears  to  have  had.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  427

Therefore,  we  have  decreed  the  following  ordinance,  as  our will,  with  a  salutary  and  most  correct  intention,  that  no  freedom at  all  shall  be  refused  to  Christians,  to  follow  or  to  keep  their  ob servances  or  worship.  But  that  to  each  one  power  be  granted to  devote  his  mind  to  that  worship  which  he  may  think  adapted to  himself  That  the  Deity  may  in  all  things  exhibit  to  us  his accustomed  favour  and  kindness.  It  was  just  and  consistent  that we  should  write  that  this  was  our  pleasure.  That  all  exceptions respecting  the  Christians  being  completely  removed,  which  were contained  in  the  former  epistle,  that  we  sent  to  your  fidelity,  and whatever  measures  were  wholly  sinister  and  foreign  to  our  mildness, that  these  should  be  altogether  annulled  ;  and  now  that  each one  of  the  Christians  may  freel}^  and  without  molestation,  pursue and  follow  that  course  and  w^orship  wdiich  he  has  proposed to  himself:  which,  indeed,  we  have  resolved  to  communicate most  fully  to  your  care  and  diligence,  that  you  may  know  we have  granted  liberty  and  full  freedom  to  the  Christians,  to  observe their  owii  mode  of  worship ;  which  as  your  fidelity  understands absolutely  granted  to  them  by  us,  the  privilege  is  also granted  to  others  to  pursue  that  worship  and  religion  they  wish.
Which  it  is  obvious  is  consistent  with  the  peace  and  tranquillity of  our  times ;  that  each  may  have  the  privilege  to  select  and to  worship  whatsoever  divinity  he  pleases.  But  this  has  been done  by  us,  that  we  might  not  appear  in  any  manner  to  detract any  thing  from  any  manner  of  religion,  or  any  mode  of  worship.
And  this,  we  further  decree,  W'ith  respect  to  the  Christians,  that the  places  in  which  they  were  formerly  accustomed  to  assemble, concerning  which  also  we  formerly  wrote  to  your  fidelity,  in  a different  form,  that  if  any  persons  have  purchased  these,  either from  our  treasury,  or  from  any  other  one,  these  shall  restore them  to  the  Christians,  without  money  and  without  demanding any  price,  without  any  superadded  value,  or  augmentation,  without delay,  or  hesitancy.  And  if  any  have  happened  to  receive these  places  as  presents,  that  they  shall  restore  them  as  soon  as possible  to  the  Christians,  so  that  if  either  those  that  purchased  or those  that  received  them  as  presents,  have  any  thing  to  request of  our  munificence,  they  may  go  to  the  provincial  governor,  as
428  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

the  judge ;  that  provision  may  also  be  made  for  them  by  our clemency.  All  which,  it  will  be  necessary  to  be  delivered  up to  the  body  of  Christians,  by  your  care,  without  any  delay.  And since  the  Christians  themselves  are  known  to  have  had  not  only those  places  where  they  were  accustomed  to  meet,  but  other places  also,  belonging  not  to  individuals  among  them,  but  to  the right  of  the  whole  body  of  Christians,  you  will  also  command  all these,  by  virtue  of  the  law  before  mentioned,  without  any  hesitancy, to  be  restored  to  these  same  Christians,  that  is  to  their body,  and  to  each  conventicle  respectively.  The  aforesaid  consideration, to  wit,  being  observed ;  namely,  that  they  wdio  as  we have  said  restore  them  without  valuation  and  price,  may  expect their  indemnity  from  our  munificence  and  liberality.  In  all  which it  will  be  incumbent  on  you,  to  exhibit  your  exertions  as  much as  possible,  to  the  aforesaid  body  of  Christians,  that  our  orders may  be  most  speedily  accomplished,  that  likewise  in  this,  provision may  be  made  by  our  clemency,  for  the  preservation  of  the common  and  public  tranquillity.  For  by  these  means,  as  before said,  the  divine  favour  with  regard  to  us,  which  we  have  already experienced  in  many  affairs,  will  continue  firm  and  permanent at  all  times.  But  that  the  purpose  of  this  our  ordinance  and liberality  may  be  extended  to  the  knowledge  of  all,  it  is  expected that  these  things  written  by  us,  should  be  proposed  and  published to  the  knowledge  of  all.  That  this  act  of  our  liberality  and  kindness may  remain  unknown  to  none."

Coj)y  of  another  Ordinance  which  was  issued  by  the  Emjyerors,  indicating thai  the  benefit  was  conferred  solely  on  the  catholic (universal)  church,
"  Hail,  our  most  esteemed  Anulinus.  This  is  the  course  of  our benevolence;  that  we  wish  those  things  that  belong  justly  to others,  should  not  only  remain  unmolested,  but  should  also  when necessary  be  restored,  most  esteemed  Anulinus.  Whence  it  is our  will,  that  when  thou  shalt  receive  this  epistle,  if  any  of  those things  belonging  to  the  catholic  church  of  the  Christians  in  the several  cities  or  other  places,  are  now  possessed  either  by  the
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  429

decurions,  or  any  others,  these  thou  shalt  cause  immediately  to be  restored  to  their  churches.  Since  we  have  previously  determined, that  whatsoever  these  same  churches  before  possessed, shall  be  restored  to  their  right.  When,  therefore,  your  fidelity has  understood  this  decree  of  our  orders  to  be  most  evident  and plain,  make  all  haste  to  restore,  as  soon  as  possible,  all  tliat  belongs to  the  churches,  whether  gardens  or  houses,  or  any  thing else,  that  we  may  learn  thou  hast  attended  to,  and  most  carefully observed  this  our  decree.  Farewell,  most  esteemed  and  beloved Anulinus."

Co'py  of  the  E??ipero?'^s  Epistle,  in  which  he  oi^dains  a  council  of bishops  to  be  held  at  Rome,  for  the  unity  and  peace  of  the church,
"  CoxsTAi\Ti\E  Augustus,  to  Miltiades  bishop  of  Rome,  and  to Marcus.  As  many  communications  of  this  kind  have  been  sent to  me  from  Anulinus,  the  most  illustrious  proconsul  of  Africa,  in which  it  is  contained  that  Cascilianus,  the  bishop  of  Carthage, was  accused,  in  many  respects,  by  his  colleagues  in  Africa ;  and as  this  appears  to  be  grievous,  that  in  those  provinces  which divine  Providence  has  freely  entrusted  to  my  fidelity,  and  in which  there  is  a  vast  population,  the  multitude  are  found  inclining to  deteriorate,  and  in  a  manner  divided  into  two  parties,  and among  others,  that  the  bishops  were  at  variance ;  I  have  resolved that  the  same  Caicilianus,  together  with  ten  bishops,  who appear  to  accuse  him,  and  ten  others,  whom  he  himself  may consider  necessary  for  his  cause,  shall  sail  to  Rome.  That  you, being  present  there,  as  also  Reticius,  Maternus,  and  Marinus, your  colleagues,  whom  I  have  commanded  to  hasten  to  Rome for  this  purpose,  may  be  heard,  as  you  may  understand  most  consistent with  the  most  sacred  law.  And,  indeed,  that  you  may have  the  most  perfect  knowledge  of  these  matters,  I  have  subjoined to  my  own  epistle  copies  of  the  writings  sent  to  me  by Anulinus,  and  sent  them  to  your  aforesaid  colleagues.  In  which your  gravity  will  read  and  consider  in  what  way  the  aforesaid cause  may  be  most  accurately  investigated  and  justly  decided
430  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

Since  it  neither  escapes  your  diligence,  that  I  show  such  regard for  the  holy  catholic  church,  that  I  wish  you,  upon  the  whole, to  leave  no  room  for  schism  or  division.  May  the  power  of  the great  God  preserve  you  many  years,  most  esteemed."

Copy  of  the  Epistle  in  irhich  the  Emjjeror  commanded  another council  to  he  held,  for  the  purpose  of  removing  all  the  dissension of  the  bishops.

"  CoxsTANTiNE  AuGUSTus  to  Chrcstus  bishop  of  Syracuse.  As there  were  some  already  before  who  perversely  and  wickedly began  to  waver  in  the  holy  rehgion  and  celestial  virtue,  and  to abandon  the  doctrine  of  the  catholic  (universal)  church,  desirous, therefore,  of  preventing  such  disputes  among  them,  I  had  thus written,  that  this  subject,  which  appeai-ed  to  be  agitated  among them,  might  be  rectified,  by  delegating  certain  bishops  from  Gaul, and  summoning  others  of  the  opposite  parties  from  Africa,  who are  pertinaciously  and  incessantly  contending  with  one  another, that  by  a  careful  examination  of  the  matter  in  their  presence,  it might  thus  be  decided.  But  since,  as  it  happens,  some,  forgetful of  their  own  salvation,  and  the  reverence  due  to  our  most  holy religion,  even  now  do  not  cease  to  protract  their  own  enmity, being  unwilling  to  conform  to  the  decision  already  promulgated, and  asserting  that  they  were  very  few  that  advanced  their  sentiments and  opinions,  or  else  that  all  points  which  ought  to  have been  first  fully  discussed  not  being  first  examined,  they  proceeded with  too  much  haste  and  precipitancy  to  give  publicity  to  the  decision. Hence  it  has  happened,  that  those  very  persons  who ought  to  exhibit  a  brotherly  and  peaceful  unanimity,  rather  disgracefully and  detestably  are  at  variance  with  one  another,  and thus  give  this  occasion  of  derision  to  those  that  are  without,  and whose  minds  are  averse  to  our  most  holy  religion.  Hence  it  has appeared  necessary  to  me  to  provide  that  this  matter,  which ought  to  have  ceased  after  the  decision  was  issued  by  their  own voluntary  agreement,  now,  at  length,  should  be  fully  terminated by  the  intervention  of  many.

"  Since,  therefore,  we  have  commanded  many  bishops  to  meet
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  431

together  from  different  and  remote  places,  in  the  city  of  Aries, towards  the  calends  of  August,  I  have  also  thought  proper  to write  to  thee,  that  taking  a  public  vehicle  from  the  most  illustrious Latronianus,  corrector  of  Sicily,  and  taking  with  thee  tw^o others  of  the  second  rank,  which  thou  mayest  select,  also  three servants  to  afford  you  services  on  the  way ;  I  would  have  you meet  them  within  the  same  day  at  the  aforesaid  place.  That by  the  weight  of  your  authority,  and  the  prudence  and  unanimity of  the  rest  that  assemble,  this  dispute,  which  has  disgracefully continued  until  the  present  time,  in  consequence  of  certain  disgraceful contentions,  may  be  discussed,  by  hearing  all  that  shal be  alleged  by  those  w4io  are  now  at  variance,  whom  we  have  also commanded  to  be  present,  and  thus  the  controversy  be  reduced, though  slowly,  to  that  faith,  and  observance  of  rehgion,  and  fraternal concord,  which  ought  to  prevail.  May  Almighty  God preserve  thee  in  safety  many  years."

CHAPTER   VI.

Of  the  jwoperty  belonging  to  the  Christians.

Copy  of  an  Epistle  in  which  the  Emperor  grants  money  to  the
churches.

'•  CoA'STANTix\E  AuGusTus  to  CosciHanus  bishop  of  Carthage.
As  we  have  determined,  that  in  all  the  provinces  of  Africa,  Numidia,  and  IMauritania,  something  should  be  granted  to  certain ministers  of  the  legitimate  and  most  holy  catholic  (universal)  religion, to  defray  their  expenses,  I  have  given  letters  to  Ursus,  the most  illustrious  lieutenant-governor  of  Africa,  and  have  communicated to  him,  that  he  shall  provide,  to  pay  to  your  authority, three  thousand  folles.*

•  If  the  foUis  be  estimated  at  208  denarii,  according  to  the  usual  computation, this  sum  would  amount  to  about  10,000  dollars.

39

432  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

"  After  you  shall  hav^e  obtained  this  sum,  you  are  to  order these  monies  to  be  distributed  among  the  aforesaid  ministers,  according to  the  abstract  addressed  to  thee  from  Hosius.  But  if thou  shalt  learn,  perhaps,  that  any  thing  shall  be  wanting  to  complete this  my  purpose  with  regard  to  all,  thou  art  authorized, without  delay,  to  make  demands  for  whatever  thou  mayest  ascertain to  be  necessary,  from  Heraclides,  the  procurator  of  our possessions.  And  I  have  also  commanded  him  when  present, that  if  thy  authority  should  demand  any  monies  of  him,  he  should see  that  it  should  be  paid  w^ithout  delay.  And  as  I  ascertained that  some  men,  who  are  of  no  settled  mind,  wish  to  divert  the people  from  the  most  holy  catholic  (universal)  church,  by  a  certain pernicious  adulteration,  I  wish  thee  to  understand  that  I  have given,  both  to  the  proconsul  Anulinus  and  to  Patricius,  vicargeneral  of  the  prsefects,  when  present,  the  following  injunctions ;
that,  among  all  the  rest,  they  should  particularly  pay  the  necessary attention  to  this,  nor  should  by  any  means  tolerate  that  this should  be  overlooked.  Wherefore,  if  thou  seest  any  of  these men  persevering  in  this  madness,  thou  shalt,  without  any  hesitancy, proceed  to  the  aforesaid  judges,  and  report  it  to  them,  that they  may  animadvert  upon  them,  as  I  commanded  them,  when present.  May  the  power  of  the  great  God  preserve  thee  many years."

CHAPTER  VII.

The  privileges  and  immunities  of  the  clergy.

Copy  of  an  Epistle  in  which  the  Emperor  commands  that  the  p-elates  of  the  churches  should  be  exempt  from  performing  service in  political  matters.

"  Health  to  thee,  most  esteemed  Anulinus.  As  it  appears from  many  circumstances,  that  when  the  religion  was  despised, in  which  the  highest  reverence  of  the  heavenly  majesty  is  ob
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  433

served,  that  out  public  affairs  were  beset  with  great  dangers,  and that  this  religion,  when  legally  adopted  and  observed,  afforded the  greatest  prosperity  to  the  Roman  name,  and  distinguished felicity  to  all  men,  as  it  has  been  granted  by  the  divine  beneficence, we  have  resolved  that  those  men  who  gave  their  services with  becoming  sanctity,  and  the  observance  of  this  law,  to  the performance  of  divine  worship,  should  receive  the  recompence for  their  labours,  oh  most  esteemed  Anulinus  ;  wherefore  it  is  my will  that  these  men,  within  the  province,  entrusted  to  thee  in  the Catholic  church,  over  which  Caecilianus  presides,  who  give  their services  to  this  holy  religion,  and  w^hom  they  commonly  call clergy,  shall  be  held  totally  free,  and  exempt  from  all  public offices,  to  the  end  that  they  may  not  by  any  error  or  sacrilegious deviation,  be  drawn  away  from  the  service  due  to  the  Divinity, but  rather  may  devote  themselves  to  their  proper  law,  without any  molestation.  So,  that,  whilst  they  exhibit  the  greatest  possible reverence  to  the  Deity,  it  appears  the  greatest  good  will  be conferred  on  the  state.  Farewell,  most  esteemed  and  beloved Anulinus."

CHAPTER  VIII.

The  ivickedness  which  Licinius  afterwards  exhibited,  and  his
death.

Such  then,  was  the  divine  and  celestial  grace,  exhibited  by  the interposition  of  our  Saviour.  And  such  too  the  abundant  blessings imparted  to  us  by  the  peace,  and  in  this  manner  our  affairs were  finally  crowned  with  gladness  and  festivity.  But  malignant envy,  and  the  daemon  of  iniquity  was  not  able  to  endure  the exhibition  of  this  spectacle.

When  therefore,  the  events  that  befel  the  aforesaid  tyrants  were not  sufficient  to  bring  Licinius  to  sound  reason,  who  as  long  as his  government  was  prosperous,  being  honoured  with  the  second rank  after  the  emperor,  Constantino  the  great,  and  also  by  intermarriage   and   affinity   of   the   highest  order,   he   nevertheless
31

434  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

abandoned  imitating  a  good  example,  and  on  the  contrary  rivalled the  wickedness  of  the  impious  tyrants.  And  thus,  although  he  had seen  their  end  with  his  own  eyes,  he  was  resolved  to  follow  their counsels  rather  than  remain  faithful  to  a  better  disposition  and friendship.  Stimulated,  therefore,  by  envy,  he  waged  a  most  oppressive and  nefarious  war  against  the  common  benefactor  of  all, not  regarding  the  laws  of  nature,  nor  leagues,  nor  consanguinity, nor  paying  any  regard  to  covenants.  For  Constantine,  as  a  most gracious  emperor,  exhibiting  the  evidences  of  a  true  benevolence, had  not  refused  affinity  w^ith  him,  and  had  not  denied  him  the illustrious  marriage  with  his  sister,  and  had  honoured  him  as a  sharer  in  that  eminent  nobility  of  the  imperial  family,  which he  derived  from  his  fathers,  and  had  shared  with  him  the  government of  the  whole  empire,  as  his  kinsman  and  partner,  granting him  the  power  to  rule  and  govern  no  less  a  part,  of  the  empire than  himself  But  he,  on  the  contrary,  pursued  a  course directly  opposite  to  this,  by  plotting  every  kind  of  mischief  against his  superior,  and  inventing  all  manner  of  artifices,  as  if  to  return the  kindness  of  his  benefactor  with  evils.  And  first,  he  indeed, attempted  to  conceal  his  preparations,  and  pretended  to  be  his friend,  and  having  frequently  waylaid  him  with  treachery  and deceit,  hoped  that  he  would  very  easily  gain  his  object.  But God  was  the  friend  and  the  vigilant  protector  and  guardian  of the  emperor  (Constantine)  who  bringing  these  plots  formed  in darkness  and  secrecy  to  light,  foiled  them.  So  much  excellence has  that  powerful  armour  of  piety,  to  repel  our  enemies,  and  for the  preservation  of  our  own  safety.  But  our  most  divinely  favoured emperor  fortified  by  this,  escaped  the  multifarious  and complicated  plots  of  the  iniquitous  man.  But  the  other,  when  he saw  that  his  secret  preparations  by  no  means  succeeded  according to  his  wish,  as  God  detected  every  artifice  and  villany  to his  favoured  prince,  no  longer  able  to  conceal  himself,  he  commenced an  open  war.  And  in  thus  determining  war  against  Constantine, he  now  also  proceeded  to  array  himself  against  that supreme  God,  whom  he  knew  him  to  worship.  Afterwards  he began  gradually  and  imperceptibly  to  assail  those  pious  subjects under  him,  who  had  never  at  any  time  troubled  his  government
ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  435

This  too,  he  did,  violently  urged  on  by  the  innate  propensity  ol his  malice,  that  overclouded  and  darkened  his  understanding.  He did  not,  therefore,  bear  in  mind  those  that  had  persecuted  the Christians  before  him,  nor  those  vi^hose  destroyer  and  punisher he  himself  had  been  appointed,  for  their  wickedness.  But  departing from  sound  reason,  and  as  one  might  say,  seized  with  insanity, he  had  determined  to  wage  war  against  God  himself,  the  protector and  aid  of  Constantino,  in  place  of  the  one  whom  he  assisted.
And  first,  indeed,  he  drove  away  all  the  Christians  from  his house,  the  wretch  thus  divesting  himself  of  those  prayers  to  God for  his  safety,  which  they  are  taught  to  offer  up  for  all  men.
After  this  he  ordered  the  soldiers  in  the  cities  to  be  cashiered  and to  be  stripped  of  military  honours,  unless  they  chose  to  sacrifice to  daemons.

But  these  were  small  matters  compared  with  the  subsequent greater  ones  that  were  superadded.  Why  should  we  here  relate particularly  and  minutely  the  deeds  perpetrated  by  this  enemy  of God  V"  how,  as  a  violator  of  all  law,  he  also  devised  illegal  laws.f For  he  enacted  that  no  one  should  exercise  humanity  towards the  unhappy  individuals  in  prison,  by  imparting  food,  and  no  one compassionate  those  perishing  with  hunger,  in  bonds,  so  that there  should  be  no  good  man  tolerated,  or  any  good  thing  done, and  that  too,  even  when  nature  herself  powerfully  attracts  our sympathy  towards  our  fellow-men.  Indeed,  this  was  a  most  shameless and  inhuman  law,  calculated  to  expel  every  sense  of  humanity implanted  by  nature.  Beside  this,  the  punishment  was attached  to  those  who  exercised  commiseration,  that  they  should be  made  to  suffer  the  same  things  with  those  they  commiserated  ;
and  that  those  who  had  performed  the  offices  of  humanity  should be  thrust  into  prisons  and  bonds,  to  sustain  the  same  punishment wuth  the  worst  malefactors.  Such  were  the  ordinances  of  Licinius.     Why  should  we,  moreover,  recount  his  innovations  in  mar
*  This  is  the  proper  meaning  of  5-.:y..c-i.  here.  Valesius  invariably  translates  invistis  Deo.     This  cannot  be  supported.     See  note  in  the  Panegyric,  on  this  word.

•j-  This  translation  may  give  some  idea  of  the  play  upon  the  word  I'o/.^oj,  in  the original.  Our  author  is  fond  of  the  figure  paronomasia,  as  we  have  seen  in  more than  one  instance.

39^

436  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

riage,  or  his  novelties  in  regard  to  the  dying?  By  means  oi which  he  dared  to  restrict  the  ancient  and  wisely  established institutions  of  the  Romans,  and  to  introduce  as  a  substitute  certain barbarous,  savage,  unlawful,  and  truly  lawless  laws.*  He also  invented  innumerable  pretexts  of  exaction  against  the  people subject  to  him,  and  every  variety  of  method  to  extort  silver and  gold,  new  measurements  of  lands,f  and  means  of  gain  by Way  of  penalty ,J  from  those  in  the  country,  who  were  no  longer living,  but  had  long  since  died.  Who  can  tell  the  expatriations that  this  enemy  of  mankind  devised  besides  these,  the  banishment of  nobles  and  illustrious  men,  those  too,  whom  he  separated  from their  youthful  wdves,  consigning  the  latter  to  be  shamefully abused  by  certain  miscreants  of  his  own ;  with  how  many  females, married  and  unmarried,  he,  though  in  the  last  stages  of advanced  age,  gratified  his  unbridled  passions.  Why,  I  say, should  I  delay  in  reciting  those  things,  when  the  excessive  wickedness of  his  last  deeds  make  the  first  to  appear  as  trifles,  and  a mere  nothing  ?  He  at  last  proceeded  to  such  an  extent  of  madness, as  to  attack  the  bishops;  now  indeed,  regarding  them  as  the servants  of  the  Supreme  God,  hostile  to  his  measures ;  but  yet  not openly  for  fear  of  his  superior  (Constantino.)  But  commencing his  operations  in  a  clandestine  and  crafty  manner,  by  means  of  his governors  and  magistrates,  he  insidiously  destroyed  the  most  distinguished and  approved  of  these.  And  the  manner  of  the  murder itself,  perpetrated  upon  them,  w^as  strange,  and  such  as  had  never before  been  heard  of.  But  the  excesses  perpetrated  at  Amana, and  other  cities  of  Pontus,  surpassed  all  others  in  savage  cruelty.
There  some  of  the  churches  of  God  were  razed  to  the  ground, some  were  closed,  so  that  no  one  accustomed  to  frequent  them could  get  into  them,  nor  render  God  the  worship  that  we  owe.

*  The  paronomasia  wc  have  here  attempted  to  transfer.

■}•  These  new  surveys  of  land  afforded  new  pretexts  for  embezzlement,  &c. , they  were  always  attended  by  a  new  assessment.

I  iTTiCKi^^^v  xj(>Jo;,  we  have  rendered  thus.  Valesius  says,  exitiale  lucrum,  which is  too  general  to  reach  the  sense.  The  expression  seems  to  refer  to  the  unlawful levies  and  impositions  upon  estates  whose  proprietors  were  long  dead ;  length  of time,  probably  aflbrding  the  better  pretext  to  involve  and  encumber  them.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  437

For  he  did  not  suppose  that  prayers  were  offered  up  for  nim  .
reasoning  thus  in  his  bad  conscience,  but  persuaded  himself  that we  did  all  and  propitiated  the  Deity  only  for  the  divinely  favoured emperor.  Hence  also  he  directed  the  violence  of  his  fury  against us,  and  at  the  same  time  when  his  parasitical  governors  perceived that  they  were  doing  what  was  gratifying  to  the  execrable tyrant,  they  subjected  some  of  the  bishops  to  the  same  punishments as  the  worst  criminal.  Those,  therefore,  who  had  done  no  evil, were  led  away  to  punishment  without  any  pretext,  just  like  murderers and  assassins.  Some  also  endured  a  novel  kind  of  death, having  their  bodies  cut  into  many  small  pieces,  and  after  this savage  and  horrible  spectacle,  were  thrown  as  food  to  the  fishes into  the  depths  of  the  sea.  Again  then,  the  worshippers  of  God began  to  flee;  again  the  open  fields,  the  deserts,  forests,  and mountains,  received  the  servants  of  Christ.  When  these  things had  succeeded  with  the  impious  tyrant,  after  this  manner, he  finally  contemplated  to  renew  the  persecution  against  all.
And  no  doubt  he  would  have  prevailed  in  his  determination,  and there  was  nothing  to  hinder  him  to  proceed  in  his  work,  had not  God,  the  defender  of  his  own  servants,  anticipated  him,  and led  forth  Constantino,  his  servant,  with  a  mighty  arm  amid  these events,  and  suddenly,  as  in  the  dense  and  impenetrable  darkness of  a  gloomy  night,  caused  a  light  and  a  deliverer  to  arise  to  all.

CHAPTER  IX.

The  victory  of  Consiantine,  and  the  blessings  which  under  him accrued  to  the  ichole  Roman  world.

To  him,  therefore,  the  supreme  God,  granted  from  heaven above,  the  fruits  of  his  piety,  the  trophies  of  victory  over  the  wicked, and  that  nefarious  tyrant  with  all  his  counsellors  and  adherents, he  cast  prostrate  at  the  feet  of  Constantino.*     For  when
*  Constantine  obtained  this  signal  victory  over  Licinius,  A.  D.  324,  the  limits Df  our  author's  history.  The  first  war  that  broke  out  between  the  two  emperors, w^as  occasioned  by  the  protection  which  Licinius  had  extended  to  Sinicius,  who
438  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.

he  proceeded  to  the  extremes  of  madness,  in  his  movements,  the divinely  favoured  emperor  ragarded  him  as  no  more  to  be  tolerated, but  taking  his  prudent  measures  and  mingling  the  firm principles  of  justice  with  his  humanity,  he  determines  to  come to  the  protection  of  those  who  were  so  miserably  oppressed  by the  tyrant ;  and  in  this,  by  banishing  smaller  pests,  he  thus  advanced to  save  vast  multitudes  of  the  human  race.  For  as  he had  exercised  only  his  humanity,  in  commiserating  him  the  time before  this,  a  man  who  was  by  no  means  deserving  of  compassion, it  proved  of  no  avail  to  him,  who  would  not  renounce  his iniquity,  but  rather  increased  his  madness  against  the  people  his subjects.  But  to  the  oppressed  there  was  no  hope  of  salvation left,  in  the  cruelties  they  endured  from  the  savage  beast.  Wherefore, also,  Constantino  the  protector  of  the  good,  combining  his hatred  of  wickedness  with  the  love  of  goodness,  went  forth  with  his son  Crispus,  the  most  benevolent  Cesar,  to  extend  a  saving  arm to  all  those  that  were  perishing.  Both,  therefore,  the  father  and son,  having  as  it  were  God  the  universal  King,  and  his  Son  our Saviour,  as  their  leader  and  aid,  drawing  up  the  army  on  all sides  against  the  enemies  of  God,  bore  away  an  easy  victory;
all  things  being  prospered  to  them  by  God  in  the  conflict  according to  their  wishes.  Suddenly  then,  and  sooner  than  said,  those that  but  yesterday  breathed  threats  and  destruction,  w^ere  no more,  not  even  leaving  the  memory  of  their  name.  Their  paintings, (their  effigies)  their  honours  received  the  deserved  contempt and  disgrace,  and  those  very  scenes  which  Licinius  had  seen  occurring to  the  iniquitous  tyrants,  these  same  he  experiened  himself. As  he  would  neither  receive  instruction,  nor  grow  wise  by the  chastisements  of  his  neighbours,  he  proceeded  in  the  same course  of  impiety,  and  was  justly  hurled  down  the  same  precipice with  them.  He,  therefore,  lay  prostrated  in  this  way.  But  the mighty  and  victorious  Constantino,  adorned  with  every  virtue of  religion,  with  his  most  pious  son,  Crispus  Cesar,  resembling  in all  things  his  father,  recovered  the  east  as  his  own,  and  thus  rehad  plotted  against  the  life  of  Constantine,  A.D.  314,  and  ten  years  afterwards  he was  overthrown,  and  deprived  of  the  imperial  dignity,  having  his  life  spared,  only for  a  short  time  at  the  entreaties  of  his  v/ife,  Constantine's  sister.

ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY.  439

stored  the  Roman  empire  to  its  ancient  state  of  one  united  body  ;
extending  their  peaceful  sway  around  the  world,  from  the  rising sun,  to  the  opposite  regions,  to  the  north  and  the  south,  even  to  the last  borders  of  the  dechning  day.  All  fear,  therefore,  of  those  who had  previously  afflicted  them,  was  now  wholly  removed.  They celebrated  splendid  and  festive  days  with  joy  and  hilarity.  All things  were  filled  with  light,  and  all  who  before  were  sunk  in sorrow^  beheld  each  other  with  smiling  and  cheerful  faces.  With choirs  and  hymns,  in  the  cities  and  villages,  at  the  same  time they  celebrated  and  extolled  first  of  all  God  the  universal  King, because  they  thus  were  taught,  then  they  also  celebrated  the praises  of  the  pious  emperor,  and  with  him  all  his  divinely  favoured children.  There  was  a  perfect  oblivion  of  past  evils,  and past  wickedness  was  buried  in  forgetfulness.  There  was  nothing but  enjoyment  of  the  present  blessings,  and  expectation  of  those yet  to  come.  Edicts  were  published  and  issued  by  the  victorious emperor,  full  of  clemency,  and  laws  were  enacted  indicative  of munificence  and  genuine  religion.

Thus,  then,  after  all  the  tyranny  had  been  purged  av/ay,  the empire  was  justly  reserved  firm  and  without  a  rival,  to  Constantino and  his  sons.  Who  first  sw^eeping  away  that  enmity  to  God, exhibited  by  the  former  rulers,  sensible  of  the  mercies  conferred upon  them  by  God,  exhibited  also  their  own  love  of  religion  and God,  with  their  piety  and  gratitude  to  Him,  by  those  works  and operations  which  they  presented  to  the  view  of  all  the  world.

With  the  divine  blessing,  the  end  of  the  Tenth  Book  of  the Ecclesiastical  History  of  Euscbius  Pamphilus.

THE  END.

INDEX

SUBJECTS  AND  AUTHORS,  ETC.,  OCCURRING  IN  THE  ECCLESIASTICAL
HISTORY  OF  EUSEBIUS.

The  number  refers  to  the  page.

Abraham  and  the  pious  ancients  were in  reality  Christians,  26.

Achior  the  Ammonite,  34.

Acts  of  Pilate  forged,  384.

Acts  or  records  respecting  the  martyrs Carpus,  Papylus,  and  Agathonice,  150.

Adrian's  epistle  in  favour  of  the  Christians, 137.

Adrianus  and  Eubulus,  martyrs,  369.

jEdesius,  a  martyr,  357.

JElia,  Jerusalem,  62.  132.

iElius  Publius,  bishop  of  Debeltum,  203.

Africanus,  his  epistle  to  Aristides  on  the genealogy  of  Christ,  30.  32.  250.

Agabus,  his  prediction,  53.

Agapius,  a  martyr,  358.

Agathobuli,  313.

Agbarus,  or  Abgarus,  his  epistle,  43.

Agreement  of  the  churches  on  the  passover,  211.

Agrippa  appointed  king,  53.

Alabarch  of  Alexandria,  55.

Albinus,  procurator  of  Judea,  78.

Alcibiades,  a  writer,  199.

Alexander,  assistant  bishop  of  Jerusalem, 229.

,  his  epistle  to  the  Antinoites,
and  to  the  inhabitants  of  Antioch,  230.

—  ■,  his  epistle  to  Origen,  234.

his  epistle  to  Demetrius  of
Alexandria,  240.
Allegorical  exposition  of  Scripture,  68.
Ambrose,  237.
Ammia,  a  prophetess,  199.
Ammianus  and  Quadratus,  prophets,  199.
Ammonarium,  a  martyr,  260.
Ammonius,  a  Christian  philosopher,  238,
239.
Anatolius,  312.  314.
Anencletus  of  Rome,  100.
Annals  and  public  records  of  Edessa,  44.
Annianus  of  Alexandria,  79.
Antilegomenoi,  books  so  called,  323.

Antinous  deified,  135.

Antipater,  father  of  Herod  the  Great,
and  son  of  Herod  of  Ascalon,  30.
Antonine's  epistle,  14.
Apelles,  a  disciple  of  Tatian,  192.
Apion  on  the  Hexaemeron,  212.
Apocalypse,  whether  written  by  St.  John,
297.
Apocrypha,  mentioned  by  Hegesippus,
158.
ApoUonius,  a  martyr,  205.
Apollonius  refutes  the   Cataphrygians,
200.
Apollinaris,   bishop    of   Hierapolis,  his
testimony  to  the  le^io  fnlminea,  184.
Apology  of  Justin,  139.
Apostles,  their  successors,  84  ;  those  that
lived  in  marriage,  1 15.
,   others   so   called   beside   the
twelve,  43.
Appianus,  353.
Aquila,  his  version,  189.  236.
Arabianus,  213.
Arabian  dissension,  253.
Archelaus,  Herod's  son,  31.
Aristarchus,  Paul's  companion,  74.
Aristides,  the  apologist,  130.
Aristo  ofPella,  132.
Aristobulus,  313.
Artemon,  213.

Ascetics  mentioned  by  Philo,  66.
Asclepiodotus,  Theodotus,  Hermophilus,
and  Apollonius,  followers  of  Artemon,
216.
Asclepius  Marcionita,  367.
Astyrius,  287.
Attains,  his  version,  182.
AviHus,  bishop  of  Alexandria,  100.
Author  unknown  against  the  Phrygians.

195;  also  against  Artemon,  213.
Authors  that  wrote  in  defence  of  Christianity in  the  reign  of  Adrian,  129
Auxentius,  martyr,  350.

3  K  167

468

INDEX.

B

Babylas,  bishop  of  Antioch,  249.

Babylon,  Rome  so  called  by  Peter,  G5.

Bacchylides  and  Elpistus,  159.

Bacchylus,  bishop  of  Corinth,  206.

Baptism  of  heretics,  276.

Barcabbas  and  Barcoph,  fictitious  prophets of  Basilides,  133.

Barchochebas  the  impostor,  131.

Bardesanes  the  Syrian,  167.

Barnabas,  one  of  the  seventy  disciples, 42.

Basilides,  133.

Benjamin,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  130.

Baryllus,  bishop  of  Bostra,  251.

Bishops  of  Rome  under  Trajan,  128.

,  of  Jerusalem  from  the  time  of
our  Saviour  until  Adrian,  130.

of  Alexandria  under  Adrian,
130.

,  of  Rome  and  Alexandria  under
Antonine,  137.

under  Verus,  156

of  Antioch,  156

list  of,  185.

under  Commodus,  190,  206.

in  the  days  of  Origen,  243.

under  Decius  and  Gallus,  271.

Bitthera,  a  fortified  town  of  Judea,  131.

Blastus  creates  a  schism  at  Rome,  194.
C

Caius,  an  ecclesiastic,  writes  respecting the  tombs  of  Peter  and  Paul,  80;  also on  Cerinthus,  113;  on  the  tombs  of Philip,  116.

Caius  (Caligula,)  his  insolence  to  Philo, 55.

profanes  the  temple,  56.

Caius  and  Alexander,  martyrs  of  Apamea,  199.

CtEsarea  Philippi,  called  Paneas  by  the Phenicians,  382.

Candidus  on  the  Hexaemeron,  212.

Canon  on  the  passover,  312.

Caparathffia,  a  village,  112.

Carpocrates,  the  heresiarch,  133.

Cassianus,  bishop  of  Jerusalem  after Marcus,  192.

Catechumens,  martyrs,  223.

Cathari,  heretics,  263.

Catholic,  sense  of  the  term,  83.  265.

Celsus,  253.

Cemeteries  or  dormitories.  Christian  burial places,  so  called,  281.

Census,  mentioned  by  Josephus,  28.

Cerdon,  heresiarch,  138.

Cerdon,  third  bishop  of  Alexandria, 104.

Cerinthus,  nature  of  his  doctrine,  1 14.

,  in  the  bath,  142.

Cesti,  books  written  by  Africanus,  250.

Chceremon,  bishop  of  the  city  of  Nile, 261.

Christ's  manifestation,  28.

■— name  applied  anciently  to  others
27.

Christians  characterized,  26.

,  so  called  first  at  Antioch,  53.

Christianity,  its  rapid  spread,  52.

Chrysophora,  160.

Churches  rebuilt  and  dedicated,  405.

Claudius,  famine  in  his  reign,  57.

Clement  of  Rome,  his  testimony  on  the preference  given  by  the  apostle  to James,  49.

•  on  the  gospel  of  Mark,  64,  65.

his  epistle,  101.  124.

on  the  martyrdom  of  James,  58

Clement  of  Alexandria,  his  works,  191.
232.

,  books  of  Scripture  mentioned  by
him,  233.

,  narrative  respecting  the  apostle
John,  105.

■,  on  the  Nicolaites,  1 14.

,  on  the  apostles   that  lived  in
matrimony,  115.

Cleobians,  157.

Cleophas,  brother  of  Joseph,  99.

Confession  and  martyrdom,  230.

Conflicts  and  trials  of  the  martyrs,  320.

Constantine's  ordinances,  429.

■  on  the  property  of  the  Christians, 430.

grant  of  privileges,  432.

his  victory,  435.

Cornelius,  the  first  convert  from  the  city of  Cesarea,  51.

Cornelius,  bishop  of  Rome,  263.

Council  at  Rome  against  Novatus,  263.

Council  against  Paul  of  Samosata,  304.

Crescens  sent  to  Gaul,  85.

Crescens,  the  cynic  and  enemy  of  Justine, 150.

,  his  character,  152.

Crispus,  son  of  Constantine,  438.
Cyprian,  on  the  baptism  of  those  who
turned  from  heresy,  272.
Cyrenius,  the  name,  a  corruption   of
Quirinius,  28.

D

Damas,  bishop  of  Mag-nesia,  120.

INDEX.

469

Deacons  ordained,  48.

Death  of  the  tyrants  that  persecuted  the
Christians,  391.
Debeltura,    a   Thracian    colony    under
^Uus  PubUus  JuUus,  203.
Decius,  persecution  raised  by  him,  254.
Decius  and  Gallus,  271.
Dedication  of  the  renewed  churches,  405.
Demetrius,  bishop  of  Alexandria,  222,
249.
Demolition  of  the  churches,  and  decrees
against  the  Christians,  319.
Dpputation  from  the  Jews  of  Alexandria, 54.
Desposynoi,  JiT-otruvoi,  relatives   of  our
Lord,  34.
Descendants  of  David  sought,  99.
Destruction  of  the  enemies  of  religion,
401.
Discrepancy  supposed  to  exist  between
Matthew  and  Luke,  31.
Dionysius,  the  Areopagite,  85.
Dionysius,    successor  of    Heraclas,    at
Alexandria,  252.

,  his  account  of  himself,  256.

,  other  accounts,  261.

of  Serapion,  267.

,  epistle  to  Cyprian,  273.

to  Novatus,  268.

,  on  the  heresy  of  Cerinthus,
and  the  apocalypse,  113.

-,  respecting  Nepos,  205.

epistle  to  Germanus,  in  his
own  defence,  256.
,  on    those    who    suffered    at
Alexandria,  257.
,  epistle  to  Cornelius,   bishop
of  Rome,  269.

,  to  the  Romans,  270.

,  to  Hcrmamon,  271.

,  on  Macrianus,  278.  294.

,  to  Stephen  of  Rome,  on  the
baptism  of  those  who  had  fallen  awav,
272,  273.
•,  to  Philemon,  a  presbyter  of
Rome,  274.
,  to   the  presbyter  Dionysius,
276.
-,  to  Xystus,  on  heretical  baptism, 276.

to  Domitius  and  Didymus  on
the  persecutions,  283.

,  on  the  passover,  290.

to  Hierax,  an  E  gyptian  bish
op, on  the  sedition  at  Alexandria,  290.
•,  to  the  Alexandrians  on  the
Dionysius,  bishop  of  Corinth,  his  testimony to  the  preaching  of  Peter  and Paul  at  Corinth,  and  in  Italy,  80.

,  his  various  epistles,  1 58.

,  on  the  contributions  of  the
Roman  church,  160

-,  mentions  Dionysius  the  Areo
paschal  festival,  292 ;    see  also  263, 304.  148.  150.  169  ;  et  alibi  passim.

40

pagite,  85.  159.
Disciples  of  the  seventy,  we  have  no
catalogue  extant,  42.
Dissensions  in  Asia,  28.
Distresses   in  the  reign  of  Maximinus
389.
Divinity  of  Christ,  15.
DocetfB,  231.
Domitian's  persecution,  101,  102.

— —  his  honours  revoked,  103.

Domninus,  231.
Domninus,  martyr,  359.
Dositheans,  157.

Ebionites,  112.

Ecclesiastical  library  founded  by  Alex
ander,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  241.
Ecclesiastical  writers,  135.
Edessa,  city  devoted  to  Christ,  49.
Egyptian  martyrs  in  Phoenice,  325 ;  in
Egypt,  327;  in  Thebais,  327.
Egyptian  impostor,  78.
Eleutherus,  bishop  of  Rome,  206.
Emperors  Constantine  and  Licinius  is»

sue  decrees,  426.  428.
subsequent  war  and  defeat  of
Licinius,  437.
Encratites,  heretics,  166.

EvJix3>;)tc«  ^aikoi,  83.

Epistle  to  the  Hebrews,  124.

Epistles  of  the  apostles,  those  that  are genuine  and  spurious,  83.

Erynnes,  or  furies,  92.

Essenes,  159.

Evangelists,  in  the  reign  of  Trajan,  123.

Euarestus,  fourth  bishop  of  Rome,  120.

Eucharist  sent  from  one  bishop  to  another, 210.

Euclid,  Aristotle,  and  Theophrastus,  authors much  admired  by  the  followers of  Artemon,  215.

Eunuch  or  prince  of  Ethiopia,  baptized by  Philip,  the  first-fruits  of  the  gospel, 50.

Evodius,  bishop  of  Antioch,  104.

Eusebius,  his  chronicle,  14.

■ ,  demonstration  and  preparation
of  the  gospel,  21

,  r^ooi  of  niartvrs.  150.  '  6«.  183

470

INDEX.

Eusebius,  defence  of  Origen,  243.  252,
253.

. ,  life  of  Pamphilus,  252.  315.

,  panegj-ric    on    the    returning
peace,  406.

Fabianus,    his  remarkable  appointment
to  the  episcopate,  248.
Fadus,  procurator  of  Judea,  61.
False  teachers  under  Adrian,  also  Basi
lides  and  Saturninus  under  Antonine,
132.
Famine  in  the  reign  of  Claudius,  57.
Famine,  pestilence,  and  war  in  the  reign
of  Maximinus,  386.
Firmilianus,  a  cruel  judge,  373,  et  alibi.
Florus,  procurator  of  Judea,  81.

,  his  cruelty  and  oppression,  81 .

Form   of    salutation   in   the    primitive
church,  142.

Galileans  mentioned  by  Josephus,  28.
Gallienus,  peace  after   his   reign,  285.

295.
Gaul,  martyrs  of,  169,  170.  et  seq.
Genealogy 'of  Christ,  32,33.  109.
Georse,    j-^  ■?'-'.  derivation  and  import,
34.
Germanicus,  a  martyr,  143.
Germanus,  a  martyr,  365.
Gnostics,  or  Carpocratians,  133.
Gospel,  proclaimed  at  so  late  a  period,
whyl    18,  19.
,  places  where  it  was  preached  by
the  apostles,  82.
Gospels,  their  order,  107.
Great  Sabbath,  145.

H

Harmony  of  Moses  and  Jesus,  239.
Hebrew  or  Syro-Chaldaic,  127.
Hegesippus,    his   statement    respecting
James  the  brother  of  our  Lord,  76.  On
the  relatives  of  our  Lord,  102,   103.

On  the  martyrdom  of  Simeon,  117.
Helen,  queen  of  the  Osrhoenians,  61.
Helcesaites,  254.
Hemerobaptists,  159.
Heraclctus,  on  the  apostle,  212.
Heraclas,  bishop  of  Alexandria,  235.
Herod,  grandson  of  Herod  of  Ascalon,
the  first  foreigner  that  reigned  over
Judea,  29,  30.
,  manner  in  which  he  obtained
the  government,  33,  34.
,  his  son  Herod  flourished  in  the
Herod,  his  various  policy,  31.

,  destroys  the  genealogical  tables,
34.

,  cruelty  and  death,  35.  37.

,  the  younger,  together  with  Philip and  Lysanias,  succeeds  Archelaus in  the  telrarchy  of  Judea,  39.
-,  is  exiled  with  Herodias,  5i
time  of  our  Saviour,  29.

Herod  Agrippa,  appointed  by  Caius,  53

,  his  death,  59.

Hypoty poses,  or  institutions  of  Clement, 232.

IJ

James,  the  brother  of  John,  slain,  58.

James  the  Just,  the  brother  of  our  Lord, and  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  his  martyrdom, 75.

,  preferred  by  Peter  and  John,  49.

,  his  episcopal  seat,  289.

Jews,  their  miseries,  72.  81.  Seditions, 72.

,  last  siege  and  destruction  of  Jerusalem, 85.  87.  129

Ignatius,  second  bishop  of  Antioch,  104.

,  his  epistles,  120,  121.

Imperial  decrees  after  the  peace,  426.

Inscription,  Simoni  Deo  Sancto,  62.

John,  St.,  Revelations,  101  ;  exiled  to Patmos,  narrative  respecting  him,  105.

,  his  death,  1 1 6.

John  the  baptist,  testimony  of  Josephus respecting  him,  41.

John,  a  martyr,  his  wonderful  memory, 376.

John  and  Philip,  place  of  their  interment, 116.

Josephus,  his  antiquities,  29 ;  Jewish war,  29.

,  on  Herod,  30.  36,  37.

,  on  Pontius  Pilate,    39 ;    on
the  different  high-priests  at  the  time of  our  Lord,  40  ;  testimony  respecting Christ,  42  ;  on  Philo's  embassy,  54, 55 ;  irritation  of  the  Jews  against Pilate,  56  ;  coincidence  with  Scripture, 59,  60,  61  ;  on  the  destruction of  the  Jews  at  the  passover,  72;  on the  Egyptian  impostor,  73  ;  mentions James  the  just,  78  ;  disorders of  the  Jews  under  Florus,  81  ;  their great  calamities,  86,  87,  88  ;  horrid transaction,  91,  92  ;  preludes  to  the approaching  ruin,  94,  95  ;  his  works, 96  ;  testimony  on  the  Scriptures,  97.

Joshua  and  Jesus,  the  same  name,  22
Irenseus,  on  Simon  Magus,  63.
,  on  Menander,  112.

Cerinthus,  114.

INDEX.

471

Irenaeus  quotes  Ignatius,  122.

,  on  Polycarp,  141,  142.

,  on  Proverbs,  158.

,  on  Tatian,  165,  166.

,    against     the    schismatics    at
Rome,  203.

-,  epistle  to  Florinus,  204.

Judas,  the  historian,  225.

Judas  of  Galilee,  29.

Julian,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  192.

Julian  of  Apamea,  198.

Justin,  on  Simon  Magus,  62  ;  Menan
der,    112;    his    apology,    135.    139;

against  Crescens,  the  cynic,  151  ;  on
the  martyrs,   152,  153;  against  Try
phon  and  Marcion,  155.
Justus,  third  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  120.

L

Lapsed  Christians  kindly  received  by  the martyrs,  181.

Leonides,  father  of  Origen,  a  martyr, 217.

Library  of  .^lia,  241.

Licinius,  union  with  Constantine,  391.

,  change  of  conduct,  and  his  defeat, 433.  437  ;  and  death,  438.

Lucianus  defends  Christianity  before Maximinus,  and  dies  a  martyr,  385.

Lucius,  a  martyr,  154.

Luke,  St.,  a  physician,  85.

M

Macrianus  stimulates  Valerian  to  persecution, 278  ;  is  patron  of  the  magi, 278  ;  characterized  by  Dionysius,  279  ;
his  death,  294.

Malchion  refutes  Paul  of  Samosata,  303.

Manes  and  Manichees,  309.

Marcianus,  his  heresy,  231.

Marcion,  138.  142.  192.

Marcion,  a  brother  of  Irenaius,  212.

Marcionists,  157.

Marcus,  first  bishop  of  Jerusalem  from the  Gentiles,  138.  192.

Maria,  a  lake  in  Egypt,  65.

Marinus,  a  martyr,  286.

Mark,  St.,  first  proclaimed  Christianity in  Egypt,  65.

,  his  gospel  approved  by  Peter,
64.

Martyrdom  of  Simeon,  117;  of  Polycarp, 149.

Martyrs  mentioned  by  Justin,  153  ;  of Gaul,  169  ;  of  Alexandria,  257.  285  ;
others,  348.  384,  &c.

Masbothoeans,  158.

Maturus,  Sanctus,Blandina,  and  Attains, martyrs,  175,  176.

Maxentius,  son    of  Maximian,  his  character and  conduct,  339,  340.
Maximian's  cruelty  and  death,  338.
Maximinus,  his  persecution,  376.

his    pretended    relaxation,
379.

-,  his  rescript,  386.  394.

Maximilla,  Marcion's  companion,  198.

Maximus,  Sidonius,  and  Celerinus  abandon the  party  of  JXovatus,  264.

Maximus,  on  the  origin  of  evil,  212.

Melito  on  the  pussover,  1 62  ;  on  informers, 1 62  ;  his  apology  to  the  emperor Marcus,  1 63 ;  his  selections from  Scripture,  154.

Melitine  legion,  184.

Menander,  the  impostor.   111.

Menandrians,  157.

Miltiades  the  historian,  199.

Miracles  in  primitive  times,  186.

• of  John,  attested  by  Apollonius,
202.

Modestus  unmasks  the  error  of  Marcion, 161.

Montanus,  heresy  of,  165.  195.

Morals  of  the  persecutors,  339.

Moses,  a  martyr,  267.

Musanus,  165.

N

Name  of  Jesus  and  Christ,  occurring  in
the  Old  Testament,  21,  22.  27.
Narcissus,  third   bishop   of  Jerusalem,
192.
• ,  miracle  performed  by   liim,
227.

rigid  discipline,  228.

Natalius,  his  apostacy  and  return,  214,
Nemesion,  a  martyr,  260.

Nepos  and  his  schism,  295.

Nero's  cruelty,  74.

• persecution,  79.

Nicolaus  and  his  followers,  1 1 5.

Novatus,  his  conduct,  heresy,  &c.,  263.
276.

0

Olympiads,  writers  of,  57.

'o.uo>.:'^co//.=v:<,  books  of  Scripturc  so  called, 84.

Order  of  the  gospels,  197.

Origen,  his  education,  217  ;  a  pupil  of Clement,  225  ;  his  testimony  to  the preaching  and  martyrdom  of  Paul,  82 ;
consistency  of  life,  221  ;  leaves  his philosophical  school,  221  ;  self-denial, 222  ;  providential  escape,  223  ;  resolute act,  226  ;  difficulties,  226,  227 , visits  Rome,  235  ;  Heraclas  associated
472

INDEX.

with  him,  235 ;  his  great  study  and research,   236;  remarks  on  Symmachus'  growing  celebrity,  and  testimony from  the  Gentiles,  237,  238  ;  opposed by    Porphyry,    238  ;    his   refutation, 2£^9  ;  his  reasons  for  his  application to  Greek    literature,    240  ;  called  to Arabia,  and    obtains   the   priesthood, 240  ;  his  great  zeal  for  biblical  learning, 243  ;  Eusebius  wrote  his  defence, 243;  his   review    of  the    Scriptures, 244,   245  ;  gospels,  245 ;    epistle    to the  Hebrews,  246  ;  book  on  martyrdom, 248  ;  his  pupils,  249  ;  commentaries written  in  Palestine,  251  ;  convinces Beryllus,  252  ;  his  sufferings, 255  ;  his   defence  by    Eusebius  and Pamphilus,  255.
P
Palmas,  bishop  of  Amastris,  159.
Pamphilus,  martyr  and  friend  of  Eusebius, 368.
Paneas,  a  place  noted  for  a  miracle,  288.
Panegyric  of  Eusebius    on  the  peace,
406.
Pantaenus,  the  philosopher  and   Christian, 190.
Papias,  bishop  of  Hierapolis,  his  works, 124  ;  how  he  derived  his  information, 125 ;  shows  that  there  were  two  by the  name  of  John  in  Ephesus,  125  ;
testimony  respecting  Aristion,    126;
his  merits  as  a  writer,  126.
Papirius  and  Melito,  martyrs,  209.
Paraclete,  194.
Passover,  discussion  respecting  the  time,
207.
Pastor,  the  book  so  called,  138.
Paul  ofSamosata,  213.

refuted  by  Malchion,  303.  312.

Paul's,  St.,  defence,  acquittal,  and  martyrdom, 74.
Paulinus,  bishop  of  Tyre,  410.
Paulus,  a  confessor,  361.
Peace  and  tranquillity  restored,  403.
Pella,  a  place  of  refuge  for  the   Christians, 86.
Persecutions,  217,  218.    et  alia.
Persecutors,  their  morals,  339.

,  the  events  that  befell  them,
343.
Pestilence  in  the  reign  of  Maximinus, 389.

at  Alexandria,  292.

Peter  at  Rome  against  Simon  Magus,
63.
Peter  and  Paul  at  Rome,  79.
Petrus  Ascetes,  307.

Phileas    addresses    the    inhabitants   of
Thmuis,  329.
Philip,  the  apostle,  116.
Philip  Cesar,  252.
Phihp  of  Gortyna,  161.
Phrygian  heresy,  192.
Pilate  exasperates  the  Jews,  DG.

destroys  himself,  57.

Pinytus,  bishop  of  Crete,  writes  to  L)io
nysius,  159.
Pliny's  communication  to  Trajan,  1 1 9
Polycarp,  120.  143.
Polycarp  and  Anicetus,  210.
Polycrates  against  Victor,  116.  208.
Pope  or  papa,  origin  of  the  term,  275.
Pontus  and  Caricus,  231.
Porphyry,  the  opponent  of  the    Christians, 238.

a  martyr,  372.

Potamiasna,  a  martyr,  223.

Pothinus,  a  martyr,  1 74.

Preaching,  evangelists,  123.

Predictions  of  Christ,  92.

Predictions  respecting  Christ,  15.

Prelates  that  suffered  for  the  faith,  317.
335.  374.

Preparation  and  demonstration  of  the gospel  works  of  Eusebius,  21.

Priesthood,  Jewish  changes,  78.

Privileges  and  immunities  granted  the clergy  by  Constantine,  432.

Procopius,  Alpheus,  and  Zaccheus,  martyrs, 349.

Ptolemy,  a  martyr,  153.

PubUus,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  192

Quadratus,  an  apologist,  129.
a  prophet,  123.  199,
Quirinius,  see  Cyrenius,  28.

R

Rain  in  consequence  of  the  prayers  ot the  Christians,  184.

Reasons  for  the  late  appearance  and  introduction of  the  gospel,  18.

Religion  of  Christ  not  a  novel  production, 25.

Rescript  of  Maximinus,  386.

Restoration  and  dedication  of  the  churches, 404.

Resurrection,  called  ■rr-u.Kiyyivi<ri:i.^  180.

Revelation  of  John,  297.

Revocation  of  the  emperors,  and  the subsequent  reverse,  382.

Rhodon,  pupil  of  Tatian,  192.

,  against  Marcion,  192.

Rome's  first  bishops,  82.

INDEX.

473

Romanus,  a  martyr,  350.
Rufus,  governor  of  Judea,  131.

S

Sabellius.  his  heresy,  274.
Sacerdotal  plate,  208.
Sadducus,  a  rioter,  29, Sagaris,  a  bishop  and  martyr,  208.
Salutation,  form  of,  142.
Sanctus,  a  martyr,  172.
Saturnilians,  157.
Saturninus  of  Antioch,  133.
Schismatics  at  Rome,  203.
Scriptures,   those  acknowledged  as  genuine, 110.

,  reviewed  by  Origen,  245.

See  of  St.  James  at  Jerusalem,  289.
Sects  mentioned  by  Hegesippus,  157.
Sejanus  attempts  to  destroy  the  Jews,
55.
Seleucus,  a  martyr,  372.
Serapion,  bishop  to  Caricus,  203.  231.

,  a  martyr,  258.

,  an  aged  believer  mentioned  by
Dionysius,  267.
Sextus  on  the  resurrection,  212.
Silvanus  and  John,  martyrs,  375.
Simeon,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  99.

,  his  martyrdom,  117.

Simon  Magus  pretends  faith,  50.

his  magic  rites,  &c.,  62.

Soter,  bishop  of  Rome,  168.

Statue  at  Antioch,  382.

Statues  and  images  of  Christ  and  the
apostles,   p'-eservcd  by    the    gentiles,
289.
Statue  of  the  woman  having  an  hemorrhage, 289.
Stromateus,  meaning  of  tlie  term,  232.
Style  of  the  apostles,  108.
Successors  of  St.  James,  131.
Sufferings  of  the  Christians   in   Gaul,
169.
Symmachus,  236.

T

Tatian's   errors,  166;  on  Justin,   152;

Diatessaron,  152.
TertuUian,  his  apology,  51,52.  184  ;  on
Domitian,  103.  119.
Thaddeus,  sent  by  St.  Thomas   to  Ag
barus,  45.
rhecla,  a  martyr,  352.
Themison,  198.
Theodosia,  a  martyr,  359.
Theodorus,  a  pupil  of  Origen,  249.
rheodotion,  the  translator  of  the  Bible,
189.
TLcodotus,  a  leader  in  heresy,  214.
40=^

Theodulus,  a  martyr,  372.

Theophilus,  bishop  of  Antioch,  161.

Therapeutae,  and  Therapeutrides,  66.

Theudas,  the  impostor,  61.

Thomas  or  Judas  sends  Thaddeus,  45.

Thraseas,  a  martyi",  202.

Tiberius  proposes  Christ  as  a  God,  51.

Timotheus,  a  martyr,  352.

Timothy  and  Titus,  84.

Torture,  different  modes  applied  to   tho
martyrs,  333.
Town  of  Christians  burnt,  332.
Tradition  secured  by  record,  121.
Trajan  prohibits  search  to  be  made  for
the  Christians,  1 1 9.
Tryphon,  the  Jew,  refuted  by  Justin,
154.

U

Ulpian  and  ^desius,  martyrs,  357.
Urbanus,  a  presbyter  of  Rome,  264, Urbicius,  a  judge,  153.

Valentina,  a  confessor,  36 1 .
Valentinian  heresy,  138.  141.  157.
Valerian  raises  a  persecution,  278.
Victor,   bishop   of  Rome,  reproved  by
Polycratcs,  208.
— — ,  admonished  by  Irenaeus,  209.

,  his  opinion,  214.
Victory  of  Constantine  and   Licinius,
397.
Victory  of  Constantine  over  Licinius,
437.
Vision  of  Dionysius,  275.

W

Wickedness  of  Licinius,  and  his  death,
433.
Word  of  God,  Christ  so  called,  19.  21.

22,  et  alibi  passim.
Works  written  in  the  days  of  Origen,
and  preserved  in  the  library  of  -^lia,
241.
Writers,   ecclesiastical,  in  the  days  of
Verus,  156.
,  those  that  flourished  in  the  days
of  Eusebius,  310.

X

Xystus,  or  Sixtus,  of  Rome,  276.  286.

Z

Zaccheus,  a  martyr,  349.
Zebina,  a  martyr,  365.
Zebinus,  bishop  of  Antioch,  249.
Zoticus  of  Comana,  198.  202.

CHROx^OLOGICAL   TABLE,
HE  STATE   OR   PERIOD  OF  THE   MOST  PROMINENT    PERSONS  AND   EVENTS
OCCURRING  IN  THE  ECCLESIASTICAL  HISTORY  OF  EUSEBIUS.

Ill  this  Table,  which  is  designed  chiefly  to  present  a  synopsis  of  the  principal  contemporary events  and  persons,  it  will  be  observed  that  the  dates  are  given  according  to  the  vulgar era,  or  four  years  later  than  the  true  time.  The  number  on  the  left  of  the  column  shows the  year,  on  the  right  is  given  the  page  of  the  work
A.  D.

1.  Oct.   Cas.  Augustus    being  emperor of  Rome,  Christ  was  bom  28
14.  Tiberius  succeeds  him.
33.  Christ  crucified  -         -  39

Tiberius  dies  in  the  twenty -third year  of  his  reign,  and  is  succeeded by  Caius  Caes.  Caligula  53
7.  James,  surnamed  the  Just,  bishop of  Jerusalem,  the  first  bishop  of the  first  Christian  church  49
The  mission  of  Thaddeus  to  Edessa  ....         49

The  name  Christian  grows  into  use at  Antioch.
41   Caligula  dies,  and  is  succeeded  by Claudius.
The  famine  mentioned  in  the  book of  Acts      -         -         -         -     58
43.  Herod  A  grippa  afflicts  the  church, and  puts  James  the  great,  brother of  John,  to  death  -         58

Herod  dies  ...         GO

Theudas,  the  impostor  -  61
Helen,  queen  of  the  Osrhoenians  61
Simon  Magus  -         -         62

Peter  at  Rome  -         -         63

Philo's   communication    with    Peter        -         ...         66
Sedition  of  the  Jews  at  Jerusalem,
and  consequent  destruction.

Agrippa,    Herod's    son,  appointed
king  of  the  Jews     -         -         72

54.  Claudius  dies,  and  is  succeeded  by
Tiberias  Claudius  Nero  -         72

l.Annianus,  bishop    of  Alexandria,
and  successor  of  St.  Mark        79

The  first  general  persecution  of  the
Christian  church     -         -         79

Peter  and  Paul  suffer  martyrdom,
and  Linus  is  the  first  bishop  of
Rome  ...         82

fi8.  Nero  dies,  and  is  succeeded  by  Gal
ba  and  Otho,  whose  successive
A.D.

reigns  did  not  embrace  more  than eighteen  months     -         -         85

69.  Vitellius    acknowledged     emperor,
but  is  soon  after  killed,  and  Vespasian declared  emperor  85
The   Jews  oppressed  by   grievous famine            -         -         -         87

70.  Capture  and   destruction    of  Jeru
salem by  Titus,  the  son  of  Vespasian -         -         69—87

Gnostics,  Dositheus,  Simon  Magus, Ebion,  Cerinthus.

Simeon,  son  of  Cleopas,  the  second bishop  of  Jerusalem.  It  is  worthy of  note  that  the  two  first  bishops of  this  church  were  relatives  of our  Lord        -        -         -         99

The  family  of   David  investigated by  Vespasian.
79.  Vespasian  dies,  and  is  succeeded  by his  son  Titus.

Anencletus,  bishop  of  Rome.
81.  Titus  dies,  and  is  succeeded  by  Domitian,  a  second  Nero     100,  101

Second  general  persecution         101

Clement,  bishop  of  Rome.

Avilius,  bishop  of  Alexandria     100

John  the  apostle,  exiled  to  Patmos  ...         101

94.  FI.    Clement   and  Domitilla,  martyrs.

The  grandchildren  of  Judas,  relatives of  our  Lord,  yet  living  102
96.  Death  of  Domilian,  who  is  succeeded by  Nerva.     Nerva  is  succeeded by  Trajan.
98.  Cerdon,  bishop  of  Alexandria     104

Clement  of  Rome  ;  Ign^itus  of  Antioch, successor  of  Evodius,  the first,  bishop  -         -         104

Simeon  of  Jerusalem  suffers  martyrdom, and  is  succeeded  by  Justus in  the  episcopate  -         120

474

CHRONOLOGICAL  TABLE.

475

a.D.

About  this  time  the  dates  cf  the succession  in  the  church  of  Jerusalem became  uncertain.  The first  fifteen  bishops  were  all  Hebrews. Of  these,  however,  we know  but  little  more  than  the names  of  the  succession  preserved by  Eusebius  -         -         131

After  these  followed  the  Gentile succession,  when  the  dates  became more  certain.  See  the  tabular view  of  the  bishops  appended to  this  table.
99.  The  apostle  John  dies  at  Ephesus.

Euarestus,  bishop  of  Rome         128

Primus,  bishop  of  Alexandria.

Alexander  succeeds   Euarestus   in
the  see  of  Rome     -         -         128

1 07.  Ignatius  s uifers  martyrdom.

117.  Trajan  dies,  and   is  succeeded  by
Adrian         -        -         -         129

Quadratus  and  Aristides  write  a defence  of  Christianity  addressed to  Adrian      -         -         -         129

Xystus,  or  Sixtus,  bishop  of  Rome.

Justus  of  Alexandria  ;  Telesphorus succeeds  Xystus  at  Rome,  and Eumenes  succeeds  Justus  at Alexandria  -         -         -         3  31

Barchochcbas  the  impostor         131

The  last  siege  of  the  Jews,  when the  name  of  Jerusalem  was changed  and  called  ^lia,  in  honour of  the  emperor,  ^lius  Adrian -        -         .  132

About  this  time  appeared  the  heresies of  Menander,  Saturninus,  and Basil  ides,  the  offsprmg  of  the heresy  of  Simon  Magus  133

Adrian  forbids  the  Christians  to  be punished  without  trial  136

Hegesippus  and  Justin   contemporary writers  -         -         135
138.  Adrian    dies,  and  is  succeeded  by Antoninus  Pius     -         -         137

Hyginus,  successor  of  Telesphorus at  Rome        -         -         -         137

Valentine  and  Cerdon,  Gnostics, notorious  at  Rome         -         137

Justin  addresses  his  apology  to  Antonine,  by  which  the  emperor  is induced  to  send  his  edict  to  the cities  of  Asia  -         139,  140

Pius,  bishop  of  Rome,  is  succeeded
by  Anicetus  -         -         141

161.  Marcus  Aurelius    Antoninus   suc
A.D.

ceeds  Antoninus  Pius,  and  is  associated with  Lucius  Antoninus Verus,  his  brother  -         142

163.  Justin  addresses  a  second  apology to  the  emperors  ;  about  the  same time  also  Athenagoras  and  Tatian wrote  their  apologies.
166.  Martyrdom  of  Justin  and  Polycarp         -         -         -      149,  150

Fourth  persecution  ;  Anicetus  succeeded by  Soter  in  the  see  of Rome,  and  Celadion  succeeded  by Agrippinus  in  the  see  of  Alexandria -         -         -         156

Heron,  Eros,  Theophilus,  bishops of  Antioch  -         -         156

Dionysius  of  Corinth,  Pinytus  of
Crete,    Philip    Apollinaris,    and
Melito,  Musanus  Modestus,  and
Irenaeus,    contemporary    writers
156

169.  L.  Verus  dies.

The  Christian  legion  pray  for  rain, and  victory  over  the  Marcomanni, whence  the  legion  is  called  fulminea  .         -         .         184

Eleutherus  of  Rome  -         168

Bardesanes  of  Syria  -         167

177.  Martyrs   of  Lyons  and  Vienna  in
Gaul  -        -         -         169

Syriac  and  Italian  translations  of the  New  Testament  are  made about  these  times,  as  also  those of  Aquila,  Symmachus,  and Theodotion.
180.  Antonine  dies,  and  is  succeeded  by Commodus  -         -         190

Agrippinus  is  succeeded  by  Julian in  the  see  of  Alexandria  190

Pantaenus,   the  philosopher,  at  the
head  of  the  Alexandrian  school
190

Clement  of  Alexandria,  the  pupil of  Pantsenus         -         -         191

Narcissus,  bishop  of  Jerusalem, being  the  fifteenth  of  the  Gentile succession,  which  commenced after  the  invasion  of  Judea  under Adrian         -         -         -         192

Rhodo  opposes  the  errors  of  Marcion     -         -         -         -         192

Phrygian  errors,  Montanus,  Priscilla  Maximilla     -         191—19^.

Blastus,  schismatic,  at  Rome      194

Miltiades  and  Apollonius,  ecclesiastical writers ;  the  latter  dies  a martyr  -        -        -         205

3  L

476

CHRONOLOGICAL  TABLE.

A.D.

Eleutherus  is  succeeded  by  Vicior  '
m  the  see  of  Rome  ;  and  Julian of  Alexandria  by  Demetrius  206

Serapion,  bishop  of  Antioch       206

Nacissus  of  Jerusalem,  Bachyllus of  Corinth,  and  Polycrates  at Ephesus.

The  question  respecting  the  passover  is  now  agitated       -         207

Artemon's  errors  revived  by  Paul ofSamosata  -         -         213

Natalius,  Asclepiodotus     -         214

192.  Pertinax.

193.  Didius  JuUus.

194.  Septimius  Severus,  emperor.
Tertullian  writes  his  apology      2 1 6
Fifth  persecution      -         -         217
Martyrdom  of  Philip,  governor  in
Egypt,  Leonidas,  and  others 205.  Irenaeus  and  the  martyrs  at  Lyons.
Origen     -         -         -         -         218
Clement  succeeds  Pantsenus  in  the
Alexandrian  school About  the  same  time  flourished  Judas the  historian,  Alexander  of Jerusalem,  Demetrius  of  Alexandria, and  Porphyry,  the  opponent of  Christianity      -  238,  239

211.  A.  Caracalla  and  Geta,  emperors.

217.  Macrinus  with  his  son.
Zephyrinus  of  Rome,  successor  of
Victor,  is  succeeded  by  Calisthus,  who  again  left  the  church to  Urbanus  -         -         -         242

218.  Heliogabalus      (alias    Antoninus)

succeeds  Macrinus         -         242
222.  Alexander  Severus,  emperor      242

Philetas  succeeds  Asclepiades  in  the see  of  Antioch      -         -         242

Mamaea,  Alexander's  mother,  favourable to  Christianity  242

Hippolytus,  an  ecclesiastical  writer      -        -        -         -         242

Heraclas  succeeds  Demetrius  in  the see  of  Alexandria  -         247

Firmilianus  bishop  of  Cesarea  in Cappadocia  -         -         -         247

Theoctistus  bishop  of  Cesarea  in Palestine.
235.  Alexander  assassinated  by  Maximinus  Thrax,  who  is  proclaimed emperor,  and  commences  the sixth  persecution  -  -  248
238.  Maximinus  Thrax  is  succeeded  by Gordian.

Pontianus  is  succeeded  by  Anteros in  the  see  of  Rome,  who  was succeeded  by  Fabianus  248

A.D.

Heraclas  bishop  of  Alexandria  249

Zebinus  of  Antioch  is  succeeded  by
Babylas        -         -         -         249

Africanus,  author  of  the  work  called
Cesti   -         -         -         -         251

Beryllus  of  Arabia    -         -         251

244.  Gordian  is  succeeded  by  Philip  th«5

Arabian.

Origen's     works     on     the     Scrip
tures    -         -         -         -         250

Heraclas  is  succeeded  by  Dionysius
in  the  see  of  Alexandria         252

Dissensions  of  the  Arabians       253

Heresy  of  the  Helcesaites.

250.  Decius  succeeds  Philip.

Seventh  persecution  -         254

Alexander,  bishop  of  Jerusalem,  dies a  martyr,  and  is  succeeded  by Mazabanes.
Babylas  of  An<tioch  also  died  in prison,  and  was  succeeded  by Fabius  -         -         -         255

Origen's  great  sufTerings  and   tortures   ...         -         255
The  sufferings  of  Dionysius      256
The  martyrs  at  Alexandria        257
Novatus     creates     a     schism      at Rome-         ...         263
Fabianus   suffers   martyrdom,    and Cornelius  bishop  of  Rome     263
Cyprian  of  Carthage,  and  Fabinua of  Antioch   -         -         -         267
Dionysius  writes  to  Novatus      268
The  dispute  between  Cyprian  of Carthage  and  Stephen  of  Rome 272

253.  Gallus  emperor.

Lucius  bishop  of  Rome    -         271

254.  Valerianus  emperor.

Stephen  bishop  of  Rome  -         273

The  following  bishops  at  this  time
were    contemporary :    Demetria
nus  of  Antioch,  Theoctistus  of
Cesarea,    Mazabanes    of    ^Elia,
Marinus  of  Tyre,  Heliodorus  of
Laodicea,    Helenus    of    Tarsus.

Stephen  was  succeeded  by  Xys
tus  or  Sixtus  IL    -         -         273

The  Sabellian  heresy         -         274

Valerian  stimulated  by  Macrianus
to  persecute  -         -         278

Dionysius  bishop  of  Rome         302

The    sufferings    of    Dionysius   of
Alexandria  -         -         -         280

The  schism  of  Nepos        -         295

259,  Gallienus     sole    emperor    en    the
capture  of    his   father    Valerian
285

CHRONOLOGICAL  TABLE.

477

A.D.

264.
268.

268.

270.

272.

275.
276, 277.

282.

283.

284.

287,
302

304,
310.

Cyprian  and  Laurentius  suffered martyrdom.

The  episcopal  see  of  James  at  Jerusalem held  in  great  veneration in  these  times       -         -         289

Dionysius  of  Alexandria  dies,  and is  succeeded  by  Maximus       303

Paul  of  Samosata  creates  a  schism, and  is  condemned  in  a  council at  Antioch   ...         302

Claudius  emperor  of  Rome        303

FeUx,  successor  of  Dionysius  of Rome,  is  succeeded  by  Eutychianus,  who  was  soon  after  succeeded by  Caius.

Aurelian  emperor,  to  whom  an  appeal was  made  against  Paul  of Samosata     .         -         -         308

The  ninth  persecution  commenced by  Aurelian  -         .         308

Tacitus  emperor.

Florianus  emperor.

Probus  emperor.

Origen  of  the  Manichean  here, sy        -         -         -         -         300

Carus  emperor  .         .         308

Carinus  and  Numerianus  emperors.

Caius  bishop  of  Rome      .         310

Diocletian  emperor  of  Rome,  308
under  whom  the  tenth  great  persecution began,  preceded  by  the demolition  of  the  churches     3 1 9

Marcellinus  succeeds  Caius  in  the see  of  Rome,  who  was  overtaken by  the  persecution  in  his  fifteenth year     ....         310

The  tenth  persecution,  the  most violent  of  all,  Eusebius  styles  it emphatically  the  persecution  310

Tiraaeus,  Doranus,  and  Cyrillus  successively bishops  of  Antioch  310

Tyrannus  succeeds  Cyrillus       310

Eusebius  successor  of  Socrates  in the  see  of  Laodicea.

Marcellus  succeeds  Marcellinus  in the  see  of  Rome,  who  was  followed by  Eusebius.  Neither  of these  is  mentioned  by  Eusebius.
The  former  was  banished  by Maxentius  for  his  rigorous  discipline ;  the  latter  was  banished by  the  same  emperor.

These  were  succeeded  by  Miltiades or  Melchiades,  who  is  mentioned in  connexion  with  Marcus  in  the epistle  of  Constantino  -         429

Diocletian  ana  Maximian  abdicate the  government.

A.  D.

310.  Constantius  Chlorus  and  Galerius Maximianus,  son-in-law  of  Diocletian, are  created  Augusti    338

The  empire  being  thus  divided  between the  two  emperors,  Galerius adopted  the  two  Caesars,  Severus and  his  nephew  Maximinus  337

Licinius  appointed  emperor  and Augustus  by  a  common  vote  of the  emperors  -         -         338

Maximinus  assumes  the  title  of  Augustus ...  338
306.  Constantius,  emperor  of  the  west, dies  in  Britain,  and  Constantino his  son  is  proclaimed  emperor;
an  event  which  defeated  the  ambitious and  tyrannical  projects  of Galerius  Maximianus    -         338

Maximian  dies  a  disgraceful  death, after  an  attempt  against  the  life of  Constantine     -         -         338

Maxentius,  son  of  Maximian,  assumes  the  imperial  dignity  at Rome  ....         339

Maximinus  of  the  east,  and  Maxen.
tius  at  Rome,  secretly  combine against  Constantine  and  Licinius    -         -        ;         -         340

The  excesses  committed  by  the  tyrants   -         -         -  340,  341

About  this  time  flourished  Anato.
lius,  distinguished  as  bishop  of Laodicea  and  a  writer  311 — 313

Stephen  bishop  of  Antioch        314

Theotecnus,  bishop  of  Cesarea  in Palestine,  was  succeeded  by  Aga.
pius,  the  contemporary  of  Pam.
philus.  Agapius  was  succeeded by  Eusebius,  the  author  of  the Ecclesiastical  History    .         314

About  this  time  also  flourished  as writers,  Pierius  of  Alexandria, Melchius  bishop  of  Pontus,  and Miletius,  the  honey  of  Attica  315

Hymenaeus,  Lambdas,  and  Hermon, successively  bishops  of  Jerusalem about  this  time      .         -         315

Maximus,  the  successor  of  Dionysius, was  succeeded  by  Theonas in  the  see  of  Alexandria         315

Theonas  was  succeeded  by  Peter and  Achillas,  and  he  by  Alexander. The  last  of  these  was  indirectly the  occasion  of  the  subsequent Arian  controversy.

Herraon  of  Jerusalem,  Alexandei of  Alexandria,  Miltiades  of  RomSj Tyrannus  of  Antioch,  Theodotus
478

CHRONOLOGICAL  TABLE.

A.  D.

of  Laodicea,  and  Agapius  of  Cesarea  in  Palestine,  are  the  last bishops  mentioned  by  Eusebius in  the  most  prominent  sees.

314.  Miltiades  was  succeeded  by  Sylvester in  the  see  of  Rome,  in  whose times  the  council  of  Nice   was held.
Constantine  establishes  the  free  exercise of  the  Christian  religion, and  liberates  the  Roman  world from  oppression    -         -         404
The  churches  are  now  restored  and dedicated      -        -         -         405
Universal  peace  in  the  church,  large endowments  made  by  the  emperor,  privileges    granted    to    the clergy,  with  the   restoration  of confiscated  property       431,  432

A.  D.

The  splendour  which  the   church now   began    to   wear   seems   to have  laid  the  foundation  to  its subsequent  corruption.
315.  Licinius  forms  plots  against  Constantine, but  is  foiled     -         434
He  proceeds  to  pe.vsecute  the  Christians with  great  violence        435
Great  excesses  committed   by  him 436
315.  Engages  in  battle  with  Constantine, is  totally  defeated,  and  soon  after put  to  death  -         -         437

324.  Constantine  sole  master  of  the  Roman world.
This  epoch  forms  the  limits  of  the Ecclesiastical   History  of  Euse^
bias.

in

POETICAL    mDEX

TO

THE  STUDY  OF  ROMAN  HISTORY,
FROM  THE  FIRST  C-ISAR  TO  THE  RESIGNATION  OF  DIOCLETIAN,  A.  D.  305.

WRITTEN    FOR    MY    SON.

When  Rome  her  proud  standard  had  boldly  unfurled, Proclahning  her  state  as  the  Queen  of  the  world, To  tlie  Great  Cains  Julhis,  she  hinnhled  her  pride.
And  he  led  the  high  virgin,  his  laurel-crowned  bride.

2.

But  scarce  had  he  won  lier  imperial  charms.
When  by  murderous  hands  he  was  torn  from  her
arms  ;
And  the  widow  was  left  on  her  desolate  throne^
Till  Octavius  won  her,  and  made  her  his  own.

3.

Kow  listen  with  patience,  and  I  will  rehearse, (Assisting  your  ear  by  the  cadence  of  verse)
In  order  distinct,  though  in  rapid  succession, The  rulers  that  came  after  Caesar's  aggression.

478

AD

CHRONOLOGICAL  TABLE.

314.  ^  POETICAL  INDEX.

4.

Less  than  twenty-three  years  did  Tiberius  rule,
Caligula  next  over  Pwome  played  the  fool.

This  man,  it  is  said,  had  no  touch  of  remorse «]  For  proclaiming  as  consul,  his  flivorite  horse.

Then  Claudius  reigned,  thirteen  years  ;  in  the  middle 1  Of  the  next  year  he  died.     Then  came  Nero  and
fiddle.

Parsimonious  Galba,  the  legions  all  hated  ;

So  Otho,  successor  to  him  they  created.

The  glutton  Vitellius  lived  like  a  beast,
But  Vespasian  soon  came  from  his  wars  in  the  East.

6.

His  faithful  Son  Titus,  the  noble  and  brave, Shed  many  a  tear  o'er  the  tw^n-cities'^  grave.
His  brother,  Domitian,  spent  time  catching  flies, Till  kindher  Nerva  bade  mercy  arise.

7.

Then  did  Trajan*^  "  the  Best,"  see  the  century  through ;
No  mercy  had  Hadrian  for  the  poor  Jew.
Antoninus  the  Pious,  (as  histories  run).
Was  followed  by  Marcus  Aurelius,  his  son, Who  shared  for  a  time  with  dull  Verus  his  throne.
Then  left  his  son  Commodus,  loathed  far  as  known.

Alas  for  poor  Pertinax,  mangled  and  gory, When  Didius  Julian  with  gold  bought  his  glory.
Severus  commenced  the  next  century  well, Caracalla  and  Geta  were  cliildren  of  HelL

POETICAL  INDEX.  o
9.  *"

Macrinus,  when  King,  of  his  Son  stood  in  need, Diadumenianus  (don't  laugh  as  you  read), Then  Elagabahis,  (or  still  better  done), Heliogabrdus,  the  priest  of  tlie  Sun.

10.

Alexander  Severus  then  on  the  throne  fixed, ( With  Septimius  Severus  don't  get  his  name  mixed ).
And  now,  my  dear  boy,  hold  your  jaw,  lest  it  cracks When  yoii  name  his  successor,  Maximinus  Thrax.**

11.

With  this  Gordian  cord  you  can  bind  up  the  breaks (If  the  knot  is  untied  e'er  your  patience  forsakes  ;)
0?ie  Gordian  and  Son,  two  months  Rome  retain ;
Balbinus  and  Maximus  next  take  the  rein.

12.

A  tlih'd  Gordian,  raised  by  the  popular  will, Did  Arabian  Philip  with  treachery  kill.
Him  Decius  slew,  and  reigned  in  his  stead.
Then  Gallus,  by  blood  of  the  Christians  made  red, By  iEmilianus  was  knocked  on  the  head.

13.

Valerian  then,  in  the  East  overthrown.
Left  reigning  his  son  Gallienus'^  alone.
Claudius  was  the  next  Emperor  named, Then  Aurelian,  Zenobia's  conqueror  famed.

14.

Tacitus  next  in  the  purple  is  seen, Florianus,"  then  Probus,  then  Cams,  I  ween.
Two  sons  of  the  last,  in  their  father's  ricli  seat, Carinus  and  Numerianus  we  meet.

478
A.  D.

314.;

CHRONOLOGICAL  TABLE.

4  POETICAL   INDEX.

15.
Diocletian  comes  next,  unless  histories  lie,'
He  cut  up  the  realm  like  a  big  pumpkin  pie.
Galerius  and  Chlorus  were  served  in  a  trice, Next  best  to  liis  own  was  Maximian's  slice.

16.
Diocletian  at  last,  despising  his  fate, To  cultivate  cabbages  fled  from  his  State.
Maximian  tried  it,  but  finding  it  pain, At  last  was  by  Constantine,^  captured  and  slain.

17.

Thus  the  order,  my  Son,  of  these  emperors  ran ;
You  must  learn  w^ho  comes  next  in  the  best  way  you
can, For  it  would  be  too  cruel  to  bother  you  so, By  making  you  learn  w^hat  your  father  don't  know.

'  During  the  second  Triumvirate.

'^  Herculaneum  and  Poinptei  overwhelmed  in  his  reign.

s  Surnamed  "  Optimus  "  after  his  death,  by  a  decree  of  the  Senate.

^  So  called  from  his  being  a  Thracian.

^The  rivals  of  Gallienus,  called  "the  thirty  Tyrants"  are  not noticed,  because  none  of  them  attained  the  thi-one  of  the  Caasars;
and,  excepting  Odenathus  in  Palmyra,  and  Tetricus  in  Spain  and Gaul,  none  of  them  exerted  any  sensible  influence.

^riorianus,  although  associated  with  his  brother  in  the  sovereignty, was  not  raised  to  the  purple  until  after  Tacitus,  and  very probably  never  had  any  share  in  the  administration.

'Though  the  empire  was  apparently  united  by  Constantine,  it was  no  more  than  spreading  a  new  rind  over  an  apple  that  has been  quartered,  and  Avhen  the  rind  was  removed  by  that  Emperor's death,  the  pieces  fell  apart,  and  "  the  permanent  partition  of the  Roman  Empire."  popularly  so-called,  was  accomplished.

8  Maximian  is  said  to  have  been  slain  by  order  of  Constantius, (Chlorus)  the  father  of  Constantine  the  Great,  by  Arnold,  (Manuel of  Hist,  and  Geo.  by  Piitz.  and  Arn.  2d  Ame.  Ed.  p.  310).
This  is  evidently  an  Anacronism.  Eusebius  Ec.  His.  Book  8, ch.  13— Authon.clas.  die.  article  Constantine.     Gibbon  D.  &  F.

Tabular  Vieio  of  the  Order  of  the  Episcopal  Succession  in the  prominent  Dioceses  mentioned  by  Eusebius.

Bishops  of  Jerusalem.

30.  Narcissus.

1.  James  the  brother   of  our
31.  Dius.

Lord.

32.  Germanio.

2.  Symeon,  son  of  Cleopas.

33.  Gordius.

3.  Justus.

34.  Narcissus  II.

4.  Zaccheus.

35.  Alexander.

5.  Tobias.

SQ.  Mazabanes.

6.  Benjamin
37.  Hymenaeus.

7.  John.

38.  Zabdas.

8.  Matthias.

39.  Hermon.

9.  Philip.

10.  Seneca.

11.  Justus.

Bishops  ofAntioch
12.  Levi.

1.  Evodius.

13.  Ephres.

2.  Ignatius.

14.  Joseph.

3.  Heron.

15.  Judas,  last  of  the  Hebrew
4.  Cornelius.

succession.

5.  Eros.

16.  Marcus.

6.  Theophilus.

17.  Cassianus.

7.  Maximinus.

18.  Publius.

8.  Serapion.

19.  Maximus.

9.  Asclepiades.

20.  Julian.

10.  Philetus.

21.  Caius.

11.  Zebinas.

22.  Symmachus.

12.  Babylas.

23.  Caius  IL

13.  Fabius.

24.  Julian  11.

14.  Demetrianus.

25.  Capito.

15.  Paul  of  Samosata.

2Q.  Maximus  II.

16.  Domnus.

27.  Antoninus.

17.  Timaeus.

2S.  Valens.

18.  Cyrillus.

29.  Dolichianus.

19.  Tyrannus.

479

480

ORDER  OF  EPISCOPAL  SUCCESSION.

Bishops  of  Rome.

2.  Avilius.

Peter  and  Paul,  according  to  Eusebius
3.  Cerdo.

died  as  martyrs  at  Rome  ;  after  these followed
4.  Primus.

1.  Linus.

5.  Justus.

2.  Anencktus.

6.  Eumenes
3.  Clement.

7.  Marcus.

4.  Euarestus.

8.  Celadion.

5.  Alexander.

9.  Agrippinus.

6.  Xystus  or  Sixtus.

10.  Julianus.

7.  Telesphorus.

11.  Demetrius.

8.  Hyginus.

12.  Heraclas.

9.  Pius.

13.  Dionysius
10.  Anicetus.

14.  Maximus.

11.  Soter.

15.  Theonas.

12.  Eleutherus.

16.  Peter.

13.  Victor.

17.  Achillas.

14.  Zephyrinus.

18.  Alexander.

15.  Callisthus.

16.  Urbanus.

Bishops  ofLaodicea  mention'

17.  Pontianus.

ed  by  Eusebius.

18.  Anteros.

Thelymedres.

19.  Fabianus.

Heliodorus.

20.  Cornelius.

Socrates.

21.  Lucius.

Eusebius  of  Alexandria.

22.  Stephanus.

Anatolius.

23.  Xystus  or  Sixtus  IL

Stephen.

24.  Dionysius.

Theodotus.

25.  Felix.

26.  Eutychianus.

Bishops  of  Cesarea  mention^

27.  Caius.

ed  by  our  author.

28.  Marcellinus.

Theophilus.

29.  Miltiades.

Theoctistus.

Bishops  of  Alexandria.

Domnus.

The    evangelist   Mark   established   the
JL  llcULcL-IlLia.

church  there,  and  after  him  came
Agapius.

1.  Annianus.

Eusebius.

HISTORICAL    VIEW

THE     COUNCIL     OF     NICE;

Srsnslittifln  trf  §0t«m.eiits.

BY

KEY.    ISAAC    BOYLE,   D.  D

NEW    YORK:

THOMAS  N.   STAInTFORD,   637   BROADWAY.

1856.

Entered  according  to  Act  of  Congress,  m  the  year  1836,  by  the  Rev.  R.  Davis SC'  Brother,  in  ihe  Clerk's  Office  of  the  District  Court  of  Massaci.uselts.

PREFACE.

The  ecclesiastical  history  of  Eusebius  extenos  only to  A.  D.  324.  The  Council  of  Nice  was  convened  the following  year.  The  publisher  of  Eusebius  being about  to  furnish  another  edition  of  the  work,  and thinkinof  that  a  translation  of  certain  documents  relatins:  to  that  celebrated  convention,  throv/incr  liaht  on
O  '  CD  CD

its  transactions,  would  be  interesting  to  the  readers  of Eusebius,  and  add  some  value  to  the  new  edition,  the wTiter  of  the  following  pages  was  induced,  at  his  request, to  undertake  the  performance  of  such  a  version.
But  in  the  prosecution  of  his  task,  he  perceived  that the  documents  would  be  better  understood,  and,  consequently, be  more  acceptable  to  the  reader,  if  preceded by  a  short  and  connected  view  of  the  origin  of  the Arian  controversy,  and  of  the  proceedings  of  the  synod, derived  from  such  original  and  authentic  sources  of information  as  were  within  his  power.  He  has  therefore introduced  the  documents  by  such  a  summary  of events.  In  preparing  it,  it  is  very  possible  he  may have  inadvertently  fallen  into  some  mistakes,  but  not,
4  PREFACE.

he  trusts,  into  any  error  of  importance.  He  is  conscious, at  least,  of  no  wilful  misrepresentation  of  facts, nor  of  any  intentional  departure  from  the  truth  of history.

In  some  instances,  the  writer  has  given  the  descriptions of  the  authors,  from  whom  he  has  derived  his materials,  with  more  minuteness  of  detail  than  may seem  consistent  with  the  narrow  limits  to  which  he has  oeen  restricted.  But  he  thought  that  these  particulars might  be  useful  as  presenting  a  picture  of  the manners  and  character  of  the  times  to  which  they  relate. He  has  also  given  at  length  some  narratives which  have  no  immediate  reference  to  his  main  design, because  he  considered  them  as  interesting  or  instructive.

In  the  translations  annexed,  he  has  sought  to  give a  faithful  version  of  the  originals,  without,  however, obscuring  the  meaning  by  aiming  at  too  great  a  degree of  mere  verbal  exactness.  In  other  words,  he  has endeavored  not  to  sacrifice  the  sense  and  spirit  of  his authors  by  too  strict  an  adherence  to  the  letter.  How far  he  has  succeeded  in  this  attempt  is  respectfully submitted  to  the  decision  of  those  who  are  best  qualified to  judge.

A  HISTORICAL  YIEW

THE    COUNCIL    OF    NICE

CONTENTS.

Introductory  remarks  ; — Origin  of  the  Arian  dispute  ; — Convocation  at  Nice  ;—
The  logicians  rebuked; — Conversion  of  a  heathen  philosopher; — Preliminary meetings  of  the  bishops  ; — Mutual  accusations  of  the  prelates,  and  Constan.
tine's  reproof; — Opening  of  the  council ; — The  opinions  of  Arius  examined and  condemned  ; — Time  of  celebrating  Easter  determined ;— Meletius  ; — Can.
ons  ; — Dialogue  between  Acesius  and  the  emperor ; — Conclusion  of  the Synod ; — Reflections.

It  was  the  charge  of  our  Saviour  to  his  apostles,  after  his  resurrection, to  "  go  and  teach  all  nations."  This  command  was, m  a  great  measure,  accompUshed  by  them,  and  those  who  succeeded them  in  the  ministry,  within  three  centuries  of  the  time when  the  gospel  was  first  preached  in  Judea  by  its  divine  Author.
In  the  prosecution  of  their  glorious  enterprise,  a  great  proportion of  the  then  known  world,  by  the  blessing  of  God  on  their  indefatigable labors,  submitted  to  the  religion  of  Jesus.  They  visited the  burning  chmes  of  Africa,  and  the  various  regions  of  Asia,  to proclaim  the  glad  tidings  of  salvation ;  and  a  great  part  of  Europe, from  the  countries  bordering  on  the  Mediterranean  to  the  distant shores  of  Britain,  received  the  Hght  of  Christian  truth.  But, although  their  efforts  were  crowned  with  so  considerable  a  share of  success,  they  encountered  in  their  progress  almost  continual opposition,  and  endured  nearly  every  variety  of  hardship  and  persecution. Some  of  them  were  assailed  by  the  bigotry  and  mahce of  the  Jews,  and  others  became  victims  to  the  rage  and  cruelty  of their  gentile  oppressors.     They  were  exposed  to  the  lawless  vio
1*

6  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

lence  of  the  nuiltitiide,  and  suffered  from  the  sanguinary  decrees of  rulers  and  princes.  If,  under  the  milder  sway  of  a  few  of  the Roman  emperors,  they  enjoyed  an  interval  of  comparative  repose, it  was  only  to  he  followed  by  a  renewal  of  their  calamities.  At leno-th,  however,  a  brighter  prospect  was  opened  to  the  Christian world.  In  consequence  of  the  victory  of  Constantine  over  the tyrant  Licinius,  in  the  year  of  our  Lord  323,  external  tranquillity was  fully  secured  to  the  Church  ;  and  in  order  to  confirm  it,  several beneficial  lav/s  were  enacted  by  the  emperor.  He  recalled those  who  had  been  banished  for  the  profession  of  the  faith ;  and the  property  of  such  as  had  been  despoiled  of  their  goods  was  restored. He  gave  directions  for  enlarging  the  ancient  churches, and  building  new  and  more  splendid  ones.  He  commanded  that the  clergy  should  be  held  in  honor ;  and  shielded  their  persons from  indignity  and  outrage.  The  people  were  exhorted  to  relinquish idolatry,  and  embrace  the  true  religion ;  and  many  other salutary  measures  were  adopted,  to  extend  the  influence,  and  promote the  welfare  of  Cliristianity.

But  while  Constantine  vras  zealously  employed  in  this  laudable design,  and  the  Church  was  protected  from  foreign  enemies,  a dissension  had  arisen  in  its  own  bosom,  which  occasioned  much animosity,  and  long  continued  to  disturb  its  domestic  peace.  It happened  that  Alexander,  bishop  of  Alexandria,  in  Egypt,  disputhig  one  day,  in  the  presence  of  his  presbyters  and  other  clergy, on  the  subject  of  the  three  divine  persons,  and  being  desirous  of making  a  display  of  his  knowledge,  remarked,  that  in  the  Trinity there  was  a  unity.*  Arius,  one  of  liis  presbyters,  who  v/as  well versed  in  the  art  of  reasoning  and  in  metaphysical  distinctions, thinking  that  the  bishop  was  desirous  of  introducing  the  opinion of  Sabellius  t  of  Lybia,  inclined  to  an  error  directly  opposed  to  it, and  replied,  with  great  asperity,  that  if  the  Father  begat  the  Son, the  latter  must  have  had  a  l^eginning ;  from  which,  he  continued, it  clearly  follovv^ed  tliat  there  was  a  time  when  he  was  not,  and
*  Socrates,  L.  I.  c.  5.

t  It  will  b3  i-ecollectsd  that  Sabsllius,  who  lived  about  the  middle  of  the  third century,  believed  in  a  modal  Trinity,  considering  the  Son  and  Holy  Spirit  as difTerent  manifestations  only  of  the  Godhead,  and  not  as  separate  persons.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  7

that  his  substance  was  made  from  nothing.*  These  novel  and hitherto  unheard  of  opinions  excited  many  persons  to  enter  into the  controv^ersy.  By  a  little  spark  a  great  fire  was  thus  kindled.
The  evil  Avhich  originated  in  the  church  of  Alexandria,  pervaded the  whole  of  Egypt,  Lybia,  and  the  upper  Thebais,  and  reached at  length  to  many  other  cities  and  provinces.  Numbers  favored the  sentiments  of  Arius ;  but  no  one  defended  them  with  m.ore warmth  and  earnestness  than  Eusebius,  formerly  bishop  of  Berytus,  but  who  had  now  surreptitiously  obtained  possession  of  the bishopric  of  Nicomedia,  in  Bithynia.  Alexander,  being  greatly incensed  at  these  proceedings,  assembled  a  numerous  council,  in which  Arius  and  his  followers  were  deposed ;  and  afterward v.Tote  to  the  other  bishops  informing  them  of  the  fact.f  His  letters, copies  of  which  were  sent  to  all  the  cities  under  his  spiritual jurisdiction,  served  only  to  increase  the  mischief,  by  kindling  the flames  of  discord  among  those  who  received  them.  Some  signified their  approbation  of  the  letter,  while  others  expressed  their dissent.  Eusebius,  of  Nicomedia,  opposed  it  more  strenuously than  others,  as  it  made  unfavorable  mention  of  himself  The credit  of  Eusebius,  at  that  period,  was  great,  because  the  emperor then  made  Nicomedia  his  residence,  having  built  a  palace  in  that city  a  short  time  before  the  reign  of  Diocletian.  Many  of  the bishops,  therefore,  were  subservient  to  the  wishes  of  Eusebius.  He was  continually  writing,  sometimes  to  Alexander,  to  induce  him to  abandon  the  dispute  with  Arius,  and  receive  him  into  commu
*  Sozomcn  gives  the  following  account  of  this  dispute: — "  Arius  having  declared his  opinions  in  public,  some  of  those  who  heard  of  them,  blamed  Alexander  for  having  suffei-ed  him  to  advance  such  novel  doctrines ;  but  this  prolate thought  proper  to  leave  the  two  parties  at  liberty  to  dispute  upon  an  obscure subject,  lest  if  he  should  prohibit  the  controversy,  he  might  seem  to  terminate  it by  force,  rather  than  by  persuasion.  Sitting,  therefore,  in  the  midst  of  his  clergy, he  permitted  every  one  to  say  what  he  thought  proper.  Alexander  inclined sometimes  to  one  side,  and  sometimes  to  the  other,  but  declared  at  last  for  those who  maintained  that  the  Son  of  God  is  consubstantial  and  coeternal  with  the Father,  and  required  Arius  to  hold  the  same  opinion  ;  and  because  he  refused  to ilo  it,  drove  him  from  the  Church,  together  with  the  priests  and  deacons  who supported  him."     Hist.  Eccles.  L.  I.  c.  15.

t  Documents,  A.

8  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

nion,  and  sometimes  to  the  bishops  of  the  different  cities,  in  order to  persuade  them  not  to  join  that  prelate.  The  churches  were thus  filled  with  tumult  and  disorder.  Nor  was  the  war  of  words confined  to  the  pastors  of  the  church,  but  the  people  also  were divided,  inclining  to  one  or  the  other  of  the  two  parties.  ,  The matter  proceeded,  at  length,  to  such  a  shameful  extremity,  that the  Christian  religion  was  pubhcly  ridiculed,  and  aflforded  a  subject of  profane  merriment  to  the  pagans,  even  in  their  theatrical exhibitions.  The  people  of  Alexandria  contended  with  childish petulance  respecting  the  most  subhme  mysteries  of  our  faith.
Each  party  sent  messengers  to  the  bishops  of  every  province,  and succeeded  in  gaining  individuals  to  their  respective  opinions.  But the  Meletians,  who  had  recently  been  separated  from  the  Church, espoused  the  cause  of  the  Arians.  They  were  so  denominated from  Meletius,  one  of  the  bishops  of  Egypt,  who  had  been  deposed by  Peter  of  Alexandria,  for  several  reasons,  but  especially  for having  offered  sacrifice,  in  time  of  persecution,  to  the  heathen divinities.  His  partizans  were  numerous ;  and,  although  he  had no  sufficient  cause  for  deserting  the  church,  he  complamed  that he  had  been  treated  with  injustice  by  Peter,  whom  he  attacked with  reproaches  and  calumny.  After  the  death  of  that  prelate, who  suffered  martyrdom  under  Diocletian,  he  transferred  his abuse  to  Achillas,  who  was  next  to  Peter  in  the  episcopate,  and then  to  Alexander,  his  successor.  In  this  state  of  things,  the  controversy respecting  our  Lord's  divinity  taking  place,  Meletius,  with his  followers,  favored  the  party  of  Arius,  and  supported  him against  the  bishop.  They  who  thought  that  the  notions  of  Arius were  absurd,  approved  of  the  sentence  against  him ;  and  considered those  who  agreed  with  him  in  opinion  as  justly  condemned.
Eusebius  of  Nicomedia,  however,  and  such  as  had  embraced  the views  of  Arius,  wrote  to  Alexander,  praying  that  the  excommunication might  be  removed,  on  the  ground  that  his  opinions  were orthodox.

On  receiving  intelligence  of  these  transactions,  the  emperor  was greatly  afflicted;  and,  regarding  the  affair  as  his  own  private calamity,  spared  no  pains  to  suppress  the  growing  evil.  Accordingly he  sent  a  letter  *  to  Alexander  and  Arius,  exhorting  them
*  Documents,  B.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  9

to  be  reconciled,  by  Hosius,  bishop  of  Corduba,  a  city  of  Spain, who  was  a  man  of  approved  fidehty,  and  greatly  beloved  by  the emperor.  He  had  reached  the  age  of  seventy,  had  been  a  bishop thirty  years,  was  a  confessor  in  the  persecution  of  Maximian,  and celebrated  throughout  the  Church.  This  letter,  however  well  intended, produced  but  Uttle  effect.  The  disorder  indeed,  had  acquired such  a  degree  of  virulence,  that  neither  the  endeavors  of the  emperor,  nor  the  influence  and  authority  of  his  messenger, were  of  any  avail.  Both  Alexander  and  Arius  remained  inflexible, the  people  disputed  with  still  greater  acrimony,  and  tumults became  more  frequent.

But  there  was  another  subject  which  occasioned  considerable uneasiness  in  the  Church,  viz.  the  difference  which  arose  among the  orientals  with  respect  to  the  proper  day  of  keeping  Easter, some  celebrating  that  festival  in  the  manner  of  the  Jews,  and others  following  the  custom  of  Christians  throughout  the  rest  of the  world.  This  diversity  of  practice,  however,  v.  ith  regard  to the  day  of  observing  that  important  solemnity,  did  not  hinder  religious fellowship,  although  it  might  cast  a  shade  of  gloom  over the  joyful  anniversary  of  our  Saviour's  resurrection.  The  emperor, therefore,  finding  that  the  quiet  of  the  Church  was  not  a  little disturbed  by  these  two  evils,  assembled  (by  the  advice  of  some  of the  prelates,  according  to  Rufinus,)  a  general  council,  inviting,  by letter,  all  the  bishops  to  meet  at  Nice,  in  Bithynia,  and  furnishing them  wdth  the  means  of  conveyance.  In  consequence,  a  great number  of  them,  not  less  than  three  hundred  and  eighteen,*  arrived from  various  cities  and  territories,  attended  by  a  vast  con
*  The  early  historians  of  the  church  differ  considerably  as  to  the  number  of bishops  assembled  on  this  occasion.  Athanasius  mentions  about  three  hundred .
and  in  one  passage  of  his  work  expressly  sr\ys  that  there  were  three  hundred and  eighteen.  Eusebius  speaks  of  more  than  two  hundred  and  fifty.  Eustathius,  of  Antioch,  who  was  present,  as  well  as  the  two  already  named,  and  was an  active  member  of  the  synod,  declares  that  there  were  about  two  hundred  and seventy,  but  that  he  cannot  give  the  exact  number,  on  account  of  the  great  mul.
titude  who  attended  ;  nor  indeed  does  he  profess  to  have  been  very  solicitous  to ascertain  it.  Sozomen  reckons  about  three  hundred  and  twenty.  The  number mentioned  in  the  text  was  at  length  generally  admitted  as  the  correct  one.  See Cave,  Hist.  Eccles.  Lit.  p.  223.

10  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

course  of  the  inferior  clergy.  Daily  and  ample  provision  was made  by  Constantine  for  the  support  and  accommodation  of  this numerous  body.  It  is  mentioned  by  Sozomen,  that  several  persons were  also  present,  well  instructed  in  the  dialectic  art,  for  the purpose  of  assisting  the  bishops.

So  great  a  synod  w^as  without  previous  example ;  for  the Church  was  not  at  liberty  to  convoke  such  numerous  assemblies under  the  pagan  emperors.  The  pastors  of  three  churches  founded by  the  apostles,  were  present,  Macarius,  bishop  of  Jerusalem, Eustathius,  of  Antioch,  and  Alexander,  of  Alexandria.  Of  this memorable  council,  Eusebius  Pamphilus  speaks  in  the  following terms.*  "  The  most  distinguished  ministers  of  God  met  together fi'om  every  part  of  Europe,  Asia,  and  Africa.  The  sacred  edifice, as  if  enlarged  by  the  pleasure  of  God,  inclosed  at  the  same  time within  its  walls,  both  Syrians  and  Cilicians,  Phenicians,  Arabians, and  inhabitants  of  Palestine ;  Egyptians,  Thebeans,  and Lybians,  with  others  arriving  from  Mesopotamia.  A  bishop  from Persia  was  also  present.  Nor  was  the  Scythian  absent  from  this assembly.  Pontus,  also,  and  Galatia,  Pamphylia  and  Cappadocia,  Asia  and  Phrygia  furnished  representatives  from  their  most able  divines.  Thracians  too,  Macedonians,  Achaians  and  Epirotes,  and  those  who  resided  at  a  vast  distance  beyond  them,  were convened.  That  illustrious  Spaniard,  who  is  so  highly  spoken of,  took  his  seat  with  the  others.  The  prelate  of  the  imperial city,  indeed,  was  absent  on  account  of  his  advanced  years,  but  his place  was  supplied  by  presbyters.  Constantine,  alone,  of  all  the princes  who  ever  hved,  wove  so  brilhant  a  crown  as  this,  joined together  by  the  bond  of  peace,  as  a  suitable  acknowledgment  of gratitude  to  Heaven  for  the  victories  vouchsafed  him  over  his enemies,  and  dedicated  it  to  God  his  Saviour,  in  bringing  together so  great  a  convention ;  an  image,  as  it  w^ere,  of  the  apostolic assembly.  For  it  is  related  that  in  the  times  of  the  apostles, religious  men  were  gathered  together  from  every  nation  under heaven.  Among  them  were  Parthians,  Medes,  Elamites,  and inhabitants  of  Mesopotamia,  Judea  and  Cappadocia,  Pontus,  Asia
*  Vit.  Const.  L.  III.  c.  7.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  11

and  Pamphylia,  Egypt,  and  the  parts  of  Lybia,  which  is  near Gyrene ;  strangers  also  of  Rome,  Jews  and  proselytes,  Cretes  and Arabians.  In  that  congregation,  however,  there  was  this  circumstance of  inferiority,  that  all  \Yho  were  collected  together  were not  ministers  of  God,  while  the  present  assembly  included  more than  two  hundred  and  fifty  bishops ;  but  such  a  multitude  of presbyters,  deacons  and  acolothists  accompanied  them,  that  it  was difficult  to  determine  their  number.  Among  these  holy  ministers, some  excelled  by  the  wisdom  and  eloquence  of  their  discourse, others  by  the  gravity  of  their  deportment  and  patience  of  labor ;
and  others,  again,  by  their  humility,  and  the  gentleness  of  theii'
mxanners.  Some  of  them  were  honored  on  account  of  their  grey hairs,  while  others  were  recommended  by  their  youthful  vigor and  activity,  both  of  body  and  mind.  Several  of  them  had  but recently  begun  to  exercise  the  functions  of  their  ministry."

This  account  of  Eusebius  may  sufficiently  refute  the  disparaging language  of  Sabinus,*  bishop  of  Heraclea  in  Thrace,  who  derides the  fathers  of  Nice  as  ordinary  and  ignorant  men.  It  is very  probable  that  in  so  large  an  assembly,  collected  from  various quarters,  such  a  character  might  be  applicable  to  some  individuals  ;
but  there  is  no  reason  to  doubt  that  there  was  a  fair  proportion  of men  of  talents,  learning  and  piety,  in  this  convocation.  Some were  confessedly  eminent  for  knowledge  and  abilities ;  and  several of  them,  according  to  Theodoret,  had  exercised  miraculous powers,  which,  though  less  common,  it  is  likely,  in  the  third  and fourth  centuries,  than  in  the  preceding  ages  of  the  Church,  were yet  to  be  found,  in  the  opinion  of  some  respectable  writers,  within its  communion.  Others  were  esteemed  on  account  of  their  past sufferings  in  the  cause  of  our  holy  religion,  still  bearing  in  their bodies,  like  the  great  apostle  of  the  Gentiles,  "  the  marks  of  the Lord  Jesus."

Before  the  opening  of  the  council,  some  who  were  experienced in  the  practice  of  disputation,  began  to  agitate  questions  of  theology.    A  layman  of  good  sense,  who  had  the  courage  to  confess
*  He  was  of  the  sect  of  Macedonius,  who  considered  the  Holy  Ghost  as  a  divine energy,  and  not  a  distinct  person.

19  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

the  name  of  Christ,  in  a  time  of  persecution,  perceiving  that  many were  attracted  by  the  force  and  elegance  of  their  discourses,  undertook to  rebuke  them  by  remarking,  that  neither  our  Loixl  nor his  apostles  had  taught  us  the  rules  of  logic,  or  idle  subtleties,  but the  truth,  which  is  preserved  by  faith  and  good  works.  All  who were  present  listened  to  him  with  admiration,  and  approved  of what  he  had  said.  The  speakers  themselves  became  more  moderate in  consequence  ;  and  the  noise  and  clamor  excited  by  their animated  declamation  were  no  longer  heard.

It  is  also  related  *  that  certain  heathen  philosophers  were  anxious to  take  a  part  in  the  dispute,  some  of  them  wishing  to  be made  acquainted  with  the  doctrines  of  the  gospel,  and  others,  to whom  the  Christians  w^ere  obnoxious,  on  account  of  the  decaying credit  of  their  own  religion,  desiring  to  create  a  misunderstanding, and  to  foment  divisions  among  them.  One  of  these  "seekers after  vvdsdom,"  in  the  vain  confidence  of  liis  imagined  eloquence, assuming  an  insolent  manner,  endeavored  to  turn  the  priests  into ridicule.  But  a  plain  and  illiterate  old  man,  one  of  those  who had  been  distinguished  as  confessors,  was  unable  to  bear  his  arrogance ;  and,  although  unversed  in  the  rules  of  logic  and  the  art of  disputation,  ventured  to  accost  him.  This  excited  the  laughter of  some  inconsiderate  persons,  to  whom  he  was  known,  but alarmed  the  more  reflecting,  who  apprehended  that  he  might  expose himself  in  so  unequal  a  contest.  Their  respect  for  his  character, however,  prevented  any  attempt  to  hinder  him  from  speaking. "Listen,"  he  said,  "philosopher,  in  the  name  of  Jesus.
There  is  one  God,  the  Creator  of  heaven  and  earth,  and  of  all things  visible  and  invisible,  who  has  performed  all  this  by  the power  of  his  Word,  and  established  it  by  the  holiness  of  his  Spirit.
The  Word,  which  we  call  the  Son  of  God,  pitying  the  errors  of men  and  their  brutish  way  of  hfe,  condescended  to  be  born  of  a woman,  to  sojourn  among  them,  and  to  die  for  their  salvation.
He  will  come  again,  to  judge  the  actions  of  every  one  in  this  life.
We  beheve,  in  the  simplicity  of  our  hearts,  that  this  is  the  truth.
Do  not  then  fruitlessly  trouble  yourself,  in  seeking   arguments
*  Sozomen,  I.  8.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  13

against  these  things,  or  in  attempting  to  discover  the  mode  in which  they  may  be,  or  not.  But  if  you  beheve,  only  tell  me  so.''
The  philosopher,  not  a  httle  astonished  at  this  unexpected  addi'ess, answered,  1  believe ;  and,  thanking  the  old  man  for  having  vanquished him,  recommended  it  to  those  with  v/hom  he  had  formerly agreed  in  sentiment,  to  follow  his  example,  solemnly  declaring, that  the  change  which  he  had  experienced  was  the  effect  of divine  power,  and  that  he  felt  himself  inexplicably  impelled  to embrace  the  faith  of  Christ.

The  bishops  had  several  conferences  among  themselves  previously  to  the  day  v/hen  they  were  to  proceed  to  the  formal  decision of  affairs,  and  on  wliich,  Gonstantine  desired  to  be  present.  Arius having  been  sent  for  on  these  occasions,  declared  his  opinions  as they  are  given  in  his  letters  ;* — that  God  has  not  always  been  a Father,  and  that  there  was  a  time  when  the  Son  was  not ;  that the  Son  is  a  creature  like  the  others ;  that  he  is  mutable  by  his nature ;  that  by  his  free  will  he  chose  to  remain  viituous,  but  that he  might  change  hke  others.  He  said  that  Jesus  Christ  was  not true  God,  but  divine  by  participation,  like  all  others  to  whom  the name  of  God  is  attributed.  He  added,  that  he  was  not  the  substantial Word  of  the  Father,  and  his  proper  wisdom,  by  which  he had  made  all  things,  but  that  he  was  himself  made  by  the  eternal wisdom ;  that  he  is  foreign  in  every  thing  from  the  substance  of the  Father ;  that  we  vrere  not  made  for  him,  but  he  for  us,  when it  was  the  pleasure  of  God,  who  was  before  alone,  to  create  us ;
that  he  was  made  by  the  will  of  God,  as  others  are,  having  no previous  existence  at  all,  since  he  is  not  a  proper  and  natural  production of  the  Father,  but  an  effect  of  his  grace.  The  father,  he continued,  is  invisible  to  the  Son,  and  the  Son  cannot  know  him perfectly ;  nor,  indeed,  can  he  know  his  own  substance.  Some expressions  of  Arius  are  deemed  too  ii'reverent  to  be  repeated,  but the  curious  reader  may  fmd  them  in  the  works  of  Athanasius.t The  bishops,  assembled  as  they  were  from  so  many  different  and widely  separated  i^ountries,  stopped  their  ears  on  hearing  such  lan
*  One  of  tlieiu  rfiay  b3  found  among  the  Documents  annexed,  C.
i  Orat.  I.  contra  Arianos,  p.  294  and  295.

2

i4  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

guage,  and  rejected  this  doctrine  as  remote  and  alien  from  that  of the  Church.  Alter  a  protracted  discussion,  sonic  were  of  opinion that  nothing  new  should  be  introduced,  and  that  they  should  hold to  the  faith  which  w^as  received  from  the  begmning  by  tradition.
This  was  particulijrly  the  case  with  those  whose  simplicity  of  character led  them  to  receive  religious  truths  without  a  minute  examination. Others  contended  that  it  was  not  expedient  to  follow the  opinions  of  the  ancients  without  inquiry.  Many  of  the bishops,  and  of  the  ecclesiastics,  who  attended  them,  acquired great  reputation  at  these  preliminary  meetings,  by  exhibiting  their strength  in  the  art  of  logic,  and  their  practised  skill  in  disputes  of this  nature,  and  thus  made  themselves  known,  not  only  to  the emperor,  but  also  to  his  courtiers ;  and  from  that  time  Athanasius, a  deacon  of  the  church  of  Alexandria,  who  accompanied  his bishop,  took  the  principal  part  in  this  important  discussion.

Constantine  being  desirous  of  meeting  so  great  a  number  of prelates  as  were  assembled  at  Nice,  as  well  as  of  promoting  peace and  unanimity,  repaired  to  that  city,  after  he  was  informed  of their  arrival.  But  as  it  too  frequently  happens,  many  of  that sacred  order,  as  if  they  had  met  together  on  their  private  concerns, and  supposing  that  they  had  found  a  favorable  opportunity  of having  their  grievances  redressed,  presented  to  the  emperor  written complaints  against  their  brethren.  As  he  was  almost  continually importuned  with  memorials  of  this  kind,  he  deferred  the consideration  of  them  all  to  a  certain  day.  At  the  appointed time,  he  addressed  the  prelates  to  the  following  etlect.  "  All  these accusations,  my  friends,  must  be  finally  determined  at  the  great day  of  account,  by  the  common  Judge  of  all  men.  But  it  does not  belong  to  a  man  hke  myself  to  take  cognizance  of  these  mutual charges,  as  they  are  brought  by  bishops,  who  ought  so  to  demean themselves  as  not  to  be  judged  by  others.  Imitate,  then, the  divine  clemency  in  forgiving  one  another ;  and  relinquishmg your  reciprocal  imputations,  agree  to  be  at  peace :  And  let  us give  our  attention  to  those  articles  of  faith,  for  the  consideration of  which,  we  have  convened  in  this  place."  lie  assured  them, according  to  Theodoret,*  although  this  seems  to  have  been  said
*  Hist.  Eccles.  I.  11.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  15

at  another  time,  that  he  had  never  read  their  libels.  He  declared that  the  delinquencies  of  the  prelates  ought  not  to  be  published, lest  they  should  prove  an  occasion  of  offence  to  the  people ;  and even  added,  that  if  he  should  surprise  a  bishop  in  adultery,  he would  cover  him  with  his  imperial  mantle,  for  fear  that  the  example of  the  crime  should  be  prejudicial  to  those  who  might  witness it.  He  then  commanded  them  to  desist  from  their  unseemly recriminations,  and  ordered  their  memorials  to  be  thrown  into  the fire.

The  day  appointed  by  the  emperor  for  the  public  session  of  the council  was  under  the  consulate  of  Paulinus  and  Julian,  the  thirteenth of  the  calends  of  July,  answering  to  the  nineteenth  of June,*  A.  D.  32.5.  On  the  arrival  of  that  day,  says  Eusebiu3,t all  those  who  were  to  be  present  at  the  council,  assembled  in  an apartment  in  the  centre  of  the  palace,  which  was  larger  than  any of  the  others.  Many  benches  were  disposed  on  each  side,  and every  one  took  his  proper  place.  When  all  were  seated  with suitable  decorum,  they  awaited  the  coming  of  the  emperor.  First one,  then  another,  and  then  a  third,  of  his  attendants  entered  the hall.  Others  also  preceded,  not  armed  men,  nor  any  of  his  usual guard,  but  only  his  particular  friends.  At  the  signal  which  announced the  entrance  of  the  emperor,  all  arose,  and  he  appeared in  the  midst  of  them,  his  purple  robe,  resplendent  with  gold  and precious  stones,  dazzling  the  eyes  of  the  beholders.  That  his mind  was  impressed  v/ith  rehgious  awe  was  evident  in  his  downcast eyes,  his  blushing  countenance,  and  his  modest  step  and movement.  He  was  taller  than  any  of  those,  by  whom  he  was surrounded.  Nor  was  he  in  stature  only,  but  also  in  elegance  of form,  and  robustness  of  frame,  superior  to  the  others.  These  external advantages  were  heightened  hy  courteousness  of  behavior,
*  Socrates  says,  that  it  was  on  the  SOtli  of  May,  but  Valesius  thinks  ho  v.a.s mistaken.  Atticus,  bisliop  of  Constantinople,  mentions  the  14th  of  June,  but the  date  assumed  by  the  writer  is  supported  by  the  council  of  Calcedon  and  the Alexandrian  Chronicle.  The  reader  who  may  wish  to  see  a  full  examination of  this  difficulty,  is  referred  to  Tillemont,  memoires  pour  servir  ^  I'histoire  eccl©siastique,  Tom.  VI.  Note  I,  sur  le  Concile  de  Nicee.

t  Vit.  Cons.  III.  7.

16  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

and  a  princely  condescension,  indicative,  says  his  biographer,  of the  noble  qualities  of  his  mind.  When  he  had  reached  the  upper end  of  the  hall,  he  remained  standing  in  the  middle,  between  the highest  places,  before  a  small  chair,  burnished  with  gold,  which was  prepared  for  his  accommodation,  until  he  was  requested  to  be seated  by  the  bishops,  wdio  then  resumed  their  places.

The  prelate  *  who  occupied  the  seat  on  the  right  side  of  the emperor  then  addressed  him  in  a  short  speech,  giving  thanks  and praise  to  Almighty  God  for  the  benefits  conferred  on  the  Church through  his  instrumentality.  When  he  was  seated,  the  spectators all  continued  in  silence,  fixing  their  eyes  upon  the  emperor,  who, surveying  them  w^ith  a  cheerful  and  serene  expression  of  countenance, and  employing  a  few^  moments  to  collect  his  thoughts, spake  to  the  follov/ing  purport,  in  a  pleasant  and  subdued  tone  of voice.  "  It  was,  my  dear  friends,  my  most  cherished  wish,  that  I
might  one  day  enjoy  the  sight  of  this  convention.  Having  been indulged  in  this  desire,  I  return  thanks  to  God,  the  ruler  of  all, who,  in  addition  to  innumerable  other  favors,  has  granted  me  this greatest  of  all  blessings,  to  see  you  assembled  together,  and  united in  your  minds.  May  no  malignant  foe  disturb  in  future  our public  happiness.  After  the  complete  subversion,  by  the  help  of God  our  preserver,  of  the  tyranny  of  those,  who  warred  against the  Most  High,  let  no  malevolent  demon  again  expose  the  divine law.  in  any  other  manner,  to  slander  and  detraction.  An  internal sedition  in  the  Church  is,  in  my  apprehension,  more  dangerous and  formidable  than  any  war,  in  which  I  can  be  engaged ;
nor  do  foreign  concerns,  however  unfortunate,  alTect  my  mind with  so  sensible  a  grief  as  this  unhappy  affair.  After  I  had  become victorious,  by  divine  assistance,  over  all  ni}^  enemies,  I
thought  that  it  only  remained  for  me  to  render  thanks  to  God, and  to  participate  in  the  universal  joy  with  those,  wdiose  liberation lie  has  accomplished  through  my  agency  and  efforts.  But  when the  unwelcome  news  of  your  dissensions  was  brought  to  my  ears, I  conceived  that  the  report  should  by  no  means  be  neglected ;  and hoping  that  by  my  interference,  a  remedy  might  be  applied  to  the evil,  I  sent  for  you  all.  without  delay.     Great  indeed  is  my  satis
*  Eustathius,  according  to  Theodoret.  I.  7.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  17

faction  to  see  you  assembled  together.  But  I  shall  consider  the object  of  my  prayers  and  labors  as  fully  obtained,  when  I  shall behold  you  united  in  the  purpose  of  promoting  harmony  and  concord ;  which,  as  persons  consecrated  to  God,  it  is  your  duty  to preach,  and  to  inculcate  on  others.  Endeavor  then,  my  friends, ministers  of  God,  and  faithful  servants  of  a  common  master  and Saviour,  that,  the  causes  of  your  disagreement  being  removed, all  the  asperities  of  controversy  may  be  smoothed  by  the  dictates of  peace.  By  pursuing  this  course,  you  will  not  only  do  that, which  is  pleasing  to  God,  who  is  exalted  above  all,  but  will  confer an  important  benefit  on  myself,  your  fellow^  servant."  The emperor  also  remarked,*  that  the  power  of  the  enemy  being  destroyed, and  no  one  remaining  to  make  any  resistance,  it  would be  deplorable  indeed,  if  they  should  now  molest  one  another,  and give  occasion  to  those,  who  regarded  them  with  no  friendly  aspect, to  turn  their  quarrels  into  ridicule.  Their  business,  he  said, vras  with  matters  of  theology,  the  decision  of  which  depended  on the  instructions  which  the  Holy  Spirit  had  left  them.  The  gospel, the  letters  of  the  apostles,  and  the  works  of  the  ancient  prophets, teach  us,  with  sufficient  clearness,  what  we  are  obliged  to believe  concerning  the  divine  nature.  Let  us  then  renounce  all angr}^  contentions,  and  seek  in  the  books  vrhich  the  Holy  Ghost has  dictated,  the  solution  of  our  doubts.

The  oration  of  Constantino  was  pronounced  in  Latin,  which was  his  vernacular  tongue.  Another  person  translated  it  into Greek,  which  was  better  understood  by  most  of  the  fathers,  as  it was  generally  diffused  in  all  parts  of  the  East.  The  emperor then  gave  those  who  presided  in  the  council  an  opportunity  of speaking,  and  permitted  the  members  to  examine  matters  of  doctrine and  religious  differences.

The  opinions  of  Arius  were  first  examined  in  the  presence  of the  emperor.  He  repeated  what  he  had  said  on  former  occasions.
The  Eusebians,  anxious  to  defend  him,  entered  into  the  dispute.
The  other  bishops,  who  were  beyond  comparison  the  greater number,  mildly  required  them  to  give  an  account  of  their  doc
»  Theodoret,  I.  7.

2

18  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

trine,  and  to  support  it  by  suitable  proofs.  But  no  sooner  had they  begun  to  speak,  than  they  seemed  to  be  at  variance  with themselves ;  they  remained  confounded,  and  seeing  the  absurdity of  their  heresy,  confessed  their  shame  by  their  silence.*  The bishops  having  refuted  their  allegations,  explained  the  holy  doctrine of  the  Church.  The  emperor  patiently  listened  to  these  disputes, which  were  agitated  at  first  with  considerable  warmth.
He  gave  great  attention,  says  Eusebius,  to  what  was  advanced on  either  side  ;  and  sometimes  reproving,  sometimes  encouraging the  speakers,  he  moderated  by  degrees  the  violence  of  the  contending parties.  He  spake  kindly  to  every  one  in  the  Greek  language, with  which  he  was  not  unacquainted,  gaining  over  some of  them  to  his  opinion  by  the  strength  of  his  arguments,  and softening  others  by  his  entreaties.  He  commended  those  who spake  judiciously,  persuaded  them  all  to  concord,  and  reduced them  at  last  to  an  agreement  on  the  contested  points.!

A  letter  of  Eusebius  of  Nicomedia  was  read  in  the  council, which  evidently  contained  the  heretical  opinion,  and  discovered the  management  of  the  party.  It  excited  so  much  indignation that  it  was  rent  in  pieces,  and  Eusebius  was  overwhelmed  with confusion. +  He  says,  among  other  things,  that  if  the  Son  of  God was  acknowledged  to  be  uncreated,  it  would  be  necessary  to  admit, that  he  was  consubstantial  with  the  Father.  §  It  has  been thought  that  this  was  the  letter  to  Paulinus  of  Tyre,  in  which  the same  idea  is  expressed  in  other  words.  II  The  Arians  also  presented to  the  council  a  confession  of  faith,  which  was  torn  on being  read,  and  pronounced  to  be  spurious  and  false.  A  great outcry  was  raised  against  them,  and  they  were  generally  accused
*  Athan.  de  decretis,  p.  251.

t  Eus.  III.  13.

t  Eustath.  as  quoted  by  Theodoret.  I.  8.

§  According  to  Ambrose,  occasion  was  taken  from  this  expression  of  Eusebius, which  discovered  so  great  a  dread  of  the  word  consubstantial,  to  adopt  that formidable  term  against  the  Arians.  "  Hoc  verbum  posuerunt  patres,  quod  viderunt  adversariis  esse  formidini ;  ut  tanquam  evaginato  ab  ipsis  gladio,  ipsum nefandoB  caput  hercEseos  amputarent."  de  fide  L.  III.  c.  7.

II  Documents,  D.

2*

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  19

of  having  betrayed  the  truth.*  The  council  wishing  to  set  aside the  terms  employed  by  the  Arians,  and  to  use  words  authorized by  scripture,  said  that  .our  Lord  was  by  nature  the  only  Son  of God;  the  alone  Word,  power  and  wisdom  of  the  Father,  true  God, according  to  St.  John ;  the  splendor  of  the  glory,  and  the  image of  the  substance  of  the  Father,  as  St.  Paul  writes.  The  partisans of  Eusebius  said  among  themselves,t  let  us  consent  to  this, for  we  also  are  of  God,  since  it  is  written,  "  there  is  one  God,  from whom  all  things  proceed."  And  in  another  place,  "  old  things have  passed  away,  and  all  things  are  new,  but  all  things  are  of God."  The  bishops,  however,  who  comprehended  their  design, explained  more  clearly  the  words  "  of  God,"  by  saying  that  the Son  was  of  the  substance  of  God.  It  is  true,  they  remarked,  that creatures  are  said  to  be  from  God,  because  they  exist  not  of  themselves, nor  without  a  cause ;  but  the  Son  alone  is  properly  of  the substance  of  the  Father.  For  this  is  peculiar  to  the  only  begotten and  true  Word  of  the  Father,  and  therefore  the  expression "  of  the  substance  of  the  Father"  has  been  employed.

The  prelates  having  again  asked  the  Arians,  who  seemed  to  be few  in  number,  if  they  allowed  that  the  Son  was  not  a  creature, but  the  alone  power,  wisdom  and  image  of  the  Father,  and  in  no respect  whatever  different  from  him,  and  that  he  is  true  God,  it was  observed,  that  Eusebius  and  his  adherents  made  signs  to  one another  that  all  these  particulars  might  agree  to  men,  for  Ave  too, said  they,  are  called  the  image  and  glory  of  God.  There  are many  powers,  for  it  is  written,  '•'  all  the  powers  of  God  went  out of  Egypt."  The  caterpillars  and  locusts  too  are  called  the  great power.  "  Tlie  God  of  powers  is  with  us,  the  God  of  Jacob,  our protector."  We  are  not  merely  the  children  of  God,  since  the Son  of  God  himself  calls  us  his  bretliren.  And  as  to  their  denominating the  Son  true  God,  that  occasions  us,  they  said,  no embarrassment,  for  he  is  so  truly,  because  he  has  been  made  so.
But  the  bishops  perceiving  their  sophistry  and  dissimulation,  produced a  collection  of  passages  from  the  sacred  writings,  where  the
*  Theodoret,  I.  7.

t  Athan.  de  decret.  p.  367,  et  epist.  ad  Africanos,  as  reported  by  Theodoret.
1.8.

20  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

Son  is  called  splendor,  fountain,  river,  and  figure  of  the  substance;
and  quoted  the  words  "  in  thy  light  shall  we  see  Hght,"  and  "  I
and  my  Father  are  one."  Finally,  they  explained  themselves with  more  clearness  and  brevity,  in  declaring  that  the  Son  is  consubstantial  with  the  Father,  making  use  of  the  Greek  word o/xoovcnog,  which  this  dispute  has  since  rendered  so  celebrated,  as expressive  of  the  meaning  of  the  terms  and  passages  which  have been  cited.  It  was  understood  to  signify  that  the  Son  is  not  only like  the  Father,  but  so  similar  that  he  may  be  called  with  propriety the  same ;  and  implies  that  the  resemblance  and  immutability of  the  Son  is  different  from  that  which  is  affirmed  of  us,  and which  we  acquire  by  the  practice  of  virtue,  and  the  observation of  the  divine  commands.  Besides,  bodies  which  have  a  resemblance only,  may  be  separate  and  distant ;  as  a  father  and  a  son, however  great  may  be  the  likeness  between  them.  But  the  Son of  God  was  considered  not  only  similar  to  the  substance  of  the Father,  but  inseparable  from  it, — the  Word  being  always  in  the Father,  and  the  Father  in  the  Word.

The  Arians  rejected  wnth  murmurings  and  contempt  the  term consubstantial,  complaining  that  it  was  not  to  be  found  in  the Scriptures,  and  might  be  taken  in  a  very  exceptionable  sense.
For,  they  remarked,  that  which  is  of  the  same  substance  with  another is  derived  from  it  in  one  of  these  three  modes  ;  by  production, as  a  plant  from  its  root ;  by  fluxion,  as  children  from  their fathers ;  or  by  division,  as  in  abstracting  three  or  four  pieces  from a  mass,  for  instance,  of  gold.*  The  Catholics  explained  so  happily the  term  consubstantial,  that  the  emperor  himself,  little  as we  may  suppose  him  to  have  been  familiar,  from  his  education and  military  habits  of  hfe,  with  theological  inquiries,  perceived that  it  did  not  include  any  corporeal  idea,  no  division  being  signified of  the  substance  of  the  Father,  which  is  altogetlier  immaterial and  divine,  and  must  therefore  be  understood  only  m  a  divine and  ineffable  manner.  They  demonstrated  the  injustice  of  their opponents,  in  objecting  to  this  word,  on  the  pretence  that  it  is  not to  be  found  in  Scripture,  when  they  themselves  scrupled  not  to
«  Basil,  Epist.  300.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  21

employ  expressions,  which  are  not  in  the  sacred  writings,  such  as, that  the  Son  of  God  was  made  from  nothing,  and  had  not  always existed.  They  added,  that  the  term  consubstantial  was  not  a new  one,  and  that  it  had  been  used  by  illustrious  bishops  of  Rome and  Alexandria  in  opposing  those  who  represented  that  the  Son was  a  work,  or  creation.  Eusebius  of  Cesaria  himself  acknowledges this.*  It  was  insisted  by  some,  that  the  word  consubstantial  had  been  objected  to,  as  improper,  in  the  council  of  Antioch, which  was  held  against  Paul  of  Samosata.  But  this,  it  was  asserted, was  because  it  had  been  taken  in  a  gross  manner,  as  implying division,  as  when  it  is  said  that  several  pieces  of  money are  of  the  same  metal.  But  the  only  question  in  reference  to Paul,  was  to  show  that  the  Son  was  before  all  things,  and  that, being  the  Word,  he  was  made  flesh ;  whereas  the  Arians  admit that  he  was  before  all  time,  maintaining,  however,  that  he  was made,  and  that  he  was  one  of  the  creatures.  They  declared  that his  resemblance  to,  and  union  with,  the  Father,  was  not  with regard  to  his  substance  or  nature,  but  in  a  conformity  of  will  and counsel,  t
After  the  word  consubstantial,  and  others  the  best  adapted  to express  the  catholic  faith,  were  agreed  on,  Hosius,  according  to Athanasius,  drew  up  the  form,  as  recorded  in  the  letter  of  Eusebius. All  the  bishops  approved  of  this  symbol  and  subscribed  it, with  the  exception  of  a  small  number  of  Arians.t  At  first,  there were  seventeen  who  refused  to  subscribe,  but  the  number  was afterwards  reduced  to  five,  viz.  Eusebius  of  Nicomedia,  Theognis of  Nice,  Maris  of  Calcedon,  Theonas  and  Secundus  of  Lybia.
Eusebius  of  Cesarea  agreed  to  the  word  consubstantial,  after having  opposed  it  the  preceding  day.  Three  of  the  five  who have  been  named  conceded  the  point  at  last,  from  the  fear  of  deposition.     Theonas  and  Secundus  only,  continued  obstinately
*  Documents,  E.

t  By  comparing  the  above  sketch  of  the  debate  on  this  subject,  derived  from Athanasius  and  others,  with  the  account  of  it  given  in  the  letter  of  Eusebius  of Cesarea,  (Doc.  E.)  which  is  somewhat  different,  if  not  in  certain  particulars  contradictory, the  intelligent  reader  may  be  the  better  enabled  to  elicit  the  truth.

X  Socrates,  I.  8.

22  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

attached  to  Arius,  and  the  Synod  anathematized  them  with him.*  The  writings  of  Arius  were  condemned  at  the  same  time with  himself,  and  particularly  his  Thalia.t
The  question  relating  to  the  observance  of  Easter,  which  was agitated  in  the  time  of  Anicetus  and  Poly  carp,  and  afterwards  in that  of  Victor,  was  still  undecided.  It  was  one  of  the  principal reasons  for  convoking  the  council  of  Nice,  being  the  most  important subject  to  be  considered  after  the  Arian  controversy.  It  appears that  the  churches  of  Syria  and  Mesopotamia  continued  to follow  the  custom  of  the  Jews,  and  celebrated  Easter  on  the  fourteenth day  of  the  moon,  whether  falling  on  Sunday  or  not.  All the  other  churches  observed  that  solemnity  on  Sunday  only,  viz.
those  of  Rome,  Italy,  Africa,  Lybia,  Egypt,  Spain,  Gaul  and Britain ;  and  all  Greece,  Asia,  and  Pontus.  It  was  considered indecorous,  and  as  affording  occasion  of  scandal  to  unbelievers, that  Avhile  some  were  engaged  in  fasting  and  penitence,  others should  be  indulging  in  festivity  and  relaxation.

This  subject  having  been  discussed,  it  was  decreed  to  celebrate Easter  on  the  same  day,  and  the  oriental  prelates  promised  to conform  to  the  practice  of  Rome,  of  Egypt,  and  of  all  the  West.
St.  Athanasius  remarks  a  difference  of  language,  in  pronouncing on  this  subject,  from  that  which  w^as  used  in  reference  to  the faith.     With  respect  to  the  latter  it  is  said,  "  this  is  the  catholic
*  Philostorgius,  an  Arian  historian,  of  whose  work  an  epitome  is  extant  by Photius,  acknowledges  that  all  the  bishops  agreed  to  the  Nicene  Creed,  with  the exception  of  Secundus  and  Theonas.  But  the  Arian  prelates  who  embraced  the decision  of  the  council,  artfully  concealed  under  the  word  ofioovatov  the  term OfiOLovaiov,  the  former  signifying  of  the  same  substance,  and  differing  in  orthography  only  by  a  letter  from  the  latter,  which  means  like,  or  similar.  The course  they  adopted  (in  assenting  to  the  decrees  of  the  council,)  was  by  the  suggestion of  Constantia,  sister  of  the  emperor.     Phil.  L.  I.  8,
t  It  was  a  chant  set  to  the  same  measure  and  music  as  the  infamous  songs  formerly composed  for  convivial  occasions  by  Sotades,  a  Greek  post,  proverbial  for his  flagrant  immoralities.  This  was  sufficient  to  render  it  odious,  to  say  nothing of  the  erroneous  opinions  which  it  contained,  for  Arius  had  incorporated  into  it the  substance  of  his  doctrines.  He  composed  several  other  airs,  to  insinuate  his opinions  more  agreeably  into  vulgar  and  uncultivated  minds.  Some  of  them were  intended  for  travellers,  sailors,  and  millers.     See  Phil.  L.  II.  2.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  23

faith,  we  believe,"  &;c.,  in  order  to  show  that  it  was  no  new  determination, l)iit  an  apostolic  tradition.  Accordingly,  no  date  is given  to  this  decision,  neither  the  day  nor  the  year  being  mentioned. But  with  regard  to  Easter,  it  is  said,  "  we  have  resolved as  follows,"  in  order  to  show  that  all  were  expected  to  obey.*
Easter  day  was  fixed  on  the  Sunday  immediately  following  the new  moon  which  was  nearest  after  the  vernal  equinox,  because  it is  certain  that  our  Saviour  rose  from  the  dead  on  the  Sunday which  next  succeeded  the  passover  of  the  Jews.  In  order  to  find more  readUy  the  first  day  of  the  moon,  and  consequently  the  fourteenth, the  council  ordained  that  the  cycle  of  nineteen  years should  be  made  use  of,  because  at  the  end  of  this  period,  the  new moons  return  very  nearly  to  the  same  days  of  the  solar  year.
This  cycle,  which  is  denominated,  in  Greek,  EweaKaiSeKaeTTipiCi had  been  discovered  about  seven  hundred  and  fifty  years  before, by  Meto,  a  mathematician  of  Athens,  and  it  has  since  been  termed tlie  golden  number,  because  it  was  customary  to  mark  in  the calendar  with  letters  of  gold,  the  days  of  the  new  moon.  It  has been  thought  that  the  synod  assigned  the  task  of  this  calculation to  Eusebius  of  Cesarea.  It  is  certain,  however,  that  he  had  composed a  paschal  canon  of  nineteen  years,  and  that  he  had  explained the  nature  and  origm  of  this  question  in  a  treatise  dedicated  to the  emperor  Constantine,  who  gave  him  thanks  for  it  in  a  letter.
But  notwithstanding  the  decision  of  the  council  there  were  some quartodecimans,  as  they  were  termed,  who  remained  pertinaciously attached  to  the  celebration  of  Easter  on  the  fourteenth  of the  moon,  and  among  others  the  Audeans,  schismatics  of  Mesopotamia. They  found  fault  with  the  council,  reproachfully  remarking, that  this  was  the  first  time  that  the  ancient  tradition, through  complaisance  for  Constantine,  had  been  departed  from.

The  Synod  was  also  desirous  of  applying  a  remedy  to  the schism  of  the  Meletians,  who  had  occasioned  a  division  in  Egypt for  twenty-four  years,  and  who  encouraged  the  Arians  by  their union  with  the  party.  Meletius  was  treated  with  considerable lenity — more,  it  was  thought,  than  he  deserved.     He  was  per
*  Synod.  Arim.  et  Seleuc.  Epist.  p.  873.

24  co;:ncil  of  nice.

mitted  to  continue  in  Lycopolis,  the  city  of  his  residence,  but  was deprived  of  his  ecclesiastical  powers  and  authority,  being  merely permitted  to  retain  the  title  of  bishop.  But  the  reader  is  referred to  the  synodical  epistle  *  for  the  particulars  in  relation  to  Meletius;
and  those  who  had  received  ordination  at  his  hands.

Another  part  of  the  business  of  the  council  was  the  framing  of several  canons,  or  general  laws  of  discipline,  not,  it  is  understood, to  establish  a  new  code  of  regulations,  but  chiefly  to  preserve  the ancient  rules  of  conduct  imposed  on  the  clergy,  which  had  been too  much  relaxed  or  neglected.  These  canons  t  are  twenty  in number,!:  and  have  been  acknowledged  as  genuine  by  all  antiquity. The  bishops  were  inclined  to  pass  an  ecclesiastical  law  in addition  to  the  others,  requiring,  according  to  Socrates,  that  those who  had  been  admitted  to  holy  orders,  the  bishops,  priests  and deacons,  and,  according  to  Sozomen,  the  subdeacons  also,  should abstain  from  cohabitation  with  the  wives  whom  they  had  married while  they  were  laymen.  When  this  topic  was  proposed  for debate,  and  the  opinions  of  the  s5mod  were  called  for,  Paphnutius, rising  from  his  seat  in  the  midst  of  the  bishops,  and  raising  his voice,  protested  against  the  imposition  of  so  heavy  a  yoke  on  the clergy,  remarking,  in  the  words  of  St.  Paid,  that  marriage  was honorable  and  the  nuptial  bed  undefiled,  and  that  such  an  excess of  rigor  might  rather  be  injurious  than  beneficial  to  the  Church ;
that  every  one  was  not  capable  of  so  entire  a  continence,  and that  the  repudiated  wives  might  forfeit,  perhaps,  their  conjugal virtue.  He  added,  that  he  considered  the  marriage  union,  sanctioned by  the  laws,  as  pure  and  chaste ;  that  it  was  sufficient,  according to  ancient  usage,  that  he,  who  had  once  been  admitted to  the  clerical  order,  should  no  longer  be  permitted  to  marry  ;  but that  it  was  unnecessary  to  separate  him  from  the  wife  whom  he had  espoused  when  in  the  condition  of  a  layman.  It  was  thus that  the  venerable  confessor  supported  his  sentiments,  although he  had  not  only  never  been  married  himself,  but  had  always  re
*  F.  t  Documents,  I.

t  Some  of  the  Eastern  Christians  mention  a  much  greater  number.  See  J.  S.
Asseman,  Bibloth.  Orient.  Clement.  Vatic,  torn.  I.  p.  22,  195.  and  Cave,  Hist.
Lit.  p.  224.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  25

frained  from  illicit  intercourse  with  the  other  sex,  having  been educated  from  childhood  in  a  monastery,  in  which  he  was  distinguished for  his  singular  purity  of  life.  The  council  acceded unanimously  to  the  views  of  Paphnutius,  and,  without  further deliberation,  left  those  who  were  already  married  to  continue  in the  state  of  wedlock  or  not,  at  their  own  discretion.

It  will  be  perceived  that  the  eighth  canon  of  the  synod  relates to  the  sect  of  Novatians,  who  were  called  Cathari^  that  is,  the pure.  The  last  words  of  this  canon  are  remarkable,  and  contain an  important  rule,  that  there  should  never  be  two  bishops  in  the same  city.  The  emperor,  moved  by  his  zeal  for  peace  and  union in  the  Church,  had  invited  to  tlie  council  a  Novatian  bishop  by the  name  of  Acesius.  A  conversation  of  some  interest  between Constantine  and  this  prelate  is  recorded  both  by  Socrates  and  Sozomen,  which  may  be  as  well  related,  perhaps,  in  this  place  as  in any  other.  When  the  form  of  faith  was  written,  and  the  synod had  subscribed  it,  the  emperor  asked  Acesius,  if  he  also  agreed  to that  confessicMi  of  faith,  and  approved  of  the  resolution  concerning Easter.  "  My  prince,"  he  replied,  "  I  know  of  nothing  new  determined by  the  council.  I  have  always  understood,  that  from the  beginning,  from  the  very  days  of  the  apostles,  the  same  definition of  the  faith,  and  the  same  time  of  celebrating  the  festival of  Easter,  has  been  handed  down  to  us  by  tradition."  "Why then,"  rejoined  the  emperor,  "  do  you  separate  yourself  from  our communion?"  Acesius  explained  to  him  what  had  happened under  the  persecution  of  Decius,  when  many  fell  from  the  profession of  the  faith ;  and  spake  of  the  rigor  of  the  canon,  which  forbade receiving  those,  to  the  participation  of  the  sacred  mysteries, who,  after  baptism,  had  committed  any  such  sin  as  is  pronounced in  scripture  to  be  a  sin  unto  death.  "  They  ought,  indeed."  he  said, "  to  be  urged  to  repentance,  but  not  encouraged  to  hope  for  pardon through  the  ministration  of  the  priests.  For  this  they  should look  directly  to  God,  who  alone  has  the  power  and  prerogative of  remitting  sins."  The  bishop  having  thus  spoken,  the  emperor repUed,  "  Take  a  ladder,  Acesius,  and  ascend  alone  to  heaven."

Before  separating,  the  council  prepared  a  synodical  epistle,*

*F.

26  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

chiefly  intended  for  the  church  of  Alexandria,  as  being  most  interested in  all  the  acts  of  the  Synod.     It  is  also  addressed  to  all the  faithful  of  Egypt,  Pentapohs,  Lybia,  and  all  other  churches whatever.     The  emperor  Constantine  wrote  at  the  same  time  two letters,  in  order  to  promulgate  the  ordinances  of  the  council,  and to  make  them  known  to  those,  who  were  not  present  at  the  convention.     The  first*  is  particularly  addressed  to  the  church  of Alexandria,  and  informs  them  that  the  faith  has  been  examined, and  placed  in  so  clear  a  light  that  no  difficulty  remains.     Copies of  this  letter  were  dispatched  to  all  the  provinces.     The  second!
is  directed  to  the  churches  in  general.     He  published  also  another letter,  or  more  properly  an  edict,  directed  to  the  bishops  and  people, condemning  Arius  and  his  writings.     He  says  that  Porphyry, having  composed  impious  books   against  Christianity,  rendered himself  infamous  in  the  eyes  of  posterity,  and  that  his  writings were  destroyed.     It  has  in  like  manner,  he  continues,  been  decreed, that  Arius  and  his  followers  be  called  Porphyrians,  so  that they  may  bear  the  name  of  him  whom  they  have  imitated ;  and that  if  any  book  w^ritten  by  Arius  shall  be  found,  it  shall  be  committed to  the  flames,  that  no  monument  of  his  corrupt  doctrine may  descend  to  future  ages.     He  declares  that  whoever  shall  be convicted  of  having  concealed  any  book  composed  by  Alius,  instead of  bm-ning  it,  shall  suffer  death  immediately  after  his  apprehension.    With  whatever  degree  of  aversion  we  may  contemplate the  doctrines  of  Arius,  it  is  painful  to  witness  so  melancholy  a  forgetfulness  in  the  first  Christian  emperor,  of  the  benignant  temper of  Him,  who  rebuked  the  unhallowed  zeal  of  the  disciples,  as  not knowing  Avhat  spirit  they  Avere  of,  when  they  Avould  have  caUed down  fire  from  heaven  to  consume  the  inhospitable  Samaritans.
At  the  same  time,  Arius  and  the  two  prelates  who  adhered  the most  obstinately  to  his  party,  Secundus  and  Theonas,  were  banished by  the  emperor.

The  council  concluded  its  session  on  the  twenty-fifth  day  of August,  A.  D.  325,  a  month  after  the  commencement  of  the twentieth  year  of  the  reign  of  Constantine,  who  ascended  the throne  on  the  twenty-fifth  of  July,  A.  D.  306 ;  but  it  is  thought
*  Documents,  G.  t  Documents,  H.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  27

that  the  festival  on  that  occasion,  which  was  celebrated  in  every part  of  the  empire  with  great  solemnity,  was  deferred  in  compliment to  the  termination  of  the  synod.  During  the  public  rejoicings, Eusebius  of  Cesarea,  in  the  presence  of  Constantino,  and surrounded  by  the  bishops,  pronounced  a  panegyric  on  the  emperor. A  magnificent  entertainment  was  provided  by  that  prince, "for  the  ministers  of  God,"  to  borrow  the  graphic  language  of Eusebius,  "now  reconciled  with  one  another,  as  an  acceptable sacrifice  offered  to  the  Divine  Being,  through  them.  No  one  of the  bishops  was  absent  from  the  imperial  banquet,  which  was more  admirably  conducted  than  can  possibly  be  described.  The guards  and  soldiers,  disposed  in  a  circle,  were  stationed  at  the  entrance of  the  palace  with  drawn  swords.  The  men  of  God  passed through  the  midst  of  them  without  fear,  and  went  into  the  most private  apartments  of  the  royal  edifice.  Some  of  them  were  then admitted  to  the  table  of  the  emperor,  and  others  took  the  places assigned  them  on  either  side.  It  was  a  lively  image  of  the  kingdom of  Christ,  and  appeared  more  like  a  dream  than  a  reality."
At  the  conclusion  of  this  splendid  festival,  the  emperor  courteously saluted  every  individual  of  the  company,  and  presented  his  guests with  rich  and  valuable  gifts,  according  to  their  respective  rank and  merits.  When  they  were  about  to  separate,  he  took  a  friendly leave  of  them,  exhorting  them  to  union,  harmony  and  mutual condescension  ;  and  concluded  by  recommending  himself  to  their prayers.  Thus  ended  the  great  council  of  Nice,  which,  it  is  said, is  still  celebrated  l^y  the  Greeks  and  Orientals  among  the  festivals of  the  saints.

Nothing,  in  the  preceding  narrative,  appears  to  give  any  countenance to  that  supremacy  of  the  bishop  of  Rome,  which  was claimed  and  conceded  in  later  ages.  He  w^as  merely  represented in  his  absence  by  two  presbyters.  He  seems  to  have  possessed  no pre-eminence,  nor  any  exclusive  privileges.  Bossuet  indeed  asserts, on  the  authority  of  Gelasius  Cyzicenus,  a  writer  in  the  latter  part of  the  fifth  century,  that  Hosius  was  one  of  the  legates  of  the  Roman prelate,  and  presided  in  the  council ;  but  it  is  generally  admitted that  the  testimony  of  Gelasius  is  of  little  value  when  unsupported by  other  writers ;  and  no  earlier  historian  makes  any  mention of  a  fact,  which,  if  true,  would  scarcely  have  been  left  unrecorded.

28  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

The  remarkable  unanimity  of  the  synod  on  the  subject  of  our Saviour's  true  and  proper  divinity,  the  only  one  examined  by  that convention,  which  excites  much  interest  at  the  present  day,  may be  considered,  under  the  peculiar  circumstances  of  the  case,  as affording  a  powerful  confirmation  of  the  truth  of  this  important doctrine.  Every  part  of  the  Christian  Avorld  was  virtually  represented by  men,  who,  from  their  commanding  station  and  favorable opportunities,  must  be  supposed  to  have  been  well  acquainted with  what  was  understood  to  have  been  the  doctrine  of  the  apostles, on  this  important  article  of  our  faith.  Most  of  them,  probably, lived  within  two  centuries  of  the  death  of  St.  John.  Could  the original  doctrine  have  been  lost  in  a  period  so  comparatively short?  Could  it  have  been  corrupted?  Could  it  have  been generally  corrupted  throughout  the  Church  ?  If  not,  the  fathers of  Nice  must  liave  held,  in  this  respect,  the  faith  delivered  by  the first  preachers  of  Christianity,  and  consequently  the  true  one.
They  could  not  have  been  ignorant  of  what  was,  and  had  been, believed,  in  their  respective  countries.  The  agreement,  therefore, on  this  point,  of  so  many  different  nations,  as  expressed  by  their representatives,  nations  of  such  various  characters,  pursuits,  manners, customs  and  prejudices,  can  be  satisfactorily  accounted  for only  on  the  supposition,  that  they  had  received  their  belief  from  a common  source,  and  preserved  it  pure  by  tradition,  during  the few  generations  which  had  elapsed  from  the  time  when  they  first received  the  gospel  from  the  apostles  themselves,  or  from  those who  lived  not  long  after  the  apostolic  age.  It  may  be  said,  that many  of  the  members  of  the  council  might  have  been  deterred from  expressing  their  real  belief,  as  some  few  of  them  undoubtedly were,  from  the  fear  of  exile  or  deposition.  But  they  appear  to have  been  almost  unanimous  on  this  subject  before  any  threats of  that  kind  were  held  out,  and  therefore  such  an  apprehension could  have  operated  on  a  very  small  number  only ;  and  if  even  a mere  majority  had  been  Arians,  the  danger  would  obviously  have been  on  the  other  side.  St.  Chrysostom  remarks,  that  it  would be  absurd  to  charge  the  council,  composed  as  it  was,  in  a  great measure,  of  saints  and  confessors,  either  with  ignorance  or  fear.
Nor  does  this  reflection  seem  to  be  unfounded.  For,  how  can  it be  reasonably  supposed,  that  in  the  situation  in  which  they  were
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  29

placed,  and  which  has  akeady  been  adverted  to,  they  could  be  in any  doubt  whether  our  Lord  was  divine  in  the  strict  sense  of  the term,  or  a  creature  only,  however  exalted  in  rank  and  dignity ;
or  that  such  men  would  have  disguised  their  genuine  persuasion, from  the  fear  of  losing  their  sacerdotal  honors,  or  of  missing  those temporal  advantages  and  emoluments,  which  they  might  naturally have  expected  to  enjoy  under  the  dominion  of  a  Christian prince  ?  Was  it  for  them,  men  of  unblemished  integrity  and  virtue, basely  to  violate  their  consciences  for  "  a  piece  of  bread  ?"  or descend,  for  the  sake  of  office,  from  their  elevated  position,  as ''  good  soldiers  of  Jesus  Christ,"  to  the  meanness  of  subterfuge  and dissimulation?  Was  it  for  men  who  Avere  born  and  grew  up amidst  scenes  of  pagan  insult,  cruelty  and  oppression,  and  many of  whom,  for  their  courageous  defence  of  the  truth,  had  been  deprived of  their  substance,  or  loaded  with  chains,  or  confined  in  a dungeon,  or  maimed  and  disfigured  in  their  persons ;  and  who would  doubtless  have  accompanied  their  heroic  brethren  in  the faith,  "  counting  not  their  lives  dear  unto  them,"  to  the  scaffold  or the  stake ;  or  would  have  expired  in  torments  on  the  rack,  or been  nailed  to  a  cross,  or  become  food  for  lions,  rather  than  "  blaspheme that  w^orthy  name  whereby  they  were  called ;" — was  it  for thein  to  stoop  to  such  moral  degradation  ?  men,  too,  some  of whom  had  been  distinguished  by  the  episcopal  mitre  at  a  period when  it  was  so  far  from  advancing  their  worldly  interest,  that  it only  exposed  them  more  surely  to  the  "  loss  of  all  things,"  added to  their  toils,  their  trials  and  their  sufferings,  and  served  but  to render  them  a  more  conspicuous  mark  for  heathen  persecution  ?

It  may  be  thought  that  the  language  and  actions  of  the  prelates were  sometimes  harsh  and  overbearing,  and  little  adapted  to encourage  freedom  of  debate.  It  must  be  confessed,  that,  measured by  the  standard  of  modern  usage  in  deliberative  bodies, their  deportment  was  occasionally  vehement  and  impassioned.
But,  is  no  allowance  to  be  made  for  ancient  manners,  and  for  the fervid  and  exaggerated  style,  both  of  speaking  and  acting,  when under  the  influence  of  strong  emotion,  so  prevalent  in  the  eastern and  southern  regions,  of  which  so  considerable  a  proportion  of  the members  of  the  synod  were  natives  ?     It  might  be  asked,  how
3*

30  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

ever,  from  what  cause  so  general  an  ebullition  of  indignant  feeling proceeded.  Was  it  not  that  their  ears  were  wounded  by language  which  they  considered  as  blasphemous,  and  that  sentiments were  avowed  which  they  regarded  as  alien  from  the  belief of  every  part  of  the  globe  enlightened  by  the  gospel,  and  contrary to  the  uniform  and  uninterrupted  tradition  every  where  received from  the  times  of  the  apostles ;  a  tradition  to  which,  as  well  as  to the  scriptures,  they  solenmly  appealed ;  while,  on  the  otlier  hand, although  the  Arians  alleged  passages  from  the  sacred  writings in  support  of  their  opinion,  they  did  not  even  pretend  that  it  was sanctioned  by  the  ancient  and  universal  faith  of  the  Christian Church?

It  will  only  be  added,  that  the  greater  part  of  the  protestant community  believe  that  the  doctrine  of  our  Saviour's  divinity  is satisfactorily  proved  by  the  Scriptures  alone,  independently  of any  foreign  aid,  on  a  fair  application  to  the  sacred  text  of  the legitimate  rules  of  interpretation.  But  if,  on  a  view  of  what  has been  advanced  from  the  words  of  scripture  for  and  against  that doctrine,  any  doubt  on  the  subject  should  remain,  would  not  the historical  evidence  afforded  by  the  result  of  the  synod  of  Nice, (evidence  which,  in  secular  concerns,  would  be  esteemed  of  great importance  in  deteniiining  a  question  of  fact,)  go  far  to  remove  it, without  assuming,  with  the  Church  of  Rome,  the  infallible  authority of  that  venerable  convocation,  or  believing,  with  Constantine, that  its  decision  was  guided  by  divine  inspiration  ?

The  opinions  of  the  "disputatious  presbyter"  of  Alexandria, whose  followers  were  soon  divided  into  several  sects,  long  continued to  be  the  occasion  of  angry  contentions  and  mutual  persecutions, by  no  means  becoming  such  as  "  profess  and  call  themselves Christians."  The  Arians  flourished,  at  one  period,  in  the sunshine  of  imperial  favor,  and  were  involved,  at  another,  in  disgrace and  calamity.  But  their  internal  dissensions  hastened  their decline.  The  faith  established  at  Nice  prevailed  at  length,  and "  the  consubstantiahty  of  the  Father  and  the  Son,"  says  a  modern historian,*  "has  been  unanimously  received  as  a  fundamental article  of  the  Christian  faith,  by  the  consent  of  the  Greek,  the Latin,  the  Oriental,  and  the  Protestant  Churches."

*  Gibbon,  Decline  and  Fall  of  the  Roman  Empire,  Vol.  III.  p.  334.

DOCUMENTS

RELATING  TO  THE  PRECEDING  NARRATIVE.

In  the  translation  of  the  Letters,  which  are  found  in  Socrates,  with  the  ei:ception  of  those  of  Arius  and  Eusebius  of  Nicomedia,  which  are  recorded  by Theodoret,  the  edition  of  Valesius,  by  Reading,  Cambridge,  1720,  has  been  used,
A.

Letter  of  Alexander,  Bishop  of  Alexandria.

To  our  beloved,  and  most  honored  colleagues,  in  all  places,  in the  ministry  of  the  Cathohc  Church,  Alexander,  greeting  in  the Lord.

As  the  body  of  the  Catholic  Church  is  one,  and  as  it  is  commanded in  the  divine  scriptures  that  we  should  preserve  the  bond of  peace  and  concord,  it  is  proper  that  we  should  write  and  signify to  one  another,  what  happens  to  any  of  us  ;  so  that  if  one  member suffer  or  rejoice,  the  others  may  sympathize  or  rejoice  with him.  In  our  jurisdiction,  then,  there  have  lately  appeared  iniquitous men,  and  enemies  of  Christ,  teaching  an  apostacy  which might  be  justly  thought  and  called  a  forerunner  of  Antichrist.  I
had  intended  to  bury  this  matter  in  silence,  that  the  evil,  being confined  to  the  apostates  themselves,  might  haply  die  away ;  and that  it  might  not,  by  passing  into  other  places,  pollute  the  ears  of some  of  the  more  simple.  But  since  Eusebius,  who  is  now  of Nicomedia.  imagining  that  the  affairs  of  the  Church  depend  upon his  direction,  (because,  leaving  the  Church  of  Berytus,  he  coveted
32  COLWCIL  OF  NICE.

and  obtained,  with  impunity,  that  of  Nicomedia,)  has  undertaken to  protect  these  apostate^  and  to  write  letters  in  their  favor  to every  quarter.,  that  he  may  draw  ignorant  men  into  this  worst  of heresies,  and  most  inimical  to  Christ ;  I  thought  it  was  necessary, knov.'ing  what  is  written  in  the  law^,  that  I  should  no  longer  forbear, but  inform  you  all,  that  you  may  know  who  these  apostates are,  and  the  unfortunate  language  in  which  their  error  is  expressed ;  and  that  in  case  Eusebius  should  have  written  to  you,  you may  pay  no  regard  to  him.  Willing  now  to  renew  through  them his  ancient  malignity,  which  tune  seemed  to  have  obhterated,  he pretends  that  he  writes  letters  for  their  sake.  He  shows,  however, by  his  conduct,  that  he  does  this  for  the  furtherance  of  his  own interests.  The  names,  then,  of  those  who  have  become  apostates are  these :  Arius,  Achillas,  Carpones,  Aithalcs,  another  Arius, Sannates,  Euzoius,  Lucius,  Julianus,  Menas,  Helladius  and Gains ;  and  with  these,  Secundus  and  Theonas,  who  Avere  formerly denominated  bishops.  What  they  advance  in  opposition to  scripture  is  this, — God  was  not  always  a  Father,  but  there  was a  time  when  he  was  not  a  Father.  The  Word  of  God  was  not always,  but  originated  from  nothing ;  for  God,  who  exists,  created him,  who  was  not,  from  that  which  did  not  exist.  Therefore there  was  a  time  when  he  was  not.  For  the  Son  is  a  creature, and  was  made.  Nor  is  he  like  the  Father  with  respect  to  his essence.  Neither  is  he  by  nature  the  true  Word  of  God,  nor  his true  wisdom,  but  he  is  one  of  his  works  and  creatures,  and  is  improperly termed  the  word  and  wisdom,  since  he  himself  existed hy  the  proper  Word  of  God,  and  by  the  wisdom  which  is  in  God ;
by  which,  as  he  created  all  things,  he  made  the  Son.  Therefore, by  Ills  nature,  he  is  exposed  to  change  and  alteration,  in  hke manner  as  other  rational  beings.  The  Word  is  foreign  and  separate from  the  substance  of  God,  and  the  Father  cannot  be  declared by  the  Son,  and  is  invisible  to  him.  Neither  does  the  Son know  the  Father  perfectly  and  accurately,  neither  can  he  see him  perfectly.  Nor  does  the  Son  know  what  the  nature  of  his own  substance  is.  He  was  made  on  our  account,  that  God might  create  us  through  him,  as  his  instrument ;  nor  would  he 3ver  have  existed,  unless  God  had  determined  to  create  us.     And
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  33

when  they  were  asked  wliether  the  Word  of  God  could  be changed,  as  the  devil  is  changed,  they  Avere  not  afraid  to  reply.
Yes,  he  can,  since  he  is  mutable  by  his  nature,  being  begotten and  created.  Such  declarations  having  been  made  by  Arius  with unblushing  effrontery,  we,  with  the  bishops  in  Egypt  and  Lybia, having  met  together,  in  number  nearly  a  hundred,  have  excommunicated him  and  his  followers.  But  Eusebius  has  received them,  endeavoring  to  mix  falsehood  with  truth,  and  ungodhness with  piety.  He  will  not,  however,  prevail.  The  truth  is  victorious. Light  has  no  fellowship  with  darkness,  nor  has  Christ any  agreement  with  Belial.  For,  who  ever  heard  such  things  ?
or  who,  now  hearing  them,  is  not  struck  with  amazement,  and does  not  stop  his  ears,  that  the  pollution  of  such  expressions  may not  penetrate  into  them?  Who,  when  he  hears  John  saying "  in  the  beginning  was  the  Word,"  will  not  condemn  those  who assert  that  there  was  a  time  when  he  was  not  ?  Or  who,  hearing in  the  gospel  the  words  "  only  begotten  Son,"  and  "  by  him all  things  were  made,"  will  not  abhor  those,  who  affirm  that  he is  one  of  the  creatures  ?  How  indeed  can  he  be  one*  of  those who  were  made  by  him  ?  or  how  can  he  be  the  only  begotten, who,  according  to  their  opinion,  is  to  be  included  in  the  number of  creatures?  How  can  he  be  made  from  nothing,  when  the Father  says,  "  My  heart  hath  sent  forth  a  good  Word,"  and  in another  place,  ••  I  have  begotten  thee  from  the  womb,  before  the morning,"  or  how  is  he  unlike  the  substance  of  the  Father,  who is  the  perfect  image  and  splendor  of  the  Father,  and  who  says, —
^'  He  that  hath  seen  me,  hath  seen  the  Father."  But  if  the  Son be  the  reason  and  wisdom  of  the  Father,  how  could  there  have been  a  time  when  he  was  not  ?  For  it  is  the  same  as  if  they should  say,  that  God  was  once  without  his  Word  and  wisdom.
How  can  he  be  subject  to  change  and  variation,  Avhen  he  sa}  s, of  himself,  "  I  am  in  the  Father,  and  the  Father  in  me,"  and  "  I
and   my  Father  are  one  ?"     He  declared  also  by  the  prophet,
*  The  expression  in  Socrates,  is  laoc  stvat  riov  di  avrov  yevofievuv,  the  equal  of those  tilings  which  were  made  by  him.  But  the  reading  of  the  manuscript  of Leo  Allatius,  etg  etvat  tuv  6c  avrov  yevofievuv,  preferred  by  Valesius,  is  followed  by the  translator.

3

34  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

"  Behold  I  am,  and  change  not."     And  although  it  might  be said  that  this  declaration  refers  to  the  Father  himself,  it  may  in this  instance  be  more  properly  understood  of  the  Son,  because when  he  became  man  he  was  not  changed ;  but,  as  the  Apostle says,  "yesterday,  and  to-day,  is  the  same,  and  forever."     And what  could  have  persuaded  them  to  say  that  he  was  made  on our  account,  when  Paul  says,  "  for  whom,  and  by  whom,  are  aU
things  ?"     But  as  for  their  blasphemy,  that  the  Father  is  not  perfectly known  by  the  Son,  it  is  not  to  be  wondered  at.     For  Avhen once  they  had  resolved  to  proclaim  war  against  Christ,  they  despise even  the  words  of  our  Lord  himself,  who  says,  "As  the Father  knov/eth  me,  even  so  know  I  the  Father."     If,  therefore, the  Father  knows  the  Son  in  part  only,  it  is  evident  that  the  Son also  knows  in  part  the  Father.     But  if  it  be  nefarious  to  say  this, and  if  the  Father  perfectly  knows  the  Son,  it  is  clear,  that  in  Hke manner  as  the  Father  knows  his  Word,  the  Son  knows  his  Father, whose  Word  he  is.     By  these  remarks,  and  by  explaining the  sacred  scriptures,  we  often  gained  the  advantage  over  them.
But,  chameleon-like,  they  again  changed  their  ground,  taking pains  to  bring  upon  themselves  the  application  of  what  is  written,— "  When  the  ungodly  man  cometh  into  the  depths  of  wickedness, he  despiseth."     Many  heresies,  indeed,  have  existed  before their  time,  which  have  proceeded  with  licentious  daring  to great  extravagance.     But  they,  having  endeavored  in  all  their discourses  to  subvert  the  divinity  of  the  Word,  have  justified,  in  a manner,  these  heresies,  so  far  as  it  was  in  their  power,  by  their own  nearer  approach  to  Antichrist.     For  this  reason  they  have been  publicly  expelled  from  the  Church,  and  condemned  by  an anathema.     We  are  grieved,  indeed,  at  the  ruin  of  these  men ;
the  more  so,  that  having  once  been  instructed  in  the  doctrine  of the  Church,  they  have  now  departed  from  it.     We  are  not,  however, greatly  surprised.      The  same  thing  happened  to  Hymeneeus  and  Philetus,  and  before  them  to  Judas,  who,  having  been a  follower  of  the  Saviour,  afterwards  betrayed  and  deserted  him.
And  even  with  respect  to  these  persons  themselves,  we  were  not without  warning,  for  our  Lord  himself  had  said,  "Beware  lest any  one  deceive  you ;  for  many  will  come  in  my  name,  saying,
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  35

I  am,  and  the  time  is  at  hand ;  and  shall  lead  many  into  error.
Go  not  after  them."  And  St.  Paul,  who  had  learnt  these  things from  our  Saviour,  writes,  that  "  in  the  last  days,  some  shall  depart from  sound  doctrine,  giving  heed  to  spirits  of  error,  and  to doctrines  of  demons,  turning  from  the  truth."  Since,  therefore, our  Lord  and  Saviour  Jesus  Christ  hath  himself  declared,  and hath  signified  by  the  apostle,  concerning  such  persons,  we  having heard  their  impiety  with  our  own  ears,  have  justly  anathematized such  men,  as  we  have  already  said,  and  declared  them  to be  aliens  from  the  Catholic  Church  and  faith.  We  have  made this  known  to  your  piety,  beloved  and  most  respected  fellowlaborers,  that  you  may  neither  receive  any  of  them,  should  they have  the  presumption  to  visit  you,  nor  give  any  credit  to  what Eusebius  or  any  other  person  may  write  respecting  them.  For we,  who  claim  to  be  Christians,  should  turn  away  from  all  those w^ho  speak  and  think  against  Christ,  as  enemies  of  God,  and  cormpters  of  souls  ;  and  not  even  salute  such  men,  lest  by  any means  we  should  become  partakers  of  their  sins,  as  is  commanded by  the  blessed  John.  Salute  the  brethren  who  are  w^th you.     Those  who  are  with  us  salute  you
B.

Extract  of  a  letter  from  Cortstantine  to  Alexander  and  Arius,
The  whole  of  this  letter  is  given  in  Eusebius's  life  of  Constantine,  but  that portion  of  it  only  which  is  found  in  Socrates  is  inserted  here,  the  preceding  part being  considered  less  important  in  relation  to  the  subject  in  debate.

The  Conqueror  Constantine,  the  greatest,  august,  to  Alexander and  Arius.

*  *  *  I  understand  this  to  have  been  the  origin  of  the  present controversy,  that  you,  Alexander,  required  of  your  presbyters W'hat  tliey  respectively  thought  of  a  certain  passage  of  the  law,  or
36  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

rather  questioned  them  in  regard  to  a  point  of  useless  debate ;
and  that  you,  Arius,  advanced  that  which  should  either  not  have entered  into  your  mind  at  first,  or  after  having  gained  admission, should  have  been  locked  up  in  silence  ;  and  that  dissensions  arising among  you  in  consequence,  communion  has  been  refused, and  the  most  holy  people,  rent  into  two  factions,  have  departed from  the  harmonious  union  of  the  common  body.  Therefore,  let each  of  you,  mutually  pardoning  the  other,  embrace  Avhat  your fellow-servant  most  reasonably  advises.  But  Avhat  is  this?  It was  improper  at  first  that  questions  should  be  asked  on  subjects of  this  kind,  and  then  for  the  person  interrogated  to  reply.  Questions of  this  nature,  which  no  law  compels  us  to  discuss,  but which  are  suggested  by  a  fondness  for  disputation  in  an  hour  of unprofitable  leisure,  may  indeed  be  permitted  as  an  exercise  of  the intellectual  faculties.  We  ought  however,  to  confine  them  within our  own  bosoms,  not  readily  bringing  them  fonvard  at  public meetings,  nor  rashly  confiding  them  to  the  ears  of  every  one.
For  how  eminently  gifted  must  be  the  man,  who  can  accurately understand  the  true  nature  of  such  great  and  difficult  matters,  or explain  them  in  a  manner  worthy  of  their  importance  ?  But  if any  one  should  be  supposed  capable  of  performing  this  with  ease, what  portion  of  the  common  people  would  he  be  likely  to  convince ?  or  who,  in  the  subtle  management  of  such  questions,  could avoid  the  danger  of  faUing  into  serious  mistakes  ?  In  matters  of this  description,  therefore,  one  should  restrain  a  talkative  disposition, lest,  either  through  the  weakness  of  his  understanding,  he should  fail  to  explain  what  is  proposed ;  or  his  hearers,  being  unable, from  slowness  of  perception,  to  comprehend  what  is  said, should  necessarily  fall  into  blasphemy  or  schism.  Let,  therefore, an  unguarded  question  and  an  inconsiderate  reply  be  set  agaiast each  other,  and  mutually  overlooked.  This  contention  has  not arisen  respecting  any  important  command  of  the  law,  nor  has any  new  opinion  been  introduced  with  regard  to  the  worship  of God ;  but  you  both  entertain  the  same  sentiments,  so  that  you may  join  in  one  communion.  It  is  thought  to  be  not  only  indecorous, but  altogether  unlawful,  that  so  numerous  a  people  of God  should  be  governed  and  dii-ected  at  your  pleasure,  wliile  you
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  37

are  thus  emulously  contending  with  each  other,  and  quarreUing about  small  and  very  trifling  matters.*  You  know,  if  I  may  admonish your  prudence  by  a  httle  example,  that  even  the  philosophers themselves,  although  associated  in  one  sect  or  profession, were  frequently  at  variance  on  particular  points.  But  although they  differ,  in  consequence  even  of  the  excellence  of  their  knowledge,t  they  again  vmite,  on  account  of  their  fellowship,  in  the same  general  purpose.  How  much  more  reasonable  is  it,  then, that  3"ou,  who  are  ministers  of  the  ]Most  High  God,  should  be likewise  unanimous  in  the  profession  of  the  same  rehgion.  But let  us  examine  with  more  accuracy  and  attention  what  has  been said ;  let  us  ask,  whether  it  be  just  and  reasonable,  on  account  of petty  and  idle  disputes  among  you  about  words,  that  brother should  be  arrayed  against  brother,  and  that  the  venerable  assembly, through  your  quarrels  respecting  things  of  so  little  importance, and  by  no  means  necessary,  should  be  mutually  estranged by  an  unholy  contention.  Such  contentions  are  low  and  vulgar, and  better  suited  to  the  ignorance  of  children,  than  becoming  the gravity  and  wisdom  of  priests  and  discerning  men.  Let  us  voluntarily depart  from  the  temptations  of  Satan.  Our  great  God,  the Saviour  of  all,  has  vouchsafed  to  every  one  a  common  light.
Permit  me,  his  servant,  I  beseech  you,  to  terminate  this  affair,  by the  aid  of  his  providence,  that  you,  his  people,  may  be  recalled  to unity  in  your  pubUc  assembhes  by  my  exhortations,  my  labors, and  the  urgency  of  my  admonitions.     For,  as  I  have  aheady  re
*  This  passage  is  thus  written  in  the  manuscript  of  Leo  Allatius.  togovtov  tov ^eov  laov  ^ov  vtzo  rate  vfisTepatc  evxai^  kcc  (ppeacv  svd^veiadat  irpomjKei,  dixovotiv OVTE  irpETToVy  &c.  Epiphanius  Scolasticus,  it  appears,  followed  the  same  reading, as  he  tlius  translates  the  words.  ♦'  Tantum  Dei  populum,  quem  vestris orationibus  et  prudentia  convenit  gubernari,  discordare  nee  decet,  nee  omnino fas  ess2,  credibile  est."  It  is  believed  to  be  unbecoming  and  utterly  unlawful, that  so  numerous  a  people  of  God,  who  ought  to  be  governed  by  your  prayers and  prudence,  should  be  at  variance.     See  Valesius,  annotationes  in  Socratem.

t  The  original  expression  in  this  passage,  n  6e  ttj  TTjg  eTTtar/jfiTjc  aperrf,  is ratlier  obscure.  The  translation  of  Valcsius,  "  in  ipsa,  scientiae  perfectione,"  is followed  by  Shorting,  who  renders  it,  "  in  the  very  perfection  of  knowledge.*'
Musculus,  in  his  version,  gives  "in  virtute  scientiae,"  and  Grinaeus,  "disciplinas tausd."

4

is  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

marked,  you  have  one  and  the  same  faith,  and  one  opinion  concerning our  rehgion  ;  and  as  the  requisition  of  the  law,  in  its  various parts,  urges  all  to  an  agreement  of  sentiment,  the  topic which  has  excited  animosity  and  division  among  you,  since  it  belongs not  to  the  essence  and  life  of  religion  in  general,  should  by no  means  produce  discord  and  sedition  among  you.  And  I  say not  these  things  by  any  means  to  obhge  you  to  be  of  the  same opinion,  with  regard  to  this  very  foolish  controversy,  or  by  whatever other  term  it  may  be  denominated.  For  the  honor  and character  of  the  assembly  of  Christians  may  be  preserved  entire, and  the  same  communion  retained  among  you  all,  notwithstanding you  may  greatly  ditfer  among  yourselves  in  matters  of  very little  importance,  since  all  men  have  not  the  same  understanding of  every  thing,  the  same  turn  of  mind,  or  mode  of  thinking.  Let there  be,  therefore,  among  you  but  one  faith  and  mJnd  concerning the  providence  of  God,  and  one  worship  and  service  of  the Deity.  But  your  subtle  disputes  and  inquiiies  respecting  these most  trifling  matters,  if  you  cannot  agree  in  sentunent,  should remain  in  your  own  thoughts,  and  be  laid  up  in  the  secret  depths of  the  mind.  Let  your  mutual  friendship  remain  unshaken:
and  be  firm  in  your  behef  of  the  truth,  and  your  obedience  to God  and  his  law.  Return  to  mutual  love  and  charity.  Restore to  the  whole  people  their  accustomed  harmony.  Pmify  your  own hearts,  and  renew  your  former  acquaintance  and  familiarity.
It  often  happens  that  friendship  is  more  pleasant  when  enmity  is followed  by  reconcihation.  Enable  me  again  to  enjoy  quiet  days, and  nights  undisturbed  by  sohcitude,  that  in  future  the  pleasure of  the  pure  hght,  and  the  happiness  of  a  tranquil  hfe  may  be  reserved for  me.  Otherwise,  I  cannot  but  sigh  and  lament,  and be  dissolved  in  tears ;  nor  can  I  pass  without  great  disquietude the  remainder  of  my  days.  For  how  can  I  look  for  repcae,  while the  people  of  God,  who  serve  the  same  Master  as  myself,  are  torn asunder  by  an  iniquitous  and  fatal  contention  ?  That  you  may comprehend  the  excess  of  my  grief  on  account  of  this  affair,  I  ask your  attention  to  what  I  am  going  to  say.  Arriving  lately  at Nicomedia,  I  had  determined  to  proceed  immediately  to  the  East.
When  I  was  hastening  towards  you,  and  had  already  performed
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  39

the  greater  part  of  my  journey,  the  news  of  your  differences changed  my  resokition,  lest  I  should  be  compelled  to  behold  that with  my  eyes,  of  which  I  thought  I  could  hardly  bear  the  recital.
Open  therefore  to  me,  by  your  agreement,  a  w^ay  into  the  East, which  has  been  closed  against  me  by  your  contentions.  Permit me,  as  speedily  as  possible,  to  behold  you  and  all  others  of  the people  happy  and  rejoicing,  and  to  render,  with  you,  due  thanks to  God  for  the  common  agreement  and  hberty  of  all
C.

Letter  of  Ariiis  to  Eusehius,  Bishop  of  Nicomedia.

To  the  most  esteemed  Lord,  a  faithful  man  of  God,  the  orthodox Eusebius,  Arius,  unjustly  persecuted  by  Pope*  Alexander  for the  sake  of  tRith,  which  overcomes  all  things,  and  which  you  also defend,  greeting  in  the  Lord.

My  father  Ammonius  being  about  to  visit  Nicomedia,  I  thought it  my  duty  to  salute  you  by  him ;  and  at  the  same  time  to  make known  to  you,  as  being  naturally  charitable  and  affectionate  in your  disposition  towards  the  brethren,  for  the  love  of  God  and  of his  Christ,  that  w^e  are  vehemently  opposed  and  persecuted,  and every  engine  is  set  in  motion  against  us  by  the  bishop ;  so  that he  has  even  expelled  us  from  the  city  as  atheists,  because  we  do not  assent  to  such  declarations  as  follow,  pubUcly  uttered  by  him.
God  is  always,  the  Son  is  always.  The  Father  and  the  Son  are co-existent.  The  Son,  unbegotten,  co-exists  with  God,  and  is always  begotten:  without  being  begotten,  he  is  begotten :t  nor
*  In  the  earlier  ages  of  the  Church,  the  title  of  Pope,  or  father,  was  the  common appellation  of  the  bishops.  But  when  the  bishop  of  Rome  afterwards  usurped a  spiritual  supremacy  over  his  brethren,  this  title,  and  some  others,  once bestowed  indiscriminately  on  prelates,  as  such,  being  exclusively  appropriated  to him,  acquired,  of  course,  an  additional  emphasis.

t  There  appears  to  have  been  some  confusion  of  ideas  in  the  mind  of  the
40  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

does  God  precede  the  Son  in  thought,  nor  by  a  single  moment.
Always  God,  always  the  Son.  From  God  himself  the  Son  exists.
Because  Eusebius,  your  brother,  bishop  of  Cesarea,  and  Theodotus  and  Paulinus,  Athanasius,  Gregorius  and  Aetius,  and  all  the bishops  of  the  East,  affirm,  that  God,  who  is  without  a  beginning, existed  before  the  Son,  they  have  been  condemned,  with the  exception  only  of  Philogonius,  Hellanicus  and  Macarius,  heretical men,  and  uninstructed  in  the  faith ;  who  say,  one,  that  the Son  is  an  effusion  ;  another,  that  he  is  a  projection  ;  and  another, that,  like  the  Father,  he  is  unbegotten.  We  could  not  listen,  indeed, to  such  impieties,  although  the  heretics  should  threaten  us with  a  thousand  deaths.  But  what  we  ourselves  say  and  think, we  have  already  declared,  and  now  declare,  that  the  Son  is  not unbegotten,  nor  in  any  manner  a  part  of  the  unbegotten,  or  of  any matter  subject  to  him  ;  but  in  will  and  design  he  existed  before all  times  and  ages,  perfect  God,  the  only  begotten,  unchangeable;
and  that  he  existed  not,  before  he  was  begotten,  or  created,  or  determined, or  established,  for  he  was  not  unbegotten.  We  are  persecuted, because  we  have  said  that  the  Son  has  a  beginning.
But  God  is  without  a  beginning.  On  this  account  we  are  persecuted, and  because  we  said  that  he  is  of  things  not  existing.
Thus  we  have  said,  because  he  is  not  a  part  of  God,  nor  of  any subjected  matter.  On  this  account  we  are  persecuted.  You know  the  rest.  I  hope  that  you  are  in  health  in  the  Lord,  and that  you  remember  our  troubles,  thou  true  disciple  of  Lucian,  and truly  pious  man,  as  your  name  imports.

bishop,  if  his  words  are  correctly  reported  by  Arius.  It  is  probable  that  this  pas.
sage  is  intended  to  express  what  is  called  the  "eternal  generation"  of  the  Son,  a phrase,  however,  which,  itself,  may  not  be  considered  as  remarkably  perspicuous.
Possibly  the  original  may,  to  some  readers,  be  more  clear  than  the  translation.
It  is  therefore  added,  avwirapxet  ayewijTO)^  *o  viog  tu  i?ecj,  aeiyevvijc  sotlv, ayevvTjToyevTjg  egnv.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  41

D.

Letter  of  Eiisebhis,  Bishop  of  Nico??iedia.  to  Paulinus, Bishop  of  Tyre.

To  my  Lord  Paulinus,  Eusebius  greeting  in  the  Lord.

The  zeal  of  my  Lord  Eusebius  for  the  truth  has  not  been  concealed, but  has  reached  even  to  us,  nor  has  your  silence,  my  Lord, on  the  same  subject,  been  unnoticed.  We  naturally  rejoiced  on account  of  my  Lord  Eusebius,  but  were  grieved  much  by  your reserve,  considering  the  silence  of  so  eminent  a  man  as  our  own defeat.  Wherefore,  I  exhort  you,  knowing  as  you  do,  how  unbecoming it  is  in  a  wise  man  to  think  differently  from  others, and  yet  to  suppress  the  truth,  to  exert  your  mental  faculties,  and commence  writing  on  this  subject,  which  would  be  useful  both  to yourself  and  your  hearers,  especially  if  you  follow  in  the  footsteps of  scripture,  and  endeavor  to  write  according  to  its  words  and meaning.  We  have  never  heard,  my  Lord,  of  two  beings  unbegotten,  nor  of  one  divided  into  two ;  nor  have  we  learnt  or  beheved  that  he  could  suffer  any  thing  corporeal,  but  that  there  is one  unlDCgotten,  and  another  truly  from  him,  and  not  made  of  his substance,  by  no  means  partaking  of  his  nature,  nor  being  of  his substance,  but  altogether  differing  in  nature  and  in  power,  yet made  in  the  perfect  likeness  of  the  nature  and  power  of  his  Creator. We  believe  not  only  that  his  origin  cannot  be  explained  in words,  but  that  it  cannot  be  comprehended,  we  will  not  say  by the  understanding  of  man  only,  but  by  that  of  any  beings  superior to  man.  And  we  say  this,  not  from  our  own  reasonings,  but instructed  by  the  scriptures.  That  he  is  created  and  established, and  begotten  in  the  substance,  {yzwrirov  tjj  ovaia^)  in  an  immutable and  inexplicable  nature,  and  in  the  resemblance  which  he  bears to  his  Maker,  we  learn  from  the  very  words  of  the  Lord,  who says — "  God  created  me  in  the  beginning  of  his  ways,  and  formed me  before  the  world,  and  begat  me  before  all  the  hills."     If
42  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

then  he  was  from  him,  that  is,  of  him,  as  it  were  a  part  of  him, or  an  emanation  of  the  substance,  he  could  not  then  be  said  to have  been  created  or  established.  Nor  can  you  indeed,  my  Lord, be  ignorant  of  this.  For  that  which  is  from  an  unbegotten  being cannot  be  created  nor  founded  by  another  or  by  the  same,  being from  the  beginning  unbegotten.  But  if,  because  he  is  said  to  be begotten,  it  seems  to  be  intimated,  that  he  is  derived  from  the  substance of  the  Father,  and  has  therefore  a  sameness  of  nature,  we know  that  the  scripture  does  not  say  that  he  alone  was  begotten, but  also  other  things  which  differ  altogether  from  him  in  their nature.  For  it  also  says  concerning  men,  "  I  have  begotten  sons and  exalted  them ;  but  they  have  despised  me,"  and,  "  thou  hast forsaken  God  who  begat  thee."  And  of  other  creatures  it  says, "  who  is  he  that  hath  begotten  the  drops  of  dew  ?"  This  is  not saying,  that  the  nature  of  the  dew  is  divine,  but  that  all  things which  are  made,  proceed  from  the  will  of  God.  For  nothing exists  of  his  substance ;  but  all  things  being  made  according  to his  pleasure,  every  thing  exists  in  the  manner  in  w^hich  it  was made.  For  he  is  God,  but  those  things  which  resemble  him,  are made  so  by  the  Word,  according  to  his  will,  since  all  things  are of  God.  And  all  things  which  are  by  him,  are  made  by  the Deity,  for  all  things  are  of  God.  When  you  shall  have  read  this letter,  and  have  polished  it  according  to  the  grace  which  you  have received  of  God,  write  as  soon  as  possible  to  my  Lord  Alexander.
If  you  will  take  this  trouble,  I  doubt  not  you  wall  persuade  him.
Salute  all  the  brethren  in  the  Lord.  May  the  divine  favor  preserve your  health,  and  enable  you  to  pray  for  us.

E.

Letter  of  Eusehius  Pamphilus  to  the  Church  of  Cesarea.

It  is  probable,  beloved,  that  you  have  already  learnt  from  another source,  what  has  been  done  respecting  the  ecclesiastical
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  43

faith  ill  the  great  Council  convened  at  Nice,  as  common  fame usually  outruns  an  accurate  report  of  facts.  But  as  a  rumor  of this  kind  may  have  represented  things  differently  from  what  they actually  were,  we  have  thought  it  necessary  to  send  you,  first,  the form  of  faith  proposed  by  us,  and  afterwards  that  which  was  set forth  by  the  bishops,  who  made  some  additions  to  ours.  Our  own form,  then,  which  was  read  in  the  presence  of  the  emperor,  and appeared  to  be  right  and  proper,  is  expressed  in  these  terms.  As we  have  received  from  the  bishops  Vvdio  preceded  us, — as  we  have been  taught  in  the  rudimental  instiaictions  of  our  childhood,  and when  we  were  subjects  of  the  baptismal  rite,  and  as  we  have learnt  from  the  divine  scriptures ;  as  we  have  believed  and  taught, both  in  the  order  of  presbyter,  and  the  episcopal  dignity  itself,  and as  we  now  beUeve,  we  present  to  you  our  profession  of  faith.  And it  is  this.  We  believe  m  one  God,  the  Father  Almighty,  Maker of  all  things,  visible  and  invisible ;  and  in  one  liord  Jesus  Christ, the  Word  of  God,  God  of  God,  light  of  light,  life  of  life,  the  only begotten  Son,  the  first  born  of  every  creature,  begotten  of  the  Father before  all  ages,  by  whom  all  things  Avere  made ;  who  for  our salvation  was  made  flesh  and  conversed  among  men ;  who  suffered, and  rose  again  the  third  day,  and  ascended  to  the  Father, and  will  come  again  with  glory  to  judge  the  living  and  the  dead.
We  also  believe  in  one  Holy  Spirit ;  believing  every  one  of  these to  be  and  subsist,  the  Father  truly  the  Father,  the  Son  truly  the Son,  and  the  Holy  Spirit  truly  the  Holy  Spirit ;  as  our  Lord, when  he  sent  his  disciples  to  preach,  said,  "  Go,  and  teach  all  nations, baptizing  them  in  the  name  of  the  Father,  and  of  the  Son, and  of  the  Holy  Ghost."  We  solemnly  affirm  that  we  thus  hold and  thus  think,  and  have  so  held  formerly,  and  will  hold  even unto  death,  and  will  always  continue  in  this  faith,  anathematizing every  impious  heresy.  We  testify  before  Almighty  God  and our  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  that  we  have  believed  this  sincerely,  and from  the  heart,  from  the  time  that  we  were  capable  of  knowing ourselves,  and  now  also  truly  think  and  speak,  being  prepared  to show  by  sufficient  proofs,  and  to  convince  your  minds,  that  we have  so  believed  in  times  past,  and  have  preached  accordingly.
Having  made  this  representation  of  our  faith,  there  was  no  pre
44  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

tence  for  contradiction.  But  our  pious  emperor  himself  was  the first  to  declare,  that  it  was  extremely  well  conceived,  and  that  it expressed  his  ov/ n  sentiments,  exhorting  all  to  assent  to,  and  sign it,  that  they  might  unite  in  its  doctrines,  with  the  addition  only of  the  single  word  consubstantial ;  which  he  himself  explained by  asserting  that  he  did  not  use  the  term  with  reference  to  corporeal affections,  and  that  the  Son  did  not  subsist  from  the  Father, either  by  division  or  abscission,  since  it  was  impossible  that  an immaterial,  intellectual  and  incorporeal  nature  could  admit  of  any bodily  affection  ;  but  that  it  must  be  understood  in  a  divine  and mysterious  manner.  It  was  thus  that  our  most  wise  and  religious emperor  argued  on  this  subject.  But  the  bishops,  taking  occasion from  the  word  consubstantial,  committed  to  writing  the  following form : —

We  beheve  in  one  God,  the  Father  Almighty,  Maker  of  all things,  visible  and  invisible  ;  and  in  one  Lord  Jesus  Christ,  the Son  of  God,  the  only  begotten  of  the  Father,  that  is,  of  the  substance of  the  Father ;  God  of  God,  light  of  hght,  true  God  of  true God  ;  begotten,  not  made,  consubstantial  with  the  Father,  by whom  all  things  were  made,  both  in  heaven  and  in  earth  ;  who  for us  men,  and  for  our  salvation,  descended,  was  incarnate,  and  was made  man,  and  suffered,  and  rose  again  the  third  day ;  he  ascended into  heaven,  and  shall  come  to  judge  the  living  and  the  dead  :
And  in  the  Holy  Spirit.  But  the  holy  catholic  and  apostolic Church  of  God  anathematizes  those  who  affirm  that  there  was  a time  when  the  Son  was  not,  or  that  he  was  not  before  he  was begotten,  or  that  he  was  made  of  things  not  existing ;  or  who  say, that  the  Son  of  God  was  of  any  other  substance  or  essence,  or created,  or  liable  to  change  or  conversion.

When  this  form  v/as  dictated  by  the  prelates,  their  expressions
*  The  Greeks  termed  the  symbol  of  faith  fj.a-&r]fia,  because  the  catechumens learnt  it  by  heart.  Leontius  Bisantius,  in  his  work  concerning  sects,  calls  the Symbol,  or  Creed  of  Nice,  to  fia'&rjua  tuv  ev  NtKat^.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  45

•'  of  the  substance  of  the  Father/'  and  "  consubstantial  with  the Father,"  were  not  suffered  to  pass  without  examination.  Hence, therefore,  several  questions  arose,  and  answers  were  made,  and the  sense  of  these  terms  was  carefully  considered.  They  admitted that  the  words  "  of  the  substance"  signified  that  the  Son  was of  the  Father,  but  not  as  a  part  of  the  Father.  We  thought  it well  to  assent  to  this  explanation,  as  conveying  the  pious  doctrine, that  the  Son  was  of  the  Father ;  but  not,  however,  a  part  of  the  Father. We  therefore  agreed  to  this  opinion  ;  nor  did  we  reject  the word  consubstantial,  having  in  view  the  promotion  of  peace,  and being  anxious  to  avoid  a  departure  from  the  right  behef  For  the same  reason,  w^e  approved  also  of  the  words  "  begotten,  not  made,"
since  the  Avord  made,  they  said,  was  common  to  the  other  creatures which  were  made  by  the  Son,  and  to  which  he  has  nothing similar ;  and  that  therefore  he  is  not  made  like  those  who  were created  by  himself,  but  is  of  a  more  excellent  substance  than  any created  being.  The  divine  oracles  inform  us,  that  he  v/as  of  the Father,  by  a  mode  of  generation,  which  can  neither  be  conceived nor  expressed  by  any  created  intelligence.

The  question  w^hether  the  Son  is  consubstantial  with  the  Father being  thus  examined,  it  was  agreed  that  this  was  not  to  be understood  according  to  the  manner  of  material  things,  nor  that of  mortal  beings,  since  it  could  be  neither  by  division,  nor  abscission, nor  by  a  change  of  the  paternal  essence  and  pov/er,  since the  unbegottcn  nature  of  the  Father  is  foreign  from  all  these things.  But  by  the  expression  "  consubstantial  with  the  Father"
nothing  else  is  intended,  than  that  the  Son  of  God  has  no  similitude with  created  beings,  but  resembles  in  all  things  the  Father only,  by  whom  he  was  begotten,  and  that  he  is  of  no  other  sul)stance  or  essence  than  that  of  the  Father.  The  proposition  being thus  explained,  w^e  thought  that  Ave  might  justly  accede  to  it ;
smce  w^e  knew  that  some  of  the  most  learned  and  distinguished of  the  ancient  bishops  and  waiters  had  made  use  of  the  term  consubstantial, in  treating  of  the  divinity  of  the  Father  and  the Son.*

*  This  assertion  of  Eusebius,  who  must  have  had  access  to  many  ancient writings,  which  are  now  lost,  sufficiently  shows,  that  the  word  ofzoovGtog  was
46  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

This  is  what  I  intended  to  say  concerning  the  faith  which  was declared,  and  to  which  we  all  gave  our  consent ;  not,  however, without  inquiry  and  examination,  but  according  to  the  senses  adduced, which  were  discussed  before  our  most  rehgious  emperor, and  for  the  reasons  already  mentioned,  unanimously  approved.
We  also  agreed  without  difficulty  to  the  anathema  put  forth  by the  prelates,  and  subjoined  to  the  form  of  faith,  because  it  prohibits the  use  of  unscriptural  expressions,  from  which  nearly  all the  confusion  and  disturbances  of  the  Church  have  arisen.  Since, therefore,  no  divinely  inspired  writing  has  made  use  of  the phrases,  "  of  things  not  existing,"  and  "  there  was  a  time  when he  was  not,"  and  others  which  are  added  to  them,  it  did  not  seem proper  that  they  should  be  spoken  or  taught.  We  therefore  consented also  to  this  salutary  decree,  not  having  been  accustomed, in  times  past,  to  the  use  of  such  terms.

We  have  sent  you  this  information,  beloved,  that  we  may clearly  show  you,  with  what  care  and  deliberation  we  conducted our  inquiries  and  examination,  and  gave  our  assent,  and  with liow  much  reason  we  resisted  at  first,  and  continued  our  opposition to  the  last  hour ;  so  long,  indeed,  as  any  thing  being  written otherwise  than  correctly,  afforded  occasion  of  offence.  We  finally embraced,  without  further  contention,  those  expressions  which Avere  found  to  be  unexceptionable,  when,  on  a  candid  examination of  the  sense  of  the  words,  it  appeared  that  they  entirely  agreed with  those  admitted  by  ourselves,  in  the  exposition  of  faith  which we  at  first  proposed.

not  first  invented  by  the  Nicene  Fathers,  nor  originally  used  by  them,  as  many suppose,  in  discussing  the  subject  of  the  divinity  of  the  Son.  Tertullian,  in  the beo-inning  of  his  book  against  Praxeas,  expressly  says,  that  the  Father,  the  Son, and  the  Holy  Spirit  arc  of  one  substance,  and  affirms  that  this  doctrine  is  contained in  the  rule  of  faith  preserved  by  the  Catholics.  But  wherein  does  the Latin  phraseology,  unius  substantia,  differ  from  the  Greek  expression,  oiioovaiovl
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  4/

F.

The    Sy nodical  Epistle.

The  bishops  assembled  at  Nice,  constituting  the  great  and  holy Syncd,  to  the  church  of  Alexandria,  by  the  grace  of  God  holy and  great,  and  to  the  beloved  brethren  in  Egypt,  Lybia,  and  Pentapohs,  greeting  in  the  Lord.

Seeing  that,  by  the  grace  of  God,  and  the  favor  of  Constantine, a  prince  greatly  beloved  by  him,  we  have  met  together  from  various cities  and  provinces,  and  have  holden  a  great  and  sacred Council  at  Nice,  we  considered  it  highly  necessary  that  a  letter should  be  sent  to  you  from  the  holy  Synod,  that  you  might  understand what  things  were  proposed  and  examined,  and  what was  decided  and  estabhshed.  In  the  first  place,  then,  the  impiety and  iniquity  of  Arius  and  his  associates  was  inquired  into,  in  the presence  of  our  most  religious  prince,  Constantine.  It  seemed good  to  all,  that  his  ungodly  opinion  should  be  anathematized, and  the  blasphemous  words  and  expressions  which  he  made  use of,  saying,  that  the  Son  of  God  was  from  nothing ;  that  there was  a  time  when  he  was  not ;  and  that  by  his  freedom  of  will  he was  capable  of  virtue  and  vice.  He  also  called  him  a  being created  and  made.  All  this  was  condemned  by  the  holy  Synod, who  could  not  patiently  listen  to  a  doctrine  so  impious  or  absurd, and  to  language  so  blasphemous.  You  have  already  been  made acquainted  with  the  result  of  the  proceedings  against  him,  or  v/ill shortly  be  informed ;  and  we  would  not  seem  to  insult  a  man who  has  received  the  just  reward  of  his  own  error.  But  so  great was  the  influence  of  his  impiety,  that  it  involved  Theonas,  of Marmarica,  and  Secundus,  of  Ptolemais,  in  the  same  ruin  with himself,  for  they  shared  the  same  condemnation.

But  after  the  grace  of  God  had  delivered  us  from  that  pernicious opinion,  from  impiety  and  blasphemy,  and  from  those  men who  had  the  presumption  to  excite  discord  and  divisions  among  a people  heretofore  at  peace,  the  rashness  and  petulance  of  Mele
IB  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

tins,  and  of  those  who  had  been  ordained  by  him,  still  remained to  be  considered.  And  what  was  determined  by  the  Synod  wdth respect  to  these  persons,  we  proceed,  beloved,  to  make  known  to you.  It  seemed  advisable  to  the  council,  who  w^ere  moved  by feelings  of  humanity  tow^ards  Meletius,  although  in  strict  justice he  merited  no  indulgence,  that  he  should  remain  in  his  own  city, but  have  no  power  either  of  ordination,  or  of  designating  candidates for  orders,  and  should  not  appear  in  the  country,  or  in  any other  city,  under  that  pretence  ;  but  should  retain  the  name  only of  his  office.*  Those,  however,  wdio  were  admitted  by  him  to any  clerical  function,  after  being  confirmed  by  a  more  sacred  ordination,t  w^ere  to  be  received  into  communion  on  this  condition, that  although  they  should  retain  their  honors  and  ministry,  they should  always  be  ranked  after  those,  who,  being  stationed  in  any parish  or  church,  had  been  previously  ordained  by  our  most  respected colleague,  Alexander.  They  are  not  allowed  to  propose for  ordination  such  as  they  may  think  suitable  persons,  or  to  suggest their  names ;  or,  indeed,  to  do  any  thing  without  the  consent of  some  l^ishop  of  the  Catholic  Church  under  the  jurisdiction  of Alexander.  Such,  however,  as,  by  the  grace  of  God,  and  the  aid of  your  prayers,  have  never  been  found  in  any  schism,  but  have remained  in  the  Catholic  Church  without  spot,  have  the  privilege of  voting,  and  of  proposing  the  names  of  such  as  may  be  worthy of  admission  into  the  clerical  order ;  and,  in  short,  of  performing whatever  may  be  agreeable  to  ecclesiastical  law  and  sanction.

*  It  seems  that  Meletius  had  undertaken  to  confer  orders  in  cases  which  did not  belong  to  him  ;  and  had,  moreover,  infringed  the  ancient  and  universally  received  usage  in  regard  to  the  ordination  of  bishops.  For  it  was  the  custom, when  any  episcopal  seat  became  vacant,  for  the  bishops  of  the  province,  in  the presence  of  the  people,  to  elect  and  ordain  a  successor.  But  Meletius,  wherever he  happened  to  travel,  made  no  scruple  of  instituting  bishops,  priests  and  deacons on  his  own  authority.     See  Epiphanius,  do  haeres.  68.

t  By  a  more  sacred  ordination,  the  synod  intended,  that  the  bisliops  and  other clergy,  who  had  been  ordained  by  Meletius,  should  receive  imposition  of  hands from  Alexander.  As  they  had  been  ordained  without  his  consent,  it  was  especially  requisite  that  they  should  be  consecrated  by  the  bishop  of  Alexandria,  according to  ancient  custom,  which  exacted  obedience  from  all  the  bishops  of  the Egyptian  diocese  to  Alexander,  as  their  spiritual  head.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  49

But  if  any  of  those  who  are  in  the  Church  should  be  removed  by death,  the  office  of  the  deceased  is  to  be  conferred  on  such  as  have recently  been  admitted  to  orders ;  provided,  however,  that  they appear  to  be  worthy  of  the  promotion,  and  be  elected  by  the  people ;  whose  choice,  nevertheless,  must  be  approved  and  confirmed by  the  bishop  of  Alexandria.*  And  this  privilege  was  conceded to  all  the  others.  But  with  respect  to  Meletius,  on  account  of  his former  irregular  conduct,  and  the  rashness  and  precipitancy  of his  temper,  it  was  otherwise  decreed ;  that  no  power  or  authority should  be  given  to  a  man,  v>^ho  might  be  able  to  renew  the  same troubles,  which  had  existed  before.

These  are  the  transactions  relating  more  particularly  to  Egypt and  the  most  holy  church  of  the  Alexandrians.  And  if  any  thing further  was  resolved  or  determined,  in  the  presence  of  our  Lord, and  most  honored  associate  and  brother,  Alexander,  he  will  him self  the  more  accurately  relate  it  to  you,  from  having  been  a prominent  actor  and  sharer  in  what  was  performed.

We  moreover  inform  you  of  our  unanimous  agreement  with regard  to  the  most  holy  season  of  Easter,  which  was  happily  effected by  the  assistance  of  your  prayers ;  so  that  all  our  brethren in  the  East,  who  formerly  celebrated  the  passover  simultaneously with  the  Jews,  will  in  future  keep  that  festival  in  accordance  with the  Romans,  with  ourselves,  and  with  all  those,  Avho  from  the earliest  times  have  observed  that  solemnity  with  us.  Rejoicing, therefore,  on  account  of  these  happy  regulations,  and  the  peace and  harmony  which  prevail,  and  also  that  every  heresy  is  cut  off, receive  with  the  greater  honor  and  vrarmer  affection,  our  colleague, and  your  bishop,  Alexander;  who  by  his  presence  has
*  This  passage,  says  Valesius,  evidently  refers  to  the  bishops  who  were  ordain, ed  by  Meletius,  as  well  as  to  the  presbyters  and  deacons.  For  if  it  only  contemplates the  promotion  of  one  presbyter  to  the  vacant  place  of  another,  why  did  the Nicene  Fathers  use  so  much  caution  ?  Why  did  they  make  so  many  and  such imi>ortant  preliminary  requisitions  ?  Why  so  much  solicitude  in  regard  to  tho advancement  of  a  presbyter  merely?  Unquestionably,  the  words  of  the  council iiave  a  more  immediate  view  to  bishops  ;  in  the  election  of  whom,  the  suffrages of  the  people  were  necessary,  and  also  a  confirmation  of  their  choice  by  the bishop  of  Alexandria,  as  the  metropolitan  of  all  Egypt.

4

50  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

afforded  us  great  satisfaction,  and  at  so  advanced  an  age  has  supported such  arduous  labors  to  restore  peace  among  you.  Pray also  for  us  all,  that  what  has  been  rightly  established,  may  firmly continue,  through  Almighty  God,  and  our  Lord  Jesus  Christ, with  the  Holy  Spirit,  to  whom  be  glory  forever,  amen.

G.

Letter  of  the  Emperor,
Constantine,  august,  to  the  Catholic  Church  of  Alexandria.

All  hail,  beloved  brethren  !  We  have  received  a  signal  benefit from  the  divine  providence,  in  that,  being  freed  from  all  error,  we acknowledge  one  and  the  same  faith.  Henceforth  it  will  not  be in  the  power  of  the  devil  to  do  any  thing  against  us ;  for  all  his insidious  machinations  are  utterly  removed.  The  splendor  of truth,  at  the  command  of  God,  has  vanquished  those  dissensions, schisms,  and  tumults,  which  invaded  our  repose,  and,  if  I  may  so speak,  the  deadly  poisons  of  discord.  We  all,  therefore,  believe that  there  is  one  God,  and  worship  in  his  name.

That  this  happy  state  of  things  might  be  brought  about,  I
called  together  in  the  city  of  Nice  as  many  of  the  bishops  as  possible, with  whom,  as  one  of  your  number,  and  rejoicing  exceedingly to  be  your  fellow-servant,  I  undertook  myself  to  examine into  the  truth.  Whatever,  therefore,  might  give  occasion  for  controversy and  dissension  was  oxcurately  considered  and  discussed.
May  the  Divine  Majesty  pardon  the  many  and  grievous  expressions concerning  our  blessed  Saviour,  and  our  hope  and  life, which  were  indecorously  and  blasphemously  uttered  by  some, who  declared  opinions  contrary  to  the  divine  scriptures,  and  our holy  faith,  and  professed  to  believe  them.  When,  therefore,  more than  three  hundred  bishops,  not  less  to  be  admired  for  their  modesty, than  for  their  talents  and  intelligence,  confirmed  one  and
4*

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  51

the  same  faith,  which  is  derived  from  the  truths  of  the  divine  law accurately  investigated,  Arius  alone,  who  first  sowed  this  evil among  you,  and  afterwards  among  others  also,  with  impious  design, was  found  to  be  overcome  by  diabolical  art  and  influence.
Let  us  receive,  therefore,  that  doctrine  which  was  delivered  by  the Almighty.  Let  us  return  to  our  beloved  brethren,  from  whom this  shameless  minister  of  satan  has  separated  us.  Let  us  return to  the  common  body  and  to  our  own  members,  with  all  diligence, since  it  is  due  to  your  prudence  and  understanding,  to  your  faith and  holiness,  that,  the  error  of  this  man,  who  is  evidently  an enemy  of  the  truth,  being  demonstrated,  you  return  to  divine grace.  For  what  was  approved  by  three  hundred  bishops  can only  be  considered  as  the  pleasure  of  God,  especially  as  the  Holy Spirit,  dwelling  in  the  minds  of  so  many  and  such  worthy  men, has  clearly  shown  the  divine  will.  Wherefore,  let  no  one hesitate,  let  no  one  delay ;  but  let  all  return  Avith  alacrity  to  the path  of  truth,  that  when,  with  all  convenient  speed,  I  shall  visit you,  I  may  offer,  with  you,  due  thanks  to  the  Searcher  of  all hearts,  that  having  made  known  to  you  the  unadulterated  faith, he  has  restored  to  you  that  mutual  charity,  which  was  so  much to  be  desired.

May  the  Divine  Being  watch  over  you,  my  beloved  brethren.

H.

Another  Letter  of  Constantine,
Constantine,  august,  to  the  Churches.

Having  experienced,  in  the  flourishing  state  of  public  aflfairs,  the greatness  of  the  divine  goodness,  I  thought  it  especially  incumbent on  me  to  endeavor  that  the  happy  multitudes  of  the  Catholic Church  should  preserve  one  faith,  be  united  in  unfeigned  love, and  harmoniously  join  in  their  devotions  to  Almighty  God.     But
52  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

this  could  not  otherwise  be  effected  in  a  firm  and  solid  manner, than  b}^  an  examination,  for  this  purpose,  of  whatever  pertains to  our  most  holy  religion,  by  all  the  bishops,  or  the  greater  part of  them  at  least,  assembled  together.  Having  therefore  convened as  many  as  possible,  I  myself  being  present,  and,  as  it  were,  one of  you,  (nor  do  I  deny  that  I  exceedingly  rejoice  in  being  your fellow-servant,)  every  thing  was  examined,  until  a  unanimous sentiment,  pleasing  to  God,  who  sees  all  things,  was  brought  to light ;  so  that  no  pretence  was  left  for  dissension  or  controversy respecting  the  faith.

When  the  question  arose  concerning  the  most  holy  day  of Easter,  it  was  decreed  by  common  consent  to  be  expedient,  that this  festival  should  be  celebrated  on  the  same  day  by  all,  in  every place.  For  what  can  be  more  beautiful,  what  more  venerable and  becoming,  than  that  this  festival,  from  which  we  receive  the hope  of  immortality,  should  be  suitably  observed  by  all  in  one  and the  same  order,  and  by  a  certain  rule.  And  truly,  in  the  first place,  it  seemed  to  every  one  a  most  unworthy  thing  that  we should  follow  the  custom  of  the  Jews  in  the  celebration  of  this most  holy  solemnity,  who,  polluted  wTetches !  having  stained their  hands  with  a  nefarious  crime,  are  justly  blinded  in  their minds.  It  is  fit,  therefore,  that,  rejecting  the  practice  of  this  people, we  should  perpetuate  to  all  future  ages  the  celebration  of  this rite,  in  a  more  legitimate  order,  which  we  have  kept  from  the  first day  of  our  Lord's  passion  even  to  the  present  times.  Let  us  then have  nothing  in  common  with  the  most  hostile  rabble  of  the  Jews.
We  have  received  another  method  from  the  Saviour.  A  more lawful  and  proper  course  is  open  to  our  most  holy  religion.  In pursuing  this  course  with  a  unanimous  consent,  let  us  withdraw ourselves,  my  much  honored  brethren,  from  that  most  odious  fel lowship.  It  is  indeed  in  the  highest  degree  preposterous,  that they  should  superciliously  vaunt  themselves,  that  truly  without their  instruction,  we  cannot  properly  observe  this  rite.  For  what can  they  rightly  understand,  who,  after  the  tragical  death  of  our Lord,  being  deluded  and  darkened  in  their  minds,  are  carried away  by  an  unrestrained  impulse  wherever  their  inborn  madness may  impel  them.     Hence  therefore  it  is,  that,  even  in  this  parti
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  53

cular,  they  do  not  perceive  the  truth,  so  that  continually  wandering in  the  grossest  error,  instead  of  duly  reforming  their  calculation, they  commemorate  the  passover  twice  in  the  same  year.
Why  then  should  we  follow  those  who  are  acknowledged  to  labor under  a  grievous  error  ?  for  we  will  never  tolerate  the  keeping  of a  double  passover  in  one  year.  But  if  what  I  have  said  should not  be  thought  sufficient,  it  belongs  to  your  ready  discernment, both  by  diligence  and  prayer,  to  use  every  means,  that  the  purity of  your  minds  may  not  be  affected  by  a  conformity  in  any  thing with  the  customs  of  the  vilest  of  mankind.  Besides,  it  should  be considered  that  any  dissension  in  a  business  of  such  importance, and  in  a  religious  institution  of  so  great  solemnity,  would  be highly  criminal.  For  the  Saviour  has  bequeathed  us  one  festal day  of  our  liberation,  that  is,  the  day  of  his  most  holy  passion;
and  it  was  his  pleasure  that  his  Church  should  be  one ;  the  members of  which,  although  dispersed  in  many  and  various  places, are  yet  nourished  by  the  same  spirit,  that  is,  by  the  will  of  God.
Let  the  sagacity  of  your  holiness  only  consider,  how  painful  and indecorous  it  must  be,  for  some  to  be  experiencing  the  rigors  of abstinence,  and  others  to  be  unbending  their  minds  in  convivial enjoyment  on  the  same  day ;  and  after  Easter,  for  some  to  be  indulging in  feasting  and  relaxation,  while  others  are  occupied  in the  observance  of  the  prescribed  fasts.  Wherefore,  that  a  suitable reformation  should  take  place  in  this  respect,  and  that  one  rule should  be  followed,  is  the  will  of  divine  providence,  as  all,  I  think, must  perceive.  As  it  is  necessary  that  this  fault  should  be  so amended  that  we  may  have  nothing  in  common  with  the  usage of  these  parricides  and  murderers  of  our  Lord ;  and  as  that  order is  most  convenient  which  is  observed  by  all  the  churches  of  the West,  as  well  as  those  of  the  southern  and  northern  parts  of  the world,  and  also  by  some  in  the  East,  it  was  judged  therefore  to  be most  equitable  and  proper,  and  I  pledged  myself  that  this  arrangement should  meet  your  approbation,  viz.  that  the  custom  which prevails  Avith  one  consent  in  the  city  of  Rome,  and  throughout  all Italy,  Africa  and  Egypt,  in  Spain,  Gaul,  Britain,  Lybia,  the whole  of  Greece,  the  diocese  of  Asia,  Pontus  and  Cilicia,  would be  gladly  embraced  by  your  prudence,  considering  that  not  only
54  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

the  greatest  number  of  churches  exist  in  the  places  which  have been  already  mentioned,  but  also  that  it  is  most  religious  and equitable  that  all  should  wish  what  the  strictest  reason  seems  to require,  and  to  have  no  fellowship  with  the  perjury  of  the  Jews.
And,  to  sum  up  the  whole  in  a  few  words,  it  was  agreeable  to  the common  judgment  of  all,  that  the  most  holy  feast  of  Easter should  be  celebrated  on  one  and  the  same  day.  Nor  is  it  becoming, that  in  so  sacred  an  observance  there  should  be  any  diversity ;
and  it  is  better  to  follow  that  decision,  in  which  all  participation in  the  sin  and  error  of  others  is  avoided.  This  being  the  case, receive  with  cheerfulness  the  heavenly  and  truly  divine  command. For  Avhatever  is  transacted  in  the  holy  councils  of  the bishops,  is  to  be  referred  to  the  divine  will.  Wherefore,  having announced  to  our  beloved  brethren  what  has  been  already  written, it  is  your  duty  to  receive  and  establish  the  arguments  already stated,  and  the  observance  of  the  most  holy  day ;  that  w^hen  I
shall  come  into  your  beloved  presence,  so  long  desired  by  me,  I
may  be  able  to  celebrate,  with  you,  on  one  and  the  same  day,  the holy  festival,  and  that  in  all  things  I  may  rejoice  wdth  you ;  seeing that  the  cruelty  of  the  devil  is  taken  away  by  divine  power, through  my  instrumentality,  and  that  your  faith,  your  peace  and concord  is  every  where  flourishing.

May  God  preserve  you,  my  beloved  brethren.

CANONS.

The  whole  number  of  canons,  universally  admitted  to  be  genuine,  which  were framed  by  the  Council  of  Nice,  is  twenty.  All  of  these  were  translated,  with a  view  to  insertion  among  the  documents.  But  as  the  work  has  been  extended considerably  beyond  the  original  design,  as  the  canons  relate  altogether  to  mat.
ters  of  discipline,  and  most  of  them  would  probably  be  of  little  general  interest
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  56

at  the  present  time,  it  was  determined,  on  consultation,  to  publish  a  few  of  them only,  which  are  more  particularly  connected  with  the  historical  view,  or  which may  otherwise  seem  to  claim  a  preference.  The  reader  who  may  wish  to  examine those  which  are  omitted,  is  referred  to  the  Concilia  Generalia  et  Pro.
vincialia,  Coloniae  Agrippinae,  1618,  page  275,  from  which  the  following  are translated.

Canon  IV. — Of  the  Ordination  of  Bishops,
It  is  highly  proper  that  a  bishop- should  be  constituted  such  byall  the  bishops  in  the  province;  or,  if  this  should  be  difficult, either  through  any  urgent  necessity,  or  from  the  length  of  the journey,  three,  at  least,  meeting  together,  shall  ordain  the  candidate, provided  those  who  are  absent  shall  also  consent,  and  signify their  approval  by  letter.  The  transactions,  however,  which may  take  place  in  every  province  must  be  confirmed  by  the  metropolitan bishop.

Canon  VI. — Of  the  distinguished  honors  which  were  decreed to  the  chief  Bishops  in  Ecclesiastical  Government
Let  the  ancient  usage  prevail  of  Egypt,  Lybia  and  Pentapolis, that  the  bishop  of  Alexandria  have  jurisdiction  over  all  these provinces,  since  this  is  the  custom  with  regard  to 'the  bishop  in Rome.*  In  like  manner,  at  Antioch,  and  in  the  other  provinces, let  the  churches  preserve  their  privileges.  It  is  very  clear,  that if  any  one  be  made  a  bishop  without  the  consent  of  the  metropolitan, the  great  council  has  decreed  that  he  ought  not  to  be  a bishop.  But  if  through  their  own  obstinacy  two  or  three  individuals oppose  the  election  of  a  candidate,  it  being  just  and  con
*  Here,  again,  it  appears,  that  the  bishop  of  Rome  had  no  preeminence  at the  period  of  the  Nicene  council,  being  placed  on  the  same  footing  only  as  the other  metropolitan  prelates.

56  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

formable  to  the  ecclesiastical  canon,  the  vote  of  the  majority  shall prevail.

Canon  VII. —  Of  the  Bishop  of  JElia.    {Jerusalem.^

Since  custom  and  ancient  tradition  require  that  the  bishop  of MMdi  be  held  in  veneration,  let  him  have  the  next  degree  of honor  to  the  metropolitan,  without  prejudice  to  the  appropriate authority  of  the  latter.

Canon  YIII. — Of  those  loho  are  called  Cathari,  that  isj  the
Pure.

Respecting  those,  formerly  calling  themselves  Cathari,  who have  acceded  to  the  holy  Catholic  and  apostolic  Church,  it seemed  good  to  the  great  and  holy  council,  that  receiving  the  imposition of  hands,  they  may  thus  continue  in  the  clerical  order.
But  above  all  things,  it  is  proper  that  they  should  promise  in writing  to  approve  and  follow  the  regulations  of  the  holy  apostolic Church,  that  is,  that  they  will  communicate  with  those  who  may have  contracted  a  second  marriage,  and  with  those  who,  in  a period  of  persecution,  have  fallen  from  the  truth,  but  to  whom  a time  is  fixed  and  a  season  appointed  for  repentance ;  that  they may  observe  in  all  things  the  decrees  of  the  Catholic  Church.

*  Jerusalem  having  been  destroyed  by  Titus,  a  colony  was  afterwards  established on  its  ruins  by  Adrian,  and  the  place  was  then  called  iElia.  As  a  new  city,  it was  of  no  great  importance,  and  was  under  the  jurisdiction  of  Csesarea,  the  metropolis of  Palestine.  The  Christian  world,  however,  was  not  unmindful  of  its antiquity,  and  of  the  interesting  events  of  which  it  was  the  scene.  Especially was  it  remembered  as  the  sacred  spot,  where  that  divine  religion,  which  was  one day  to  be  extended  throughout  the  world,  was  first  proclaimed  by  our  Lord  and his  apostles.  For  these  reasons  the  bishop  of  Jerusalem  was  thus  distinguished, and  Eusebius  has  preserved  the  succession  of  prelates  in  that  city,  as  well  as those  in  the  other  apostolic  sees.

COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  57

Wherever  therefore,  they  alone  may  be  found  ordained,  whether in  villages  or  cities,  they  shall  remain  in  the  same  order,  to  which they  had  been  admitted.  But  if  any  of  them  come  to  a  place where  there  is  a  bishop  or  a  presbyter  of  the  Cathohc  Church,  it is  evident  that  the  bishop  of  the  Cathohc  Church,  shall  have  the episcopal  dignity.  But  he  who  is  called  a  bishop  by  the  Cathari, shall  have  the  rank  of  a  presbyter,  unless  it  shall  seem  fit  to  the bishop  to  share  with  hun  the  honor  of  the  title ;  but  if  otherwise, he  shall  provide  for  him  the  place  of  a  country  bishop,  {x"P^^^(^'^o-ov,)
or  of  a  presbyter,  that  he  may  by  all  means  appear  to  be  in  the number  of  the  clergy,  and  that  there  may  not  be  two  bishops  in one  city.

Canon  XIII. —  Of  those  who  solicit  Coiiwiunion  at  the  poirit
of  death.

Concerning  those  who  depart  this  hfe,  the  ancient  and  ecclesiastical law  shall  now  also  be  observed,  that  if  any  one  is  about  to expire,  he  may  not  be  deprived  of  the  viaticum  of  the  Lord.  But if,  in  despair  of  life,  having  received  the  communion,  and  partaken of  the  oITering,  he  be  again  numbered  with  the  living,  let him  be  placed  with  those  Avho  participate  in  prayer  only.  By  all means,  however,  let  the  bishop  impart  the  offering  to  every  one, on  examination,  who  desires,  at  the  point  of  death,  to  partake  of the  eucharist.

C/ANON  XV. —  Of  the  inexpediency/  of  renioviny  from  one  city
to  another.

On  account  of  the  frequent  tumults  and  seditions  v/hich  arise, it  is  decreed,  that  the  custom  which  exists  in  some  parts,  contrary io  the  canon,  be  entirely  taken  away  ;  so  that  no  b'shop,  priest  or
58  COUNCIL  OF  NICE.

deacon,  be  permitted  to  migrate  from  one  city  to  another.  If  any one  after  this  determination  of  the  holy  synod,  shall  attempt  any such  thing,  or  shall  engage  in  a  business  of  this  nature,  such  a proceeding  shall  be  rendered  altogether  void,  and  he  shall  be  restored to  the  church  of  which  he  has  been  ordained  bishop,  priest or  deacon.

Canon  XVI. —  Of  those  who  do  not  remain  i?i  the  chuixhes  to luhich  they  have  been  appointed.

Whoever,  not  having  the  fear  of  God  before  their  eyes,  and disregarding  the  ecclesiastical  canon,  shall  rashly  withdraw  from the  church,  whether  they  be  priests  or  deacons,  or  in  any  other ecclesiastical  order,  such  persons  ought  by  no  means  to  be  received by  any  other  church,  but  should  be  compelled  to  return  to  their own  parishes ;  and  those  who  are  obstinate,  should  be  deprived of  the  communion.  If  any  clergyman  should  presume  to  invade wliat  belongs  to  another,  and  be  ordained  in  his  church,  without the  consent  of  the  bishop  from  whom  he  had  withdrawn,  such ordination  shall  be  null  and  void.

Canon  XVIII. —  Of  preshyters  receiving  the  eiicharist  from
deacons.

It  having  come  to  the  knowledge  of  the  great  and  holy  council, that  in  certain  places  and  cities,  the  eucharist  is  administered by  deacons  to  presbyters,  and  neither  law  nor  custom  permitting that  those  who  have  no  authority  to  offer  the  body  of  Christ should  deliver  it  to  those  who  have  ;  and  it  being  also  understood,, that  some  deacons  receive  the  eucharist  before  even  the  bishops, let  therefore  all  these  irregularities  be  removed,  and  let  the  deacons remain  within   their  ov/n   limits,   knowing  that  they  arc
COUNCIL  OF  NICE.  59

ministers  of  the  bishops,  and  inferior  to  the  presbyters.  Let  ihzzn receive  the  encharist  in  their  proper  place,  after  the  presbyti^rs, whether  it  be  administered  by  a  bishop  or  presbyter.  Nor  is  it permitted  to  deacons  to  sit  among  the  presbyters,  as  that  is  against rule  and  order.  If  any  one  will  not  obey,  even  after  these  regulations, let  him  desist  from  his  ministry.*

*  The  order  of  deacons  was  instituted  to  serve  tables,  and  chiefly  the  tablo  of the  Lord.  It  is  mentioned  by  Justin  Martyr,  towards  the  close  of  his  seco::ii apology  for  the  Christians,  that  they  were  employed  to  carry  the  bread  and  wini)
to  such  communicants  as  were  absent.  They  had  the  administration  of  the  of^
ferings,  and  of  all  the  temporal  concerns  of  the  churches.  The  poor  received from  their  hands  the  alms  of  the  faithful,  and  the  clergy,  their  stipends  and remuneration.  Ail  this  was  adapted  to  increase  their  consequence,  and  gave them,  says  Fleury,  a  kind  of  authority  over  the  priests.  The  council  of  Aries had  already  begun  to  check  the  aspiring  views  of  the  deacons,  by  prohibiting that  order,  in  their  eighteenth  canon,  "  ut  diaconus  nihil  sine  presbytero  s'do agat,"  from  taking  upon  themselves  any  functions  belonging  to  the  priests.

>N

-)^

Date  Due
OCT  9      '4^

i
NOV  7    '4S

f.,r.T2^1l
19S3

jfiQV  3  0^1

^

9EC 1,  ^  *J

is'

v*       9^1

^H^v7.    '8

^^

«fi^....,^

1

.  ^^?

OCT  1  3  H

'4

JftJt  29  W<

e^

^Rjiqcri

i

1                    1

Library  Bureau  Cat.  no.  1137

h
E.„J  5002  00133  2365

The  ecclesiastical  history  of  Euseb.us  P

BR  160  .E5  E32  1856

Eusebius,  ca.  260-ca.  340.

The  ecclesiastical  history of  Eusebius  Pamphilus

L

iiH

Miilll

207.241.224.2